. S&. *™f» n m wmm ■R ^m^mXMm Vv;VUV. '^P®$^ Pil MiSmm w^s§ ,m\;,vw M$ HM$ mbm ri/i/yw W» n,w m0' rSr^WS mmwm v«'Wk Wfe^fi Ajv*v, .' *\ v > AUK »sri M, Effl.A. c^SM^m ^ ty/Mf a^J2%fm \ IB E : PUBLISHED BY KNIGHT & SOW. FOXE'S BOOK OF MARTYRS: A COMFLETE AND AUTHENTIC ACCOUNT OP THE LIVES, SUFFERINGS, AND TRIUMPHANT DEATHS OF THE PRIMITIVE AND PROTESTANT MARTYRS, IN ALL PARTS OF THE WORLD. WITH NOTES, COMMENTS, AND ILLUSTRATIONS, BY REV. J. MILNER, M.A., ASSISTED BY ORIGINAL COMMUNICATIONS FROM LEARNED AND EMINENT MINISTERS. % $efo antf Corrector «Rrtttwi. WITH AN ESSAY ON POPERY. AND ADDITIONS TO THE PRESENT TIME, BY REV. INGRAM COBBIN, M.A. LONDON: PUBLISHED. BY KNIGHT AND SON, 11, CLERKENWELL CLOSE. 1856. l$dr£ I i qi-n* P It. E F A C E. Fox;:'s Martyrs are among our earliest recollections; and their spirit-stirring incidents rivetted our eyes to their pages in our earliest childhood. Here we see " the great things that faith can do, and the great things that faith can suffer." Here we behold, in fact, what Bunyan has so admirably described in fiction ; here is Faithful again suffering and dying ; here are graphically described the reacting in all parts of the world, and in our own country in particular, of the awful tragedies of Jerusalem, in which the Saviour of men was put to death, and the proto-martyr Stephen followed his holy example, dying by wicked hands, as a witness to the truth. Here in particular are seen anew the men of modern ages of whom the world was not worthy, " who loved not their lives unto the death/' and whose cry mingles with that of the souls of them that were slain for the word of God and for the testimony which they held : " How long, O Lord, holy and true, dost not thou judge and avenge our blood on them that dwell on the earth r" These are they arrayed in white robes ; these are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. Here is "the patience of the saints," showing the influence of pure Christianity upon the mind, and the triumphs of the real believer over the world. These sufferers truly believed the word of God, and received it " not as the word of men, but as it is in truth the word of God, w T hich effectually worketh in them that believe." To them, houses and lands, w r ealth and honours, friends and relations, not even the dearest ties on earth, nor life itself, were of any estimation when set in competition with their love to the Saviour ; and they practically illustrated in their end, the doctrine of their Divine Master, "He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me;" while they now reap the reward promised by Him who is "faithful and true." "And every one that hath forsaken houses, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or chil- dren, or lands, for my name's sake, shall receive an hundredfold, and shall inherit everlasting life," Matt. xix. 29. The present times especially call for the multiplication of copies of such a work as that of Foxe. Every one can understand facts, though every one may not be capable of following up a chain of reasonings. And "facts are stubborn things," which no subtilty can evade. The papists point us to paganism as the persecutor of the saints, but Popery is but paganism under a mask ; and while it IV PREFACE. mingles paganism with its Christianity, it has the heart and spirit of paganism. It is to be hoped that " the man of sin" has arrived at the period when his strength is decayed : but perhaps his dying struggles will be the most violent, and they may not be short or few. He is losing much of his power in lands which he has hitherto ruled with a rod of iron, but he is aiming to redeem his losses in distant regions of the globe, and is obtaining subtle entrance into the British Isles. Under the cloak of Jesuitism and the mask of Puseyism, the inveterate foe of God and man is diligently at work, and may at length boldly show his face even in high places. The increased circulation of such a work as this may greatly assist in defeating his plans, and in throwing a fence around our common Protestant faith. Rome indeed is ashamed of her own acts, and never admits that she is a persecutor. Hence Foxe, and all other writers who have published her crimes, are denounced as liars. It is in the creed of Jesuitism, for expediency's sake, to aver anything or deny anything. And if we are to believe the statements of the papists, those who have suffered as martyrs, have not suffered by the hands of the church, but of the civil power, to whom the church has always con- signed them, that they might be punished " according to law." In the teeth of fire and fagot, they have represented themselves as merciful ; and the sanguinary murderers, glutted with the blood of the saints, have dared to assume the name of the meek and lowly Jesus. Let them tell us that there have been Protestant persecu- tors ; there have, to their shame. But persecution is not inherent in Protestantism, while in Popery it is an essential ingredient ; and where ten have perished by the hands of Protestant persecutors, in times of darkness and ignorance preceded by Popery, whose example they copied, ten thousand have perished by those of the papists. Let us, then, hold up the inhuman system to merited execration. Let parents teach their children, and children teach their children, to dread and to oppose this " abomination of desolation," and to shun this " pestilence that walketh in darkness." By aiding to circulate this work they will be doing an essential good ; and by the light issuing from the flames of the martyrs' funeral piles, they may help to scatter the darkness which is gathering around. This edition, already improved by the able hands of the Rev. J. Milner, and by original communications from other learned and eminent ministers, will now r be continued to the present time, and furnish the most complete as well as the cheapest Book of Martyrs which has yet been published. INGRAM COBBIN. ESSAY ON POPERY. Protestant writers often seem to take up the pen rather in self-defence than as assailants of Popery ; or, at least, they do not think of assailing it till it has assumed an imposing posture, and threatened their faith by its daring advances. Such is the relative position of Popery and Protes- tantism among us at the present moment, though in many other countries the former is on the decline ; and every true servant of Christ is called upon to use his best efforts to repel the artful destroyer. Though apologies are offered for truth, truth needs no apology. We are accused by Papists as schismatics and heretics ; but the so-called schism consists in separating from their church, and not from the church of Christ; and our heresy is shunning their tradition, and not the word of God — the only standard of truth and infallible guide of our judgments. Whatever does not come from the fountain of truth in doctrine, and whatever does not accord with the practice of the primitive church before the Fathers wrote, or human creeds were invented, or Popish councils assembled, should be avoided as we would avoid the most destructive pestilence. On these grounds would we warn against Popery as the moral Upas-tree — to come within the atmosphere of which is to inhale the most deadly poison for the soul. The limits to which this Essay is restricted, require us to plunge at once into the heart of the subject, without further intro- ductory remarks : — The Church or Rome is erroneous in its doctrines. The Papists, with us, believe (1) in original sin, its defiling and ruinous nature, its being entailed from one child of Adam to another; but for the cure of this they have, as they imagine, a special remedy, which is baptism, " rightly administered according to the forms of the church :" in which ordinance the merits of Christ are applied, and thus what was contracted in genera- tion is cleansed away by this sort of regeneration ! The same doctrine is now notoriously enforced by the semi-papists who have started up in the church of England — a doctrine which at once sets aside the need of a change of heart, and deludes thousands with the idea that they have by this ordinance been made Christians, instead of having only received " an outward and visible sign of an inward and spiritual grace," which if they do not after- wards possess, will cause them to fall short of that qualification which fits for the kingdom of heaven. (2.) The doctrine of Justification lies at the root of the tree of life. With- out an entire faith in the merits of a better righteousness than our own, we can never be saved. So conscious are mankind of guilt in the sight of vi ESSAY ON POPERY. God, that all the world have virtually at least acknowledged it. Infidels themselves, in moments of danger, have trembled at the thought of eternity, and have even prayed. " How shall man be just with God?" is a ques- tion of the utmost moment; yet, deceived by the arch-adversary, men have ever been ready to prefer a religion of external forms, to a religion of the heart — an outside, to an inside cleansing : a religion in which they fancy there is much merit, rather than one in which they must be indebted wholly to Divine grace. Popery panders to this lust of pride. One article, among many others on the subject, by the council of Trent, the indisputable standard of popery, says, " If any one shall affirm that good works do not preserve and increase justification, but that good works themselves are only the fruits and evidence of justification already had, let such an one be accursed." If justification is to be preserved by us, then the justification wrought out by Christ is, at best, but a precarious justification ; and if we can increase it, then it is incomplete justification. If we appeal to the Bible standard, the question there occurs, " It is God that justifieth; who is he that condemneth?" But popery is a jumble on this great doctrine; it makes Christ to do part and the sinner to do part, and undervalues the efficacy of the atoning blood and all-sufficient righteousness of " the Lord our Righteousness." Thus one of its acknowledged standard authors says, " These penitential works, he [the papist,] is taught to be no otherwise satisfactory, than as joined and applied to the satisfaction Jesus made upon the cross; in virtue of which alone, all our good works find a grateful acceptance in God's sight." Here is the most complete confusion. A man's works must be joined and applied to the satisfaction of Christ; and yet it is in virtue of Christ's satisfaction that our good works can be acceptable to God ! If we ask how far the efficacy of Christ's atonement extends, we are told that it extends to all mortal sins, as if there conld be any sin not mortal, and exposing us to eternal death ; but then there are sins from which we must be justified by our own deeds, venial transgressions, which prayers, fastings, almsgiving, penance, and purgatory may in the end remove. While many poor souls are deluded by this doctrine of mixed justification, partly by Christ and partly by the sinner himself, the Roman Catholic church, by working on the pride of the human heart on the one hand, and on the fears of trembling souls on the other, derives no small advan- tage from these misnamed meritorious labours and toils. Moreover, in addition to his own good deeds, the papist can help himself from the stock of others, who need to perform them no longer! Those saints who have lived such immaculate lives, that they have done more than their duty to God and man, and have got safe to heaven with a treasure of works of supererogation to spare, are kind enough to allow the pope for the time being to assign to such as he thinks proper " a portion of this inexhaustible source of merit, suitable to their respective guilt, and sufficient to deliver them from the punishment due to their crimes!" This doctrine was first invented in the twelfth century, and modified and embellished by St. Thomas in the thirteenth. To suppose that a sinful creature, who is bound to love God with all his heart and soul and mind and strength, could with his sinful nature perform more than is here required, is one of the most preposterous ideas that ever ESSAY ON POPERY. vn entered into the mind of man. The belief of such a doctrine is " the first- born of delusion ;" it need be answered but very briefly from the words of our Divine Lord himself, " When ye shall have done all those things which are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants : we have done that which was our duty to do," Luke xvii. 10. And could we serve and worship God incessantly, with the purity and ardour of the burning seraphs around the eternal throne, we should still do no more than our duty. (3.) Absolution is a power presumed to belong to the popish priesthood. By this the priest pronounces remitted the sins of such as are penitent. The council of Trent and that of Florence declare the form or essence of the sacrament to lie in the words of the absolution, " I absolve thee of thy sins ! " According to this, no one can receive absolution without the privity, consent, and declaration of the priest : therefore, unless the priest be wWing, God himself cannot pardon any man. They found this doctrine on John xx. 23 : " Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them ; and whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." Had the words implied power to pardon sins, still that power could not, from this warrant, go beyond the apostles on whom it was conferred, as was the power of working miracles. But we see no such power claimed. The apostles preached the forgiveness of sins to those that repented and believed, (Acts iii. 19, etc. ;) and in all cases their theme was the same, " Be it known unto you therefore, men and brethren, that through this man is preached unto you the forgiveness of sins," Acts xiii. 38. It was, there- fore, no more than a declarative absolution, assuring sinners that " He pardoneth and absolveth all them that truly repent, and unfeignedly believe his holy gospel." No power here belongs to the priest; it is God only who can forgive sins. (4.) Indulgences. Nearly allied to the doctrine of absolution, is the power of granting indulgences, or " a remission of the punishment due to sin, granted by the church, and supposed to save the sinner from purgatory." With all his absolution, the good papist stops short of heaven at last ; for the moment his breath is out of his body, he enters purgatory. But the keys of heaven being committed to St. Peter, and the popes in succession, they can unlock the gates, and let in the vilest sinners that ever corrupted the world! For various prices souls may be redeemed out of purgatory, and any one may make his friends a present of a plenary remission of all sins ! This is too ridiculous to merit notice, but for the awful delusion with which it is connected. The popish priest having asserted his power to forgive sins, poor souls who give credit to his assertion are naturally anxious to obtain pardon from him. But in order so to do, he requires that to him they should make confession. (5) Purgatory must here be noticed. It has been defined as " a place in which the just who depart out of this life are supposed to expiate certain offences, which do not merit eternal damnation." Now, all sin is sin; and every sin is " the transgression of the law," 1 John iii. 4; and sin, then, must merit death, " for the wages of sin is death," Rom. vi. 23. Nor does the Scripture tell us anything about the wicked being in punishment for a limited time, or even going to an intermediate state, or passing from hell to heaven. It tells us that the duration of the misery of the wicked is like that of the happiness of the righteous, which is for via ESSAY ON POPERY. ever, Mark ix. 44; 1 Thess. iv. 17, etc.; that the good go instantly into the paradise of God, Luke xxiii. 43, Phil. i. 23; and that the wicked as instantly lift up their eyes in torments — torments from which escape to heaven is rendered impossible by an impassable gulf, Luke xvi. 26. There are two scriptures on which the papists found their doctrine of purgatory, Matt. xii. 32, and 1 Pet. hi. 18 — 20. The language of the former is a strong mode of expressing the unchangeable punishment of him who sins against the Holy Ghost. " It shall not be forgiven him, neither in this world, neither in the world to come." But it does not warrant us to say that any are forgiven in the world to come ; and St. Paul assures us, " Behold, now is the accepted time; behold, now is the day of salvation," 2 Cor. vi. 2. The second passage must be greatly wrested if we attempt to make anything more from it than what appears on its very face. Christ, who by his Spirit inspired Noah the preacher of righteousness, preached to the antediluvian sinners, now, and when the apostle Peter wrote, confined in the prison to which all unbelievers are for ever consigned. This doctrine of purgatory is, however, in harmony with the other parts of the popish creed, as it evidently leaves the work of pardon through Christ incomplete, and leaves even the best to make atonement to justice in another world ! (6.) The sacrifice of the mass is one of the peculiar doctrines of popery. For not believing in this, many a one has been sent by the papists in a chariot of fire, to join " the noble army of martyrs." The mass is similar to what Protestants call the communion service. High mass is the same thing more lengthened and showy. In the early ages of the church, the congregation was dismissed before the celebration of the Lord's Supper, none but the communicants being allowed to remain. The officiating minister said, " Ita missa est/' and the congregation withdrew; hence in process of time arose the name. The mass is held to be a true and proper sacrifice for sin ; and a sacrifice for the living and the dead ! Here again is a reflection on the merits of the Divine Redeemer, and a vile anti-scriptural doctrine, the work of human invention. When Christ died on the cross, his work was " finished," John xix. 30; and the apostle assures us that " by one offering he hath perfected for ever them that are sanctified," Heb. x. 14. Besides, a sacrifice must have a victim; but at best it is but the commemoration of the offering of the one only and spot- less Victim — " the Lamb of God, that taketh away the sin of the world." Every time that mass is offered, Christ is insulted and dishonoured. There is no praise to the mass, any more than to human merit, given by the redeemed in heaven; but their song is, " Worthy is the Lamb that was slain, to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing," Rev. v. 12. (7.) Transubstantiation is closely connected with the preceding doctrine. A momentary glance only can here be taken of this leading article of popery. In the Romish church the belief of this doctrine was often made a test of the faith of an individual, and was admirably evaded in those memorable lines of queen Elizabeth : — " Christ was the word that spake it ; He took the bread, and brake it; And what that word doth make it, That I believe and take it." ESSAY ON POPERY. IX Revelation is often above reason ; as, for example, in describing the nature and existence of God: " Canst thou by searching find out God? canst thou rind out the Almighty unto perfection?" Job xi. 7. Revelation is not contrary to reason, nor contrary to common sense; but nothing can be more absurd than the popish pretence of making a bit of wafer to be the body of Christ, which body, in that case, has been multiplied like the loaves and fishes, and eaten over and over again in all places, for many ages to the present time ! And the words on which this doctrine is founded are known to every scholar of the humblest pretensions to mean no more than " this represents my body." A man must want common sense to suppose that Christ really gave his body to his disciples, when he administered the last supper, and yet that the same body was afterwards crucified, rose from the dead, and ascended into heaven. The bread is bread that the priest gives, and the wine is wine; and what pretence soever he may make, he can make nothing more of it. Having thus briefly touched on the leading doctrines of Popery as its ground-work, the due notice of which would furnish matter for volumes, our space will only admit of a rapid glance at its practice ; — I. The Church of Rome is arbitrary in its discipline. There is laxity enough among its priests, but woe be to the poor laity that fall within its power, even if they be monarchs on their thrones. All must lick the dust before the sentence- of popes, councils, cardinals, inquisitors, and priests ! Operating on the peace of whole nations, the curse or excommunication of the pope has unseated the monarch on his throne, and sent the potentate on his knees to ask the restoration of his crown ! It will be sufficient to mention the cases of Henry IV., emperor of Germany, and of king John of England. Penances the most absurd and degrading have been submitted to by the slaves of popery, for which there is not the shadow of authority in the word of God, and which could never in their nature show real sorrow of heart, or make the least atonement for sin. What can be the real benefit derived from repeating continually as many Ave Marias, Pater-nosters, or Credos, as the priest may deter- mine? from walking barefoot? from licking the dust? consigning the penitent to a hair-shirt, or obliging or advising the poor devotee to inflict sharp castigations on his naked body? II. The Church of Rome is presumptuous in its claims. Its popes, besides claiming to be successors of St. Peter, claim to sit in the seat of God himself. The man who has suffered himself to be called " Dominus Deus Noster Papa" — " Our Lord God the Pope" — is surely the apostate of Scripture, who, " as God, sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God," 2 Thess. ii. 4. No being, how great soever he may be supposed to be, can forgive sins, but God only, Mark ii. 7 ; but this the bishop of Rome and his priests, authorized by him, claim as their prerogative. With great artifice they will pretend that this is ultimately the work of God ; but with the most presumptuous assumption they dare to teach their deluded votaries that it is the work of the pope and the church ! The catechism of the council of Trent declares that the Almighty has given to his church the keys of the kingdom of heaven, and that the penitent's sins are forgiven by the minister of religion, x ESSAY ON POPERY. through the power of the keys. The arrogance that presumes to dispose at pleasure of heaven itself, may easily be supposed to claim no inferior power on earth. Hence the bull of pope Sixtus V. against Henry, king of Navarre, and the prince de Conde, claims an authority which exceeds all the powers of earthly kings and potentates. " And if," says the bull, " it find any of them resisting the ordinance of God, it takes more sum- mary vengeance upon them, and hurling them from their throne, debases them as the ministers of aspiring Lucifer, whatever may be their power, to the lowest abysses of the earth !" Acting under this supposed autho- rity, pope Pius V. excommunicated queen Elizabeth, asserting that " him God hath constituted prince over all nations and kingdoms, that he might pluck up, destroy, dissipate, overturn, plant and build !" In fact, the claims of popery for its head, have gone so far as to attribute to the pontiff all power in heaven and on earth ; and it has been asserted that " the pope could do all things, sin excepted ;" that " the sentences of God and the pope were one;" that his "indulgence remitted even the punishment of hell;" and that " no appeal could be made from the pope to God, because he is the Christ of God ! " Accursed apostasy ! where a sinful man, whose carcase must soon pay the forfeiture of sin, and rot in corruption, the best emblem of his own church, presumes to claim the homage of mankind, and the prerogatives that belong only to Deity ! III. The Church of Rome is iniquitous in its practices. And what else is to be expected from a church which gives permission to do whatever is sinful. The daring sale of indulgences by Tetzel, when they excited the abhorrence of Christendom, was publicly condemned by the nuncio of pope Leo X. Tetzel, in his zeal to raise money for the holy see, probably went further than it was thought prudent to express so publicly, for he even asserted that any one might be permitted to commit the grossest debauchery, and offer violence to the holy Virgin herself, and be forgiven by the power of the pope, whose arms were equal to the cross of Christ! But after the death of Tetzel, a. d. 1519, a list of fees to the people for absolutions, dispensations, etc., was published in Paris, a. d. 1520. Absolution for fornication in a church was to be obtained for nine shillings ; for murdering a layman, seven shillings and sixpence ; for killing a father, mother, or wife, ten shillings and sixpence ; for a priest keeping a concubine, ten shillings and sixpence ; for a layman keeping a concubine, the same sum ; and for other crimes the mention of which would but defile these pages. " Such is the celebrated tax-book of the Apostolic Chancery, the publication of which stamps the church of Rome with eternal infamy." This publication was indeed, at last, partially con- demned, but not till it had been a hundred years in circulation. But let us see if the holy popes have been more holy than their doc- trines, licenses, or agents. No ; a worse set of men never corrupted the earth. From the time of Gregory the Great, in the sixth century, to the latest period, the popes have been more or less of abandoned principles. There have been covetous popes, proud popes, profane popes, unchaste popes, dishonest popes, murdering popes, all of whose names and characters may be seen in any impartial history of these pretended representatives upon earth of Him who was " holy, harmless, and undefiled!" ESSAY ON POPERY. XI As were the popes, so we must expect to find the priesthood. The " forbidding- to marry, "a gross mark of the man of sin, has led the popish clergy to practise all kinds of iniquity with greediness; and the secret interviews, at the confessional, with females of every class and character afford facilities for the indulgences of forbidden propensities, of which the priests have not failed to avail themselves. Facts in abundance could be related to justify this charge, but it is not pleasant to dwell upon them, and they are too well known to require reference to authorities. The monasteries and nunneries have been often described as the seats of iniquity; and, in fact, the latter were no better than brothels, of the very worst description. In the days of Henry VIII., when these monasteries were fully explored in England, the abbots, priors, and monks kept as many women each, as any lascivious Mohammedan could desire, and their crimes renewed the existence of Sodom and Gomorrah! IV. The Church of Rome is cruel in its spirit. Those who are conversant with its writers know the hatred which it breeds towards heretics. The council of Trent, besides anathematizing all the great doctrines of the gospel, consigned their defenders to eternal torments. " Cursed be all heretics," cried the cardinal of Lorraine, at the closa of its last session ; and " Cursed ! cursed ! " responded all the prelates. " Cursed ! cursed ! " echoed back the lofty dome of the old cathedral of Trent. Never had there been so much cursing " in any other synod, since the world was made." Here, too, the pages might be filled with specimens of this spirit. But let it suffice to remark how different from the spirit of Jesus, when he reproved his disciples for wishing to call down fire from heaven to consume the Samaritans : " He turned, and rebuked them, and said, Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of," Luke ix. 55. Carrying out her principles, the popish apostate has deluged the earth with the blood of her victims. The murders committed by queen Mary, and by the Irish papists, are facts too well known in history to be denied. Hundreds of martyrs have perished at the stake, thousands in dungeons, and millions form the aggregate of unfortunate Protestants, that have fallen under the bitter spirit of popery. Papists have imitated Saul of Tarsus, when he was the messenger of death to Damascus, and haled men and women, committing them to prison ; and are the fac-similes of those persecutors whom our Lord warns his disciples to expect : " Yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you will think that he doeth God service," John xvi. 2. Torturing, shooting, hanging, strangling, burning alive, starving to death, — in short every variety of suffering that diabolical ingenuity could invent, has been employed to glut the infernal appetites of the demons of the papacy ! Among these the holy fathers of the inqui- sition have shared no inconsiderable part, and have become " drunk with • the blood of the saints." Spain and Italy have been the slaughter-houses for the Protestants. Nor are the barbarities of popery confined to those lands ; at the present moment their horrid cruelties are not unknown in Sclavonia, and bordering countries. We may say of these blood-thirsty men, as Jacob said of Simeon and Levi, " Instruments of cruelty are in their habitations. O my soul, come not thou into their secret ; unto their as- sembly, mine honour, be not thou united!" Gen. xlix. 5, 6. xii ESSAY ON POPERY. V. The Church of Rome is worldly in its policy. Its object is to gain dominion ; to get a footing in every court ; to direct the affairs of kingdoms and empires ; and to accumulate wealth. The Jesuits, though at times expelled or pretendedly so from Rome, have been its awful emis- saries to augment its power. The intrigues and deceptions of these men would fill volumes, and the conveniency of their creed to deny or affirm anything, or assume any profession as it may serve their purpose, is too well known to need recapitulating here. These men have at times as- sumed so much that every papal state has alternately ejected them ; and large numbers are now in this country — doubtless many under false colours — waiting the most favourable opportunities to corrupt the rising generation, and, as far as possible, restore the dark days of former ages. The Jesuits are unchangeable. So is Popery. And to show that these observations are not without being confirmed by facts, one sufficiently strong may here be quoted. After tho Reformation had been carried a considerable length in the minority of king James VI. of Scotland, it was in danger of being overthrown by the artifice of the duke of Lennox, a papist and a creature of the Jesuit court, who had acquired undue ascendancy over the young king. The ministry of the church were alarmed, and more especially when they saw several Jesuits and seminary priests arrive from abroad, and by the open revolt of some who had hitherto professed the Protestant faith. They warned their hearers of the state of things. Lennox at once publicly renounced the popish religion. But the jealousy of the nation was revived and inflamed by the interception of letters from Rome, grant- ing a dispensation to the Roman Catholics to profess the Protestant tenets for a time, provided they preserved an inward attachment to the ancient faith, and embraced every opportunity of advancing it in secret. This discovery was the cause of originating the national covenant. Confession is of most important use in establishing this dominion over men, and even over states and cabinets. Every member of the family is inadvertently made a spy. Every secret is known to the confessor. The king and the subject become alike the slaves of the church ! Such a machinery is one of the most profound pieces of policy that could ever be employed by arbitrary states. Entering into the deepest recesses of the human bosom, it brings to light every hidden thing, and at once assumes the control of every heart. Thus have papists learned to rule the world ! VI. The Church of Rome is selfish in its motives. There is nothing in it noble, expansive, or benevolent. While it calls itself the " Catholic" church, it is the most sectarian of all churches, shutting from heaven all that do not enter within its pale. It never teaches its votaries to wish "grace, mercy, and peace" to any but those of its own community. If the most lovely Christians in the world are not papists, they cannot offer up for them the benevolent wish, " Grace be with all them that love our Lord Jesus Christ in sincerity." Whatever the church teaches, or whatever it does, doctrines, sacraments, discipline, all are made to operate in filling her own gaping coffers, ever crying, " Give, give ! " Idolatrous as she is in other matters, money is her chief idol. Her churches have been notorious for accumulating wealth, and so also have her convents and monasteries ; and the contrivances for ESSAY ON POFERY. Xlil that purpose have been most subtle and successful. The doctrine of pur- gatory, in particular, has been a mine of wealth to the church. By con- signing g'ood and bad to that indescribable yet horrible state, and keeping them there at the pleasure of the keys, mass upon mass has been heaped up mountains high, like Ossa upon Pelion ; so that the poor deluded re- latives of the departed have exhausted their money and patience in raising the golden ascent, by which to scale the heavens with more facility ! Without going back to the disgusting period which called forth the Reformation, it is sufficient to state, that these vile sources of revenue are still especiallv made productive at certain periods. The Jubilee bulls every twenty-five years call the faithful to Rome by promising " a plenary indulgence, remission, and pardon of all their sins." In Spain, a lucrative traffic is driven in this article of papal merchandise. Four bulls contain- ing special indulgences are annually sent thither from Rome, which are bought by almost all the Spaniards, at prices suited to the condition of the purchasers. One bull gives plenary indulgences to commit what would otherwise be a mortal sin, by eating various articles of food during Lent. Another relates to frauds on property, allowing the guilty participants to retain it under certain qualifications. And what is called the Defunct bull obtains a plenary indulgence for any dead person, if his soul should happen to be still in purgatory ! But no release from purgatory without money ! Not a single mass nor pater-noster can be offered up for a poor sinner without money ! And the pope and the priest will allow the soul to suffer all the horrible torments which in their books and pictures are described as inflicted on the impenitent through countless ages, unless they have money to turn the keys, and release the poor victims from their misery. Truly, the " spirit of Popery" is the spirit of the evil one ' — " the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience." VII. The Church of Rome is idolatrous in its worship. The wor- shipping of any creature, how exalted soever he may be, or the likeness of anything " in the heaven above, or in the earth beneath," is idolatry. The Virgin Mary, the popes, the saints, the very bones of the saints, have been and are the objects of papal idolatries. So much homage is paid to the Virgin Mary that it has been well observed by a modern deceased writer, that it looks as if the papists thought that there were four subsistences in the Godhead, the Virgin Mary being the fourth. The " One Mediator," " Jesus Christ the righteous," is lost in the crowds, or rather the clouds of petitions offered up to the Virgin. This idolatry has no seeming authority anywhere in the Scriptures but in the angelic salutation, "Hail! highly favoured, the Lord is with thee ! blessed art thou among women ! " and Mary's words, " From henceforth all generations shall call me blessed," Luke i. 28, 48. Blessed rather signifies " happy;" and not a word is here respecting worship to be offered to Mary by future generations. But " it is a favourite mode of declaiming amongst Roman Catholic divines," says Fletcher, "to represent Jesus Christ as far more willing to listen to the prayers and intercession of the Virgin, than to those of other saints. The con- sequence of such representations is obvious. More prayers are addressed to the Virgin in the Roman Catholic Church than to any other saint ; and in some services there are ten Ave Marias for one Pater-noster." One xiv ESSAY ON POPERY. exhortation in the Catholic school-book is, " Have recourse to her in all your spiritual necessity ; and for that end offer to her daily and particular prayers." The same book says, " She is most powerful with God to obtain from him all that she shall ask of him. She is all goodness in regard to us, by applying to God for us. Being mother of God, he cannot refuse her request; being our mother, she cannot deny her intercession, when we have recourse to her. Our miseries move her, our necessities urge her ; the prayers we offer her for our salvation bring us all that we desire." And St. Bernard is not afraid to say, that " never any person invokes that Mother of mercies in his necessities who has not been sensible of the effect of her assistance." The prayers to the Virgin in the Breviary are generally known ; they are in harmony with the above declarations. The following are a few of the appellations of the Virgin : Holy Mother of God ; Refuge of Sinners ; Comforter of the Afflicted ; Queen of Angels, of Patriarchs, of Apostles, of all Saints; Mirror of Justice; Seat of Wis- dom; Mystical Rose ; Tower of Ivory ; House of Gold ; and others equally extravagant. In the former, the honour due to Father, Son, and Spirit is given to a mortal — to the Virgin Mary; and the latter are too ridiculous to require comment. Popery is the same now as it was in the dark ages of the church ; and the worship of the Virgin is still one of the favourite tenets of Romanism, as shown in the following extract from an encyclical letter of Pius IX. — "In order that our most merciful God may the more readily incline his ear to our prayers, and grant that which we implore, let us ever have recourse to the intercession of the most holy Mother of God, the immaculate Virgin Mary, our sweetest mother, our mediatrix, our advocate, our surest hope and firmest reliance, than whose patronage nothing is more potent, nothing more effectual with God ! " VIII. The Church of Rome is absurd, ridiculous, and blas- phemous in its pretensions. These absurdities and blasphemies are so numerous, and so notorious, that a few only need be selected; and on these it is unnecessary largely to expatiate. (1.) Transubstantiation is one of the most notorious absurdities of their doctrine. A greater insult was never offered to the human understanding. A wafer and wine are transformed by the priest into the real body and blood of Christ; and though eaten and drunk millions of times, still it is so transformed, eaten, and drunk. Truly, Catholic priests must be knaves, and those of their community who really believe this absurdity must be num- bered amongst the most silly of fools. The latter deserve pity, the former only to be ranked with the greatest and most dangerous rogues in society. (2.) Relics have brought no small revenue to the churches in which they have been deposited ; and these have rivalled each other in the absurd in- ventions of popery. At Rome are the heads of St. Peter and St. Paul, en- cased in silver busts set with jewels ; a lock of the Virgin's hair ; a phial of her tears ; a piece of her green petticoat; a robe of Jesus Christ, sprinkled with his blood ; some drops of blood in a bottle ; some of the water which flowed out of the wound in his side ; some of the sponge ; a large piece of the cross; all the nails used in the crucifixion; a piece of the stone of the sepulchre on which the angel sat; the identical porphyry piiiar on which the cock perched when lie crowed after Peter denied Christ; the ESSAY ON TOrERY. xv rods of Moses and Aaron, and two pieces of the wood of the real ark of the covenant; — this is Rome in the nineteenth century! We might fill columns with relics of sacred bones, beards, hair, etc., but we must desist. In the church of the Escurial only, in Spain, there are no less than eleven thousand of these ridiculous impositions on the credulity of the weak and superstitious. The most extraordinary efficacy is ascribed to some of these relics, greatly benefiting the churches which have the good fortune to possess them. (3.) Patron saints are another happy invention to bring in grist to the mill. For the accommodation of the worshippers, there are in many churches altars belonging to a variety of these. These eminent saints are many of them doctors of high repute. St. Anthony cures diseases; St. Anthony of Padua delivers from water ; St Barbara protects against thunder and war ; St. Blass cures the throat ; St. Lucia, the eyes ; St. Nicholas helps young women to husbands ; St. Ramon protects the preg- nant ; St. Lazaro serves the purpose of a nurse in giving childbirth ; St. Polonia preserves the teeth ; St. Domingo cures the fever; and St. Roche guards against the plague ! (4.) The Agnus Dei is a wonderful little article. It is made chiefly of virgin wax, and has the image of the Lamb of God on it. The pope con- secrates the Agnus Deis the first year of his pontificate, and every seventh year afterwards. It is the object of much devotion ; for, kept about the person, it preserves from spiritual and temporal enemies, from the dangers of fire, water, storms, tempests, hunder, lightning, and sudden and unpre- pared death ; puts devils to flight, takes away the stains of past sins, and pro- duces other extraordinary benefits. (5.) Pardons. The marvellous ways in which these might be obtained were published in 1517, in a work entitled the Customs of London. Some of these were as follows : — In St. Peter's at Rome, beneath the image of our Lord at the door, was one of the pence that God was sold for, the looking upon which obtained each time fourteen hundred years of pardon! Beholding a cloth made by our Lady, and exhibited on the Lady-day Assumption, obtained four hundred years of pardon! All who sat in Pope Accensius's chair obtained a hundred thousand years of pardon ! (6.) Miracles must be classed among popish absurdities. St. Raymond de Pennafort laid his cloak on the sea, and sailed thereon from Majorca to Barcelona, a distance of one hundred and sixty miles, in six hours ! The miracles of other saints are of a like kind. The story of the house of our Lady of Loretto being carried through the air from Nazareth by angels is another prodigious absurdity. The priestly juggle of the annual liquefac- tion of the blood of St. Januarius at Naples is well known. Nor are these miracles yet finished : Prince Hohenloe recently revived them in Germany, and the Earl of Shrewsbury has attested a new one in Italy. How unlike are these " inventions" of Popery to the miracles of Christ and his apostles, which were wrought before the world, attested by competent witnesses, designed to confirm their mission, and were all free acts -of 'benevolence. The " Miracles of Popery" may be dismissed by writing simply beneath them, " Lying wonders !" (7.) Pilgrimages have for ages been of great repute in the Church of Rome. Tribes emerging from barbarism may through this delusion have xvi ESSAY ON POPERY. become acquainted with the blessings of civilized life ; but that pilgrimages should be undertaken in the nineteenth century is another proof that popery loves darkness rather than light. A famous shrine of the Madonna, near Leghorn, is constantly visited; and the Dominicans have lately found an image of the Virgin there, which has brought their order into great repute. IX. The Church of Rome is insulting to the word of God. It is too notorious, that in all countries where popery prevails, the Bible is not permitted to enter. If some favourable opportunities for its access are embraced, it is soon again interdicted. The darkness of popery cannot bear its light. Numerous proofs could be brought forward that the word of God has always been hated and destroyed by popes and priests. The church substitutes numerous inventions for Scripture authority. Hence its pope, falsely called the successor of St. Peter, who never was at Rome; its seven sacraments, two only of which are found in sacred writ — baptism and the Lord's Supper ; hence its purgatory, pilgrimages, images, and other absurdities. Though Christ has left the command, " Search the Scriptures," and apostolic authority records another, " Let the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom," the church of Rome takes the greatest pains to keep the people in ignorance, and prevent the clear shining of this light. If it had free course, it would soon consume all her false doctrines, and shame all her absurdities and wickednesses. Nothing is hated more by popes and priests than the Bible, and the Bible Society. Against the latter a tremendous bull was thundered forth by the pope only as recently as the year 1824. If the Bible is occasionally found in circulation, it is grossly interpolated, its phrases are adapted to the inventions of the popish church, and its price too high for general 'use ; and indeed, from the ignorance of the people in papal states, but few could use it. Even then the authority of the church is paramount to everything, and nothing is to be believed in the Bible if it is not believed by the church ! The Bible, God's book, is fallible ; the church of Rome, its head, is infallible ! X. The Church of Rome is inimical to freedom. To the present moment popish rulers, under the guidance of their priests, have suppressed knowledge, fettered the press, prevented free inquiry after truth, and the labours of Protestants. Papists claim everything for themselves in free countries ; but popish countries allow no such liberty to Protestants. Truth is not afraid of papal error, but popery fears the truth. How numerous have been the martyrs in old France, Spain, Portugal, Italy, and other popish countries. And where now is the liberty of worship in most of them? They domineer over the minds of men, and chain both their consciences and their understandings with fetters of iron. Books adapted to enlighten the mind are excluded, while fabulous accounts of the saints are abundantly circulated. Catechisms indeed they have, but they altogether omit the second commandment. Everywhere in the churches you are urged to pray for the dead, and to drop a little money for masses for their poor souls in purgatory; but no effort dare you make to enlighten the living. In all the nations where the Reformation burst forth, it was extinguished by persecution and the inquisition. ESSAY ON POPERY. xvii XI. The Church of Rome is unholy in its influences. Its breath is poison to morality. Its doctrines are calculated to encourage men to sin, because they can always obtain ghostly pardon. From its bosom spring a generation of the worst infidels, disgusted with its fooleries and enormities; and who, for want of better light, confound superstition with religion. Its trickeries and crimes which have occasionally been brought to light, have made hosts of genuine unbelievers. The practices discovered in its monas- teries—often sinks of vice— and the lives of many of its clergy, have all aided to make men secret infidels, where they have not been weak enough to become dupes. Religion and pastime have been mingled together to defraud the people. The Sabbath may be desecrated by the covetous dealer or the mountebank ; and the songs of the opera be listened to after the chants of the church. The fourth commandment is set aside, like the second, and papists defy the moral authority which says, " Remember the Sabbath day to keep it holy." The scenes of commerce, pleasure, dissi- pation and vice, which abound in continental cities on the Sabbath, mark them at once as under the dominion of " the man of sin." XII. The Church of Rome is comparatively modern in its origin, principles, and customs. Its antiquity is often a boast of the advocates of popery; but if antiquity stamped excellency on a religion, then Paganism and Judaism are older than Popery. The church of Rome, however, boasts of its antiquity without cause. The question has been proposed by the papist to the Protestant, " Where was your religion before the days of WicklifFe?" " Where ?" was the reply ; " why, where yours never was — in the Bible." Primitive Christianity bears no resemblance to popery. We find there no popes; no cardinals; no monks, nor nuns; no holy wafer, nor holy water ; no baptism of bells, nor canonization of saints; no mass, nor giant candles ; no chrism, nor cross ; no repeating of Pater-nosters nor Ave Marias ; no saints' days, nor popes' jubilees ; no plenary indulgences, nor purgatories; no bulls, nor inquisitions; in fact, we find nothing like popery, except what is under the ban of heaven, and doomed to everlasting destruction : the " man of sin — the son of perdi- tion, who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called God, or that is worshipped; so that he, as God, sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God. — That Wicked, whom the Lord shall consume with the spirit of his mouth, and shall destroy with the bright- ness of his coming : even him, whose coming is after the work of Satan, with all power and signs and lying wonders, and with all deceivableness of unrighteousness in them that perish, because they received not the love of the truth that they might be saved," 2 Thes. ii. 3, 4, 8,10. The Bible further delineates Popery with unmistakeable accuracy : " Now the Spirit speaketh expressly that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits and doctrines of devils ; speaking lies in hypocrisy ; having their conscience seared with a hot iron ; forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received with thanksgiving of them that believe and know the truth." " And there came one of the seven angels which had the seven vials, and talked with me, saying unto me, Come hither; I will show unto thee the judgment of the great whore that sitteth upon many waters : with whom the kings xviii ESSAY ON POPERY. of the earth have committed fornication. So he carried me away in the spirit into the wilderness ; and I saw a woman sit upon a scarlet- coloured beast, full of names of blasphemy, having seven heads and ten horns. And the woman was arrayed in purple and scarlet colour ; and decked in gold and precious stones and pearls, having a golden cup in her hand full of abominations and filthiness of her fornication : and upon her forehead was a name written Mystery, Babylon the Great, the Mother of Harlots and Abominations of the Earth. And I saw the woman drunken with the blood of the saints, and with the blood of the martyrs of Jesus : and when I saw her I wondered with great admiration. And the angel said unto one, Wherefore didst thou marvel ? I will tell thee the mystery of the woman, and of the beast that carrieth her, which hath the seven heads and ten horns. The beast that thou sawest was, and is not; and shall ascend out of the bottomless pit, and go into perdition," 1 Tim. iv. 1—3; Rev. xvii. 1—8. Every part of Popery corrupts Christianity, and its corruptions have crept into its church by degrees. The Bible was not proscribed till the fourtn century — this proscription was a novelty ; the idolatry of popery did not commence till then — this was another novelty; the clergy were not for- bidden to marry till then — another novelty. Infallibility was not claimed till the seventh century ; the service was not performed in an unknown tongue before that time ; purgatory was then introduced. Transubstantiation was not introduced till the eighth century. Half- communion was not begun till the eleventh century. Priestly absolution and excommunication were powers not claimed till the twelfth century ; nor till then was it determined that there should be seven sacraments. The sacrifice of the mass, the worship of the host, and auricular confession, were established only in the thirteenth century. Tradition did not make its claims before the sixteenth century. Thus it appears that popery is a monster of slow growth, and all its parts have not been perfected till within a few centuries. Such is the church against whose iniquities, doctrines, and practices the martyrs protested, and sealed the truth with their blood. It is heathenism new-modelled, and Christianity foully corrupted. It is doomed to perish, but yet struggles for existence. Its throne totters, but many hands yet strive to hold it up. Its subtle agents are at work to renew its influences in this land of martyrs. The Jesuit, like a sly serpent, creeps into every hole and corner. The " slimy viper" stealthily crawls into our families, schools, colleges, universities, and senate. We trace its existence under the mitre and the cassock ; we see it polluting the pulpit and the press. We should beware of its corruptions in innovating ceremonies creeping under the Protestant altars, and in leading articles published in our most popular newspapers. If we would not again fall a prey to the reptile foe, let us learn dexterously to handle the sword of the Spirit, which it cannot resist ; and let us say to each other, as Jesus to his disciples — Watch ! LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX, A.M. It is seldom we are deeply interested in the works of an author, with whose personal and private history we have no desire to be ac- quainted. The few instances in which this may be the case regard writers of acknowledged fiction, and such other works as from their nature require no guarantee of their being conformable to the reality of things; but will never be found to include a single writer on civil or personal, political or sacred, history. Authors who have undertaken to inform us on the latter subject, especially, and who have succeeded in winning general attention to their works, are the men whose own history becomes a field of curiosity and research, that the scenes through which they passed may assure us of their competency to the task, and the character they have preserved amidst ordinary or peculiar trials may attest the honesty of every part of their important record. Hence it is that histories of the Christian church have, beyond all other works, required a sure and safe appeal to the character of their authors to give them currency, and have circulated and flourished in the walks of literature in proportion as that appeal has been fearlessly and faithfully answered. When special periods of ecclesiastical fame or disgrace, triumph or suffering, are chosen by an historian, it becomes of greater importance that we know who and what he is. Few will commit their faith to the details of such a period, who are not first informed to their satisfaction that the author was a man above suspicion — resolved, in the love of truth and the fear of God, Nothing to extenuate Or set down aught in malice." It is true that such periods are most fertile in determined partisans, and it is equally true that they require every public character deliberately to choose and resolutely to defend his party: and this, in reference to active and warlike agents, can scarcely ever be done without inflaming the passions beyond all reasonable bounds, and giving ascendancy to feelings often at perfect variance with integrity and charity. But writers, who undertake a subsequent record of what these fierce com- batants have done, need not be under the same injurious impulse — may without difficulty release themselves from the angry constraint — have xx LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. in fact, the best opportunity and the most pure and powerful motive to atone for the wrong doing of their friends, while they wield the weapons of truth against their foes. How far the subject of the present memoir merited the censure or the praise to which these remarks refer, will appear in some measure from the annals of his life and the features of his general character: while from his great work which this memoir precedes, it must be sufficiently manifest that with whatever errors of spirit or judgment he may have been chargeable, he could have fairly said of himself in the words of a later author — "My work is for the service of truth, by one who would be glad to attend and grace her triumphs ; as her soldier, if he has had the honour to serve successfully under her banner; or as a captive tied to her chariot wheels, if he has committed any offence against her." John Foxe, or Fox, was born at Boston in Lincolnshire, a. d. 1517, the year in which Luther published his Theses against the papal church, and just before the growing power of Henry VIII. led him to shake the foundations of the vast Roman hierarchy, which no British prince before had the courage to speak of but in terms of the profoundest reverence and submission. The town of Fox's birth, on account of its remoteness and seclusion, contained an unusual proportion of independent gentle- men of small fortune, to which class his father belonged; but not being a native of the place his constitution suffered from confinement in the extreme humidity of that corner of the kingdom, so that he died ot decline a few years after the birth of this his distinguished child, and we believe only son. His mother, a woman very generally admired and esteemed, soon embraced a second offer of marriage; which, however, neither drove her son from under the paternal roof, nor diminished the care with which she had begun to tutor and train him. His second father became warmly attached to his foster son, and is said to have elicited more of his rising talent than the mother, sanguine as she was on this point, could venture to hope he would ever display. Afterwards indeed, when young Fox openly avowed partiality to protestant prin- ciples, his father-in-law either became deeply prejudiced against him on this ground, or was alarmed at the probable consequences of the change to the family, so that he withheld from him the means of support; but as one remarks, "As the hunted deer takes sanctuary by flying to the rest of the herd, they, out of a principle of self-preservation, drive him away for fear lest the hounds in pursuit fall on them ; so Foxe's father-in-law was lothe to receive him, and forbade him the protection of his family, lest per- secution in quest of his son should bring him and his house into trouble." At the age of sixteen his " good inclinations and towardness to learning " led to his being sent to the university of Oxford. He was accordingly entered at Brazennose college ; and placed under Mr. Hawarden, one of the fellows. It would seem strange. that, at a period of difficult com- munication between one town and another, the more distant university should have been preferred; especially as Cambridge lay mid-way on the road from Boston to Oxford, and was, moreover, of easier access as a place of learning for the sons of the poorer gentry of the land. It was a favourable circumstance for young Fox that the frugality of his parents, while it did not shrink from the expence of an Oxford education, LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xx\ rendered it necessary that the youth should share his college apartment with another pupil. This incident was the more favourable from that Di her pupil being some years the elder of the two, and a youth of dis- tinguished genius, industry, and kindness. But the most favourable as well as extraordinary feature of the event was, the decided and growing protestantism of the other collegian, whose abode by night and day it was the privilege of young Fox to share. This undoubtedly laid the foundation of his early and decided love of reforming principles, and of his resolute undeviating course in their defence, when poverty stared him in the face, and death seemed to threaten him at every step. The companion referred to was no other than Alexander Nowell, the celebrated preacher of Elizabeth's days, and the exemplary dean of St. Paul. He had entered Brazennose at an early age, and continued an under-graduate thirteen years. This suspension of graduateship did not imply inferiority, for the first degree was not then, as at the present day, usually taken at the expiration of the fourth year. At the age of twenty, two years before Fox was admitted as a student, and after a residence of seven years, Nowell was appointed public reader of Logic in the university, which he taught from the work of Rodolphus Agricola. There is some- thing worth dwelling upon in the circumstance of two such individuals being thus early, and as it were accidentally coupled, — not to pull in opposite directions, and thus impede each other's progress, but to ad- minister each to the other's strength, and thus multiply their separate talents and zeal, as well as furnish to both all the additional energy and efficiency that could be derived from the most friendly combination. The few years difference in age was soon lost sight of, or became a motive for the elder to be more generously and faithfully communicative, and for the younger to receive his communications with all the openness of an ardent pupil united with all the gratitude of an obliged and affec- tionate friend. But it is in their like-mindedness as studious and zealous protestants, that we reflect on their early union and later co-operation with the greatest delight. At that period there was just enough in the pos- ture of public affairs to encourage two such minds to proceed in their investigation of ecclesiastical evils, and at the same time so little as to convince them that such investigations alone might expose them to the greatest danger; that one new impulse acting upon the fickle mind of an arbitrary monarch might spoil all their hopes, transfer them for the remainder of a short life from a college to a prison, exile them from their native country, or bring upon them a violent and barbarous death. How far these considerations stimulated their zeal and tempered it with due discretion, we have no means of accurately judging; but that their critical circumstances, which must have suggested some such reasoning, neither abated their protestant energy nor deprived them of christian prudence and caution, we have enough in their history to convince us. Undoubtedly the universities contained many young inquirers eager to ascertain whether the protestant or the papal cause were the more just as well as more likely to triumph in the approaching conflict; but it is still more certain that the number was comparatively small of those who turned their inquiries to so much real edification, and directed them to xxu LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. such honourable purposes and aims as these noble and persevering reformers, Alexander Novvell and John Fox. The latter took his bachelor's degree in the year 1538, when he reached his twenty-first year; and his master's degree in 1543. In the latter year he was elected fellow of Magdalen college, though many objections were made from various causes. About the same time, Nowell left Oxford to become second master of Westminster School, " where he instructed his pupils in the ancient principles of the true catholic faith, as they were cleared from the papal errors which had so long blended with and disfigured them." The change in both instances, especially in the latter, arose doubtless from the growing disaffection of the leading men at Brazen-nose to a reform in the church, which had now begun to assume a rather auspicious and active appearance. Westminster afforded Nowell a more secure and promising sphere for his bolder efforts in this great and growing cause; while Oxford, having offered to Fox a fellowship which he thought he might safely accept in a more liberal college, continued a few years longer to shelter him in the less public and more cautious pursuit of pro- testant principles. Cultivating an early taste for poetry, some portion of the seclusion of his fellowship was given to this pleasing art ; but it was an art which he never dissociated from theology, nor allowed essentially to interfere with that sacred and ascendant theme. Nor was his love of poetry ever permitted to divert his attention from those protestant views of theology, which were every year acquiring the strongest influence over him. It was, in fact, very early and efficiently subservient to the extension of those views, and to his assurance that they were strictly in unison with the will of God as revealed in holy writ. In very few years he made himself master of all the controversies which then agitated the christian world, and before he was thirty he had read all the Greek and Latin fathers, together with all the decrees of consistories, convocations, and councils. His acquaintance with Jewish and Rabbinical literature was not so extensive or so profound, as with the erudition and the annals of christian churches ; still he was a respectable Hebrew scholar, ana had by this time become master of the chief intricacies of that ancient and sacred language. In early youth he had been, like most others, a zealous and bigoted papist: he might be said to belong to the strictest sect of the Romish church ; and had he possessed less ingenuousness of mind, his studies, receiving a papal direction, might have rendered him a still more devoted catholic, and prepared him for the honours of the conclave, if not the glories of the popedom. But his native candour was equal to his in- dustry, and led him to examine and compare at every step; and this soon turned the balance of his judgment in favour of protestant truth. He is said to have been first shaken in his popish belief by perceiving in the writing of its advocates things most repugnant to each other ; as that the same man might be superior in matters of faith, and yet his life and manners be inferior to all the world besides. He now pursued his investigations of the system with more ardour than ever, and his mind rapidly advanced to a perfect assurance, which nothing could shake, that some great effort must soon be made, and had in fact already com- LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxm menced, to reform the church of Christ, especially in his own beloved but deluded country, in which the heresy and tyranny of the Romish faith had acquired a long and almost inveterate entrenchment. There can be no doubt that his conscience and character became pro- portionably conformed to the will of Christ — that he grew as a christian in the grace of the gospel with the same rapidity, enlargement, and strength as he increased in an acquaintance with its history and truth, and in zeal for its most extensive diffusion. So ardent was his pursuit of personal godliness, that he would spend whole nights in sacred stu- dies and spiritual devotion ; reading the scriptures in their original tongues, beseeching in humble prayer to God the spirit of wisdom and knowledge rightly to understand them, and comparing spiritual things with spiritual that he might comprehend the whole truth as it is in Jesus Christ. He would often leave his study or his bed at midnight, and resort to a neighbouring grove, to meditate on what he had been reading, and pour forth the desires of his soul in earnest supplication and grateful thanksgiving. On these occasions his fellow students would sometimes watch and listen to him, and several were deeply impressed by what they overheard in favour of a more earnest pursuit of christian truth and duty. Some, however, to whom these extraordinary studies and exercises of mind were known, were neither so candid nor so charitable. They report- ed Mr. Fox to the heads of the university as an abettor of the new faith, which occasioned him to be narrowly watched and restrained in many of his most favourite pursuits. At length his conscience constrained him to cease from attendance on the national worship, which continued, espe- cially in the universities, to be conducted in strict conformity to papal rules and rites. Without abetting the formation of separate protestant societies — a proceeding commenced by some elder and less exposed members of Oxford — he was yet constrained to absent himself, except on necessary and official occasions, both from the Magdalen chapel and the university church. At last he w r as openly charged with heresy, brought before the heads of his college, and commanded to leave the city and county without delay, and to be thankful that he had met with judges so merciful, and a sentence so far below what his apostacy merited ! Very small is the number of true friends who will firmly stand the day of trial. Many will fawn, and smile, and live upon us in our prosperitv, who, when adversity overtakes us will refuse to know us, and even basely deny that they ever knew us before. They leave the garden in winter when there is nothing to gather. So fared it with Mr. Fox. He had several patrons and friends both in the university and the country, who, while he continued but privately a protestant, afforded him their coun- tenance and protection. But so soon as his new principles assumed a tangible and public shape — that is, so soon as he became faithful to his trust, and began to appear a protestant openly, in deed and in truth ; especially when the rulers of the university took cognizance of his neg- lect of papal ceremonies, and his opposition to papal credence and authority ; those who had before most befriended him, either in anger or in fear avoided his societv and left him to his fate. Hitherto he had xxiv LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. found no difficulty in obtaining periodical remittances of the little pro- perty he claimed from his mother, and to which she usually made some addition from her own ; but now either her mind was tur/ied from him, or she was obliged to yield to the influence of her husband, whose rigid Romanism made him the adversary of his "heretic" son-in-law, and determined him to withhold all further pecuniary supply. Some of this incensed gentleman's friends have apologised for his conduct, on the plea that the courts of justice would have called him to account for grant- ing further supply to one who had become a voluntary outlaw ; but there is much greater reason to believe that he was induced by superstition and priestcraft to appropriate the property of a heretic to the support of a tottering church and the absolution of his own guilt. Be these things as they may, Mr. Fox was reduced by the simultaneous loss of his fellowship and fortune to the deepest personal distress. "Troubled on every side, yet not distressed ; perplexed, but not in despair ; persecuted, but not forsaken ; cast down, but not destroyed" — Mr. Fox now went from one place to another in the hope and search of honourable and useful occupation. The county of Warwick, and espe- cially the city of Coventry, being well disposed towards the protestant cause, he bent his steps thither, and made his injured case known to a few families in whom he could safely confide ; but for some time without any success beyond the temporary supply of pressing necessity. At last when hope appeared to fail, divine Providence directed him to the man- sion of Sir Thomas Lucy, in whom he found a patron both able and willing to render him efficient aid. Averse to receiving that aid but as the recompense of honest service, Mr. Fox undertook, at the request of Sir Thomas, the tutorship of his sons, on which task he entered with the best mental, moral, and theological qualifications for its due performance. While in this occupation Vox married the daughter of a citizen of Coventry, who visited at Charlecote, the seat of his patron. His engage- ment as tutor could not have been of long duration ; and was probably terminated either in consequence of his marriage, or of the strict search then being made for supposed heretics, both publicly and in private families. On leaving Charlecote, Mr. Fox was reduced to great distress. He remained with his wife's father, at Coventry, so long as he could do so with safety; and from thence wrote to his father-in-law at Boston, to ask if he could there be sheltered. He received for answer, " That it seemed to his step-father a hard condition to take into his house one whom he knew to be guilty of and condemned for a capital offence ; neither was he ignorant what hazard he should undergo in so doing : nevertheless he would show himself a kinsman, and for that cause neglect his own danger. If he would alter his mind he might come, on condition, to stay as long as himself desired ; but if he could not be persuaded to that, he should content himself with the shorter tarriance,,and not bring him and his mother into hazard of their lives and fortunes, who were ready to do any- thing for his sake." The necessities of Fox compelled him to accept this offer of protection, to which he was also privately urged by his mother ; but how long he re- mained at Boston is uncertain. It was probable of very brief continuance. Nothing is known of his trials and mode of life after leaving the country, LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxv till within a few months of the king's death, when the influence of the queen and Cianmer allowed the reformers to appear more openly in public, at which time Mr. Fox was discovered in London. The doors of St. Paul's were then always open ; and numerous idlers, as well as wor- shippers, were continually found within its precincts. ''He is as much known as the middle walk of St. Paul's," became a proverb ; and in Lupton's description of the metropolis at that period, the "idlers" in the cathedral are called " dinnerless pedestrians :" some watching the opportunity of an invitation, having on their visiting garments; others, in tattered clothes and with a mournful visage, brooding over their discon- solate condition. Mr. Fox appears to have been among the latter; and the circumstance is thus portrayed by his son, whose narrative of the sub- sequent events in his father's life are set forth with less interruption : — "As Master Fox one day sate in St. Paul's church, spent with long fasting, his countenance thin, and eyes hollow, after the ghastly manner of dying men, every one shunning a spectacle of so much horror, there came to him one whom he never remembered to have seen before, who, sitting down by him, and saluting him with much familiarity, thrust an untold sum of money into his hand, bidding him be of good cheer, adding withal, that he knew not how great the misfortunes were which oppressed him, but supposed it was no light calamity ; that he should, therefore, accept in good part that small gift from his countryman which common courtesy had forced him to offer ; that he should go and take care of himself, and take all occasions to prolong his life ; adding, that within a few days new hopes were at hand, and a more certain condition of liveli- hood." Fox used every endeavour to discover to whom he was indebted for this relief in his hour of need, but without success. Great cities are great solitudes, and Fox felt himself alone in the metropolis, without friends or occupation ; though his want of them probably arose more from the danger of making application to individuals likely to patronize him, than from the scarcity of employment for a scholar of his attainments. " Some who looked further into the event by which that prophecy became fulfilled, believed that the friend who performed the kindness came not of his own accord, but was employed by others who were deeply concerned for Mr. Fox's safety ; and that it might possibly be through the negligence of the servant, or person commissioned, that he had endured so much misery before the means of relief were afforded him. Certain it is, however, that within three days after the transaction, the presage was made good. Some one waited upon him from the duchess of Richmond, who invited him, upon fair terms," says the writer, " into her service. It had so fallen out, not long before, that the duke of Norfolk, the most renowned general of his time, together with his son, the earl of Surrey, a man, as far as may be imagined, of sincere meaning and sharp understanding, were committed to custody in the Tower of London, for what crime is uncertain. While they were in prison, the earl's children were sent to the aforesaid duchess, their aunt, to be brought up and educated : Thomas, who succeeded in the dukedom ; Henry, afterwards earl of Northampton ; and Jane, wife of Charles, the last Neville, earl of Westmoreland, afterwards countess of Westmoreland." To these Fox became tutor. It is uncertain whether his first publication xxyi LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. appeared just before or just after he entered on the duties of this honour- able office. The probability is that while in London and in want he had offered the manuscript to some booksellers, and that when they found him thus nobly patronised one of them ventured to publish it. The reader will be pleased to have the title of this curious work before him in its own tongue and shape. It is as follows: — DE NON PLECTENDIS MORTE ADULTERIS CONSULTATIO, JOANNIS FOXI. Impressum Londini per Hugonem Stngletonum, sub intersignio D. Augustini, Anno Domini. M. D. 1548. The work is preceded by an affectionate and able dedication, which the author thus introduces: — generoso viro Thome Pictono, I. Foxus salutem et pacem in % christo. There are in the body of the work about forty pages ; but not a num- ber to any one of them. It is the duodecimo size ; the letter is large and open, a Roman character, and the impression is on the whole uniform and good. We have not been able to discover a second edition of this work, nor is it on a subject likely to have created popularity for the author. It contains many admirable remarks, amidst some doubtful propositions, and as a whole is inferior both in style and sentiment to the later productions of the excellent author. We now follow him to Ryegate, where he commenced the important duties of his new office and where he passed six or seven years in great activity and peace, until the accession of Mary clouded his prospects and sent him into exile. It is here proper to remind the reader that the outraged earl of Surry had five lovely children, three daughters and two sons, and that his death rendered his eldest son immediate heir to the dukedom of Norfolk — a rank which the youth seemed likely very soon to reach, as no hope was at this time entertained that either the duke or the earl, who were both prisoners in the tower, could be saved from death. It will be remembered that the rage of Henry soon cut off the earl,* and that the king's rather sudden death alone gave the con- demned duke a few years more of life, though not of liberty. A ques- tion or two of some importance here suggest themselves. How came the children of the earl of Surry under the care of the duchess of Rich- mond ? and how was it that the heir of the dukedom of Norfolk, always * The cruel eagerness with which Henry hastened the execution of the earl of Surry has generally been pronounced a mystery ; but, if the report be true that he had aspired to a marriage with the princess Mary, the mystery becomes easily solved. LIFE OF THE REV. .JOHN FOX. xxvii a popish family, was committed for education to John Fox, one of the most marked protestants of the age? These problems can be solved only by referring to the peculiar cir- cumstances under which the arrangement took place, and the control which the government, if not the king himself must have exercised in the affair. The duchess of Richmond was Surry's sister and the children's aunt : she was a retired widow without son or daughter of her own, and was withal a protestant of superior education and understanding. But then she was the chief witness against her injured and innocent brother! She was in fact the cause — it is to be feared the voluntary cause — of bringing him to the block, by deposing against him all that could be construed into treason ! These distressing recollections create the greatest wonder that she, in preference to all others, should have been chosen to govern and guide their youthful course. It would seem scarcely possible to conceal from the children themselves the dreadful secret that they were in the hands of the cruel relative, whose testimony had been mainly in- strumental in depriving them of the protection of one of the best of fathers! How could their mother submit with any patience to such a disposal of her almost infant and orphan family. The only explanation of these mysteries which has been offered is this — that their father being doomed to death, however unjustly, on a charge of treason, the children were at the disposal of government, and the duchess, whose loyalty was undoubted, was most likely to train them in a course of devotion to the reigning prince. Such had been the rapid advance of the reformation that loyalty was likely henceforward to be identified with protestantism. Henry was drawing towards his end, and had appointed his son Edward to set aside the claims of Mary; and the earl of Hertford, into whose hands the regency was likely to fall, was known to be resolute in carrying on the reformation. Hence the expe- diency of imparting a protestant education to the earl of Surry's chil- dren, and hence the policy of substituting as their governess the earl's sister, a protestant, for the more natural appointment of their own mother. The latter was more than suspected of cleaving to the ancient faith, and was known to prefer obscurity and a separation from her family to whit she deemed the fellowship and fate of heretics. In her retirement in the north she soon married a second husband, a catholic gentleman of the name of Steyning. Returning to the incidents of Fox's personal history, we find him re- siding at Ryegate about seven years, comprehending a few of the last months of Henry VIII., the whole short reign of his son Edward VI., and until his cruel sister and successor commenced the measures which turned the kingdom into a protestant furnace, heated by her fury "seven times hotter than it was wont to be heated." With the exception of the duchess of Richmond and some few of her attendants and friends, Ryegate had not only hitherto been without advocates or examples of the protestant faith ; but it had betrayed for ages unusual features of gross ignorance and vulgar superstition. The glad tidings of christian truth had never been heard by its inhabitants, nor had they been directed to any of the spiritual and scriptural exercises of christian worship. No disciple of WicklifFe — no faithful Lollard — no enlightened reformer had xxviil LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. ever been known to lift up his voice in the church or in the streets agamst a system of the most absurd and stupid idolatry, which the se- cluded and populous town of Ryegate had been known to prefer to every other mode of expressing its religious feelings. The fame of the virgin Mary had long fled from the town and its temple, and her image, wherever it had aforetime been exhibited, had given way to that of an old fortune-teller and quack-doctress, reverently called by the besotted people of all ranks, the old lady of Ouldsworth. This woman, if she ever had existence beyond the ancient fables of the place, was reported to have been skilful in recovering the sick to health, and causing the lame to leap for joy. There were other saintly idols held in esteem and adoration by the sages as well as peasants of Ryegate; but no one had such lasting and abounding popularity as this lady — no one was sup- posed to have conferred half so much benefit on the church and people as she had done. " Great is Diana of the Ephesians !" was not a louder or a warmer cry than was uttered continually by all ranks in her praise, and more than half the industry and traffic of the town were occasioned by the embellishment which she was thought to claim, and by the new honours which her priests and people gathered around her ! No wonder that at such scenes the spirit of Fox "was stirred within him," and that he burned with zeal to bear his testimony against them, and to cast from the temple of religion such profane and vulgar abuse of divine service. But it was some time before he had an opportunity of accomplishing his pious purpose. He had to wait for a pioneer of government to break up the way, before he could begin a successful march against evils almost as inveterate as they were absurd and con- temptible. Soon, however, the establishment of the reformation under Edward VI. enabled him to cast off every restraint, and to stand forth the first protestant preacher in the church of Ryegate. He embraced the opportunity with the liveliest feelings of gratitude, and began pro- claiming the glad tidings of salvation through Christ alone with a zeal sufficiently tempered by discretion to obviate improper offence, yet con- straining him to bear a testimony not to be mistaken against the idolatries which had so long darkened and deluded the people. The old lady of Ouldsworth met with little forbearance from him ; and, through the power of his persuasive eloquence and resistless reasoning and wit, she soon lost her hold of the public confidence, and was removed by common consent from her lofty place in the church. Uncertain and inconsistent dates render it difficult to determine the precise year in which Mr. Fox commenced his public ministry. Some have led us to believe that he opened his faithful commission soon after the accession of Edward VI.; while others tell us that he was not or- dained till the midsummer of 1550, more than two years after that wel- come event. The probability is, either that he was licensed to preach before his ordination, and eagerly availed himself of the privilege, or that the latter is the date of his ordination to the priesthood, and that he had become a deacon of the church some time before. Of one fact, however, we are certain — that as he had no clerical appointment at Ryegate, his ministerial labours, however irregular, were as gratuitous as LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxix they were intrepid and faithful.* He rather abounded than relaxed in liis services as tutor to Surry's children, and received nothing beyond the stipulated compensation which those services merited. They now began to impose upon him a task as difficult as it was honourable, and requiring the utmost prudence as well as assiduity and erudition. The duke of Norfolk had been reprieved from death by the rather sudden death of Henry; but the timid and cautious advisers of Edward would not allow the old man to enjoy his liberty, notwithstanding imprisonment was uniting with age to weaken a frame naturally robust, and to hasten a departure which at best could not have been far distant. Thus the eldest pupil of Fox was likely soon to reach the most ancient ducal title in the realm; and this illustrious pupil, with his brother and one sister, were to be fully initiated — such was the engagement — in religious prin- ciples the reverse of those which a long line of ancestors had held as a sacred inheritance. Contrary to general expectation the task of the tutor was nearly over, and his continuance in England began to be unsafe, before the elevation of his pupil took place. The duke of Norfolk, after escaping execu- tion by the death of Henry, obtained release from imprisonment by the death of Edward. One of the first acts of Mary, upon her accession to the throne, was to restore to liberty this aged nobleman, whom she called her father's most faithful servant — an act and a speech too plainly intended to censure his imprisonment by protestant influence over the minds of her father and brother. One purpose of his release evidently was to employ his high military talents against the forces of Sir Thomas Wyatt. This task he executed with great success; but the excitement it produced in his aged and tottering frame very soon brought him to the grave. " Of no distemper, of no blast, he died ; But fell like Autumn fruit that's mellow'd long : Even wonder'd at because he dropt no sooner. He pass'd man's life of threescore years and ten, And then ran on eleven winters more; 'Jill, like a clock worn out with eating time, The wheels of weary life at last stood still." Now came on the clouds, most dark and dense, portending the storms which soon burst upon all the distinguished protestants who were either resolved or compelled to continue in the land. Persecution had begun to assume its worst forms: many excellent men were already thrown into dungeons, and some were brought to the scaffold and the stake after brief proceedings which too clearly shewed the malignant purpose of the court, and that it was religion and not sedition which Mary was resolved to punish and suppress. On hearing of these events, and especially find- ing that they most abounded in the diocese of Stephen Gardiner, who had been appointed bishop of Winchester, and to whom as a clergyman Mr. Fox was locally subject, he began to prepare means for the safety of * Anthony Wood tells us that Edward VI. restored Fox to his fellowship of Magdalen college, Oxford: if this were the case, marriage was in that day no impediment, as it is in the present day, to a protestant being fellow of an university college. Fox was then, as at all other times, living openly with the wife of his bosom. xxx LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. himself and his beloved wife. On his purpose being mentioned to his chief pupil, who had now become duke of Norfolk he spurned the thought of danger, and assured his revered tutor that in the shelter of his mansion he was perfectly safe. Undoubtedly the young nobleman thought as he spoke, since he then looked upon Gardiner as his friend, and not having studied the character of that dissembling prelate, he considered he might implicitly confide in his promise and influence. A remarkable circumstance is mentioned, which appears to have suddenly undeceived him, and while it shews that crafty men as often impose upon themselves as others, manifests the perception which the young duke at once ac- quired of Gardiner's real character and of Fox's actual danger. The bishop's intimacy with the Norfolk family, and the obligations he had been under to them for much of his dignity, often led him to visit their mansion in London ; and now he had additional reasons to repeat and multiply his visits: he feared the effects of Mr. Fox's instructions, and supecting the tutor to be concealed in the house deemed it necessary to dispossess him as soon as possible. He began his scheme by request- ing of the duke that he might see his tutor, and on one occasion Mr. Fox, not knowing he was present, entered the room, but instantly with- drew. The bishop inquired of the duke who that stranger was ? when the duke, fearing some craft in the question, answered that he was a physician, fresh from the university and somewhat uncourtly in his be- haviour. The reply of the bishop was — " I like his countenance and aspect well, and when occasion offers I will send for him." This speech confirmed the duke in his suspicion of the bishop, and determined him to provide without delay for the flight and security of Mr. Fox. He dispatched a faithful servant to Ipswich, where he had agents on whom he could depend, and where a vessel was prepared to take his tutor, with a i'ew other protestant friends, to some near and safe port of the oppo- site shore. Mrs. Fox was at this time near her confinement ; but the danger was too great to delay their departure, and they journeyed to Ipswich and embarked with the utmost possible speed. A sudden and violent storm drove them back to Ipswich the day after they had set sail, and Mr. Fox soon heard that a messenger from the bishop had been in the town inquiring after him and his companions. The officer had even broken into the house of a tenant of the duke, where Mr. Fox had slept the night before his departure, and where he was returning for renewed shelter. On receiving this intelligence he left the town privately on horseback, and returned with the same caution so soon as the weather would allow the vessel again to put to sea. His second embarkation was successful, and within two days he and his wife and friends were safely landed and lodged in the secluded town of Nieu- port in Flanders. In a few days he left that place for Antwerp, then the most flourishing city in Europe, and containing within its ample walls a large number of protestant merchants and some few ministers of the reformation. As, however, the object of Mr. Fox was active occu- pation, and no opportunity immediately presented itself in this place of turning his talents to any profitable account, he went to Strasburg, and soon after to Basle, where a considerable number of his English brethren, as well as protestant ministers from other countries, had already LIFE Ob' THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxi taken refuge, and were uniting in measures to diffuse and propagate the truth. Mr. Fox cheerfully joined with these pious refugees, and soon made them sensible of his superior worth both as a private christian, and a public minister and author. To secure an independent subsistence he engaged to assist John Oporimus, a distinguished printer in Basle, in conducting several valuable works through the press; and in a short time he produced a singular work of his own, which he had evidently prepared for publication in England, and would have printed here but for the necessity of his sudden flight. His early taste for poetry, and the subserviency of his poetic studies and compositions to theology, have been mentioned in an early part of this memoir ; and the work now referred to is a remarkable proof of both facts. The reader will be in- terested in a literal transcription of the title. CHRISTUS TRIUMPHAUS Comoedia Apocalyptica Autore Joanne Foxo Anglo. Basileae per Joannem Opohinum. There precedes the drama an epistle dedicatory thus addressed Clarissimus Viris, D. Bynksio, D. Alcosto, D. Kelko, cumque his universo Mercatorum Christiana? pietati fanentium Sodalitio Joannes Foxus, salv. The dramatis persona are rather numerous, comprising about twenty five characters, including angels and adolescentes. The leading parts of the drama are taken by Christus, Eva, Saulus quiet Paulus, and Maria Petris also occupies a conspicuous place ; while the " principalities and powers of darkness" often come forth to commit " spiritual wickedness in high places." The first edition of this remarkable work is printed in a good clear italic type, and is of the duodecimo size. There were two other editions of the work, one published in 1556, and the other in 1672. It was also translated into English, by John Daye, jun. son of the printer to queen Elizabeth over Aldersgate ; and three editions of the English version were published, in 1579, 1607, and in 1672.* The distaste of the people of this country to sacred dramas will account for their not being acquainted with this and numerous similar works. Highly dramatic as are most parts of the old testament, especially a few entire books held in the greatest esteem, and read with the deepest delight, even these meet with little or no attention when the hand of man has presumptuously attempted to improve upon the form which the inspira- tion of divine wisdom chose to give them. Soon after this publication, Mr. Fox prepared for the press a Latin *The last was revised by a clergyman of Cambridge who signs himself T. C. and who dedicates it " to all schoolmasters, on account of the peculiar excellence of its style !" xxxii LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. translation of Cranmers Answer to Gardiner on the Sacrament, intending it to circulate through the several states of Germany, and other parts of the continent where symptoms of reformation in religion began to ap- pear. But upon inquiry and advice he saw fit to withhold it, on account of the several points it contained being warmly contested among protes- tants themselves, and the diversion it might give to their talents and zeal from objects of more general interest and more essential advantage. In some notes appended to the translation he complains strongly and satirically of Gardiner's style of writing. In a letter to Peter Martyr he repeats some of his animadversions, and observes — " You may as soon extract water from pumice stone as find light from Gardiner's sentences !" His next work was the commencement of the undertaking which has immortalised his name in all protestant churches. Its title is as follows. "Commentarii Rerum in Ecclesia gestarum maximarumque per totam Europam persecu- tionem a wiclevi Temporibus. Strasburg 1.054." In all probability it was printed as he tarried awhile in that city, and where he might have stayed to print the other volumes, but for the dis- putes then prevailing among the reformers on ceremonial questions. The remaining volumes, all in octavo, were therefore printed at Basle, whither he proceeded in the hope of greater quiet as well as more active and profitable employ. The contention of the protestant exiles in Strasburg and other conti- nental cities at this time was not confined to the sacramental points just referred to, but extended to questions of ecclesiastical discipline and ritual service. It is well known that the Swiss and French reformers from the beginning proceeded much farther than the English in simpli- fying both the government of the church and the performance of divine worship. Most of the English exiles were of course at- tached to the laws and ceremonies established in their own country by the statutes of Edward ; while a few were won over to the less intricate and burdensome system adopted by the leading spirits of re- form in Switzerland and France. Mr. Fox was among them, and ad- vocated with his usual zeal the general adoption of the rites and rules of the people among whom they had taken refuge, and which, with very slight alterations, continue in force to this day in most of the pro- testant churches of the continent. In this honest preference he met with much unbecoming opposition from his British brethren, then abroad and afterwards at home. We have no proof that he ever behaved un- civilly to them ; but in some of his letters he complains of great inci- vility from them. In one to Peter Martyr he has a passage worth recit- ing. " I have discovered what otherwise I could not have believed, how much bitterness is to be found among those, whom continued acquaint- ance with the sacred volume ought to render gentle, and should alway incline to all kindness. As far as in me lies I persuade all parties to concord." We shall soon observe how far this variation from the national standard obstructed Mr. Fox's promotion in the church of England under the rigid dominion of Elizabeth : at present the order of events requires us LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxiii to trace his progress as an author, labouring with the utmost diligence to defend and diffuse the principles for which he had emigrated to a \ a and friendly land. He appears, supremely dependent on the divine blessing, to have relied for subsistence and the support of his wife and infant daughter on his daily labour in revising manuscripts and cor- recting the press for John Oporinus, whose famous printing office was at that time honoured by the services, while it gave permanence and pub- licity to the works, of some of the most enlightened and devout men that everlived. Mr. Fox also found time to proceed with the great work which he had auspiciously commenced, and of which Oporinus was more than willing to undertake the pecuniary responsibility. It has been frequently said that the entire materials of his " Acts and Monuments of the Church" were collected by himself, without the assistance of an individual. The honour of our protestant hero and literary colossus by no means requires us to credit this report : nor is it correct in point of fact. In the ab- sence of direct evidence against it, we should fairly infer that among his brother exiles there must have been a few at least, who, unaccustomed to authorship, were yet both able and willing to render him valuable aid in gathering appropriate facts for his use. But we have information of one distinguished individual at least, who greatly assisted him in this respect. Grindal, who became one of Elizabeth's archbishops, was at that time in Strasburgh, and did much by his studies and letters to fur- nish Fox with matter for his great work. We have seen that the first volume was published in that city, perhaps under Grindal's own eye, since we find that faithful friend peculiarly anxious that the work should appear in as accurate a state as possible. Still the disputes in Stras- burgh, and the greater facilities for printing in Basle, will sufficiently account for the remainder being published at the latter place. Leaving further mention of the progress of the various editions, we cast an eye a little back to notice a circumstance not mentioned in its proper place — that on his way to Basle Mr. Fox tarried a short time at Frankfort. His name occurs in a tract descriptive of the "Troubles" of that city, published some years after this period ; but evidently re- ferring to events which then occurred, and which appear to have involved him, as well as others in some tribulation. They were in fact "Troubles" rising out of the old question of ecclesiastical discipline and ceremonies, and probably contributed, like those of Strasburgh, to hasten his de- parture towards Basle and determined him to fix his residence there. Either at Strasburgh or at Frankfort the birth of his first child and only daughter took place; an event which gave him much satisfaction, because it not only removed the fears he had entertained of the effect of recent events on the weak constitution and timid nerves of Mrs. Fox, but was the occasion of her henceforward enjoying a remarkable share of health and spirits. The child was baptised by his friend Grindal, and received the name of Anne, perhaps in memory of Anne Boleyn, for whom he always cherished great esteem. The child grew up an object of great admiration, more for her mental qualities, and the excel- lence of her religious character, than for any remarkable attractions of person. At a proper age she became the esteemed wife of Sir Richard Willis, bart. of Ditton in the county of Essex. d xxxiv LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. No further events of importance occurred during the sojourn of Mr. Fox on the continent. He printed four or five more octavo volumes towards completing his great work, and two or three minor works, all in latin; persevering through the greater portion of his time in the more humble task he had undertaken for his employer, with the utmost in- dustry and integrity. At length the time arrived in which he might safely return to England. The death of Mary and the accession of Elizabeth created the opening for this desirable change; of which, how- ever he did not avail himself till several months after his brethren from England were again settled in this country. The delay on his part appears to have arisen, not from any distrust of the new government, but from the advice of Grindal and his own conviction, that it was rather his duty to remain abroad some time longer the better to advance his important undertaking. It is not improbable that his peculiar opi- nions on church government rendered him either indifferent to or appre- hensive of an immediate return. Though he disapproved of the heat of the rigid puritans, and called them on one occasion factious and turbu- lent spirits — a new sort of monks more pernicious than the old* — it was yet manifest that he himself was partly a non-conformist; and he might wish to know how Elizabeth would deal with such ultra reformers, before he ventured to place himself at her mercy. Grindal, too, might be fearful of hastily exposing so bold a protestant and so good a man to the displeasure of a queen, known to be almost as hostile to dissenters from high episcopacy as to catholics themselves. That he wished, as some have insinuated to keep back Fox from preferment until he had se- cured preferment for himself, is contradicted by every part of Grindal's character, and every act of his behaviour toward his esteemed friend. The first month of the year 1551 saw Elizabeth seated on the throne and before the spring arrived most of the English exiles had returned to support the protestant cause at home. Mr. Fox, however, remained till the year had closed, ostensibly at least, for completing the first folio edition of his work in latin, the title page of which bears the date of 1559. Even then he was with difficulty persuaded to leave his studies and labours at Basle, though he knew that preferment awaited him in England. It does not appear that any communication had passed between him and his pupil, the young duke of Norfolk, during his ab- sence; but soon after he arrived in London he addressed to his grace a latin letter, soliciting his future patronage and some present aid. He received an immediate and favourable answer, and soon took up his abode in the city mansion of the duke, then in Aldgate. There he was furnished with all desirable facilities for proceeding with the English translation of his recently published latin folio, and was thus engaged without interruption, for twelve or thirteen months; when he visited Norwich, whither his patron sent him on some commission, probably with the kindlier purpose of promoting his health and that of Mrs. Fox, who accompanied him, by a sojourn at one of his country seats. There Mrs. Fox gave birth to a first son in the spring of 1560; of whom the few particulars claiming insertion may at once be introduced. * This was done, we believe, when puritan ascendancy deprived his son of the fellowship he held in Magdalen college. LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxv A note on the preceding page intimates that this son was trained and intended for the church, but was deprived of his fellowship in his father's college by puritan influence. To him we are indebted for what must be deemed the most accurate life of Mr. Fox, prefixed to the fourth English edition of the Acts and Monuments. He differs on several ma- terial facts from Anthony Wood; but every candid reader will take his integrity for granted, while drawing the inference that he must have been much better acquainted than Wood with the motives and movements of his father's course. Upon leaving Oxford, he took up his residence, probably as tutor, in the house of Sir Moyle Finch, an ancestor of the present earl of Winchelsea, at Eastwell in Kent, where he married a distant relation of his patron, a widow of the name of Leveson. Mr. Fox continued in the duke of Norfolk's house till that ill-fated nobleman entangled himself in the affairs of Mary queen of Scots. His personal attachment to the unhappy queen is generally undoubted; on no other supposition can we account for the excess of his romantic zeal in her cause, and his willingness to sacrifice life rather than become indifferent to her fate. His gallantry brought him to the scaffold in the year 1572. Both Mr. Fox and his friend Nowell, then dean of St. Paul's, attended him on the melancholy occasion, and we may imagine much easier than describe the feelings of the former on witnessing the execu- tion of one, to whom he had supplied the place of father, and whom, both as pupil and patron, he had held in the highest esteem. This event put the fidelity and prudence of Mr. Fox to the severest test. The tendency of the duke notwithstanding his protestant education, to the religion of his fathers, met from his tutor with no indulgence, else the latter would not have enjoyed as he did the smiles of government, and a respect from the queen amounting to avowed filial reverence. On the other hand, his inflexible protestantism did not extinguish or abate his sympathy with the duke, amidst the perils of his courtly life and the calamities of his early death. It is due both to Mr. Fox and the duke to remark that the latter died professing protestant principles. Mr. Fox now took up his abode in the famous Grub-street, then the resort of authors of slender substance and laborious habits. In addition to unwearied study and toil through the week, he preached generally twice on the Lord's day, and was seldom recompensed except by the consciousness of labouring for the public good, and often hearing that he had actually promoted it. His popularity was such as to create the warm desire of the bishops that he would be sufficiently decided and comprehensive in his subscription to allow of his taking a place on the episcopal bench. As it was, he received from secretary Cecil a prebend in Salisbury cathedral, which he retained through life. It is said, also, that he was once summoned by archbishop Parker to subscribe, " that the reputation of his piety might give the greater countenance to conformity ;" but that, instead of complying, he drew from his pocket the New Testament in Greek, and said emphatically, " To this I will subscribe." When reminded that he was already a dignitary of the church, a post which required subscription to the canon law, he mildly answered, " I have nothing in the church but a prebend at Salisbury, and if you take that from me much good may it do you." From this answer we infer that xxxvi LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. he had somehow lost his vicarage of Cripplegate, and that the report of his having been a prebendary of Durham is incorrect. Although he preached more sermons at this period than any other London divine, very few have ever been published. The most remark- able among them was delivered at St. Paul's cross in the year 1570, and was printed soon after by John Daye. The following year it was trans- lated into latin, and in both languages it obtained a wide circulation, and was productive of much benefit to the protestant cause. The English edition, as it was preached, is printed in a fine black letter, and is pre- ceded by the following quaint notice : — " Faults excepted in the printing, which I pray thee good reader first to correct, and then read." The faults are only four. The text of this sermon is the last two verses of the fifth chapter of St. Paul's second epistle to the Corinthians — which he thus translates : " For Christ therefore, or in Christ's name, we come to you as mes- sengers, even as God himself desiring you, we pray you for Christ's stead that you will be reconciled unto God. For him who knew no sin, God hath made to be sin for us, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him." The sermon contains much that we should be glad to extract: the following passage is too good to be omitted. " I remember, about the beginning of queen Mary's reign, there was a certain message sent, not from heaven, but from Rome — not from God, but from the pope — not by any apostle, but by a certain cardinal Pole, a legate of the pope's own white side. And what was the message? Forsooth, that the realm of England should be reconciled to the pope!" After such an introduc- tion, the reader may imagine the sort of sermon John Fox would deliver: on such a back ground, every one will look for a bright and beautiful picture of evangelical truth, and no one will be disappointed. The sermon is followed by an admirable prayer, and by a " Postcript to papists." Some of his letters mention this sermon, or rather the effect of preaching it, in terms which imply that as it was the first he had de- livered at St. Paul's cross, so he wished it to be the last. No mention is made of his preaching on that remarkable spot a second time. As no order of time is observed in any of the lists of Mr. Fox's works, and as several of them are without date or clue to the year in which they were published, the chief of those which have not been mentioned may here be introduced. He wrote treatises on the Eucharist, on the Apo- calypse, on the doctrine of Election, and on Free Justification in Christ. The latter drew forth animadversions from Jerome Osorio, author of se- veral theological works, whom he answered by a second treatise on the subject, entitled Contra Osorium de Justitia. He also published " A new year's gift concerning the deliverance of certain christians from Turkish galleys," and an ingenious essay on the restoration of backsliders, which he entitles " De lapsis per errorem in Ecclesiam restituendis." In addition to these and some other original productions, he undertook, at the request, or rather command, of archbishop Parker, an edition of the Saxon gospels; and he also edited the works of Tindal, Frith, and Barnes. His prefaces and letters were innumerable, and as Daye ob- LIFE OF THE ItEV. JOHN FOX. xxxvii tained the name of the reformed printer, so Fox was called the author and editor of the reformation. We now come to a point concerning Mr. Fox, which has been mag- nified into a prophetic and miraculous character. The boldness of his speech often led his unthinking admirers to attribute to his superior mind a prescience more than human or christian. The first remarkable instance of this was when he avowed his conviction that Mary would soon die, before he could possibly know of her decline and danger. This was soon ascribed to a prophetic acquaintance with the will of Heaven, imparted for the comfort of the banished English. Aylmer, afterwards bishop of London, who was then at Basle is appealed to in support of this extravagant conclusion. It is also confidently asserted, and on authority quite as good as that of the credulous bishop, that Fox predicted the defeat of the Spanish Armada. The good man's reputa- tion receives neither support nor adorning from such an attribute, and had he assumed it, that reputation would not have stood so high as it does. No supernatural prescience was requisite in a sanguine protestant like him to foretell the defeat of the Spanish Armada ; and the delight and heat of hope frequently rise high enough to assure us of the speedy fall of those by whom we are unrighteously coerced and persecuted. Between prophecy and miracle there is but a slender partition. Pro- phecy is the miraculous in word, and miracle is the prophetic in deed. Hence the enthusiasm which made Mr. Fox a prophet, had no difficulty in announcing his words to have produced miraculous effects. He is said to have assured Lady Anne Heneage that she should not die of a mortal sickness, and contrary to the verdict of her physicians she reco- vered! On a visit to the earl of Arundel they were walking together towards the river, when Mr. Fox, wishing to depart, was exhorted by the earl to remain because the river, which he had to cross, was greatly agitated by a boisterous wind. Mr. Fox persisted in going, and said, " So let these waters deal with me, as I have in truth delivered to you all that I have spoken." He then stepped into the boat, when the wind ceased and there was a perfect calm ! A Mrs. Honiwood, hopeless of life and even longing for death, sent for Mr. Fox, who assured her that she would recover and live to a great age. She is said to have thrown a small glass she had in her hand against the wall, asserting her recovery to be as impossible as that the glass should not be broken. The glass did not break, nor did she die till she had seen ninety winters, and reckoned as many descendants as there are days in the year. Giving full credit to these statements without feeling the least necessity of drawing prophetic or miraculous inferences from them, we refer with greater pleasure to the high moral qualities by which Mr. Fox was dis- tinguished. His charity was conspicuous. Coming on one occasion from the palace of Aylmer, bishop of London, he saw some miserable beggars at the gate. He found his own pockets empty ; but stepped back to the bishop and requested the loan of five shillings, which he obtained, and on passing the gate again distributed the whole among the astonished and grateful mendicants. Some time after, the bishop re- minded him of the debt and requested it might be paid: " My lord," answered Fox, " I laid it out for you, and soon you will be paid with xxxvm LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. ample interest." He was a man of remarkable discretion : his motto was, " Give none offence." A gentleman with whom he was dining in a large party freely canvassed the character of the earl of Leicester. Mr. Fox felt it an imperious duty to rebuke the offender, and ordered a certain cup to be brought to him. Drinking to the gentleman's health he added, " This cup was given me by the earl of Leicester." His disinterestedness might be traced through every step of a long life. Although his scruples prevented his promotion, he discovered that Elizabeth had consented to the advancement of some who were as averse to complete conformity as himself. He had courage enough even to rebuke the queen; but he preferred congratulating her on doing jus- tice to others, and wrote an admirable latin panegyric on her conduct towards them, without a syllable of complaint about his own case. His characteristic compassion was often manifested, especially in interced- ing for the anabaptists, whose extravagance and suspected treason had drawn down upon them the vengeance of the court and council. He gave himself no rest till he had obtained pardon for the greater number and bitterly lamented the fate of two, natives of Holland, who suffered the sentence of death. To these testimonies in his favour we add one specimen of his wit. A young man in his presence remarked that he saw no reason why old authors should be so greatly admired. " No marvel indeed," answered Mr. Fox, "for if you could conceive the rea- son you would yourself admire them." We come to the closing scene of this life of distinguished honour and usefulness. For some time Mr. Fox knew his departure to be at hand — a knowledge to be accounted for without ascribing it, as some have done to inspired and prophetic discernment. Incessant and untiring exertion had reduced a frame naturally vigorous and robust to almost the weak- ness of infancy : leaving him, however, as were his wishes and prayers, in the full possession of reason and enjoyment of religion to the last moment. He died at his lodging in the city on the 20th of April 1587, and was buried in the church at Cripplegate, of which he had been vicar some short time after his return to England. A monument in the chan- cel marks the spot of his interment : it is on the south side of the com- munion table, and contains a Latin inscription, partly concealed by wood- work subsequently raised. In the register of burials stands this plain record : — "April 20th, 1587 — John Fox, householder and preacher." fnft luok rf Blurhjti LIST OF ENGRAVINGS. Page Massacre of St. Bartholomew (frontispiece) Burning of Eidley and Latimer (vignette) Slaughter of Christians at Alexandria 88 An Auto da Fe at Madrid 155 A Lady brought before the Inquisition after the Torture 165 Massacre at Vassy, headed by the Duke of Guise . 203 Persecutions in the Valleys of Piedmont 250 King John resigning his Crown to the Pope's Legate 283 Trial of Lambert before Henry VTJI 350 Burning of George Wishart 438 Roger Clarke turning away from the Host 448 Representation of a Manufactory of "Saints" 496 Burning of John Bradford 720 Bishop Ridley before the Convocation at Oxford 843 AN UNIVERSAL 1IIST0KY CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM BOOK I. An account of the ecclesiastical matters which passed in the Church of Christ from its first establishment till the period of three hundred years ; particularly showing the differences between the ancient and present Church of Rome ; in which the absurdity, impiety, and blasphemous doctrines of that Church in modern times are fully illus- trated. a CHRIST, in the gospel of St. Matthew, chap, xvi., hearing- the confes- sion of Simon Peter, who first openly acknowledged him to be the Son of God, and perceiving the secret hand of his Father therein, answered again; and alluding to his name, called him a rock, upon which rock he would build his church so strong, that, the gates of hell should not prevail against it, &c. In these words three things are to be noted. First, that Christ will have a church in this world. Secondly, that the same church should be mightily impugned, not only by the world, but also by the utmost strength and powers of all hell. And, thirdly, that the same church, notwithstanding the efforts of the devil and all his malice, should continue. This prophecy of Christ we see wonderfully verified, insomuch that the whole course of the church to this day, seems nothing else but a verification of it. First, that Christ hath set up a church, needs no proof. Secondly, what force, what sides and sorts of men, of princes, kings, monarchs, governors, and rulers of this world, with their subjects publicly and privately, with all their strength and cunning, have bent themselves against this church. And, thirdly, how the said church, notwithstanding all this, hath yet endured. To bring these events home to the minds of Christians, it will be ne- cessary to treat in the following order : First, of the suffering time of the church, which continued from the apostles' age about three hundred years. Secondly, of the flourishing time of the church, which lasted other three hundred years. Thirdly, of the declining time of the church, which comprehends other three hundred years, or about the thousandth year after the ceasing of persecution. During which space of time, the church, although ambitious and proud, was much altered from the simple sincerity of the primitive time; yet in outward profession of doctrine and religion, it was a To the disgrace of all modern editions which we have seen of the " Lives of the Martyrs," this most interesting and truly historical part of the original work has been totally omitted. 1 B 2 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. something tolerable, notwithstanding some corruption of doctrine, with superstition and hypocrisy, had then crept in. Fourthly, followed the time of Antichrist, or, as it is scripturally called, the loosing of Satan, or desolation of the church, which contains the space of four hundred years. In this time both Christian doctrine and sincerity of life was almost extinguished ; particularly in the chief heads and rulers of the west church, through the means of the Roman bishops, especially from Gregory the seventh, called Hildebrand, Innocentius the third, and the friars who crept in with him, till the time of John Wickliffe and John Huss, during a space of four hundred years. Fifthly and lastly, after this time of Antichrist reigning in the church of God by violence and tyranny, followed the reformation, or, as it may properly be called, the purging of the church of God, wherein Anti- christ begins to be revealed, and his antichristian doctrine to be detected, the number of his church decreasing, and the number of the true church increasing greatly. With respect to the church of Rome, in all the ages above specified, it challenged to itself the supreme title, and ringleading of the whole universal church on earth, by whose direction all other churches have been governed. In writing therefore of the church of Christ, one can- not but intermeddle with the acts and proceedings of the said church, because the doings and orderings of all other churches, from time to time, as well in England as in other nations, have chiefly depended upon it; in order to give a general description, briefly to show, as in a summary table, the misguiding of that church, comparing the for- mer primitive state of the church of Rome with the latter times of the same, and then to proceed more at large with all the particulars thereof. The title and style of that church was such, that it surpassed all other churches : being called the Holy Universal Mother Church, which could not err; and the bishop thereof, Holy Father the Pope, Bishop Univer- sal, Prince of Priests, Supreme Head of the Universal Church, and Vicar of Christ on Earth, who must not be judged, having all know- ledge of Scripture, and all laws contained within his breast. The jurisdiction of that bishop was such, that, challenging to him- self both the swords, that is, both the keys of the scripture and the sceptre of the laity, he not only subdued all bishops under him, but also advanced himself above kings and emperors, causing some of them to lie under his feet, some to hold his stirrup, others to lead his horse by the bridle, to kiss his feet, and placing and displacing emperors, kings, dukes, and earls, where and when he listed, taking upon him to trans- late the empire at his pleasure ; b first from Greece to France, from France b The disgrace and contempt into which this Antichrist has now fallen, must convince all true Christians of the fulfilment of the scriptures, as they describe his overthrow. No- thing proves so clearly that Buonaparte was intended by the Almighty as a scourge to the nations of the Continent, as his conduct towards the popes of his time, whom he robbed, insulted, and trod under foot, with as great a degree of contumely as preceding popes did the rightful but bigoted sovereigns of great nations in former ages. Some years a#o, when the Editor of tins work was making a tour through Italy, he was shewn the statues of the popes which are preserved in the pantheon at Rome. It was shortly after the death of Pius VI.; and he remarked that there was only one niche remaining unfilled. The guide, with a melancholy shake of the head, observed that a prophecy had long pre- POPISH USURPATIONS. to Germany, preferring' and deposing whom he pleased, confirming them which were eleeted. Also being 1 emperor himself, sede vacante, pretending authority or power to invest bishops, to give benefices, to spoil churches, to give authority to bind and loose, to call general coun- cils, to judge over them, to set up religions, to canonize saints, to take appeals, to bind consciences, to make laws, to dispense with the law and word of God, to deliver from purgatory, to command angels, &c. This doctrine was tedious to students, pernicious to men's con- sciences, injurious to Christ, and contrary in itself. But it should be noted, that all these deformities, vain title, pretended jurisdiction, heretical doctrine, and schismatical life, came not into the church of Rome at once, nor sprang with the beginning of the same church, but with long working, and continuance of time, by little and little crept in, and came not to full perfection- till the time partly of pope Sylvester, partly of pope Gregory the seventh in 1170, partly of Innocent the third, and finally of pope Boniface the eighth in 1300. Of these four popes, the first brought in the title, in the year of the Lord 670, which was never before publicly enacted and received or acknowledged in the church of Rome. The second brought in juris- diction. The third, which was pope Innocent, with his rabble of monks and friars (amongst whom were Thomas Aquinas, Petrus Lombardus, Johannes Scotus) and such other bishops as succeeded in the see after him, corrupted and obscured the sincerity of Christ's doctrine and man- ners. And lastly, pope Boniface, the eighth, and Clement the fifth, added the temporal sword to be carried before them. x4nd they decreed, that no ejnperor (were he never so justly elected) should be sufficient and lawful, without the pope's admission. This was in the year 1300, whereby the pope's power was now brought to its full pride and perfec- tion. And thus arose the corruption of the Romish church in continu- ance of years by degrees, and not at one time, as is here shown. Hence the church of Rome, as it is now governed with this titular jurisdiction, and institution of doctrine, never descended from the primi- tive age of the apostles, or from their succession, nisi tantum cequivoce , et non univoce ; like as Sancta Maria picta non est Sancta Maria, et homo pictus non est homo : that is, as the picture of the Holy Virgin is not the Holy Virgin, and as a man painted on the wall is not a man : so it is to be said of the church of Rome, that although it hath the name of the church Apostolic, and doth bring forth a long genealogy of outward succession from the apostles, as the Pharisees in Christ's time brought their descent from Abraham their father ; yet all this is but only cequivoce, that is, the name only, and not in effect or matter. With respect to the order and qualities of life, let us ask of this Ro- vailed in that city, that when the niche in question should be Jilted there would be no need for any others. Since then the temporal authority of the pope has been degraded even to ridicule ; and every hour seems to prognosticate that the papal supremacy is approximating to its end, at least on the continent. c JEquivoce, that is in name only, and not in deed. Univoce, that is both in name and also in definition and effect, agreeing with the name. 4 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. man clergy, where was this church of theirs which now is, in the ancient time of the primitive church of Rome ; with this pomp and pride ; witli this riches and superfluity ; with this gloria mundi, and name of car- dinals ; with this extortion, bribing, buying and selling of spiritual dig- nities ; these annats, reformations, procurations, exactions, and other practices for money ; this avarice insatiable, ambition intolerable, fleshly filthiness most detestable, barbarousness and negligence in preaching, promise-breaking faithlessness, poisoning and supplanting one another; with such schisms and divisions, which never were more practised than in the elections and courts of Rome within these seven hundred years ; with such extreme cruelty, malice, and tyranny in burning and perse- cuting their poor brethren to death? If a man were to write at large all the schisms that have been in the church of Rome since the time of Damasus the first, what a volume would it require ? Or if here should be recorded all whom this church hath burnt and put to death, who would be able to number them ? If there were no other difference in the matter, but only corruption of life, all that we would tolerate, or impute to the common frailty of man, and charge them no farther than we might charge ourselves. But besides this deformity of life, wherein they have strayed from the for- mer steps of the true church of Rome, we have to charge them in greater points, more nearly affecting the substantial ground of the church. Although Victor, bishop of Rome, in the year 200, went about to ex- communicate the east churches for the observance cf Easter day ; yet neither did he proceed therein, nor was he permitted by Ireneus so to do. And although Boniface the first, writing to the bishops of Carthage, required of them to send up their appellations to the church of Rome, alleging the decree of the Nicene council for his authority ; the bishops and clergy of Carthage assembling together in a general council (called the sixth council of Carthage) to the number of two hundred and seventeen bishops, after that they had perused the decrees in the authentic copies of the Nicene council, and found no such order, made a public decree, that none out of that country should make any ap- peal beyond the see, &c. It is no wonder if appeals were forbidden them to be made to Rome ; for here in England the kings would not permit any to appeal from them to Rome, till Henry II. from political motives submitted to the influence of pope Alexander III. on account of the murder of Thomas a Becket. And also in France the like prohibitions were expressly made by Ludovicus Pius, anno 1264, which forbade, by a public instrument called Pragmatica sanctio, all exactions of the pope's court within that realm. The like was done also by king Philip, named Le Bel, anno 1296, which not only restrained all sending or going of his subjects to Rome, but also that no money, armour, nor subsidy should be transported out of his realm. King Charles the fifth, sur- named the Wise, and his son likewise, Charles the sixth, also punished as traitors certain seditious persons for appealing to Rome. The like resistance was made in France, against the pope's reservations, preventions, and other practices of his usurped jurisdiction, in the days of pope Martin the fifth, anno 1418, when king Henry the sixth in Eng- LAWS OF JUSTINIAN. b land, and king Charles the seventh in France, both accorded with the pope in investing and in the collation of benefices ; yet notwithstanding the high court of parliament in France did not admit the same, but still maintained the old liberty and customs of the French church. And when the duke of Bedford came with the king's letters patent to have the pope's procurations and reservations admitted, the parliament would not agree to it, but the king's procurator-general was obliged to interfere. The Roman emperors made frequent attempts to curtail and check the powers of the popes. The emperor Honorius enacted a law, that none should be made bishops of Rome through ambition, charging all ec- clesiastical ministers to cease from ambition; appointing, moreover, that if two were elected together, neither of them should be taken, but the election to proceed to another, who was to be chosen by a full consent of voices. To this may be added also the law and constitution of Justinian the emperor, ratified and renewed afterwards in the council of Paris, in the time of king Ludovicus Pius ; where all bishops and priests were ex- pressly forbidden to excommunicate any man before his cause was known and proved to be such, for which the ancient canons of the church would have him to be excommunicate. And if any should pro- ceed contrary to this law, then the excommunicate person to be absolved by the authority of a higher decree, and the excommunicate to be se- questered from the communion, so long as should seem convenient to him that had the execution thereof, as is expressed 24. q. 3. De illicita. Justinian also, in his laws and constitutions, ordained many things of high importance in church matters, such as to have a determinate number of churchmen or clerks in churches ; also concerning monas- teries and monks ; how bishops and priests should be ordained ; the removing of ecclesiastical persons from one church to another ; the constitution of the churches in Africa; and that the holy mysteries should not be performed in private houses, so that whoever should attempt the contrary should be deprived. Const. 58. Also con- cerning the order and manner of funerals; and that bishops should not keep from their flock. The same Justinian granted to the clergy of Constantinople the privilege of the secular court in cases only civil, and such as touched not the disturbance of the bishop : in all criminal causes he left them to the judgment of the secular court. He also gave laws and decrees for breach of matrimony. And in his Const. 123, after the doctrine of St. Paul, he commanded all bishops and priests to sound out their service and to celebrate the mysteries, not after a secret manner, but with a loud voice, so as they might not only be heard, but also that the faithful people might understand what was said and done; whereby we learn that divine prayers and service was then in the vulgar tongue. These and numerous other instances that could be adduced, shew that even in the early ages of papacy the sovereigns of Europe were jealous of, and adverse to, the institutions and authority of the popes; insomuch that they thought it necessary to point out to the catholic bishops and b HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. priests what they ought to consider as their duty. Carolus Magnus, besides his other laws and political edicts, called five synods, one at Mentz, the second at Rome, the third at Rheims, the fourth at Cabi- lone, the fifth at Arelate, where sundry rites and ordinances were given to the clergy, about eight hundred and ten years after Christ. The same Carolus also decreed, that only the canonical books of Scripture should be read in the church and none other ; which before was also decreed anno 417, in the third general council of Carthage. This mo- narch also exhorted bishops and priests, to preach the word with a godly injunction; and ordered them to dispense with the superstition which is used at certain places in the burial of the dead. The said kings and emperors likewise forbade that any freeman or ci- tizen should enter the profession of a monk, without licence asked of the king; and added a double cause for this regulation, first, because many not for mere devotion, but for idleness, and avoiding the king's wars, do give themselves to religion; again, that many be craftily circumvented and deluded by subtle covetous persons seeking to get from that which they have; that no young children or boys should be shaven, or enter any profession, without the will of their parents; and that no young maiden should take the veil or profession of a nun before she came to sufficient discretion of years to discern and chuse what to follow. That none should be interred or buried thenceforth within the church: which also was decreed by Theodosius and Valentinianus forty years before them. The said Carolus, two and twenty years before this emperor, enacted that murderers, and such as were guilty of death by the law, should have no sanctuary by flying into the church, SfC. which also was decreed by Justinian three hundred years before Carolus. e Amongst the numerous other improprieties of the modern church of Rome may be mentioned their vowsons and pluralities of benefices, which were then things as much unknown as they are now pernicious to the church, by taking away all free election of ministers from the flock of Christ. As these inconveniences came and crept in chiefly by the pretended authority and jurisdiction abused in this latter church of Rome; so it cannot be denied, but the said latter church of Rome hath taken and attributed to itself much more than either the limits of God's word gives, or as stands with the example of the old Roman church, in these three things especially. The first is this, that whatsoever the Scripture giveth and referreth, either to the whole church universally, or to every particular church se- verally, this present church of Rome doth arrogate to itself absolutely and only; both doing injury to other churches, and also abusing the Scrip- e This singular historical fact forcibly shews the increase of the papal supremacy in modern ages. The sanctuary of the church, in catholic countries, is a safeguard for mur- derers and criminals of every description. In Italy and Spain, in particular, to the present day, a man who chuses to murder another in the public streets receives protection from entering the porches of a church, and a summary vengeance would fall upon any one who should molest him in such a sacred spot. One of the writers in the Spectator has intro- duced a beautiful story from a subject of this nature: it is the adventure of a gentleman who takes refuge in a church after killing his antagonist in a duel. CORRUPTIONS OF THE POPE'S CHURCH. ' tares of God. For though the Scripture doth give authority to bind and loose, it liimteth it neither to person nor place, that is, not to the city of Home more than other cities, nor to the see of Peter more than to other apostles; but giveth it clearly to the church, whereof Peter did bear the figure, so that wheresoever the true church of Christ is, there is annexed power to bind and loose, given and taken merely as from Christ, and not immediately by the pope or bishop of Peter's see. The second point wherein this present church of Rome abuses its ju- risdiction contrary to the Scripture and steps of the old Roman church, is this, that it extendeth its authority farther and more amply, than either the warrant of the word, or example of time, will give. For al- though the church of Rome hath (as other particular churches have) authority to bind and absolve, yet it hath no authority to absolve subjects from their oath, subjection, and loyalty to their rulers and magistrates, to dispense with perjury , to pronounce remission where no earnest repent- ance is seen before, to number remission by days and years, to dispense with things expressly in the word forbidden, or to restrain that which the word maketh free, to divide religion into religions, to bind and burthen consciences with constitutions of men, to excommunicate for worldly mat- ters, such as not ringing of bells at the bishop's coming, for not bringing litter for their horses, for not paying their fees and rents, for withholding the church goods, for holding on their prince's side in princely cases, for not going at the pope's commandment, for not agreeing to the pope's election in another prince's realm, with other such things more vain than these, &c. Again, although the Scripture giveth leave and authority to the bishop and church of Rome to minister sacraments ; yet it giveth no authority to make sacraments, much less to worship sacraments. And though their authority serveth to baptise men, yet it extendeth not to christen bells ; neither have they authority by any word of God to add to the word of God, or take from the same, to set up unwritten ve- rities under pain of damnation, to make other articles of belief, to insti- tute strange worship, otherwise than he hath prescribed who hath told us how he would be worshipped, &c. The third abuse of the pope's jurisdiction is, that as in spiritual juris- diction they have vehemently exceeded the bounds of Scripture, so they have impudently intermeddled themselves in the temporal jurisdiction, wherein they have nothing to do. Insomuch that they have translated their empire, they have deposed emperors, kings, princes, rulers, and senators of Rome, and set up others or the same again at their pleasure ; they have also proclaimed wars, and have warred themselves. And though emperors in ancient times have dignified them with titles, have enlarged them with donations, and they received their confirmation by the emperors, yet, like ungrateful clients to such benefactors, they after- wards stamped upon their necks, made them hold their stirrup, and also the bridle of their horse ; have likewise caused them to seek confirma- tion at their hand ; and, in fact, have made themselves emperors, sede vacante, et in discordia electionis, and also have been senators of the city ; moreover, have extorted by their own hands the plenary fulness of power and jurisdiction of both the swords, especially since the time of pope Hildebrand ; which Hildebrand deposing Henry, the fourth 8 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. emperor, made him give attendance at his city gate. And after him pope Boniface the eighth shewed himself to the people on the first day like a bishop, with his keys before him ; and the next day in his robes imperial, having a naked sword borne before him, like an emperor ; this happened in the year 1298. Thus having sufficiently shewn the manner of life, title, jurisdiction, and government of the pope's see (in all which points it is to be seen how this latter church of Rome hath receded from the true ancient church of Rome) it now remains to proceed to the fourth and last point, which is of doctrine, wherein consisteth the chief matter that is with us and against them, and which proves that they are neither to be reputed for true catholics, being altered so far from them ; nor we other than heretics, if we should now join with them. For the proof whereof, let us examine the doctrine and rites of the said church of Rome now used, and compare the same with the teaching of the ancient catholics, to the intent that such persons as have been hitherto, and yet are seduced by the false statements and image of this pretended church, perceiving what lieth within it, may be warned betimes either to avoid the peril, or if not, to blame none but themselves for their own wilful destruction. And though I could here charge the new fangled church of the pope with seven or eight heinous crimes, such as blasphemy, idolatry, heresy, superstition, absurdity, vanity, cruelty, &c. yet to pass this matter with them, these two things I will and dare boldly affirm, that in this doctrine of the pope, now taught in the church of Rome, is neither any consolation of conscience, nor salvation of man's soul. For seeing there is no life nor soul's health but only in Christ, nor any promise of salvation or comfort made but only by faith in the Son of God, what assurance can there be of perfect peace, life, or salvation, where that which only maketh all, is least made of, and other things which are of least import are most esteemed ? And, therefore, as it may be truly said that this doctrine of the pope is void of all true comfort and salvation, so likewise it seemeth that those which addict themselves so devoutly to the pope's learning, were never earnestly afflicted in conscience, never humbled in spirit, nor broken in heart ; never entered into any serious feeling of God's judgment, nor ever felt the strength of the law and of death. For if they had, they would soon have seen their own weakness, and been driven to Christ ; then would they have seen what a horrible thing it is to appear before God the judge, or once to think on him (as Luther says) without Christ; and, on the contrary, they would know what a glory, what a kingdom, what liberty and life it were to be in Christ Jesus by faith. And thus were the old Romans first taught by St. Paul writing to them. The same did Cornelius the Roman, the first that was bap- tized of the Gentiles, learn of St. Peter when he received the Holy Ghost, not by the deeds of the law, but only by hearing the faith of Jesus preached. And in the same doctrine the said church of the Ro- mans many years continued, so long as they were in affliction. And in the same doctrine the bishop of Rome with his Romans now also should still remain, if they were such ancient Catholics as they pretend, and TRUE CHRISTIAN PRINCIPLES. 9 would follow the old mother church of Rome; but what wonder if the Romans now in so long- a tract of time have lost their first sap, seeing that the church of the Galatians, in the very time of St. Paul, their schoolmaster, he being amongst them, had scarcely turned his back but they almost turned from the doctrine of faith. And lest any should think that we here protest against the corrupt errors and deformities of this latter church of Rome from motives of any rancour, rather than necessary causes and demonstrations, I shall take some little pains to descry the particular branches and con- tents of the pope's doctrine, now set forth, to the intent that all true christian readers, comparing the one with the other, may discern what great alteration there is between the church of Rome that now is, and the church of Rome that then was planted by the apostles in the primi- tive time. And to open to the simple reader some way whereby he may the better judge in such matters of doctrine, and not be deceived in dis- cerning truth from error. First, we will mention certain principles or general positions, as infallible rules or truths of the Scripture, whereby all other doctrines and opinions of men being tried and examined, may the more easily be judged whether they be true or contrary to the holy Scripture. CERTAIN PRINCIPLES, OR GENERAL VERITIES, FOUNDED UPON THE TRUTH OF GOD'S WORD, 1. As sin and death came originally by the disobedience of one to all men of his generation by nature, so righteousness and life came origi- nally by the obedience of one to all men regenerated of him by faith and baptism. Rom. 5. 2. The promise of God was freely given to our first parents without their deserving ; that the seed of the woman should break the serpent's head. Gen. 3. 3. Promise was given freely to Abraham before he deserved any thing, that in his seed all nations should be blessed. Gen. 12. 4. To the word of God neither must we add nor take from it. Deut. 4. 5. He that doth the works of the law shall live therein. Lev. 18. Gal. 3. 6. Accursed is he who abideth not in every thing that is written in the book of the law. Deut. 27. Gal. 3. 7. God only is to be worshipped. Deut. 6. Luke 4. 8. All our righteousness is like a defiled cloth. Isa. 64. 9. In all my holy hill they shall not kill nor slay, saith the Lord. Isa. 1 1 ; 65. 10. God loveth mercy and obedience more than sacrifice. Hos. 6. 1 Sam. 15. 11. The law worketh anger, condemneth and oppresseth sin. Rom. 3. 12. The end of the law is Christ, for righteousness to every one that believeth. Rom. 10. 13. Whosoever believeth and is baptized, shall be saved. Matth. ult. 14. A man is justified by faith, without works; freely by grace, not of ourselves. Gal. 2. Ephes. 2. 15. There is no remission of sins without blood. Heb. 9. 10 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. 10. Whatsoever is not of faith is sin. Rom. 14. Without faith it is impossible to please God. Heb. 11. 17. One mediator between God and man, Christ Jesus. 1 Tim. 2. And he is the propitiation for our sins. 1 John 2. 18. Whosoever seeketh by the law to be justified, is fallen from grace. Gal. 5. 19. In Christ be all the promises of God, Est & Amen. 2 Cor. 1. 20. Let every soul be subject to superior powers, giving to Csesar that which is Coesar's, and to God that which is God's. Rom. 13. These principles and infallible rules of Scripture, which no man can deny, prove that the doctrine of the pope's church is not catholic, but full of errors and heresies, as in the sequel will be more expressly and particularly explained. A SUMMARY COLLECTION OF THE ERRORS, HERESIES, AND ABSURDITIES Contained in the Pope's Doctrines, contrary to the Rules of God's Word, and the First Institution of the Church of Rome. OF FAITH AND OF JUSTIFICATION. First, as to the only means and instrumental cause of our justification, whereby the merits of Christ's passion is applied to us and made ours, ye heard before how St. Paul ascribes the same only to faith, as appears by all his letters, especially to the Romans; where he, excluding all kind of works, ascribes all our salvation, justification, righteousness, re- conciliation, and peace with God only to faith in Christ. Contrary to which doctrine, the pope and his church hath set up sundry other means of their own devising, whereby the merits of Christ's passion, they say, are applied to us and made ours, to the putting away of sins, and for our justification, as hope, charity, sacrifice of the mass, auricular con- fession, satisfaction, merit of saints, and holy orders, the pope's par- dons, &c. So that Christ's sacrifice, stripes, and suffering, by this teaching, do not heal us, nor are beneficial to us, though we believe never so well, unless we had also these works and merits above recited. This error and heresy of the church of Rome, though it seems at first sight to the natural reason of man to be of small importance, yet if it be earnestly considered, it is in very deed the most pernicious heresy that ever crept into the church; upon which, as the only founda- tion, all or the most part of all the errors, absurdities, and inconveni- encies of the pope's church are grounded. For this being once ad- mitted, that a man is not justified by his faith in Christ alone, but that other means must be sought by our own working and merits, to apply the merits of Christ's passion unto us ; then is there neither any cer- tainty left of our salvation, nor end in setting up new means and merits of our own devising for remission of sins. Neither has there been any heresy that either hath rebelled more presumptuously against the high majesty of God the Father, nor more perniciously hath injured the souls of the simple, than this doctrine. Secondly, the christian reader in the gospel, reading of the great grace and sweet promises of God given to mankind in Christ his son, might thereby take much comfort of soul, and be at rest and peace with the Lord his God ; but there comes in the pestiferous doctrine of these I \i SE 1 ■; NETS OF ROMANISTS, 11 heretics, wherewith they obscure this free grace of God to choke the sweet comforts of man in the Holy Ghost, and oppress Christian liberty, and bring- us into spiritual bondage. Thirdly, as in this their impious doctrine they shew themselves mani- fest enemies to God's grace, so they are no less injurious to christian men, whom they leave in a doubtful" distrust of God's favour and of their salvation, contrary to the word and will of God, and right institution of the apostolic doctrine. OF SIX. Of sin likewise they teach not rightly, nor after the institution of the apostles and the ancient church of Rome; as they consider not the deepness and largeness of sin, supposing it still to be nothing else but the inward actions with consent of will, or the outward, such as are against will: whereas the essence of sin extends not only to these, but also comprehends the blindness and ignorance of the mind, lack of knowledge, the untowardness of man's mind, the privy rebellion of the heart against the law of God, the undelighting will of man to God and his word, &c. OF PENANCE OR REPENTANCE. Of penance, this corrupt Lateran church of Rome has made a sacra- ment (contrary to the fourth principle), which penance, say they, standeth of three parts, contrition, confession, and satisfaction cano- nical. Contrition, as they teach, may be had by strength of free-will, without the law and the Holy Ghost, per actus elicitis, through man's own action and endeavour. Which contrition first must be sufficient, and so it meriteth remission of sin. In confession they require a full rehearsal of all sins, whereby the priest knowing the crimes, may minister satisfaction accordingly . And this rehearsing of sins, ex opere operato, deserveth remission, contrary to the fourteenth principle before men- tioned. Satisfactions they call opera videbita, enjoyed by the ghostly father. And this satisfaction (say they) taketh away and changeth eternal punishment into temporal pains, which pains also it doth miti- gate. And again, these satisfactions may be taken away by the pope's indulgence, SfC. OF FREE AVILL. Concerning free-will, as it may in some case be admitted, that men without grace may do some outward functions of the law, and keep some outward observances or traditions; so as touching things spiritual and appertaining to salvation, the strength of man being not regenerate by grace, is so infirm and impotent that he can perform nothing neither in doing well nor willing well; though, after he be regenerated by grace, may work and do well, but yet that there still remains, notwith- standing, a great imperfection of flesh, and a perpetual repugnance between the flesh and spirit. And thus was the original church of the ancient Romans first instructed, from which we may see now how far this latter church of Rome has degenerated, which affirms, that men without grace may perform the obedience of the law, and prepare them- selves to grace by working, so that those works may be meritorious and obtain grace. Which grace once obtained, then men may (say they) 12 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. perfectly perform the full obedience of the law, and accomplish those spiritual actions and works which God requires, and to those works of condignity deserve everlasting life. As to the infirmity which still re- mains in nature, that they do not regard nor once speak of. OF INVOCATION AND. ADORATION. Besides these uncatholic and almost unchristian absurdities and de- fection from the apostolical faith above specified, let us consider the manner of their invocation, not to God alone, as they should, but to dead men, saying that saints are to be called upon, tanquam mediatores intercessiones, as mediators of intercession ; Christum vero tanquam me- diatorem salutis, and Christ as the mediator of salvation. They affirm, moreover, that Christ was a mediator only in time of his passion, which is repugnant to the words of St. Paul, writing to the old Romans, chap, viii., where lie, speaking of the intercession, of Christ, saith, "who is even at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us," &c. And if Christ be a mediator of salvation, what needs then any other intercession of saints for our suits? Or what does he want more of the saints, who is sure to be saved only by Christ? Hitherto also pertains the worshipping of relics, and the false adora- tion of sacraments, that is, the outward signs of the thing signified, contrary to the seventh principle before stated. Add to this also the profanation of the Lord's supper, contrary to the use for which it was ordained, in reserving it after the communion ministered, in setting it to sale for money, and falsely persuading both themselves and others, that the priest doth merit both to himself who speaks, and to him who hears ex opere operato, sine bono motu utentis, Sfc. that is, only by the mere doing of the work, though the party that useth the same hath no motion in him. OF SACRAMENTS, BAPTISM, AND THE LORD'S SUPPER. With respect to sacraments, their doctrine is likewise corrupt and erroneous. In the sacrament of baptism they are to be reproved, not only for adding to the simple words of Christ's institution divers many new-found rites and fantasies of men, but also where the use of the old church of Rome was only to baptise men, they baptise also bells, and apply the words of baptism to water, Jive, candles, stocks, and stones, Sfc. But especially in the supper of the Lord their doctrine most filthily swerves from the right meaning of the scripture, and should be explod- ed out of all christian churches. The first error is their idolatrous abuse by worshipping, adoring, censing, knocking, and kneeling to it, in reserv- ing also and carrying about in pomp and processions in towns and fields. Secondly, also in substance thereof their teaching is monstrous, leaving no substance of bread and wine to remain, but only the real body and blood of Christ, putting no difference between calling and making. Because Christ called bread his body, therefore, say they, he made it his body, and so of a wholesome sacrament make a perilous idol : and that which the old church of Rome did ever take to be a mystery, they turn into a blind mist of mere accidents to deceive the people ; and to wor- ship a thing made, for their maker ; a creature for their creator ; and PARADOXES OF PURGATORY. 13 that which was threshed out of a wheaten sheaf, they set up in the church and worship for a saviour; and when they have worshipped him, then they otter him to his Father; and when they have offered him, then they eat him up, or else close him fast in a cell, where if he corrupt and putrify before he be eaten, then they burn him to powder and ashes. And notwithstanding 1 they know well by scripture that the body of Christ can never corrupt and putrify, yet for all this corruption will they needs make it the body of Christ, and burn all them who believe not that which is against true christian belief. OF MATRIMONY. Contrary to the ordinances of the scripture, the new catholics of the pope's church call marriage a state of imperfection, and prefer single life be it never so impure, before the former, pretending that where the one replenishes the earth, the other fills heaven. Ministers and priests such as are found to have wives, they not only remove out of their place, but also pronounce sentence of death upon them, and account their children illegitimate. Again, as good as the third part of the year they exempt and suspend from liberty of marriage. Besides all this, they have added a novel prohibition of spiritual kindred, that is, that such as have been gossips, or godfathers and godmothers together in christening another man's child, must not by their law marry together. Finally, in this doctrine and cases of matrimony, they gain much mo- ney from the people, nourish adultery, and fill the world with offences that give great occasion of murdering infants. OF MAGISTRATES AND CIVIL GOVERNMENT. It is known what rules and lessons St. Paul gave to the old Romans concerning magistrates, to whose authority he would have all human creatures subjected, as they are the ministers of God, having the sword given unto them, wherewith they ought to repress false doctrine and idolatry, and maintain that which is true and right, Rom. xiii. Now let us survey the pope's proceedings, and mark how far he transgresses in this, as he doth in all other points, from true Christianity. 1. First, The pope with all his clergy, exempt themselves from all civil obedience. 2. They arrogate to themselves authority to ordain and constitute, without leave or knowledge of the ordinary magistrate. 3. They take upon themselves to depose and set up rulers and magis- trates when they please/ OF PURGATORY. The paradoxes, or rather the fantasies, of the latter church of Rome, concerning purgatory, are monstrous, and neither old nor apostolical. 1. First (they say) there is a purgatory where souls burn in fire after this life. 2. The pain of purgatory differs nothing from the pains of hell, but only that it has an end ; the pains of hell have none. f It is likely that this degree of power is lost to them for ever; but it still remains their nominal prerogative. 14 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. 3. The painful suffering of this fire scours away the sins before com- mitted in the body. 4. The time of these pains endures in some longer, in some less, ac- cording as their sins deserve. 5. After the time of their pains has expired, then the mercy of God translates them to heavenly bliss, which the body of Christ hath bought for them. 6. The pains of purgatory are so great, that if all the beggars of the world were seen on the one side, and but one soul in purgatory on the other side, the whole world would pity more that one, than all the others. 7. The whole time of punishment in this purgatory must continue till the fire has scoured away the spots of every sinful soul there burning, unless there come some release. 8. Helps and releases that may shorten the time of their purgation, may be obtained by the pope's pardon and indulgences, sacrifices of the altar, dirges and trentals, prayer, fasting, &c. Lack of belief of purgatory bringeth to hell. In short, let us examine the whole religion of this latter church of Rome, and we shall find it to consist altogether in outward and ceremonial exercises ; as outward confession, absolution at the priest's hand, out- ward sacrifice of the mass, buying of pardons, purchasing of obiits, external worshipping of images and relics, pilgrimage to this place or that, building of churches, founding of monasteries, outward works of the law, outward gestures, garments, colours, choice of meats, difference of times and places, peculiar rites and observances, set prayers, and number of prayers prescribed, fasting of vigils, keeping of holidays, coming to church, hearing of service, external succession of bishops and of Peter's see, external form and notes of the church, &c. So that by this religion to make a true christian and a good catholic, there is scarcely any working of the Holy Ghost required. As for example, to make this matter more demonstrable, let us define a christian man after the pope's making, whereby we may see the better what is to be judged of the scope of his doctrine. A CHRISTIAN MAN, AFTER THE POPe's MAKING, DEFINED. According to the catholic religion, a true christian man is thus de- fined : first, to be baptised in the Latin tongue (which the godfathers ffrofess they cannot understand), then confirmed by the bishops; the mo- ther of the child to be purified; after he is grown in years, then to come to the church to keep his fasting days, to fast the lent, to come under benedicite ; that is, to be confessed of the priest, to do his penance, at Easter to take his rites, to hear mass and divine service, to set up can- dles before images, to creep to the cross, to take holy bread and water, to go in procession, to carry his palms and candle, and to take ashes ; to fast the ember days, rogation days, and vigils ; to keep the holidays, to pay his tithes and offerings, to go on pilgrimage, to buy pardons, to worship his Maker over the priest's head, and to receive the pope for his supreme lord, and to obey his laws ; to receive St. Nicholas' clerks, 'to have his beads, and to give to the high altar; to THE FIRST TEN PERSECUTIONS. I . take orders if he will be a priest, to keep his vow, and not to marry ; when he is sick to be anointed and take the rites of the holy church, to be buried in the church-yard, to be rung for, to be sung for, to be buried in a friar's cowl, and to conform living and dying to the Romish rule. All these points being observed, who can deny but this is a devout man, and perfect christian catholic, and sure to be saved, as a true faithful child of the holy mother church? Now look upon this definition, and say, good reader, what faith or spirit, or what working of the Holy Ghost in all this doctrine is to be required. The grace of our Lord Jesus give the true light of his gos- pel to shine in our hearts. Amen. SECTION II. Containing a history of the first Ten Persecutions of the Primitive Church, from the year of our Lord, 67, and the reign of Nero Domitius, till the time of Constantine the Great; in which are detailed the lives and actions of* the principal Christian martyrs of both sexes, who suffered for their faith in Europe and in Africa. The dreadful martyrdoms we are now about to describe, arose from the persecutions of the Christians by pagan fury, in the primitive ages of the church, during the space of three hundred years, until the time of Constantine the great. § It is both wonderful and horrible to peruse the descriptions of the sufferings of those godly martyrs, as they are described by ancient historians. Their torments were as various as the ingenuity of man, excited by the devil, could devise ; and their numbers were truly in- credible. " Some," says Robanus, " were slain with the sword ; some burnt with fire ; some scourged with whips ; some stabbed with forks of iron; some fastened to the cross or gibbet; some drowned in the sea; some had their skins plucked off; some their tongues cutout; some were stoned to death ; some frozen with cold ; some starved with hunger; some with their hands cut off, or otherwise dismembered, were left naked to the open shame of the world." Augustine, speaking of these martyrs, h says, that though their punishments were various, yet the constancy in all was the same. And notwithstanding the sharpness of so many torments, and cruelty of the tormentors, such was the number of these faithful saints, that as Hierome, in his epistle to Cromatius and Heliodorus, observes, " There is no day in the whole year, unto which the number of Jive thousand martyrs cannot be ascribed, except only the first day of January ." s Eusebius was the principal historian who has transmitted to us an account of the sufferings of these blessed martyrs, and to his works we are indebted for many valuable anecdotes not to be found in any other writer. h De Civit. 22. cap. 6. 16 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. The first martyr to our holy religion was its Blessed Founder himself.' His history is sufficiently known, as it has been handed down to us in the New Testament ; nevertheless it will be proper here to give an out- line of his sufferings, and more particularly as they will be followed by those of the apostles and evangelists. (A. D. 1 to 18.) The persecutions by the emperors took place long after the death of our Saviour. It is known that in the reign of Herod, the angel Gabriel was sent by divine command to the Virgin Mary. This maiden was betrothed to a carpenter named Joseph, who resided at Nazareth, a city of Galilee; but the marriage had not then taken place ; for it was the custom of the eastern nations to contract persons of each sex from their child- hood, though the alliance was not permitted till years of maturity. The angel informed Mary how highly she was favoured of God, and that she should conceive a son by the Holy Spirit, which happened accord- ingly ; for travelling to Bethlehem to pay the capitation-tax then levied, the town was so crowded that they could get lodgings only in a stable, where the Holy Virgin gave birth to our Blessed Redeemer, which was announced to the world by a star and an angel : the wise men of the east saw the former, and the shepherds the latter. After Jesus had been circumcised, he was presented in the temple by the Holy Virgin ; upon which occasion Simeon exclaimed in the cele- brated words mentioned in the liturgy : "Lord, now lettest thou thy ser- vant depart in peace, according to thy word : for mine eyes have seen thy salvation." Luke ii. 29, 30. Jesus, in his youth, conversed with the most learned doctors in the temple, and soon after Avas baptized by John in the river Jordan, when the Holy Ghost descended upon him in the form of a dove, and a voice was heard audibly to pronounce these words: " This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased." After this Christ fasted forty days and nights in the wilderness, where he was tempted by the devil, but resisted all his allurements. He per- formed his first miracle at Cana, in Galilee ; he likewise conversed with the good Samaritan, and restored to life a nobleman's dead child. While travelling through Galilee he restored the blind to sight, he cured the lame, the lepers, &c. Among other benevolent actions, he cured at the pool of Bethseda, a paralytic man who had been lame thirty-eight years, bidding him take up his bed and walk ; and he afterwards cured a man whose right hand was shrunk up and withered, with many acts of a simi- lar nature. When he had chosen his twelve apostles, he preached the celebrated sermon on the Mount ; after which he performed several miracles, par- * A reverend editor of an edition of the Book of Christian Martyrs, published some years since, with a pompous title-page, and announced as the only "complete and original History of Martyrdom," has absurdly described as martyrs, Noah, Lot, Joseph, the Children of Israel, Shadrach, Meshach, Abednego, &c. It is, nevertheless, evident, that these characters, who sustained with all becoming fortitude, as we learn from scripture, the malignity of their persecutors, ought not to be classed amongst the blessed martyrs, whose lives were sacrificed for their perseverance in the doctrines of Christianity. As well might be recorded in a history of martyrs every man who had been in danger of perishing by the hand of an assassin. TRIAL OF CHRIST. 17 ticularly the feeding of the multitude, and the walking on the surface of the sea. On the celebration of the passover, Jesus supped with his disciples ; he informed them that one of them would betray him, and another deny him : in short he preached his farewell sermon. A multitude of armed men soon afterwards surrounded him, and Judas kissed him, in order to point him out to the soldiers, who were not acquainted with his person. In the conflict occasioned by the apprehension of Jesus, Peter cut off the ear of Malchus, the servant of the high-priest, for which Jesus reproved him, and, by touching- the wound, healed it. (A. D. 34.) Peter and John followed Jesus to the house of Annas, who refusing to judge him, sent him bound to Caiaphas, in whose house Peter denied Christ, as he had predicted ; but, on Christ reminding him of his perfidy, the apostle went out and wept bitterly. When the council had assembled in the morning, the Jews mocked Jesus, and the elders suborned false witnesses against him : the princi- pal accusation being, that he had said, " I will destroy this temple made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands." Caiaphas then asked him if he was Christ the Son of God, or not ; being answered in the affirmative he was accused of blas- phemy, and condemned to death by Pontius Pilate, the Roman gover- nor, who, though conscious of his innocence, yielded to the solicitations of the Jews, and condemned him to be crucified. His remarkable ex- pression at the time of passing sentence proved how much he was con- vinced that the Lord was persecuted. Previous to the crucifixion, the Jews, by way of derision, clothed Christ in a regal robe, put a crown of thorns upon his head, and a reed, for a sceptre, in his hand ; they then mocked him with ironical compli- ments, spat in his face, smote his cheeks, and taking the reed out of his hand, they struck him with it upon the head. Pilate would have released him, but the general cry was, Crucify him, crucify him ; which occasioned the governor to call for a basin of water, and having washed his hands, he declared himself innocent of the blood of Christ, whom he termed a just person. But the Jews said, " Let his blood be upon us, and our children :" and the governor found himself obliged to com- ply with their wishes. Their imprecation, too, has manifestly taken place, as they have ever since been a people scattered and cursed. J i A similar example of punishment is to be noted amongst the Romans ; for when Tiberius Caesar, having received accounts from Pontius Pilate, of the doings of Christ, of his miracles, resurrection, and ascension into Heaven, and how he was received as a divine messenger, was himself also moved with belief, and conferred with the whole senate of Rome to have Christ adored as God : they refused, because that, contrary to the law of the Romans, he was consecrated for God, before the senate of Rome had so decreed and approved him. Tertul. Apol. cap. 5. Thus the senate following rather the law of man than of God, the permission of God stirred up their own emperors against them in such a degree, that tht senators were almost all destroyed, and the whole city horribly afflicted for the space of three hundred subsequent years. Tiberius, who for a great part of his reign was a mode- rate prince, was afterwards a severe tyrant, who neither favoured his own mother, spared his own nephews, nor the princes of the city, nor such as were his own counsellors, of whom, to the number of twenty, he left only two or three alive. History relates him to have been so tyrannical, that in his reign many were accused, and condemned with their wives and children. In one day, according to Suetonius, he ordered twenty persons to be drawn to the C 18 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. While they were leading Christ to the place of crucifixion, he was obliged to bear the cross, which being unable long to sustain, his enemies compelled one Simon, a native of Cyrene, to carry it the rest of the way. Mount Calvary was fixed on for the place of execution, where, having arrived, the soldiers offered Christ a mixture of gall and vinegar to drink, which he refused. Having stripped him, they nailed him to the cross, and crucified him between two malefactors. On being fastened to the cross, he uttered this benevolent prayer for his enemies: "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." Four soldiers who crucified him, now cut his mantle to pieces, and divided it between them ; but his coat being without seam, they cast lots for it. While Christ remained in the agonies of death, the Jews mocked him, and said, " If thou art the son of God, come down from the cross." The chief priests and scribes also reviled him, and said, " He saved others, but cannot save himself." One of the criminals who was crucified with him, also cried out, and said, " If thou art the Messiah, save thyself and us ;" but the other malefactor, having great faith, exclaimed, " Lord, remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom." To which Christ replied, "This day shalt thou be with me in paradise." When Christ was upon the cross, the earth was covered with darkness, and the stars appeared at noon-day, which struck the people and even the Jews with terror. In the midst of his tortures, He cried out, " My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me !" and then expressed a desire to drink, when one of the soldiers gave him, upon the point of a reed, a sponge dipped in vinegar, which however he refused* About three o'clock in the afternoon he gave up the ghost, and at that moment a violent earthquake commenced, when the rocks were rent, the moun- tains trembled, and the dead emerged from the graves. These and other prodigies attended the death of Christ, and such was the mortal end of the Redeemer of mankind. It is not a subject of wonder that the heathens who lived so long after him, endeavoured by persecution and the most horrid cruelties, to prevent the propagation of that source of comfort and happiness in all affliction, which has resulted from the blessed system of faith that our Saviour confirmed with his blood. ACCOUNT OF THE LIVES, SUFFERINGS, AND MARTYRDOM OF THE APOSTLES, EVANGELISTS, &c. I. ST. STEPHEN. This early martyr was elected, with six others, as a deacon of the first Christian church. He was also an able and successful preacher. The principal persons belonging to five Jewish synagogues entered into dispute with him ; but he, by the soundness of his doctrine, and the place of execution. By him, also, Pilate, under whom Christ was crucified, was apprehended and accused at Rome, deposed, then banished to the town of Lyons, and at length coihmltted suicide. Herod and Caiaphas also did not long escape. We shall here, combining his- torical facts with our narrative, inform the reader, that it was in the reign of Tiherius, that Jesus, the Son of God, in the four-and-thirtieth year of his age, which was the seventeenth of this emperor, suffered martyrdom. After this, Tiberius lived six years, during which time no persecution had begun in Rome against the Christians. It was in the reign of this emperor that St. Paul was converted to the faith. MARTYRDOM OF THE APOSTLES. 19 strength of his arguments, overcame them all, which so much irritated them, that they bribed false witnesses to accuse him of blaspheming God and Moses. On being carried before the council, he made a noble defence; but this so much exasperated his judges, that they resolved to condemn him. At the instant Stephen saw a vision from heaven, representing Jesus, in his glorified state, sitting at the right hand ot God. This vision so enraptured him, that he exclaimed, "Behold I see the heavens open, and the Son of Man standing on the right hand of God." This caused him to be condemned, and having dragged him out of the city they stoned him to death. On the spot where he was martyred, Eudocia, the empress of Theodosius, erected a superb church, and the memory of the martyr is annually celebrated on the 26th day of December. The death of Stephen was succeeded by a severe persecution in Jerusalem, in which 2000 Christians, with Nicanor the deacon, were martyred, and many others obliged to leave their country. k II. ST. JAMES THE GREAT. He was a Galilean, and the son of Zebedee, a fisherman, the elder brother of St. John, and related to Christ himself; for his mother Salome was cousin to the Virgin Mary. Being one day with his father fishing in the sea of Galilee, he and his brother John were called by the Saviour to become his disciples. They cheerfully obeyed the mandate, and leaving their father, followed Jesus. It is to be observed, that Christ placed greater confidence in them than in any other of the apostles, Peter excepted. Christ called these brothers Boanerges, or sons of thunder, on account of their vigorous minds and zealous spirits. When Herod Agrippa was made governor of Judea by the emperor Caligula, he raised a persecution against the Christians, and particularly selected James as an object of his vengeance. This martyr, on being condemned to death, showed such intrepidity and constancy of mind, that even his accuser was struck with admiration, and became a convert to Christianity. This transition so enraged the people in power, that they condemned him likewise to death; when the apostle, and his penitent accuser, were both beheaded on the same day and with the same sword. These events took place in the year of Christ 44; and the 25th of July was fixed by the church for the commemoration of James's martyrdom. About the same period, Timon and Parmenas, two of the seven deacons, suffered martyrdom, the former at Corinth, and the latter at Philippi, in Macedonia. III. ST. PHILIP. This apostle and martyr was born at Bethsaida, in Galilee, and was the first called by the name of disciple. He was employed in several important missions by Christ, and being deputed to preach in Upper k Dorotheus, in his Synopsis, asserts, apparently upon good authority, that Nicanor, one of the seven deacons, with two thousand others, who believed in Christ, suffered on the same day when Stephen was martyred. He also adds, that Simon, another of the deacons, afterwards bishop of Bostrum, in Arabia, was there burned. Parmenas, another of the deacons, suffered at the same time. 20 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Asia, laboured very diligently in his apostleship. He then travelled into Phrygia, and arriving- at Heliopolis, found the inhabitants so sunk in idolatry, as to worship a large serpent. St. Philip, however, was the means of converting many of them to Christianity, and even procured the death of the serpent. This so enraged the magistrates, that they com- mitted him to prison, had him severely scourged, and afterwards crucified. His friend, St. Bartholomew, found an opportunity of taking down the body, and burying it; for which, however, he was very near suffering the same fate. The martyrdom of Philip happened eight years after that of James the Great, A. D. 52 ; and his name, together with that of St. James the Less, is commemorated on the 1st of May. IV. ST. MATTHEW. This evangelist, apostle, and martyr, was born at Nazareth, in Galilee; but resided chiefly in Capernaum, on account of his business, which was that of a tax-gatherer, to collect tribute of such as had to pass the sea of Galilee. On being called as a disciple, he immediately complied, and left every thing to follow Christ. After the ascension of his Lord, he continued preaching the gospel in Judea about nine years. Intend- ing to leave Judea, to go and preach among the Gentiles, he wrote his gospel in Hebrew, for the use of the Jewish converts ; but it was afterwards translated into Greek by St. James the Less. He then went to Ethiopia, ordained preachers, settled churches, and made many converts. He afterwards proceeded to Parthia, where he had the same success ; but returning to Ethiopia, he was slain by a halberd in the city of Nadabar, about the year of Christ 60 ; and his festival is kept by the church on the 21st day of September. He was inoffensive in his conduct, and remarkably temperate in his mode of living. v. ST. MARK. This evangelist and martyr was born of Jewish parents of the tribe of Levi. It is supposed that he was converted to Christianity by St. Peter, whom he served as an amanuensis, and whom he attended in all his travels. Being entreated by the converts at Rome to commit to writing the admirable discourses they had heard from St. Peter and himself, he complied with their request, and composed his gospel in the Greek language. He then went to Egypt, and constituted a bishopric at Alexandria : afterwards he proceeded to Lybia, where he made many converts. On returning to Alexandria, some of the Egyp- tians, exasperated at his success, determined on his death. They tied his feet, dragged him through the streets, left him bruised in a dungeon all night, and the next day burned his body. This took place on the 25th of April, on which day the church commemorates his martyrdom. His bones were carefully gathered up by the Christians, decently inter- red, and afterwards removed to Venice, where he is honoured as the tutelar saint and patron of the state. VI. ST. JAMES THE LESS. This apostle and martyr was so called to distinguish him from St. James the Great. He was the son of Joseph, the reputed father of Christ; MARTYRDOM OF THE APOSTLES. 21 and after the Lord's ascension was elected bishop of Jerusalem. He wrote his general epistles to all Christians and converts whatever, to suppress a dangerous error then propagating, viz. " That faith in Christ was alone sufficient for salvation, without good works." The Jews, being at this time greatly enraged that St. Paul had escaped their fury, by appealing to Rome, determined to wreak their vengeance on James, who was now ninety-four years of age: they accordingly threw him down, beat, bruised, and stoned him ; and then dashed out his brains with a club, such as was used by fullers in dressing cloths. His festival, together with that of St. Philip, is kept on the first of May. l VII. ST. MATTHIAS. This martyr was called to the apostleship after the death of Christ, to supply the vacant place of Judas, who had betrayed his master. He was also one of the seventy disciples. He was martyred at Jerusalem, by being first stoned, and then beheaded ; and the 24th of February is observed for the celebration of his festival. VIII. ST. ANDREW. This apostle and martyr was the brother of St. Peter, and preached the gospel to many Asiatic nations. On arriving at Edessa, the gover- nor of the country, named Egeas, threatened him for preaching against 1 Egissippus in his commentaries, gives the following interesting account of this martyr . — "James, the brother of our Lord, took in hand to govern the church after the apostles, being counted of all men, from the time of Christ, to be a just and perfect man. There were many others of the name ; but this was born holy : he drank no wine nor any strong drink, neither did he eat any living creature, the razor never came upon his head, he was not anointed with oil, neither did he use bath ; to him only was it lawful to enter into the holy place; neither was he clothed with woollen cloth, but with silk; and he entered into the temple, always wponhis knees, asking remission for the people, so that his knees, by con- stant use, lost the sense of feeling, being benumbed and hardened like the knees of a camel. He was (for worshipping God, and craving forgiveness for the people), called the Just, and for the excellency of his life named Oblias, which is the safeguard and justice of the people, as the prophets declare of him : therefore, when many of the heretics which were among the people asked him what manner of man Jesus should be, he answered, that he was the Saviour. But the aforesaid heretics, neither believe the resurrection, nor that one shall come, who shall render unto every man according to his works ; but as many as believe, they believe in James's faith. When some, therefore, of the princes did believe, there was a tumult made of the Scribes, Jews, and Pharisees, saying, it is dangerous lest that all the people do look for this Jesus as for Christ. Therefore, they gathered themselves together, and said to James — 'We beseech thee restrain the people, for they believe in Jesus as though he were Christ ; we pray thee persuade them all which come unto the feast of the passover of Jesus; for we are all obedient unto thee, and all the people do testify of thee that thou art just, neither that thou dost accept the person of any man ; therefore persuade the people that they be not deceived in Jesus, and all the people and we will obey thee; therefore stand upon the pillar of the temple, that thou mayest be seen from above, and that thy words may be perceived of all the people, for to this passover all the tribes do come with all the country.' And thus the Scribes and Pharisees did set James upon the battlements of the church, and they cried unto him and said, ' Thou just man, whom we all ought to obey, because this people is led after Jesus, who is crucified, tell what is Jesus crucified 1' And he answered with a great voice, 'What do you ask me of Jesus the Son of Man, seeing that he sitteth on the right hand of God, and shall come in the clouds of Heaven. ' When many were persuaded of this, they glorified God upon the witness of James, and said, ' Hosanna in the highest to the Son of David.' " 22 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the idols they worshipped. St. Andrew, persisting in the propagation of his doctrines, was ordered to be crucified, two ends of the cross being fixed transversely in the ground. He boldly told his accusers, that he would not have preached the glory of the cross, had he feared to die on it. And again, when they came to crucify him, he said that he coveted the cross, and longed to embrace it. He was fastened to the cross, not with nails, but cords ; that his death might be more slow. In this situation he continued two days, preaching the greatest part of the time to the people; and expired on the 30th of November, which is commemorated as his festival. IX. ST. PETER. This great apostle and martyr was born at Bethsaida in Galilee, being the son of Jonas, a fisherman, which employment St. Peter himself fol- lowed. He was persuaded by his brother to turn Christian, when Christ gave him the name of Cephas, implying, in the Syriac language, a rock. He was called, at the same time as his brother, to be an apostle, gave uncommon proofs of his zeal for the service of Christ, and always ap- peared as the principal speaker among the apostles. He had, however, the weakness to deny his Master after his apprehension, though he defended him at the time; but the sincerity of his repentance proved that he soon became deeply convinced of the greatness of his crime. After the death of Christ, the Jews still continued to persecute the Christians, and ordered several of the apostles, among whom was Peter, to be scourged. This punishment they bore with the greatest fortitude, and rejoiced that they were thought worthy to suffer for the sake of their Redeemer. When Herod Agrippa caused St. James the Great to be put to death, and found that it pleased the Jews, he resolved, in order to ingratiate himself with the people, that Peter should be the next sacrifice. He was accordingly apprehended, and thrown into prison ; but an angel of the Lord released him, which so enraged Herod, that he ordered the sentinels who guarded the dungeon in which he had been confined, to be put to death. St. Peter, after various miracles, retired to Rome, where he defeated the artifices, and confounded the magic of Simon Magus, a great favourite of the emperor Nero: he likewise converted to Christianity one of the concubines of that monarch, which so exas- perated the tyrant, that he ordered both St. Peter and St. Paul to be apprehended. During the time of their confinement, they converted two of the captains of the guard, and forty-seven other persons to Christianity. Having been nine months in prison, Peter was brought from thence for execution, when after being severely scourged, lie was crucified with his head downwards; which position, however, was at his own request." 1 His festival is observed on the 29th of June, on m As to the cause and manner of his death there are many who describe them, as Hierome, Egissippus, Eusebius, Abdias, and others, although they do not all precisely agree in the time. The words of Hierome are these, " Simon Peter the son of Jonas, of the province of Galilee, and of the town of Bethsaida, the brother of Andrew, after he had been bishop of the church of Antioch, and had preached to the dispersed of them that believed of the circumcision, in Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia, and Bithynia, in the MARTYRDOM OF ST. PAUL. 23 which day lie as well as Paul suffered. His body being taken down, embalmed, and buried in the Vatican, a church was erected on the spot; but this being destroyed by the emperor Heliogabalus, the body was concealed till the 20th bishop of Rome, Cornelius, conveyed it again to the Vatican; afterwards Constantine the Great erected one of the most stately churches in the universe over the place. Before we quit this article, it is requisite to observe, that previous to the death of St. Peter, his wife suffered martyrdom for the faith of Christ, when he exhorted her, as she was going to be put to death, to remember her Saviour. X. ST. PAUL. This apostle and martyr was a Jew of the tribe of Benjamin, born at Tarsus in Cilicia. He was at first a great enemy to, and persecutor of the Christians; but after his miraculous conversion, he became a strenuous supporter of Christianity." At Iconium, St. Paul and St. Barnabas were near being stoned to death by the enraged Jews ; on which they fled to Lycaonia. At Lystra, St. Paul was stoned, dragged out of the city, and left for dead. He, however, happily revived, and escaped to Derbe. At Philippi, Paul and Silas were imprisoned and whipped; and both were again persecuted at Thessalonica. Being afterwards taken at Jerusalem, he was sent to Cesarea, but appealed to Caesar at Rome. Here he continued a prisoner at large for two years ; and at length being released, he visited the churches of Greece and Rome, and preached in France and Spain. Returning to Rome, he was again apprehended, and by the order of Nero, martyred, by beheading. second year of Claudius the emperor (which was about the year of our Lord 44) came to Rome to withstand Simon Magus, and there kept the priestly chair the space of five-and- twenty years, until the last year of the aforesaid Nero, which was the fourteenth year of his reign, in which he was crucified, his head being down, and his feet upward, himself so requiring, because he was, he said, unworthy to be crucified after the same form and manner as the Lord Jesus. n The circumstances of the conversion of this apostle are not so well known as they ought to be : in fact, there are many important events in the lives of the martyrs which none can properly know but those who read the Greek and Latin works of theological historians. The following particulars of St. Paul are from Hieronymus, (De viris IUustribus.) Paul, before his conversion was called Saul; and after performing many journeys and unspeakable labours in promoting the gospel of Christ, he suffered under persecution and was beheaded. Before he was converted he was a promoter of the death of Stephen. He was brought up under Gamaliel. While on his way to Damascus, the Lord's glory came suddenly upon him, and he was struck to the earth ; on which, from a persecutor, he immediately became a professor, an apostle, and a martyr. Among his labours in spreading the doctrine of Christ he converted to the faith Sergius Paulus, the proconsul of Cyprus, on which he took his name, and, was thence called Paulus instead of Saulus. After many labours he took to him Barnabas, and went up to Jerusalem to Peter, James, and John, where he was ordained, and sent out with Barnabas to preach to the Gentiles. Besides what is mentioned of his miraculous conversion, in the sacred scriptures, we may add, that this apostle, in the 25th year after the passion of our Lord, and in the second of Nero, was sent in chains to Rome, where he almost daily disputed for two years against the Jews. Nero, who had not then broken out in his wickedness, caused him to be discharged, and he was sent to preach the gospel in the west, and about the coasts of Italy ; where he did much good, and, to use his own words, was delivered by the Lord out of the lion's mouth. He was beheaded on the same day on which Peter was crucified. 24 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Two days are dedicated to the commemoration of this apostle ; the one to his conversion, which is on the 25th of January, and the other to his martyrdom, which is on the 29th of June, A. D. 72. XI. ST. JUDE. This apostle and martyr, the brother of James, was commonly called Thaddaeus. Being sent to Edessa, he wrought many miracles, and made many converts, which exciting the resentment of people in power, he was crucified, A. D. 72 ; and the 28th of October is, by the church, dedicated to his memory. XII. ST. BARTHOLOMEW. This apostle and martyr preached in several countries, performed many miracles, and healed various diseases. He translated St. Matthew's gospel into the Indian language, and propagated it in that country ; but at length, the idolators growing impatient with his doctrines, severely beat and crucified him. He was scarcely alive when taken down and beheaded. The anniversary of his martyrdom is on the 24th of August. XIII. ST. THOMAS. He was called by this name in Syriac, but Didymus in Greek ; he was an apostle and martyr, and preached in Parthia and India, where dis- pleasing the pagan priests, he was martyred by being thrust through with a spear. His death is commemorated on the 21st of December. XIV. ST. LUKE THE EVANGELIST. This martyr was the author of the third most excellent gospel ; and also of the Acts of the Apostles. He travelled with St. Paul to Rome, and preached to divers barbarous nations, till the priests of Greece hanged him on an olive-tree. The anniversary of his martyrdom is on the 1 8th of October. XV. ST. SIMON. This apostle and martyr was distinguished from his zeal by the name of Zelotes. He preached with great success in Mauritania, and other parts of Africa, and even in Britain, where, though he made many con- verts, he was crucified, A. D. 74 ; and the church, joining him with St. Jude, commemorates his festival on the 28th of October. XVI. ST. JOHN. He was distinguished as a prophet, an apostle, a divine, an evangelist, and a martyr. He is called the beloved disciple, and was brother to James the Great. He was previously a disciple of John the baptist, and afterwards not only one of the twelve apostles, but one of the three to whom Christ communicated the most secret passages of his life. He founded churches at Smyrna, Pergamos, Sarclis, Philadelphia, Laodicea, and Thyatira, to which he directs his book of Revelations. Being at Ephesus, he was ordered by the emperor Domitian to be sent bound to Rome, where he was condemned to be cast into a caldron of boiling oil.° But here a miracle was wrought in his favour ; the oil did him no ° With respect to this punishment the Legend and Perionius say, it took place at Rome, Isidorus also writing of him, declares that he turned certain places of wood into gold, and FIRST PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 25 injury; and Domitian, not being able to put him to death, banished him to Patmos to labour in the mines, A. D. 73. He was, however, re- called by Nerva, who succeeded Domitian, but was deemed a martyr on account of his having undergone an execution, though it did not take effect. He wrote his epistles, gospel, and Revelation, each in a different style; but they are all equally admired. He was the only apostle who escaped a violent death, and lived the longest of any, he being nearly 100 years of age at the time of his death. The church devotes the 27th of December to his memory. XVII. ST. BARNABAS. He was a native of Cyprus, but of Jewish parents : the time of his death is uncertain ; but it is supposed to have been about the year of Christ 73 ; and his festival is kept on the 11th of June. ACCOUNT OF THE FIRST PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION, Beginning in the year 67, under the reign of the emperor Nero. The first persecution in the primitive ages of the church, was under Nero Domitius, the sixth emperor of Rome, A. D. 67. This mo- narch reigned for the space of five years with tolerable credit to him- self; but then gave way to the greatest extravagance of temper, and to the most atrocious barbarities, p Among other diabolical outrages, he ordered that the city of Rome should be set on fire, which was done by his officers, guards, and servants. While the city was in flames, he went up to the tower of Maecenas, played upon his harp, sung the song of the burning of Troy, and declared, " That he wished the ruin of all things before his death." Among the noble buildings burnt was the Circus, the place appropriated to civic sports : it was half a mile in length, of an oval form, with rows of seats rising above each other, and capable of receiving with ease upwards of 100,000 spectators. Many other palaces and houses were consumed ; and several thousands of the people perished in the flames, were smothered, or buried beneath the ruins. This dreadful conflagration continued nine days. Nero, finding that his conduct was greatly blamed, and a severe odium cast upon him, determined to charge the whole upon the Christians, at once to excuse himself* and have an opportunity of fresh persecutions. The barbarities inflicted on the Christians, during the first persecution, were such as excited the sympathy of even the Romans themselves. stones by the sea-side into pearls, to satisfy the desire of those whom he had persuaded to renounce their riches; and they afterwards repenting that for worldly treasure they had lost Heaven, the apostle again changed the same into their former substance. It is said by Eusebius that he raised a widow and a young man from death to life. That he drank poison and it hurt him not. These and other miracles, though they may be true, and are found in several writers, yet are not mentioned in the sacred books, and may there- fore be considered at best as apocryphal. P Eusebius, speaking of his cruelties, says, that one might then see cities full of men's bodies, and carcases cast out naked, without reverence of sex, in the open streets. Nero was the first who began persecution against the Christians, and not only in Rome, but also through the provinces, thinking to abolish and to destroy the name of Christians in all places. In consequence of his cruelties towards the Christians, he was the fir*t who re- ceived the name of anti-ehrist. See Orosius, lib. 7. and Hist. Eccles. lib. 2. cap. 24. 26 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Nero nicely refined upon cruelty, and contrived all manner of punish- ments for his victims. He had some sewed up in the skins of wild beasts, and then worried by dogs till they expired ; and others dressed in shirts made stiff with wax, fixed to axletrees, and set on fire in his garden. This persecution was general throughout the Roman empire; but it increased rather than diminished the spirit of Christianity. Besides St. Paul and St. Peter, many others, whose names have not been transmitted to posterity, and who were mostly their converts and followers, suffered ; the facts concerning the principal of them we shall proceed to describe. Erastus, the chamberlain of Corinth, was converted by St. Paul, and determined to follow the fortunes of that apostle. He resigned his office, and accompanied the apostle in his voyages and travels, till the latter left him in Macedonia, where he was first made bishop of that province by the Christians. He afterwards suffered martyrdom, being tortured to death by the pagans at Philippi. Aristarchus, the Macedonian, was born in Thessalonica, and being- converted by St. Paul became his constant companion. He was with the apostle at Ephesus, during a commotion raised in that city by De- metrius the silversmith. They both received severe insults on the occasion from the populace, which they bore with christian patience, giving good advice in return for ill usage, and not in the least resenting any indignity. Aristarchus accompanied St. Paul from Ephesus into Greece, where they were very successful in propagating the gospel, and converting many to Christianity. Having left Greece they traversed a great part of Asia, and made a considerable stay in Judea, where they were also very prosperous in making converts. After this Aristarchus went with St. Paul to Rome, where he suffered the same fate as the apos- tle ; for being seized as a Christian, he was beheaded by the command of Nero. Trophimus, an Ephesian by birth, and a Gentile by religion, was converted by St. Paul to the christian faith. On his conversion he accompanied his master in his travels; and on his account the Jews raised great disturbance in the temple at Jerusalem, the last time St. Paul was in that city. They even attempted to murder the apostle, for having introduced a Greek into the temple; such an one being looked upon by the Jews with detestation. Lysias, the captain of the guard, however, interposed, and rescued St. Paul by force from the hands of the Jews. On quitting Jerusalem, Trophimus followed his master to Rome, and did him very essential service. He then attended him to Spain, and passing through Gaul, the apostle made him bishop of that province, and left him in the city of Aries. There he continued about twelve months, when he paid another visit to St. Paul in Asia, and went with him for the last time to Rome, where he was witness to the martyrdom of his master, which was but the fore-runner of his own : for being soon after seized on account of his faith, he was beheaded by order of the emperor Nero. Joseph, commonly called Barsabas, was a primitive disciple, and is usually deemed one of the seventy. He was, in some degree, related to the Redeemer ; and he became a candidate, together with Matthias, to SECOND PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 27 till the vacant place of Judas Iscariot, to which Matthias was elected. Ecclesiastical writers make very little other mention of Joseph ; but Papias informs us, that he was once compelled to drink poison, which did not do him the least injury, agreeably with the promise of the Lord to those who believe in him. He was during his life a zealous preacher of the gospel ; and having received many insults from the Jews, at length obtained martyrdom, being murdered by the pagans in Judea. Ananias, bishop of Damascus, is celebrated in the sacred writings as the person who cured St. Paul of the blindness with which he was struck by the amazing brightness which shone upon him at his conversion. He was one of the seventy, and was martyred in the city of Damascus. After his death a christian church was built over the place of his burial, which is now converted into a Turkish mosque. ACCOUNT OF THE SECOND PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. UNDER THE EMPEROR DOMITIAN. The emperor Domitian was naturally of a cruel disposition ; he first slew his brother, and then raised a second persecution against the Christians. His rage was such, that he even put to death several Ro- man senators ; some through malice, and others to confiscate their estates. He then commanded all the lineage of David to be sacrificed Two Christians were brought before the emperor, and accused of being of the tribe of Judah, and line of David ; but from their answers, he despis- ed them as idiots, and dismissed them accordingly. He, however, was de- termined to be more secure upon other occasions ; and on this plea he took away the property of many Christians, put several to death, and banish- ed others. Among the numerous martyrs that suffered during this perse- cution was Simeon, bishop of Jerusalem/* who was crucified ; and St. John, who was boiled in oil, and afterwards banished to Patmos. Flavia, the daughter of a Roman senator, was likewise banished to Pontus ; and a cruel law was made, '" That no Christian, once brought before the tribunal, should be exempted from punishment without renouncing his religion." During this reign there were various tales published in order to injure the Christians. Among other falsehoods, they were accused of indecent nightly meetings, of a rebellious turbulent spirit, of being ini- mical to the Roman empire, of murdering their children, and even of being cannibals ; and at this time, such was the infatuation of the Pa- gans, that if famine, pestilence, or earthquakes, afflicted any of the Roman provinces, it was charged on the Christians. These persecutions naturally multiplied the number of informers ; and many, for the sake of gain, swore away the lives of the innocent. When any Christians were brought before the magistrates, a test was proposed, when, if they refused to take the oath, death was pronounced against them ; and if they confessed themselves Christians, the sentence was the same. The various kinds of punishments and inflicted cruelties were, during this persecution, imprisonment, racking, searing, broiling, burning, i A curious anecdote relative to Simeon will be found at the commencement of the third persecution. 28 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. scourging, stoning, hanging, and worrying. Many were lacerated with red hot pincers, and others were thrown upon the horns of wild bulls. After having suffered these cruelties, the friends of the deceased Chris- tians were refused the privilege of burying their remains. The following were the most remarkable individual martyrs who suffered during this persecution. Dionysius the Areopagite, was an Athenian by birth, and educated in all the useful and ornamental literature of Greece. He travelled into Egypt to study astronomy, and made particular observations on the great supernatural eclipse, which happened at the time of our Saviour's crucifixion. On his return to Athens he was highly honoured by the people, and at length promoted to the dignity of senator of that cele- brated city. Becoming a convert to the gospel, he advanced from the worthy pagan magistrate to the pious christian pastor ; for even while involved in the darkness of idolatry, he was as morally just as when he became a disciple and minister of Christ. After his conversion, the sanc- tity of his conversation and purity of his manners recommended him so strongly to the Christians in general, that he was appointed bishop of Athens. He discharged this duty with the utmost diligence till the second year of this persecution, A. D. 69, when he was apprehended, and received the crown of martyrdom, by being beheaded. Nicomedes, a Christian of distinction at Rome, during Domitian's persecution, made great efforts to serve the afflicted ; comforting the poor, visiting the imprisoned, exhorting the wavering, and confirming the faithful. For those and other pious actions he was seized as a Christian, and was sentenced and scourged to death. Protasius and Gervasius were martyred at Milan ; but the particu- lar circumstances attending their death are not recorded. Timothy, the celebrated disciple of St. Paul, and bishop of Ephesus, was born at Lystra in the province of Lycaonia ; his father was a Gentile, and his mother a Jewess ; but both his parents and his grand- mother embraced Christianity, by which means Timothy was taught from his infancy the precepts of the gospel. Upon St. Paul's reaching Lycaonia, he ordained Timothy, and made him the companion of his labours. St. Paul mentions him with peculiar esteem, and declares, that he could find no one so truly united to him, both in heart and mind. Timothy attended St. Paul to Macedonia, where, together with Silas, he laboured in the propagation of the gospel. When St. Paul went to Achaia, Timothy was left behind to strengthen the faith of those already converted, and induce others to adopt the true faith. St Paul at length sent for Timothy to Athens, and then despatched him to Thes- salonica, to protest to the suffering Christians there against the terrors of the persecution which then prevailed. Having performed his mission, he returned to Athens, and there assisted St. Paul and Silas in compos- ing the two epistles to the Thessalonians. He then accompanied the apostle to Corinth, Jerusalem, and Ephesus. After performing several of his commissions for him and attending him on various journeys, the apostle constituted Timothy bishop of Ephesus, though he was only thirty years of age ; and in two admirable epistles gave him in- structions for his conduct. Timothy was so temperate in his living, PLINY'S DEFENCE OF CHRISTIANS. 29 that St. Paul blamed him for being too abstemious, and recommended to him the moderate use of wine to recruit his strength and spirits. St. Paul sent to Timothy to come to him in his last confinement at Rome ; and after that great apostle's martyrdom, he returned to Ephesus, where he zealously governed the church till nearly the close of the cen- tury. At this period the Pagans were about to celebrate a feast, the principal ceremonies of which were, that the people should carry sticks in their hands, go masked, and bear about the streets the images of their gods. When Timothy met the procession, he severely reproved them for their ridiculous idolatry, which so exasperated the people, that they fell upon him with their clubs, and beat him in so dreadful a man- ner, that he expired of the bruises two days after. ACCOUNT OF THE THIRD PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. Only one year elapsed between the second and third Roman persecu- tions. Upon Nerva succeeding Domitian, he gave a respite to the Chris- tians ; but reigning only thirteen months, his successor Trajan, in the tenth year of his reign, and in the year 108, began the third persecution against them. While this persecution raged, Plinius Secundus, a heathen philosopher, wrote to the emperor in favour of the Christians, 1 " to whose epistle Trajan returned this indecisive answer: — " That Christians ought not to be sought after, but when brought before the magistracy they should be punished." Provoked by this reply, Tertullian exclaimed in the following words : " O confused sentence ! he would not have them sought for as innocent men, and yet would have them punished as guilty." His officers were uncertain, if carried on with severity, how to interpret the meaning of his decree. Trajan, however, soon after wrote to Jeru- salem, and gave orders to exterminate the stock of David; in conse- quence of which, all that could be found of that race were put to death. s r This second Pliny was one of the most strenuous defenders of the persecuted Christians. He wrote to Trajan to stop the cruelties exercised against them. He observed in his letter, that he examined them, " and found some, who, though theij hud embraced Christianity, did not object to sacrifice to the gods, and to Trajan's image." — " Others," said he, " confessed they had been Christians, but afterwards denied the fact, affirming to me the whole sum of that sect or error to consist in this, that they were wont, at certain times appointed, to convene before day, and to sing certain hymns to one Christ their God, and to confederate among themselves : to abstain from all thejt, murder, and adultery ; to keep their faith, and to defraud no man; which done, then to depart for a time, and afterward to resort again to take food in company together, both men and women, one with another, and yet without any act of evil.'' "In the truth whereof to be further certified whether it were so or not, / caused two maidens to be laid on the rack, and with torments to be examined of the same. But finding no other thing in them, but only strange and immoderate superstition, I thought to cease of farther inquiry, till I might be further advertised in the matter from you." 8 When the order for extermination arrived at Jerusalem, it appears, according to Egissippus, that certain sectaries of the Jewish nation accused Simeon, then bishop of Jerusalem, and son of Cleophas, as being of the stock of David, and that he was a Christian. Some of his accusers, says Egissippus, were apprehended and proved to be of the stock of David, and so were justly put to death themselves who sought the destruction of others. Of Simeon, the blessed bishop, Egissippus thus writes, "The Lord's nephew, when he was accused to Attalus the pro-consul, by the malice of the Jews, to be of the line of David, and to be a Christian, was scourged many days together, being of age 120 years; which martyrdom he endured so firmly, that both the consul and the multitude wondered at the sight. 30 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. About this period the emperor Trajan was succeeded by Adrian, who continued the persecution with the greatest rigour. When Phocas, bishop of Pontus, refusing to sacrifice to Neptune, was, by his imme- diate order, cast first into a hot lime-kiln, and being drawn from thence, was thrown into a scalding bath till he expired. Trajan likewise commanded the martyrdom of Ignatius, bishop of Antioch. This holy man, when an infant, Christ took in his arms, and showed to his disciples, as one that would be a pattern of humility and innocence: he received the gospel afterwards from St. John the evan- gelist, and was exceedingly zealous in his mission and ministry. He boldly vindicated the faith of Christ before the emperor, for which he was cast into prison, and was tormented in a cruel manner ; for, after being dreadfully scourged, he was compelled to hold fire in his hands, and, at the same time, papers dipped in oil were put to his sides and lighted ! His flesh was then torn with hot pincers, and at last he was despatched by the fury of wild beasts. Ignatius had either presentiment or information of his fate; for writing to Polycarp at Smyrna, he thus described his adventures; " From Syria, even till I came to Rome, had I battle with beasts, as well by sea as land, both day and night, being bound in the midst of a cruel legion of soldiers who, the more benefits they received at my hands, behaved so much the worse unto me. But being now well ac- quainted with their injuries, I am taught every day more and more. And would to God I were once come to the beasts which are prepared for me; which also I wish with gaping mouths were ready to come upon me, whom also I will provoke that they, without delay, may devour me. And if they will not, unless they be provoked, I will then enforce them against myself. Now begin I to be a scholar; I esteem no visible things, not yet invisible things, so that I may get or obtain Christ Jesus. Let the fire, the gallows, the wild beasts, the breaking of bones, the pulling asunder of members, the bruising of my whole body, and the torments of the devil and hell itself come upon me, so that I may win Christ Jesus!" Symphhosa, a widow and her seven sons, were commanded by this emperor to sacrifice to the heathen deities. Refusing to comply with the impious request, the emperor, in a rage, told her, that for her obsti- nacy, herself and her sons should be slain, and ordered her to be carried to the temple of Hercules, where she was scourged while she hung up by the hair of her head: then a large stone was fastened to her neck, and she was thrown into a river. The sons were bound to seven posts, and being drawn up by pulleys, their limbs were dislocated: these tortures, not affecting their resolution, they were thus martyred — Cresentius, the eldest, was stabbed in the throat: Julian, the second, in the breast; Nemesius, the third, in the heart; Primitius, the fourth, in the navel; Justice, the fifth, in the back; Stacteus, the sixth, in the side ; and Eugenius, the youngest, was sawed asunder. About this time, Alexander, bishop of Rome, with his two deacons, were martyred; as were Quirinus and Hermes, with their families; DEATH OF ADRIAN. 31 Zenon, a Roman nobleman, and about ten thousand other Christians. 1 Many were crucified on Mount Ararat, crowned with thorns, and spears run into their sides, in imitation of Christ's passion. Eustachius, a brave and successful Roman commander, was ordered by the emperor to join an idolatrous sacrifice, in celebration of some of his own victories; but his faith was so strong, that he nobly refused it. Enraged at the denial, the ungrateful emperor forgot the services of this skilful com- mander, and ordered him and his whole family to be martyred. During the martyrdom of Faustines and Jovita, brothers and citizens of Bressia, their torments were so many, and their patience so firm, that Calocerius, a pagan, beholding them, was struck with admiration, and exclaimed, in ecstasy, "Great is the God of the Christians!" for which he was apprehended and put to death. Many other cruelties and rigours were exercised against the Christians, till Quodratus, bishop of Athens, made a learned apology in their favour before the emperor, who happened to be there; and Aristides, a philosopher of the same city, wrote an elegant epistle, which caused Adrian to relax in his severities, and relent in their favour. He went so far as to command that no Christian should be punished on the score of religion or opinion only; but this gave occasion against them to the Jews and pagans, for then they began to suborn false witnesses, to accuse them of crimes against the state. The history of Nicephorus makes mention of Anthia, a godly woman, who committed her son Eleutherius to Anicetus, bishop of Rome, to be brought up in the doctrines of the christian faith. He afterwards became bishop in Apulia, and was there beheaded with his mother Anthia. Justus also and Pastor, two brethren, ended their lives in a city of Spain called Complutum, by an exemplary martyrdom. Adrian died in the year 138, and was succeeded by Antoninus Pius, so amiable a monarch, that his people gave him the title of "The Father of Virtues." Immediately on his accession to the throne, he published an edict, forbidding further persecution of the Christians, and concluded it in these words: — " If any hereafter shall vex or trouble the Christians, having no other cause but that they are such, let the accused be released, and the accusers be punished." This stopped the persecution, and the Christians enjoyed a respite from their sufferings during this emperor's reign, though their enemies took every occasion to do them what injuries they could. u 1 Florigellus, the author of " Flores Historiarum," affirms that Alexander bishop of Rome was beheaded seven miles out of the city, in the year 105. Eusebius records no more of him, but that in the third year of Adrian he ended his life and office, after he had been bishop ten years. Various miracles are reported of this Alexander, in the canon legends, and lives of saints. A singular circumstance, well worthy of notice, is mentioned of him. He is said to have been the founder of holy water, which was mixed with salt, to purge and purify those on whom it is sprinkled, after receiving the priest's blessing. It is also believed that he was the first who ordained water to be mixed with wine in the chalice. u Adrian died of a bleeding at the nose in the year 129, according to some historians. He commanded the cessation of the persecutions against the Christians some years before his death; as is proved by Justin, who quotes his letter to Fuodanus, the pro-consul, in which he orders that nothing shall be done to the Christians, unless they are complained of as malefactors acting contrary to law. The piety and goodness of Antoninus were so great, 32 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. ACCOUNT OF THE FOURTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS, WHICH COMMENCED A. D. 162. Antoninus Pius was succeeded by Marcus Aurelius Antoninus Verus, who began the fourth persecution, in which many Christians were martyred, particularly in several parts of Asia, and France. Such were the cruelties used in this persecution, that many of the spectators shuddered with horror at the sight, and were astonished at the intrepidity of the sufferers. Some of the martyrs were obliged to pass, with their already wounded feet, over thorns, nails, sharp shells, &c. ; others were scourged till their sinews and veins lay bare ; and after suffering most excruciating tortures, they were destroyed by the most terrible deaths. Germanicus, a young and holy Christian, being delivered to the beasts on account of his faith, behaved with such astonishing courage, that several pagans became converts to a faith which inspired so much fortitude. This so enraged others, that they cried he merited death, as they did also of Polycarp, the pious and venerable bishop of Smyrna. At the death of Germanicus, many of the multitude wondering at the beloved martyr for his constancy and virtue, began suddenly to cry with a loud voice, "Destroy the wicked men, let Polycarp be sought for." And whilst a great uproar and tumult began to be raised upon these cries, a certain Phrygian, named Quintus, lately arrived, was so afflicted at the sight of the wild beasts, -that he rushed to the judgment seat, and abused the judges, for which he was put to death without mercy or delay. Polycarpus hearing that persons were seeking to apprehend him, escaped, but was discovered by a child. From this circumstance, and having dreamed that his bed suddenly became on fire, and was consumed in a moment, he concluded that it was God's will he should suffer martyrdom. He therefore did not attempt to make a second escape when he had an opportunity of doing it. Those who apprehended him were amazed at his serene countenance and gravity. After feasting them, he desired an hour for prayer, which being allowed, he prayed with such fervency, that his guards repented they had been instrumental in taking him. He was, however, carried before the pro-consul, con- demned, and conducted to the market place. Wood being provided, the holy man earnestly prayed to Heaven, after being bound to the stake ; and as the flames grew vehement, the executioners gave way on each side, the heat becoming intolerable. In the mean time the bishop sung praises to God in the midst of the flames, but remained uncon- sumed therein, and the burning of the wood spreading a fragrance around, the guards were much surprised. Determined, however, to put an end to his life, they struck spears into his body, when the quantity that he used to say, that he had rather save one citizen, than destroy one thousand of his adversaries. At the beginning of his reign, such was the state of the churchy as Adrian his predecessor had left it, that although there was no edict to persecute the Christians, yet the tumultuous rage of the heathen multitude did not cease to disturb and afflict the quiet people of God, imputing to the Christians whatever misfortune happened contrary to their desires. MURDER OF A LADY AND HER SONS. 33 of blood that issued from the wounds extinguished the flames. After considerable attempts, they put him to death, and burnt his body when dead, not being able to consume it while living. Twelve other Chris- tians who had been intimate with Polycarp, were soon after martyred. v Metro do it us, a minister who preached boldly, and Pionius, who made some excellent apologies for the christian faith, were likewise burnt. Carpus and Papilus, two worthy Christians, and Agathonica, a pious woman, suffered martyrdom at Pergamopolis, in Asia, about the same period. Felicitas, an illustrious Roman lady of a considerable family, and great virtues, was a devout Christian. She had seven sons, whom she had educated with the most exemplary piety. The empire being about this time grievously troubled with earthquakes, famine, and inunda- tions, the Christians were accused as the cause, and Felicitas was included in the accusation. The lady and her family being seized, the emperor gave orders to Publius, the Roman governor, to proceed against her. Upon this Publius began with the mother, thinking that if he could prevail to change her religion, the example would have great influence with her sons. Finding her inflexible, he changed his entreaties to menaces, and threatened destruction to herself and fa- mily. She despised his threats as she had done his promises ; on which he began with the sons, whom he examined separately. They all, how- ever, remained steadfast in the faith, and unanimous in their opinions, on which the whole family were ordered for execution. Januarius, the eldest, was scourged and pressed to death with weights ; Felix and Philip, the two next, had their brains dashed out with clubs; Sylvanus, the fourth, was murdered by being thrown from a precipice ; and the three younger sons, viz. Alexander, Vitalis, and Mertialis were all behead- ed. The mother was beheaded with the same sword as the three latter. Justin, the celebrated philosopher, fell a martyr in this persecution. He was a native of Neapolis, in Samaria, and was born A. D. 103. He had the best education the times could afford, and travelled into Egypt, the country where the polite tour of that age was made for im- provement. At Alexandria he was informed of every thing relative to the seventy interpreters of the sacred writings, and shewn the rooms, or rather cells, in which their work was performed. Justin was a great lover of truth, and an universal scholar ; he investigated the Stoic and Peripatetic philosophy, and attempted the Pythagorean system ; but the behaviour of one of its professors disgusting him, he applied himself to the Platonic, in which he took great delight. About the year 133, when he was thirty years of age, he became a convert to Christianity. Justin wrote an elegant epistle to the Gentiles, to convert them to the faith he v The ancient historians assert, that this extraordinary event had such an effect upon the people that they began to adore the martyr ; and the pro-consul was admonished not to deliver the body, lest the people should leave Christ and begin to worship him. It appears from the accounts of Ireneus and Eusebius, that Polycarp was a very aged man, who had served Christ eighty-six years, and laboured also in the ministry about the space of seventy years. He was a scholar and hearer of John the evangelist, and was placed by him in Smyrna. Of him also Ignatius makes mention in his epistle which he wrote in his journey to Rome, going towards his martyrdom, and commends to him the government of the church at Antioch, whereby it appears that Polycarp was then in the ministry. D 34 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. had newly acquired, and lived in so pure and innocent a manner, that he well deserved the title of a christian philosopher. He likewise em- ployed his talents in convincing the Jews of the truth of the christian rites, and spent much time in travelling, till he took up his abode in Rome, and fixed his habitation on the Veminal mount. He kept a pub- lic school, taught many who afterwards became great men, and wrote a treatise to confute heresies of all kinds. As the pagans began to treat the Christians with great severity, Justin wrote his first apology in their favour, and addressed it to the emperor Antoninus, to two princes whom he had adopted as his sons, and to the senate and people of Rome in general. This piece, which occasioned the emperor to publish an edict in favour of the Christians, displays great learning and genius. A short time after, he entered into frequent contests with Crescens, a person of a vicious life, but a celebrated cynic philosopher ; and his ar- guments appeared so powerful, yet disgusting to the cynic, that he re- solved on his destruction, which in the sequel he accomplished. The second apology of Justin was occasioned by the following circumstances : a man and his wife who were both evil characters, resided at Rome. The woman, however, becoming a convert to Christianity, attempted to reclaim her husband ; but not succeeding, she sued for a divorce, which so exasperated him, that he acccused her of being a Christian. Upon her petition, he dropped the prosecution and levelled his malice against Ptolemeus, who had converted her. Ptolemeus was condemned to die ; and one Lucius, with another person, for expressing themselves too freely upon the occasion, met with the same fate. Justin's apology upon these severities gave Crescens an opportunity of prejudicing the emperor against the writer of it ; upon which Justin and six of his companions were apprehended. Being commanded as usual to deny their faith, and sacrifice to the pagan idols, they refused to do either ; they were, there- fore, condemned to be first scourged and then beheaded. It appears that only seven pieces of the writings of this celebrated martyr, and great philosopher, are now extant, viz : The Two Apologies; An Exhortation to the Gentiles ; An Oration to the Greeks ; A Treatise on Divine Monarchy ; A Dialogue withTrypho the Jew; and An Epistle to Diagnetus. His Oratio, and Parcenesis ad Grecos, are well known. About this time many were beheaded for refusing to sacrifice to the image of Jupiter: in particular Concordus, a deacon of the city of Spoleto, being carried before the image, and ordered to worship it, not only refused, but spat in its face; for which he was severely tormented, and afterwards had his head cut off with a sword. At this time some of the northern nations having armed against Rome, the emperor marched to encounter them ; he was, however, drawn into an ambuscade, and dreaded the loss of his whole army. Surrounded by mountains and enemies, and perishing with thirst, the troops were driven to the last extremity. All the pagan deities were invoked in vain ; when the men belonging to the militine, or thundering legion, who were nearly all Christians, were commanded to call upon God for succour: they immediately withdrew from the rest, prostrated themselves upon the earth, and prayed fervently. A miraculous deliverance immediately ensued : a prodigious quantity of rain fell, which being caught by the men, and CONVERSION OF AN ARMY. 35 filling the dykes, furnished a sudden and astonishing relief. The empe- ror, in his epistle to the Roman senate, wherein the expedition is describ- ed, after mentioning the difficulties to which he had been driven, speaks of the Christians in the following manner. " When I saw myself notable to encounter with the enemies, I craved aid of our nation's gods; but finding no relief at their hands, and being- cooped up by the enemy, I caused those men whom we call Christians, to be sent for ; who being mustered, I found a considerable number of them, against whom I was more incensed than I had just cause, as I afterwards found : for, by a marvellous power, they forthwith used their endeavours, not with ammunition, drums, and trumpets, abhorring such preparations and furniture, but only praying to, and trusting in their God, whom they carry about with them in their consciences. It is there- fore to be believed, although we call them wicked men, that they worship God in their hearts ; for they, falling prostrate on the ground, prayed, not only for me, but for the army also which was with me, beseeching God to help me in our extreme want of food and fresh water (for we had been five days without water, and in our enemies land, even in the midst of Germany) : I say, falling upon their faces, they prayed to a God unknown to me, and immediately thereon fell from heaven a most cool and pleasant shower ; but amongst our enemies great store of hail, mixed with thunder and lightning : so that we soon perceived the invincible aid of the most mighty God to be with us ; therefore we give these men leave to profess Christianity, lest, by their prayers, we be pu- nished by the like : and I thereby make myself the author of all the evil that shall arise from the persecution of the Christian religion. " w It appears that the storm which so miraculously flashed in the faces of the enemy so intimidated them, that part deserted to the Roman army, the rest were defeated, and the revolted provinces were entirely recovered. This affair occasioned the persecution to subside for some time, at least in those parts immediately under the inspection of the emperor ; for we find that it soon after raged in France, particularly at Lyons, where the torture, to which many Christians were put, almost exceeds the powers of description. All manner of punishments were adopted, torments, and painful deaths ; such as being banished, plundered, hanged, burnt. Even the servants and slaves of opulent Christians were racked and tortured, to make them accuse their masters and employers. The following were the principal of these martyrs : Vetius Agathus, a young man, who having pleaded the Chris- tian cause, was asked if he was a Christian ; when answering in the affirmative, he was condemned to death. Many, animated by this young man's intrepidity, boldly owned their faith and suffered like him. Blandina, a Christian, but of weak constitution, being seized and tor- tured on account of her religion, received so much strength from Hea- ven, that her torturers became frequently tired ; and were surprised at her being able to bear her torments for so great a length of time, and with such resolution. Sanctus, a deacon of Vienna, was put to the w Marcus Aurelius, in this letter, states his army tc have consisted of 975,000 fighting men ; but this must be a prodigious overstatement. 36 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. torture, which he bore with great fortitude, and only cried. " I am a Christian." Red hot plates of brass were placed upon those parts of the body that were tenderest, which contracted the sinews ; but remain- ing inflexible, he was re-conducted to prison. Being brought from his place of confinement a few days afterwards, his tormentors were astonished to find his wounds healed, and his person perfect : however they again proceeded to torture him ; but not being able, at that time to take his life, they remanded him to prison, where he remained for some time, and was at length beheaded. Biblias, a timid woman, had been an apostate, but having returned to the faith, was martyred, and bore her sufferings with great patience * Attalus, of Pergamus, was another sufferer ; and Pothinus, the venerable bishop of Lyons, who was ninety years of age, was so treated by the enraged mob, that he expired *wo days after their outrage in the prison. At Lyons, exclusive of those already mentioned, the martyrs were compelled to sit in hot iron chairs till their flesh broiled. This was inflicted with peculiar seventy on Sanctus, already mentioned, and some others. Some were sown up in nets, and thrown on the horns of wild bulls ; and the carcases of those who died in prison, previous to the appointed time of execution, were thrown to dogs. Indeed, so far did the malice of the pagans proceed, that they set guards over the bodies while the beasts were devouring them, lest the friends of the deceased should get them by stealth; and the offals left by the dogs were ordered to be burnt. The martyrs of Lyons are said to have been forty-eight in number, and their executions happened in the year of Christ, 177. They all died with great fortitude, glorifying God and the Redeemer. Besides the above martyrs of Lyons, whom Mr. Fox enumerated together, many others suffered in that city, and different parts of the empire, soon after. Of these the principal were, Epipodius and Alex- ander, celebrated for their great friendship, and their christian union. The former was born at Lyons, the latter in Greece ; they were of great assistance to each other, by the continual practice of all manner of christian virtues and godliness. At the time the persecution began to rage at Lyons, they were in the prime of life, and to avoid its severities, they thought proper to withdraw to a neighbouring village. Here they were, for some time, concealed by a christian widow, named Alice. But the rage of their persecutors sought after them with indefatigable in- dustry, and pursued them to their place of concealment, whence they were committed to prison without examination. At the expiration of three days, being brought before the governor, they were examined in the presence of a crowd of heathens, when they confessed the divinity of Christ; on which the governor, being enraged at what he termed their insolence, said, " What signifies all the former executions, if some yet remain who dare acknowledge Christ!" They were then separated, that they should not condole with each other, and he began to tamper with Epipodius, the younger of the two. He pretended to pity his condition, and entreated him not to ruin him- self by obstinacy. " Our deities," continued he, " are worshipped by the greater part of the people in the universe, and their rulers ; we adore them with feasting and mirth, while you adore a crucified man : we, to SHOCKING DEATH OF EPIPODIUS. 37 honour them, launch into pleasures ; you, by your faith, are debarred from all that indulges the senses. Our religion enjoins feasting-, your's tasting ; our's the joys of licentious blandishments, your's the barren virtue of chastity. Can you expect protection from one who could not secure himself from the persecutions of a contemptible mob? Then quit a profession of such austerity, and enjoy those gratifications which the world affords, and which your youthful years demand." Epipodius, in reply, contemning his compassion, said, " Your pre- tended tenderness is actual cruelty ; and the agreeable life you describe is replete with everlasting death. Christ suffered for us, that our pleasures should be immortal, and hath prepared for his followers an eternity of bliss. The frame of man being composed of two parts, body and soul ; the first as mean and perishable, should be rendered subser- vient to the latter. Your idolatrous feasts may gratify the mortal, but they injure the immortal part : that cannot, therefore, be enjoying life which destroys the most valuable moiety of your frame. Your pleasures lead to eternal death, and our pains to eternal happiness." For this admirable speech, Epipodius was severely beaten, and then put to the rack; upon which being stretched, his flesh was torn with iron hooks. Having borne his torments with incredible patience and forti- tude, he was taken from the rack and beheaded. Alexander, his compa- nion, was brought before the judge two days after his friend's execution; and on his absolute refusal to renounce Christianity, he was placed on the rack and beaten by three executioners, who relieved each other. He bore his sufferings with as much fortitude as his friend had done, and the next day was crucified. These martyrs suffered A. D. 179; the first on the 20th of April, and the other in three days after. Valerian and Marcellus, who were nearly related to each other, were imprisoned at Lyons, in the year 177, for being Christians. By some means, however, they made their escape, and travelled different roads. The latter made several converts in the territories of Besanc.on and Chalons; but being apprehended, was carried before Priscus, the go- vernor of those parts. This magistrate, knowing Marcellus to be a Christian, ordered him to be fastened to some branches of a tree, v/hich were drawn for that purpose. When he was tied to different branches, they were let go, with a design to tear him to pieces by the suddenness of the rebound. This invention failing, he was conducted to Chalons, to be present at some idolatrous sacrifices, refusing to assist in them, he was put to the torture, and afterwards fixed up to the neck in the ground, in which position he expired, A. D. 179, after remaining three days. Valerian was also apprehended, and, by the order of Priscus, was first brought to the rack, and then beheaded in the same year as his relation Marcellus. About the same time the following martyrs suffered: Benignus, at Dijon; Spensippus, and others, at Langres; Androches, Thyrseus, and Felix, at Salieu; Sympoviam and Florella, at Antun; Severinus, Feli- cian, and Exuperus, at Vienna; Cecilia, the virgin, at Sicily; and Thrasus, bishop of Phrygia, at Smyrna. In the year 180 the emperor Antoninus died, and was succeeded by his son Commodus, who did not imitate his father in any respect. He 38 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. had neither his virtues nor his vices ; he was without his learning and his morality, and at the same time without his prejudices against Chris- tianity. His principal weakness was pride, and to that may be chiefly ascribed the errors of his reign; for having fancied himself Hercules, he sacrificed those of every creed to his vanity, who refused to subscribe to his own absurd opinions. In this reign Apollonius, a Roman senator, became a martyr. This eminent person was skilled in all the polite literature of those times, and in all the purest precepts taught by the blessed Redeemer. He was accused by his own slave Severus, upon an unjust and contradictory, but unrepealed edict of the emperor Trajan. This law condemned the accused to die, unless he recanted his opinion; and at the same time ordered the execution of the accuser for slander. Apollonius, upon this ridiculous statute was accused ; for though his slave Severus knew he must die for the accusation, yet such was his diabolical malice and desire of revenge, that he courted death in order to involve his master in the same destruction. As Apollonius refused to recant his opinions, he was, by order of his peers the Roman senators, to whom he had appealed, condemned to be beheaded. The sentence was exe- cuted on the 18th day of April, A. D. 186, his accuser having previ- ously had his legs broken, and been put to death. About this time succeeded Anicetus, Soter, and Eleutherus, about the year of our Lord 189. This Eleutherus, at the request of Lucius, King of Britain, sent to him Damianus and Fugatius, by whom the king was converted to the christian faith, and baptized about the year 179. Eusebius, Vincentius, Potentianus, and Peregrinus, for refusing to worship Commodus as Hercules, were likewise martyred." x This Commodus is said in history to have been so sure and steady-handed in casting the dart, that in the open theatre, before the people, he would encounter with the wild beasts, and be certain of striking them in the place specified. Among his vicious qualities, he was so far overcome in pride and arrogance, that he would be called Hercules, and many times would shew himself to the people, wishing to be counted king of men, as the lion is of beasts. Once on his birth-day, Commodus calling the people of Rome together, having his lion's skin upon him, made sacrifice to Hercules and Jupiter, causing it to be cried through the city that Hercules was the patron and defender of the city. There was at the same time at Rome, Vincentius, Eusebius, Peregrinus, and Potentianus, learned men, and instructors of the people, who, following the steps of the apostles, went from place to place, where the gospel was not yet preached, converting the Gentiles to the faith of Christ. These, hearing the madness of the emperor and the people, began to reprove their idolatrous blindness; and while teaching in some villages and towns, they discovered and converted the senator Julius. Vide Vincentius, lib. 10. cap. 11. and Chron. Henr. de Erfordia. About the time of Commodus, among other learned men and famous teachers whom God stirred up to confound the persecutors by learning and writing, as the martyrs to con- firm the truth with their blood, was Seraphion, bishop of Antioch, and Egissippus a writer of Ecclesiastical History from Christ's passion to his time. About the same time Heraclitus, first began to write annotations upon the New Testament. Theophilus bishop of Cesarea, Dionysius bishop of Corinth, a man famously learned, also wrote divers epistles to churches. By the letters of Dionysius, we understand it to be the custom at that time, to read in the churches such written epistles as were sent by bishops and teachers to the congregations, as appears by these words to the church of the Romans and to Soter, " This day we celebrate the holy dominical day, in which we have read your epistle, which also we will read for our exhortation ; like as we do read the epistle of Clement sent to us before." By him also mention is made of keeping of Sunday holy, of which we find no mention in FIFTH GENERAL PERSECUTION. 39 Julius, a Roman senator, becoming a convert to Christianity, was ordered by the emperor to sacrifice to him as Hercules. This Julius absolutely refused, and publicly professed himself a Christian. On this account, after remaining in prison a considerable time, he was in the year 190, pursuant to his sentence, beat to death with a club. ACCOUNT OF THE FIFTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. In the year 191, the emperor Commodus dying, was succeeded by Pertinax, and he was succeeded by Julianus, both of whom reigned but a short time. On the death of the latter, Severus became emperor in the year 192. When he had been recovered from a severe fit of sick- ness by a Christian, he became a great favourer of Christians generally and even permitted his son Caracalla to be nursed by a female of that persuasion. Hence, during the reigns of the emperors who successively succeeded Commodus, and some years of his reign, the Christians had a respite for several years from persecution. But the prejudice and fury of the ignorant multitude again prevailed, and the obsolete laws were put in execution against them. The pagans were alarmed at the progress of Christianity, and revived the calumny of placing incidental misfor- tunes to the account of its professors. Fire, sword, wild beasts, and imprisonments, were resorted to, and even the dead bodies of Christians were torn from their graves, and submitted to every insult: yet the gospel withstood the attacks of its barbarous enemies. Tertullian, who lived in this age, informs us, that if the Christians had collectively with- drawn themselves from the Roman territories, the empire would have been greatly depopulated. Victor, bishop of Rome, suffered martyrdom in the first year of the third century, viz. A. D. 201, though the circumstances are not ascer- tained. Leonidas, the father of the celebrated Origen, was beheaded for being a Christian. Previous to the execution, his son, in order to encourage him, wrote to him in these remarkable words : " Beware, Sir, that your care for us does not make you change your resolution." Many of Ori- gen's hearers likewise suffered martyrdom ; particularly two brothers, named Plutarchus and Serenus : another Serenus, Heron, and Heraclides were beheaded. Rhais had boiling pitch poured upon her head, and was then burnt. Marcella her mother, and Potamiena her sister, were exe- cuted in the same manner as Rhais. Basilides, an officer belonging to the army, who was ordered to attend their execution, became a convert on witnessing their fortitude. When Basilides, as an officer, was required to take a certain oath, he refused, saying, that he could not ancient authors before his time, except only in Justin the martyr, who in his description declares on two occasions especially used for Christians to congregate together: — first, when any convert was to be baptized, the second was upon the Sunday, which was wont for two causes then to be hallowed: first, because upon that day God began the creation; secondly, because Christ upon that day first shewed himself, after his resurrection, to his disciples. 40 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. swear by the Roman idols, as he was a Christian. The people could not at first believe what they heard ; but he had no sooner confirmed his assertion, than he was dragged before the judge, committed to prison, and beheaded immediately. Irenseus, bishop of Lyons, was born in Greece, and received a chris- tian education. It is generally supposed, that the account of the per- secution at Lyons was written by him. He succeeded the martyr Pothinus as bishop of Lyons, and ruled his diocese with great propriety ; he was a zealous opposer of heresies in general, and wrote a celebrated tract against heresy, which had great influence at the time. Victor, the bishop of Rome, wanting to impose a particular mode of keeping Easter there, it occasioned some disorder amongst the Christians. In particular, Irenaeus wrote him a synodical epistle in the name of the Gallic churches. This zeal, in favour of Christianity, pointed him out as an object of resentment to the emperor ; and he was accordingly beheaded in A. D. 202. The persecutions about this time extended to Africa, and many were martyred in that part of the globe ; the principal of whom was Perpetua, a married lady of about twenty-six years of age, with an infant child at her breast. She was seized for being a Christian. Her father, who tenderly loved her, went to console her during her confine- ment, and attempted to persuade her to renounce Christianity. Perpe- tua, however, resisted every entreaty. This resolution so much incensed her father, that he beat her severely, and did not visit her for some days after ; and, in the mean time, she and some others who were confined were baptised, as they were before only catechumens. On being carried before the pro-consul Minutius, she was commanded to sacrifice to the idols: refusing, she was ordered to a dark dungeon, and deprived of her child. Two deacons, however, Tertius and Pomponius, who had the care of persecuted Christians, allowed her some hours daily to inhale the fresh air, during which time she had the satisfaction of being allowed to nourish her infant. Foreseeing that she should not long be permitted to take care of it, she recommended it strongly to her mother's attention. Her father at length paid her a second visit, and again entreated her to renounce Christianity. His behaviour was now all tenderness and humanity; but inflexible to all human influence, she knew she must leave every thing for Christ's sake; and she only said to him, " God's will must be done." He then, with an almost bursting heart,left her to her fate. Perpetua gave the strongest proof of fortitude and strength of mind on her trial. The judge entreated her to consider her father's tears, her infant's helplessness, and her own life; but triumphing over all the sen- timents of nature, she forgot the thought of both mental and corporeal pain, and determined to sacrifice all the feelings of human sensibility, to that immortality offered by Christ. In vain did they attempt to per- suade her that their offers were gentle, and her own religion otherwise. Aware that she must die, her father's parental tenderness returned, and in his anxiety he attempted to carry her off, on which he received a severe blow from one of the officers. Irritated at this, the daughter immedi- ately declared, that she felt that blow more severely than if she had re- CRIMES ALLEGED AGAINST CHRISTIANS. 41 ceived it herself. Being conducted back to prison, she waited for exe- cution, when several other persons were to be executed' with her ; of these wore Felicitas, a married Christian lady, who was with child at the time of her trial. The procurator, when he examined her, entreated her to have pity upon herself and her condition; but she replied, that his com- passion was useless, for no thought of self-preservation could induce her to any idolatrous proposition. She was delivered in prison of a girl, which was adopted by a christian woman as her own. Revocatus was a catechumen of Carthage, and a slave. The names of the other prisoners who were to suffer upon this occasion, were Satur, Saturninus, and Secundulus. When the day of execution arrived, they were led to the amphitheatre. Satur, Saturninus, and Revocatus, having the fortitude to denounce God's judgments upon their persecutors, they were ordered to run the gauntlet between the hunters, such as had the care of the wild beasts. The hunters being drawn up in two ranks, they ran between, and as they passed were severely lashed. Felicitas and Perpetua were about to be stripped, in order to be thrown to a beast ; but some of the spectators, through decency, desired that they might remain as they were clothed, which request was granted. The beast made his first attack upon Perpetua, and stunned her ; he then attacked Felicitas, and wounded her much ; but not killing them, the executioner did that office with a sword. Revocatus and Satur were destroyed in the same manner; Saturninus was beheaded; and Secundulus died in prison. These executions took place in the month of March, A. D. 205. The crimes and false accusations laid against the Christians at this time, were sedition and rebellion against the emperor, sacrilege, murder of infants, incestuous pollution, eating raw flesh, libidinous converse, for which the people called gnostici were disgraced. It was objected against them that they worshipped the head of an ass, a report pro- pagated by the Jews. They were charged also with worshipping the sun, because before the sun rose, they met together, singing their morning hymns to the Lord, and because they prayed together towards the east; but particularly because they would not with them worship the idolatrous gods of their adversaries. J Seperatus, and twelve others, were likewise beheaded ; as was An- droclus in France. Asclepiades, bishop of Antioch, suffered many tor- tures, but was spared his life. Cecilia, a young lady of a good family in Rome, was married to a gentleman named Valerian. Being a Chris- tian herself, she soon persuaded her husband to embrace the same faith; and his conversion was speedily followed by that of Tibertius his brother. This information drew upon them all the vengeance of the laws ; the two brothers were beheaded ; and the officer who led them to execution becoming their convert, suffered in a similar manner. When the lady was apprehended, she was doomed to death in the following manner : she was placed in a scalding bath, and having remained there a con- siderable time, her head was stuck off with a sword, A. D. 222. y According to Tertullian, the captains and presidents of the persecution under the emperor Severus, were Hilerianus, Vigellius, Claudius, Hermianus, ruler of Cappadocia, Cecilius, Capella, Vespronius, also Demetrius, mentioned by Cyprian, and Aquila, judge of Alexandria, of whom Eusebius, in his 6th book, gives a particular account. 42 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Calistus, bishop of Rome, was martyred A. D. 224; but the manner of his death is not recorded: and in A. D. 232, Urban, bishop of Rome, met the same fate. Agapetus, a boy of Praeneste, in Italy, who was only fifteen years of age, refusing to sacrifice to the idols, was severely scourged and then hanged up by the feet, and boiling water poured over him. He was afterwards worried by wild beasts, and at last beheaded. The officer, named Antiochus, who superintended this execution, while it was performing, fell suddenly from his judicial seat, and cried out in extreme agony from sudden disease ! ACCOUNT OF THE SIXTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. Maximus, who was emperor in A. D. 235, raised a persecution against the Christians; and in Cappadocia, the president Semiramus, made great efforts to exterminate the Christians from that kingdom. A Roman soldier, who refused to wear a laurel crown bestowed on him by the emperor, and confessed himself a Christian, was scourged, imprisoned, and put to death. Pontianus, bishop of Rome, for preaching against idolatry, was banished to Sardinia, and there destroyed. Anteros, a Grecian, who succeeded this bishop in the see of Rome, g'ave so much offence to the government by collecting the acts of the martyrs, that, he suffered martyrdom, after having held his dignity only forty days. Pammachius, a Roman senator, with his family and other Christians, to the number of forty-two, were, on account of their religion, all beheaded in one day, and their heads fixed on the city gates. Simplicius, another senator, suffered martyrdom in a similar way. Calepodius, a christian minister, after being inhumanly treated, and barbarously dragged about the streets, was thrown into the river Tiber with a mill-stone fastened about his neck. Quiritus, a Roman nobleman, with his family and domestics, were, on account of their christian principles, put to most excruciating torture, and then the most painful death. This nobleman suffered the confiscation of his effects, poverty, reviling, imprisonment, scourging, torture, and loss of life, for the sake of his Redeemer. Martina, a noble and beautiful virgin, suffered martyrdom for Christ, being variously tortured, and afterwards beheaded ; and Hippolitus, a christian prelate, was tied to a wild horse, and dragged through fields, stony places, and brambles, till he died. While this persecution continued, numerous Christians were slain without trial, and buried in indiscriminate heaps: sometimes fifty or sixty being cast into a pit together. Maximus, died in A. D. 238; he was succeeded by Gordian, during whose reign, and that of his successor Philip, the church was free from persecution for the space of more than ten years; but in the year 249, a violent persecution broke out in Alex- andria. It is, however, worthy of remark, that this was done at the instigation of a pagan priest, without the emperor's knowledge. At this time the fury of the people being great against the Christians, they broke open their houses, stole the ljest of* their property, destroyed the PERSECUTIONS UNDER DEC1US. 43 rest, and murdered the owners; the universal cry was, "Burn them, burn them! kill them, kill them!" The names of the martyrs, three excepted, and the particulars of this affair, however, have not been recorded. The three martyrs known were, Metus, an aged and venerable Christian, who refusing to blaspheme his Saviour, was beaten with clubs, pierced with sharp reeds, and at length stoned to death. Quinta, a christian woman, being carried to the temple, and refusing to worship the idols there, was dragged by her feet over sharp stones, scourged with whips, and at last killed in the same manner as Metus. And Appollonia, an ancient maiden lady, confessing herself a Christian, the mob dashed out her teeth with their fists, and threatened to burn her alive. A fire was accordingly prepared for the purpose, and she was fastened to a stake: requesting to be unloosed, it was done, on a supposition that she meant to recant, when, to their astonishment , she immediately threw herself into the flames and was consumed. ACCOUNT OF THE SEVENTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. In the year 249, Decius being emperor of Rome, a dreadful persecu- tion was begun against the Christians. This was occasioned partly by the hatred he bore to his predecessor Philip, who was deemed a Chris- tian, and partly by his jealousy concerning the amazing progress of Christianity ; for the heathen temples were almost forsaken, and the Christian churches crowded with proselytes. Decius, provoked at this, attempted, as he said, to extirpate the name of Christian; and, unfor- tunately for the cause of the gospel, many errors had about this time crept into the church : the Christians were at variance with each other, and a variety of contentions ensued among them. The heathens in general were ambitious to enforce the imperial decrees upon this occa- sion, and looked upon the murder of a Christian as a merit to be coveted. The martyrs were, therefore, innumerable. Fabian, bishop of Rome, was the first person of eminence who felt the severity of this persecution. The deceased emperor, Philip, had, on account of his integrity, committed his treasure to the care of this good man; bul Decius, not finding so much as his avarice led him to expect, determined to wreak his vengeance on the good prelate. He was accordingly seized, and on the 20th of January, A. D. 250, suffered martyrdom, by decapitation. Abdon and Semen, two Persians, were apprehended as strangers; but being found Christians, were put to death, on account of their faith. Moyses, a priest, was beheaded for the same reason. Julian, a native of Celicia, as we are informed by St. Chrysostom, was seized for being a Christian. He was frequently tortured, but still remained inflexible; and though often brought from prison for execution, was again remanded, to suffer greater cruelties. He, at length, was obliged to travel for twelve months together, from town to town, that he might be exposed to the insults of the populace. When all endeavours to make him recant his religion were found ineffectual, he was brought before a judge, stripped, and whipped in a 44 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. dreadful manner. He was then put into a leathern bag, with a number of serpents and scorpions; and in that condition thrown into the sea. Peter, a young man, amiable for the superior qualities of his body and mind, was apprehended for being a Christian, at Lampsacus, on the Hellespont, and carried before Optimus, pro-consul of Asia. On being commanded to sacrifice to Venus, he said, " I am astonished that you should wish me to sacrifice to an infamous woman, whose de- baucheries even your own historians record, and whose life consisted of such actions as your laws would punish. No ! I shall offer the true God the sacrifice of praise and prayer." Optimus, on hearing this, ordered the prisoner to be stretched upon a wheel, by which his bones were broken in a shocking manner; but his torments only inspired him with fresh courage; he smiled on his persecutors, and seemed, by the serenity of his countenance, not to upbraid, but to applaud his tormentors. At length the pro-consul or- dered him to be beheaded, and the command was immediately executed. Nichomachus, being brought before the pro-consul as a Christian, was ordered to sacrifice to the pagan idols. He answered, "I cannot pay that respect to devils which is due only to the Almighty." The speech so enraged the pro-consul, that Nichomachus was put to the rack. He bore the torture for some time with patience and great resolution; but, at length, when ready to expire with pain, he had the weakness to abjure his faith, and become an apostate. He had no sooner given this proof of his frailty than he fell into the greatest agonies, dropped down, and expired immediately. Denisa, a young woman, only sixteen years of age, who beheld this signal judgment, suddenly exclaimed; " O, unhappy wretch, why would you buy a moment's ease, at the expense of a miserable eternity;" Optimus hearing this, called to her, and asked if she was a Christian? She replied in the affirmative; and being commanded to sacrifice to the idols, refused. Optimus enraged at her resolution, gave her over to two libertines, who took her to their own home, and would have ruined her, but for her astonishing courage. At midnight they were appalled by a frightful vision, when both of them fell at the feet of Denisa, and implored her prayers that they might not feel the effects of divine ven- geance for their brutality. But this event did not diminish the cruelty of Optimus; for the lady was beheaded soon after by his command. Andrew and Paul, two companions of Nichomachus the martyr, on confessing themselves Christians, were condemned to die, and delivered to the multitude to be stoned. Accordingly, A. D. 251, they suffered martyrdom by stoning, and expired, calling on the blessed Redeemer. Alexander and Empimacus, of Alexandria, were apprehended for being Christians, and on confessing the accusation, were beat with staves, torn with hooks, and at length burnt. We are informed by Eusebius, that four female martyrs suffered on the same day, and at the same place, but not in the same manner ; for these were beheaded. Lucian and Marcian, two pagans and magicians, becoming converts to Christianity, to make amends for their former errors, adopted the life of hermits, and subsisted upon bread and water. After spending some time in this manner, they reflected that their life was inefficacious, and determined CRUELTIES IN GREECE, &c. 45 to leave their solitude to make converts to Christianity. With this pious and laudable resolution they became zealous preachers. Per- secution, however, raging at the time, they were seized upon, and eanied before Sabinus, governor of Bithynia. On being asked by what authority they took upon themselves to preach, Lucian answered "That the law of charity and humanity obliged all men to endeavour to convert their neighbours, and to do every thing in their power to rescue them from the snares of the devil." Marcian said, "Their conver- sion was by the same grace which was given to St. Paul, who, from a zealous persecutor of the church, became a preacher of the gospel." When the pro-consul found that he could not prevail on them to renounce their faith, he condemned them to be burnt alive, and the sentence was soon after executed. Trypho and Respieius, two eminent men, were seized as Christians, and imprisoned at Nice. They were soon after put to the rack, which they bore with admirable patience for three hours, and uttered the praises of the Almighty the whole time. They were then exposed naked in the open air, which benumbed all their limbs. When remanded to prison, they remained there for a considerable time ; and then the cruelties of their persecutors were again evinced. Their feet were pierced with nails; they were dragged through the streets, scourged, torn with hooks, scorched with lighted torches, and at length beheaded, on the 1st of February, A. D. 251. Agatha, a Sicilian lady, was remarkable for her beauty and endow- ments: the former was so great that Quintain, governor of Sicily, became enamoured of her, and made many attempts upon her virtue. The governor being known as a great libertine and a bigoted pagan, the lady thought proper to withdraw from the town ; but being discovered in her retreat, she was apprehended and brought to Catana, when, finding herself in the power of an enemy both to her soul and body, she recommended herself to the protection of the Almighty, and prayed for death. In order if possible to gratify his passion, the governor transferred the virtuous lady to Aphroclica, an infamous and licentious woman, who tried every artifice to win her to prostitution; but all her efforts were in vain. When Aphrodica acquainted Quintain with the inefficacy of her endeavours, he changed his desire into resentment, and, on her confessing that she was a Christian, he determined to gratify his revenge. He therefore ordered her to be scourged, burnt with hot irons, and torn with sharp hooks. Having borne these torments, with admira- ble fortitude, she was next laid upon live coals, intermingled with glass, and being carried back to prison, she there expired on the 5th of February, A. D. 251. Cyril, bishop of Gortyna, was seized by order of Lucius, the governor of that place, who first exhorted him to obey the imperial mandate, offer sacrifice to idols, and save his venerable person from destruction ; for he was then eighty-four years of age. The good prelate replied, that he could not agree to any such requisitions ; but as he had long taught others to save their souls, now he should only think of his own salvation. When the governor found all his persuasion in vain, he pronounced sentence against the venerable Christian in these words — 46 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. " I order that Cyril, who has lost his senses, and is a declared enemy of our gods, shall be burnt alive." The good and worthy prelate heard this sentence without emotion, walked cheerfully to the place of execution, and underwent his martyrdom with a resolution which astonished all, and converted some. In the island of Crete persecution raged with great fury: the go- vernor being exceedingly active in executing the imperial decrees, that place streamed with the blood of many Christians. The principal Cretan martyrs whose names have been transmitted to us, are these — Theodulus, Saturnius, and Europus, inhabitants of Gortyna, who had been confirmed in their faith by Cyril, bishop of that city: Eunicianus, Zeticus, Cleomenes, Agathopas, Bastides, and Euaristus, were brought from different parts of the island on accusations relating to their profession of Christianity. On their trial they were commanded to sacrifice to Jupiter, and declining, the judge threatened them with the severest tortures. To these menaces they unanimously answered, "That to suffer for the sake of the Supreme Being would, to them, be the sublimest of plea- sures." The judge then attempted to gain their veneration for the heathen deities, by descanting on their merits, and recounting some of their mythological histories. This gave the prisoners an opportunity of remarking on the absurdity of such fictions, and of pointing out the folly of paying adoration to ideal deities and material images. Provoked to hear his favourite idols ridiculed, the governor ordered them to be put to the rack, the tortures of which they sustained with surprising fortitude. They at length suffered martyrdom, A. D. 251; being all beheaded at the same time. Babylas, 2 a Christian of a liberal educa- 7 With respect to Babylas, bishop of Antioch, Eusebius and Zonaras assert that he died in prison, at the time of Decius, as did Alexander, bishop of Jerusalem. In the treatise of Chrysostom, entitled, " Contra Gentiles," there is an interesting history of one Babylas, a martyr, who was put to death about this time, for resisting an emperor, by not suffering him to enter into the temple of the Christians after a cruel murder; the story of which is, that there was a certain emperor, who, upon concluding peace with a certain nation, had received for hostage the son of the king, a youth of tender age, on the condition that neither he should be molested by them, nor they be vexed by him. Upon this the king's son was delivered to the emperor, who caused him in a short time to be slain. This fact being committed, the tyrant would enter into the temple of the Christians, where Babylas, being bishop or minister, resisted him. The emperor, in great rage, had him forthwith bound in prison, with as many irons as he could bear, and from thence shortly after brought to execution. Babylas went boldly to his martyrdom, and desired after his death to be buried in his irons and bands. The story adds, that in the reign of Constantinus, Gallus, then governor of the eastern parts, caused his body to be removed into the suburbs of Antioch, called Daphnes, where was a temple of Apollo, famous for oracles and answers given by that idol. In this temple, after the arrival of the body of Babylas, the idol ceased to give any more oracles, complaining that the place was wont to be consecrated unto him, but now it was full of dead men's bodies. Thus the oracles there ceased for that time till the age of Julianus; who on learning why they ceased, caused the bones of the holy martyr to be removed from thence by the Christians, whom he called Galileans. They coming in a great multitude, both men, maidens, and children, to the tomb of Babylas, transported his bones according to the command of the emperor, singing by the way, the verse of the psalm, "Confounded be all that worship images, and all that glory in idols, "etc. This coming to the emperor's ears, he flew into a rage with the Christians, and excited persecution against them. Zonaras, however, declares the cause otherwise, saying, that as soon as the body of Babylas and other martyrs were removed, the LIFE OF BISHOP ALEXANDER. 47 tion, became bishop of Antioch in A. D. 237, on the demise of Zebinus. He acted with inimitable zeal, and governed the church during the most tempestuous times with admirable prudence. The first misfortune that happened to Antioch during his mission, was the siege by Saphor, king of Persia; who having over-run all Syria, took and plun- dered this city among others, and used the christian inhabitants with greater severity than the rest. His cruelties, however, were not lasting, for Gordian, the emperor, appearing at the head of a powerful army, An- tioch was retaken, the Persians driven entirely out of Syria, and pursued into their own country, while several places in the Persian territories fell into the hands of the emperor. Gordian dying, in the reign of Decius, that emperor came to Antioch, where, having a desire to visit an assembly of Christians, Babylas opposed him, and refused to let him enter. The emperor dissembled his anger for the time; but soon sending for the bishop, he sharply reproved him for his insolence, and ordered him to sacrifice to the pagan deities as an expiation for his supposed crime. Having refused this, he was committed to prison, loaded with chains, treated with great severity, and then beheaded, together with three young men who had been his pupils. On going to the place of execu- tion, the bishop exclaimed, " Behold me and the children that the Lord hath given me." They were martyred, A. D. 251, and the chains worn by the bishop in prison were buried with him. Alexander, bishop of Jerusalem, about this time was cast into prison on account of his religion, where he died through the severity of his confinement. When Serapian was apprehended at Alexandria, he had his bones broken, and was thrown from a high loft, and killed by the fall. Julianus, an old man, lame with the gout; and Cronion, another Chris-* tian, were bound on the backs of camels, severely scourged, and then thrown into a fire and consumed. A spectator who seemed to commise- rate them was ordered to be beheaded, as a punishment for his sympathy and tenderness. Macar, a Lybian Christian, was burnt. .Horonater and Isidorus, Egyptians, with Dioschorus, a boy of fifteen, after suffer- ing many torments, met with a similar fate; and Nemesion, another Egyptian, was first tried as a thief; but being acquitted, was accused of Christianity, which confessing, he was scourged, tortured, and finally burnt. Ischyrian, the Christian servant of an Egyptian noble- man and magistrate, was run through with a pike by his own master, for refusing to sacrifice to idols. Venatius, a youth of fifteen, was martyred in Italy; and forty virgins, at Antioch, after being imprisoned and scourged, were destroyed by fire. The emperor Decius having erected a pagan temple at Ephesus, in the year 251, he commanded all who were in that city to sacrifice to the idols. This order was nobly refused by seven of his own soldiers, viz. Maximianus, Martianus, Joannes, Malchus, Dyonisius, Constantinus, and Seraion. The emperor wishing to prevail on the soldiers to prevent their fate by his entreaties and lenity, gave them a respite till he returned temple of the idol, with the image, was consumed by a fire in the night. Nicephorus, in his firth book, makes mention of another Babylas, who suffered under Decius, and was bishop of Nicomedia. 48 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. from a journey. In the absence of the emperor they escaped, and hid themselves in a cavern; but he was informed of it on his return, the mouth of the cavern was closed up, and they all were starved or smothered to death. Theodora, a beautiful young lady of Antioch, on refusing to sacrifice to the Roman idols, was condemned to the brothel, that her virtue might be sacrificed. Didymus, a Christian, then disguised himself in the habit of a Roman soldier, went to the house, informed Theodora who he was, and prevailed on her to make her escape in his dress. Being found in the brothel instead of the lady, he was taken before the president, to whom confessing the truth, sentence of death was immediately pronounced against him. In the mean time, Theodora, hearing that her deliverer was likely to suffer, came to the judge, threw herself at his feet, and begged that the sentence might fall only on her as the guilty person ; but the inflexible judge condemned both ; and they were executed accordingly, being first beheaded, and their bodies afterwards burnt. Secundianus having been accused as a Christian, was conveyed to pri- son by some soldiers. On their way, Verianus and Marcellinus said, " Where are you carrying the innocent ?" This interrogatory occasioned them to be seized; and all three, after having been tortured, were hang- ed, and their heads were cut off when they were dead. Origen, the celebrated presbyter and catechist of Alexandria, at the age of sixty-four, was seized, thrown into a loathsome prison, loaded with chains, his feet placed in the stocks, and his legs extended to the utmost for several days. He was threatened with fire, and tormented by every means that the most infernal imagination could suggest. But his Christian fortitude sustained him. Such was the rigour of the judge, that his tortures were ordered to be as lingering as possible, that death might not too soon put a period to his miseries. During this cruel interval, the emperor Decius died, and Gallus, who succeeded him, en- gaging in a war with the Goths, the Christians met with a respite. Thus Origen obtained his enlargement, and retiring to Tyre, he re- mained there till his death, which happened when he was in the sixty- ninth year of his age. a a The learned who have written the life of Origen assert, that he was of wit quick and sharp, patient of labour, a man who knew many languages, of a spare diet, of a strict and abstemious life; he went barefoot ; and was a strict observer of that saying of the Lord, " Provide but one coat, &c." He is said to have written as much as seven notaries. The number of his books, by the account of Jerome, amounted to seven thousand volumes, copies of which he used to sell for the value of threepence or a little more, for the support of his life. He kept seven maids in constant employ to copy for him. So zealous he was in the cause of Christ and his martyrs, that he would assist and exhort them going to their death, and kiss them, insomuch that he was near being stoned by the multitude; and sometimes by providing for Christian men, had his house guarded with soldiers, for the safety of those who daily resorted to hear his readings. These historians also mention the following curious circumstance, which is confirmed by Eusebius. When Leonidas, the father of Origen, was martyred, his son, then seventeen years old, would have suffered by his own wish, had not his mother privily in the night eonveyed away his clothes and his shirt. On which, more for shame to be seen than for fear to die, he was constrained to remain at home ; and when he could do nothing else, he wrote to his father a letter with these words: "Take heed to yourself, that you turn not your thought and purpose for our sake." Such a fervency had young Origen DEATH OF CORNELIUS AND OTHERS. 49 In the city of Antioch, Vincentius, lib. 11, speaks of forty virgins, martyrs, who suffered in the persecution of Decius. In the country of Phrygia, and in the town of Lampsar, Vincentius also speaks of one Peter, who was there apprehended, and suffered bitter torments for Christ's name, under Optimus, the pro-consul : and in Troada he also speaks of other martyrs that suffered, whose names were Andrew, Paul, Nichomachus, and Dionysia, a virgin. He adds, that in Babylon, many christian confessors were found who were led away into Spain to be executed. In the country of Cappadocia, and the city of Cesarea, Germanus, Theophilus, Cesarius, and Vitalis, suffered martyrdom for Christ; and in the same book mention is also made of Polychronius, bishop of Babylon, and of Nestor, bishop of Cesarea, who died martyrs. At Perside, in the town of Cardalia, Olympiades and Maximus. In Tyrus also, Anatolia, a virgin, and Audax, a senator, gave their lives for a testimony to the name of Christ. Gallus having concluded his wars, a plague broke out in the empire ; and sacrifices to the pagan deities were ordered by the emperor to appease their wrath. On the Christians refusing to comply with these rites, they were charged with being the authors of the cala- mity : thus the persecution spread from the interior to the extreme parts of the empire, and many fell martyrs to the impetuosity of the rabble, as well as the prejudice of the magistrates. Cornelius, the Christian bishop of Rome, was, among others, seized upon this occasion. He was first banished to Centum-Cellae, now called Civitia Vecchia ; and after having been cruelly scourged, was, on the 14th of September, A. D. 252, beheaded; having been bishop fifteen months and ten days. Lucius, who succeeded Cornelius as bishop of Rome, was the son of Porphyrius, and a Roman by birth. His vigilance as a pastor, occasioned him to be banished ; but in a short time he was permitted to' return from exile. Soon after, however, he was apprehended, and beheaded, March the 4th, A. D. 253. This bishop was succeeded by to the doctrine of Christ's faith, partly by the diligent education of his father, who brought him up from his youth in good literature, but especially in reading the holy scripture, that many times he would put questions to his father of the meaning of certain parts of the sacred book. Insomuch that his father would frequently uncover his breast when asleep, and kiss it, giving thanks to God who had made him so happy a father of such a child. After the death of his father, all his goods being confiscated to the emperor, he, with his poor mother, and six brethren, were reduced to such extreme poverty, that he sup- ported both himself and them by keeping a school. The treatise of the venerable Bede, cited by Henricus de Orford, gives the following list of those who suffered in the reign of Decius, the particulars of whose martyrdoms have not been handed down. Hippolitus and Concordia, Hiereneus and Abundus, Victoria, a virgin, being noble personages of Antioch ; Bellias, bishop of the city of Apollonia, Lacus, Tirsus, and Gallictus. Nazanzo, Triphon, in the city of Egypt called Tamas, Phileas, a bishop, Philocomus, with many others in Persia, and Philcronius, bishop of Babylon • Thesiphon, bishop of Pamphilia; Neffor, bishop in Corduba ; Parmenias, a priest, with many more. In the province called Colonia, Circensis, Marianus, and Jacobus. In Africa, Nemesianus, Eelix, Rogatianus, a priest, and Eelicissimus. At Rome, Jovinus and Basileus; Tertullianus, Valerianus, Nemesius, Sempronianus, and Olympius. In Spain, Teragon. At Verona, Zeno, a bishop; and Theodorus, sui named Gregorius, bishop of Pontus. Vincentius in his eleventh book makes mention of certain children suffering mar- tyrdom under the same persecution, in a city of Tuscia, called Aretium. 50 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Stephanus, a man of fiery temper, who held the dignity few years, and might probably have fallen a martyr, had not the emperor been murdered by his general iEmilian, when a profound peace succeeded throughout the empire, and persecution was suffered to subside. Many of the errors which crept into the Church at this time, arose from placing human reason in competition with revelation ; but the fal- lacy of such arguments being proved by some able divines, the opinions they had created vanished before the sublimity and power of christian truth. ACCOUNT OF THE EIGHTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. After the death of Gallus, iEmilian, the general, having many ene- mies in the army, was slain, and Valerian elected to *he empire. This emperor, for the space of four years, governed with moderation, and treated the Christians with peculiar lenity and respect ; but in the year 257, an Egyptian magician, named Macriamus, gained a great ascen- dency over him, and persuaded him to persecute the Christians. Edicts were accordingly published, and the persecution which began in the montli of April, continued for three years and six months. The martyrs that fell in this persecution were innumerable, and their tortures and deaths are various. The most eminent were the follow- ing — Rufina and Secunda, two beautiful and accomplished ladies, daughters of Asterius, a gentleman of eminence in Rome. Rufina the elder, was designed in marriage for Armentarius, a young nobleman ; and Secunda, the younger, for Verinus, a person of rank and immense wealth. These suitors, at the time the persecution commenced, were both Christians ; but when danger appeared, to save their fortunes they renounced their faith. They took great pains to persuade the ladies to do the same, but failed in their purpose; and as a method of safety, Rufina and Secunda left the kingdom. The lovers finding themselves disappointed informed against the ladies, who being apprehended as Christians, were brought before Junius Donatus, governor of Rome. After many remonstrances, and having undergone several tortures, they sealed their martyrdom with their blood, by being beheaded in the year 257. In the same year, Stephen, bishop of Rome, was beheaded, and about that time Saturninus, bishop of Thoulouse, was attacked and seized by the rabble of that place, for preventing, as they alleged, their oracles from speaking. On refusing to sacrifice to the idols, he was treat- ed with many barbarous indignities, and then fastened by the feet to the tail of a bull. On a certain signal the enraged animal was driven down the steps of the temple, by which the martyr's brains were dashed out; and the small number of Christians in Thoulouse had not for some time courage sufficient to carry off the dead body ; at length two women conveyed it away, and deposed it in a ditch. -This martyr was an orthodox and learned primitive Christian, and his doctrines are held in high estimation. LAURENTIUS BROILED TO DEATH, 51 Stephen was succeeded by Sextus as bishop of Rome. He is suppos- ed to l)i" a Greek by birth, or extraction, and had for some time served in the capacity of a deacon under Stephen. His great fidelity, singular wisdom and courage, distinguished him on many occasions ; and the fortunate conclusion of a controversy with some heretics is generally ascribed to his prudence. Marcianus, who had the management of the Roman government in the year 258, procured an order from the emperor Valerian to put to death all the Christian clergy in Rome. The senate having testified their obedience to the imperial mandate, Sextus was one of the first who felt the severity of the edict. Cyprian tells us that he was beheaded August 6, A. D. 258, and that six of his deacons suffered with him. Laurentius, generally called St. Laurence, the principal of the dea- cons, who taught and preached under Sextus, followed him to the place of execution ; when Sextus predicted that he should meet him in heaven three days after. Laurentius considering this as a certain indication of his own approaching martyrdom, at his return collected all the Chris- tian poor, and distributed amongst them the treasures of the church which had been committed to his care, thinking the money could not be better disposed of, or less liable to fall into the hands of the heathens. His conduct alarmed the persecutors, who seized on him, and command- ed him to give an immediate account to the emperor of the church trea- sures. Laurentius promised to satisfy them, but begged a short respite to put tilings in proper order; three days being granted him, he was suffered to depart. Then with great diligence he collected together a great number of aged, helpless, and impotent poor, and repaired to the magistrate, presenting them to him, saying "These are the true treasures of the church. " Provoked at the disappointment, and fancying the matter meant in ridicule, the governor ordered him to be immediately scourged. He was beaten with iron rods, set upon a wooden horse, and had his limbs dislo- cated. He endured these tortures with such fortitude and perseverance, that he was ordered to be fastened to a large gridiron, with a slow fire under it, that his death might be more tedious. But his astonishing constancy during these trials, and his serenity of countenance under such excruciating torments, gave the spectators so exalted an idea of the dignity and truth of the Christian religion, that many immediately be- came converts. Having lain for some time upon the gridiron, the martyr called out to the emperor, who was present, in a kind of jocose Latin couplet, which may be thus translated " This side is broil'd sufficient to be food For all who wish it to be done and good." On this the executioner turned him, and after having lain a consider- able time longer, he had still strength and spirit enough to triumph over the tyrant, by telling him, with great serenity, that he was roasted enough, and only wanted serving up. He then cheerfully lifted up his eyes to heaven, and with calmness yielded his spirit to the Almighty. This happened August 10, A. D. 258. 52 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Among the several converts to Christianity from this event, was a sol- dier called Romanus who attended the martyrdom. He had taken the opportunity of the martyr's imprisonment to make some inquiries con- cerning the Christian faith, and it was reported that he had received bap- tism at the hands of his captive. Be this as it may, he declared himself a christian immediately after the death of Laurentius, and soon followed him by a less lingering and torturing martyrdom to the world of blessed spirits in heaven. On his avowal of the christian faith, he was scourged and beheaded. He had a companion in both his faith and suffering, named Hypolitus, to whom he was much attached, and who evinced no desire to escape the fate of his courageous friend. Fourteen years before this period persecution raged in Africa with peculiar violence, and many thousands received the crown of martyrdom, among whom the following were the most distinguished characters * — Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, an eminent prelate, and a pious orna- ment of the church. His doctrines were orthodox and pure ; his lan- guage easy and elegant ; and his manners graceful. He was said to be so perfectly a master of rhetoric and logic, and so complete in the prac- tice of elocution and the principles of philosophy, that he was made professor of those sciences in his native city of Carthage, where he be- came so popular, and taught with such success, that many of his stu- dents afterwards became shining ornaments of polite erudition. He was educated in his youth in the maxims of the heathen, and having a con- siderable fortune, he lived in great splendour and pomp. Gorgeous in attire, luxurious in feasting, vain of a numerous retinue, and fond of every kind of fashionable parade, he seemed to fancy that man was born to gratify all his appetites, and created for pleasure alone. About the year 246, Ccecilius, a Christian minister of Carthage, became the instru- ment of Cyprian's conversion ; on which account, and for the great love that he always afterwards bore for his adviser, he was termed Ccecilius Cyprian. Before his baptism, he studied the scriptures with care, and being struck with the excellence of the truths they contained, he determined to practise the virtues they recommended. After baptism he sold his estate, distributed the money among the poor, dressed himself in plain attire, and commenced a life of austerity and solitude. Soon after he was made a presbyter ; and being greatly admired for his virtues and his works, on the death of Donatus, in A. D. 248, he was almost una- nimously elected bishop of Carthage. The care of Cyprian not only extended over Carthage, but to Numidia and Mauritania. In all his transactions he took great care to ask the advice of his clergy, knowing, that unanimity alone could be of service to the church : this being one of his maxims, " That the bishop was in the church, and the church in the bishop ; so that unity can only be preserved by a close connection between the pastor and his flock." In the year 250, Cyprian was publicly proscribed by the emperor Decius, under the appellation of Ccecilius Cyprian, bishop of the Cyprians ; and the universal cry of the Pagans was, " Cyprian to the lions, Cyprian to the beasts!" The bishop, however, withdrew from the rage of the populace, and his effects were immediately confiscated. WISE SAVINGS OF CYPRIAN. 53 During bis retirement he wrote thirty pious letters to his flock: but several schisms then crept into the church gave him great uneasi- ness. The rigour of the persecution abating, he returned to Carthage, and did every thing in his power to expel erroneous opinions and false doctrines. A terrible plague now breaking out at Carthage, it was as usual laid to the charge of the Christians ; and the magistrates began to persecute them accordingly : this occasioned an epistle from them to Cyprian, in answer to which lie vindicates the cause of Christianity. b b Cyprian was of an uncommonly meek and amiable disposition, and though he neither wanted prudence nor circumspection, he was so modest that he never attempted any thing without first consulting his partisans. He used to declare that he had visions and revela- tions concerning the events that were to effect the Christian church. He never attempted to thwart or circumvent any man; and St. Augustine, in his third book " De bapthmo contra DonatUtas," declares that he was very diligent in reading, especially the works of Tertullius. He adds, that he saw an old man whose name was Paulus, who told him he saw the notary of blessed Cyprian, being then an old man, when he himself was but a springal in the city of Rome, and told him that it was Cyprian's custom, never to let one day pass without reading Tertullian, and that he was accustomed to say to him, " Give me my master," meaning thereby Tertullian. Several learned authors among the ancients have written on the virtues and good actions of Cyprian, and it is much to be regretted that these accounts, as well as many others which tend to enforce belief in, and respect for the sacred scriptures, are now unknown, owing to the neglect into which the Latin and Greek languages have fallen, though every man, whatever may be his station, may have now an opportunity of giving his sons a liberai education. The principal divines and authors who wrote concerning Cyprian are, Nice- phorus, Nazianzenus, Jacobus de Voragine, Henricusde Erfordia, Volateranus, Hieronymus, and Vincentius; and Laziardus Celestinus made an abridgment of his works, or rather what is now called ana, in which, amongst many others, are the following pithy sentences, which we quote on account of their excellence. Let nothing sleep in thy treasures, that may profit the poor. Two things never wax old in man, — the heart ever imagining new cogitations, the tongue ever uttering the vain conceptions of the heart. Discipline is an inordinate amendment of manners present, and a regular observation of evils past. There can be no integrity, while they who should condemn the wicked, are ever wanting, and they only who are to be condemned, are ever present. A covetous man only possesseth his goods for this reason, because another should not possess them. Women that advance themselves in putting on silk and purple, cannot but lightly put on Christ. They who love to paint themselves in this world otherwise than God hath created them, let them fear, lest when the day cometh of resurrection, the Creator will not know them. He that giveth an alms to the poor, sacrificeth to God an odour of sweet smell. All injury of evils present, is to be neglected, for the good hope of good things to come. To set out virtue in words, and to destroy the same in facts, is nothing worth. The more children and greater household thou hast at home, the more cause thou hast not to hoard up, but to disperse abroad, for that many sins are to be redeemed, many con- sciences are to be purged. Eincentianus observes, that in another Book of Cyprian, not mentioned in the catalogue of his works, he describes twelve principal abuses or absurdities in the life of man, which are in the following order, and are unfortunately too frequently to be met with in every age of the world ; but perhaps more at present than at any former period. 1. A wise man without good works. 7. A Christian man contentious. 2. An old man without religion. 8. A poor man proud. 3. A young man without obedience. 9. A king unrighteous. 4. A rich man without alms. 10. A bishop negligent. 5. A woman shameless. 11. People without discipline. 6. A guide without virtue. 12. Subjects without law. 54 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM Cyprian was brought before the pro-consul Aspasius Paternus, A. D. 257, when being commanded to conform to the religion of the empire, he boldly made a confession of his faith. This did not occasion his death, but an order was made for his banishment and he was exiled to a little city on the Libyan sea. On the death of the pro-consul who banished him, he returned to Carthage, but was soon after seized, and carried before the new governor, who condemned him to be beheaded ; and on the 14th of September, A. D. 258, this sentence was executed. This bishop was a pious Christian, an excellent philosopher, and an ac- curate and eloquent preacher. His disciples who were martyred in this persecution were, Lucius Fla- vian, Victoricus, Remus, Montanus, Donatian, Julian, and Primolus. Perhaps one of the most dreadful events in the history of martyrdom was that which took place at Utica, where 300 Christians were, by the orders of the pro-consul, placed around a burning lime-kiln. A pan of coals and incense being prepared, they were commanded either to sacri- fice to Jupiter, or to be thrown into the kiln. Unanimously refusing, they bravely jumped into the pit, and were suffocated immediately. Fructuosus, bishop of Tarragon, in Spain, and his two deacons, Augarius and Eulogius, for avowing themselves Christians, were con- sumed by fire. Malchus, Alexander, and Priscius, three Christians of Palestine, with a woman of the same place, voluntarily avowed them- selves to be Christians : for which they were sentenced to be devoured by tigers, which sentence was accordingly executed. Donatilla, Maxima, and Secunda, three virgins of Tuburga, had gall and vinegar given them to drink, were then severely scourged, tormented on a gibbet, rubbed with lime, scorched on a gridiron, worried by wild beasts, and at last beheaded. Before the last act of barbarity took place they were how- ever dead, and the headsman was said to admire the singular serenity of their countenances. Pontius a native of the city of Simela, near the Alps, being appre- hended as a Christian, was tortured on the rack, worried by wild beasts, half burnt, then beheaded, and his body thrown into the river. Protus and Hyacinthus likewise suffered martyrdom about the same period. A singular and miserable fate befel the emperor Valerian, c who had c A very extraordinary and interesting event occurred in the reign of Valerian, which is told, though in different ways, by Aquilinus, Antoninus, and Bergomensis. — Philippus, the governor of Alexandria, had a daughter named Eugenia, who was singularly beautiful in her person, and had received from her parents an elegant education ; but having been much in the way of the Christians, was brought up to their faith, together with two eunuchs, her schoolfellows, named Protheus and Hiacinthus; with whom, to avoid the persecutions then going on, or else from refusing to marry a pagan, she eloped, and resorted to hear the readings of Helenus, then an aged bishop; and with this view she put on man's apparel, and named herself Eugenius, under which name she was at length admitted into a monastery in the suburbs of Alexandria, where for her learning and virtue, she was made head of the place. It is said, that Eugenia, after the martyrdom of her father, returning to Rome with Protheus and Hiacinthus, on account of converting Basilla to the Christian faith, was assailed with sundry kinds of death : first, being tied to a great stone and cast into the Tiber, where she was prevented from drowning ; then put into the hot baths, which were extinguished, and she preserved ; afterwards by being prevented famishing in prison, where they say she was fed by a miraculous hand. PERSECUTIONS OF AURKLIAN. 55 so long - and so terribly persecuted the Christians. This tyrant, by a stratagem, was taken prisoner by Sophores, emperor of Persia, who carried him into his own country, and there treated him with the most unexampled indignity, making- him kneel down as the meanest slave, and treading upon him as a footstool when he mounted his horse, saying, in a vaunting manner, " This posture is a greater proof which way the victory went, than all the pictures the Roman artists can draw." Having kept him, for the space of seven years, in this abject state of slavery, he at last caused his eyes to be put out, though he was then eighty-three years of age ; and his desire of revenge not being satisfied, he soon after ordered his body to be flayed alive, and rubbed with salt, under which torments he expired ; and thus fell one of the most tyrannical emperors of Rome, and one of the greatest persecutors of the Christian church. Gallienus, the son of Valerian, succeeded him A. D. 260, and during his reigns the empire suffered many commotions, particularly earthquakes, pestilence, d inundations, intestine broils, and incursions of barbarians. This emperor reflecting, that when his father favoured the Christians, he prospered, and that when he persecuted them he was unsuccessful, deter- mined to relax the persecution ; so that (a few martyrs excepted) the church enjoyed peace for some years. The chief of those few martyrs, was Marinus, a centurion, who being apprehended as a christian, had but three hours allowed him to deliberate, whether he would sacrifice to the pagan deities, or become a martyr; and wavering during this interval a christian prelate placed the gospel and the sword before him, and de- manded which he would choose. Marinus took the sword without hesi- tation. On meeting again with the governor, he made a noble confession of his faith, and was soon after beheaded, in the year 262. ACCOUNT OF THE NINTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. In the year 274, the emperor Aurelian commenced a persecution against the Christians : the principal sufferer was Felix, bishop of Rome. This prelate was advanced to the Roman see in 274, and was beheaded in the same year on the 22d of December. Agapetus, a young gentle- man, who sold his estate and gave the money to the poor, was seized as a Christian, tortured, and then brought to Proeneste, a city within a day's journey of Rome, where he was beheaded. These are the only martyrs left upon record during this reign, as it was soon put a stop to by the emperor being murdered by his own domestics, at Byzantium. Aurelian was succeeded by Tacitus, who was followed by Probus, as d This plague affected, more or less, the whole of the Roman provinces, and lasted nearly ten years. In Egypt, it was particularly violent : and Dionysius, who was bishop of Alexandria, writing to Hieros, a bishop in Egypt, declares, that at the former city it was so great that there was no house exempt. Although the greatness of the plague affected the Christians, yet it scourged the heathen idolaters much more: besides which, the behaviour in the one and the other was very different. The Christians, through brotherly love and piety, visited and comforted one another, notwithstanding the great danger that attended them by so doing. 56 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. was the latter by Carnius : this emperor being struck with death by lightning, his sons, Carnius and Numerian, succeeded him ; and during these reigns the church enjoyed rest e . Diocletian mounting the imperial throne, A. D. 284, at first shewed great favour to the Christians. In the year 286, he associated Maximian with him in the empire; when Felician and Primus, two Christian brothers, were put to death before any general persecution broke out. They were seized by an order from the imperial court ; and owning themselves Christians, were scourged, tortured, and finally beheaded. Marcus and Marcellianus, twin natives of Rome, and of noble descent, whose parents were heathens, but the tutors, to whom the education of the children were entrusted, brought them up as Christians, were also apprehended on account of their faith, were severely tortured, and then condemned to death. A respite of a month was obtained for them by their friends, when their parents and other relations attempted to bring them back to paganism, but in vain. At last their constancy subdued their persuaders, and the whole family became converts to a faith they had just before opposed. Tranquillinus, the father of the two young men, was sent for by the prefect to give him an account of the success of his endeavours, when he confessed, that so far from having persuaded his sons to forsake the faith they had embraced, he was become a Christian himself. He then stopped till the magistrate had overcome his surprise, and resuming his discourse, he used such powerful arguments that he made a convert of the prefect, who soon after sold his estate, resigned his command, and spent the remainder of his days in a pious retirement. The prefect, who succeeded this singular convert, had none of the disposition of his predecessor : he was morose and severe, and soon seized upon the whole of this Christian race, who were accordingly martyred by being tied to posts, and having their feet pierced with nails. After remaining in this situation for a day and night, their sufferings were put an end to by thrusting lances through their bodies. Zoe, the wife of the gaoler, who had the care of these martyrs, being greatly edified by their discourse, had a desire to become a Christian: this, as she was dumb with a palsy, she could only express by gestures. They gave her instruction in the faith, and told her to pray in her heart to God to relieve her from her disorder. She did so, and was at length relieved: for her paralytic disorder by degrees left her, her speech returned, and like Zacharias she glorified God. This enforced her belief, and confirmed her a Christian: and her husband, finding her cured, became a convert himself. These con- versions made a great noise, and the proselytes were apprehended. Zoe was commanded to sacrifice to Mars, which refusing, she was hanged on a tree, and a fire of straw lighted under her. When her e This Carnius with his son Numerian, being slain in the East, Carinus, the other son, reigned alone in Italy; where he overcame Sabinus striving tor the empire, and reigned there with much wickedness till the return of the army from Persia, who then set up Diocletian as emperor ; by whom Carinus, being forsaken by liis host, was overcome, and at length slain by the hand of the tribune. Thus Carnius, with his two sons, Numerian and Carinus, ended their lives, their reign continuing only three years. PKRSKCUTIONS OF DIOCLKTIAN. 57 body was taken clown it was thrown into a river, a large stone being fastened round her neck. Tibertius, a native of Rome, was of a family of rank and distinction. Being- accused as a Christian, he was commanded either to sacrifice to idols, or to walk upon burning coals. He chose the latter, and is said to have walked over them without damage, when Fabian passed sentence upon him that he should be beheaded; which was executed in the month of August, A. D. 286, and his body was afterwards buried by some pious Christians. A remarkable affair occurred in A. D. 286. A legion of soldiers, consisting of 6666 men, contained none but Christians. This was called the Theban legion, because the men had been raised in Thebais: they were quartered in the East till the emperor Maximian ordered them to march to Gaul, to assist him against the rebels of Burgundy; when passing the Alps into Gaul, under the command of Mauritius, Candidus, and Exuperuis, their commanders, they at length joined the emperor. About this time, Maximian ordered a general sacrifice, at which the whole army were to assist ; and he commanded that they should take oaths of allegiance, and swear, at the same time, to assist him in the extirpation of Christianity in Gaul. Terrified at these orders, each individual of the Theban legion absolutely refused either to sacrifice, or take the oaths prescribed. This so enraged Maximian, that he ordered the legion to be decimated, that is, every tenth man to be selected from the rest, and put to the sword. This cruel order having been put into execution, those who remained alive were still inflexible, when a second decimation took place, and every tenth man of those living were again put to the sword. This second severity made no more impression than the first; the soldiers preserved their fortitude and their principles ; but, by the advice of their officers, drew up a remonstrance to the emperor, in which they told him that they were his subjects and his soldiers, but could not at the same time forget the Almighty; that they received their pay from him, and their existence from God. " While your commands, "said they, " are not contradictory to those of our common Master, we shall always be ready to obey, as we have been hitherto : but when the orders of our prince and those of the Almighty differ, we must always obey the latter. Our arms are devoted to the emperor's use, and shall be directed against his enemies; but we cannot submit to stain our hands with Christian blood; and how, indeed, could you, emperor, be sure of our allegiance and fidelity, should we violate our obligation to our God, in whose service we were solemnly engaged before we entered the army? You command us to search out and to destroy the Christians : it is not necessary to look any further for persons of that denomination ; we ourselves are such, and we glory in the name. We saw our com- panions fall without the least opposition or murmuring, and thought them happy in dying for the sake of Christ. Nothing shall make us lift up our hands against our sovereign ; we had rather die wrongfully, and by that means preserve our innocence, than live under a load of guilt : whatever you command we are ready to suffer ; we confess ourselves to be Christians, and therefore cannot persecute Christians, nor sacrifice to idols." 58 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Such a declaration it might be presumed would have prevailed with the emperor, but it had a contrary effect : for, enraged at their perse- verance and unanimity, he commanded that the whole legion should be put to death, which was accordingly executed by the other troops, who cut them to pieces with their swords. This barbarous transaction oc- cured on the 22d of September, A. D. 286 ; and such was the inveterate malice of Maximian, that he sent to destroy every man of a few detach- ments that had been drafted from the Theban legion, and despatched to Italy. A veteran soldier of another legion, whose name was Victor, met the executioners of this bloody business. As they appeared rather merry, he enquired into the cause of their jocularity, and being informed of the whole affair, he sharply reproved them for their barbarity. This excited their curiosity to ask him if he was of the same faith as those who had suffered. On answering in the affirmative, several of the soldiers fell upon him, and despatched him. Alban, from whom St. Alban's received its name, was the first British martyr. This island had received the gospel of Christ from Lucius, the first Christian king, but did not suffer by the rage of persecution. This man was originally a pagan, but being of a very humane disposition, he sheltered a Christian ecclesiastic, named Amphibalus, whom some officers were in pursuit of on account of his religion. The pious example, and edifying discourses of the refugee, made a great impression on the mind of Alban ; he longed to become a member of a religion which charmed him ; the fugitive minister, happy in the opportunity, took great pains to instruct him ; and before his discovery, perfected Alban's conversion. Alban now took a firm resolution to preserve the sentiments of a Christian, or to die the death of a martyr. The enemies of Amphibalus having intelligence of the place where he was secreted, came to the house of Alban, in order to apprehend him. The noble host, desirous of protecting his guest and convert, changed clothes with him in order to facilitate his escape ; and when the soldiers came, offered himself up as the person for whom they were seeking. Being accordingly carried before the governor, the deceit was immediately discovered ; and Amphibalus being absent, that officer determined to wreak his vengeance upon Alban : with this view he commanded the prisoner to advance to the altar, and sacrifice to the pagan deities. The brave Alban, however declared that he would not comply with the idolatrous injunction, but boldly professed himself to be a Christian. The governor therefore ordered him to be scourged, but he bore the punishment with great for- titude, and seemed to acquire new resolution from his sufferings : he was then beheaded. The venerable Bede states, that upon this occasion, the executioner suddenly became a convert to Christianity, and entreated permission either to die for Alban or with him. Obtaining the latter request, they were beheaded by a soldier, who voluntarily undertook the task. This happened on the 22d of June, A. D. 287, at Verulam, now St. Alban's, where a magnificent church was erected to his memory about the time of Constantine the Great. This edifice was destroyed in the Saxon wars, but was rebuilt by Offa, king of Mercia, and a monas- tery erected adjoining to it, some remains of which are still visible. Faith, a christian female, of Acquitain, in France, being informed TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 59 that there was a design to seize her, anticipated the intention, by sur- rendering herself a prisoner ; and being inflexible in her faith, was or- dered to be broiled upon a gridiron, and then beheaded, which sentence was executed A. D. 287. Capacius, a Christian, concealed himself from the persecutors, but being informed of the fortitude of Faith, he openly avowed his religion, and delivered himself up to the governor, who had him tirst tortured, and then beheaded. Quintin was a Christian, and a uative of Rome, but he determined to attempt the propagation of the gospel in Gaul . He accordingly went to Picardy, attended by one Lucian, and they preached together at Amiens ; after which Lucian went to Beauvais where he suffered martyrdom. Quintin, however, remained in Picardy, and was very zealous in his ministry. His continual prayers to the Almighty were to increase his faith, and strengthen his faculties to pro- pagate the gospel. Being seized upon as a Christian, he was stretched with pullies till his joints were dislocated : his body was then torn with wire scourges, and boiling oil and pitch poured on his naked flesh : lighted torches were applied to his sides and arm-pits ; and after he had been thus tortured, he was remanded back to prison. He died of his wounds and bruises at a village not far from Amiens, before the year was closed, and his body was thrown, by order of Varus the governor, into the river Somme. ACCOUNT OF THE TENTH GENERAL PERSECUTION UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS. Notwithstanding the efforts of the heathen to exterminate the Chris- tians and abolish their mode of faith, yet they increased so greatly as to render themselves formidable by their numbers. They, however, forgot the precepts of their Redeemer, and instead of adopting his humility, they gave themselves up to vain attire, living sumptuously, building stately edifices for churches, and thus provoking envy and hatred. Galerius, the adopted son of Diocletian, stimulated by his mother, a bigoted pagan, persuaded the emperor to commence the persecution. It began on the 23d of February A. D. 303, being the day on which the Terminalia were celebrated, and on which, as the pagans boasted, they hoped to put a termination to Christianity. The persecution opened in Nicomedia. The prefect of that city re- paired on a certain morning to the Christians' church, which his officers were commanded to break open, and then commit the sacred books it con- tained to the flames. Diocletian and Galerius, who were present, ordered their attendants to level the church with the ground. This was followed by a severe edict, commanding the destruction of all other christian churches and books; and an order soon succeeded, the object of which was to render Christians of all denominations outlaws, and consequently, to make them incapable of holding any place of trust, profit, or dignity, or of receiving any protection from the legal institutions of the realm. An immediate martyrdom was the result of this edict ; for a bold Chris- tian not only tore it down from the place to which it was affixed, but 60 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. execrated the name of the emperor for his injustice and cruelty : he was in consequence seized, severely tortured, and then burnt alive. The Christian prelates were likewise apprehended and imprisoned ; and Galerius privately ordered the imperial palace to be set on fire, that the Christians might be charged as the incendiaries, and a plausible pretext given for carrying on the persecution with the greatest severity. A general sacrifice was then commanded, which occasioned various martyr- doms. Among others, a Christian named Peter was tortured, broiled, and then burnt; several deacons and presbyters were seized and executed by various means ; and the bishop of Nicomedia himself was beheaded. So great was the persecution that there was no distinction made of age or sex, but all fell indiscriminate sacrifices to their opinions. Many houses were set on fire, and whole christian families perished in the flames ; others had stones fastened about their necks, and were driven into the sea. The persecution became general in all the Roman provinces, but more particularly in the East ; and as it lasted ten years, it is impossible to ascertain the numbers martyred, or to enumerate the various modes of martyrdom : some were beheaded in Arabia ; many devoured by wild beasts in Phoenicia ; great numbers were broiled on gridirons in Syria ; others had their bones broken, and in that manner were left to expire, in Cappadocia ; and in Mesopotamia several were hung with their heads downwards over slow fires, and suffocated. In Pontus, a variety of tor- tures were used ; pins were thrust under the nails of the prisoners, melted lead was poured upon them, and other exquisite tortures were inflicted, without however shaking their faith. In Egypt, some Chris- tians were buried alive in the earth, others were drowned in the Nile, many were hung in the air till they perished, and great numbers were thrown into large fires, and suffocating kilns. Scourges, racks, daggers, swords, poison, crosses, and famine, were made use of in various parts to destroy the Christians ; and invention was exhausted to devise new tortures against them. A town of Phrygia, consisting entirely of Christians, was surrounded by a number of pagan soldiers, who set it on fire, and all the inhabitants perished in the flames. At last, several governors of provinces represented to the imperial court, that " it was unfit to pollute the cities with the blood of the in- habitants, or to defame the government of the emperors with the death of so many subjects." Hence many were respited from execution ; but though they were not put to death, they were subjected to every species of indignity and suffering. Many had their ears cut off, their noses slit, their right eyes put out, their limbs dislocated, and the : r flesh seared in conspicuous places with red hot irons. . Among the most distinguished persons, who forfeited their lives during this bloody persecution, was Sebastian, a celebrated holy man, born at Narbonne in Gaul, instructed in the principles of Christianity at Milan, and afterwards an officer of the imperial guard at Rome. He remained a true Christian in the midst of idolatry, unallured by the splendour of a court, and untainted by evil examples around him ; esteemed by the most eminent, beloved by his equals, and admired by his inferiors, he lived happily, and kept his faith and station, till the TKNTII 1MUMIT1VK I'KllSKCU TION. Gl rigour of persecution deprived him of the latter with his life. He was in tunned against, and betrayed to Fabian the Roman prsetor, by Tor- quatus, a pretended Christian ; but being of a rank too considerable to be put to death without the emperor's express orders, Diocletian was acquainted with the persecution. On hearing the accusation, he sent for Sebastian, and charged him with ingratitude in betraying the confidence reposed in him, and being an enemy to the gods of the empire and to himself. To this he answered that his religion was not of a pernicious tendency but the opposite ; that it did not stimulate him to any thing against the welfare of the empire or the emperor, and that the greatest proof he could give of his fidelity, was praying to the only true God for the health and prosperity of his person and government. Incensed at this reply, the emperor ordered him to be taken to a field near the city, termed the Campus Martius, and there to be shot to death with arrows ; which sentence was speedily executed. A few Christians attending at the place of execution, in order to give his body burial, perceived signs of life in him, and removing him to a place of security, they in a short time effected his recovery, and prepared him for a second martyrdom. So soon as he was able to walk, he placed himself in the emperor's way as he was going to the temple. The unexpected appearance of a person supposed to be dead, greatly astonished the emperor, nor did the words of the martyr less surprise him ; for he began with great severity to re- prehend him for his various cruelties, and for his unreasonable prejudices against Christianity. Having overcome his surprise, he ordered Sebas- tian to be seized, carried to a place near the palace, and beaten to death. That the Christians should not either bury or recover his body, he ordered that it should be thrown into a common sewer. Neverthe- less, a christian lady, named Lucina, found means to remove it and bury it in the catacombs. At this time the Christians, upon mature consideration, thought it unlawful to bear arms under a heathen emperor. Their reasons w T ere : — That they thereby were under the necessity of profaning the Christian sabbath. — That they were obliged, with the rest of the army, frequently to be present at idolatrous sacrifices before the temples of idols — That they were compelled to follow the imperial standards, which were dedi- cated to heathen deities, and bore their representations. These reasons induced many to refuse to enter into the imperial army ; the Roman constitution obliging all young men, of a certain stature, to make several campaigns. Maximilian, the son of Fabius Victor, being pointed out as a proper person to bear arms, was ordered by Dion, the pro-consul, to be mea- sured, that he might be enlisted in the service. He, however, boldly declared himself a Christian, and refused to do military duty. Being found of the proper height, Dion gave directions that he should be marked as a soldier, according to the usual custom. He strenuously opposed this order, and told Dion that he could not possibly engage in the service. The pro-consul instantly replied, that he should either serve as a soldier, or die for disobedience. " Do as you please with me (replied Maximilian) ; behead me if you think proper ; I am already a soldier of Christ, and cannot serve any other power." 62 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Dion, wishing notwithstanding to save the young man, commanded his father to use his authority over him, to persuade him to comply ; but Victor coolly replied, " My son knows best what he has to do." Dion again demanded of Maximilian, with some acrimony, if he was yet dis- posed to receive the mark. To which the young man replied, he had already received the mark of Christ. " Have you! (exclaimed the pro- consul in a rage) then I shall quickly send you to Christ." " As soon as you please (answered Maximilian), that is all I wish or desire." The pro-consul then pronounced this sentence upon him, " that for disobe- dience in refusing to bear arms, and for professing the christian faith, he should lose his head." This sentence he heard with great intrepidity, and exclaimed with apparent rapture, " God be praised !" At the place of execution, he exhorted those who were Christians to remain so ; and such as were not, to embrace a faith which led to eternal salvation. Then addressing his father with a cheerful countenance, he desired that the military habit intended for him might be given to the executioner ; and after taking leave of him, said, he hoped they should meet again in the other world, and be happy to all eternity. He then received the fatal stroke. The father beheld the execution with amazing fortitude, and saw the head of his son severed from his body without any emotion, but such as seemed to proceed from a conscious pleasure in being the parent of one whose piety and courage rendered him so great an example for the christian world. Vitus, a Sicilian of a considerable family, was trained a Christian from his infancy. His virtues increased with his years, his constancy supported him under all afflictions, and his faith was superior to the utmost perils and trials. Hylas, his father, who was a pagan, finding that he had been instructed in the principles of Christianity by his nurse, used all his endeavours to bring him back to paganism ; but finding all efforts in vain, he forgot the feelings of a parent, and informed against him to Valerian, governor of Sicily, who was very active in persecuting the Christians at this period. When apprehended upon the information of his father, Vitus was little - more than twelve years of age ; the go- vernor therefore thought to frighten him out of his faith, and accordingly threatened and ordered him to be severely scourged. After this, the governor sent him back to his father, thinking that what he had suffered would make him change his principles ; but in this he was mistaken ; and Hylas, finding his son inflexible, basely allowed nature to sink under superstition, and determined to sacrifice his son to the idols. On being apprised of his design, Vitus escaped to Lucania, where being seized, he was, by order of Valerian, put to death, June 14, A. D 303. His nurse, Crescentia, who brought him up as a Christian, and Modestus, a person who escaped with him, were martyred at the same time. Victor, a Christian of good family at Marseilles, who spent great part of the night in visiting the afflicted, and confirming the weak ; and his fortune in relieving the distresses of poor Christians. His beneficence becoming known, he was seized by the emperor's orders, and carried before two prefects, who advised him to embrace paganism, and not for- feit the favour of his prince, on account of a dead man, as they styled Christ. In answer he replied, " That he preferred the service of that man, who was in reality the Son of God, and had risen from the grave, [KM I! PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. G3 to all the advantages he could receive from the emperor's favour: that lie was a soldier of Christ, and would therefore take care that the post he held under an earthly prince, should never interfere with his duty to the King of heaven." For this reply, Victor was loaded with reproaches, hut being" a man of rank, he was sent to the emperor to receive his final sentence. When brought before him, the emperor, under the severest penalties, commanded him to sacrifice to the Roman idols; and on his refusal, Maximilian ordered him to be bound, and dragged through the streets. During the execution of this order, he was treated by the enraged populace with all manner of indignities. Remaining inflexible, his courage was deemed obstinacy: to which he replied, " That the ready disposition of the disciples of Christ to undergo any sufferings for his sake, and the joy with which they met the most igno- minious and painful death, were sufficient proofs of their assurance of the object of that hope." He added, "That he was ready to give an example of what he had said in his own person." When stretched on the rack, he turned his eyes towards heaven, and prayed to God to give him patience ; after which he underwent the tortures with admirable fortitude. The executioners being tired with multiplying his tortures, he was taken from the rack to a dungeon. During his confinement, he convinced his gaolers, named Alexander, Felician, and Longinus. This affair coming to the knowlege of the emperor, he ordered them to be put to death, and the gaolers were immediately beheaded. Victor was afterwards again put to the rack, beaten with clubs, and then sent to his dungeon. Being a third time examined, he persevered in his prin- ciples : a small altar was then brought, and he was commanded to offer incense upon it immediately; but instead of complying he boldly stepped forward, and with his foot overthrew both altar and idol ! The emperor, who was present, was so enraged at this, that he ordered the foot which had kicked the altar, to be immediately cut off; and Victor was afterwards sentenced to be thrown into a mill, and crushed to pieces with the stones. This horrid sentence was carried into execution: Victor was thrown into the mill, but part of the appa- ratus breaking, he was drawn from it terribly bruised; and the emperor, not having patience to stay till the machinery was repaired, ordered his head to be struck off without delay. While Maximus, governor of Cilicia, was at Tarsus, three Christians were brought before him by Demetrius, a military officer. Tarachus the eldest and first in rank, was addressed by Maximus, who asked him what he was. The prisoner replied, " a Christian." This reply offending the governor, he again made the demand, and was answered in a similar manner. The governor then told him, that he ought to sacrifice to the gods, as the only way to promotion, riches, and honours; and that the emperors themselves did what he recommended him to perform. Tarachus answered, that avarice was a sin, and gold itself an idol as abominable as any other; since it promoted frauds, treacheries, rob- beries, and murders ; it induced men to deceive each other, by which in time they deceived themselves, and bribed the weak to their own eternal destruction. As for promotion, he desired it not, as he could not in conscience accept of any place which would subject him to pay 64 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. adoration to idols; and with regard to honours, he desired none greater .than the honourable title of Christian. As to the emperors themselves being pagans, he added, with the same undaunted spirit, that they were deceived in adoring senseless idols, and evidently misled by the machi- nations of the devil himself. For the boldness of this speech, his jaws were ordered to be broken. He was then stripped, scourged, loaded with chains, and thrown into a dismal dungeon, to remain there till the trials of the other two prisoners. Probus was then brought before Maximus, who, as usual, asked his name. Undauntedly the prisoner answered, the most valuable name he could boast of was that of a Christian. To this Maximus replied in the following words, " Your name of Christian will be of little service to you, be therefore guided by me; sacrifice to the gods, engage my friendship, and the favour of the emperor." Probus nobly answered, " that as he had relinquished a considerable fortune to become a soldier of Christ, it might appear evident, that he neither cared for his friendship, nor the favour of the emperor." Probus was then scourged; and Demetrius, the officer, observing to him how his blood flowed, advised him to comply; but his only anwer was, that those severities were agreeable to him. " What! " cried Maximus, "does he still persist in his madness?" To which Probus rejoined, " that character is wrongly bestowed on one who re- fuses to worship idols, or what is worse, devils." After being scourged on every part of his body, suffering with as much intrepidity as before, and still repeating, " the more my body suffers and loses blood, the more my soul will grow vigorous, and be a gainer," he was committed to gaol, loaded with irons, and his hands and feet were stretched on the stocks. Andronicus was next brought up, when being asked the usual ques- tions, he said, " I am a Christian, a native of Ephesus, and descended from one of the first families in that city." He was ordered to undergo punishments similar to those of Tarachus and Probus, and then was remanded to prison. Having been confined some days, the three prisoners were again brought before Maximus, who began to reason with Tarachus, saying, that as age was honoured from the supposition of its being accompanied by wisdom, he was in hopes that what had already past must, upon deliberation, have caused a change in his sen- timents. Finding himself mistaken, he ordered him to be tortured by various means; fire was placed in the palms of Jiis hands; he was hung up by his feet, and smoaked with wet straw; a mixture of salt and vinegar was poured into his nostrils; and in this state he was remanded to his dungeon. Probus being called, and asked if he would sacrifice, replied, " I come better prepared to die than before; for what I have already suffered, has only confirmed and strengthened me in my reso- lution. Employ your whole power upon me, and you will find, that neither you, nor your masters the emperors, nor the gods whom you serve, nor the devil who is your father, shall oblige me to adore idols whom I know not." The governor however attempted to reason with him, paid extravagant praises to the pagan deities, and pressed him to sacrifice to Jupiter; but Probus turned his causuistry into ridicule, and said, "Shall I pay divine honours to Jupiter, to one who married his IKMFI PRIMITIVE PKKSKCUTION. 65 own sister to an infamous debauchee, as lie is even acknowledged to have done by your own priests and poets." Provoked at this speech, the governor ordered him to be struck upon the mouth, for uttering what, he culled blasphemy: his body was then seared with hot irons, he was put to the rack, and afterwards scourged; his head was then shaved, and red hot coals placed upon the crown; and after all these tortures, he was remanded to prison. When Andronicus was again brought before Maximus, the latter attempted to deceive him, by pretending that Tarachus and Probus had repented of their obstinacy, and owned the gods of the empire. To this the prisoner answered, " Lay not, O governor, such a weakness to the charge of those who have appeared before me in this cause, nor imagine it to be in your power to shake my fixed resolution with artful speeches. I cannot believe that they have disobeyed the laws of their fathers, renounced their hopes in our God, and consented to your ex- travagant orders : nor will I ever fall short of them in faith and de- pendence upon our common Saviour. Thus armed, I neither know your gods nor fear your authority; fulfil your threats, execute your most sanguinary inventions, and employ every cruel art in your power on me; I am prepared to bear it for the sake of Christ." For this answer he was cruelly scourged, and his wounds were afterwards rubbed with salt; but being well again in a short time, the governor reproached the gaoler for having suffered some physician to attend to him. The gaoler declared, that no person whatever had been near him, or the other prisoners, and that he would forfeit his head if any allegation of the kind could be proved against him. Andronicus corroborated the testimony of the gaoler, and added, that the God whom he served was the most powerful of physicians. These intrepid Christians were brought to a third examination, when they retained their constancy, were again tortured, and at length ordered for execution. Being brought to the amphitheatre, several beasts were let loose upon them; but none of the animals, though hungry, would touch them. Pvlaximus was so surprised and incensed at this circumstance, that he severely reprehended the keeper, and ordered him to produce a beast that would execute the business for which he was wanted. The keeper then brought out a large bear, that had that day destroyed three men; but this creature, and a fierce lioness, also refused to touch the Christians. Finding the design of destroying them by the means of wild beasts ineffectual, Maximus ordered them to be slain by a sword, which was accordingly done on the 11th of October, A. D 303. The resolute martrys all declared that as death was the common lot of men, they wished to meet it for the sake of Christ; and to resign that life to faith, which must other- wise be the prey of disease. Romanus, a native of Palestine, was deacon of the church of Csesarea, at the commencement of Diocletian's persecution. He was at Antioch when the imperial order arrived for sacrificing to idols, and was greatly afflicted to see many Christians, through fear, submit to the idolatrous mandate, and deny their faith to preserve their existence. While cen- suring some for their conduct, he was informed against to the emperor, F 66 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. and soon after apprehended. Being brought to the tribunal, he con- fessed himself a Christian, and said he was willing to suffer any thing which he was pleased to inflict upon him for his confession. When condemned for his faith, he was scourged, put to the rack, his body torn with hooks, his flesh cut with knives, his face scarified, his teeth beat from their sockets, and his hair plucked up by the roots. Thus cruelly mangled, he turned to the governor, and calmly thanked him for what he had done, and for having opened so many mouths to preach the doctrines of Christianity; "for," said he, " every wound is a mouth, to sing the praises of the Lord." The following circumstance, which happened upon this occasion, is related by Prudentius and other writers. Romanus offered to stand to the decision of a young child, whose age must be free from malice, and to put the truth of the Christian religion upon that test. Ascepiades is said to have accepted of the proposal. A child about seven years of age was called out of the crowd, and being asked whether he thought it to be true, that men ought to worship but one God in Christ, or to worship many gods, he answered, that he thought, whatsoever men affirm to be God, must be but one, and as this one is Christ, he must of necessity be God; " for that there are many gods," continued the boy, "we children cannot believe." The governor amazed at this, was highly enraged with the child, and calling him a little villain and a young traitor, asked him who taught him that lesson. To which the child replied, "My mother, with whose milk I sucked in this lesson, that I must believe in Christ." This so incensed the governor, that he ordered the infant to be severely whipped ; insomuch that the beholders could not refrain from tears, the mother of the child only excepted, who reproved him for asking for a draught of water, charging him to thirst for that cup which the infants of Bethlehem had drank of, and bidding him remember Isaac, who willingly offered himself to death by his father's hand. While the woman was giving her son this lesson, the executioner plucked the skin and hair from the crown of his head; his mother at the same time saying to him, "though you suffer here, my child, you shall shortly be with him, who shall adorn thy naked head with a crown of eternal glory." Upon which the child smiled upon her and his executioners, and bore their stripes with silent fortitude. Romanus soon after was ordered to be strangled, and the child to be beheaded; which sentence was executed on the 17th of November, A. D. 303. Marcellinus was an ecclesiastic at Rome ; being apprehended on ac- count of his religion, he was ordered to be privately executed in the forest, and was accordingly beheaded there. Peter, a Christian, appre- hended for the same cause, was executed at the same time and place. Also about this period, Smagardus, Largus, and Cyracus, a deacon of the christian church, were martyred ; but the mode of their death is not specified. Susanna, the niece of Caius, bishop of Rome, was enjoined by the emperor Diocletian to marry a noble pagan, who was nearly related to him : but she refused the honour, on account of being a Christian, which so enraged the emperor, that she was immediately afterwards beheaded TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. (17 by his order. Dorotheas, chamberlain of the household to Diocletian, was a Christian, and took great pains to make converts. He was assisted by Gorgonius, another Christian belonging to the palace : they were both high in the emperor's favour, but they soon proved that worldly honours and temporary pleasures were nothing when set in competition with the joys of immortality; for being informed against, they were first tortured and then strangled. Peter, an eunuch belonging to the em- peror, was a Christian of singular humility, insomuch that he did any servile office to serve the afflicted, and gave whatever he possessed to those who needed assistance. Having been informed against, and con- fessing the charge, he was scourged till his flesh was torn in a terrible manner; then salt and vinegar were thrown upon the wounds, and after suffering these tortures with the utmost tranquillity, he was laid on a gridiron, and broiled over a slow fire till he expired in the greatest agony. Cyprian, known by the title of magician, to distinguish him from Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, was a native of Antioch. He received a liberal education in his youth, and applied himself to astrology; after which he travelled through India, Egypt, and Greece. He afterwards settled near Babylon, and being skilled in Chaldean mysteries, he em- ployed his talents in endeavouring to draw women from chastity and conjugal faith, and in persecuting the Christians and ridiculing Chris- tianity. He became acquainted with Justina, a young lady of Antioch, of high birth, beauty, and accomplishments, who had been educated in idolatry ; but being converted to Christianity, she induced her father and mother to embrace the same faith. Her modesty was remarkable. A pagan gentleman strongly attached to her, not being able to obtain a favourable return to his addresses, applied for assistance to Cyprian, who undertook the design, but with a treacherous intent: for under the pretence of acting for his friend, he determined if possible, to possess the lady himself. To effect this, he employed all his skill ; but his endeavours proving ineffectual, he was convinced that a superior power protected her from his evil intentions. Consequent reflection, caused him to search into the truths of Christianity, and his enquiry became so beneficial, that he renounced paganism. His repentance was sincere; he determined to reform his conduct, and to make every amends in his power for the crimes he had committed. He burnt his books of astrology and magic, received baptism, and became animated with a powerful spirit of piety. The conversion of Cyprian had a great effect on the pagan gentleman who paid his addresses to Justina, and he also in a short time embraced Christianity. During the persecution of Diocletian, Cyprian and Justina were seized upon as Christians, when the former was torn with pincers, and the latter chastised ; and after suffering other torments, both were beheaded. Sergius was an officer in the Roman army, and attended the emperor Maximian into Syria. Being accused as a Christian, he was ordered to sacrifice to Jupiter; but refusing, he was stripped of his military habit, and, in derision, dressed in woman's clothes. He was then compelled to walk a considerable way with nails in his sandals, and had an end put to his sufferings by being beheaded. Bacchius, an officer of the 68 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. same rank with Sergius, being apprehended at the same time, underwent similar sufferings, and was beheaded on the same day, A. D. 303. A Spanish lady of a Christian family, named Eulalia, who was remark- able in her youth for sweetness of temper and solidity of understanding, was apprehended as a Christian. The magistrate attempted, by the mildest means, to bring her over to paganism, but she answered him in so ironical a manner, and ridiculed the pagan deities with such wit, that, incensed at her behaviour, he ordered her to be tortured. Ac- cordingly her sides were torn by hooks, and her breasts burnt in the most shocking manner, till the fire catching her head and face, she expired. This happened in December A. D. 303. The emperor Diocletian becoming ill, in the year 304, the persecution was carried on by Galerius, and the governors of the several provinces, when many fell victims to the zeal or malice of the persecutors: among whom the following persons are enumerated : — Vincent, a Spanish Christian, brought up by Valerius, bishop of Saragossa, who, on account of his great merits, ordained him a deacon. When the persecution reached Spain, Dacian, the governor of Tarragona, ordered Valerius the bishop, and Vincent the deacon, to be seized, loaded with irons, and imprisoned. Some time after Dacian examined them with great asperity, and threatened them with death, unless they renounced their principles. Vincent undertaking to speak for both, avowed their full determination to persist in the faith. Hereupon, Dacian, in a rage at his freedom of speech, declared that unless he immediately offered incense to the gods, he should fall a sacrifice. But the prisoners being firm in their resolution, Valerius was banished, and the whole of Dacian's rage directed against Vincent, who was racked, had his limbs dislocated, his flesh torn with hooks, and was laid on a gridiron, which had not only a fire placed under it, but spikes at the top, which run into his flesh. These torments neither destroying him nor changing his resolu- tion, he was remanded to prison, and confined in a dark dungeon. Orders were also given not to allow him any provisions whatever, and that the news of his death should be carried to Dacian as soon as known. When the keepers thought him starved they entered the dungeon, but instead of seeing a corpse as they expected, they beheld Vincent at prayers, his wounds in a great measure healed, and his body in tolerable health. This speedy recovery and preservation had such an effect upon the keepers, that.it became the means of their conversion. Dacian however, instead of being softened, was enraged at the triumph of Vincent over his cruelties, and gave orders for new tortures to be prepared, so severe as to compel him to sink under them. But his malice was again dis- appointed, for before the instruments could be prepared, God took him to himself, and he died with all the serenity of a good conscience, and with as much calmness as if he had only fallen into a gentle sleep. Dacian then ordered that his body should be exposed in the fields to the birds of prey; but they not offering to touch it, he commanded that it should be thrown into the river, which was done accordingly. His death happened on the 22nd of January, 304. it was in this year the persecution of Diocletian began again to prevail, TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 69 and many Christians were put to cruel tortures, and the most painful deaths; the most eminent and particular of these were, Saturninus, a priest of Albilina in Africa. He used to preach and administer the sacrament to a society of Christians, who privately assembled at the house of Octavius Felix; for the severity of the times was such, that they could not publicly observe their religious duties. Having; been informed against, Saturninus, with four of his children, and several other persons, were apprehended; and that their punishment, might be the more exemplary and public, they were sent to Carthage, the capital of Africa, where they were examined before Anulinus, the pro-consul of that quarter. Saturninus, on the examination, gave such spirited answers, and vin- dicated the christian religion with eloquence that shewed he was worthy to preside over an assembly possessing a faith of purity and truth. Anulinus, enraged at his arguments, ordered him to be silenced by being- put to a variety of tortures, such as scourging, tearing his flesh with hooks, and burning with hot irons. Having been thus inhumanly treated, he was remanded to prison and there starved to death. His four children, notwithstanding they were variously tormented, remained steady in their faith ; on which they were sent to the dungeon in which their father was confined, where they calmly and even cheerfully shared his fate. There were eight other Christians tortured on the same day as Satur- ninus, and much in the same manner. Two expired on the spot through the severity of their sufferings, and the other six being remanded to prison, were suffocated for want of a pure air. Thelico, a pious Chris- tian; Dativus, a noble Roman senator; Victoria, a young lady of con- siderable family and fortune, with some others of less consideration, who had been all auditors of Saturninus, were seized at the time, tortured in a similar manner, and perished by the same means. About the same time three sisters, Chionia, Agape, and Irene, were seized at Thes- salonica. They had been educated in the christian faith, but had taken great precautions to remain unknown. They therefore retired to a soli- tary place, and spent their hours in performing religious duties. Being, however, discovered and seized, they renounced their former timidity, blamed themselves for being fearful, and begged of God to strengthen them against the great trial they had to undergo. When Agape was examined before Dulcatius, the governor, and was asked whether she was disposed to comply with the law of the land, and obey the mandate of the emperor, she answered, That being a Christian, she could not comply with any law which commanded the worship of idols and devils ; that her resolution was fixed, and nothing should deter her from maintaining it. Her sister Chionia answered in the same manner; when the governor, not being able to draw them from their faith, pronounced sentence of condemnation on them, in consequence of which they were burnt, March 25, A. D. 304. Irene was then brought before the governor, who fancied that the death of her sisters would have an effect upon her fears, and that the dread of similar suffering would engage her to comply with his proposals. He therefore exhorted her to acknowledge the heathen deities, to sacrifice 70 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to them, to partake of the victims, and to deliver up her books relative to Christianity. But she firmly refused to comply with any of them. The governor then asked her, who persuaded her and her sisters to keep those books and writings. She answered, It was that God who com- manded them to love him to the last ; for which reason she was resolved to submit to be burned alive rather than give them up into the hands of bis professed enemies. When the governor found that he could make no impression on her, he ordered her to be exposed naked in the streets; which shameful order having been executed, she was burnt, April 1, A. D. 304, on the same spot where her sisters had suffered before her. Agatho, a man of a pious turn of mind, with Cassice, Philippa, and Eutychia, were martyred about the same time; as was Marc ell in us, bishop of Rome, who succeeded Caius in that see. He was greatly perplexed during this persecution; and having strongly resisted paying divine honours to Diocletian, who wished to exact them from the people, and to appear as a god, he was at length seized and committed to a dungeon. He suffered martyrdom, by a variety of tortures, in the year 304. Theodotus, a Dalmatian, kept an inn at Ancyra. Being a Christian, and of a very humane disposition, he devoted a great part of his time to visit the afflicted, and a great part of his property to relieve the poor. Theotecnus, governor of these parts, whose cruelty was equalled by nothing but his bigotry, received the mandate for persecuting the Chris- tians with great satisfaction, and wrote the emperor word that he would do his utmost endeavours to root out Christianity from every place under his jurisdiction. Thus encouraged by the governor, the pagans began to inform against and persecute the Christians. Great numbers were seized and imprisoned; their goods were destroyed, and their estates confiscated. Many fled to the woods, or retired to caves, where some supported themselves by feeding upon roots, and others perished by famine. Many were starved in the city, by means of the following singular stratagem : the governor gave orders that no provisions what- ever should be exposed to sale in the markets, without having been first consecrated to the idols ; hence the Christians were compelled to eat idolatrous food, or to starve and perish. The latter dreadful alternative was chosen by most of them, who, to preserve the purity of their faith, heroically gave up their lives. It was in these dreadful times, Theodotus did all that he could to comfort the imprisoned, and buried the bodies of several who had been martyred, though it was forbidden on pain of death. He likewise privately assisted many with food; for having laid in a great stock of corn and wine, he sold it at a low price, and often gave it away. Polychronicus, a Christian, being seized, forfeited his faith, in order to preserve his life, and informed against his friend Theodotus, who hearing of this treachery, surrendered himself to the governor of his own accord. On his arrival in the court, he surveyed the instruments of torture with a smile, and seemed totally regardless of their operation. When placed at the bar, the governor informed him, that it was still in his power to save himself, by sacrificing to the gods of the empire. "And, (he continued,) if you renounce your faith in Christ, I promise TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 71 you m\ friendship, and the emperor's protection, and will constitute you one of the magistrates of the town." Theodotus displayed great courage and eloquence in his answer : he refused to renounce his faith, declined the friendship of the governor and protection of the emperor, and treated their idols with the greatest contempt. The pagans on this were extremely clamorous against the prisoner, and demanded that he should bu immediately punished. The priests in particular rent their clothes, and tore their chaplets, the badges of their offices, through rage. The governor complied with their desire, when Theodotus was scourged, torn with hooks, and then placed upon the rack. After this, vinegar was poured into his wounds, his flesh was seared with burning torches, and his teeth were knocked out of their sockets. He was then remanded to prison ; and as he went, pointing to his mangled body, he said to the people, " It was but just that Christians should suffer for him who suffered for us all." Five days afterwards he was brought from prison, tortured, and then beheaded. Victor, a native of Ancyra, was accused by the priests of Diana for having abused their goddess. For this imputed crime he was seized and committed to prison, his house plundered, his family turned out of doors, and his estate forfeited. When put to the rack, his resolution failed through the variety and severity of his torments. Being carried back to prison, that he might make a full recantation he suffered for his apostasy ; his wounds mortified, and put an end to his life. A Christian, of the name of Timothy, being carried before Urban, governor of Palestine, was sentenced to be burnt to death by a slow fire ; which sentence was executed at Gaza, on the 19th day of August, A. D. 104. Philip, bishop of Heraclea, had, in every act of his life, appeared a devoted Christian ; the chief of his disciples were Severus a priest, and Hermes a deacon ; who did much to promote the cause of Christianity. This worthy bishop was advised to conceal himself, in order to avoid the storm of the persecution ; but he reproved those who counselled him to do so, telling them that their courage would be enhanced by their suffer- ings, and that death had no terror for the virtuous. He therefore publicly performed his duty. An officer named Aristomachus, being employed to shut up the chris- tian church in Heraclea, Philip took great pains to convince him, that shutting up buildings made by hands could not destroy Christianity, while the living temples of the Lord remained ; for the true faith con- sisted not in the places where God is adored, but in the hearts of those who adore God. Being denied entrance into the church where he used to preach, Philip took up his station at the door, and there exhorted people to patience, perseverance, and godliness. For this he was seized and carried before the governor, who severely reprimanded him, and then continued to speak sternly in these words — " Bring all the vessels used in your worship, and the scriptures which you read and teach the people, and surrender them to me, before you are forced to do it by tortures." " If," replied the bishop, " you take any pleasure in seeing us suffer, we are prepared for the worst you can do. This infirm body is in your power ; use it as you please. The vessels you demand shall 72 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. be delivered up, for God is not honoured by gold and silver, but by fear and love; but as to our sacred books, it is neither proper for me to part with them, nor for you to receive them." This answer so much incensed the governor, that he ordered him to torture. Hermes, expressing him- self freely against such barbarities, was ordered to be scourged at the same time. The pagans having proceeded to the place where the scriptures and the church plate were kept, immediately seized them ; they likewise unroofed the church, walled up the doors, melted down the plate, and burnt the scriptures. When Philip was taken to the market-place, he was ordered to sacrifice to the Roman deities in general, and to a very handsome image of Hercules in particular ; to which command, he made an animated address on the real nature of the deity ; and concluded, that from what he had already said, it appeared that the heathens wor- shipped what might lawfully be trodden on, and made gods of such things as Providence had designed for common use. The governor then tried the constancy of Hermes, but finding him as inflexible as the bishop, he committed them both to prison. Soon after this, the gover- nor's time of ruling those parts being expired, a new governor named Justin arrived ; but he was equally cruel as his predecessor. Philip was then dragged by the feet through the streets, severely scourged, and brought a'gain to the governor, who charged him with obstinate rashness in continuing disobedient to the imperial decrees ; but he boldly replied that he was obliged to prefer heaven to earth, and to obey God rather than man. On this the governor immediately passed sentence on him to be burnt, which was executed accordingly, and he expired, singing praises to God in the midst of the fire. Hermes, for behaving in a similar manner, and Severus, who had surrendered himself resolutely to suffer with his friends, endured the same fate. Such were the effects of a diabolical zeal for the adoration of idols. St. Ambrose asserts that Agricola was a Christian of so amiable a disposition, that he even gained the esteem and admiration of the pagans. Being apprehended as a Christian, he was crucified in imita- tion of the death of our Saviour; and his body, together with the cross, were buried at Bologna in Italy, in one grave. Vitalis, the servant and convert of Agricola, was seized on the same charge as his master, and being put to the severity of the torture, died under the hands of his tormentors. Carphorus, Victorius, Severus, and Severanus, were brothers, and all employed in places of great trust and honour in the city of Rome. Having exclaimed against worshipping idols, they were apprehended, and scourged with a whip, to the ends of which were fastened leaden balls. This punishment was exercised with such rigour, that the pious brothers fell martyrs to its severity. A Christian of Aquileia, named Chrysogonus, was beheaded by order of Diocletian, for having instructed Anastasia, a young lady of that city, in the christian faith. This lady was descended from an illustrious Roman family. Her mother, named Flavia, was a Christian, and dying while her daughter was an infant, she bequeathed her to the care of Chrysogonus, with a strict injunction to instruct her in the principles of Christianity. This Chrysogonus punctually performed; but the father TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 73 of the lady, who was a pagan, gave her in marriage to a person of his own persuasion, named Publius, who was of a good family, but bad murals, and having spent his wife's and his own patrimony, he had the baseness to inform against her as a Christian. Publius soon after dying, she was released ; but continuing to perform many charitable actions to Christians, she was again apprehended, and delivered up to Florus, governor of Illyricum. Florus commanded that she should be put to the torture; when finding her constant in the faith, he ordered her to be burnt, which was executed on December 25, A. D. 304; the event taking place about a month after the martyrdom of Chrysogonus, her instructor. In the same year, Mouris and Thea, two christian women of Gaza, were martyred in that city. The former died under the hands of her tormentors, and the latter perished in prison of the wounds she had received. Timothy, a deacon of Mauritania, and Maura his wife, had not been married above three weeks, when they were separated from each other by the persecution. Timothy was carried before Arrianus, the governor of Thebais, who did all in his power to induce him to embrace the pagan superstition. Perceiving his endeavours vain, and knowing that Timothy had the keeping of the holy scriptures, the governor commanded him to deliver them up, that they might be burnt: to which Timothy. answered, " Had I children I would sooner deliver them up to be sacrificed, than part from the word of God." The governor, incensed at this reply, ordered his eyes to be put out with hot irons, saying, " The books shall at least be useless to you, for you shall not see to read them." He endured the punishment with such patience that the governor was the more exasperated, and ordered him to be hung up by the feet, with a weight tied about his neck, and a gag in his mouth. This treatment he bore with the greatest courage, when some person acquainted the governor that he had been but newly married to a wife of whom he was extremely fond. Arrianus accordingly ordered Maura to be sent for, and promised a handsome reward, with the life of her husband, if she could prevail upon him to sacrifice to the idols. Maura, wavering in her faith, tempted by a bribe, and impelled by an unbounded affection for her husband, undertook the impious affair. When conducted to him, she assailed his constancy with all the persuasive language of affection. When the gag was taken out of his mouth in order to give him an opportunity of replying, instead of consenting to his wife's entreaties, as they expected, he blamed her mistaken love, and declared his resolution of dying for the faith. Maura repeated her importunities, till her husband reproved her so strongly for her weakness, that she returned to his way of thinking, and resolved to imitate his courage and fidelity, and either to accompany or follow him to glory. Timothy advised her to repair her fault by declaring that resolution to the governor, by whose order she had un- dertaken the sinful commission. On which being strengthened by his exhortations, and the grace of God, she went to Arrianus and told him, that she was united to her husband in opinion as well as love, and was ready to suffer any thing to atone for her late crime, in wishing to make 74 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. him an apostate. The governor immediately ordered her to be tortured, which was executed with great severity; and after this Timothy and Maura were crucified near each other, A. D. 304. A bishop of Assisium, named Sabinus, refusing to sacrifice to Jupiter, and pushing the idol from him, had his hands cut off by the order of the governor of Tuscany. After patiently suffering this barbarity, he was committed to prison, where he remained a considerable time without any assistance or relief but what he received from a christian widow, whose blind grandson had been restored by him to sight. The governor, who was himself afflicted in his sight, on hearing this intelligence, began to consider the behaviour of the Christians, and the tenets of Chris- tianity in a more favourable light, and sending for Sabinus, he informed him that he now entertained very different sentiments to what he had hitherto done, both with respect to him and his faith; then throwing himself at the feet of Sabinus, he entreated him to afford him assistance and to undertake the cure of his body and soul. The undissembled fervour with which he spoke convinced Sabinus of his sincerity; he was accordingly baptized, and the disorder in his eyes immediately left them : this conversion of the governor was followed by that of his whole family, and some of his friends. When the tyrant Maximian was in- formed of these circumstances, he immediately ordered the governor and all his family to be beheaded. Immediately after their execution, Sabinus was scourged to death; and two ecclesiastics, named Marcellus and Experantius, who officiated under Sabinus, were scourged in a most dreadful manner; but remaining constant in their faith, their flesh was torn with hooks till they expired. This took place in December, A. D. 304. It now happened that, weary of the farce of state, and public business, the emperors Diocletian and Maximian resigned the imperial diadem, and were succeeded by Constantius and Galerius; the former, a prince of the most mild and humane disposition, and the latter re- markable for his tyranny and cruelty. These divided the empire into two equal governments; Galerius ruling in the East, and Constantius in the West; and the people in the two governments felt the effects of the different dispositions of the two emperors; for those in the West were governed in the mildest manner, but such as resided in the East felt all the miseries of cruelty and oppression/ f Sulpicius, in the second book of his Sacred History, observes, that the primitive Christians were more desirous of martyrdom than its professors in the after ages were of bishoprics ! The number of martyrs increased under the persecutions of the contemporary emperors, Maximian and Diocletian, so much, that there were never less than ten executed daily, and from that to twenty, thirty, sixty, and even a hundred, who suffered various kinds of deaths till at last it was found necessary to destroy all in one general sacrifice per day, as the prisons became so crowded that there were no means of keeping the Christians alive. Eusebius, in his eighth book, cap. 9. as well as Damasus, Bede, Orosius, Honorius, and others witness, that there were slain in this persecution by the name of Martyrs, within the space of thirty days, seventeen thousand persons ! Bede in his history writes, that this persecution began under Diocletian, and endured till the seventh year of Constantinus. And Eusebius says that it lasted till the tenth year of Constantinus. It was not yet one year from the day in which Diocletian and Maximian, joining themselves together, began their persecution, before they saw the number of the CHRISTIANS KILLED BY GALERIUS. 7. r > As G ale 1 his bore an implacable hatred to Christians, we are informed, that " he not only condemned them to tortures, but to be burnt in slow fires, in this horrible manner: they were first chained to a post, then a gentle fire put to the soles of their feet, which contracted the callus till Christians rather increase than diminish, notwithstanding all the cruelty that ever they could shew, and therefore they despaired of rooting them out. Some important events which happened to Diocletian, seem so immediately the effect cf divine judgment upon that tyrant, that we think it proper to call the attention of the reader to the brief recital of them. When Diocletian and Maximian had reigned together as emperors one and twenty years, (Nicephorus says, two and twenty years), Diocletian abandoned his imperial dignity at Nicomedia, and lived at Salona ; Maximian did the same at Milan ; and thus both of them led a private life, in the three hundred and ninth year after Christ. This strange alteration made it happen, that, within a short space after, there were in the Roman commonwealth many emperors at one time. We have stated in the text in what manner the empire was divided between Galerius and Constantius; but the latter deserves some farther mention on account of his virtues. Constantius, as a modest prince, contented with the imperial title, refused Italy and Africa, satisfying himself only with France, Spain, and Britain. On which Galerius chose to him his two sons, Maximinius and Severus ; and on this Constantius took Constantinus his son as Caesar under him. In the mean time, while Galerius with his two Caesars were in Asia, the Roman soldiers set up for their emperor Maxentius, the son of Maximian, who had before deposed himself. Against him Galerius, the emperor of the East, sent his son Severus, who in the same voyage was slain of Maxentius, in whose place then Galerius took Licinus. And these were the emperors and Caesars who succeeded after Diocletian and Maximian, and continued that persecution which Diocletian and Maximian begun, during the space of seven or eight years. Constantius had no desire of dominion ; but was a prince, as Eutropius describes him, very excellent, meek, gentle, liberal, and desirous to do good to all who had any authority under him: and as Cyrus once said, that he got treasure enough, when he made his friends rich ; and Constantius would often say, that it were better that his subjects had treasure, than he to have it in his treasury. He was disgusted with finery, so that he used to eat and drink out of earthen vessels, a part of his conduct which has been much praised by Agathocles, the Sicilian. To these virtues he added devotion and affection towards the word of God, so that he neither levied any wars contrary to piety and the christian religion, nor aided any other prince that did the same; neither did he destroy the churches, but commanded that Christians should be preserved and defended from all injury. Constantius knowing that he had many hypocrites in his service, and wishing at a certain time to try what sincere Christians he had in his court, called together all his officers and servants, pretending to choose out such as would do sacrifice to devils, and that those only should keep their offices, while those who would refuse should be banished the .court. At this appointment, all the courtiers divided themselves into companies. The emperor marked which were the godliest; and when some said they would willingly do sacrifice, others boldly denied to do so. Then the emperor sharply rebuked those who were ready to do sacrifice, and called them traitors to God, account- ing them unworthy to be in his court, and commanded that they should be banished. But he greatly commended those who refused to do sacrifice, affirming, that they only were worthy to be about a prince ; and commanded that henceforth they should be the trusty counsellors and defenders both of his person and kingdom. As before said, with Constantius was joined Galerius, a man, as Eutropius affirms, who was very civil and a good soldier, as well as a favourer of wise and learned men. But Eusebius far otherwise describes him. He says, he was of a tyrannical disposition, exces- sively timid and curious in all superstition, insomuch that without the divinations and answers of magicians, he durst do nothing at all; and therefore he gave great offices and dignities to enchanters. He was an exacter and extortioner of the citizens, liberal to those that were flatterers, given to surfeiting and riot, a great drinker of wine, and in his furious drunkenness like a mad-man. To conclude, he was so great an idolater, that he built up temples in every city, and repaired those that were falling in great decay : but to the Christian religion, he was most incensive, and in the East churches exercised cruel persecutions. He at length revoked his cruelty by the just judgment and punishment of God. For he was seized with a fatal and desperate disease. The physicians, not. able to abide the 76 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. it fell off from the bone; then flambeaux just extinguished were put to all parts of their bodies, so that they might be tortured all over; and care was taken to keep them alive, by throwing cold water in their faces, and giving them some to wash their mouths, lest their throats should be dried up with thirst, and choke them. Thus their miseries were length- ened out, till at last, their skins being consumed, and they just ready to expire, were thrown into a great fire, and had their bodies burned to ashes, after which their ashes were thrown into some river." Of the Christians martyred by the order of Galerius, the most eminent are these : — Amphianus was a gentleman of distinction in Lycia, and a scholar of Eusebius; pressing through the crowd while the proclamation for sacrificing to idols was read, he caught the governor Urbianus by the hand, and severely reproved him for his wickedness. On which the governor, incensed at the freedom, ordered him to be put to the torture, and then thrown into the sea. iEdesius, brother of the last mentioned intolerable offence of the disorder, some of them were commanded to be slain, and others, because they could not heal him, were cruelly put to death. At length, being reminded that this disease was sent by God, he began to think of the wickedness that he had done against the saints, and so confessed his offences: then calling those who were about him, he commanded all men to cease from persecuting the Christians; requiring, moreover, that they should set up his imperial proclamations, for restoring their temples, and that they would require of the Christians, that they would devoutly pray to God for their emperor. Then was the persecution discontinued. Maximian, the other persecutor of the Christians, and the contemporary sovereign with Diocletian, also met with a dreadful end. Maxentius, the son of Maximian, was set up at Rome by the praetorian soldiers to be emperor. To this the senate, though they did not consent, yet for fear did not resist. Maximian, his father, who had before deprived himself with Diocletian, hearing of this, was inclined to resume his dignity, and laboured to persuade Diocletian to do the same: but not succeeding, he repaired to Rome, thinking to wrest the empire out of his son's hands. But as the soldiers would not suffer that, he fled to Constantinus in France, under pretence of complaining of Maxentius his son, but in fact to kill Constantinus; but the conspiracy being detected by Fausta, the daughter of Maximian, whom Constantinus had married, Constantinus through the grace of God was preserved, and Maximian returned. In his flight he was apprehended and put to death. Maxentius all this while reigned at Rome with tyranny and wickedness like another Pharaoh or Nero. He slew most of his noblemen, and took their estates. Sometimes in his rage he would destroy great multitudes of the people of Rome by his soldiers, as Eusebius declares. He is said to have left no mischievous nor lascivious act unattempted. Letus declares, that being in love with a noble and chaste gentlewoman of Rome, he sent to her such of his courtiers as he held in great estimation. These first fell upon her husband and murdered him in his own house: and when they could by no means get her away from him, she desired leave to go into her chamber, and after prayer she would accomplish what they requested. When she had reached her chamber under this plea, she killed herself. The end of Maxentius was as follows. Constantinus had a vision that commanded him to bear the sign of a cross before his army and go against the pagans. The day following this night's vision, Constantinus caused a cross after the same figure to be made of gold and precious stones, and to be borne before him instead of his standard ; and with as much hope of victory and confidence as one armed from Heaven, advanced towards his enemy. Maxentius being constrained to issue out of the city against him, sent all his power to join him in the field beyond the river Tiber, where Maxentius craftily breaking down the bridge called Pons Milvius, caused an artificial bridge to be made of boats, thinking to take Constantinus as in a trap. But here it came to pass, as is written, in the seventh Psalm, "He digged a pit and fell therein himself." After the hosts met, he being unable to sustain the force of Constantinus fighting under the cross against him, was put to such a flight, that in returning back, thinking to get into the city upon the same bridge which he laid for Constantinus, was overturned by the fall of his horse, and, with a great part of his men, was drowned. BURNING OF JULITTA. 7 7 martyr, was, about the same time, martyred at Alexandria, in a terrible manner. Julitta, a Lyconian of royal descent, was a christian lady of moat humility, constancy, and integrity. When the edict for sacrificing to idols was published at Iconium, she withdrew from that city, taking with her only her young son Cyricus, and two female servants. She was, however, seized at Tarsus, and being carried before Alexander, the governor, she acknowledged that she was a Christian. For this confes- sion her son was taken from her, and she was immediately put to the rack, and tortured with great severity; but she bore her sufferings with true Christian resignation. The child however cried bitterly to get at his mother; when the governor observing the beauty and melted at the tears of the infant, took him upon his knee, and endeavoured to pacify him. Nothing, however, could quiet Cyricus; he still called upon the name of his mother, and at length, in imitation of her words, lisped out, " I am a Christian." This innocent expression turned the governor's compassion into rage; and throwing the child furiously against the pavement, he dashed out its brains. The mother, who from the rack beheld the transaction, thanked the Almighty that her child was gone before her; and she should have no anxiety concerning his future w r elfare. To complete the torture, Julitta had boiling pitch poured on her feet, her sides torn with hooks, and received the end of her martyrdom by being beheaded, April 16, A. D. 305. Pantaleon, a native of Nicomedia, received an elegant education from his father, who was a pagan, and was taught the precepts of the gospel by his mother, who was a Christian. Applying to the study of medicine, he became eminent in the knowledge of physic, and in process of time was appointed physician to the emperor Galerius. The name of this man in Greek signifies humane, and the appellation well suited his nature, for he was one of the most benevolent men of his time; but his extraordinary reputation roused the jealousy of the pagan physicians, who accused him to the emperor. Galerius on finding him a Christian, ordered him to be tortured, and then beheaded, which sentence was executed on July 27, A. D. 305. Hermolaus, a venerable and pious Christian, of great age, and an intimate acquaintance of Pantaleon, suffered martyrdom for his faith on the same day, and in the same manner. Julitta, of Cappadocia, was a lady of distinguished capacity, great virtue, and uncommon courage : she was martyred on account of a law- suit, of which Basil, bishop of Csesarea, gives an account as follows: — " She had a troublesome suit with one of the principal men in Csesarea, who was unjustly possessed of a considerable part of her estate, and had seized both her servants and cattle. This oppressive usurper had found means to bribe the judges in his favour, and hired persons to swear, that the land and goods in dispute were his property. Julitta, supported by the justness of her cause, thought that she had nothing more to do but to give the magistrates an ingenuous account of her title. When the cause came to be tried, the defendant, instead of supporting his claim, urged that the law would not suffer him to engage at that bar with one of a different religion; so that he could not proceed in his defence, unless the lady, who was the plaintiff, renounced Christianity. The 78 HTSTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. judge was too well instructed not to second the motion, and gave it as his opinion, that what he insisted upon was according to the laws of the empire. He then ordered an altar to be brought in, and some fire to be put on it, and incense to be prepared, and then told the parties, that if they expected, either of them, to enjoy any benefit from the laws, they must both of them offer incense to the gods. The usurper who was a heathen, immediately complied; but Julitta made it appear that her faith was much dearer to her than her goods, or even than life itself. ' No, (said she), my affection to what is undoubtedly my own, shall never hinder me from sacrificing my all, and even my life, if required, rather than violate my fidelity to my God and Saviour.' For this de- claration she was condemned to be burnt." Eustratius, secretary to the governor of Armenia, was thrown into a furnace, for exhorting some Christians, who had been apprehended, to persevere in their faith. § Auxentius and Eugenius, two of Eustratius's adherents, were burnt at Nicopolis; Mardarius, another friend of his, expired under torment; and Orestes, a military officer, was broiled to death on a gridiron for wearing a golden cross at his breast. Theodore, a Syrian by birth, a soldier and a Christian, set fire to the temple of Cybele, in Amasia, through indignation at the idolatrous worship prac- tised in it, for which he was scourged, and on February 18, A. D. 306, burnt to death. Dorothea, a Christian of Cappadocia, was, by the governor's order, placed under the care of two women, who had become apostates to the faith, in order that she might be induced to follow their example. But her discourses had such an effect upon them, that they became re-converted, and were put to death for not succeeding: soon after which, Dorothea was tortured, and then beheaded. Pancratius was a native of Phrygia, but being made a Christian and brought to Rome, by his uncle, he there suffered martyrdom, by being beheaded after the decease of his uncle, who died a natural death a little time before. Cyrinus, Nazarius, Nabor, and Basilides, four worthy christian officers at Rome, were thrown into prison for their faith, scourged with rods of wire, and then beheaded. Two Roman military officers, Nicander and Marcian, were appre- hended on account of their faith. As they were both men of great abilities, the utmost endeavours were made to induce them to renounce Christianity ; but being without effect, they were ordered to be beheaded. The execution was attended by vast crowds of the populace, among whom were the wives of the two sufferers. The consort of Nicander was a Christian, and encouraged her husband to meet his fate with fortitude; but the wife of Marcian being a pagan, entreated her husband s Nicephorus tells us that Eustralius was much skilled in the Greek language, and was a scribe of great estimation. Tt appears that this man, beholding the marvellous constancy of the martyrs, thirsted with the desire of martyrdom, and privily learned the Christian religion. Therefore he detected himself, and professed that he was a Christian, only execrating the madness and vanity of the wicked Ethnics. Being in consequence carried away, he was tied up and cruelly beaten. After that he was scorched and mangled with shells, so that his whole body seemed to be one continual wound; yet by God's great goodness, it was speedily healed. After this he was carried to Sebastia, where with his companion Orestes he was burnt to death. |)1U)\\ NING OF QUIRINUS. 79 to save himself, for the sake of her and her child. Marcian, however, reproved her for her idolatry and folly, but before the stroke was given he embraced her and the infant. Nicander likewise took leave of his wife in the most affectionate manner; and then both, with great reso- lution, received the crown of martyrdom. Besides these there were several others, whose names and sufferings are not recorded by the ancient historians. In the kingdom of Naples several martyrdoms took place : in par- ticular, Januarius, bishop of Beneventum ; Sosius, deacon of Misene; Proculus, another deacon; Eutyches and Acutius, two laymen; Festus, a deacon; and Desiderius, a curate, were all condemned, by the governor of Campania, to be devoured by wild beasts for professing Christianity. The animals, however, not touching them, they were beheaded. Marcellus, a centurion, of the Trajan legion, was posted at Tangier, and being a Christian, suffered martyrdom, under the following circumstances : — While he was there, the emperor's birth-day was kept, and the sacrifices to the pagan idols made a considerable part of that solemnity. All the subjects of the empire were expected on that occa- sion to conform to the blind religion of their prince; but Marcellus, who had been well instructed in the duties of his profession, expressed his detestation of those profane practices, by throwing away his belt, the badge of his military character, declaring aloud that he was a soldier of Christ, the eternal king. He then quitted his arms, and added, that from that moment he ceased to serve the emperor ; and that he thus expressed his contempt of the gods of the empire, which were no better than deaf and dumb idols. " If," continued he, "their imperial majesties impose the obligation of sacrificing to them and their gods, as a necessary condition of their service, I here throw up my commission and quit the army." Marcellus's behaviour and speeches occasioned an order for his being beheaded. Cassian, secretary to the court which tried Marcellus, expressing his disapprobation of such proceedings, was ordered into custody; when avowing himself a Christian, he met with the same fate. Quirinus, bishop of Siscia, being carried before Matenius, the governor, was ordered to sacrifice to the pagan deities, agreeable to the edicts of various Roman emperors, but refusing, was ordered to be severely scourged. When under the hand of the executioner, the governor was urgent with him to sacrifice, and offered to make him a priest of Jupiter: to which Quirinus replied, that he was already engaged in the priestly office, while he thus offered a sacrifice to the true God. " I," continued he, " scarce feel my torments, and am ready to suffer still greater, that my example may show those whom God has committed to my care, the way to the glory we wish for." The governor then sent him to prison, and ordered him to be heavily ironed: after which he was sent to Amantius, the governor of Parmonia, now Hungary, who loaded him with chains, and carried him through the principal towns of the Danube, exposing him to general ridicule. At length arriving at Sabaria, and finding that Quirinus would not renounce his faith, he ordered him to be cast into a river, with a stone fastened to his neck. The sentence was accordingly put into execution, and Qnirinus, floating about for some time, exhorted the people in the most pious terms, concluding his 80 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. admonitions with this prayer: — "It is no new thing, O all-powerful Jesus! for thee to stop the course of rivers, or to cause a man to walk upon the water, as thou didst thy servant Peter: the people have already seen tire proof of thy power in me; grant me now to lay down my life for thy sake, O my God!" After uttering these words, he immediately sunk. This happened June 4, A. D. 308 : his body was afterwards taken up, and buried by some Christian brethren. Five Egyptian Christians being on a visit to their afflicted brethren in Ccesarea, were apprehended and carried before Firmilian, the governor of Palestine, who, on questioning them, was answered by one in the name of the rest, that they were Christians, and belonged to the New Jerusalem, and had their names recorded in the book of life. The governor was surprised at the answer, as he knew Vespasian and his son Titus had destroyed the ancient Jerusalem; and that the inconsiderable town erected by Adrian upon the spot, was called iElia Capitolina: he therefore enquired more particularly concerning it. The Christian who had spoken before, again replied, and pursuing the allegory, described, with great force of imagination, the beauty, riches, and strength of the place. Firmilian still mistaking the Christian's meaning, by under- standing his words in a literal sense, became much alarmed; for not dreaming that a heavenly city was alluded to, he fancied that the Chris- tians were strengthening and fortifying some place, in order to revolt from their allegiance to the emperor. Prejudiced by this mistake, and enraged at the supposed disloyalty, he condemned ihe five prisoners to be cruelly tormented and then beheaded; which sentence was executed on the 16th of February, A. D. 309. Pamphilius, a native of Phoenicia, of a considerable family, was a man of such extensive learning, that he was called a second Origen. He was received among the clergy at Csesarea, where he spent his time in the practice of every christian virtue. He copied the greatest parts of the works of Origen with his own hand, and, assisted by Eusebius, gave a correct copy of the Old Testament, which had suffered greatly by the ignorance or negligence of former transcribers. He likewise gave public lectures on religious and literary subjects, in an academy which he had erected for that purpose, till the year 307, when he was appre- hended and carried before Urban, the governor of Palestine, who exerted himself to induce him to embrace paganism. Finding his endeavours vain, he began to threaten him; but Pamphilius maintained his resolu- tion, upon which he was ordered to be severely tortured, and then sent to prison. Soon after, Urban, having displeased the emperor, was displaced and beheaded ; but another was appointed in his room, who was equally prejudiced against the Christians. Pamphilius suffered martyrdom under the new governor, by being beheaded; together with Valens, a deacon of the church of Jerusalem; and Paul, a layman, of Jamnia, in Palestine. Porphyrius, the servant of Pamphilius, was burnt by a straw fire, for only requesting leave to bury the body of his master and other martyrs. Theodolus, a venerable and faithful servant to Firmilian, the governor, being accused of the Christian faith, confessed the charge, and was, by order of his master, crucified on February 17, A. D. 309: CONS r A N 1 I X ] :s VISION. 8 1 on the same day, Julian, a Cappadocian, was burnt. Marcellus, bishop o[' Rome, being banished on account of his faith, fell a martyr to the miseries he suffered in exile, A. D. 310, on the 16th of January. Peter, the sixteenth bishop of Alexandria, by order of Maximinus Caesar, who reigned in the East, was martyred November 25, A. D. 311. Lucian, a learned Syrian, was a man of so benevolent a temper, that he disposed of the greatest part of his fortune in charitable donations. He was apprehended as a Christian, imprisoned for the space of nine years, put to the rack, rolled upon sharp flints, and being tortured to death, his body was thrown into the sea; but it was afterwards cast on shore, and received Christian interment. Valentine, a priest, suffered the same fate at Rome; and Erasmus, a bishop, was martyred in Campania. Cosmus and Damian, Arabians and brothers, were martyred in Cilicia; Adrian, an imperial officer, was beheaded in Rome; Barbara, a young lady, was martyred at Nicomedia; Lucia, a Christian virgin, was put to death at Syracuse; and Serena, the empress of Diocletian, did not escape martyrdom when she declared herself a Christian. Gordius, a native of Csesarea, and a centurion in the Roman army, was first tortured, and then burnt; Menas, an Egyptian soldier, was beheaded; and Barlaam, a noble martyr, having endured the utmost torments even to the point of death, his tormentors laid him on a pagan altar, and put frankincense into his hand, which they lighted, that the heat and force of the fire might oblige him to scatter the burning incense on the altar, to enable them to say that he had sacrificed ; but they were disappointed, for the flame went round his hand, which appeared covered with red hot embers, while he uttered this exclamation of the psalmist: "Blessed be the Lord my God, who teacheth my hands to war, and my fingers to fight/' After which he surrendered his soul to the Redeemer. The pagans about this time shut up the doors of a church in which a Christian congregation were assembled, and having set fire to the build- ing, every person perished. Constantine the Great at length determined to redress the grievances of the Christians, for which purpose he raised an army of 30,000 foot and 8000 horse, with which he marched towards Rome, against Max- entius, the emperor. But he reflected on the fatal miscarriages of his predecessors, who had maintained a multiplicity of gods, and reposed an entire confidence in their assistance. On the other hand, he con- sidered that while his father adored only one God, he continually pros- pered. He therefore rejected the adoration of idols, and implored the assistance of the Almighty; who heard his prayers, and answered them in a manner so surprising and miraculous, that Eusebius acknowledges it could not have been credible, had he not received it from the em- peror's own mouth, who publicly and solemnly ratified the truth with a solemn oath. The extraordinary narrative is as follows: — "The army arriving near Rome, the emperor was employed in devout ejaculations on the 27th of October, about three o'clock in the afternoon, when, the sun declining, there suddenly appeared to him a pillar of light in the heavens, in the form of a cross, with this plain inscription, In hoc signo vinces, "In this sign thou shalt conquer." Constantine was greatly surprised at the 82 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. astonishing sight, which was also visible to the whole army, who equally wondered at it with himself. The officers and commanders, prompted by the augurs and soothsayers, looked upon it as an inauspicious omen, portending an unfortunate expedition. The emperor himself did not understand it, till at length Christ appeared to him in a vision, with the cross in his hand, commanding him to make it a royal standard, and cause it to be continually carried before his army, as an ensign both of victory and safety. Early the next morning, Constantine informed his friends and officers of what he had seen in the night, and sending for proper workmen, sat down by them, and described to them the form of the standard, which he then ordered them to make with the greatest art and magnificence. They made it thus: a long spear, plated with gold, with a traverse piece at the top, in the form of a cross, to which was fastened a four square purple banner, embroidered with gold, and beset with precious stones, which reflected the brightest lustre: towards the top was depicted the emperor between his two sons: above the cross, stood a crown, overlaid with gold and jewels, within which was placed the sacred symbol, namely the two first letters of Christ in Greek, X and P, one intersecting the other. This device he afterwards bore, not only upon his shields, but also upon his coins, many of which are still extant." h In the subsequent engagement with Maxentius, he defeated him, and entered the city of Rome in triumph. A law was now published in favour of the Christians, in which Licinius joined with Constantine, and a copy of it was sent to Maximus in the East. Maximus was a bigoted pagan, and greatly disliked the edict; but being afraid of Constantine, did not openly avow his disapprobation. At length Maximus invaded the territories of Licinius, but being defeated, he was so chagrined, that he put an end to his life by poison. The death of Maxentius has al- ready been described in a previous note. Licinius was not a Christian in his heart, but affected to appear as such, through the dread of Constantine's power; for even after publish- ing several edicts in favour of the Christians, he put to death Blase, Bishop of Sebaste, several bishops and priests of Egypt and Lybia, who were cut to pieces, and thrown into the sea; and forty soldiers of the garrison of Sebaste, who suffered martyrdom by fire. These things offended Constantine the Great; and he marched against Licinius, who was defeated by him, and afterwards slain by his own soldiers. St. George, the tutelar saint and the patron of England, was born in Cappadocia, of Christian parents, who brought him up according to the tenets of the gospel. His father dying when he was young, he travelled with his mother into Palestine, which was her native country. Here h In the writings of Marsilius Patavinus, entitled "Defensor Pads," which were pub- lished in the year 1324, it is observed of Constantine, that he was a singular spectacle for all Christian princes to imitate; that his fervent zeal in favour of the servants of Christ was notable ; but especially the affection and reverence of his heart towards those, who had suffered for the confession of Christ in previous persecutions: these he held in peculiar veneration, so much that he embraced and kissed their wounds and stripes. And if any such bishop or other ministers brought to him any complaints one against another, (as many times they did) he would take their bills of complaint and burn them before their faces; so studious and zealous was his mind to have them agree. CODS VENGEANCE EXEMPLIFIED. 83 she claimed a patrimonial estate, which afterwards descended to her son. St. George being active, and of great spirit, became a soldier, and was made a tribune or colonel. In this post he exhibited great proofs of his courage, and was promoted in the army of the emperor Diocletian. During the persecution, St. George threw up his com- mand, went boldly to the senate-house, and avowed his being a Christian, taking occasion at the same time to remonstrate against paganism. This so greatly provoked the senate, that St. George was ordered to be tortured, which he underwent with much constancy. He was after- wards, by the emperor's command, dragged through the streets and beheaded. The calendar commemorates his martyrdom on the 23rd of April. 1 In the catalogue of holy martyrs, who suffered in the tenth persecu- tion, many more are mentioned, particularly Philoromus, a man of noble birth, and great possessions in Alexandria, who, being persuaded by his friends to favour himself, to respect his wife, to consider his children and family, not only rejected the counsel, but also neglected the threats and torments of the judge, to keep the confession of Christ inviolate to death. Of like estate and dignity was Procopius in Pa- lestina, who after conversion brake his images of silver and gold, and distributed the value of them to the poor, and after all kind of torments, racking, tearing his flesh, at length had his head struck off. Georgius, a young man of Cappadocia, boldly inveighing against the impious idolatry of the emperors, was apprehended and cast into prison, then torn with irons, burnt with lime, stretched with cords; after that, his hands and feet being cut off, his tortures were closed, and his crown of martyrdom was completed by beheading. We cannot close our account of the ten persecutions under the Roman emperors, without calling the attention of the. Christian reader to the evident indignation which the Almighty manifested towards the persecutors. History shews that no nation or individual can prosper where Christ Jesus, the Son of God, is contemned. After these events, the Romans were not only plagued and destroyed by their own em- perors, but also by civil wars, three of which happened in two years at Rome, after the death of Nero. In the days of Tiberius, five thousand Romans were maimed or slain at one time by the fall of a theatre. By the destruction of the Jews, about this time, there were destroyed by Titus and Vespasian his father, eleven thousand, besides those whom > The order of the Garter, instituted by Edward the third, on an occasion well known to every child acquainted with English history, is placed under the tutelary protection of St. George; but with a most ridiculous substitution of fable for fact. The saint is pictured in the badge of the order — a badge worn even by the bishop of Winchester, as prelate of the order, in every pulpit in which he preaches — in the traditionary attitude of tilting at a dragon as a sort of knight errantry defence of some hopeful virgin; thus commemorating by the highest order in the realm, a pagan fable, rather than any one of the christian enterprises by which the saint is said to have been distinguished ! The apology for this absurd preference is as ridiculous as the preference itself. The dragon is considered an emblem of the devil, and the saint's encounter with it an allegory of his assailing the powers of darkness by the life and death of a Christian hero! Subsequent ruling powers, however, not satisfied with this apology, have associated with St. George in the protection of the order, the Blessed Virgin, St. Edward the confessor, and even the Holy Trinity! 84 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Vespasian slew in subduing Galilee, and those who were sent into Egypt, and other provinces to slavery, to the number of seventeen thousand. Two thousand were brought with Titus in his triumph; many of whom he gave to be devoured by the wild beasts, and the rest were most cruelly slain. By this case all nations may take example, what it is to reject the visitation of God's truth, and much more to persecute those who are sent by God for their salvation. And though the vengeance of God thus was shewn upon both Jews and Romans, for their contempt of Christ, whom God so punished by their own emperors; yet neither the emperors themselves, for perse- cuting Christ in his members, escaped without their just reward. For during the space of these first three hundred years, few or none of them escaped some miserable end. First we record the poisoning of Tiberius, and the slaughter of the three Neros after him. Then Domitius Galba within seven months was slain by Otho. And Otho afterwards killed himself, being overcome by Vitellius. Vitellius shortly after was drawn through the city of Rome, and after being tormented was thrown into the Tiber. Titus was thought to be poisoned by Domitian his brother; and Domitian was slain in his chamber by the consent of his wife. Commodus was murdered by Narcissus. Pertinax and Julianus met a similar fate. Severus was slain in England ; his son Bassianus killed his brother Geta, and he was murdered by Martialis. Macrinus with his son Diadumenus were both slain by their own soldiers. Heliogabulus was killed by his people, drawn through the city, and cast into the Tiber. Alexander Severus, although in life and virtues he was much superior to other emperors, yet met with the like end, being slain at Mentz with his godly mother Mammea, by Maximinus, whom the emperor from a mule-driver had advanced to great dignities. Maximinus also, three years after, was slain by his soldiers. Maximus and Balbinus, in like manner, were both massacred in Rome. Gordon was slain by Philip. Decius was drowned, and his son slain at the same time in battle. Gallus and Volusianus his sons, were both slain by a con- spiracy of Emilianus, who rose against them in war, and within three months was slain himself. Next to Emilianus succeeded Valerian and Galienus his son. Valerian was taken prisoner by the Persians, and there contemned by Sapores their king, who used him for a stool to leap upon his horse ; while his son Galienus, sleeping at Rome, either would not or could not revenge his father's ignominy^ After the taking of Valerian, as many emperors rose up as there were provinces in the Roman monarchy. At length Galienus was killed by Aureolus, who warred against him. Aurelian was slain by his secretary. Tacitus and Florinus his brother: the first reigned six months, and was slain at Pontus; the other reigned two months, and was murdered at Tarsus. Probus, although a good civil emperor, was destroyed by his soldiers. After him Carus, the next emperor, was slain by lightning. Next to Carus followed the impious Diocletian, with Maximian, Valerius, Maxi- minus, Maxentius, and Licinius, under whom (during the time of Diocletian) the greatest persecution was excited against Christians for ten years. Diocletian and Maximian deposed themselves from the empire. The miserable end of Galerius has been already described. PERSECUTIONS IN PERSIA. 86 MaximmiuSj in his war, being- tormented with pain, died in misery. Maxentius was vanquished by Constantine, and drowned in the Tiber. Licinius, being overcome by Constantine the Great, was deposed from bis empire, and afterwards slain by his soldiers. On the other hand, after the time of Constantine, when the faith of Christ was received into the imperial seat, we read of scarcely an emperor destroyed or molested. Thus it may be seen that the punishment of God, though deferred, is certain to alight on the wicked ; and if he has hitherto withheld his hand from visiting our sins in this realm, let us not on that account be high minded, but humbly thank him for his tender mercies; and while we bow before him in faith, let us endeavour to preserve his worship free from that ungodliness and superstition of which it is now purged. So shall we be happy in this fleeting w T orld, and obtain everlasting life in the world to come, through the intercession of our blessed Redeemer, who offered up his life on the cross for our salvation. BOOK II. Containing an account of the persecutions in Persia under Sapores ; the persecutions under the Arian ascendancy ; those under Julian the Apostate, the Goths and Vandals; and in various parts of the world; with many other particulars. SECTION I. THE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS IN- PERSIA. The gospel having spread itself into Persia, the pagan priests became greatly alarmed, and dreaded the loss of their influence over the public mind. They therefore complained to the emperor, that Christians were enemies to the state, and held a treasonable correspondence with the Romans, the great enemies of Persia. The emperor, being averse to Christianity, readily believed wdiat was said against its disciples, and gave orders to persecute them throughout his empire. On account of this mandate many fell martyrs, the sufferings of the most eminent of whom we shall here relate. Simeon, archbishop of Seleucia, with many other ecclesiastics, to the number of 128, were apprehended and accused of having betrayed the affairs of Persia to the Romans. The emperor being greatly exasperated against them, ordered Simeon to be brought before him. The arch- bishop in his presence boldly acknowledged his faith, and defended the cause of Christianity. The emperor offended at his freedom, ordered him to kneel before him, as he had done in former interviews. To this Simeon answered "That being now brought before him a prisoner, for the truth of his religion, and the sake of his God, it was not lawful for him to kneel, lest he should be thought to worship and betray his faith." 86 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. On this the emperor told him, that if he did not kneel, he and all the Christians in his dominions should be put to death; but Simeon rejected with disdain the proposal to kneel. The emperor then ordered him to be sent to prison. A short time after, Simeon and his fellow-prisoners were examined, and commanded to worship the sun, agreeable to the Persian custom; but this they resolutely and unanimously refused. The emperor then sentenced them to be beheaded, and the sentence was executed without delay, exception, or remorse. An aged eunuch, named Usthazares, who had been tutor to the em- peror, and was in great estimation at court, on observing Simeon pro- ceeding to prison, saluted him. Simeon, however, (as Usthazares had formerly been a Christian, and since apostatized to oblige the emperor) would not return his salute, but reproved him for his apostasy. This so affected the eunuch, that he burst into tears, and exclaimed, "Ah! how shall I hereafter look upon my God, whom I have denied, when Simeon, my old companion and familiar acquaintance, disdains to give me a gentle word, or to return my salute!" The emperor learning that his ancient tutor was afflicted, sent for him, and asked him whether he desired any thing which could be procured for him; to which the eunuch replied, That there was nothing that he wanted, which this earth could afford; but that his grief was of another kind, and for which he justly mourned, namely, that to oblige him he had denied his God, and had worshipped the sun, against his own con- science ; for which, continued he, I am deserving a double death, first, for denying Christ, and secondly, for dissembling with my king. The emperor, offended at this explanation, ordered Usthazares to be beheaded. While going to execution, he desired that a messenger might be sent to the emperor, to request that it might be proclaimed, "That Usthazares did not die for any crime against the king or state; but only that being a Christian, he would not deny his God." This petition was granted, and was a great satisfaction to Usthazares, whose chief reason for desiring it was, because his apostasy from Christ had caused many others to follow his example; but now, hearing that he died for no crime but his religion, they might return to Christ. Usthazares then cheerfully yielded his neck to the executioner. On Good Friday after his execution, an edict was published to put to death all who confessed themselves Christians, which caused the destruc- tion of multitudes. About this time the empress of Persia falling sick, the sisters of Simeon, the archbishop, were accused by some of the magi of causing this calamity. This report being credited, they were, by the emperor's orders, sawed in quarters, and their limbs fixed upon poles, between which the empress passed as a charm to effect the restoration of her health. Acepsimus, and many other clergymen, were seized upon, and ordered to adore the sun; which refusing, they were scourged, and then tortured to death, or kept in prison till they expired. Athalas, a priest, though not put to death, was so miserably racked, that his arms were rendered useless: and he was ever after obliged to be fed like a child. In short, by this edict, above 16,000 either suffered horribly by torture, or lost their lives by some barbarous execution. INTERFERENCE OF CONSTANTINE. 87 When Constantine the Great was informed of the persecutions in Persi i, he was much concerned, and began to reflect in what manner he should redress the grievances of the victims, when an ambassador arrived from the Persian emperor upon some political business. Con- stantine received him civilly, granted his demands, and wrote a letter to the Persian monarch in favour of the Christians, in which he alluded to the vengeance that had fallen on persecutors, and the success that had attended those who had refrained from the persecution : and then refer- ring to the tyrants and persecuting emperors of his own time, he said, " I subdued those solely by faith in Christ; in which God was my helper, who gave me victory in battle, and made me triumph over my enemies; and hath so enlarged to me the bounds of the Romish empire, that it extends from the Western Ocean, almost to the uttermost parts of the East. For this purpose I neither offered sacrifice to the ancient deities, nor made use of charm or divination, but only prayer to Almighty God, and followed the cross of Christ: and how glad should I be to hear that the throne of Persia flourished by embracing the Christians ; that so you with me, and they with you, may en|oy all the felicity your souls could desire; and no doubt but you would, as God, the Almighty Creator of all things, would become your protector and defender. These men, there- fore, I commend to your mercy; I commit them unto you, desiring you to embrace them with humanity; for in so doing, you will procure to yourself grace through faith, and bestow on me a benefit worthy of my thanks." In consequence of this appeal, the persecution ended during the life of Sapores; but it was renewed under his successors, when the following were the principal sufferers: — Hormisdas, a Persian nobleman, being convicted of Christianity, was ordered to attend the emperor's elephants naked. This disgusting task he performed for some time, when the emperor one day looking out of a window which commanded the yard where the elephants were kept, saw Hormisdas performing his office. Determining to try him once more, he gave orders that a shirt should be put on him, and that he should be brought into his presence. The emperor asked him if he would now deny Christ. On which Hormisdas tore off his shirt, and said, " If you think I will deny my faith for the sake of a shirt, take your gift again." The emperor then banished him from Persia, and he died in exile. Theodoret, a deacon, was imprisoned for two years, and on being released, was ordered not to preach the doctrine of Christ. He how- ever did his utmost to propagate the gospel, for which he was miserably tormented, by having sharp reeds thrust under his nails; and then a knotty branch of a tree was forced into his body, and he expired in the most excruciating agony. Bademus, a Christian of Mesopotamia, gave away his fortune to the poor, and devoted his life to religious retire- ment. This Christian, with seven others, was seized and cruelly tortured. The Christians, who were apprehended with Bademus, re- ceived martyrdom, though the manner is not recorded; and Bademus, after having been four months in prison, was beheaded by Narses, an apostate Christian, who acted as the executioner, in order to convince the emperor that he was sincere in his renunciation of the Christian faith. S8 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. SECTION II. PERSECUTIONS UNDER THE ARIAN ASCENDANCY. The sect denominated Arian, had its origin from Arius, a native of Lybia, and a priest of Alexandria, who, in A. D. 31 8 ; began to publish his errors. He was condemned by a council of the Lybian and Egyptian bishops, and the sentence was confirmed by the council of Nice in A. D. 325. After the death of Constantine the Great, the Arians found means to ingratiate themselves into the favour of Constantius, his son and successor in the East; and hence a persecution was raised against the orthodox bishops and clergy. The celebrated Athanasius, and other bishops, were banished at this period, and their sees filled with Arians. In Egypt and Lybia, thirty bishops were martyred and many other Christians cruelly tormented. George, the first Arian bishop of Alexan- dria, under the authority of the emperor, began a persecution in that city, and its environs, which was continued some time with the utmost severity. He was assisted by Catophonius, governor of Egypt; Sebas- tian, general of the Egyptian forces; Faustinus, the treasurer; and a Roman officer, named Heraclius. So great was this persecution, that the clergy were driven from Alexandria, their churches were shut, and the severities practised by the Arian heretics became as great as those that had been exercised by the pagan idolaters. If a man accused of being an orthodox Christian made his escape, his whole family were massacred, and his effects forfeited. By this means, being deprived of all places of public worship in the city of Alexandria, the persecuted used to perform their devotion in a desert at some distance from it. On a Trinity Sunday, when they had met, George, the Arian bishop, en- gaged Sebastian, the general, to fall upon them with his soldiers, while they were at prayers; and several fell a sacrifice to the fury of the troops. The modes of cruelty were various, and the degrees equally diversified ; for they were beaten on their faces till their features were disfigured ; or were lashed with twigs of palm-trees with such violence, that they expired under the blows, or by the mortification of the wounds. Several whose lives had been spared, were banished to the deserts of Africa, where amidst their sufferings, they passed their time in prayer, and general acts of piety and devotion. Secundus, an orthodox priest, differing in point of doctrine from a prelate of the same name, the bishop, who had imbibed the pecu- liarities of Arianism, determined to put Secundus to death, for rejecting opinions which he himself had thought proper to embrace. He went with one Stephen, as much an Arian as himself, sought out Secundus privately, fell upon and murdered him : the holy martyr, just before he expired, called upon Christ to receive his soul, and to forgive his enemies. At this time, being dissatisfied with the cruelties exercised upon the orthodox Christians in Alexandria, the principal persecutors applied to the emperor for an order to banish them from Egypt and Lybia, and to put their churches into possession of the Arians. They obtained their request, and an order was sent for that purpose to SLAUGHTER OF CHRISTIANS AT ALEXANDRIA.— PACE 88. AKI \\ PERSECUTIONS. 89 Sebastian, the commander in chief of the Roman forces in those pro- vinces: the general signified the emperor's pleasure to all the sub- governors and officers. Thus a great number of the clergy were seized, and imprisoned tor examination ; when it appearing that they adopted the opinions of Athanasius, an order was signed for their banishment into uncultivated and mostly uninhabited regions. While the orthodox clergy were thus used, many of the laity were condemned to the mines, or compelled to work in the quarries. Some few indeed escaped to other countries, and several were weak enough to renounce their faith, in order to avoid the severity of the persecution. Paul, the bishop of Constantinople, was a Macedonian, and was designed from his birth for the clerical office. When Alexander, the predecessor of Paul, was on his death-bed, he was consulted by some of the clergy on the choice of a successor: he told them, " That if they were disposed to choose a person of an exemplary life, and thoroughly capable of instructing the people, Paul was the man ; but if they had rather have a person of a well-composed appearance, acquainted with worldly affairs, and fit for the conversation of a court, they might then choose Macedonius." The latter was a deacon in the church of Constantinople, in which office he had spent many years, and gained great experience; and the dying prelate did both him and Paul justice in the different characters he gave them. Nevertheless, the Arians gave out, that Alexander had bestowed great commendations on Macedonius for sanctity, and had only given Paul the reputation of eloquence, and a capacity for busi- ness ; after some struggle, the orthodox party carried their point, and Paul was consecrated. Macedonius, being offended at this preference, did his utmost to calumniate the new bishop : but not gaining belief, he dropped the charge, and reconciled himself to Paul. This was not the case with Eusebius of Nicomedia, who resumed the accusations under two heads, as follow :-— " 1. That he had led a disorderly life before his consecration. 2. That he had been placed in the see of Constantinople without the consent of the bishops of Nicomedia and Heraclea, two metropolitans, who ought to have been consulted upon that occasion." Eusebius, to support these accusations, procured the emperor's au- thority, by representing that Paul, having been chosen during the absence of Constantius, the imperial dignity had been insulted. This artifice succeeded, and Paul being deposed Eusebius was placed in his stead. Thus Paul having lost all his authority in the East, retired to the territories of Constans, in the West, where he was well received by the orthodox prelates and clergy. At Rome he visited Athanasius, and assisted at a council held there by Julius, the bishop of that see. Let- ters being written by this council to the eastern prelates, Paul returned to Constantinople, but was not restored to his bishopric till the death of Eusebius. The Arians, however, constituting Macedonius their diocesan, by the title of bishop of Constantinople, a civil war ensued, in which many were put to death. Constantius the emperor, who was then at Antioch, hearing of the schism, laid the whole blame upon Paul, and ordered that he should be driven from Constantinople. But Hermogenes, the officer who had 90 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. received the emperor's order, attempted in vain to put it into execution ; for the orthodox Christians rising- in defence of Paul, Hermogenes was killed. This greatly exasperated the emperor, who left Antioch in the depth of winter, and returned to Constantinople, resolving to punish the Christians. He, however, contented himself with banishing Paul and suspending Macedonius. After this, Paul retired again to the terri- tories of Constans, implored the protection of that emperor, and by his intercession, was restored to his see. His re-establishment exasperated his enemies, who were constantly employed in secret and open attempts against his life, against which the affections of his people were his only security. Being convinced that the emperor had no other motive for allowing his stay at Constantinople but the dread of disobliging his brother, Paul could not think himself perfectly safe in his bishopric; and being much concerned at what the orthodox bishops suffered from the power and malice of the Arian faction, joined Athanasius, who was then in Italy, in soliciting a general council. The council was held at Sardica, in Illyricum, in the year 347, at which were present three hun- dred bishops of the western, and seventy-three of the eastern empire. But disagreeing in many points, the Arian bishops of the East retired to Philippolis, in Thrace and forming a conference there, they termed it the council of Sardica ; from which place they pretended to issue an excommunication against Julius, bishop of Rome; Paul, bishop of Constantinople ; Athanasius, bishop of Alexandria ; and several other prelates. In the year 350, the emperor Constans died, which gave the Arians fresh courage, and they applied to the emperor Constantius, who being inclined towards them, he wrote an order to the prefect Philip, to remove Paul from the bishopric of Constantinople, and to restore Macedonius. Paul was exiled to Cucucus, and confined in a dark dungeon for six days without food, and then strangled. He met death with uncommon fortitude. The Arian party now made Gregory of Cappadocia, an obscure per- son, bishop of Alexandria, after having deposed Athanasius for his strict adherence to the orthodox faith. In the accomplishment of this affair, they were assisted by Philagerius, governor of Egypt, who was an apos- tate, and who authorised them to commit all manner of outrage. Arming themselves with swords and clubs, they broke into one of the principal churches of Alexandria, where numbers of orthodox Christians were assembled at their devotions ; and falling upon them in a barbarous manner, without the least respect to sex or age, most of them were destroyed. Potamo, a venerable bishop of Heraclea, who had formerly lost one of his eyes in Diocletian's persecution, fell a martyr upon this occasion ; being so cruelly scourged and beaten that he died of his wounds. The Arians also broke into many places, public and private, under pretence of searching for Athanasius, and committed innumerable barbarities ; robbing orphans, plundering the houses of widows, impri- soning the clergy, burning churches and dwelling-houses belonging to the orthodox Christians, besides other enormous cruelties, which were perpetuated by a mob of fanatics, under a name which every part of their temper and conduct disgraced. CONDUCT OF JIM. IAN. 91 SECTION III. THE PERSECUTION UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE. Julian the Apostate, was the son of Julius Constantius, and the nephew of Constantine the Great. He studied the rudiments of grammar under the inspection of Madronius, a heathen eunuch of Constantinople. His father sent him afterwards to Nicomedia, to be instructed in the Chris- tian religion by the bishop Eusebius, his kinsman ; but his principles were corrupted by the pernicious doctrines of Maximus the magician, and Ecebolius a professor of rhetoric. Constantius died in the year 361, when Julian succeeded him; but he had no sooner attained the imperial dignity, than he renounced Chris- tianity and embraced paganism. He restored idolatrous worship, by opening the several temples that had been shut up, rebuilding such as were destroyed, and ordering the magistrates and people to follow his example ; but he issued no public edicts against Christianity. He re- called all banished pagans, allowed the free exercise of religion to every sect; but deprived all Christians of office at court, in the magistracy, or in the army. He was chaste, temperate, vigilant, laborious, and apparently pious ; so that by his hypocrisy and pretended virtues, he for a time did more mischief to Christianity than the most profligate of his predecessors ; especially as he deprived the christian clergy of the pri- vileges which had been granted them by Constantine the Great. Accordingly, this persecution was more dangerous than any of the former, since Julian, under the mask of clemency, practised the greatest cruelty in striving to denude many thousands of their true belief ; and the christian faith was in more danger of being subverted than it ever had been, by means of a monarch at -once witty and wicked, learned and hypocritical ; who, at first, made his attempts by flattering gifts and favours — bestowing offices and dignities ; and then, by prohibiting christian schools, he compelled the children of the gospel either to become idolaters or remain illiterate. Julian ordered that Christians might be treated coldly upon all occa- sions and in all parts of the empire, and employed witty persons to turn them and their principles into ridicule. Many were likewise martyred in his reign : for though he did not publicly persecute them himself, he connived at their being murdered by his governors and officers ; and though he affected never to patronize these murderers, he never offered to punish them for their delinquency. We shall recount the names, sufferings, and martyrdoms of such as have been transmitted to posterity. By his opposition to Arianism, Basil made himself famous, which, brought upon him the vengeance of the Arian bishop of Constantinople, who issued an order to prevent him from preaching. He continued, however, to perform his duty at Ancyra, the capital of Galatia, till his enemies accused him of being an incendiary, and a disturber of the public peace. The monarch, however, was too intent on an expedition to Persia, to take notice of the accusation, and their malice at that time was wholly frustrated. Basil therefore continued to preach against the 92 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. idolatry of paganism on the one hand, and the errors of Arianism on the other ; and earnestly exhorted the people to serve Christ in the purity of faith and fervency of truth. By this conduct both heathens and Arians were exasperated against him, and the consequence might be conjectured. One day meeting with a number of pagans going in procession to a sacrifice, he boldly expressed his abhorrence of the idolatrous proceed- ings, and inveighed against the absurd worship. This liberty caused the people to seize him, and carry him before Saturninus, the governor, when they brought three accusations against him, viz. reviling the gods, abusing the emperor, and disturbing the peace of the city. Having heard these accusations, Saturninus desired to know the sentiments of Basil from his own mouth ; when finding him a strenuous Christian, he ordered him first to be put to the rack, and then committed to prison. The governor wrote an account of his proceedings to the emperor, who was at this time very busy in establishing the worship of Cybele, the fictitious mother of the fabulous deities. Julian, on receiving the letter, sent Pagosus and Elipidius, two apostates, to Ancyra, the city where Basil was confined, to employ both promises and threatenings to constrain him to renounce his faith ; and in case of their failure, they had orders to surrender him to the power of the governor. The emperor's agents tampered with Basil in vain by means of promises, threatenings, and the rack : he was firm in his faith, and remained in prison when the emperor by accident came to Ancyra. As soon as the people knew of Julian's approach, they met him in grand procession, and presented to him their idol, the goddess Hecate. The two agents then gave the emperor an account of what Basil had suffered, and of his firm resistance. Julian, on this, determined to examine the sufferer himself, when that holy man being brought before him, the emperor did every thing in his power to dissuade him from persevering in the faith. Basil, however, not only con- tinued firm, but with a prophetic spirit foretold the death of the emperor and that he might be tormented in the other world. Julian then lost his usual affection of clemency, and told Basil in great anger, that though he had an inclination to pardon him at first, yet he had put it out of his power to save his life by the insolence of his behaviour. He then commanded that the body of Basil should be torn every day in seven different parts, till his skin and flesh were entirely mangled. The inhuman sentence was executed with rigour, and the martyr expired under its severities on the 28th of June, A. D. 362. About the same time, Donatus, bishop of Arezzo, and Hilarinus, a hermit, suffered for the faith ; the first being beheaded, and the latter scourged to death One Gordian, a Roman magistrate, having a Chris- tian before him for examination, was so charmed with the confession of his faith, that he not only discharged the prisoner, but became himself a Christian. This so enraged the Roman prefect, that he ordered him to be scourged and beheaded. Two brothers, named John and Paul, of a good family, and in high offices under the emperor, on being accused of professing Christianity, were deprived of their posts, and allowed ten days to consider whether they would renounce their faith and be promoted, or retain their faith PERSEC1 TIONS UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE. 93 and be martyred. Resolutely choosing the latter alternative, they were l>oth beheaded. Artemius, commander in chief of the Roman forces in Egypt, being a Christian, had two charges exhibited against him by the pagans — That he had demolished several idols in the reign of Constantine ; and that he had assisted the bishop of Alexandria in plundering the temples. Julian, who was then at Antioch, on hearing these charges, ordered the general to repair thither to answer them. On his arrival he boldly con- fessed the charges, when he was first deprived of his commission, then of his estate, and finally of his head. Cassian, a school-master of Imola, in the province of Romagno, for refusing to sacrifice to the idols, was taken before a judge ; who being apprised of his profession, and informed that many of the boys had an aversion to him on account of the strictness with which he kept them to their studies, determined they should have permission to murder him. He was accordingly delivered to the boys, with his hands tied behind him, who fell upon him with rods, whips, and steel pencils, which were then used in writing, and at length murdered him. This singular martyrdom happened on the 13th of August, A. D. 362. Maximilian and Bonosus, two officers of the Herculean guards, upon Julian taking away Constantine the Great's standard of the cross of Christ, threw up their commissions. Being apprehended, the governor had them separately examined, and finding them inflexible, he ordered. Bonosus to be beaten with whips with leaden bullets on the thongs, and Maximilian to be scourged with the usual weapon. When remanded to prison, they were allowed nothing but bread and water, and the bread was marked with the seal of the emperor, the impression of which was an idol ; on account of this they refused to eat it. They were soon after- wards re-examined, and then beheaded. Bibiana was the daughter of Flavian and Dafrosa, two Christians. Flavian, her father, held a considerable post under the government, but being banished for his faith, died in exile. Dafrosa, her mother, was, for the same reason, ordered to be starved ; but Apronianus, governor of Rome, to accelerate her death, had her beheaded. Bibiana and her sister Demetria, after the death of her parents, were stripped of all their effects, and being brought before the governor, were ordered to renounce their religion. Demetria suddenly died in the governor's pre- sence, and Bibiana resolutely refused to renounce her faith, on which account she was scourged to death. About the end of the year 363, the persecution raged with more than usual violence. In Palestine many were burnt alive, others were dragged by their feet through the streets till they expired ; some were scalded to death, many stoned, and great numbers had their brains beaten out with clubs. In Alexandria innumerable martyrs suffered by the sword, burning, crucifixion, and stoning. In Thrace, Emilianus was burnt at the stake ; and Domitius was mur- dered in a cave, whither he had fled for concealment. Sozomenus as- scribes the rage of the Arethusians against Christian virgins to the efforts of Constantine, who had prevented their being exposed in the temple of Venus at Heliopolis. 94 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Theodorus, for singing the praises of God, was apprehended and put to the rack, though not to death. After being taken down, he was asked how he could so patiently endure such exquisite tortures ; to which he returned this remarkable reply : "At first I felt some pain, but after- wards there appeared to stand by me a young man, who wiped the sweat from my face, and frequently refreshed me with cold water, which so delighted me, that 1 regretted being let down." k Marcus, bishop of Arethusa, having destroyed a pagan temple in that city, erected a christian church in its room, on which account he was accused to Julian as a Christian. His persecutors stripped and cruelly beat him. He was then thrust into a filthy sewer till he was almost suf- focated ; afterwards he was goaded with sharp-pointed sticks; and lastly he was hung up in a basket in the heat of the sun, after being smeared over with honey, in order to be tormented to death by wasps. As soon as he was hung up, they asked him if he would rebuild their temple. To which he answered, that he would neither rebuild it nor advance a single doit towards its being rebuilt; upon which they left him, and he fell a martyr to the venom of the insects. Maxentius and Juventius, two christian officers, were put to death about the same time, for reproving the emperor on account of his idola- tries. Eusebius and Nestabus, two brethren, with Nestor also, for their Christianity, were dragged through the streets and murdered by the idolatrous people of Gaza. When Julian formed an expedition against the Persians, he imposed a large fine upon every one who refused to sacrifice to the idols, and by that means gained a great sum from the Christians towards defraying the expence. Many of the officers in collecting these fines, exacted more than was due, and some of them tortured the Christians to make them pay what they demanded, telling them in derision, "that when they were injured they ought to take it patiently, for so their God commanded them." The inhabitants of Csesarea were fined three hundred weight of gold, and several of the clergy obliged to serve in the wars, as a punishment for having overthrown the temples of Jupiter, Fortune, and Apollo. The governor at Meris, in Phrygia, having cleansed and opened a pagan temple, the Christians in the night broke in and demolished the idols. Next day the governor ordered all Christians that accidentally came in the way to be seized, that he might make examples of them, and by this means he would have executed several innocent persons ; but those who really perpetrated the act, being too just to suffer such retaliation, voluntarily delivered themselves up ; when they were scourged severely, and then put to a cruel and lingering death. Julian died of a wound which he received in his Persian expedition, A. D. 363, and even while expiring he uttered the most horrid blas- phemies. He w r as succeeded by Jovian, who restored peace to the church. After the decease of Jovian, Valentinian succeeded to the empire, and associated with himself Valens, who had the command in the East. k For many interesting particulars of this martyr, those acquainted with classical literature are referred to Ruff. 5, cap. 26; Theod. lib. 3, cap. 11 ; and Sozom. lib. 5, cap. 10, 20. PERSECUTIONS UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE. 95 The latter was a great favourer of Arianism, and so incensed against the Christians, that on a certain day he ordered all in Edessa to be slain while thev were at their devotion in the churches. The officers, how- ever, being- more compassionate than the emperor, privately gave notice to the Christians not to assemble on the day appointed, so that they might escape death. The Christians thanked the officers for their advice, but disregarded both that and the emperor's menaces rather than neglect their duty. They repaired to the church, and the troops were put in motion to destroy them. As they marched along, a woman, with a child in her arms, broke through the ranks, when the officer ordered her to be brought before him, and asked her where she was going. She replied to church, whither others were making all the haste they could. " Have you not heard," said the officer, " of the emperor's order, to put to death all who are found there?" " I have," said she, "and for .that reason I make the more haste." " And whither," said the officer, " do you lead that child ?" "I take him," replied she, "with me, that he also may be numbered among the martyrs." Upon this the humane officer returned to the emperor, and told him that all the Christians were prepared to die in defence of their faith, represented to him the rash- ness of murdering so great a multitude, and entreated him to drop the design, at least for the present: reluctantly he complied with the humane advice. Urbanus, Menidemus, and Theodorus, with several other orthodox clergymen, to the number of fourscore, at Constantinople, petitioned the emperor to relieve them from the oppressions and cruelties of the Arians. But the tyrant; instead of redressing their grievances, ordered them all to be embarked in a ship, and the vessel to be set on fire. This infernal order being executed, they all perished in the flames. 1 1 Although the truth of these cruel martyrdoms cannot be doubted, yet many persons will wonder why the Almighty Director of all things would suffer his servants, who believed in his word, to be so horribly treated; but as St. Jerome has justly observed, "We ought not to be moved with this iniquity of things, to see the wicked prevail against the body:" for even in the beginning of the world, we see Abel the just was killed by the wicked Cain; and afterwards Jacob thrust out for Esau to reign in his father's house. The Egyptians, also, afflicted the sons of Israel; and the Lord himself was crucified by the Jews. The godly in this world therefore suffer for examples, and the wicked flourish and prevail ; yet we may be sure that these afflictions of God's people in the world have not come by chance or fortune, but by the provident appointment of God. For as by the affliction of the children of Israel, he hath prefigured the persecution of the Christians, so, by the words of Christ in the gospel did he forewarn his church of the troubles to come. JN either did he suffer these great afflictions to fall upon his servants before he had warned them by special revelation in the Apocalypse of John; in which he declared not only what troubles were coming upon them, and where and by whom they should come, but also assigned the true time, how long the said persecutions should continue, and when they should cease. The feelings of the Editor, and he is sure those of his readers, on perusing the accounts of such horrid cruelties, resemble those of Titus Livius, who, when writing of the wars of Carthage, was so astonished and afflicted, that he cried out, " Ac si in parte alequa labores, ac periculi ipse pariter fuisset." 96 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. SECTION IV. THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE CHRISTIANS BY THE GOTHS, &c. During the reign of Constantine the Great several Scythian Goths embraced Christianity, the light of the gospel having spread consider- ably in Scythia, though the two kings who ruled that country and the majority of the people continued pagans. Fritegern, king of the Western Goths, was an ally of the Romans ; but Athanaric, king of the Eastern Goths, was at war with them. The Christians, in the dominions of the former, lived unmolested ; but the latter, having been defeated by the Romans, wreaked his vengeance on his Christian subjects. Sabas, a Christian, was the first who felt the king's resentment. He was humble and modest, yet fervent and zealous for the advancement of the church. Indeed the sanctity of his life and the purity of his manners gave the greatest force to his doctrines. In the year 370, Athanaric gave orders that all persons in his domi- nions should sacrifice to the pagan deities, and eat the meat which had been offered to idols, or be put to death for disobedienee. Some humane pagans, who had christian relations, endeavoured to save them by offer- ing them meat which had not received the idolatrous consecration, while the magistrates were made to believe that all had been done according to their direction. But Sabas too well knew St. Paul's principles, to imagine that the sin lay in eating : he knew that giving the enemies of the faith an advantage over the weak rendered that action criminal in Christians. He, therefore, not only refused to comply with what was proposed to him, but publicly declared, that those who sheltered them- selves under that artifice were not true Christians. Sabas was soon after apprehended on account of his faith, and car- ried before a magistrate, who enquired into his fortune and circumstances; when finding that he was a person of obscure station, he was dismissed with contempt. He then went to spend the Easter with Sansala, a chris- tian priest of great piety ; but on the third night after his arrival they were both seized by a party of soldiers. The priest was allowed to dress himself and to ride, but Sabas was obliged to leave his clothes behind him and to walk; and, during the journey, they drove him through thorns and briars, beating him almost continually. This cruelty he bore without a single murmur. In the evening they extended him be- tween two beams, fastening his legs to the one and his arms to the other; and in that posture left him for the night. The woman of the house, however, went and released him ; but though he was now at liberty, he did not avail himself of the opportunity to make his escape. The next morning the persecutofs began to tamper with Sabas and the priest to renounce their religion, and eat the meat consecrated to the idols. They, however, positively declared that they were ready to suffer the most cruel death rather than comply. Sansala was at length discharged,' and Sabas was ordered to be drowned. Nicetas was of Gothic extraction ; his parents lived near the banks EUSEBIUS AND THE AR1ANS. 97 of the Danube, and though he had long been a Christian he never met with injury on that account, till the persecution was begun by Atha- naric. That monarch ordered an idol to be drawn on a chariot through all places where the Christians lived; and that it should be stopped at the door of every one who professed the gospel, and the christian inha- bitants ordered to pay it adoration. On a refusal being given, the house was immediately set on fire, and all within consumed. This hap- pened to Nicetas, who, on account of his religion, refusing to pay the respect demanded to the idol, had his house burnt, and himself was consumed in it. The celebrated Eusebius, bishop of Samostatia, was a distinguished example in ecclesiastical history, and was one of the most eminent champions of Christ against the Arian heresy. The Arians having ad- vanced Miletus to the see of Antioch, thinking Eusebius of their party, the warrant of advancement was placed in his hands. When Miletus preached his first sermon, the Arians, to their great surprise, found they had been greatly mistaken in him, for his doctrines were pure. They, therefore, persuaded the emperor to displace him, and likewise to get the instrument out of the hands of Eusebius. Miletus was accordingly deposed, and the emperor sent to Eusebius to deliver the instrument: but he answered that he could not give up a trust reposed in him by so great a number, without the consent of all concerned in it. The em- peror, incensed at this reply, wrote to him, that he had commissioned the bearer of the letter to cut off his right hand, if he refused to sur- render the instrument in question ; which threat was added to awe him into compliance. Eusebius, however, without the least emotion, offered his hands, and declared he would lose them both rather than part with the deed. The emperor was greatly surprised at his resolution, and professed a high esteem for him ever after. The Arians now looked upon Eusebius as a dangerous enemy. At the time Jovian restored peace to the church, Miletus convened a council at Antioch, which consisted of Eusebius and twenty-five other prelates, who unanimously confirmed the doctrines of the council of Nice. At this time the see of Csesarea becoming vacant, Eusebius was instrumental in promoting Basil to it, on which occasion Gregory the younger calls him, "The pillar of truth, the light of the world, the fortress of the church, the rule of faith, the support of the faithful, and an instrument in the hands of God for bestowing favours on his people." When the Arians were the most vigilant to propagate their tenets, Eusebius was assiduous in taking measures to prevent their success ; and his zeal was always so governed by prudence, that his attempts seldom failed, till at length the emperor, at their instigation, granted an order for banishing him into Thrace. He was at Samostatia when the messenger came with his commission; it was late in the evening, and Eusebius, who was beloved by his people, begged he would make no noise, but conceal his business; " for," says he, " if it be known, the people will fall on you, throw you into the river, and then I shall be charged with your death." Eusebius went through his usual devotions, and when the night was far advanced he left his house on foot, attended by only one trusty servant, who carried a pillow and book after him. 98 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Thus accommodated he took a boat, and proceeded to Zeugma, about seventy miles down the river. The people next day missing Eusebius, and hearing which way he was gone, followed in a great number of boats, and overtaking would have rescued him, entreating him, with tears in their eyes, not to abandon them. Their cordiality deeply affected him ; but he said he must go according to the emperor's order, putting them in mind of the authority of St. Paul for paying due reverence to the civil power. On finding they could not prevail, they provided him with things that would comfort him in his journey, and then left him. It happened that Thrace was now a scene of confusion, by means of the war carried on between the Goths and the emperor's forces; and in these contests, the life of Eusebius was in great danger. At length the emperor, in order to terminate the war with the greatest expedition, resolved to march against the Goths in person; but first, to engage the prayers of the Christians, he gave peace to the church, and allowed the prelates to return to their several stations. Thus was Eusebius re- stored to his see, which, however, he did not long enjoy, for an Arian woman threw a tile at him from the top of a house, fracturing his skull and terminating his life. This happened in the year 380. The bishop of Apamea, a prelate of great merit, was very active in endeavouring to suppress idolatry in his own diocese, on which account his life was in continual danger, till Cynegius, the prefect, arrived with a considerable body of troops, which kept the pagans in awe. This officer's design was to abolish idolatry, to effect which he determined to destroy the temple of Jupiter. He, however, found this a difficult at- tempt ; for the building was so strong, the stones so unwieldy, and the cement so durable, that he despaired of being able to accomplish the work; when a poor labouring Christian, recommended by Marcellus, undertook to accomplish what the prefect had abandoned, and the business was executed in the following manner : — The man examined the edifice, and finding it surrounded by a gallery, supported by stately pillars ten yards in circumference, he knew it would be more to his purpose to weaken the foundation than to attack the body of the build- ing; with this view he dug at the bottom of the pillars, and shored them with timber beams. When he had thus undermined three of the strongest pillars, he set fire to the wood, when the pillars fell, drew twelve more with them, and brought down one whole side of the building; upon which the Christians flocked from all parts of the town, and praised God for the demolition of the temple. The bishop and prefect continued destroying a great number of idol temples, when being at a town called Aulo upon this business, while the troops were busy in demolishing the buildings, some pagans privately seized upon the venerable prelate, and burnt him, A. D. 393. I EXECUTIONS UNDER THE AltlAN VANDALS. 5> ( ) SECTION V. » THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE CHRISTIANS UNDER THE ARIAN VANDALS. The Arian Vandals proceeding from Spain to Africa in the fifth century, under their leader Genseric, committed many cruelties. They perse- cuted the Christians wherever they went, and laid waste the country as they passed, in order that those left behind, who had escaped, might not be able to live. They plundered the churches, and murdered the bishops and ministers by a variety of cruel devices. They also wreaked their vengeance on several of the nobility, whom they loaded with heavy burdens, and obliged them to carry their baggage; and if they did not travel fast enough, they goaded them with sharp weapons, so that several died under their burdens. Old men found no mercy, and even innocent and feeble infants felt the rage of their barbarity. Stately buildings were burned or destroyed ; and the chief churches in Carthage were perverted to heretical worship, or put to profane uses ; and where any castles held out against them, they brought great numbers of Christians and slew them, leaving their bodies under the walls, that the besieged might be forced to surrender by means of the offensive stench which arose from them. When they had seized and plundered the city of Carthage, they put the bishop and all the clergy into a leaky ship, and committed it to the mercy of the waves, thinking that they must all perish; but the vessel, through Divine Providence, arrived safe at Naples. Several Christians were beaten, scourged, and banished to Capsur, where it pleased God to make them the means of converting many of the Moors to Christianity; but this coming to the knowledge of Genseric, he sent orders, that they and their converts should be tied by the feet to chariots, and dragged till their life was extinct. Pempinian, bishop of Mansuetes, was burnt to death with plates of hot iron. The bishop of Urice was also burnt. The bishop of Habensa was banished, for refusing to deliver up the sacred books which were in his possession ; and a whole congregation, assembled in a church at their devotions, together with the clergyman who was conducting the service, were murdered by the barbarians who broke in upon them. The Vandal tyrant, having made an expedition into Italy, and plun- dered the city of Rome, returned to Africa, flushed with the success of his arms ; and the Arians took this occasion to persuade him to persecute the Christians, who differed from them. Armogastus felt the rage of this persecution; Victor, the learned bishop of Vita, who was acquainted with Armogastus, and who wrote the history of this persecution, informs us, that " his legs were tied, and his forehead bound with cords severely; which, though tightened, made not the least impression on his flesh, nor left any mark on his skin. After this, he was hung up by the feet; but in that posture seemed to be as much at his ease as if he reposed on a bed. Theodoric, one of the 100 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. king's sons, finding all attempts on his life bad hitherto proved unsuc- cessful, ordered his head to be struck off; but Jocundus, a priest, dis- suaded him, by telling him it would be much better to destroy him gradually, as a violent death would procure him the reputation of a martyr. The prince therefore sent him to the mines, and some time after removed him to a place near Carthage, where he was employed in tending cattle. While Armogastus was thus engaged, he became ex- ceedingly ill, and imagining that the end of his labours was near, he communicated his thoughts to Felix, a virtuous Christian, employed in that prince's service, from whom he received consolation. His disorder soon deprived him of life, and he was buried by Felix according to his own desire. There was a devout Christian, named Archinemus, upon whom various artifices were employed in vain to make him renounce his faith. At length Genseric himself undertook to persuade him, but finding his en- deavours ineffectual, he sentenced him to be beheaded. At the same time he privately ordered the executioner really to perform his office, if the prisoner seemed intimidated; " for then," said he, "the crown of martyrdom will be lost to him; but if he seems courageous, and willing to die, strike not, for I do not intend that he shall have the honour of being deemed a martyr." The executioner finding Archinemus happy in the thought of dying for the sake of Christ, brought him back again. He was soon after banished, and never heard of more, though it is con- jectured that he was privately murdered by the king's order. Eugenius, bishop of Carthage, was eminent for his learning and piety, which brought upon him the hatred of the Arians, who took great pains to set the king Huneric against him and his orthodox brethren, several thousand of whom were banished to a desert, where many perished. Huneric also sent an edict to Eugenius, which he commanded him to read in the cathedral on Ascension-day, A. D. 483. By this it was ordered that the orthodox bishops should meet at Carthage on the first of February, for the purpose of disputing with the Arian pre- lates. The king's stratagem was discovered by Eugenius, and se- veral other bishops, particularly Victor bishop of Vita, the learned author of the account of this persecution ; and they determined after deliberation, to send a petition to the king : it was written by Eugenius, and presented by a person who had great interest at court. It stated, that the African prelates did not decline the proposed conference from the weakness of their cause, or a distrust of their own abilities to maintain their mode of faith ; but as the whole church was concerned in the dispute, they were of opinion that they could not engage in it without the bishops of Europe and Asia. Huneric answered, that what they desired was impossible, unless the whole world was in his hands. Upon this Eugenius desired his majesty would be pleased to write to Odoacer, king of Italy, and other princes in his interest ; and allow him to send to the bishops, that the common faith might be thus authorita- tively advocated. Disregarding this remonstrance, the king insisted upon being obeyed; and then, previous to the time appointed, banished several of the most learned of the orthodox prelates on various pre- tences, that the Arians might have the advantage. CRUELTIES OF HUNERIC. 101 At the time appointed for the conference, the orthodox clergy chose ten of their number to speak in the name of the rest. Cyrilla, an Arian, took the title of patriarch upon the occasion, and was seated. on a mag- nificent throne. The Arian prelates were allowed to sit near him, but the orthodox bishops were obliged to stand. They complained of this partial treatment as an infringement of their liberty ; and Eugenius, perceiving that they did not intend coming to any candid decision, pro- posed to adjourn ; but instead of complying with this, each orthodox prelate was threatened by the king's order with a hundred blows. Eugenius protested against such violence, but in vain ; the prelates wefe turned out of the place unheard, their churches were shut up, and the revenues of their bishoprics confiscated. They were then compelled to quit Carthage, and lay without the walls of that city, exposed to all the inclemency of the weather. The king passing out at one of the gates, the orthodox clergy presented themselves before him, and modestly com- plained of the treatment they had received : but instead of redressing their grievances, Huneric ordered his guards to chastise them. The soldiers, in consequence, treated them unmercifully ; and the king ordered them to appear on a future day at a certain place, where, at the time appointed, they assembled ; when one of his officers showed them a paper, and informed them that the king was inclined to forget what was past, and to restore them to their livings, if they would swear to the truth of what that paper contained. The prelates, surprised at this pro- posal declared that they could not in conscience swear to the truth of that to which they were total strangers ; but if they were suffered to read the writing, and approved of the contents, they would take the oath. The officer answered, that he would tell them the contents, which were of a political nature, and only required them to swear that they were willing prince Hilderic should succeed his father on the throne. Several of the prelates innocently thinking there could be no harm in taking such an oath, complied ; but the rest, with greater caution, refused the oath, as they judged some artifice was in contemplation. While they were disagreeing upon this head, the officer took ad- vantage of their discord, and committed them to separate prisons those who were willing to swear to one, and those who were un- willing to another ; but they had not been long in confinement before the artifice was exposed by an order from the king for the banishment of both parties. Those who had been willing to swear were banished, under the pretence of offering to break the established pre- cept of the Scripture, " Swear not at all ;" and those who had refused to swear, were banished as enemies to the legal succession. The former were obliged to work as slaves in distant colonies, and the latter were sent to the island of Corsica to cut timber. Eugenius was exiled to Tripoli, where Anthony a violent Arian bishop, threw him into a dungeon, and made him suffer severe hardship, in order to destroy him by a lin- gering death. The dampness of the place gave Eugenius the palsy, which Anthony hearing of went to the gaol, and finding him weak and lying on the floor, he poured strong vinegar down his throat to choke him. It had, however, a contrary effect; instead of suffocating, it promoted copious perspiration, which removed the palsy and restored him to health. 102 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. When Huneric died, his successor recalled Eugenius and the rest of the orthodox clergy. The Arians taking the alarm, persuaded him to banish them again, which he did ; when Engenius, being exiled to Languedoc in France, died there of the hardships he underwent, on the 6th of September, in the year 505. A widow lady of fortune, named Dionysia, being apprehended as an orthodox Christian, was stripped, exposed in a most indecent manner, and severely scourged. Her son, a mere youth, was seized at the same time, but seemed afraid of the torture, and looked piteously at his mother, who ordered him not to fear torment, but to be constant to the faith in which she had brought him up. When he was upon the rack, she again comforted him with her pious speeches. On this the youth patiently persevered, and resigned his soul to his Creator. The mother saw the death of her son, and soon after herself received the crown of martyrdom. Cyrilla, the Arian bishop of Carthage, was a furious persecutor, and a determined enemy to those Christians who professed the faith in purity. He persuaded the king that he could never prosper in his undertakings, or enjoy his kingdom in peace, while he suffered any of the orthodox Christians to practise their principles : and the monarch believing the prediction, sent for several of the most eminent Christians, who were obnoxious to the prelate. He at first attempted to draw them from their faith by flattery, and to bribe them by the promise of immediate worldly rewards ; but they were firm and constant, declaring resolutely against Arianism, and saying, " We acknowledge but one Lord, and one faith; you may therefore do whatever you please with our bodies, for it is better that we should suffer a few temporary pains than to endure everlasting misery." The king being greatly exasperated at this remark, sent them to a dungeon, and ordered them to be put in irons. The keeper, however, suffered their friends to have access to them ; by which they became daily more confirmed in their resolution of dying for the sake of their Redeemer. The king heard of the indulgence they received, and was exceedingly angry, sending orders that they should be closely confined, and loaded with still heavier fetters. He then began to consider by what means he should put them to death, and at length determined to imitate the bar- barity of the emperor Valens, who caused fourscore clergymen to be burnt in a ship. Resolving upon this infernal precedent, he ordered these Christians to be put on board a vessel filled with combustible materials, and set on fire. The names of those who suffered by this cruel expedient were, Rusticus, Severus, Liberatus, Rogatus, Servus, Septimus and Boniface. 103 BOOK III SECTION I. THE PERSECUTIONS FROM THE MIDDLE OF THE FIFTH, TO THE CONCLUSION OF THE SEVENTH CENTURY. Proterius was made a priest by Cyril, bishop of Alexandria. On the death of Cyril, the see of Alexandria was filled by Dioscorus, an inveterate enemy both to the memory and family of his predecessor. Dioscorus, however, knowing the reputation of Proterius, and his great interest, did all in his power to gain his confidence and favour, thinking he might be of service to him in carrying on his evil intentions; but Proterius was not to be corrupted, and no prospect of worldly prefer- ment could bribe him to forego his duty. At length Dioscorus being condemned by the council of Chalcedon for having embraced the errors of Eutyches, was deposed, and Proterius chosen to fill the see, and ap- proved of by the emperor On this an insurrection broke out, the city of Alexandria being divided into two factions; one espousing the cause of the old, and the other of the new prelate. Proterius was in immi- nent danger from a set of schismatics, who would neither obey the de- cision of the council nor the emperor's commands. The disorders becoming serious, the governor of Thebias marched with a body of troops in order to quell them. The people, however, were in a kind of phrenzy : when they heard of the approach of the governor, they armed themselves, marched out of Alexandria, gave him battle, and defeated him. The intelligence of this affair so exasperated the emperor, that he sent a detachment of two thousand men against them; whose appearance, and the prudence of the governor of Alexandria, whose name was Florus, soon restored peace to the city. Still the dis- contented party beheld Proterius with resentment, so that he was obliged to have a guard for his personal safety; and at length, though naturally of a mild temper, was compelled to excommunicate some of his foes, and obtain their banishment from Alexandria. When the emperor Marcian's death, which happened two years after, gave a new turn to affairs, the exiles returned to Alexandria, renewed their cabals against Proterius, and resolved to be revenged on him for what they had suffered. Timothy, a priest, who was at the head of the designs that had been formed against Proterius, employed every art to ruin his credit, drawing the people from his communion, and raising himself to the see. At last taking advantage of the absence of Dionysius, who commanded the forces of that province, and was then in Upper Egypt, he seized on the great church, and was uncanonically consecrated by two bishops of his faction, who had been deposed for heresy. He continued the exercise of the episcopal functions, till the commander's return, who, hearing of the disorders that had been committed, and that Timothy was the chief author of them, expelled and exiled him. 104 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. This affair so enraged the Eutychians, that they determined to take vengeance on Proterius, who fled to the altar for sanctuary : but on Good Friday, A. D. 457, a large body of them rushed into the church, and murdered the prelate ; after which they dragged his body through the streets, cut it in pieces, burnt it, and dispersed the ashes. When the Vandals sacked Carthage, a lady named Julia, was taken prisoner, and after being sold and resold as a slave, she became the pro- perty of a Syrian pagan, named Eusebius. Her master frequently took her with him upon his voyages : in one of these they touched upon the island of Corsica, where Eusebius joined in an idolatrous festival; but Julia kept from it. The heathens complained of this conduct, as dis- respectful to their gods, and informed the governor Felix of it, who sent for Eusebius, and demanded what young woman it was who had re- fused to join in worship to the gods. Eusebius replied, that the young woman was a Christian, and that all his authority over her could not induce her to renounce her religion ; but she was a very diligent and faithful servant. Felix pressed him to exert himself, either to oblige her to assist at the pagan worship, or to part with her; and offered to give him his own price, or four of his best female slaves in exchange for her, which the pagan refused. When Felix found him inflexible, he determined to get her into his power by artifice, and invited Eusebius to an entertainment, when having intoxicated him, he sent for Julia in the name of her master. The slave, not suspecting the design, immediately went; when the governor told her that he would procure her liberty, if she would sacrifice to the heathen gods; but not being able to prevail, he ordered her to be severely beaten, and finding her still resolute, he commanded that the hair of her head should be plucked by the roots. This bar- barity having no greater effect, he sentenced her to be hanged. Scarcely was Julia dead when Eusebius recovered from his intoxication, and un- derstanding what had past, he in the first transports of his resentment thought of complaining to the emperor, who being a Christian, would have punished the perfidy of the governor; but reflecting that Felix had only acted with zeal for the deities he himself adored, he determined to put up with the loss, and retire from the place. Hermengildus, a Gothic prince, was the eldest son of Leovigildus, king of the Goths, in Spain. This prince, who was originally an Arian, be- came a convert to the orthodox faith, by means of his wife, whose name was Ingonda. The king, on hearing that his son had changed his reli- gious sentiments, stripped him of the command at Seville, where he was governor, and threatened to put him to death, unless he renounced the new faith. On this the prince, in order to prevent the execution of his father's menaces, began to prepare for defence; and many of the ortho- dox persuasion in Spain declared on his side. Exasperated at this act of rebellion, the king began to punish all the orthodox Christians who could be seized and thus originated a very severe persecution. He marched against his son at the head of a powerful army; and knowing that he could not oppose the formidable force that his father was bring- ing against him, the prince implored the assistance of the Roman troops left to garrison those parts of Spain which the emperor still possessed. HERMENGILDUS CAPTUUKD AND SLAIN. 10.5 Tlie Roman commander undertook to assist Hermengildus, but being bribed by the king- lie broke his promise. Leovigildus then made it his business, as much as possible, to detach the orthodox Christians from the interest of his son ; and in this he was too successful, for it was effected in 581, by convening the Arian prelates at Toledo, who abolished the prac- tice of re-baptising such as came over to their sect; and he drew up a captious profession of faith which deceived many, and prevailed upon them to quit the interest of Hermengildus. Finding himself forsaken by numbers in whom he most confided, the prince was obliged to retreat towards Seville, where he soon after shut himself up, and sent to Con- stantinople for assistance from the emperor. The death of that monarch, however, prevented him from receiving relief; for Maurice, who succeeded him, had no opportunity to afford any succour to Her- mengildus. The king, who knew of the conduct of his son, proceeded to Seville and laid siege to it : the prince defended the place with great bravery, and held out for twelve months ; but finding that it rrlust soon be taken, he privately made his escape, and fled to the Roman troops to beg protection. Being informed that they intended to give him up, he hastily fled to Corduba, and from thence went to Asseto, which he fortified and prepared for his defence. On the escape of the prince from Seville that city surrendered, and the king having placed a gar- rison in it, pursued his son, laid siege to Asseto, and soon obliged it to surrender. The prince being driven to this distress, flew to a church, when the king respecting the sanctity of the place, sent an officer, named Reccaredus, to assure him of pardon, upon his submitting to ask it. The prince believing his father to be sincere, immediately went and threw himself at his feet : the king, however, instead of forgiving him, loaded him with chains, and carried him to Seville, where he endea- voured by promises and menaces to make him renounce the christian faith. Nevertheless, the prince remained true, and at Easter, when the king sent an Arian bishop to him to administer the eucharist, Her- mengildus refused to receive it ; which so enraged the king, that he or- dered some of his guards to go and cut him to pieces. Anastasius, a Persian, was brought up a Pagan, and bore arms as a soldier under Cosroes, king of Persia, at the time that monarch plun- dered Jerusalem. Among other things they are said to have carried off the very cross on which Christ was crucified. Anastasius could not imagine why the Christians had such veneration for a person who died so mean a death as that of crucifixion ; for that mode of death was held by the Persians in the greatest contempt. At length some Christian captives instructed him in the Christian mystery, and being charmed with the purity of the faith, he left the army, and retired to Syria : here he learned the trade of a goldsmith, and then going to Jerusalem, he supported himself by that business, was baptized by Modestus, vicar- general of Jerusalem, and stayed a week with his godfather Elias. When the time was over, and he was to quit the white clothes which he wore at his baptism, according to the practice of the church, he desired the priest to put him in a way of renouncing the world. Elias recommend- ed him to Justin, abbot of a seminary four miles from Jerusalem, who 106 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. employed a person to instruct him in the Greek tongue, and teach him the Psalms ; and then admitted him into his community. Anastasius passed seven years in that house, dividing his time between humble domestic employments, and administering the word of God ; and at length he conceived a strong desire to lay down his life for his Redeemer. On going to Caesarea, which was in the hands of the Persians, he was taken as a spy, and brought before Marzabanes, the governor, to whom he owned that he was a Christian, and was 'sent to prison. Many at- tempts were made to convert him, and at length Justin being apprised of his sufferings, recommended him to the prayers of the whole commu- nity, and sent two of his people to encourage him to perseverance. At last the governor wrote to the king concerning Anastasius, and the sovereign did all in his power to engage him to renounce his religion, but finding his endeavours vain, he ordered him to be executed in a sin- gular and severe manner : he was hung up by one hand, with a weight fastened to his foot ; and after being strangled, his head was cut off, and sent to the king. Martin, bishop of Rome, was born at Todi, in Italy. He was natu- rally virtuous, and his parents bestowed on him an excellent education. He took orders, and on the death of Theodore, bishop of Rome, was advanced to that important see by an unanimous election, in which all parties gave him the fullest praise, and admitted that he well merited a trust of such importance. The first vexation he received in his episcopal capacity, was from a set of heretics called Monothelites ; who not daring, after the express deci- sions of the council of Chalcedon, to maintain the unity of nature in Christ, artfully asserted that he had but one will, one operation of mind. This sect was patronized by the emperor Heraclius ; and the first who attempted to stop the progress of these errors was Sophronius, bishop of Jerusalem. Martin, who on this occasion coincided with the bishop of Jerusalem, called a council consisting of 105 bishops, and they unanimously condemned the errors in question. But the emperor pro- voked at these proceedings, ordered Olympius, his lieutenant in Italy, to repair to Rome and seize the bishop. The lieutenant performed the journey; but on his arrival at Rome he found the prelate too much beloved to induce him to attempt any open violence: he therefore suborned a ruffian to assassinate the bishop at the altar; but the fellow, after promising compliance, was seized with such horror of conscience, that he had not the power to execute the bloody deed. Olympius finding it would be difficult to destroy Martin, put himself at the head of his troops, and marched against the Saracens, who had made inroads into Italy; but during this expedition he died. His successor was Calliopas, who received express orders to seize Martin, which, with the assistance of a considerable body of soldiers, he effected ; shewing the clergy the imperial mandate, which commanded him to dispossess Martin of his bishopric, and convey him prisoner to Constantinople. Having endured various hardships, during a tedious voyage, he reached Constantinople, and was thrown into prison. While in confinement, he wrote two epistles to the emperor to refute the calumnies forged against him ACCOUNT OF VARIOUS MARTYRS. 107 concerning his faith and loyalty: for a proof of the soundness of the former, he appealed to the testimony of the whole clergy, and his own solemn protestation to defend the truth as long as he lived; and in answer to objections against the latter, he declared he never sent either money, letters, or advice to the Saracens; but only remitted a sum for the relief of poor Christians among those people. He concluded with saying, that nothing could be more false than what the heretics had alleged against him concerning the blessed Virgin, whom he firmly believed to be the mother of God, and worthy of all honour after her divine Son. In his second letter he gave a particular account of his being seized at Rome, and his indisposition and ill usage after he was dragged from that city; and ended with wishing and hoping his perse- cutors would repent of their conduct, when the object of their hatred should be removed from this world. The fatigues that Martin had undergone, and his infirmities were so great, that on the day appointed for his trial, he was brought out of prison in a chair, unable to walk. When he sat a moment before the court, the judge commanded him to stand, which not being able to do, two men were ordered to hold him up. Twenty witnesses were produc- ed against him, who swore as they were directed, and charged him with assumed and imaginary crimes. Martin began his defence, but as soon as he entered upon an investigation of the errors which he had combated, one of the senators stopped him, and said, that he was only examined respecting civil affairs, and consequently ecclesiastical matters must not be introduced. Martin was then ordered to be exposed in the most public places of the town, and to be divested of all marks of dis- tinction ; rigours which he bore with Christian patience and submission, and without a murmuring word. After laying some months in prison, he was sent to an island at some distance, and there barbarously put to death. John, bishop of Bergamo in Lombardy, a learned man and a good Christian, did his utmost to clear the church from the errors of Arianism, and joining with John, bishop of Milan, he was very successful against the heretics. Grimoald an Arian, having usurped the throne of Lom- bardy, the orthodox Christians feared that heresy would rise once more in that country ; but the bishop of Bergamo used such persuasive argu- ments with Grimoald, that he brought him to profess the orthodox faith. On the death of Grimoald, and his son who succeeded him, Pantharit came to the crown, and again introduced those errors which had been combated with such spirit by the true clergy. The bishop of Bergamo exerted himself strenuously to prevent the heresy from spreading, on which account he was assassinated on the 11th of July, A. D. 683. Kilien was born in Ireland, and received from his parents a pious and Christian education. His favourite study was theology, and hence he was very assiduous in bringing many to the light of the gospel. In the course of time he crossed the sea, with eleven other persons, in order to make converts on the continent. On landing, they directed their route to the circle of Franconia, in Germany. On arriving at the city of Wurtzburg, they found the people in general with their governor 108 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Gozbert to be pagans ; but conceived great hopes of converting them to the gospel faith. Previous to making this attempt, however, he deemed it necessary to go to Rome, in order to obtain his mission from the pontiff. He according went thither, attended by one Coloman a priest, and Totman a deacon, two of those who had accompanied him from Ireland, and found Conon in Peter's chair. He gave them a favourable reception, and being informed of Kilien's business at Rome, after some questions about his faith and doctrine, consecrated him bishop, with full permission to preach to the infidels wherever he found them. Thus authorized, Kilien returned to Wurtzburg, where he opened his mission; but he had not long been employed in this labour when Gozbert sent for him, and desired to know the nature and tendency of the new reli- gion, which he so boldly recommended. The new bishop had several conferences with the governor on the subject, and God gave such a blessing to his endeavours, that Gozbert not only received the faith and was baptised, but gave him leave to preach wherever he pleased in his dominions. Gozbert also commanded the attention of his pagan sub- jects to what our prelate had to offer ; and the greater part of them became Christians in less than two years. Gozbert had married his brother's widow, but Kilien, though he held the sinfulness of the thing, did not choose to rebuke him till he was thoroughly confirmed in his faith. When he thought him fully instruct- ed in the principles of Christianity, he entreated him, as the last proof of the sincerity of his conversion, to quit the person whom he had hitherto looked upon as a wife, as he could not retain with her without committing sin. Gozbert, surprised at the proposal, told the bishop this was the hardest demand he had ever made upon him. ''But," said he, " since I have renounced my own inclinations and pleasures in so many particulars for the love of God, I will make the work complete, by complying with your advice in this too." The wife of the governor in consequence, determined to be revenged on those who had persuaded Gozbert into such a resolution. She accordingly sent to the place were they usually assembled, and had them all beheaded. Kilien, and his companions, submitted without resistance, the former telling them, that they need not fear those who had no power of the soul, but could only kill the body, which in a short time, would of itself decay. This hap- pened, A. D. 689, and the martyrs were privately buried in the night, together with their books, clothes, and all that they had. It is said that some days after this impious tragedy Gozbert, surprised that he had not seen Kilien lately, ordered diligent search to be made for him. Geilana, his wife, to stop the inquiry, reported that he and his companions had left the town, without giving any account of their movements ; but the executioner, filled with remorse, ran about like a mad man, and declared that the spirit of Kilien was consuming his conscience. Thus distracted he was seized, and Gozbert was considering what to do, when a creature of the wife's and a pretended convert advised him to leave the God of the Christians, to do himself justice on his enemies, and proposed the event as a test of his power. Gozbert was weak enough to tempt God, by putting it on that issue ; and the murderer being set at liberty, went raving mad, tore his own flesh with his teeth, and died in a miserable BONIFACE THE ARCHBISHOP. 109 condition. Geilana was so agonized in her conscience, that she soon after expired in despair ; while Gozbert's criminal condescension was punished by a violent death, and in a few years his whole race was ex- terminated. SECTION II. THE SEVERAL PERSECUTIONS FROM THE EARLY PART OF THE EIGHTH TO NEAR THE CONCLUSION OF THE TENTH CENTURY. Boniface, archbishop of Mentz, and father of the German church, was an Englishman,' 11 and is looked upon in ecclesiastical history, as one m As we are speaking of a celebrated English martyr, and have already mentioned the first person who was martyred in England for the christian faith, it will be interesting to the reader to learn, that before the coming of St. Augustine into England, there were four persecutions in Britain. The first was under Diocletian, about the year 210; and that not only in England, but generally throughout all the Roman monarchy, as is already specified. In this persecution, Albanus, Julius, Aaron, with a great number of other christian Britons were martyred for the cause of Christ. The second persecution was by the invasions of Gnavius and Melga : the first was captain of the Huns, the other of the Picts. These tyrants, after the cruel slaughter of Ursula and 11,000 noble virgins, entered Britain, hearing it to be destitute of a sufficient military force. They spoiled and wasted churches, without having mercy either on women or children. The third persecution was by Hengist and the Saxons; who likewise destroyed the christian congregations within the land, like raging wolves flying upon sheep, and shedding the blood of Christians, till the time of Aurelius Ambrosius, who restored the churches of the land. The fourth destruction of the christian faith and religion was by Gurmundus, a king of the Africans; who joining in league with the Saxons, did much injury to the holy cause. Theonus, bishop of London, and Thadioceus, bishop of York, and the rest of the people, having no place to remain in with safety, fled some to Cornwall and some to the mountains of Wales, about the year of our Lord 550. This persecution continued till the time of Ethelbert, king of Kent, in the year 589. In the reign of Ethelbert, who was the fifth king of Kent, the faith of Christ was first received by the Saxons or English, by the means of Gregory, bishop of Rome, in the following manner. It should be observed, that the christian faith first received of king Lucius, endured in Britain till this time, about 400 years, when, by Gurmundus Africaous, fighting with the Saxons against the Britons, it was nearly extinct in all the land, for the space of about forty-four years. So that the first springing of Christ's gospel in this land, was in the year of our Lord 180. The coming of the Saxons was in the year 449. The coming of Augustine, who was sent by Gregory, was in the year 596. The occasion on which Gregory sent him hither was this: — In the days of Pelagius, bishop of Rome, Gregory chanced to see certain children in the market-place of Rome, brought thither from England for sale, being fair and beautiful, demanded out of what country they were ; and understanding they were heathens from England, lamented the case of a land so beautiful in its people, and yet in pagan darkness. Inquiring out of what province they were, he was answered out of Deira, a part of Northumberland. Then alluding to the name of Deira, " These people," said he, " are to be delivered de Dei ira," which is, from God's wrath. Also understanding the king of that province to be named Alle, alluding to it, he said, "There ought Allelujah to be sung to the living God." Some time afterwards becoming bishop himself after Pelagius, he sent thither Augustine, with about forty other priests; but as the company were travelling, a sudden fear entered into their hearts, that, as Antonius says, they all returned. Others write, that Augustine went back to Gregory again, to solicit that they might not be sent on 110 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM of the brightest ornaments of his country. His name originally was Winfred, or Winfrith, and he was born at Kirton, in Devonshire, then part of the West-Saxon kingdom. When only six years of age, he dis- covered a propensity to study, and was solicitous to gain information on religious subjects ; and some evangelical missionaries coming by chance to Kirton, happened to fix their abode at his father's house, and profit- ing by their discourse, he determined to devote himself to a religious life. When he informed his father of his resolution, he would have dissuaded him from it ; but finding him fully resolved, he permitted him to go and reside at a monastery in Exeter. Wolfrad, the abbot, observ- ing that he possessed a bright genius, had him removed to Nutscelle, a seminary of learning in the diocese of Winchester, where he would have a great opportunity of attaining improvement. The abbot of Nutscelle, who was celebrated for his superior learning, took uncommon pains with the young pupil, who, in time, became a prodigy in divine knowledge, and was, at length, employed in the college as a principal teacher. We are informed by the ancient Saxon historians, that those who studied under him had no need to remove to any other place to finish what they had begun, for he gave them lessons in grammar, poetry, rhetoric, and philosophy, and explained the holy scriptures in the literal, moral, and mystical senses. His example was as instructive as his lectures, and while he formed his scholars to learning by his dic- tates, he encouraged them to the practice of virtue by his own prudent conduct. The abbot, finding him qualified for the priesthood, obliged him to receive that holy order, when he was about thirty years old. From this he began to labour for the salvation of his fellow-creatures ; in the progress of which he gave the first proofs of that apostolical zeal, which afterwards made such glorious conquests in this once savage and barbarous part of the world. There arose an important occasion to assemble a synod of bishops m the kingdom of the West-Saxons, and it was judged expedient to depute one of their body to the archbishop of Canterbury to inform him of the exigency of affairs ; and Boniface being proposed, was unani- mously chosen by the synod. He discharged this trust with great pru- dence, and obtained the applause of every member of the synod ; but far from being vain of the reputation he had acquired, he proposed to forsake his country, relations, and friends, in order to be of service to the faith, and extend Christianity on the continent. At first, the abbot and monks of Nutscelle would have dissuaded him from his purpose ; but finding him resolute, two of their number were ordered to assist him. Boniface accordingly left Nutscelle, and arrived in Friesland about the year 716 ; when he found that country in the utmost disorder and con- fusion. It had belonged to the crown of France, but was at this time in the possession of prince Radbord, who had established paganism in it, persecuted the Christians, and was at war with Charles Martel, mayor of the palace of Austrastia. a voyage so dangerous and uncertain, among a barbarous people, whose language they neither knew, nor were able to resist their rudeness. Gregory however sent him again with letters to the bishop of Arelatensis, and his companions, exhorting him to go boldly forward on the work of Christ. CONVERSIONS BY BONIFACE. Ill Boniface, therefore, went to Utrecht, where lie found the infidel prince, and made him a tender of the gospel ; but he being obdurate, Boniface imagined the time for converting that nation was not yet come, and returned to his monastery in England. He had not been many months there when the abbot died. Boniface undertook to comfort his brethren under the calamity, and discovered such zeal and charity in the transac- tion, that they desired he would supply the place of their deceased father and friend. Either, however, he never accepted of the post, or quitted it very soon ; for he obtained letters from Daniel, bishop of Winchester his diocesan, recommending him to the pope, and all the bishops, abbots, and princes, he should find in his way to Rome, where he arrived in the beginning of the year 719. He was received by Gregory the Second with great friendship, and after several conferences with him, finding him full of zeal, he dismissed him with a commission to preach the gospel to the pagans, wherever he found them. Having passed through Lombardy and Bavaria, he came to Thuringia, which country had before received the light of the gospel ; but at the time he arrived there it had made little progress. The first exertions of Boniface were to bring the corrupted Christians back to a profession of the gospel in its purity ; and having completed this pious work with great assiduity, and hearing that Radbord, whom he had formerly at- tempted to convert, was dead, he repaired to Utrecht, to assist Willebrod, the first bishop of that city. During three years these worthy pastors laboured in extirpating idolatry and propagating the faith in north Holland; and so far succeeded, that most of the people received baptism, and many of the pagan temples were converted into christian churches. At this time Willebrod being infirm, thought he could not do better than appoint Boniface to succeed him; but this the English missionary absolutely refused, pleading he could not stay so long- in any place, as he had many other evangelical labours to perform. Willebrod consented to his departure, and Boniface repaired to Hesse, where he brought to a knowledge of the truth two brothers, who though they called themselves Christians, were sunk into most of the errors of pa- ganism. They, however, became such zealous converts, that they gave their estate to Boniface, who instead of applying its revenues to his own use, built and endowed a religious community with them ; after which he proceeded to Saxony, where he converted some thousands to the christian faith. Exerting himself in this new field with prodigious suc- cess about a year, he dispatched one of his companions to Rome, with an account of what he had done; upon which Gregory II. sent him a letter, desiring him to repair to that city. On his arrival, the bishop gave him every mark of esteem and affection, and was resolved not to let him return to his labours without the episcopal character, that he might pursue them with more authority and to greater advantage. He was accordingly consecrated on the last day of November, 723 : from which time he took upon himself the name of Boniface. On being qualified for forming new churches, he left Rome having- with him six letters from the pope ; one to Charles Martel ; a second to all bishops, priests, dukes, and counts; a third to the clergy and people under his more immediate direction ; a fourth to the five princes 112 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. of Thuringia and their christian subjects ; a fifth to the pagans in every dominion ; and a sixth to the whole body of Saxons. The purport of these was, to recommend him to the protection of the christian powers, and exhort the pagans to hear him, and exchange their errors and super- stitions for the pure religion of Christ. Having made converts in dif- ferent parts, he returned to his mission in Germany, and was very suc- cessful, though he met with many that would willingly have been Chris- tians only in a partial degree. They were ready enough to acknowledge Christ, but did not care to adhere strictly to his precepts : and some were so far deluded, as to be exceeding fond of worshipping a large oak-tree, which was dedicated to Jupiter. This tree Boniface ordered to be cut down; and when the pagans, finding that Jupiter did not take any notice of those who had destroyed it, owned the weakness of their cause, and desired to receive Christian baptism. Being naturally diffident of his own abilities, Bonifice had frequent recourse to such persons as he thought might be of service to him in his present difficult station. Pope Gregory and Daniel, his old diocesan, were his most able and frequent counsellors ; but by the care of the bishops of Winchester, he received from this island large supplies of missionaries who rendered him valuable aid, and greatly advanced the gospel in Europe. In the year 731, Gregory the Third succeeded to the pontifical chair, on whose accession Boniface sent proper persons to Rome, to acquaint him with the success of his labours, testifying his allegiance, and desir- ing assistance in some difficulties which occurred in his mission. The pope not only answered the message by assuring him of the communion and friendship of the see of Rome, but as a mark of respect sent him the mantle of office newly consecrated, granted him the title of arch- bishop, or metropolitan of all Germany, and empowered him to erect new bishoprics wherever he should have opportunity. Boniface not only did this, but also built several monasteries. He then made a third journey to Rome in 738, when Gregory the Third, who had as great an esteem as his predecessors for him, detained him the larger portion of the year. At length having left Rome, he went to Bavaria, upon the invitation of Odillo, duke of that country, to reform some abuses introduced by persons who had never received holy orders. At this time Bavaria had only one bishop ; he therefore, pursuant to his commission from Rome, erected three new bishoprics, one at Saltzburg, a second at Freisignen, and a third at Ratisbon, and thus the country was divided into four dio- ceses ; a regulation which was soon after confirmed by the pope. Boni- face next established four other bishoprics in Germany : at Erford, for Thuringia ; at Barabourg, for Hesse ; at Wurtzburg, for Franconia ; at Achstat, for Bavaria. The bishopric of Barabourg is at present translated to Paderborn, in Westphalia. Willebald, the original author of the life of Boniface, was by him made bishop of Achstat. In the year 741, Gregory the Third was succeeded in the popedom by Zachary, who confirmed Boniface in his power and approved of all he had done in Germany, making him at the same time archbishop of Mentz, and metropolitan over thirteen bishoprics. He did not however, CRUEL TIES OF THE SARACENS. 1 13 lose his simplicity, or forget his character in his ecclesiastical dignity ami ministerial popularity. During this period Pepin was declared king of France ; and it being that prince's ambition to be crowned by the most holy prelate he could find, Boniface was solicited to perform that ceremony, which he did at Soissons in 752. The next year his great age and manyinfirmitiessoafflict- ed him, that, with the consent of the new king, and the bishops of his diocese, he consecrated Lullus, his countryman and faithful disciple, and placed him in the see of Mentz, desiring him to finish the church at Fulda, and see him buried in it, as his end was approaching. He then took a boat for the Rhine, and went to Friesland, where he converted and baptised several thousands of the natives, demolished the temples, and raised christian churches on their ruins. He appointed a day for confirming a number of new converts, and ordered them to assemble in an open plain near the river Bourde, whither he repaired the day before; and pitching a tent, determined to remain on the spot all night, in order to be ready in the morning early. Several pagans having intelligence of this inten- tion, poured down upon him and the companions of his mission in the night, with a view to massacre them. The servants of Boniface would have repelled the barbarians by force of arms ; but he told them and his clergy, that the moment he had long wished for was now come, and exhorted his assistants in the ministry to prepare themselves for martyr- dom. While he was thus employed, the pagans rushed in upon them, and killed him and fifty-two of his companions and attendants. This happened on June 5, A. D. 755. Thus fell the great father of the Germanic church, the honour of England, and the glory of his barba- rous age. n Forty-two persons of Armorian, in Upper Phrygia, were martyred in the year 845, by the Saracens, the circumstances of which are thus related: — In the reign of Theophilus, the Saracens ravaged many parts of the eastern empire, gained considerable advantage over the Christians, and at length laid siege to the city of Armorian. The garrison bravely defended the place for a considerable time, and would have obliged their enemies to raise the siege, but the place was betrayed by a re- negado. Many were put to the sword ; and two general officers, with some persons of distinction, were carried prisoners to Bagdad, where n Having given the fair side of the character of Boniface, the archbishop, it behoves us to say, that he was a great abettor of all the superstitions of popery : though for this he is not so much to be blamed, because in his time the lamp of the true gospel was not lighted. When he was appointed by pope Gregory archbishop of Mentz, he brought many countries under the pope's influence, held many great councils, ordained bishops, built monasteries, canonized saints, commanded relics to be worshipped, and permitted religious fathers to be attended by nuns in their ministerial excursions. Among other works he founded the great monastery of Fulda, in Germany, of English monks, into which no women were allowed to enter but only Lieba and Tecla, two English nuns. By authority, which he received from pope Zachary, Childeric, king of France, was deposed from the right of his crown, and Pepin, the betrayer of his master, was confirmed in the sovereignty. From Boniface proceeded the doctrine which now stands registered in the pope's decrees, that in case the pope were of unholy living, and forgetful or negligent of himself, and of Christianity, in such a degree, that he led innumerable souls with him to hell ; yet ought no man to rebuke him for so doing, " for he hath power to judge all men, and ought of no man to be judged again." I 114 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. they were loaded with chains and thrown into a dungeon. They con- tinued in prison for some time without seeing any persons but their gaolers, or having scarcely food enough for their subsistence. At length they were informed that nothing could preserve their lives but renounc- ing their religion and embracing Mahometanism. To induce them to comply, the caliph pretended great zeal for their welfare, and declared that he looked upon converts in a more glorious light than conquests. Agreeably with these maxims he sent some of the most artful Maho- metans, with money and clothes, and the promise of other advantages which they might secure to themselves by an abjuration of Christianity; but the martyrs rejected the proposal with horror and contempt. After this they were attacked with that fallacious and delusive argu- ment which the Mahometans still use in favour of themselves, and were desired to judge of the merits of the cause by the success of those who were engaged in it, and choose that religion which they saw flourished most, and was best rewarded with the good things of this life, which they called the blessings of heaven. Yet the noble prisoners were proof against all temptation, and argued strenuously in opposition to the authority of the false prophet. This incensed the Mahometans, and drew greaterhardshipsupon the Christians during their confinement, which lasted seven years. Boldizius, the renegado who had betrayed Armorian, then brought them the welcome news that their sufferings would end in martyrdom the next day : when taken from their dungeon, they were again solicited to embrace the tenets of Mahomet; but nei- ther threats nor promises could induce them to adopt what they de- clared to be the doctrines of an impostor. Perceiving that their faith could not be shaken, the caliph ordered them to be executed. Theodore, one of the number, had formerly received priest's orders, and officiated as a clergyman; but afterwards quitting the church, he had followed a military life, and raised himself by the sword to considerable posts of honour, which he enjoyed at the time when he was taken prisoner. The officer who attended the execution, being apprized of these circum- stances, said to Theodore, " You might, indeed, pretend to be ranked amongst the Christians, while you served in their church as a priest; but the profession you have taken up, which engages you in bloodshed, is so contrary to your former employment, that you should not now think of passing upon us for one of that religion. When you quitted the altar for the camp you renounced Jesus Christ. Why then will you dissemble any longer? Would you not act more conformably to your own principles, and make your conduct consistent, if you came to a resolution of saving your life by owning our great prophet?" Theodore, covered with religious confusion at this speech but still un- shaken in his faith, made the following answer: — " It is true I did in some measure abandon my God when I engaged in the army, and scarce deserve the name of a Christian; but the Almighty has given me the grace to see myself in a true light, and made me sensible of my fault; and I hope he will be pleased to accept my life as the only sacrifice I can now offer to expiate my guilt." ° • This, if accurate, shews a distressing defect in evangelical views and spiritual percep- tions on the part of this individual. To think of expiating one crime by the voluntary MARTYRDOM OF TWO LADIES. 115 This firm answer confounded the officer, who only replied, that he should presently have an opportunity of giving that proof of his fidelity to his Master. Upon which, Theodore and the rest, forty-two in number, were beheaded. Two ladies of distinction, Mary and Flora, suffered martyrdom at the same time. Flora was the daughter of an eminent Mahometan at Seville ; from whence he removed to Corduba, where the Saracen king resided and kept his court. Her father dying when she was young, Flora was left to the care of her mother, who being a Christian, brought her up in the true faith, and inspired her with senti- ments of virtue and religion. Her brother being a professed enemy to Christianity, and of a barbarous and savage temper, Flora was for some time obliged to use great caution in the practice o„f such virtues as must have exposed her to persecution. She was too zealous to bear this restraint long; for which reason she left Corduba, in company with her sister. Her departure soon alarmed her brother, who guessed her motives, and in revenge informed against several Christians of Corduba; for as he did not know whither his sister was gone, he determined to wreak his vengeance on such Christians as were present. When Flora was informed of these proceedings, she considered herself as the cause of what the Christians had suffered at Corduba, and having an inward conviction that God called her to fight for her faith, she returned to that city, and proceeded to the persecutors, among whom she found her brother. " If," said this glorious martyr, " I am the object of your inquiry; if the servants of God are tormented on my account, I now freely offer myself to your disposal. I declare that I believe in Jesus Christ, glory in his cross, and profess the doctrines which he taught." None of the company seemed so much enraged at this declaration as her brother, who, after some threats, struck her; but soon endeavoured to win her by expressions of pretended kindness. Finding her insen- sible to all he could say, he then informed against her. He insinuated, that Flora had been educated in the religion of Mahomet, but had re- nounced it at the suggestion of Christians, who inspired her with the utmost contempt of the great prophet. When she was called to answer to the charge, she declared she had never owned Mahomet, but sucked the Christian religion in with her milk, and was from infancy devoted to the Redeemer of mankind. The magistrate finding her resolute, de- livered her to her brother, and gave him orders to use his utmost endea- vours to make her a Mahometan. She soon found an opportunity of escaping over a wall in the night, and of secreting herself in the house of a Christian. She then withdrew to Tucci, a village of Andalusia, where she met with her sister, and they never separated again till her martyrdom. Mary, who was martyred at the same time, was the daughter of a Christian tradesman at Estremadura, who afterwards removed to a town near Corduba. When the persecution began under Abderrama, king of the Saracens, in Spain, Mary's brother was one who fell a sacrifice of life, sounds too harsh in modern christian ears for any thing like cordial approval of the religion of such a man. His military habits might strengthen him to face death with courage; but his self-righteousness ill prepared him to have boldness in the day of judgment. 116 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. victim to the rage of the infidels. Hearing of his martyrdom, she was filled with confusion at being left behind by one younger than herself, and went to Corduba, where, going into a church, she found Flora, who had left her retreat on the same motive. Conversing together, and find- ing they acted upon the same heroic principles, and proposed the same glorious end of their labours, they agreed to go together, and declare their faith before the judge. Accordingly they proceeded to the magis- trate, where Flora boldly told him, she looked on Mahomet as no better than a false prophet, an adulterer, and a magician. Mary also told the magistrate, that she professed the same faith, and entertained the same sentiments as Flora, and that she was sister to Walabonzus, who had already suffered for being a Christian. This behaviour so enraged the magistrate, that he ordered them to be committed to prison for some time, and then to be beheaded. The horrid sentence was executed on the 4th of November, A. D. 850. Perfectus was born at Corduba, and brought up in the christian faith. He made himself master of all the useful and polite literature of that age; and at length took priest's orders, and performed the duties of his office with great assiduity and punctuality. One day walking in the streets of Corduba, some Arabians entered into conver- sation with him, and among other questions, asked him his opinion of Jesus Christ and of Mahomet. Perfectus gave them an exact account of the christian faith, respecting the divinity of Christ, and the re- demption of mankind: but would not deliver his sentiments concerning Mahomet. The Arabians pressed him to speak freely; but he said that what he should utter would not be agreeable to their ideas, and therefore he would be silent, as he did not wish to offend any one: they however still entreated him to utter his thoughts, declaring at the same time, that they would not be offended at any thing he should say. Believing them sincere, and hoping this might be the favourable time allotted by God for their conversion, Perfectus told them that the Christians looked on Mahomet as one of the false prophets foretold in the gospel, who were to seduce and deceive great numbers to their eternal ruin. To illustrate this assertion, he descanted on some of the actions of the impostor ; endeavoured to show the impious doctrines, and abominable absurdities of the Alcoran; and exhorted them, in very strong terms, to quit the miserable state in which they then were, and which would certainly be followed by eternal perdition. The infidels could not hear such a discourse without conceiving indig- nation against the speaker. They thought proper, however, to disguise their resentment ; but were resolved not to let him escape. At first, indeed, they were unwilling to use any violence, because they had given him a solemn assurance he should come to no harm : but they were soon eased of that scruple ; and, watching a favourable opportunity, seized on him, hurried him away to one of their chief magistrates, and accused him of blaspheming their great prophet. On this the judge ordered him to be put in chains and confined in prison, till the feast of their Ramadan, or Lent, when he should be made a victim to Mahomet. He heard the determination with joy, and prepared for his martyrdom with great fervency. At the time appointed he was led to the place of exe- ACTS OF THE EMPEROR WINCESLAUS. 117 cution, where he again made a confession of his faith, declared Mahomet an impostor, and insisted that the Alcoran was filled with absurdities and blasphemies. In consequence of this he was sentenced to be be- headed, and was executed A. D. 850. His body was interred by the Christians. Winceslaus, duke of Bohemia, was educated in the faith of Christ. His father Wrattislaus, the preceding duke, was a valiant prince, and a pious Christian; but Drahomira, his mother, was a pagan, whose morals were as bad as her religion: she consented, however, to entrust her mother, Ludmilla, with the education of her eldest son. That holy lady had resided at Prague ever since the death of Boriver, her husband, the first duke of Bohemia who embraced the faith of Christ; and Winceslaus was sent to that city, to be brought up under her. Ludmilla undertook to form his heart to devotion and the love of God, and was assisted in the work by Paul her chaplain, a man of great sanctity and prudence, who likewise endeavoured to cultivate his mind in other branches of knowledge. The young prince consented to their endeavours; and by the grace of God, who had prepared him for their instructions, caused him to make astonishing progress: he was sent to a college at Budweis, about sixty miles from Prague, where several young persons of the first rank were placed, and studied under an excellent master, a native of Neisse in Silesia. When Wrattislaus died, his son Winceslaus was very young, on which account, Drahomira, his mother, declared herself regent during his minority. This princess, not having any one to controul her, gave vent to her rage against Christianity. She began her administration with an order for shutting up the churches, repealed the laws in favour of the Christians, and removed all magistrates of that profession, supplying their places with pagans. Thus finding themselves encouraged, the pagans upon every frivolous pretence murdered the Christians with impunity; and if a Christian in his own defence killed a pagan, his life and that of nine other Christians were forfeited. Ludmilla was afflicted at these proceedings, as she could not behold a religion which she professed despised, — a religion too which her consort had established with so much difficulty and zeal. Yet she could not think of any expedient to prevent the total extirpation of Christianity in Bohemia, except persuading Winceslaus, young as he was, to assume the reins of government. Winceslaus at first declined engaging in this task; but upon his grandmother promising to assist him with her advice, he complied with her request; and, to prevent further disputes, divided the country between himself and his younger brother Bolislaw, whose name is still retained by a town and a consider- able district of that country. Drahomira now attached herself to Bolislaw, who was a pagan, and implicitly followed her maxims. Con- cerning the behaviour of Winceslaus after his assuming the sovereignty, and the fate of the aged and worthy Ludmilla, the annals of Bohemia state these particulars: "Winceslaus, pursuant to the impressions of virtue which he had received from his grandmother and others employed in his education, was more careful than ever to preserve the innocence of his morals, and acquired some new degree of wisdom and goodness 118 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. every day. He was as humble, sober, and chaste, when master of his own motions, and in full possession of sovereign authority, as when under the government of those on whom he was taught to look as his superiors. He spent great part of the night in prayer, and the whole day in acts of piety; directing all his views to the establishment of peace, justice, and religion in his dominions. He was assisted in these charitable and Christian labours by able ministers ; and nothing of con- sequence was done without the advice of Ludmilla. This excellent princess being informed that Drahomira, transported with rage at the success of her directions, had formed a design against her life, and that it would scarcely be in her power to save herself, was so far from being disturbed at the apprehension of death, or desisting from what had made her odious to that wicked woman, that she exerted herself more vigorously than ever for the maintenance of religion, and confirming the prince in his resolutions. Being now assured that her death was near, and that several persons were employed to dispatch her the first convenient op- portunity, she called her servants together, acknowledged their fidelity in her service with a liberal hand, and distributed her goods and money among the poor. Thus divested of all she possessed in the world, she went to her chapel, received the holy eucharist, and then employed herself in prayer, recommended her soul to God, and expected his will with the utmost tranquillity and resignation. This was her situation, when two ruffians entered the chapel, seized on her, and strangled her with her own veil. The young duke severely felt the loss of his grandmother, yet he did not punish the offenders, knowing that they had been instigated to what they did by his mother. He therefore addressed himself to God only, entreated the throne of grace for his mother's pardon and conversion, and patiently submitted to the dispensations of Providence. As many factions were erected in his dominions by means of his mother and brother, and as Winceslaus himself seemed of an unwarlike disposition, a neighbouring prince, Radislaus of Gurima, determined to invade that part of Bohemia which belonged to him. He accordingly entered Bohemia at the head of a considerable army, and immediately com- menced hostilities. Winceslaus, on hearing of these proceedings, sent a message to the invader, to know what offence he had given him, and what terms he required to quit his dominions. Radislaus, mistaking the temper of Winceslaus, looked upon this message as arising from timidity ; he therefore answered in a haughty manner, made frivolous excuses for having commenced the quarrel, and concluded by insisting that Win- ceslaus should surrender to him his dominions. This insolent demand obliged Winceslaus to put himself at the head of an army in defence of himself and his people. He accordingly raised a considerable body of forces, and marched against the enemy. When the two armies were ready to engage, Winceslaus obtained a conference with Radislaus, and observed, that as it would be unjust to hazard the lives of so many in- nocent men, the most eligible method of putting an end to the dispute would be by single combat. Radislaus accepted the proposal with joy, thinking that he was much more expert in the use of arms than his anta- gonist. They accordingly engaged in sight of the two armies, and the WINCESLAUS TREACHEROUSLY MURDERED. 11!) victory seemed doubtful for some time, till, at length, it declared in favour of Winceslaus; when his antagonist was obliged to relinquish his pretended claim, and retire into his own country. Winceslaus being thus freed from the fears of a foreign enemy, turned his thoughts to domestic reformation. He removed corrupt judges and magistrates, and filled their places with persons of integrity : he put an end to oppression, punished such nobles as tyrannized over their vassals, and made other wise regulations, which while they relieved the poor and helpless, gave great offence to the great and rich, as they abridged their power, and took from them their self importance and assumed conse- quence. Hence many became factious, and the malcontents censured his best actions, and spoke contemptuously of his application to prayer, fasting, and other acts of religion, which they insinuated were low em- ployments for a prince, and incompatible with the courage and policy necessary for the government of a state. His mother and brother were still the most inveterate of his enemies, and they resolved to remove him by the first favourable expedient. Drahomira and Bolislaw were con- certing measures for executing their wretched purpose, when they under- stood that Winceslaus had desired the pope to send some priests into his dominions, with whom he proposed to spend the remainder of his days in a religious retreat. This news suspended the execution of their conspiracy against him for some time ; but, perceiving the affair did not come to a conclusion as soon as was necessary for their ambitious views, they resumed their cruel artifices against him, and gained their ends in the following treacherous manner : — Bolislaw having been some time married, his princess at length brought him forth a son. This circumstance, which should have diffused joy throughout the family, furnished Drahomira and Bolislaw with an idea of the most horrid nature, and the innocent infant was made the occasion of perpetrating a deed of unexampled cruelty. The scheme concerted between the bigoted Bolislaw and his wicked mother was to get Winces- laus into their power. The birth of the child furnished them with a pretence, and a polite message was dispatched to the unsuspecting duke to partake of an entertainment given upon the occasion. Winceslaus not having the least suspicion of their purpose repaired to the court of Bolislaw, where he was received with the greatest appearance of cor- diality. He partook of the entertainment, and was festive till it grew rather late, when he retired before the rest of the company, as he was not fond of late hours, and never neglected his devotions to the Almighty before he lay down to rest. When he had withdrawn, Dra- homira urged Bolislaw to follow his brother instantly, and murder him. The prince took his mother's sanguinary advice, and repairing to his brother's chamber, he found him kneeling, and in fervent prayer, when he rushed upon him, and plunged a dagger to his heart. Thus fell Winceslaus, the third duke of Bohemia, by a most infernal act of treachery and fratricide. Adalbert, bishop of Prague, was a Bohemian by birth. His parents were persons of rank, but more distinguished for virtue and piety than for opulence and lineage. They had the highest expectations of their son, and gave him a complete education; but their joy was in some 120 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. measure damped by his falling into a dropsy, from which he was with difficulty recovered. When cured they sent him to Magdeburg-, and committed him to the care of the archbishop of that city, who completed his education. The rapid progress which Adalbert made in human and divine learning made him dear to the prelate, who, to the authority of a teacher, joined all the tenderness of a parent. Having spent nine years at Magdeburg, he retired to his own country upon the death of the archbishop, and entered himself among the clergy at Prague. Dithmar, bishop of Prague, died soon after the return of Adalbert to that city ; and, in his last moments, expressed great contrition for having been ambitious and solicitous of worldly honours and riches. Adalbert, who was present, was so sensibly affected at the bishop's dying sentiments, that he received them as an admonition to the strict practice of virtue, which he afterwards exercised with the greatest attention, spending his time in prayer, and relieving the poor with his fortune. Soon after the decease of Dithmar, an assembly was held for the choice of a successor, which consisted of the clergy of Prague, and the chief men of Bohemia. Adalbert's character determined them to raise him to the vacant see, which they did on the 19th of February, 983, and immediately dispatched messengers to Verona to desire that Otho II. would confirm the election. The emperor granted the request, ordered Adalbert to repair to court for investiture, gave him the ring and crosier, and then sent him to the archbishop of Mentz for consecration. The ceremony was performed on the 29th of June the same year, and he was received at Prague with great demonstrations of public joy. He divided the revenue of his see into four parts, according to the direction of the canons extant in the fifth century. The first was employed in building and ornaments of the church ; the second went to the maintenance of the clergy ; the third was laid out for the relief of the poor; and the fourth reserved for the support of himself and family, which always comprehended twelve indigent persons, to whom he allowed daily subsistence. He performed his duty with the utmost assiduity, and spent a great portion of his time in preaching and exhort- ing the people. His conduct was discreet and humane, and his man- ners neither too severe nor too indulgent. Yet some things which he could not remedy gave him great uneasiness, particularly having a plurality of wives, and selling Christians to the Jews for trivial offences. Hence he determined to consult the pope, and made a journey to Rome. John, who then occupied the papal chair, received him with cordiality, and advised him to give up his bishopric rather than be witness of enor- mities which he could not remedy. He determined to take the pope's advice, and to devote the remainder of his days to mortification and silence ; and began by giving all his treasures to the poor. He was desirous however before he entirely secluded himself from mankind, of seeing the Holy Land, and set off accordingly in company with three persons. On their way they arrived at Mount Cassino, where the chiefs of the monastery received them in a very friendly manner, and being apprised of the cause of their journey, when they were about to depart, the superior of the monastery addressed himself to Adalbert, observing, that ACCOUNT OF ADALBERT, BISHOP OF PRAGUE. 121 the journey he had undertaken would give him more trouble and un- easiness than lie was aware of; that the frequent desire of travelling often proceeded more from a restless disposition than real religion. " Therefore," said he, "if you will listen to my advice, leave the world at once with sincerity, and settle in some religious community, without desiring to see more than you have already seen." Adalbert adopted the sentiments of the superior, and took up his residence in that monas- tery, where he then thought he might live entirely recluse : but he was mistaken ; for the priests by accident came to a knowledge of the rank and dignity of their colleague, and began to treat him with great defer- ence and respect, which occasioned him to leave the place. Nilus, a Grecian, being then at the head of a community not far from Mount Cassino, Adalbert went to him and begged to be received into his mon- astery. He assured him he would comply with his request, if the prac- tice of his religious family would be agreeable to him : he told him that the house in which he and his people lived was given to them by those of Mount Cassino ; and therefore it might not be safe for him to receive one that had left that community ; but he advised him to return to Rome, and apply to Leo, an abbot of his acquaintance there, to whom lie gave him a letter of recommendation. Adalbert went to Rome, where he found Leo, who, after putting his virtue and courage to a pro- per test, conducted him to the pope, and, with the consent of that pon- tiff and the whole college of cardinals, gave him the habit on Holy Thursday, in the year 990. Of the three persons by whom he had been attended since he had had the pope's advice for resigning his bishopric, two of them had now left him; but the third, his brother Gaudentius, follow- ed his example, and engaged in the same community. Adalbert, full of humility, took a particular pleasure in the lowest employments of the house, and lived an excellent pattern of christian simplicity and obedience. The archbishop of Mentz, the metropolitan, being exceedingly afflict- ed at the disorders in the church of Prague, and wishing for the return of the bishop, with whose retreat he was not for some time acquainted, after five years absence heard that Adalbert was at Rome, whither he sent a deputation to press his return to his diocese. The pope summoned a council to consider of the deputation, and after a warm dispute between the monks and deputies, the latter carried their point, and Adalbert was ordered to return to his diocese ; but at the same time had permission to quit his charge again if he found his flock incorrigible as before. The inhabitants of Prague met him on his arrival with great joy, and promised obedience to his directions : but they soon forgot their promises, and relapsed into their former vices, which obliged him a second time to leave them, and return to his monastery. Then the archbishop of Mentz sent another deputation to Rome, and desired that his suffragan might be again ordered back to his diocese. Gregory V. who was then pope, commanded him to return to Prague ; and with great reluctance he obeyed. The Bohemians, however, did not look upon him as before, but deemed him the censor of their faults, and the enemy of their pleasures, and threatened him with death upon his arrival ; but not having him 122 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. yet in their power, contented themselves with falling on his relations, several of whom they murdered, plundered their estates, and set fire to their houses. Adalbert had intelligence of these outrageous proceed- ings, and did not judge it prudent to proceed on his journey. He therefore went to the duke of Poland, who had a particular respect for him, and engaged that prince to sound the Bohemians in regard to his return ; but could get no better answer from that wretched people than "that they were sinners hardened in iniquity; and Adalbert a saint, and consequently not fit to live among them ; for which reason he was not to hope for a tolerable reception at Prague.'' The bishop thought this message discharged him from any further concern for that church, and began to direct his thoughts to the conversion of infidels; for which purpose he repaired to Dantzic, where he converted and baptised many, which so enraged the pagan priests, that they fell upon him and dis- patched him with darts, on the 23rd of April, A. D. 997. p p In concluding the second book of this history, the reader's attention is recalled to the state of religion in this kingdom. It is true that no persecutions had taken place for the sake of Christ, though many crimes were committed during the Saxon heptarchy, from the time of Lucius to that of Egbert; and these kings, not aware what danger would ensue to their own souls from their mistaken zeal, though acting as they thought in support of the church of Christ, conceived that the greatest exertions they could make for the Christian religion would be to build monasteries and nunneries, and fill them with monks and virgins. Accordingly, during the Saxon heptarchy, which lasted about 200 years, they founded no less than twenty-seven monasteries and nunneries in England; and not satisfied with sending their children, and in some cases their wives, to inhabit them, many of them became monks themselves. The following are examples: — 1. Kinigilsus, king of the West-Saxons. 6. Kenred, king of Mercia. 2. Ina, king of the West-Saxons. 7. Offa, king of the East-Saxons. 3. Ceolulf, king of Northumberland. 8. Sebbi, king of the East-Saxons. 4. Edbert, king of Northumberland. 9. Sigebert, king of the East-Angles. 5. Ethelred, king of Mercia. Among ladies of rank who entered nunneries were, Hilda, daughter of the nephew of Edwin, king of Northumberland, abbess of Ely ; Ercongota, with her sister Ermenilda, daughters of Ercombert, king of Kent; Ethelberga, queen of Edwin, king of Northum- berland, and daughter of Ethelbert, king of Kent ; Etheldreda, called St. Eldred, wife to Egfrid, king of Northumberland, who being married to two husbands, could not give her consent to either of them, during the space of twelve years, but lived a virgin, and was a nun at Ely : Werburga, the daughter of Wolfer, king of the Mercians, a nun at Ely ; Kinedreda, sister of Wolfer, and Kineswida, her sister, both professed nuns; Sexburga, daughter of Anna, king of Mercia, and wife of Ercombert, king of Kent; was abbess at Ely ; Elfrida, daughter of Oswy, king of Northumberland, was abbess of Whitby ; Mil- dreda, Milburga, and Milguida, three daughters of Merwald, king of the West-Mercians, took the profession and vow of virginity ; Kineburga, wife of Alfrid.king of Northumber- land, and sister to Osric, king of the Mercians, and daughter of king Penda, was pro- fessed abbess of the monastery of Gloucester ; Elfleda, daughter of king Oswy, and wife of Peda, son of king Penda, likewise committed herself to the profession and vow of Romish chastity ; as did Alfrida, wife to king Edgar, and Editha, daughter to the said Edgar, with Wolfride, her mother, etc. All these holy nuns, with many more, the Roman catholics have canonized for saints, and put the greater part of them in their calendar, only because of the vow of their chastity. Concerning this chastity, it is not that which makes saints before God, but only the merit of Christ Jesus, and a true faith in him. While we are upon the subject of nuns and nunneries, we shall forcibly call the attention of our readers to the increase of popery in our own country at the present day. In the 25th volume of the Anti-Jacobin Review, it is stated, that a body of nuns have purchased the extensive domain of New-Hall, the property of the late Lord Waltham. The ludies are natives of this ■kingdom, and they are charged with attempting to make proselytes, by allowing English ladies to take the veil. 123 SECTION III. A GENERAL ACCOUNT OF THE PERSECUTIONS IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURA. Alphage, afterwards archbishop of Canterbury, came from a considerable family in Gloucestershire, and received an education suitable to his birth. His parents were Christians, and he seemed to inherit all their virtues. He was prudent, humble, pious and chaste; and made a rapid progress both in polite literature and theological learning. In order to be more at leisure to contemplate the beauties of sacred history, he determined to renounce his fortune, quit his home, and become a recluse. He ac- cordingly retired to a monastery of Benedictines at Deerhurst, in Gloucestershire, and soon after took the monastic habit. Here he lived with the utmost temperance, and spent the greater part of his time in prayer. But not thinking the austerities he underwent in this monastery sufficiently severe, he retired to a lonely cell near Bath, and lived in a manner still more rigid; but some devout persons finding out his retreat, his austerity soon became the subject of conversation in the neigh- bouring villages, where many flocked to him and begged to be taken under his pastoral care. Consenting to their importunities, he raised a monastery near the cell by the contributions of several well-disposed persons; formed his new pupils into a community, and placed a prior over them. Having prescribed rules for their regulation, he again retired to his cell, fervently wishing to pass the remainder of his days in religious security; when the following affair again drew him from his retreat : — The see of Winchester being vacant by the death of Ethelwold, a dispute arose respecting a successor to that bishopric. The clergy had been driven out of the cathedral for their scandalous lives, but were admitted again by king Ethelred, upon certain terms of reformation. The monks who had been introduced upon their expulsion, looked upon themselves as the chapter of that church ; and hence arose a violent contest between them and the clergy who had been re-admitted, about the election of a bishop ; while both parties were vigorously determined upon promoting their own favourite. This dispute at last ran so high, We have no wish to censure the conduct of those who devote themselves to a religious life, merely because they are Catholics; but it is evident by historical authorities of the most indubitable nature, that in the earliest ages the greatest disorders prevailed in houses of nuns, whose professed vows have never yet been good to the church, nor profitable to the common-wealth, and least of all to themselves. Of such young and wanton women, St. Paul in his time complains, (1 Tim. v.) because they would take upon them the pro- fession of single life, which they were not able to perform, but falling into shameless luxury, deserved to be reprehended. How much better had it been for these lascivious nuns not to refuse the safe yoke of christian matrimony, rather than to entangle themselves in a superstitious vow of perpetual virginity, which neither was required of them, nor were they able to keep. 124 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. that Dunstan, archbishop of Canterbury, primate of all England, was obliged to interpose, and he consecrated Alphage to the vacant bishopric, to the general satisfaction of all concerned in the election. The behaviour of Alphage was a proof of his being equal to the dig- nity of his vocation. Piety flourished in his diocese ; unity was esta- blished among his clergy and people; and the conduct of the church of Winchester made the bishop the admiration of the whole kingdom. Dunstan had an extraordinary veneration for Alphage, and when at the point of death, made it his ardent request to God that he might suc- ceed him in the see of Canterbury, which accordingly happened, though not till about eighteen years after Dunstan's death. In the interval the metropolitan church was governed by three successive prelates, the last of whom was Alfric; upon whose decease, 1006, Alphage was raised to the see of Canterbury. The people belonging to the diocese of Win- chester were too sensible of the loss they sustained by his translation not to regret his removal to Canterbury. Soon after he was made arch- bishop he went to Rome, and received the pall from pope John XVIII. When Alphage had governed the see of Canterbury about four years with great reputation, the Danes made an incursion into England. Ethelred, who then reigned, was a prince of very weak mind and pusillanimous disposition. Being afraid to face the enemy himself, and too irresolute to furnish others with the means of acting, he suffered his country to be ravaged with impunity, and the greatest depredations to be committed by the enemy. Upon this occasion, archbishop Alphage acted with great resolution and humanity : he went boldly to the Danes, purchased the freedom of several whom they had made captives, found means to send food to others whom he had not money enough to redeem, and even made converts of some of the Danes : but the latter circum- stance made the Danes, who still continued pagans, greater enemies to him than they would otherwise have been, and they were determined upon revenge. Edric, an English malcontent and traitor, gave the Danes every encouragement, and assisted them in laying siege to Canterbury. When the design of attacking the city was known, many of the principal people made a precipitate flight, and would have per- suaded Alphage to follow their example; but he refused to listen to such a proposal, assured them he could not think of abandoning his flock when his presence was more necessary than ever, and was resolved to hazard his life in their defence. While he was employed in assisting his people, Canterbury was taken by storm, the enemy poured into the town, and destroyed all that came in their way. The monks endea- voured to detain the archbishop in the church, where they hoped he might be safe : but concern for his flock made him break from them and run into the midst of danger. On this occasion he addressed the enemy, and begged the people might be saved, and that they would discharge their whole fury upon him. They accordingly seized him, bound, in- sulted, and abused him, and obliged him to remain on the spot till his church was burnt, and the monks were massacred. They then decimated all the inhabitants; after which they confined the archbishop in a dun- geon, where they kept him for several months. During his confinement they proposed to him to redeem his liberty with the sum of 3,000/. and GERARD THE VENETIAN. 125 to persuade the king to purchase their departure out of the kingdom with a farther sum of 10,000/. His circumstances not allowing- him to satisfy their exorbitant demand, they bound him, and put him to severe torments, to oblige him to discover the treasures of his church; upon which they assured him of his life and liberty. They then remanded him to prison, confined him six days longer, and taking him with them to Greenwich, brought him to trial. He still remained inflexible with respect to the church treasures; but exhorted them to forsake their idolatry and embrace Christianity. This so greatly incensed the Danes, that the soldiers dragged him out of the camp, and beat him unmerci- fully. Alphage bore this treatment patiently, and even prayed for his persecutors. One of the soldiers who had been converted and baptised by him, was greatly afflicted that his pains should be so lingering, as he knew his death was determined on: he, therefore, in a kind of barbarous compassion, cut off his head, and thus completed his martyrdom. This happened on April 19, A. D. 1012, on the very spot where the church at Greenwich, which is dedicated to him, now stands. After death his body was thrown into the Thames, but being found the next day, it was buried in the cathedral of St. Paul's by the bishops of London and Lincoln; whence it was in the year 1023, removed to Canterbury by- Ethel woth, the archbishop of that province. Gerard, a Venetian, having devoted himself to the service of God from youth, entered into a religious house for some time, and then determined to visit the Holy Land. On arriving in Hungary, he became acquainted with Stephen, the king of that country, who acted the parts of prince and preacher, and not only regulated his subjects by whole- some laws, but taught them religious duties. Finding Gerard qualified to instruct his people, he tried to detain him in his kingdom; and, at length, founding several churches, he made Gerard bishop of that of Chonad. Here the new prelate had a very difficult task to perform, the people of his diocese being accustomed to idolatry. Gerard however, assiduous in his zeal for the salvation of his flock, laboured to bring them to a sense of their duty, and soon had the pleasure to find that his endeavours were successful, his sweetness of disposition winning greatly upon the people. His success was not confined to his own diocese, but extended to the adjacent country, where his doctrines successfully spread, and many became converts to the pure faith of Christ. Wherever the Gospel made its way by his ministry, he took care to establish eccle- siastical discipline for the preservation of religion, and made several useful regulations in the public service of the church. His exemplary conduct was as instructive as his exhortations, and did much to convince his converts of the truth and dignity of their new profession. He was remarkable for an uncommon tenderness for the poor, especially those who suffered sickness, or were incapable of following their accustomed employments. During the life of Stephen, Gerard received every assist- ance which that excellent monarch could afford him; but on his demise, his nephew Peter, who succeeded him, was of so different a temper, that Gerard was greatly perplexed. At length, the tyranny of Peter exas- perated his subjects so much, that they deposed him, and placed Ouvo on the throne. They, however, soon found that they had changed from 126 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. bad to worse; for Ouvo proved a greater monster of cruelty than his predecessor. At Easter, he repaired to Chonad, in order to receive the crown from the hands of Gerard. When he arrived, the other prelates of the kingdom, who were assembled, assured the prince of their affec- tion for his person, and promised to concur in his coronation; but Gerard refused to pay that compliment to a public and malicious enemy; and told him, that he could not look on Peter's exclusion as regular, and consequently should not proceed to do any thing to the prejudice of his title : he then said that if he persisted in his usurpation, Providence would soon put an end to his life and reign. Ouvo, growing more in- supportable than his predecessor, was brought to the scaffold in the year 1044 ; upon which Peter was recalled, and placed on the throne a second time ; but his deposition and retirement had made no alteration in his temper, so that he was again deprived of the royal dignity in less than two years. An offer was then made of the crown to Andrew, son of Ladislaws, cousin-german of Stephen, on condition that he would employ his authority in extirpating the Christian religion from Hungary. The ambitious prince consented to the proposal, and promised to do his utmost to re-establish the idolatrous worship of his deluded ancestors. Gerard, informed of this impious bargain, remonstrated against the enormity of Andrew's crime, and persuaded him to withdraw his promise. He undertook to go to that prince, attended by three other prelates, full of zeal for religion. The king was at Alba Regalis; but as the four bishops were about to cross the Danube, they were stopped by a party of soldiers posted there by order of a man of quality in the neighbourhood, remarkable for his aversion to the christian religion, and to Stephen's memory. They were attacked with a shower of stones, and the soldiers beat them unmercifully, and at length dispatched them with lances. Their martyrdom happened in the year 1045. Stanislaus, bishop of Cracow, was of an illustrious popish family. The piety of his parents was equal to their opulence, and they rendered their wealth subservient to every purpose of benevolence. Stanislaus was their only child, and when he was of proper age, they employed masters in several branches of learning to instruct him. He possessed a penetrating genius, retentive memory, and solid understanding; hence study became his amusement. His disposition was not inferior to his abilities; and he voluntarily gave himself, in the dawn of youth, to such austerities as might have acquired reputation for a hermit. In process of time he was sent to a seminary of learning in Poland, and afterwards to the university of Paris. Continuing several years in France, lie returned to his own country, and on the demise of his parents became possessed of a great fortune; but he devoted most of his property to charitable uses, retaining only a small portion for his own expenses. His views were now solely directed to the ministry; but he remained for some time undetermined whether he should embrace a monastic life, or engage among the active clergy. He was at length persuaded to the latter by Lambert Zula, bishop of Cracow, who gave him holy orders, and made him a canon of his cathedral. In this capacity he lived in a most exemplary manner, and performed his duties with unremitting DISGRACEFUL CONDUCT OF 130LISLAUS. 127 assiduity. Lambert was charmed with the many virtues which so par- ticularly distinguished Stanislaus, and would fain have resigned his bishopric to him, alleging as a reason his great age; but Stanislaus absolutely refused to accept of the see, for the contrary reason, his own want of years: being then only 36 years old, he deemed that too early an age for a man to undertake the important care of a diocese. Lambert, however, made him a substitute upon various occasions, by which he became thoroughly acquainted with all that related to the bishopric : and the former dying on November 25, 1071, all concerned in the choice of a successor declared for Stanislaus: but he declined the acceptance for the same reason as before. At length the king, clergy, and nobility unanimously joined in writing to pope Alexander the Second who, at their entreaty, sent an express order that Stanislaus should accept the bishopric. He then obeyed, and exerted himself to the utmost in improving his flock. He was equally careful with respect both to clergy and laity, kept a list of all the poor in his diocese, and by feeding the hungry, clothing the naked, and administering remedies to the sick, he proved himself not only the godly pastor, but the physician and bene- factor of the people. Bolislaus, the second king of Poland, had many good qualities, but giving way too much to his passions, he committed several enormities, till from being deemed a good king, he at length had the appellation of cruel. The nobility were shocked at his conduct, and the clergy saw his proceedings with grief; but Stanislaus alone had the courage to tell him of his faults. The king was greatly exasperated at this freedom ; but awed by the virtues of the bishop, he dissembled his resentment, and appearing to be convinced of his errors, promised to reform his conduct. However, so far from designing to perform his promise, he complained to some of his sycophants of the freedom that Stanislaus had taken with him, and they condemned the boldness of the bishop. The king soon after attempted the chastity of a married lady, who rejected his offers with disdain, which piqued his pride so much that he seized her by force and ruined her. This greatly alarmed all the nobility : none knew how long his own wife, daughter, or sister, might be safe ; they therefore assembled, and calling the clergy to their assistance, entreated Peter, archbishop of Gresne, to remonstrate to the king on the impropriety of his conduct. Nevertheless, the archbishop declined the task ; for though a man of virtue, he was of an uncommonly timid disposition. Several other prelates imitated his example, and Stanislaus was, as before, the only one who had courage and zeal sufficient to perform what he looked upon as an indispensable duty. He, therefore, put himself at the head of a select number of ecclesiastics, noblemen, and gentlemen ; and pro- ceeding to court, addressed the king in a solemn manner on the heinous- ness of his crime. The king, as soon as he had done speaking, flew into a violent passion, complained of the want of respect to his royal dignity, and vowed revenge for what he called an insult to his person. Stanislaus, however, not in the least intimidated by his menaces, visited him twice more, and remonstrated with him in a similar manner, which only increased his anger. The nobility and clergy finding that the admonitions of the bishop 128 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. had not the desired effect upon the king, thought proper to interpose. The nobility entreated the bishop to refrain from exasperating a monarch of so ferocious a temper; and the clergy endeavoured to persuade the king not to be offended with Stanislaus for his charitable remonstrances. But the haughty sovereign determined at any rate to get rid of a prelate, who, in his opinion, was so censorious; and hearing that the bishop was by himself in the chapel of St. Michael, at a small distance from the town, he dispatched some soldiers to murder him. The men readily undertook the task ; but when they came into the presence of Stanislaus, the venerable aspect of the prelate struck them with such awe, that they could not effect what they had promised. On their return, the king rinding they had not obeyed his orders, flew into a rage, snatched a dagger from one of them, and ran furiously to the chapel, where, finding Stanislaus at the altar, he plunged the weapon into his heart. This occurred on the 8th of May, A. D. 1079. SECTION IV. THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE WALDENSES IN FRANCE. Before this time the church of Christ was more than tainted with the errors of popery, and superstition began to predominate; but a few, who perceived the pernicious tendency of such errors, determined to preserve the light of the gospel in its purity and splendour, and to disperse the clouds which artful priests had raised about it in order to delude the people. The principal of these worthies was Berengarius, who, about the year 1000, boldly preached evangelical truth according to its primi- tive simplicity. Many from conviction embraced his doctrine, and were on that account, called Berengarians. Berengarius was succeeded by Peter Bruis, who preached at Toulouse, under the protection of the earl Hildephonsus ; and the tenets of the reformers, with the reasons of their separation from the church of Rome, were published in a book written by Bruis, under the title of Antichrist. In the year 1140, the number of the reformed was so great, that the probability of their increasing alarmed the pope, who wrote to several princes to banish them from their dominions, and employed many learned men to write against them. In 1147, Henry, of Toulouse, being deemed their most eminent preacher, they were called Henricians; and as they would not admit of any proofs relative to religion but what could be deduced from the scriptures, the popish party gave them the name of Apostolics. Peter Waldo, a native of Lyons, at this time became a strenuous opposer of popery; and from him the reformed received the appellation of Waldoys, or Waldenses. Waldo was a man eminent for learning and benevolence; his doctrines were very generally admired, and he was followed by multitudes of all classes. The bishop of Lyons taking umbrage at the freedom with which he treated the pope and the Romish clergy, sent to admonish him to refrain in future from such discourses; but Waldo answered, "That he could not be silent in a TENETS OF THE WALDENSES. 129 cause of such importance as the salvation of men's souls, wherein he must obey God rather than man." His principal charges against the pope and popery were, that the Roman Catholics affirm the church of Rome to be the infallible church of Christ upon earth, and that the pope is its head, and the vicar of Christ; that they hold the absurd doctrine of transubstantiation, insisting that the bread and wine given in the sacra- ment is the identical body and blood of Christ who was nailed to the cross; that they believe there is a place called purgatory where souls after this life are purged from the sins of mortality, and that the pains and penalties here inflicted may be abated according to the masses said by and the money paid to the priest; that they teach the communion of one kind, and the receiving the bread only to be sufficient for the laity, though the clergy must be indulged with both bread and wine; that they pray to the Virgin Mary and saints, though their prayers ought to be immediately to God; that they pray for souls departed, though God decides their fate immediately on the decease of the person ; that they will not perform the service of the church in a language understood by the people in general; that they place their devotion in the number of prayers, and not in the intent of the heart; that they forbid marriage to the clergy though Christ allowed it; and that they use many things in baptism, though he used only water. When pope Alexander the Third was informed of these transactions, he excommunicated Waldo and his adherents, and commanded the bishop of Lyons to exterminate them. Thus began the papal persecutions against the Waldenses. The following were the tenets maintained by the Waldenses :— 1. Holy oil is not to be mingled with water in baptism. 2. Prayers used over things inanimate are superstitious. 3. Flesh may be eaten in Lent; the clergy may marry; and auricular confession is unnecessary. 4. Confirmation is no sacrament; we are not bound to pay obedience to ihe pope; ministers should live upon tythes; no dignity sets one clergyman above another, for their superiority can only be drawn from real worth. 5. Images in churches are absurd ; image-worship is idolatry ; the pope's indulgences are ridiculous; and the miracles pretended to be done by the church of Rome are false. 6. Fornication and public stews ought not to be allowed; purgatory is a fiction; and deceased persons, though saints, ought not to be prayed to. 7. Extreme unction is not a sacrament; and masses, indulgences, and prayers, are of no service to the dead. 8. The Lord's prayer ought to be the rule of all other prayers. Waldo remained three years undiscovered in Lyons, though the utmost diligence was used to apprehend him, but at length he found an oppor- tunity of escaping from the place of his concealment to the mountains of Dauphiny. He soon after found means to propagate his doctrines in Dauphiny and Picardy, which so exasperated Philip, king- of France, that he put the latter province, which contained most of his followers, under military execution ; destroying above 300 gentlemen's seats, K 130 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. erasing some walled towns, burning many of the reformed, and driving others into Normandy and Germany. Notwithstanding these persecutions the reformed religion continued to flourish, and the Waldenses, in various parts, became more numerous than ever. At length the pope accused them of heresy, and the monks of immorality; the former asserting that they had fallen into many errors, and the latter that they committed many evils. These slanders however they refuted; but the pope, incensed at their increase, used all manner of arts for their extirpation; such as excommunications, anathemas, canons, constitutions, decrees, &c. by which they were rendered incapable of holding places of trust, honour, or profit; their lands were seized, their goods confiscated, and they were not permitted to be buried in consecrated ground. Some of the Waldenses having taken refuge in Spain, Aldephonsus, king of Arragon, at the instigation of the pope, published an edict, strictly ordering all Roman catholics to persecute them wherever they could be found; and decreeing that all who gave them the least assistance should be deemed traitors. The year after this edict Aldephonsus was severely punished by the hand of Provi- dence; for his son was defeated in a great battle, and 50,000 of his men slain, by which a considerable portion of his kingdom fell into the hands of the Moors. The reformed ministers continued to preach boldly against the Romish church; and Peter Waldo, in particular, wherever he went, asserted, that the pope was antichrist, that mass was an abomination, that the host was an idol, and that purgatory was a fable. These proceedings of Waldo and his reformed companions, occasioned the origin of the inquisition; for pope Innocent III. elected certain monks inquisitors, to find and deliver over the reformed to the secular power. The monks upon the least surmise or information delivered over the reformed to the magistrate, and the magistrate delivered them to the executioner; for the process was short, as an accusation was deemed adequate to guilt, and a fair trial was never granted to the accused. When the pope found that these cruel means had not the desired effect, he determined to try others of a more mild nature; he therefore sent several learned monks to preach among the Waldenses, and induce them to change their opinions. Among these was one Dominic, who was extremely zealous in the cause of popery. He instituted an order, which from him was called the order of Dominican friars; and the members of this order have ever since been principal agents in the various inquisitions of the world. The power of the inquisitors was unlimited ; they proceeded against whom they pleased without consider- ation of age, sex, or rank. If the accusers were ever so infamous, the accusation was deemed valid ; and even anonymous informations sent by letter were thought sufficient evidence. To be rich was a crime equal to heresy; therefore many who had money were accused of it, or of being favourers of heretics. The dearest friends and kindred could not, without danger, serve any one who was imprisoned on account of religion : to convey to those who were confined a little straw, or give them a cup of water, was called favouring the heretics: no lawyer dared to plead even for his own brother, or to note or register any thing in CRUEE PERSECUTIONS OF THE WALDENSES. 131 favour of the reformed. The malice of the papists, indeed, went beyond the grave, and the bones of many Waldenses, who had been long dead, were dug up and burnt. If a man on his death-bed were accused of being a follower of Waldo, his estates were confiscated, and the heir defrauded of his inheritance; and some were even obliged to make pilgrimages to the Holy Land, while the Dominicans took possession of their houses and properties, and when the owners returned would often pretend not to know them. A knight named Enraudus, being accused of embracing the opinions of Waldo, was burnt at Paris, A. D. 1201. About twenty years after, such numbers of the reformed were apprehended, that the archbishops of Aix, Aries, and Narbonne, took compassion on them, and thus ex- pressed themselves to the inquisitors — " We hear that you have appre- hended such a number of Waldenses, that it is not only impossible to defray the charge of their food and confinement, but to provide lime and stone to build prisons for them." In the year 1380, a monk inquisitor, named Francis Boralli, had a commission granted him by pope Clement VII. to search for and punish the Waldenses in Aix, Ambrone, Geneva, Savoy, Orange, Aries, Vienna, Venice, and Avignon. He went to Ambrone, and summoned all the inhabitants to appear before him ; when those who were found to be of the reformed religion, were delivered over to the secular power, and burnt ; and those who did not appear were excommunicated for contumacy, and had their effects confiscated. In the distribution of these effects, the clergy had the lion's share., more than two thirds of every man's property who was condemned, and the secular power less than one third, and sometimes next to nothing. All the reformed in- habitants of the other places named in the commission of this ecclesiastic were equal sufferers. In the year 1400, the Waldenses who resided in the valley of Pragela, were, at the instigation of some priests, suddenly attacked by a body of troops, who plundered their houses, murdered the inhabitants, or drove them to the Alps, where great numbers were frozen to death, it being in the depth of winter. In 1460, a persecution was carried on in Dauphiny against the same people, by the archbishop of Ambrone who employed a monk, named John Vayleti ; and this monk proceeded with such vio- lence, that not only the Waldenses, but even many papists were suf- ferers : for if any of them expressed compassion or pity for the unoffend- ing people, who were so cruelly treated, they were sure to be accused of partiality to heretics, and to share their fate. At length Vayleti's pro- ceedings became so intolerable, that a great number of the papists them- selves signed a petition against him to Louis XI. king of France, who granted the request of the petitioners, and sent an order to the governor of Dauphiny to stop the persecution. Vayleti, however, by order of the archbishop, still continued it ; for taking advantage of the last clause of the edict, he pretended that he did nothing contrary to the king's precept, who had ordered punishment to such as affirmed any thing against the holy catholic faith. This persecution at length concluded with the death of the archbishop, which happened in 1487. Pope Innocent VIII. in 1488, determined to persecute the Waldenses. 132 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. To this end he sent Albert de Capitaneis, archdeacon of Cremona, to France; who, on arriving in Dauphiny, craved the assistance of the king's lieutenant to exterminate them from the valley of Loyse. The lieutenant readily granted his assistance, and marched a body of troops to the place ; but when they arrived in the valley, they found that it had been deserted by the inhabitants, who had retired to the mountains, and hid themselves in dens and caves of the earth. The archdeacon and lieu- tenant immediately followed them with their troops, and catching many cast them headlong from precipices, by which they were dashed to pieces. Several, however, retired to the innermost parts of the caverns, and knowing the intricacies, were able to conceal themselves. The arch- deacon and lieutenant not being capable of finding them ordered the mouths of the caves to be filled with faggots, which being lighted, those within were suffocated. On searching the caves, numerous children were found smothered, either in their cradles or in their mothers' arms ; and upon the whole, about 3000 men, women, and children, were destroyed in this persecution. After this tragical work, the lieutenant and arch- deacon proceeded with the troops of Pragelo and Frassaniere, to perse- cute the Waldenses in those parts. But these having heard the fate of their brethren in the valley of Loyse, thought proper to arm themselves; and by fortifying the different avenues, and bravely disputing the passages through them, they so harassed the troops that the lieutenant was com- pelled to retire without effecting his purpose. In 1594, Anthony Fabria and Christopher de Salience, having a com- mission to persecute the Waldenses of Dauphiny, put some to death, sequestered the estates of others, and confiscated the goods of many ; but Louis XII. coming to the crown in 1598, the Waldenses petitioned him for a restitution of their properties. The king determined to have the affair impartially canvassed, and sent a commissioner of his own, together with a commissary from the pope; to make the proper inquiries. Witnesses against the Waldenses having been examined, the innocence of those poor people evidently appeared, and the king's commissioner therefore declared — " That he only desired to be as good a Christian as the worst of them." This favourable report being made to the king, he immediately gave orders that the Waldenses should have their property restored to them. The archbishop of Ambrone, having the greatest quantity of their goods, it was generally imagined that he would set a laudable example to others by being the first to restore them. However, to the surprise of the people in general, and the affliction of the Wal- denses in particular, the prelate protested that he would not restore any of the property, for it was incorporated and become part of his arch- bishopric. He, however, with an affectation of candour, offered to re- linquish several vineyards, of which he had dispossessed the sufferers, provided the lords of Dauphiny would restore all they had taken from them; but this the lords absolutely refused, being as fond of keeping their plunder as the archbishop himself. The Waldenses finding that they were not likely to recover any of their property, again appealed to the king; and the monarch having attended to their complaints, wrote to the archbishop ; but that artful and avari- cious prelate replied, — " That at the commencement of the persecution UPRIGHTNESS OF THE WALUENSES. 133 the Waldenses had been excommunicated by the pope, in consequence of which their goods were distrained ; therefore, till the sentence of excommunication was taken off, which had occasioned them to be seized they could not be restored with propriety." This plea was allowed to be reasonable : and application was ineffectually made to the pope to remove the sentence of excommunication ; the archbishop having used all his interest at the court of Rome to prevent the petition from suc- ceeding. Thus were the poor Waldenses robbed of their property, only because they would not sacrifice their consciences to the will of their enemies. At length this sect having spread from Dauphiny into several other parts, became very numerous in Provence. At their first arrival Pro- vence was almost a desert, but by their great industry it soon abounded with corn, wine, oil, fruit, &c. The pope, by being often near them at his seat at Avignon, heard occasionally many things concerning their differences with the church of Rome, which greatly exasperated him, and he determined to persecute them on this ground with severity. Proceeding to extremities, under the sanction of ecclesiastical authority only, without consulting the king of France, the latter became alarmed and sent his master of requests, and his confessor to examine the affair. On their return they reported that the Waldenses were not such danger- ous people as they had been represented ; that they lived with perfect honesty, were friendly to all, caused their children to be baptised, had them taught the Lord's prayer, creed, and ten commandments; expounded the scriptures with purity, kept the Lord's day sacred, feared God, honoured the king, and wished well to the state. " Then," said the king, " they are much better Christians than myself or my catholic subjects, and therefore they shall not be persecuted." The king was as good as his word, and sent orders to stop the per- secution. Some time after the inhabitants of Merindol received a summons, that the heads of the families of that town should appear before the eccle- siastical court. When they appeared, and confessed themselves Wal- denses, they were ordered to be burnt, their families outlawed, their habitations laid waste, and the woods that surrounded the town cut down two hundred paces square, so that the whole should be rendered desolate. The king, however, being informed of this barbarous decree, sent to countermand the execution of it ; but his order was suppressed by cardinal Tournon, and the greatest cruelties were consequently per- petrated with impunity. The president of Opede sent several companies of soldiers to burn some villages occupied by protestants : this commission they too faith- fully executed, exceeding it by a brutal treatment of the inhabitants, in which neither infancy, age, or sex, was spared. He also proclaimed that none should give any manner of assistance or sustenance to the suf- ferers. On reaching another small town, the president found only a boy, who had surrendered himself to a soldier, the other inhabitants having de- serted the place. The boy he ordered to be shot by the soldier to whom he had surrendered, and then destroyed every house in the place. He next marched against Cabrieres, and began to cannonade it. At this time 134 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. there were not above sixty poor peasants with their families in the town ; and they sent him word that he need not expend powder and shot upon the place, as they were willing to open the gates and surrender, provided they might be permitted to retire unmolested to Geneva or Germany. This was promised them ; but the gates were no sooner opened, than the president ordered all the men to be cut to pieces, which cruel command was immediately executed. Several women and children were driven into a large barn, which was set on fire, and every one perished in the flames. Other women and children having taken refuge in a church, the president ordered one of his officers to go and kill them all : the captain at first refused, saying, " unnecessary cruelty is unbecoming a military man." The president, displeased at his reply, said, " I charge you, on pain of being accused of mutiny, immediately to obey my orders." When the captain, afraid of the consequences, thought pro- per to comply. The president then sent a detachment of his troops to ravage the town of Costa, which was done with the greatest barbarity. At length the judgment of God overtook this monster of cruelty; he was afflicted with a dreadful bloody-flux, and a painful strangury. In this extremity he sent for a surgeon from Aries, who, on examining his disorders, told him they were of a singular nature, and much worse than he had ever seen in any other person. He then took occasion to repre- hend him for his cruelties, and told him that unless he repented, he might expect the hand of Heaven to fall still heavier upon him. On hearing this, the president flew into a violent passion, and ordered his attendants to seize the surgeon as a heretic. The surgeon, however, found means to escape, and soon after the president's disorder increased to a terrible degree. As he had found some little ease from the surgical operations, he again sent for the faithful operator, having been informed of the place of his retirement : his message was accompanied with an apology for his former behaviour, and a promise of personal security. The surgeon forgiving what was past, went to him, but too late to be of any service; for he found the tyrant raving like a madman, and crying out that he had a fire within him. After blaspheming for some time he expired in dreadful agonies; and his body in a few hours became so offensive, that hardly any one could endure the place where it lay. John de Roma, a monk, having a commission from the pope to search for heretics, executed it with great severity in Provence. The king of France hearing of his proceedings, sent an order to the parliament of Provence to apprehend him : the monk, however, made his escape to Avignon, and thought to live luxuriously upon what he had taken from the Waldenses. But in this he was mistaken, for robbers soon after plundered him of the greater part of his treasure; and his grief on this account brought on a violent disorder, which turned him, while living, into a mass of putrefaction, and soon put a period to his existence. The bishop of Aix, with some priests, being at Avignon together, were one day walking along the streets with some courtezans, and seeing a man who sold obscene pictures, they purchased several, and presented them to the women. A bookseller, who had a number of bibles in the French language for sale, lived at hand. The bishop stepping up to him, said, " How darest thou be so bold as to sell French merchandize in YILLANY OF THE BISHOP OF AIX. J J J. this town ?" The bookseller replied with a kind of sneer, " My lord, do you not think that bibles are so good as those pictures which you have bought for the ladies'?" Enraged at the sarcasm, the bishop ex- claimed — " I'll renounce my place in paradise if this fellow be not one of the Waldenses. Take him away, take him away to prison." These expressions occasioned him to be cruelly treated by the rabble; and the next day he was brought before the judge, who, at the instigation of the bishop, condemned him to the flames. He was accordingly burnt, with two bibles hanging about his neck, the one before and the other behind. 7 SECTION VII. FARTHER ACCOUNT OF PERSECUTIONS IN THE VALLEYS OF PIEDMONT IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY. Pope Clement the Eighth sent missionaries into the valleys of Pied- mont, witli a view to induce the protestants to renounce their religion. These missionaries erected monasteries in several parts of the valleys, and soon became very troublesome to the reformed, to whom the monas- teries appeared not only as fortresses to awe them, but as sanctuaries for all such to fly to as had injured them in any degree. The insolence and tyranny of these missionaries increasing, the protestants petitioned the duke of Savoy for protection. But instead of gaining redress, the duke published a decree, in which he declared, that one witness should be sufficient in a court of law against a protestant; and that any witness who convicted a protestant of any crime whatever should be entitled to a hundred crowns as a reward. In consequence of this, as may be imagined, many protestants fell martyrs to perjury and avarice; for several papists would swear anything against them for the sake of the reward, and then fly to their own priests for absolution from their false oaths. These missionaries, moreover, endeavoured to get the books of the protestants into their power, in order to burn them ; the former wrote to the duke of Savoy, who for the heinous crime of not sur- rendering their bibles, prayer-books, and religious treatises, sent a num- ber of troops to be quartered on them, which occasioned the ruin of many families. To encourage, as much as possible, the apostasy of the protestants, the duke published a proclamation, wherein he said, "To encourage the heretics to turn catholics, it is our will and pleasure*, and we do hereby expressly command, that all such as shall embrace the holy Roman faith, shall enjoy an exemption from all and every tax for the space of five years, commencing from the day of their conversion." He likewise established a court, called the council for extirpating the heretics. This court was to enter into enquiries concerning the ancient privileges of the protestant churches, and the decrees which had been, from time to time, made in favour of them. But the investigation was carried on with the most decided partiality. After this, the duke published several succes- sive edicts, prohibiting the protestants from acting as schoolmasters or tutors; from teaching any art, science, or language; from holding any places of profit, trust, or honour: and finally, commanding them to attend mass. This last was the sure signal for a persecution, and which of consequence soon followed. One of the first who attracted the notice of the papists, was Mr. Sebastian Basan, a zealous protestant, who was seized by the mis- sionaries, confined, tormented fifteen months, and then committed to the flames. Before the persecution commenced, the missionaries employed kidnappers to steal away the children of the protestants, that they might privately be brought up Roman catholics; but now they took away the children by open force, and if the wretched parents resisted, they were 258 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. immediately murdered. The duke of Savoy, in order to inspirit the persecution, called a general assembly of the Roman catholic nobility and gentry, whence issued a solemn edict against the reformed, contain- ing many heads, and including several reasons for extirpating them, among which the following were the principal: " for the preservation of the papal authority; that the church livings may be all under one mode of government; to make an union among all parties; in honour of all the saints, and of the ceremonies of the church of Rome/' This was followed by a most cruel order, published on January 25, A. D. 1655, under the sanction of the duke, by Andrew Gastaldo, doctor of civil laws. This order set forth, "That every head of a family, with the individuals of that family, of the reformed religion, of what rank, degree, or condition soever, none excepted, inhabiting and possessing estates in Lucerne, St. Giovanni, Bibiana, Campiglione, St. Secondo, Lucernetta, La Torre, Fenile, and Bricherassio, shall, within three days after the publication thereof, depart, and be with- drawn out of the said places and translated into the places and limits tolerated by his highness during his pleasure; particularly Bobbio, Angrogno, Villaro, Rorata, and the county of Bonetti. And all this to be done on pain of death, and confiscation of house and goods, unless within the limited time they turn Roman catholics." The suddenness of the order affected all, and things which would have been scarcely noticed at another time, now appeared in the most conspicuous light. Neither women nor children, neither mothers nor infants, were objects of pity on this order for sudden removal, for all were included in the command; and to add to the distress, the winter was remarkably severe. Notwithstanding this, the papists drove them from their habitations at the time appointed, without even sufficient clothes to cover them; and many perished in the mountains through the severity of the season, or want of food. Those who remained behind after the publication of the decree, were murdered by the popish inhabitants, or shot by the troops. A particular description of these cruelties is given in a letter, written by a protestant, who was upon the spot, and who happily escaped the car- nage. " The army," says he, " having got footing, became very nu- merous by the addition of a multitude of the neighbouring popish inhabitants, who finding we were the destined prey of the plunderers, fell upon us witli impetuous fury. Exclusive of the duke of Savoy's troops, and the Roman catholic inhabitants, there were several regiments of French auxiliaries, some companies belonging to the Irish brigades, and several bands formed of outlaws, smugglers, and prisoners, who had been promised pardon and liberty in this world, and absolution in the next, for assisting to exterminate the protestants from Piedmont. This armed multitude being encouraged by the bishops and monks, fell upon the protestants in a most furious manner. All now was horror and despair ; blood stained the floors of the houses, dead bodies bestrewed the streets, and groans and cries shocked the ears of humanity from every quarter. Some armed themselves, and skirmished with the troops; and many with their families fled to the mountains. In one village the wretches vented their cruelty on one hundred and fifty women and PERSECUTION RENEWED IN PIEDMONT. 259 children after the men had fled, beheading the women, and dashing- out the brains of the children." Sarah Rostignole des Vignes, a woman sixty years of age, being seized by some soldiers, they ordered her to say a prayer to some saints; which she refusing, they first stabbed and then beheaded her. Martha Constantine, a beautiful young woman, was barbarously abused and killed. Parts of their bodies were even cooked for food, and served up for soldiers who were ignorant what was before them. When they had done eating, the others told them what they had made a meal of, in consequence of which a quarrel ensued, swords were drawn, and a battle took place. Several were killed in the fray, the greater part of whom were those concerned in the horrid massacre of the woman, and who had practised such a brutal deception on their deluded comrades. Peter Simonds, a protestant, about eighty years of age, was bound, and then thrown down a precipice. In the fall the branch of a tree caught hold of the ropes that fastened him, and suspended him in the mid-way, so that he languished for several days till he perished of hunger. Esay Garcino, refusing to renounce his religion, the soldiers cut him into small pieces, saying, in ridicule, they had minced him. A woman, named Armand, had her limbs separated from each other, and then the respective parts were hung upon a hedge. Several men, women, and children, were flung from the rocks, and dashed to pieces. Among others was Magdalen Bertino, a protestant woman of La Torre, who was bound and thrown down one of the precipices. Mary Ray- mondet, of the same town, had her flesh mangled till she expired. Magdalen Pilot, of Villaro, was cut to pieces in the cave of Castolus. Ann Charboniere had one end of a stake thrust into her body, and the other end being fixed in the ground, she was left in that manner to perish. Jacob Perin the elder, of the church of Villaro, with David, his brother, were flayed alive. Giovanni Andrea Michialin, an inhabitant of La Torre, with four of his children, was apprehended; three of them were killed before his eyes, the soldiers asking him, at the death of every child, if he would renounce, which he constantly refused. One of the soldiers then took up the last and youngest by the legs, and putting the same question to the father, he replied as before, when the inhuman brute dashed out the child's brains. The father, however, at the same moment started from them, and fled: the soldiers fired after him, but missed him; and he escaped to the Alps, and there remained concealed. Giovanni Pelan- chion, on refusing to abjure his oath, was fastened to the tail of a mule, and dragged through the streets of Lucerne, amidst the acclamations of an inhuman mob, who kept stoning him, and crying out, " He is pos- sessed of the devil." They then took him to the river side, struck off his head, and left that and his body unburied upon the bank. Peter Fontaine had a beautiful child ten years of age, named Mag- dalene, who was violated and murdered by the soldiers. Another girl, of about the same age, they roasted alive at Villa Nova; and a poor woman, hearing the soldiers were coming towards her house, snatched up the cradle in which her infant son was asleep, and fled towards the woods. The soldiers, however, saw and pursued her, when she light- 260 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. ened herself by putting down the cradle and child, which the soldiers no sooner came to, than they murdered the infant, and continuing the pursuit, found the mother in a cave, where they first abused and then slaughtered her. Jacobo Michelino, chief elder of the church of Bobbio, and several other protestants, were hung up by hooks fixed to their bodies, and left to expire. Giovanni Rostagnal, a venerable pro- testant, upwards of fourscore years of age, had his features mangled, and was otherwise injured by sharp weapons, till he bled to death. Daniel Saleagio and his wife, Giovanni Durant, Lodwich Durant, Bartholomew Durant, Daniel Revel, and Paul Reynaud, had their mouths stuffed with gunpowder, which being set fire to, their heads were blown to atoms. Jacob Birone, a schoolmaster of Rorata, for refusing to change his religion, was stripped naked; and after having been exposed, had the nails of his toes and fingers torn off with hot pincers, and holes bored through his hands with the point of a dagger. He next had a cord tied round his middle, and was led through the streets with a soldier on each side of him. At every turning the soldier on his right-hand side cut a gash in his flesh, and the soldier on his left-hand side struck him with a bludgeon, both saying, at the same instant, "Will you go to mass? Will you go to mass?" He still replied in the negative to these interro- gatories, and being at length taken to the bridge, they cut off his head on the balustrade, and threw both that and his body into the river. Paul Gamier, a protestant beloved for his piety, had his eyes put out, was then flayed alived, and being divided into four parts, his quarters were placed on four of the principal houses of Lucerne. He bore all his sufferings with the most exemplary patience, praised God as long as he could speak, and plainly evinced the courage arising from a con- fidence in God. Daniel Cardon, of Rocappiata, being apprehended by some soldiers, they cut off his head. Two poor old blind women, of St. Giovanni, were burnt alive. A widow of La Torre, with her daugh- ter, was driven into the river, and stoned to death there. Paul Giles, on attempting to run away from some soldiers, was shot in the neck : they then mutilated and stabbed him, and gave his carcass to the dogs. Some of the Irish troops having taken eleven men of Garcigliana, prisoners, they heated a furnace and forced them into it. Michael Gonet, a man about 90 years old, was also burnt to death. Baptista Oudri, another old man, was stabbed. Bartholomew Frasche had his heels pierced, through which ropes being put, he was dragged to the gaol, where, in consequence of his wound mortifying, he soon died. Magdalene de la Peire, being pursued by the soldiers and taken, was cast down a precipice and dashed to pieces. Margaret Revella and Mary Pravillerin, two very old women, were burnt alive. Michael Bellino, and Anne Bochardno, were beheaded. Joseph Chairet and Paul Carniero were flayed alive. Cypryania Bustia being asked " if he would renounce his religion, and turn Roman catholic," he replied, " I would rather renounce life, or turn dog :" to which a priest answered, "for that expression you shall both renounce life, and be given to the dogs." They, accordingly, dragged him to prison, where they confined him till he perished of I NPARALLELED CRl ELTIES. 261 hunger, after which they threw his corpse into the street before the prison, and it was devoured by dogs. Joseph Pont was severed in two. Margaret Soretta was stoned to death. Antonio Bertina had his head cleft asunder. Daniel Maria, and all his family, being ill of a fever, several ruffians broke into his house, telling him they were practical physicians, and would give them all present ease; which they did, by murdering him and his whole family. Three infant children of a pro- testant, named Peter Fine, were buried in the snow. An elderly widow, named Judith, was beheaded. Lucy, the wife of Peter Besson, who lived in one of the villages of the Piedmontese valleys, being in an advanced state of pregnancy, determined, if possible, to escape from such dreadful scenes as every where surrounded her: she accordingly took two young children, one in each hand, and set off towards the Alps. But on the third day of the journey she was taken in labour among the mountains, and delivered of an infant, who perished through the inclemency of the weather, as did the other two children; for all three were found dead by her side, and herself just expiring, by the person to whom she related the above circumstances. Francis Gross, son of a worthy clergyman, was treated in a manner which, if possible, surpasses in cruelty the worst instance which has been mentioned. It is too heart-sickening to be detailed, and was aggravated to the most inhuman extent by his wife being compelled to witness his extreme sufferings. The torture was not at last suspended but through the weariness of those who inflicted it. The Sieur Thomas Margher fled to a cave, where being discovered, the soldiers shut up the mouth, and he perished with famine. Judith Revelin, with seven children, were barbarously murdered in their beds. Jacob Roseno was commanded to pray to the saints, which he refusing, the soldiers beat him violently with bludgeons to make him comply, but being steady to his faith, they fired at him, and lodged many balls in his body. While in the agonies of death, they cried to him, " Will you pray to the saints?" To which he answered, "No!" when one of the soldiers, with a broad sword, clave his head asunder, and put an end to his sufferings. A young woman, named Susanna Ciacquin, being assaulted by a soldier, she made a stout resistance, and in the struggle pushed him over a precipice, when he was dashed to pieces by the fall. His comrades immediately fell upon her with their swords, and cut her to atoms, Giovanni Pullius, being apprehended as a protestant, was ordered by the marquis of Pianessa to be executed in a place near the convent. When brought to the gallows, several monks attended to persuade him to renounce his religion. But he told them he never would embrace idolatry, and that he was happy in being thought worthy to suffer for the name of Christ. They then represented to him what his wife and children, who depended upon his labour, would suffer after his decease: to which he replied, " I would have my wife and children, as well as myself, to consider their souls more than their bodies, and the next world before this; and with respect to the distress I may leave them in, God is merciful, and will provide for them while they are dependent on his protection." Finding the inflexibility of this poor man, the monks 262 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. commanded the executioner to perform his office, when he launched the martyr into the world of glory. Paul Clement, an elder of the church of Rossana, being apprehended by the monks of a neighbouring monastery, was carried to the market- place of that town, where some protestants had just been executed. On beholding the dead bodies, he said calmly, " You may kill the body, but you cannot injure the soul of a true believer: with respect to the dreadful spectacles which you have here shewn me, you may rest assured that God's vengeance will overtake the murderers of those poor people, and punish them for the innocent blood they have spilt." The monks were so exasperated at this reply, that they ordered him to be hung up directly ; and while he was hanging, the soldiers amused themselves by shooting at the body. Daniel Rambaut, of Villaro, the father of a numerous family, was seized, and, with several others, committed to the gaol of Paysana. Here he was visited by several priests, who, with continual impor- tunities, strove to persuade him to turn papist: but this he peremptorily refused, and the priests finding his resolution, pretended to pity his numerous family, and told him, that he might yet have his life, if he would subscribe to the belief of the following articles : — The real pre- sence in the host. — Transubstantiation. — Purgatory. — The pope's infal- libility. — That masses said for the dead will release souls from purgatory — That praying to saints will procure the remission of sins. To these pro- posals Rambaut replied, that neither his religion, his understanding, nor his conscience, would suffer him to subscribe to any of these articles; "For," said he, "to believe the real presence in the host, is a shocking union of blasphemy and idolatry. To fancy the words of consecration perform what the papists call transubstantiation, by converting the wafer and wine into the identical body and blood of Christ, which was cruci- fied, and which afterwards ascended into heaven, is too gross an absurdity for even a child to believe ; and nothing but the most blind superstition could make the Roman catholics put a confidence in anything so ridi- culous. The doctrine of purgatory is more inconsistent and absurd than a fairy tale. The infallibility of the pope is an impossibility, and he arrogantly lays claim to what can belong to God only, as a perfect being. Saying masses for the dead is ridiculous, and only meant to keep up a belief in the fable of purgatory, as the fate of all is finally decided in the departure of the soul from the body. Praying to saints for the remission of sins, is misplacing adoration, as the saints themselves have occasion for an intercessor in Christ ; therefore as God only can pardon our errors, we ought to sue to him alone for pardon." Filled with rage at these answers, the priests determined to shake his resolutions by the most cruel method imaginable : they inflicted daily tortures on his most susceptible limbs, and then deprived him of one limb after another so gradually as to reduce him to the utmost agony ; when find- ing that he bore his sufferings with unconquerable fortitude, and main- tained his faith with steadfast resolution, they stabbed him to the heart and gave his body to be devoured by dogs. Peter Gabriola, a protestant gentleman, of considerable eminence, being seized by a troop of soldiers, and refusing to renounce his religion, VARIOUS PERSECUTIONS. 263 they hung several bags of gunpowder about his body, and then caused them to explode. Anthony, the son of Samuel Catieris, a poor dumb lad, and extremely inoffensive, was cut to pieces by a party of the troops; and soon after the same ruffians entered the house of Peter Moniriat, and cut off the legs of the whole family, leaving them to bleed to death. Daniel Benech being apprehended, had his nose slit, and his ears cut off; after which, he was divided into quarters, and each quarter hung upon a tree ; Mary Monino had her jaw-bones broken, and was left to languish till she was starved to death. Mary Pelanchion, a hand- some widow, of the town of Villaro, was seized by a party of the Irish brigades, who having beat her cruelly, and otherwise abused her, dragged her to a high bridge which crossed the river, hung her by the legs from an arch with her head downwards towards the water, and then going into boats they shot at her till she died. Mary Nigrino, and her daughter, a poor idiot, were cut to pieces in the woods, and their bodies left to be devoured by beasts. Susanna Bales, a widow of Villaro, was immured and starved to death. Susanna Calvio, running away from some soldiers, and hiding herself in a barn, they set fire to the place, by which she was burnt to death. Daniel Bertino, a child, was burnt. Paul Armand was cut to pieces. Daniel Michialino had his tongue plucked out. Andreo Bertino, a lame and very old man, was mangled in a most shocking manner. But to enumerate any but the most remarkable cases is impossible, without rendering the volume almost an entire catalogue of names distinguished only by the undeserved sufferings of those who bore them. A protestant lady, named Constantia Bellione, was apprehended on account of her faith, and asked by a priest if she would renounce the devil and go to mass; to which she replied, "I was brought up in a religion by which I was always taught to renounce the devil ; but should I comply with your desire, and go to mass, I should be sure to meet him there in a variety of shapes." The priest was highly incensed at this, and told her to recant, or she should suffer cruelly. She, however, boldly answered, that she valued not any sufferings he could inflict, and in spite of them all she would keep her faith inviolate. The priest then ordered flesh to be cut from several parts of her body. This she bore with the most singular patience, only saying to the priest, " What horrid and lasting torments will you suffer in hell, for the trifling and temporary pains which I now endure !" Exasperated at this expression, and willing to stop her tongue, the priest ordered a file of musqueteers to draw up and fire upon her, by which she was soon dispatched. Judith Mandon, a young woman, for the same offence, was fastened to a stake, and sticks thrown at her from a distance, in imitation of the custom practised on Shrove-Tuesday of throwing at cocks. By this inhuman proceeding, her limbs were beat and mangled in a most terrible manner. At last one of the bludgeons striking her head, she was at once freed from her pains and her life. Paul Genre and David Paglia, each with his son, attempting to escape to the Alps, were pursued and overtaken by the soldiers in a large plain. Here their foes hunted them for their diversion, goading them with their swords, and making them run about till they dropped with fatigue. 264 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. When they found that their spirits were exhausted, and that they could not afford them any more barbarous sport by running, the soldiers hacked them to pieces, and left their mangled fragments on the spot. Michael Greve, a young man of Bobbio, was apprehended in the town of La Torre, and being led to the bridge, was thrown into the river. Being, however, an expert swimmer, he swam down the stream, thinking to escape, but the soldiers and mob followed on both sides the river, and kept stoning him, till receiving a blow on one of his temples, he sunk and was drowned. David Baridona was apprehended at Villaro, and carried to La Torre, where refusing to renounce his religion, he was tormented by brimstone matches being fastened to his hands and feet, and set fire to, and afterwards, by having his flesh plucked off with red hot pincers, till he expired. Giovanni Barolina, with his wife, were thrown into a pool of stagnant water, and compelled, by means of pitch- forks and stones, to immerse their heads till they were suffocated with the stench. A number of soldiers assaulted the house of Joseph Garniero, and before they entered, fired in at the window, to give notice of their approach. Mrs. Garniero was at that instant suckling her child, and one of the balls entered her breast. On finding their intentions, she begged them to spare the life of the infant, which they promised to do, and sent it immediately to a Roman catholic nurse. They then seized the husband and hanged him at his own door, and having shot the wife through the head, left her body weltering in its blood. Isaiah Mandon, a pious protestant, in the wane of life, fled from his merciless persecutors to a cleft in a rock, where he suffered the most dreadful hardships. In the midst of winter he was forced to lay on the bare stone, without any covering ; his food was the roots he could pluck up near his miserable habitation ; and the only way by which he could quench his thirst was to put snow in his mouth till it melted. Here, however, some of the soldiers found him, and after beating him unmer- cifully, they drove him towards Lucerne, goading him all the way with the points of their swords. Being exceedingly weakened by his manner of living, and exhausted by the blows he had received, he fell down in the road. They again beat him to make him proceed; till on his knees, he implored them to put him out of his misery. This they at last agreed to do ; and one of them shot him through the head, saying ''There, heretic, take thy request." Mary Revel, a protestant, received a shot in her back while walking along the street, which brought her to the ground: but recovering suf- ficient strength, she raised herself upon her knees, and lifting her hands towards heaven, prayed in a most fervent manner to the Almighty ; when a number of soldiers, near at hand, fired a volley of shot at her, and in an instant put an end to her miseries. To screen themselves from danger, a number of men, women, and children, fled to a large cave, where they continued for some weeks in safety, two of the men going when it was necessary, by stealth, to procure provisions. They were, however, one day watched, by which the cave was discovered, and, soon after, a troop of catholic soldiers appeared before it. Many of these were neighbours, and intimate acquaintances, and some even ATTACK ON THE COMMONALTY OF RORAS. 265 relations to those in the cave. The protestants, therefore, came out, and implored them, by the ties of hospitality, and especially by those ot blood and neighbourhood, not to murder them. But, fulfilling the words of the Lord, " the father shall be divided against the son, and the son against the father," the papists, blinded by bigotry, told them they could not shew any mercy to heretics, and therefore bade them all pre- pare to die. Hearing this, and knowing the obduracy of their enemies, the protestants fell prostrate, lifted their hearts to heaven, and patiently awaited their fate, which the papists soon decided, by cutting them to pieces. The blood of the faithful being almost exhausted in the towns and villages of Piedmont, there remained but one place that had stood aloof from the general slaughter. This was the little commonalty of Roras, which stood upon an eminence. Of this the earl of Christophe, one of the duke of Savoy's officers, determined if possible to make himself master; with that view he detached three hundred men to surprise it. The inhabitants, however, had intelligence of the approach of these troops, and captain Joshua Gianavel, a brave protestant officer, put himself at the head of a small body of the citizens, and waited in am- buscade to attack the enemy in a narrow passage, the only place by which the town could be approached. As soon as the troops appeared and had entered the passage, the protestants commenced a smart and well-directed fire against them, and still kept themselves concealed behind bushes from the sight of the enemy. A great number of the soldiers were killed, and the rest, receiving a continual fire, and not seeing any to whom they might attribute and return it, made a precipi- tate retreat. The members of this little community immediately sent a memorial to the marquis of Pianessa, a general officer of the duke, stating, that they were sorry to be under the necessity of taking up arms ; but that the secret approach of a body of troops, without any previous notice sent of the purpose of their coming, had greatly alarmed them ; that as it was their custom never to suffer any of the military to enter their territory, they had repelled force by force, and should do so again; but in all other respects, they professed themselves dutiful, obedient, and loyal subjects to their sovereign, the duke of Savoy. The marquis, to delude and surprise the protestants of Roras, sent them word that he was perfectly satisfied with their behaviour, for they had done right, and even rendered a service to their country, as the men who had at- tempted to pass the defile were not his troops, but a band of desperate robbers, who had, for some time, infested those parts, and been a terror to the neighbouring country. To give a greater colour to his treachery, he published a proclamation to the same purpose, expressive of thanks to the citizens of Roras. The very day after, however, this treacherous nobleman sent 500 men to possess themselves of the town, while the people, as he thought, were lulled into security by his artifice. Captain Gianavel was not thus to be deceived ; he, therefore, laid a second ambuscade for the troops, and compelled them to retire with greater loss and disgrace than before. Foiled in two attempts, the san- 266 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. guinary marquess determined on a third, which should be still more for- midable ; but still to delude the brave citizens, he published another proclamation, disowning any knowledge of the second attempt. He soon after sent 700 chosen men upon the expedition, who, in spite of the fire from the protestants, forced the defile, entered Roras, and began to murder every person they met with, without distinction of sex or age. Captain Gianavel, at the head of his friends, though he had lost the defile, determined to dispute the passage through a fortified pass, that led to the richest and best part of the town. Here he succeeded, by keeping up a continual fire, which did great execution, his men being all complete marksmen. The catholic commander was astonished and dismayed at this opposition, as he imagined that he had surmounted all difficulties. He, however, strove to force the pass, but being able to bring up only twelve men in front at a time, and the protestants being secured by a breast- work, he saw all his hopes frustrated. Enraged at the loss of so many troops, and fearful of disgrace if he persisted in attempting what appeared impracticable, he thought it wiser to retreat. Unwilling, however, to withdraw his men by the defile at which he had entered, on account of the danger, he endeavoured to retreat towards Villaro, by another pass called Piampra, which, though hard of access, was easy of descent. Here, however, he again felt the determined bravery of captain Gianavel, who having posted his little band here, greatly annoyed the troops as they passed, and even pursued their rear till they entered the open the country. The marquis Pianessa, finding all these attempts baffled, and that every artifice he used was only a signal to the inhabitants of Roras, resolved to act openly ; and therefore proclaimed, that ample rewards should be given to any who would bear arms against the obdurate heretics of Roras, and that any officer who would exterminate them should be honoured ac- cordingly. Captain Mario, a bigoted Roman catholic, and a desperate ruffian, stimulated by this, resolved to undertake the enterprise. He therefore obtained leave to raise a regiment in the towns of Lucerne, Borges, Famolas, Bobbio, Cavos, and Bagnal. In these places he levied a regi- ment of 1000 men. With this he resolved to attempt gaining the summit of a rock, whence he could pour his men into the town without opposition or difficulty. But the protestants, aware of his design, suf- fered his troops to gain almost the summit of the rock, without appearing in sight: when they made a most furious attack upon them; one party keeping up a well-directed and constant fire, and another party rolling down stones of a great weight. Thus were they suddenly stopped in their career. Many were killed by the musquetry, and more by the stones, which beat them down the precipices. Several fell sacrifices to their own fears, for by attempting a precipitate retreat, they fell and were dashed to pieces; and captain Mario himself, having fallen from a craggy place into a river at the foot of a rock, was taken up senseless, and remained ill of the bruises a long time ; and at length fell into a decline at Lucerne, where he died. After this another body of troops from the camp at Villaro made an attempt upon Roras, but were like- wise defeated, and compelled to retreat again to their camp. Captain HEROIC CONDUCT OF GIANAVEL. 267 Gianavel, for each of these signal victories, made a suitable discourse to his men, kneeling down with them to return thanks to the Almighty for his providential protection; and concluded with the 11th Psalm. The marquis of Pianessa, now enraged to the highest degree at being thus foiled by such a handful of men, determined on their expulsion, or destruction. To this end, he ordered all the catholic militia of Piedmont to be called out and disciplined. To these he joined eight thousand regular troops, and dividing the whole into three distinct bodies, he planned that number of formidable attacks to be made at once, unless the people of Roras, to whom he sent an account of his great prepara- tions, would comply with the following conditions: — To ask pardon for taking up arms. To pay the expences of all the expeditions sent against them. To acknowledge the infallibility of the pope. To attend mass. To pray to the saints. To deliver up their ministers and school- masters. To observe confession. To pay loans for the delivery of souls from purgatory. Above all, to give up captain Gianavel and the elders of their church at discretion. The brave and magnanimous inhabitants, indignant at these proposals, answered, that sooner than comply with them they would suffer their estates to be seized ; their houses to be burnt; and themselves to be murdered. Swelling with rage at this, the marquis sent them the following laconic letter: — w You shall have your request, for the troops sent against you have strict injunctions to plunder, burn, and kill. " Pianessa." The three armies were accordingly put in motion, and the attacks ordered as follows : the first by the rocks of Villaro ; the second by the pass of Bagnol; and the third by the defile of Lucerne. As might be expected, from the superiority of numbers, the troops gained the rocks, pass, and defile, entered the town, and commenced the most horrid de- predations. Men they hanged, burnt, and racked to death, or cut to pieces; women they crucified, drowned, or threw from the precipice; and children they tossed upon spears, or dashed out their brains. On the first day of their gaining the town, one hundred and twenty-six suffered by these and other barbarous methods. Agreeably to the orders of the marquis, their estates were plundered and their houses burnt. Several protestants, however, made their escape, under the conduct of the brave Gianavel, whose wife and children were unfortunately made prisoners, and sent to Turin under a strong guard. The marquis thinking to conquer at least the mind of Gianavel, wrote him a letter, and released a protestant prisoner, that he might carry it to him. The contents were, that if the captain would embrace the Roman catholic religion, he should be indemnified for all his losses since the commencement of the war, his wife and children should be immediately released, and himself honourably promoted in the duke of Savoy's army; but if he refused to accede to the proposals made to him, his wife and children should be put to death; and so large a reward should be given to take him, dead or alive, that even some of his own confidential friends should, from the greatness of the sum, be tempted to betray him. 268 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. To this, Gianavel returned the following answer : " My Lord Marquis, " There is no torment so great, or death so cruel, that I would not prefer to the abjuration of my religion ; so that promises lose their effects, and menaces only strengthen me in my faith. With respect to my wife and children, my lord, nothing can be more afflicting to me than the thought of their confinement, or be more dreadful to my imagination than their suffering a violent death. I keenly feel all the tender sensations of a husband and a parent ; I would suffer any tor- ment to rescue them ; I would die to preserve them. But having said thus much, my lord, I assure you that the purchase of their lives must not be the price of my salvation. You have them in your power it is true ; but my consolation is, that your power is only a temporary authority over their bodies: you may destroy the mortal part, but their immortal souls are out of your reach, and will live hereafter, to bear testimony against you for your cruelties. I therefore recommend them and myself to God, and pray for a reformation in your heart. " Joshua Gianavel." Gianavel now, with his followers, retired to the Alps, where, being afterwards joined by several protestant officers, with a considerable number of fugitive protestants, they resolved to defend themselves, and made several successful attacks upon the Roman catholic 4owns and forces; carrying terror by the valour of their exploits, and the boldness of their enterprises. SECTION VIII. ACCOUNT OF THE PERSECUTIONS OF MICHAEL DE MOLINOS, A NATIVE OT SPAIN. Michael de Molinos, by birth a Spaniard, and of a rich and honour- able family, entered at an early age into priest's orders, but would accept of no preferment in the church. His talents were of a very superior class, and he dedicated them to the service of his fellow-creatures without any view of self-interest. His life was uniformly pious; nor did he assume those austerities so common among the religious orders of the Romish church. Being of a contemplative turn, he pursued the track of the mystical divines, and having acquired great reputation in Spain, he became desirous of propagating his mode of devotion, and, ac- cordingly, left his own country, and settled at Rome. Here he soon connected himself with some of the most distinguished among the literati, who, approving of his religious maxims, assisted him in pro- moting them. His followers soon augmented to a considerable number, and, from the peculiarity of their doctrines, were distinguished by the name of Quietists. In 1675, he published a book, entitled, II Guida Spirituale, which soon became known, and was read with great avidity, both in Italy and Spain. His fame was now blazed abroad, and friends flowed in upon him. Letters were written to him from numbers of people, and PERSECUTION OF MOLINOS. 269 a correspondence was settled between him and those who approved of his system, in different parts of Europe. Some secular priests, both at Rome and Naples, declared themselves openly for it, and consulted him as a sort of oracle; but those who attached themselves to him with the greatest sincerity, were some of the fathers of the Oratory, the most eminent of whom where Coloredi, Ciceri, and Petrucci. Many of the cardinals also courted his friendship. Among others was the cardinal d'Estrees, a man of great learning, who conversed with him daily. Molinos opened his mind to this favourite without reserve; which led to a correspondence between Molinos and some of the most distinguished characters in France, of which the cardinal was a native. The reputation of Molinos now began to alarm the Jesuits and Domi- nicans, who determined to put a stop to the progress of this new sys- tem of opinions. They, therefore, began to decry the author of it; and as heresy is an imputation that makes the strongest impression at Rome, Molinos and his followers were stigmatized as heretics. Books were also written by the Jesuits against him and his opinions. These Molinos answered with becoming spirit, which increased his popularity ; while his disputes occasioned such a disturbance in Rome, that the affair was noticed by the inquisition. Molinos and his book, and father Petrucci, who had written some treatises and letters on the same subject, were brought under severe examination ; and the Jesuits were considered as the accusers. In the course of the examination both Molinos and Petrucci acquitted themselves so ably, that their books were again ap- proved, and the answers which the Jesuits had written were censured as scandalous and unbecoming. Petrucci, on this occasion, was so highly approved, that he was soon after made bishop of Jesis. Their books were now esteemed more than ever, their system was more followed, and its importance as well as novelty contributed to raise the Credit, and increase the number of their disciples. Thus the great reputation acquired by Molinos and Petrucci, occasioned a daily increase of the Quietists. All who were thought sincerely devout, or at least affected so to be, were reckoned among the number. These persons, in proportion as their zeal increased in their frequent and serious devotions, appeared less careful about the exterior parts of the church ceremonies. They were not so assiduous at mass, nor so earnest to procure it to be said for their friends; nor were they so frequent either in processions, or at confession, or any other outward observances. Notwithstanding the approbation expressed for Molinos's book by the inquisition had checked the open hostility of his enemies, they were still inveterate against him in their hearts, and determined if possible to ruin him. They therefore secretly insinuated that he had ill designs, and was an enemy to Christianity: that under pretence of raising men to a sublime strain of devotion, he intended to erase from their minds a sense of the mysteries of religion. Because he was a Spaniard, they gave out that he was descended from a Jewish or Mahometan race, and that he might carry in his blood, or in his first education, some seeds of those doctrines he had since cultivated with no less art than zeal. Thus finding himself attacked with such unrelenting malice, Molinos took 270 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. every necessary precaution to prevent its effect upon the public mind. He wrote a treatise, entitled, "Frequent and Daily Communion," which was warmly approved by some of the most learned of the Romish clergy. This, with his Spiritual Guide, was printed in the year 1675, and in the preface to it he declared, that he had not written it with any design to engage in matters of controversy, but by the earnest solicitations of many pious people. The Jesuits having again failed in their attempt to crush his in- fluence at Rome, applied to the court of France, where they so far succeeded, that an order was sent to cardinal d'Estrees, commanding him to prosecute Molinos with all possible rigour. The cardinal, not- withstanding his attachment to Molinos, resolved to sacrifice friendship to interest. Finding, however, there was not sufficient matter for an immediate accusation against him, he determined to supply that defect himself. He went to the inquisitors, and informed them of several par- ticulars relative both to Molinos and Petrucci, who, with several of their friends, were put into the inquisitorial court. On being brought before the judges, about the beginning of the year 1684, Petrucci answered the respective questions put to him with so much judgment and temper, that he was soon dismissed: but with regard to Molinos, though the inquisitors had not any just accusation against him, yet they strained every nerve to find him guilty of heresy. They first objected to his holding a correspondence in different parts of Europe; but of this he was acquitted, as the matter of that correspond- ence could not be made criminal. They then directed their attention to some suspicious papers found in his chamber; but he so clearly explained their meaning, that nothing could be made of them to his prejudice. At length cardinal d'Estrees, after producing the order sent him by the king of France for prosecuting Molinos, said he could convince the court of his heresy. He then proceeded to pervert the meaning of some passages in Molinos's books and papers, and related many false and aggravating circumstances relative to the prisoner. He acknowledged he had lived with him under the appearance of friendship, but that it was only to discover his principles and intentions; that he had found them to be of a bad nature, and that dangerous consequences were likely to ensue; but in order to make a full discovery, he had as- sented to several things, which in his heart he detested; and that by these means he became master of all his secrets. In consequence of this evidence, Molinos was closely confined for some time, during which period all was quiet, and his followers prosecuted their course without interruption. But, at the instigation of the Jesuits, a storm suddenly broke out upon them with most inveterate fury. The count Vespiniani and his lady, Don Paulo Rocchi, confessor to the prince Borghese, and some of his family, with several others, to the amount of seventy persons, among whom were many highly esteemed both for their learning and piety, were put into the inquisition. The accusation laid against the clergy was, their neglecting to say the breviary ; the rest were ac- cused of going to communion without first attending confession, and neglecting all the exterior parts of religion. The countess said, on her examination before the inquisitors, that she had never revealed her QUIETISTS PER3ECUTED. 271 method of devotion to any mortal but her confessor, without whose treachery it was impossible they should know it. That, therefore, it was time to give over going to confession if priests thus abused it, betraying the most secret thoughts entrusted to them; and that, for the future, she would only make her confession to God. From this spirited speech, and the noise made in consequence of the countess's situation, the inquisitors thought it most prudent to dismiss both her and her husband, lest the people might be incensed, and what she had said might lessen the credit of confession. They were therefore both dis- charged; but bound to appear whenever they should be called upon. Such was the inveteracy of the Jesuits against the Quietists, that within the space of a month upwards of 200 persons, besides those already mentioned, were put into the inquisition; and that method of devotion which had passed in Italy as the most elevated to which mortals could aspire, was deemed heretical, and the chief promoters of it confined in wretched dungeons. To extirpate Quietism, the inquisitors sent a circular letter to cardinal Cibo, as the chief minister, to suppress it through Italy. It was addressed to all prelates, informing them that whereas many schools and fraternities were established in several parts of Italy, in which some persons, under a pretence of leading people into the ways of the Spirit, and to prayers of quietness, instilled into them many abominable heresies; therefore a strict charge was given to dissolve all those societies, and to oblige the spiritual guide to tread in the known paths; and, in particular, to take care that none of the new sect should be suffered to have direction of the nunneries. Orders were likewise given to proceed criminally against those who should be found guilty of such abominable errors. A strict enquiry was made after this into all the nunneries in Rome; when most of their directors and confessors were discovered to be en- gaged in the new pursuits. It was found that the Carmelites, the nuns of the Conception, and those of several other convents, wholly devoted themselves to prayer and contemplation ; and that, instead of their beads, and other ceremonies before saints and images, they were much alone, and often in the exercise of mental prayer: that when they were asked, why they had laid aside the use of their beads, and their ancient forms, their answer was their directors had advised them to do so. In- formation of this being given to the inquisition, orders were sent that all books written in the same strain with those of Molinos and Petrucci should be sequestrated, and that the people universally should be com- pelled to return to their original form of worship. Little effect was produced by the circular letter sent to cardinal Cibo, for most of the Italian bishops were inclined to Molinos's method. It was intended that this, as well as all other orders from the inquisitors, should be kept secret; but notwithstanding all their care, copies of it were printed, and dispersed through most of the principal towns in Italy. This gave great uneasiness to the inquisitors, who adopted every method they could to conceal their proceedings from the knowledge of the world. They blamed the cardinal, and accused him of being the cause of it: but he retorted on them, and his secretary laid the fault on both. In the mean time, Molinos suffered great indignities from the officers 272 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. of the inquisition ; and the only comfort he received was being some- times visited by father Petrucci. Yet though he had lived in the highest reputation at Rome for some years, he was now as much despised as he had been admired, being generally considered as one of the worst of heretics. Most of his followers, who had been placed in the inquisition, having abjured his system, were dismissed; but a harder fate awaited their leader. When he had lain a considerable time in prison, he was brought again before the inquisitors, to answer to a number of articles exhibited against him from his writings. As soon as he appeared in court, a chain was put round his body, and a wax-light in his hand, when two friars read aloud the articles of accusation. Molinos answered each with great steadiness and resolution; but notwithstanding his ar- guments defeated the force of all that was alleged against him, he was found guilty of heresy, and condemned to imprisonment for life. Having left the court he was attended by a priest, who had borne him the greatest respect. On his arrival at the prison, he entered the cell with great tranquillity; and on taking leave of the priest thus addressed him: " Adieu, father; we shall meet again at the day of judgment, and then it will appear on which side the truth is, whether on mine or on yours." While in confinement he was several times tortured in the most cruel manner, till at length the severity of the punishments over- powered his strength and his existence. His followers were so affected by his melancholy dissolution, that the greater part of them soon ab- jured his principles; and by the assiduity of the Jesuits, Quietism was totally extirpated. SECTION IX. ACCOUNT OF THE MARTYRDOM OF JOHN CALAS, OF TOULOUSE IN THE YEAR 1761. By this interesting story, the truth of which is not only certified in historical records, but the event is still fresh in the memory of several persons, natives of Toulouse, we have ample proofs, if any were requi- site, that the abominable spirit of popish persecution will always prevail wherever that religion has an ascendency. The shocking act took place in a polished age ; and hence it proves, that neither experience nor im- provement can root out the inveterate prejudices of the Roman catholics, or render them less cruel, or exorable, to the protestants. John Calas was a merchant, of the city of Toulouse, where he had settled and lived in good repute : he had married an English woman of French extraction. He and his wife were both protestants, and had five sons whom they educated in the same religion ; but Lewis, one of the sons, became a Roman catholic, having been converted by a popish servant, who had lived in the family above thirty years. The father, however, did not express any resentment on the occasion, but kept the servant in the family, and settled an annuity upon the son. In October 1761, the family consisted of John Calas and his wife, one woman servant, Mark Anthony Calas the eldest son, and Peter Calas ACCOUNT OF JOHN CALAS. 273 the second son. Mark Anthony was bred to the law, but could not be admitted to practice, on account of being- a protestant : hence he grew melancholy, read all the books which he could procure relative to suicide, and seemed determined to destroy himself. To this may be added, that he led a dissipated life, was greatly addicted to gaming, and did all which could constitute the character of a libertine. On this account his father frequently reprehended him, and sometimes in terms of seventy, which considerably added to the gloom that seemed to oppress him. M. Gober La Vaisse, a young gentleman about nineteen years of age, the son of La Vaisse, a celebrated advocate of Toulouse, having been some time at Bourdeaux, came back to Toulouse to see his father on the 13th of October 1761 ; but finding that he was gone to his country- house, at some distance from the city, he went to several places endea- vouring to hire a horse to carry him thither. No horse, however, was to be obtained ; and about five o'clock in the evening he was met by John Calas the father, and the eldest son Mark Anthony, who was his friend. Calas, the father, invited him to supper, as he could not set out for his father's that night, and La Vaisse consented. All three, therefore, proceeded to the house together, and when they came thither, finding that Mrs. Calas was still in her own room, which she had not quitted that day, La Vaisse went up to see her. After the first compli- ments, he told her he was to sup with her by her husband's invitation, at which she expressed her satisfaction, and a few minutes after left him, to give orders to her maid. When that was done, she went to look for her son Anthony, whom she found sitting alone in the shop, very pensive : she gave him some money, and desired him to go and buy some Roche- fort cheese, as he was a better judge of its quality than any other person in the family. She then returned to her guest La Vaisse, who very soon after went again to the livery stable, to see if any horse was come in, that he might secure it for the next morning. In a short time Anthony returned, having bought the cheese, and La Vaisse also coming back about the same time, the family and their guest sat down to supper, in a room up one pair of stairs; the whole company consisting of Calas the father and his wife, Anthony and Peter Calas the sons, and La Vaisse the guest; no other person being in the house, except the maid-servant, who has been mentioned already. This was about seven o'clock : the supper was not long ; but before it was over, or, according to the French expression, " when they came to the des- sert," Anthony left the table, and went into the kitchen, which was on the same floor, as he was accustomed. The maid asked him if he was cold ? He answered, " Quite the contrary, I burn ;" and then left her. In the mean time his friend and family left the room they had supped in, and went into a bed-chamber : the father and La Vaisse sat down together on a sofa ; the younger son Peter in an elbow chair ; and the mother in another chair ; and without making any enquiry after Anthony, continued in conversation together till between nine and ten o'clock, when La Vaisse took his leave, and Peter, who had fallen asleep, was awakened to attend him to the door. There was on the ground floor of the house a shop and a warehouse ; which were divided from each other by a pair of folding-doors. When T 274 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Peter Calas and La Vaisse came down stairs into the shop, they were extremely shocked to see Anthony hanging in his shirt, from a bar which he had laid across the top of the two folding-doors, having half opened them for that purpose. On discovering this horrid spectacle, they shrieked out, which brought down Calas the father, the mother being seized with a terror which kept her trembling in the passage above. The unhappy old man rushed forward, and taking the body in his arms, the bar, to which the rope that suspended him was fastened, slipped off from the folding door of the warehouse, and fell down. Having placed the body on the ground, he loosed and took off the cord in an agony of grief and anguish not to be expressed, weeping, trembling, and deplor- ing himself and his child. The two young men, his second son and La Vaisse, who had not had presence of mind to attempt taking down the body, were standing by, confounded with amazement and horror. Meanwhile the mother, hearing the confused cries and complaints of her husband, and finding no one come to her, summoned resolution to go down stairs. At the bottom she saw La Vaisse, and hastily demanded what was the matter. This question roused Calas in a moment, and instead of answering her, he urged her to return to her room, to which, with much reluctance, she consented ; but the conflict of her mind being such as could not be long borne, she sent down the maid to know what was the matter. When the maid discovered what had happened, she continued below, either because she feared to carry an account of it to her mistress, or because she busied herself in doing some good office to her master, who was still embracing the body of his son, and bathing it with his tears. The mother again went down and mixed in the scene, with such emotions as it must naturally produce. In the mean time Peter had sent for La Moire, a surgeon in the neighbourhood. La Moire was not at home, but his apprentice, named Grosse, came instantly. Upon examination, he found the body quite dead ; and on taking off the neckcloth, which was of black taffata, he saw the mark of the cord, and immediately pronounced that the deceased had been strangled. This particular had not been told, for the poor old man, when Peter was going for La Moire, cried out, " Save at least the honour of my family; do not go and spread a report that your brother has made away with himself." A crowd of people was by this time gathered about the house, and one Casing, with another friend or two of the family, had come in. Some of those who were in the street had heard the cries and exclama- tions of the father, the mother, the brother, and his friend, before they knew what was the matter ; and having by some means heard that Anthony Calas was suddenly dead, and that the surgeon, who had ex- amined the body, declared he had been strangled, they took it into their heads he had been murdered; and as the family were protestants, they presently supposed that the young man was about to change his religion, and had been put to death for that reason. The cries they had heard they fancied were those of the deceased, while he was resisting the vio- lence that was offered him. The tumult in the street increased every moment: some said that Anthony Calas was to have abjured the next day; others, that protestants are bound by their religion to strangle ACCOUNT OF JOHN CALAS AND HIS SON. 275 their children when they are inclined to become catholics; others, who had found out that La Vaisse was in the house when the accident hap- pened, confidently affirmed that the protestants, at their last assembly, appointed a person to be their common executioner upon these occasions and that La Vaisse was the man, who, in consequence of the office to which he had been appointed, had come to the house of Calas to hang his son. The poor father, overwhelmed with grief for the loss of his child, was advised by his friends to send for the officers of justice to prevent his being torn to pieces by the multitude, who supposed that he had murdered him. This was accordingly done : a messenger was dispatched to the first magistrate of the place, and another to an inferior officer called an assessor. The first had already set out, having been alarmed by the rumour of a murder before the messenger got to the house. He entered with forty soldiers, took the father, Peter the son, the mother, La Vaisse, and the maid, all into custody, and set a guard over them. He sent for M. de la Tour, a physician, and M. la Marque and Perronet, surgeons, who examined the body for marks of violence, but found none except the mark of the ligature on the neck : they found also the hair of the deceased done up in the usual manner, perfectly smooth, and without the least disorder ; his clothes were also regularly folded up, and laid upon the counter, nor was his shirt either unbuttoned or torn. The chief magistrate, notwithstanding these appearances, thought proper to agree with the opinion of the mob, and took it into his head that old Calas had sent for La Vaisse, telling him he had a son to be strangled ; that La Vaisse had come to perform the office of executioner ; and that he had received assistance from the father and brother. On account of these notions the magistrate ordered the body of the deceased to be carried to the town-house, with the clothes. The father and son were thrown into a dark dungeon ; and the mother, La Vaisse, the maid and Casing, were imprisoned in one that admitted the light. The next day, what is called the process verbal was taken at the town-house, instead of the spot where the body was found, as the law directs ; but was dated at Calas's house to conceal the irregularity. This process is somewhat like the coroner's inquest in England : witnesses are exa- mined, and the magistrate makes his report, which is the same there as the verdict of the coroner's jury here. The witnesses examined were the physician and surgeon, who proved Anthony Calas to have been strang- led. The surgeon having been ordered to examine the stomach of the deceased, deposed that the food which was found there had been taken four hours before his death. Finding that no proof of the murder could be procured, the magistrate had recourse to a monitory, or general in- formation, in which the crime was taken for granted, and all persons were required to give such testimony against it as they were able, par- ticularizing the points to which they were to speak. The recital was that La Vaisse was commissioned by the protestants to be their executioner in ordinary, when any of their children were to be put to death for changing their religion : it said also, that when the protestants thus kill their children, they compel them to kneel, and one of the interroga- tories was, whether any person had seen Anthony Calas kneel before his 276 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. father when he strangled him : it added that Anthony Calas died a Roman catholic, and required evidence of his Catholicism. These ridiculous opinions being adopted and published by the princi- pal magistrate of a considerable city, the church of Geneva thought itself obliged to send an attestation of its abhorrence of opinions so abominable and absurd, and of its astonishment that the family, or any protestants, should be suspected of such opinions by persons whose rank and office required them to have more knowledge and better judgment. However, before this monitory was published, the mob had got a notion, that Anthonv Calas was the next day to have entered into the fraternity of the White Penitents. The magistrate immediately adopted this opinion without the least examination, and ordered Anthony's body to be buried in the middle of St. Stephen's church, which was accord- ingly done ; forty priests, and all the white penitents, assisting in the funeral procession. A short time after the interment of the deceased, the white penitents performed a solemn service for him in their chapel : the church was hung with white, and a tomb was raised in the centre, on the top of which was placed a human skeleton, holding in one hand a paper, on which was written, "Abjuration of heresy," and in the other a palm, the emblem of martyrdom. The Franciscans performed a service of the same kind for him the next day; and it is easy to imagine how much the minds of the people were inflamed by this strange folly of their magistrates and priests. The magistrates continued the prosecution with unrelenting severity; and though the grief and distraction of the family, when he first came to the house, were alone sufficient to have convinced any reasonable being that they were not the authors of the event which they deplored, yet having publicly attested that they were guilty in his monitory, with- out proof, and no proof coming in, he thought fit to condemn the un- happy father, mother, brother, friend, and servant, to the torture, and put them all into irons on the 18th of November. Casing was enlarged upon evidence that he was not in Calas's house till after Anthony was dead. From these dreadful proceedings the sufferers appealed to the parliament, which immediately took cognizance of the affair, and annulled the sentence of the magistrate as irregular ; but the prosecution still continued. So soon as the trial came on, the public executioner, who had been taken to Calas's house, and shewn the folding-doors and the bar, deposed that it was impossible Anthony should have hanged himself as was de- clared. Another witness swore, that he looked through the key-hole of the door into a room, where he saw men running hastily to and fro. A third swore, that his wife had told him a woman named Maundril had told her, that a certain woman unknown had asserted she heard the cries of Anthony Calas at the further end of the city. From this ridiculous evidence the majority of the parliament were of opinion that the prisoners were guilty, and therefore ordered them to be tried by the criminal court of Toulouse. There was among those who presided at the trial one La Borde, who had zealously opposed the popular prejudices; and though it was mani- MARTYRDOM OF JOHN CALAS. 277 lost to demonstration that the prisoners were either all innocent or all guilty, he voted that the father should first suffer the torture, ordinary and extraordinary, to discover his accomplices, and be then broken alive upon the wheel ; to receive the last stroke when he had endured two hours, and then to be burnt to ashes. In this opinion he had the con- currence of six others; three were for the torture alone; two were of opinion that they should endeavour to ascertain upon the spot whether Anthony could hang- himself or not; and one voted to acquit the pri- soner. After long debate the majority were for the torture and wheel, and probably condemned the father by way of experiment, to know whether he was guilty or not, hoping he would in the agony confess the crime, and accuse the other prisoners, whose fate remained suspended. It is, however, certain that if they had evidence against the father to justify the sentence pronounced against him, that very evidence would have justified the same sentence against the rest; and that they could not righteously condemn him, as the rest were in the house toge- ther when Anthony died. All concurred in declaring he hanged himself, that the persons accused could have had no motive to do such an act, nor could one have put him to death by violence without the knowledge of the rest. However, poor Calas, who was sixty-eight years of age, was con- demned to this dreadful punishment alone. He suffered the torture with great constancy, and was led to execution in a frame of mind which excited the admiration of all who saw him. Father Bourges and father Coldagues, the two Dominicans, who attended him in his last moments, wished their latter end might be like his, and declared that they thought him, not only wholly innocent of the crime laid to his charge, but an exemplary instance of true christian patience, charity, and fortitude. He gave but a single shriek, and that not very violent, when he re- ceived the first stroke; after that he uttered no complaint. Being at length placed on the wheel, to wait for the moment which was to end his life and his misery together, he expressed himself with an humble hope of a happy immortality, and a compassionate regard for the judges who had condemned him. When he saw the executioner prepared to give him the last stroke, he made a fresh declaration of his innocence to father Bourges; but while the words were yet in his mouth, the magistrate, the author of this catastrophe, and who came upon the scaffold to gratify his desire of being a witness to the punishment and death, ran up to him and bawled out, " Wretch, there are the fagots which are to reduce your body to ashes; speak the truth." M. Calas made no reply, but turned his head a little aside, and that moment the executioner did his office. Donat Calas, a boy of fifteen years of age, and the youngest son of the unfortunate victim, was apprenticed to a merchant at Nismes, when he heard of the dreadful punishment by which seven prejudiced judges of Toulouse had put his worthy father to death. He was an amiable and serious youth, and nothing could exceed his grief at the event, except the resignation he evinced on finding with what innocence as well as fortitude his holy parent suffered death. So violent was the popular outcry against this family in Languedoc, 278 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. that every one expected to see the children broke upon the wheel, and the mother burnt alive. Even the attorney-general expected it. So weak, it is said, had been the defence made by this innocent family, oppressed by misfortunes, and terrified at the sight of lighted piles, racks, and wheels. Donat Calas was made to dread sharing the fate of the rest of his family, and advised to fly into Switzerland: he found a gen- tleman who at first could only pity and relieve him, without daring to judge of the rigour exercised against his parents and brothers, Shortly after, one of the brothers, who was only banished, likewise threw himself into the arms of the same person, who, for more than a month, took every possible precaution to be assured of the innocence of this family. When he was once convinced, he thought himself obliged in conscience to employ his friends, his purse, his pen, and his credit, to repair the fatal mistake of the seven judges of Toulouse, and to have the pro- ceedings revised by the king's counsel. The revision lasted three years, and it is well known what honour Messrs. de Gaosne and Baquancourt acquired by defending and reporting this memorable cause. Fifty masters of the Court of Requests unanimously declared the whole family of Calas innocent, and recommended them to the benevolent justice of his majesty. The duke de Choiseul, who never let slip an opportunity of signalizing the greatness of his character, not only assisted them with money, but obtained for them a gratuity of 36,000 livres from the king. The arret which justified the family of Calas, and changed their fate, was signed on the 9th of March 1765. The 9th of March 1762^ was the day on which the innocent and virtuous father of that family had been executed. All Paris ran in crowds to see the family come out of prison, and clapped their hands for joy, while the tears streamed down their cheeks. Such a scene had never before been witnessed. There are some few aged persons now living in the south of France who were spectators, when children, of the sight, and it is a subject on which they love to discourse, and on which they are more eloquent than on any other. %' Lt may be proper here to add that the chief contents of the following book — Book IX. — are to be attributed, not to Fox, or to any who assisted him in his original compila- tion, or who edited the early republications of his work. They are the compilation of the editor of the edition of 1806 — the Rev. J. Milner, who acknowledges to have " prepared them from the works of Dr. Burnet and numerous other learned writers on Ecclesiastical History." To the editor of the present edition, however, they are indebted for the cor- rectness with which they now appear, and for several interesting additions the reader will observe them to have received. 279 BOOK IX. Containing a History of the Reformation, and the circumstances which preceded it, fro^i the time of Wicklifie to the reign of Mary, including a summary of events connected with Christian Martyrdom, previous and subsequent to the reign of William the Conqueror. SECTION I. PARTICULARS OF THE ASCENDANCY OF THE POPES THROUGHOUT CHRIS- TENDOM, FROM THE TIME OF WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR, TO THAT OF WICKLIFFE. In a preceding part of our volume we traced the influence of popery over the continent and in our own kingdom, down to the reign of the vicious and monkish king Edgar, who was so great a patron of the re- ligion of the popes, that he is said to have built as many monasteries for them as there are Sundays in the year. Ediner reports that they were forty-eight in number ; but perhaps he does not include the nun- neries. It is certain that from this period till the reformation was at- tempted by Wickliffe, the abominations of these arch and unchristian rulers increased with rapid strides, till at length all the sovereigns of Europe were compelled to do them the most servile homage. It was in the reign of Edgar that monks were first made spiritual ministers, though contrary to the old decrees and customs of the church, and in the time of this sovereign they were allowed to marry, there being no law forbidding them to do so till the reign of pope Hildebrand, other- wise called Gregory VII. There are many curious facts relating to king Edgar, mentioned by the early writers, some of which we shall quote, because they are not to be found in our principal, if in any of our histories of England. He was the successor of Alfred, and though he imitated that great sovereign in some praise-worthy actions, yet he committed many horrid crimes, which have stained his name with infamy. His decree by which he compelled Ludwallus, prince of Wales, to furnish 300 wolves as a yearly tribute, is well known, by which, in the course of four years, the wolves were exterminated from England, and he also set many other notable ex- amples, which it would be well for all nations if modern princes were to imitate. But in his religion he was superstitious to the greatest degree, and consequently cruel to those towards whom he had any dislike or antipathy. William of Malmsbury, and various other writers, report of him that about the thirteenth year of his reign, being at Chester, eight petty or under kings came and did homage to him. The first was the king of Scots, called Kinadius, Macolinus of Cumberland, Muckus or Mascusinus king of Monia and other Islands, and the kings of Wales, the names of whom were Dunewaldus, Sifresh, Huwall, Jacob, Ulkell, and Juchel. All these, after they had given their fidelity to Edgar, the 280 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. next day entered with him on the river Dee; where sitting in a boat, he took the helm, and caused the eight kings to row him up and down the river, to and from the church of St. John, to his palace, in token that he was master and lord of so many provinces ; and on this occasion he is reported to have said, " Tunc demum posse successor es suos gloriari, se Reges Anglice esse, cum tanta prcerogativa honorum fruerentur." Un- doubtedly he would have spoken much better, had he said with St. Paul, " Absit mihi gloriari, nisi in Cruce Domini nostri Jesu Christi." To trace the numerous disgusting innovations upon the religion of Christ, during the space of three hundred years and upwards, or rather from the time of king Edgar to the appearance of WicklifTe, would be the province of a writer on church history, besides which, it would be incompatible with our limits. Suffice it to say, that there was scarcely a war or civil broil in which this country was engaged, which did not originate in the artifices of popes, monks, and friars. It is true that they sometimes fell victims to their own machinations; for, from the year 1004, many popes were successively poisoned. Several died un- natural deaths: for example, pope Sylvester was cut to pieces by his own people, through the superstitious fears he had impressed upon their minds. Several of his successors used all manner of infamous means to gain the ascendancy, and their reigns were but short. Pope Benedict, who succeeded John XXI. thought proper to resist the emperor Henry III. the son of Conrad, and place in his room Peter, king of Hungary; but afterwards being alarmed lest Henry should prevail in battle, he sold his seat to Gratianus, called Gregory VI., for 1500/. At this time there were three popes in Rome, all striving against each other for the supreme power, viz. Benedict IX. Sylvester III. and Gregory VI. On which Henry, the emperor, coming to that city, displaced the three at once, and appointed Clement the second, enacting that there should no bishop of Rome henceforth be chosen but by the consent and confirmation of his imperial law. Though this law was both agreeable and neces- sary for public tranquillity, yet the cardinals would not suffer it long to stand, but strove to subvert it by subtlety and open violence. In the time of Clement, the Romans made an oath to the emperor concerning the election of the bishops, to intermeddle no farther, but as the assent of the emperor should go; but the emperor departing thence into Germany again, they forgot their oath, and within nine months after poisoned the bishop. This fact, some impute to Stephen his successor, called Damasus II. Some impute it to Brazutus, who is reported by some historians to have poisoned six popes, viz. Clement II. Damasus II. Leo IX. Victor II. Stephen IX. and Nicholas II. Clement was succeeded by Damasus II. neither by consent of the people, nor of the emperor, but by force and invasion ; and he also within twenty-three days being poisoned, much contention and striving began in Rome about the papal seat. Whereupon the Romans, through the counsel of the cardinals, sent to the emperor desiring him to give them a bishop. He gave them one whose name was Bruno, an Alman, and bishop of Cullen, afterwards called Leo IX. This pope was poisoned by Brazutus, in the first year of his popedom. After his death Theophylactus made an effort to be pope, but Hildebrand, to PAPAL EXCOiMMUNICATIONS. 281 defeat him, went to the emperor, and pnrsuaded him to assign another bishop, a German, who ascended the papal chair under the title of Victor II. The second year of his papacy, or little more, he also fol- lowed his predecessors, being poisoned by Brazutus, through the insti- tution of Hildebrand and his master. .U this time the church and the clergy of Rome began to wrest from the emperor's hands the election of the pope; electing Stephen IX. contrary to their oath, and the emperor's assignment. From this period, indeed, their ascendancy was so great, that the most powerful sovereigns of Europe were obliged to do them homage, and it was in the time of pope Nicholas, who succeeded Stephen, A. D. 1059, that the synod of Sutrium was broken up by this pope, who came to Rome and established the dreaded Concilium Lateranum, or Council of the Lateran. In this council was first promulgated the terrible sentence of excommunication mentioned in the decrees, and beginning In nomine Domini nostri. The effect was that he undermined the emperor's jurisdiction, and transferred to a few cardinals, and certain catholic persons, the full authority of filling the pontiff chair. Then, against all such as crept into the seal of Peter by money, or favour, without the full consent of the cardinals, he thundered terrible blasts of excommunication, accursing them and their children with the anger of Almighty God; giving authority and power to cardinals, w 7 ith the clergy and laity, to depose all such persons, and call a council-general, wheresoever they would, against them. In the council of Lateran, under pope Nicholas II., Berengarius Andegavensis, an archdeacon, was driven to the recantation of his doc- trine, denying the real substance of Christ's holy body and blood to be in the sacrament, otherwise than sacramentally and in mystery. In the same council also was invented the doctrine and term of transub- stantiation. Nicholas however only reigned three years and a half, and then drank of Brazutus's cup, like his predecessors. At the beginning of his reign or somewhat before, about the year of our Lord 1057, Henry the fourth •was made emperor, being but a child, and reigned fifty years ; but not without great molestation and much disquietness ; for in the course of time, when Hildebrand came to the popedom, he had the audacity to excommunicate him, and absolve all his subjects from their oath of alle- giance to him. On this all his nobles, through fear of the pope's curse, deserted him ; and the emperor dreading the consequences that w^ould ensue, though a brave man, found it necessary to make his submission. He accordingly repaired to the city of Canosus, where the pope then was, and went barefooted with his wife and child to the gate, where he from morning to night, fasting all the day, most humbly desired absolu- tion, craving to be let in to the bishop. But no ingress being given him he continued three days together in his condition : at length answer came that the pope's majesty had yet no leisure to talk with him. The emperor, moved that he was not let into the city, patient and with an humble mind stopped without the walls, with no little distress; for it was a sharp winter, and the ground was frozen. At length his request was granted through the entreating of Matilda, the pope's paramour, and of Arelaus, earl of Sebaudia, and the abbot of Cluniak. On the fourth day being 282 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. let in, as a token of his repentance he yielded to the pope's hands his crown, with all other imperial ornaments, and confessed himself unwor- thy of the empire, if ever he did against the pope hereafter, as he had done before, desiring for that time to be absolved and forgiven. The pope answered that he would neither forgive him, nor release the bond of his excommunication, but upon condition that he should be content to stand to his arbitrement in the council, and to take such penance as he should enjoin him ; also that he should be ready to appear in what place or time the pope should appoint him. Moreover, that he, being content to take the pope judge of his cause, should answer in the council to all objections and accusations laid against him, and that he should never seek any revenge; that he should stand to the pope's mind and pleasure whether to have his kingdom restored, or to lose it. Finally, that before the trial of his cause, he should neither use his kingly ornaments, sceptre nor crown ; nor usurp authority to govern, nor exact any oath of alle- giance from his subjects. These things being promised to the bishop by an oath, and put in writing, the emperor was released from excommuni- cation. After the death of Hildebrand came pope Victor, who was set up by Matilda and the duke of Normandy, with the faction and retinue of Hildebrand. But his papal authority was brief, for being poisoned, it is said in his chalice, he reigned only one year and a half. Notwith- standing, the imitation and example of Hildebrand continued in them that followed. And as the kings of Israel followed the steps of Jeroboam till the time of their desolation ; so for the greatest part all popes fol- lowed the steps and proceedings of Hildebrand, their spiritual Jeroboam, in maintaining false worship, and chiefly in upholding the dignity of the see against all rightful authority, and the lawful kingdom of Christ. In the time of Victor began the order of the monks of the Charter-house, through the means of one Hugo, bishop of Gracianople, and of Bruno, bishop of Cologne. In the time of pope Honorius the second, a christian preacher named Arnulphus was martyred at Rome. Some say he was archbishop of Lugdune, as Hugo, Platina, Sabellicus. Tritemius says he was a priest, whose history, as he describes it, we will briefly give in English: — About this time, in the days of Honorius the second, one Arnulphus, a priest, a man zealous and of great devotion, and a worthy preacher, came to Rome, and in his preaching rebuked the dissolute and lascivious loose- ness and incontinency, avarice and immoderate pride of the clergy, provoking all to follow Christ and his apostles rather in their poverty and pureness of life. Thus this man was well accepted, and highly liked of the nobility of Rome, for a true disciple of Christ; but by the car- dinals and clergy he was no less hated than favoured by the other, inso- much that privily in the night they took him and destroyed him. His martyrdom is said to have been revealed to him before from God by an angel, he being in the desert, when he was sent forth to preach ; where- upon he said unto them publicly, " I know ye seek my life, and know you will take me away privily : but why ? Because I preach to you the truth, and blame your pride, stoutness, avarice, incontinency, with your un measurable greediness in getting and heaping up riches ; therefore KING JOHN RESIGNING HIS CROWN TO THE POPE S LEGATE. SEE PACJE 283. KING JOHN RESIGNING HIS CROWN. 283 you are displeased with me. I take heaven and earth to witness, that I have preached unto you that which I was commanded of the Lord. But you contemn me and your Creator, who by his only Son hath redeemed you. And no marvel if you seek my death, being a sinful person, preaching unto you the truth, when if St. Peter were here this day and rebuked your vices which so multiply above all measure, you would not spare him." And as he was expressing this, with a loud voice he said moreover : " For my part I am not afraid to suffer death for the truth's sake : but this I say unto you, that God will look upon your iniquities, and will be revenged. You, being full of all impurity, play the blind guides to the people committed unto you, leading them the way to hell." Thus the hatred of the clergy being incensed against him for preaching truth, they conspired against him, and laying wait for him, took him and drowned him. Sabellicus and Platana say they hanged him. We shall close our accounts of the ascendancy of the popes with one more remarkable fact of history. In the time of pope Innocent, king John of England, alarmed at the offence he had given to the see of Rome, and fearful of the invasion which the infamy of that see had excited against him, entreated for peace with the pope, and promised to do whatever he should command him. On this the pope sent his legate Pandulph to the king at Canterbury, where he waited their coming, and on the 13th day of May the king received them, making them an oath, " That of and for all things wherein he stood accursed, he would make ample restitution and satisfaction ; and the lords and barons of England who were with the king attending the legate sware in like manner, that if the king would not accomplish in every thing the oath which he had taken, then they would cause him to hold and confirm the same whether he would or not." Then the king himself submitted to the court of Rome and the pope, and gave up his dominions and realms of England and Ireland from him and from his heirs for evermore. With this condition, that the king and his heirs should take again these dominions of the pope to farm, paying for them yearly to the court of Rome 1000 marks of silver. Then the king took the crown from his head, kneeling down in the pre- sence of all his lords and barons of England to Pandulph, the pope's chief legate, saying, " Here I resign the crown of the realm of England to the pope's hands, Innocent the third, and put me wholly in his mercy and ordinance." Then Pandulph took the crown of king John, and kept it five days as a possession of the realms of England and Ireland. This humiliating ceremony took place, some say at the Ewell monastery between Canterbury and Dover; others, at the monastery of St. John, then standing in all its glory at the extreme point of Dover, opposite the coast of France. The latter is the more probable, as it was the greater establishment ; and more likely from its situation and celebrity to be chosen as the scene of this papal parade and disgraceful royal resignation. It was not to be expected that after this submission the king was freed from popish influence; on the contrary, he was surrounded by monks in the interest of foreign countries, who did every thing they could to degrade and dishonour him. He died in the year 1216, after 284 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. an imbecile reign of eighteen years, and historians differ as to the man- ner of his death, some asserting that he died of an inflammation, others of a flux, while the fact generally believed is, that he was poisoned, as we shall presently shew. It is recorded in the chronicle of William Caxton, called Fructus Temporum, that a monk named Simon, being much offended with a talk that the king had at his table, concerning Ludovic the French king's son, began to speculate how he most speedily might destroy him. First he counselled with his abbot, shewing him the whole matter, and what he was minded to do. He alleged for himself the prophecy of Caiaphas, saying — " It is better that one^ man die, than all the people should perish." " I am well contented," he added, "to lose my life, and so become a martyr, that I may utterly destroy this tyrant." With that the abbot wept for gladness, and much commended his fervent zeal. The monk then being absolved by the abbot for doing this act, went secretly into a garden near at hand, and finding there a venomous toad, he so pricked him and pressed him with his pen -knife, that he made him vomit all the poison that was within him. This done, he conveyed it into a cup of wine, and with a smiling and flattering countenance said thus to the king — " If it should like your princely majesty, here is such a cup of wine as ye never drank better before in all your life-time : I trust this draught shall make all England glad." With that the king drank a great draught thereof, pledging him. The monk soon after went to the farmery, and there is reported to have perished by a dreadful death. However, he had continually from thenceforth three monks to sing mass for his soul, confirmed by their general chapter. The king within a short space after feeling great pain in his body, asked for Simon the monk ; and answer was made that he had departed this life. "Then God have mercy upon me," answered the king; " I suspected as much, after he had said that all England should be glad." In Gisburne, we find, that dissenting from others he says that the king was poisoned with a dish of pears, which the monk had prepared for him on purpose ; and asking the king whether he would taste of his fruit, and being bid to bring them in, did so. At the bringing in where- of the king doubting some poison, demanded of the monk what he had brought. He said, some fruit, and that very good, the best that ever he did taste. " Eat," said the king ; and he took one of the pears which he knew, and did eat. Being bid to take another, he ate that also, and so likewise a third. Then the king, refraining no longer, took one of the other pears, and was poisoned. Equally vindictive were the different popes towards the other christian sovereigns of Europe, but particularly those of Germany, one of whom, the valiant emperor Frederic, was compelled to submit to be stepped on by the feet of pope Alexander, and dared not make any resistance. In England, however, a spirit of resentment broke out in various reigns, in consequence of the papal oppressions, which continued with more or less violence till the exertions of the great WicklifFe, about whom we shall speak in the following section. Previous, however, to this time, there were several martyrdoms of religious men in England, though the cruelties inflicted on them did not arise so much from their sacred cha- ACCOUNT OF JOHN W1CKL1FFE. 28,0 meter, as from the political motives which caused the invasions and insurrections. The massacre of the monks of Bangor, A. D. 856, was a dreadful instance of barbarity under the Saxon government. These monks were in most respects different from those who bear the name at present. Though catholics, they were generally pious and holy men. The Danes landing in different parts of Britain, both in England and Scotland, in the eighth century, were at first repulsed ; but in A. D. 857, a party of them landed near Southampton, and not only robbed the people, but murdered the clergy and burnt the churches. These bar- barians penetrated into the centre of England, and took up their quarters at Nottingham in 868 ; but the English, under their king Ethelfred, drove them from those posts, and obliged them to retire into Northumber- land. In the year 870, another body of these barbarians landed in Norfolk, and engaged in battle with the English at Hertford. Victory declared in favour of the pagans, who took Edmund king of the east Angles prisoner, and after treating him with a thousand indignities, transfixed his body with arrows, and then beheaded him. They burnt many of the churches, and among the rest that belonging to the Caldees at St. Andrew's, in Fifeshire, Scotland. The piety of this order of men made them objects of abhorrence to the Danes, who, wherever they went, singled out their priests for destruction, of whom no less than 200 were massacred in Scotland. Similar scenes took place in that part of Ireland now called Leinster; there the Danes mur- dered and burnt the priests alive in their own churches; they carried destruction wherever they went, sparing neither age nor sex ; but the clergy were the most obnoxious to them, because they exposed their idolatry, and persuaded the people to have nothing to do with them. These Danish incursions and cruelties continued with greater or less force till the conquest, when new scenes arrested the public attention, and the pious ministers and members of the christian church had to contend with new enemies SECTION II. HISTORY OF THE ENGLISH MARTYROLOGY AND REFORMATION, WITH AN ACCOUNT OF WICKLIFFE AND HIS DOCTRINES. The first serious attempts made in England towards the reformation of the church, took place in the reign of Edward III. about A. D. 1350, when the morning star of that glorious day arose in our hemisphere — John Wickliffe. He was public reader of divinity in the university of Oxford, and, by the learned of his day, was accounted most deeply versed in theology and all kinds of philosophy. This even his adver- saries allowed. Walden, his bitterest enemy, writing to pope Martin, says, that he was astonished at his most strong arguments, with the places of authority which he had gathered, with the vehemency and force of his reasons. At his appearing, the greatest darkness pervaded the church. Little but the name of Christ remained among the Chris- tians, while his true and lively doctrine was as far unknown unto the 286 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. most part, as his name was common unto all men. As touching faith, consolation, the end and use of the law, the office of Christ, of our impotency and weakness, of the Holy Ghost, of the greatness and strength of sin, of true works, grace, and free justification by faith, wherein consisteth and resteth the sum and matter of our profession, there was scarcely the mention of a word. Scripture, learning, and divinity, were known but to a few, and in the schools only, and there it was turned and converted almost entirely into sophistry. Instead of Peter and Paul, men occupied their time in studying Aquinas and Scotus, and the master of sentences. The world leaving and forsaking the lively power of God's spiritual word and doctrine, was altogether led and blinded with outward ceremonies and human traditions, wherein the whole scope, in a manner, of all christian perfection did consist and depend. In these was all the hope of obtaining salvation fully fixed: hereunto all things were attributed. Scarcely any other thing was seen in the temples or churches, taught or spoken of in sermons, or finally intended or gone about in their whole life, but only heaping up of certain shadowed ceremonies upon ceremonies; and the people were taught to worship no other thing but that which they saw, and almost all they saw they worshipped. The christian faith was at that time counted none other thing but that every man should know that Christ once suffered, that is to say, that all men should know and understand that thing which the devils themselves also knew. Hypocrisy was substituted for holiness. All men were so addicted. to outward shews, that even they which professed the most ab- solute and singular knowledge of the scriptures, scarcely understood any other thing. And this did evidently appear, not only in the common sort of doctors and teachers, but also in the very heads of the church ; whose whole religion and piety consisted in observing days, meats, and raiment, and such like rhetorical circumstances, as of place, time, person, &c. Hence sprang so many sorts and fashions of vestures and garments; so many differences of colours and meats, with so many pilgrimages to several places, as though St. James at Compostella could do that which Christ could not do at Canterbury; or else that God were not of like power and strength in every place, or could not be found but as being sought for by running hither and thither. Then the holiness of the whole year was put off unto the Lent season. No country or land was counted holy, but only Palestine, where Christ had walked himself with his human feet. Such was the blindness of that time, that men strove and fought for the material cross at Jerusalem, as it had been for the chief strength of our faith. The Romish champions never ceased, by writings, admonishing and counselling, yea, and by quarrel- ling, to move and stir up princes to war and battle, even as though the faith and belief of the gospel were of small force or little effect without that wooden appendage. This was the cause of the expedition of king Richard unto Jerusalem; who being taken in the journey, and delivered unto the emperor, could scarcely be ransomed home again for thirty thousand marks. Wickliffe boldly published his belief with regard to the several arti- cles of religion, in which he differed from the common doctrine. Pope QUARRELS AMONGST THE POPES. 287 Gregory XL hearing this, condemned some of his tenets, and com- manded the archbishop of Canterbury, and the bishop of London, to oblige him to subscribe the condemnation of them; and in case of refusal to summon him to Rome. This commission could not easily be executed, WicklifFe having great friends, the chief of whom was John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster, who enjoyed very great power, and was resolved to protect him. The archbishop holding a synod at St. Paul's, WicklifFe appeared, accompanied by the duke of Lancaster and lord Percy, marshal of England, when a dispute arising whether WicklifFe should answer sitting or standing, the duke of Lancaster proceeded to threats, and gave the bishop very hard words. The people present thinking the bishop in danger, sided with him, so that the duke and the earl- marshal thought it .prudent to retire, and to take WicklifFe with them. Soon after this an insurrection ensued, some incendiaries spreading a report that the duke of Lancaster had persuaded the king to take away the privileges of the city of London ; which fired the people to such a degree that they broke open the Marshalsea, and freed all the prisoners; and not contented with this, a number of them went to the duke's palace in the Savoy, when missing his person, they plundered his house, and dragged his armour and weapons through the streets. For this outrage the duke of Lancaster caused the lord mayor and aldermen to be turned out, imagining that they had not used their au- thority to quell the mutineers. After this, the bishops meeting a second time, WicklifFe explained to them his sentiments with regard to the sacrament of the eucharist, in opposition to the belief of the Romanists; for which the bishops only enjoined him silence, not daring at that time to go to greater lengths. A circumstance remarkably providential occurred at this period, which greatly tended to facilitate the cause of truth. This was a wide schism in the church of Rome. After the death of pope Gregory XL, who, in the midst of his anxiety to crush WicklifFe and his doctrines, was re- moved from his mortal career, the rise of the schism took place. Urban VI., who succeeded to the papal chair, was so proud and insolent to his cardinals, to dukes, princes, and queens, and so determined to advance his nephews and kindred, to the injury of princes, that the greatest number of his cardinals and courtiers gradually shrunk from him, and set up another French pope against him, named Clement, who reigned eleven years. After him Benedictus XIII. was elected, who reigned twenty-six years. On the contrary side, Urban VI. succeeded Boniface IX. Innocentius VIII. Gregory XII. Alexander V. and John XIII. Concerning this miserable schism, it would require another Iliad to comprehend in order all its circumstances and tragical parts ; what trouble in the whole church, what parts taking in every country, what apprehending and imprisoning of priests and prelates taken by land and sea, and what shedding of blood followed in con- quence. Otho, duke of Brunswick and prince of Tarentum, were taken and murdered. Joan his wife, queen of Jerusalem and Sicilia, who before had sent to pope Urban, in addition to other gifts at his corona- tion, 40,000 ducats in pure gold, was by the said Urban committed to 288 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. prison, and there strangled. Cardinals were racked without mercy, and tormented on gibbets, rather than instantly put to death. Battles were fought between the two popes, whereof 5000 on the one side were slain, besides the number of them which were taken prisoners. The cardinals were beheaded on one day, after long torments. The bishop of Aquilonensis, being suspected by pope Urban for not riding faster with the pope, his horse not being good, was slain by the pope sending his soldiers to cut him in pieces. Thus did these demons in human form continue to torment one another for the space of thirty-nine years, until the council of Constance somewhat appeased their wrath. Wickliffe paid less regard to the injunctions of the bishops than to his duty to God, continued to promulgate his doctrines, and gradually to unveil the truth to the eyes of men. He wrote several works, which, as may be supposed, gave great alarm and offence to the existing clergy. But by the protection of the duke of Lancaster, he was secure from their malice. He translated the Bible into English, which, amidst the ignorance of the time, had the effect of the sun breaking forth in a dark night. To this Bible he prefixed a bold preface, wherein he re- flected on the bad lives of the clergy, and condemned the worship of saints, images, and the corporeal presence of Christ in the sacrament: but what offended his enemies most was, his exhorting all people to read the Scriptures, in which testimonies against those corruptions appeared so strongly, that the only way to prevent their being blazoned to the world was not to permit the sacred writings to be translated or known. About the same time fell a dissension in England between the people and the nobility, which did not a little disturb the common-wealth. In this tumult Simon of Sudbury, archbishop of Canterbury, was taken by the people and beheaded. In his place succeeded William Courtenay, who was no less diligent than his predecessor had been, in doing his utmost to root out heretics. Notwithstanding this formidable opposition Wickliffe's sect increased privily, and daily grew to greater force, until the time that William Barton, vice-chancellor of Oxford, had the whole rule of that university, who, calling together eight monastical doctors, and four others, with the consent of the rest of his affinity, put the com- mon seal of the university to an edict, declaring unto every man, and threatening them under a grievous penalty, that none should hereafter associate themselves with any of Wickliffe's favourers. Unto Wickliffe himself he threatened the greater excommunication, and farther impri- sonment, unless after three days canonical admonition or warning he did repent and amend ; which when Wickliffe understood, forsaking the pope and all the clergy, he thought to appeal unto the king : but the duke of Lancaster interposing forbad him ; whereby, being beset with troubles and vexations, as it were in the midst of the waves, he was forced again to make confession of his doctrine ; in which confession, to avoid the rigour of things, he by qualifying his assertions, mitigated the severity he would otherwise have met with. In consequence of Wickliffe's translation of the Bible and of his preface, his followers greatly multiplied. Many of them, indeed, were not men of learning ; but being wrought upon by the conviction of plain reason, this determined them in their persuasion. In a short time PERSECUTIONS OF WICKUFFE. 289 his doctrines made great progress, being not only espoused by vast numbers of the students of Oxford, but also by the great men at court, particularly by the duke of Lancaster and lord Percy, together with several voting and well educated gentlemen. Hence Wickliffe may be considered as the great founder of the reformation in this kingdom. He was of Merton college in Oxford, where he took his doctor's degree, and became so eminent for his fine genius and great learning, that Simon Islip, archbishop of Canterbury, having founded Canterbury college, now Christ Church, in Oxford, appointed him rector: which em- ployment he filled with universal approbation, till the death of the arch- bishop. Langhalm, successor to Islip, being desirous of favouring the monks, and introducing them into the college, attempted to remove Wickliffe, and to put one Woodhall, a monk, in his room. But the fellows of the college would never consent to this, they loving their old rector ; but this affair being afterwards carried to Rome, Wickliffe was deprived in favour of Woodhall. However, this no ways lessened the reputation of the reformer, every one perceiving it was a general affair, and that the monks did not so much strike at Wickliffe's person, as at all the secular priests who were members of the college. And indeed, they were all turned out to make room for the monks. Shortly after he was presented to the living of Lutterworth, in the county of Leicester, and he there published, in his sermons and writings, certain opinions, which were judged new, because con- trary to the received doctrine of those days. It must be observed, that his most bitter enemies never charged him with any immo- rality. This great man was left in quiet at Lutterworth till his death, which happened December 31, 1385. But after his body had lain in the grave forty-one years, his bones were taken up by decree of the synod of Constance, publicly burnt, and his ashes thrown into the river near the town. This condemnation of his doctrine did not prevent its spreading all over the kingdom, and with such success, that, according to Spelman, two men could not be found together, and one not a Lollard or Wickliffite. The following are among the articles of Wickliffe which were condemned as heretical: The substance of material bread and wine doth remain in the sacrament of the altar after the consecration — The accidents do not remain without the subjects in the same sacrament, after the consecra- tion — Christ is not in the sacrament of the altar truly and really, in his proper and corporeal person — If a bishop or a priest be in deadly sin, he doth not ordain, consecrate, nor baptize — If a man be duly and truly contrite and penitent, all exterior and outer confession is but superfluous and unprofitable unto him — It is not found or established by the gospel that Christ did make or ordain mass — If the pope be a reprobate and evil man, and consequently a member of the devil, he hath no power by any manner of means given unto him over faithful Christians — Since the time of Urban VI. there is none to be received for pope, but every man is to live after the manner of the Greeks, under his own law — It is against the Scripture, that ecclesiastical ministers should have any temporal possessions — No prelate ought to excommunicate any man ex- cept he knew him first to be excommunicate of God — He who doth so u '290 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. excommunicate any man, is thereby himself either a heretic or excom- municated — All such who leave off preaching or hearing the word of God, or preaching of the gospel for fear of excommunication, they are already excommunicated, and in the day of judgment shall be counted as traitors unto God — It is lawful for any man, either deacon or priest, to preach the word of God without authority or licence of the apostolic see or any other of his catholics — So long as a man is in deadly sin, he is neither bishop nor prelate in the church of God. Wickliffe had written divers works, which in the year 1410 were burnt at Oxford, the abbot of Shrewsbury being then commissary. And not only in England, but in Bohemia likewise, his books were set on fire by one Subinicus, archbishop of Prague, who made diligent inquisition for all the reformer had written. The number of the volumes composed and transcribed, said to have been destroyed, were most excellently and richly adorned with bosses of gold, and embellished coverings, being about the number of two hundred. But among all that he wrote no piece is more interesting for its size than the following letter, which he addressed to pope Urban VI. in the year 1382. " Verily I do rejoice to open and declare unto every man the faith which I do hold, and specially unto the bishop of Rome; the which forasmuch as I do suppose to be sound and true, he will most willingly confirm my said faith, or, if it be erroneous, amend the same. " First, I suppose that the gospel of Christ is the whole body of God's law ; and that Christ which did give that same law himself, I believe to be a very man, and in that point, to exceed the law of the gospel, and all other parts of the scripture. Again, I do give and hold the bishop of Rome, forsomuch as he is the vicar of Christ here in earth, to be bound most of all other men unto that law of the gospel. For the greatness among Christ's disciples did not consist in worldly dignity or honours, but in the near and exact following of Christ in his life and manners : whereupon I do gather out of the heart of the law of the Lord, that Christ for the time of his pilgrimage here was a most poor man, abjecting and casting off all worldly rule and honour, as appeareth by the gospel of St. Matthew, the eighth chapter, and the second of the Corinthians, the eighth chapter. " Hereby I do fully gather, that no faithful man ought to follow either the pope himself, or any of the holy men, but in such points as they have followed the Lord Jesus Christ. For Peter and the sons of Zebedee, by desiring worldly honour, contrary to the following of Christ's steps, did offend, and therefore in those errors they ought not to be followed. " Hereof I do gather, as a counsel, that the pope ought to leave unto the secular power all temporal dominion and rule, and thereunto effec- tually to move and exhort his whole clergy; for so did Christ, and especially by his apostles. Wherefore if I have erred in any of these points, I will most humbly submit myself unto correction, even by death if necessity so require ; and if I could labour according to my will or desire in mine own person, I would surely present myself before the bishop of Rome ; but the Lord hath otherwise visited me to the contrary, and hath taught me rather to obey God than man. Forsomuch then as BURNING INTRODUCED^ 291 (rod hath given unto the pope just and true evangelical instinctions, we ought to pray that they be not extinguished' by any subtle or crafty device. ** And that the pope and cardinals be not moved to do any thing con- trary unto the law of the Lord. Wherefore let us pray unto our God, that lie will so stir up our pope Urban VI. as he began, that he with Ii is clergy may follow the Lord Jesus Christ in life and manners ; and that they may teach the people effectually ; and that they likewise may faithfully follow them in the same. And let us specially pray, that our pope may be preserved from all malign and evil counsel, which we do know that evil and envious men of his household would give him. And seeing the Lord will not suffer us to be tempted above our power, much less then will he require of any creature to do that thing which they are not able ; forsomuch as that is the plain condition and manner of antichrist." In the council of the Lateran, a decree was made with regard to heretics, which required all magistrates to extirpate them upon pain of forfeiture and deposition. The canons of this council being received in England, the prosecution of heretics became a part of the common law; and a writ, styled de heretico comburendo, was issued under king Henry IV. for burning them upon their conviction ; after which special statutes were made, which commenced under Richard II., about the year 1390. The first made was assented to only by the lords ; but the king sanc- tioned it without the concurrence of the commons. Yet the utmost extent of the severity in this was, that writs should be issued to the laws of the church. It appears that those heretics were, at this time, very numerous, that they wore a peculiar habit, preached in churches and many other places against the existing faith, aiid refused to pay obedience to ecclesiastical censures. On the accession of Henry IV. to the crown in 1399, as he owed it in a great measure to the clergy, he passed an act against all who should presume to preach without the bishop's licence, or against the established church. It was enacted that all transgressors of this kind should be imprisoned, and be brought to trial within three months. If upon con- viction they offered to abjure, and were not relapsed, they were to be imprisoned and fined at pleasure ; but if they refused to abjure, or were relapsed, they were to be delivered over to the secular arm ; and the magistrates were to burn them in some public place. About this time William Sautre, parish priest of St. Osith in London, being condemned as a relapse, and degraded by Arundel, archbishop of Canterbury, a writ was issued, wherein burning is called the common punishment, and referred to the customs of other nations. This was the first example of that cruel punishment in this kingdom. The clergy, alarmed lest the doctrines of Wickliffe should ultimately become established, used every exertion in their power to check them. In the reign of Richard II. the bishops obtained a general licence to imprison heretics without being obliged to procure a special order from court, which however the house of commons caused to be revoked. But as the fear of imprisonment could not check the evil dreaded by the bishops, Henry IV., whose particular object was to win the affection of the clergy, earnestly recommended to parliament the concerns of the church. 292 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. How reluctant soever the house of commons might be to prosecute the Lollards, the credit of the court, and the cabals of the clergy, at last obtained a most detestable act, for burning obstinate heretics ; which bloody statute was not repealed till the year 1677. It was immediately after the passing of this statute that the ecclesiastical court condemned William Sautre to the flames. Notwithstanding the opposition of the popish clergy, Wickliffe's doctrine continued to spread in Henry the IVth's reign, even to such a degree, that the majority of the house of commons were inclined to it ; whence they presented two petitions to the king, one against the clergy, the other in favour of the Lollards. The first set forth, that the clergy made ill use of their wealth, and consumed their income in a manner quite different from the intent of the donors ; that their revenues were excessive, and consequently it would be necessary to lessen them; that so many estates might easily be seized as would provide for one hundred and fifty earls at the rate of three thousand marks a year each, one thousand five hundred barons at one hundred marks each, six thousand two hundred knights at forty marks, and one hundred hospitals; that by this means the safety of the kingdom might be better provided for, the poor better maintained, and the clergy more devoted to their duty. In the second petition the commons prayed, that the statute passed against the Lollards in the second year of this reign might be repealed, or qualified with some restrictions. As it was the king's interest to please the clergy, he answered the commons very sharply, that he neither could nor would consent to their petitions. And with regard to the Lollards, he declared that he wished the heretics were extirpated out of the land. To prove the truth of this, he signed a warrant for burning a man in humble life, but of strong mind and sound piety, named Thomas Badly. This individual was a layman, and by trade a tailor. He was arraigned in the year 1409 before the bishop of Worcester, and convicted of heresy. On his examination he said, that it was impossible any priest could make the body of Christ sacramentally, nor would he believe it unless he saw manifestly the corporeal body of the Lord to be handled by the priest at the altar; that it was ridiculous to imagine that at the supper, Christ held in his own hand his own body and divided it among his disciples, and yet remaining whole. "I believe," said he, "the Omnipotent God in trinity; but if every consecrated host at the altar be Christ's body, there must then be in England no less than 20,000 gods." After this he was brought before the archbishop of Canterbury at St. Paul's church, and again examined in presence of a great number of bishops, the duke of York, and several of the first nobility. Great pains were used to make him recant ; but he courageously answered that he would still abide by his former opinions, which no power should force him to forego. On this the archbishop of Canterbury ratified the sentence given by the bishop of Worcester. When the king had signed the warrant for his death, he was brought to Smithfield, 2 and there z It will not be uninteresting to our city readers, to be informed, that that part of Smith- field where a large board is erected, containing the laws and regulations of the cattle- market, is the very spot on which our protestant forefathers suffered for the cause of Christ. There many an English martyr's body mingled with dust, and from thence ascended many a soul to inherit everlasting glory. LAW AGAINST THE LOLLARDS. 293 being put into an empty tub, was bound with iron chains fastened to a stake, and had dry wood piled around him. As he was thus standing before the wood was lighted, it happened that the prince, the king's eldest son, came near the spot; who acting the part of the good Sama- ritan, began to endeavour to save the life of him whom the hypocritical Levites and Pharisees sought to put to death. He admonished and counselled him, that having respect to himself he should speedily with- draw out of these dangerous labyrinths of opinions, adding oftentimes threatenings, the which might have daunted any man. Also Courtenay, at that time chancellor of Oxford, preached unto him, and urged upon him the faith of the holy church. In the mean time the prior of St. Bartholomew's, in Smithfield, brought with all the solemnity the sacrament of Christ's body, with twelve torches borne before, and shewed the host to the poor man at the stake. He then demanded of him how he believed in it; he answered, that he knew well it was hallowed bread, but not God's body. Then was the tun put over him, and fire applied to it. On feeling the fire, he cried, " Mercy!" — calling likewise upon the Lord — when the prince immediately commanded to take away the tun, and quench the fire. He then asked him if he would forsake heresy, and take the faith of holy church, which, if he would do, he should have goods enough, promising him also a yearly pension out of the king's treasury. But this valiant champion of Christ, neglecting the prince's fair words, as also con- temning all men's devices, refused the offer of worldly promises, being more inflamed with the spirit of God, than with any earthly desire. Wherefore, as he continued immoveable in his former mind, the prince commanded him to be put again into the tun, and that he should not afterward look for any grace or favour. As he could be allured by no reward, so he was nothing at all abashed at their torments, but, as a valiant soldier of Christ, he persevered invincibly till his body was re- duced to ashes, and his soul rose triumphant unto God who gave it. At the commencement of the reign of Henry V. about 1413, a pre- tended conspiracy, evidently of priestly contrivance, was said to be discovered of Sir John Oldcastle, and some others of the followers of Wickliffe. Many of these were condemned, both for high treason and heresy; they were first hanged, and afterwards burnt. A law followed, enacting that all Lollards should forfeit their whole possessions in fee simple, with their goods and chattels ; and all sheriffs and magistrates, from the lord chancellor to the meanest officer, were required to take an oath to destroy them and their heresies, and to assist the ordinaries in the suppression of them. The clergy made an ill use of this law, and vexed every one who any ways offended them, with imprisonment; upon which the judges interposing, they examined the grounds of such commitments, and, as they saw cause, either bailed or discharged the prisoners; and took upon them to declare what opinions were heresies by law, and what were not. Thus the people flew for protection to the judges, and found more mercy from the common lawyers, than from those who ought to have been the pastors of their souls. The persecutions of the Lollards in the reign of Henry V. were owing to the cruel instigations of the clergy, as that monarch was na- turally averse to cruelty. It is supposed, that the chief cause of the 294 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. violent hatred which the clergy bore to the Lollards, was, that they had endeavoured to strip them of part of their revenues. However this might be, they thought that the most effectual way to check the progress of Wickliffe's doctrine, would be to attack the then chief protector of it, Sir John Oldcastle, baron of Cobham; and to persuade the king that the Lollards were engaged in conspiracies to overturn the throne and state. It was even reported that they intended to murder the king, together with the princes his brothers, with most of the lords spiritual and temporal, in hopes that the confusion which must necessarily arise in the kingdom, after such a massacre, would prove favourable to their religion. Upon this a false rumour was spread, that Sir John Oldcastle had got together 20,000 men in St. Giles's in the Fields, a place then overgrown with bushes. The king himself went thither at midnight, and finding no more than fourscore or a hundred persons, who were privately met upon a religious account, he fell upon them and killed many, it is supposed before he knew of the purpose of their meeting. Some of them being afterwards examined, were prevailed upon merely by promises or threats, to confess whatever their enemies desired; and these accused Sir John Oldcastle. The king hereupon thought him guilty; and in that belief set a thou- sand marks upon his head, with a promise of perpetual exemption from taxes to any town which should secure him. Sir John was apprehended and imprisoned in the Tower; but escaping from thence he fled into Wales, where he long concealed himself. But being afterwards seized in Powisland, in North Wales, by John Grey, Lord Powis, he was brought to London, to the great joy of the clergy, who were highly in- censed against him, and resolved to sacrifice him to strike a terror into the rest of the Lollards. Sir John was of a very good family, had been sheriff of Hertfordshire under Henry IV. and summoned to parliament among the barons of the realm in that reign. He had been sent beyond sea with the earl of Arundel, to assist the duke of Burgundy against the French. In a word, he was a man of extraordinary merit, notwith- standing which he was condemned to be hanged up by the waist with a chain, and burnt alive. This most barbarous sentence was executed amidst the curses and imprecations of the priests and monks, who used their utmost endeavours to prevent the people from praying for him. Such was the tragical end of Sir John Oldcastle, baron of Cobham, who left the world with a resolution and constancy, which answered perfectly to the brave spirit he had ever maintained in the cause of truth and of his God. This was the first noble blood shed by popish cruelty in England. Not satisfied with his single death, the clergy got the parliament to make fresh statutes against the Lollards : they never ceasing, with amazing eagerness, to require their blood. It was enacted, among other things, that whoever read the scriptures in English, should forfeit land, chattels, goods, and life, and be condemned as heretics to God, enemies to the crown, and traitors to the kingdom ; that they should not have the benefit of any sanctuary ; and that, if they continued ob- stinate, or relapsed after being pardoned, they should first be hanged for treason against the king, and then burned for heresy against God. sill J. OLDCASTLE'S CHELl). 295 The act was no sooner passed, than a violent persecution was raised against the Lollards: several of them were burnt alive, some fled the kingdom, and others abjured their religion, to escape the torments pre- pared for them. From this picture of the horrid barbarities exercised id those times, we may justly bless those we live in, when nothing of that sort is practised, but when all are permitted to obey the dictates of their own conscience, and openly profess their respective religions, pro- vided they do not disturb the tranquillity of the kingdom. The most likely means of preserving the nation in this security is for every cruel statute to be expunged, and for the power and virtue of Christian truth to be trusted with the sole defence of our orthodoxy and our lives. The following is the confession of the virtuous and Christian martyr whose death we have just described; which, from its clearness and sim- plicity, is well worthy of remembrance. He commences with the apostle's creed. " I believe in God the Father Almighty, maker of heaven and earth: and in Jesus Christ his only Son our Lord, who was conceived by the Holy Ghost, born of the virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, dead, and buried, went down to hell, the third day arose again from death, ascended up to Heaven, sitteth on the right hand of God the Father Almighty; and from thence shall come again to judge the quick and the dead. I believe in the Holy Ghost, the universal holy church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the up- rising of the flesh, and everlasting life. Amen. " For a more large declaration of this my faith in the catholic church, I stedfastly believe, that there is but one God Almighty, in and of whose godhead are these three persons, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and that those three persons are the self-same God Al- mighty. I believe also, that the second person in this most blessed trinity, in most convenient time appointed thereunto before, took flesh and blood of the most blessed virgin Mary, for the safeguard and re- demption of the universal kind of man, which was before lost in Adam's offence. Moreover, I believe, that the same Jesus Christ our Lord, thus being both God and man, is the only head of the whole christian church, and that all those that have been or shall be saved, be members of this most holy church. Whereof the first sort be now in Heaven, and they are the saints from hence departed. These, as they were here conversant, conformed always their lives to the most holy laws and pure examples of Christ, renouncing Satan, the world, and the flesh, with all their concupiscence and evils. The other sort are here upon earth, and called the church militant. For day and night they contend against crafty assaults of the devil, the flattering prosperities of the world, and the rebellious filthiness of the flesh." As touching the power and authority of the keys, the archbishops, bishops, and other prelates, he said, that the pope is very antichrist, that is, the head; that the archbishops, bishops, and other prelates, be his members, and that the friars be his tail. The which pope, arch- bishops, and bishops, a man ought not to obey, but so far forth as they were followers of Christ and of Peter, in their life, manners, and con- 296 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. versation, and that he is the successor of Peter which is best and purest in life and manners. " These men," said he, on his examination, to the people who stood about him, " which judge and would condemn me, will seduce you all and themselves, and will lead you unto hell ; there- fore take heed of them." SECTION III. HISTORICAL ACCOUNT OF THE PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION IN THE REIGN OF KING HENRY VIII. The reader will, doubtless, attend to the transactions recorded in this reign with peculiar interest. It was at this period that God, through the instrumentality of the king, liberated our happy country from the papal yoke, when England became an independent as well as pro- testant kingdom, and the ascendancy of the papal power over this island was preparing to be scattered to the four winds, never more to be able to recover its settlement in a region so adverse to its character and claims. The wars between the houses of York and Lancaster had produced such fatal revolutions, and cast England into such frequent convul- sions, that the nation with great joy hailed the accession of Henry VII. to the throne, who being himself descended from the house of Lancaster, by his marriage with the heiress of the house of York, freed them from the fear of any more wars by new pretenders. But the covetousness of his temper, the severity of his ministers, his ill conduct in the matter of Britagne, and his jealousy of the house of York, made him so generally odious to his people, that his life was little respected, and his death as little lamented. Henry VIII. succeeded, with all the advantages he could have desired. His disgracing Empson and Dudley, the cruel ministers of his father's designs for filling his coffers, his appointing re- stitution to be made of the sums that had been unjustly exacted of the people under covert of the king's prerogative, made the nation conclude they should hereafter live secure, under the protection of such a prince, and that the violent remedies of parliamentary judgments should be no more necessary, except as in this case, to confirm what had been done before in the ordinary courts of justice. Either from the magnificence of his own temper, or the observation he had made of the ill effects of his father's parsimony, the new king- distributed his rewards and largesses with an unmeasured bounty ; so that he quickly exhausted the two millions which his father had trea- sured up, and emptied a coffer which he had left the fullest in Christen- dom: but till the ill effects of this appeared, it raised in his court and subjects the greatest hopes possible of a prince, whose first actions shewed an equal mixture of justice and generosity. The king had been educated with more than ordinary care: learning being then in its dawning, after a night of long and gross ignorance, his father had given orders that both his elder brother and he should be well instructed ; not with any design to make him archbishop of Can- EDUCATION OF HENRY VI II. 297 terbury, for lie bad made small progress in theological and ecclesiastical lore, when his brother prince Arthur died, being' then but eleven years old. The learning then most in credit among the clergy was the scholastic divinity, which, by a shew of subtlety, recommended itself to curious persons; and being very suitable to a vain and contentious temper, agreed best with Henry's disposition. Further, being likely to draw the most flattery, it became the chief subject of his studies, in which he grew not only to be eminent for a prince, but he might really have passed for a learned man had his quality been never so mean. He delighted in the purity of the Latin tongue, understood philosophy, and was so great a master in music that he composed better than many professors of the art. He was a bountiful patron to all learned men, more particularly to Erasmus and Polydore Virgil, and delighted much in those returns which hungry scholars make to liberal princes; for he loved flattery out of measure, and he had enough of it to have surfeited a man of any modesty; for all the world, both at home and abroad, contended who should exceed most indecently in setting out his praises. The clergy carried it; for as he had merited most at their hands, both by espousing the interests of the papacy, and by his entering the lists with Luther,* so those that hoped to be advanced by these arts, were as little ashamed in magnifying him out of measure, as he was in receiving their gross commendations. One of the most conspicuous men of this, or perhaps of any other age, was Cardinal Wolsey. He was of mean extraction, but possessed great parts, and had a wonderful dexterity in insinuating himself into men's favours. He had but a little time been introduced to the king before he obtained an entire ascendancy over him, and the direction of all his affairs, and for fifteen years continued to be the most absolute favourite ever known in England. He saw the king was much set on his pleasures, and had a great aversion to business, and the other coun- sellors being unwilling to bear the load of affairs, were unwelcome to him, by pressing the king to govern by his own counsels; but he knew the methods of favourites better, and so was not only easy, but assistant to the king in his pleasures, and undertook to free him from the trouble of government, and to give him leisure to follow his appetites. This was the chief cause of that unbounded influence which Wolsey so soon acquired over a sovereign quite as ambitious as himself. The accidental circumstance of another and baser passion predominating in the king's heart over pure ambition, gave the crafty Wolsey an opening, which he did not for a moment neglect, of entering on a career which in different directions gratified equally both minister and monarch. Wolsey soon became master of all the offices at home and treaties abroad, so that all affairs went as he directed them. He it seems became soon obnoxious to parliaments, and therefore tried but one during his ministry, where the supply was granted so scantily, that afterwards he a It was for his writing against Luther, in defence of papacy, that the pope bestowed upon him the title of Defender of the Faith, which the British monarchs have, ab- surdly enough, retained to this day. Nothing can be said against the kingly office being " set for the defence of the gospel ;" but to call a man, whatever be his infidelity and im- morality, by this name, is indeed a monstrous anomaly. 298 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. chose rather to raise money by loans and benevolences, than by the free gift of the people in parliament. He in time became so scandalous for his ill life, that he grew to be a disgrace to his profession; for he not only served the king, but also shared with him in his pleasures, and became a prey to distempers of a sensual life. He was first made bishop of Tournay in Flanders, then of Lincoln, after that he was promoted to the see of York, and had both the abbey of St. Albans and the bishopric of Bath and Wells in commendam ; the last he afterwards exchanged for Durham, and upon Fox's death, he quitted Durham that he might take Winchester; and besides all this, the king by a special grant, gave him power to dispose of all the ecclesiastical preferments in England ; so that in effect he was the pope of this reforming country, as was said anciently of an archbishop of Canterbury, and no doubt but he copied skilfully enough those patterns that were set him at Rome. Being made a cardinal, and setting up a legatine court, he found it fit for his ambition to have the great seal likewise, that there might be no clashing between those two jurisdictions. He had, in one word, all the qualities necessary for a great minister, and all the vices common to a great favourite. The manner of promotion to bishoprics and abbeys was then the same that had taken place ever since the investitures by the ring and staff were taken out of the hands of princes. Upon a vacancy the king seized on all the temporalities, and granted a licence for an election, with a special recommendation of the person; which being returned, the royal assent was given, and it was sent to Rome, that bulls might be issued, and then the bishop elect was consecrated: after that he came to the king and renounced every clause in the bulls that was contrary to the king's prerogative, or to the law, and swore fealty; and then were the temporalities restored. Nor could bulls be sued out at Rome without a licence under the great seal ; so that the kings of England had reserved the power to themselves of promoting to ecclesiastical benefices, not- withstanding all the invasions the popes had made on their temporal authority. The immunity of churchmen for crimes committed by them, till they were first degraded by the spirituality, occasioned the only contest that occurred in the beginning of this reign between the secular and eccle- siastical courts. Henry VII. had passed a law, that convicted clerks should be burnt in the hand. A temporary law was also made in the beginning of his reign, that murderers and robbers, not being bishops, priests, nor deacons, should be denied the benefit of the clergy : but this was to last only to the next parliament, and so being not continued by it, the act determined. The abbot of Winchelsea preached severely against it, as being contrary to the laws of God, and the liberties of the holy church, and said that all who assented to it had fallen under eccle- siastical censure. Afterwards he published a book to prove that all clerks, even of the lower orders, were sacred, and could not be judged by the temporal courts. This being done in parliament, the temporal lords and the commons addressed the king, desiring him to repress the insolence of the clergy. Accordingly a public hearing was appointed before his majesty and all the judges. Dr. Standish, a Franciscan, Ill \\l. IMPRISONED AND BURNT. 299 argued against the immunity, and proved that the judging clerks had in all times been practised in England ; and that it was necessary for the peace and safety of mankind that all criminals should be punished. The abbot argued on the other side and said, it was contrary to a decree ot' the church, and was a sin in itself. Standish answered, that all decrees were not observed: for notwithstanding the decree for residence, bishops did not reside at their cathedrals. And since no decree was binding till it was received, this concerning immunity, which was never re- ceived in England, did not bind. After they had fully argued the matter, the laity were of opinion that the friar had the best of the argument; and therefore moved the king that the bishops might be ordered to make him preach a recantation sermon. But they refused to do it, and said they were bound by their oaths to maintain his opinion. Standish was upon this much hated by the clergy, but the matter was allowed to fall; yet the clergy carried the point, for the law was not continued. Not long after this, an accident occurred that drew great consequences after it. Richard Hunne, a merchant in London, was sued by his parish priest for a mortuary in the legate's court; on this, his friends advised him to sue the priest in the temporal court for a praemunire for bringing the king's subjects before a foreign and illegal bar. This incensed the clergy so much that they contrived his destruction. Accordingly, hear- ing that he had WicklifFe's Bible in his house, he was upon that put into the bishop's prison for heresy; but being examined upon sundry articles, he confessed some things, and submitted himself to mercy. On this they ought, according to the law, to have enjoined him penance and discharged him, it being his first crime: but he could not be pre- vailed on to let his suit fall in the temporal court ; so one night his neck was broken with an iron chain, and he was wounded in other parts of his body, and then knit up in his own girdle, and it was given out that he had hanged himself; but the coroner's inquest by examining the body, and by several other evidences, particularly by the confession of the sumner, gave their verdict, that he was murdered ,=by the bishop's chancellor, Dr. Horsey, the sumner, and the bell-ringer. The spiritual court proceeded against the dead body, and charged Hunne with all the heresy in Wickcliffe's preface to the Bible, because that was found in his possession : thus he was condemned as a heretic, and his body was burnt. The indignation of the people was raised to the highest pitch against this action, in which they implicated the whole body of the clergy, whom they esteemed no longer their pastors, but barbarous murderers. The rage went so high that the bishop of London complained he was not safe in his own house. The bishops, the chancellor, and the sumner were indicted as principals in the murder. In parliament an act passed restoring Hunne's children; but the commons sent up a bill concerning his murder, which, however, was laid aside by the lords, where the clergy were the majority. The clergy looked on the opposition that Standish had made in the point of their immunities, as that which gave the rise to Hunne's first suit; and the convocation cited him to answer for his con- duct ; but he claimed the king's protection, since he had done nothing, but only pleaded in the king's name. The clergy pretended they did 300 H13TORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. not prosecute him for his pleading-, but for some of his divinity lectures, contrary to the liberty of the church, which the king was bound to maintain by his coronation oath : but the temporal lords, the judges, and commons, prayed the king- also to maintain the laws according to his coronation oath, and to give Standish his protection. The king upon this being in great perplexity, required Veysy, afterwards of bishop of Exeter, to declare upon his conscience and allegiance the truth in that matter. His opinion was against the immunity ; so another public hearing being appointed, Standish was accused for teaching — that the inferior orders were not sacred ; that their exemption was not founded on a divine right, but that the laity might punish them; that the canons of the church did not bind till they were received ; and that the study of the canon law was useless. Of these opinions he denied some, and jus- tified others. Veysy being required to give his opinion, alleged — that the laws of the church did only oblige where they were received ; as the law of the celibate of the clergy, received in the West, did not bind the Greek churches that never received it, so the exemption of the clerks not being received did not bind in England. The judges gave their opinion next, which was — that those who prosecuted Standish were all in a praemunire. So the court broke up. But in another hearing, in the presence of the greatest part of both houses of parliament, the car- dinal said in the name of the clergy — that though they intended to do nothing against the king's prerogative, yet the trying of clerks seemed to be contrary to the liberty of the church, which they were bound by their oaths to maintain. So they prayed that the matter might be referred to the pope. The king said, that he thought Standish had answered them fully : the bishop of Winchester replied he would not stand to his opinion at his peril. Standish upon that asked, "What can one poor friar do against all the clergy of England?" The archbishop of Canterbury answered, "Some of the fathers of the church have suffered martyrdom upon that account;" but the chief-justice replied, " Many holy kings have maintained that law, and many holy bishops have obeyed it." In conclusion, the king declared, that he would maintain his rights, and would not submit them to the decrees of the church, otherwise than as his ancestors had done. Horsey was appointed to be brought to his trial for Hunne's murder, and upon his pleading not guilty, no evidence was to be brought, and so he was to be discharged. The discontent of the people greatly increased at this, and very much disposed them to all that was done afterwards, for pulling down the ecclesiastical tyranny in this country, and dissolving the establishment by which it was chiefly sustained. This was the first disturbance in this king's reign, till the suit for his divorce commenced. In all other points he was constantly in the pope's interests, who sent him the common compliments of roses, and such other trifles, by which that see had treated princes so long as children. But no compliment wrought so much on the king's vanity, as the title of " Defender of the Faith," sent him by pope Leo upon the book which he wrote against Luther concerning the sacraments. It will now be proper to consider the rapid progress of the doctrines I'KKSRCUTION OF THE LOLLARDS. 301 of the reformation among the people. From the days of Wiekliffe there were many that differed from the national faith. He wrote many books that gave great offence to the clergy, yet being powerfully sup- ported by the duke of Lancaster, they could not have their revenge during his life ; but, as we have seen, he was after his death condemned, and his body was raised and burnt. The Bible which he translated into English, with the preface which he set before it, produced the greatest effects. In these he reflected on the ill lives of the clergy, and condemned the worship of saints and images, and the corporeal presence of Christ in the sacrament; but the most criminal part in the eyes of the papists was, exhorting all people to read the Scriptures. Perhaps there cannot be a stronger proof of the depravity of the Roman catholic religion, or its perversion of truth, than denying to the laity the use of the sacred volume. — "To the law and to the tes- timony," saith the prophet; " if they speak not according to this, it is because there is no light in them." " Search the Scriptures," saith the Lord. " These were more noble than those of Thessalonica, in that they received the word with all readiness of mind, and searched the Scriptures daily, to see whether these things were so," remarks the writer of the Acts of the Apostles. The following article respecting Wiekliffe and his followers, appeared in the 16th volume of the Monthly Magazine, and maybe appropriately introduced in this place. Wiekliffe, the celebrated priest and reformer in the end of Edward Ill.'s reign, was not educated at Cambridge, but at Oxford ; in which uni- versity, being a man of distinguished learning, he possessed considerable authority and influence: but his doctrines soon made their way among all ranks of people ; and Cambridge, as may be supposed, was not behindhand in giving them a hearing ; many of its members were foremost among Wickliffe's advocates, but as the Lollards, his followers, did not form themselves into societies or churches, they were obliged to maintain their opinions privately, and in the hearing only of their par- ticular confidants ; for besides the decree passed in the fourth council of Lateran, that all heretics should be delivered over to the civil magistrate to be burned, there were particular laws made in Richard II. and Henry IV. 's reign, which put them from under the king's protection, and left them at the mercy of the spiritual courts. We are not therefore to expect, under these circumstances, that Wickliffe's doctrines should be much agitated publicly at Cambridge. This, however, we collect, that about the year 1401, archbishop Arundel, with his commissioners, visited Cambridge ; the archbishop personally, the collective body of the uni- versity in congregation, his commissioners every private college. One article of their inquiries was, whether there were any members suspected of Lollardism, or any other heretical pravity ? and ten years after, Peter Hartford was, according to Dr. Fuller in his history of Cambridge, ordered to abjure Wickliffe's opinions in full congregation ; and about twenty years after this, several Lollards of Chesterton were obliged to abjure. One of the opinions of the latter heretics will appear very singular, which was that priests were incarnate devils. They had, no doubt, poor creatures, been too painfully scorched with church disci- 302 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. pline, and were too likely to become fuel for some future flame of their kindling. The testimonies of this great man against those corruptions were such, that there was no way to deal with them but if possible to silence him. His followers were not men of letters, but being wrought on by the easy conviction of plain common sense, were quite determined in their per- suasions. They did not form themselves into a body, but were contented to hold their opinions secretly, and did not spread them, but to their particular confidants. The clergy sought them out every where, and delivered them after conviction to the secular arm, that is, to the flames of martyrdom, the odium of which, by this fiction, they sought to avoid. The canons of the council of the Lateran being received in England, the proceedings against heretics grew to be a part of the common law, and a writ for burning them was issued upon their conviction without reserve. In the beginning of this reign, there were several persons brought into the bishops' courts for heresy, before Warham. Forty-eight were ac- cused : but of these, forty-three abjured, twenty-seven men, and six- teen women, most of them inhabitants of Tenterden. Five of them, four men and one woman, were condemned; some as obstinate heretics, and others as relapses : and against the common ties of nature, the woman's husband, and her two sons, were suborned witnesses against her. Upon their conviction, a certificate was made by the archbishop to the chancery: upon which, since there is no pardon upon record, the writs for burning them must have gone out in course, and the execution of them is little to be doubted. The articles objected to them were, that they believed that in the eucharist there was nothing but material bread ; that the sacraments of baptism, confirmation, confession, ma- trimony, and extreme unction, were neither necessary nor profitable; that priests had no more power than laymen ; that pilgrimages were not meritorious; that the money and labour they required were spent in vain; that images ought not to be worshipped; that they were only stocks and stones; that prayers ought not to be made to saints, but only to God; that there was no virtue in holy water or holy bread. By this it will appear, that many in this nation were prepared to receive those doctrines, which were afterwards preached by the reformers, even before Luther commenced his more determined and successful career. The rise and progress of the reformation under him are well known : the scandalous extolling of indulgences gave the first occasion to all that followed between him and the church of Rome; in which, had not the corruptions and cruelties of the clergy been so visible and scandalous, so small a matter could never have produced such a revolution. Even he himself did not expect so great a matter to be immediately kindled by this little fire. The bishops were grossly ignorant; they seldom resided in their dioceses, except it was to riot at high festivals ; and all the effect their residence could have was to corrupt others by their ill example. They followed the courts of princes, and aspired to the greatest offices. The abbots and monks were almost wholly given up to luxury and idleness; PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION IN ENGLAND. 303 and their unmarried state gave infinite scandal to the world; for it ap- peared that restraining them from having wives of their own, made them conclude that they had a right to all other men's. The inferior clergy were no better; and not having places of retreat to conceal their vices, as the monks had, they became more public and shameless. In short, all ranks of churchmen were so generally despised and hated, that the world was very apt to be possessed with prejudice against their doctrines, for the sake of the men ; and the worship of God was so defiled with gross superstition, that the people were easily convinced the church stood in great need of reformation. This was much increased when the books of the fathers began to be read, in which the difference between the former and latter ages of the church very evidently ap- peared. They found that a blind superstition came first in the room of true piety ; and when by its means the wealth and interest of the clergy were highly advanced, the popes had upon that established their tyranny ; under which, not only meaner people, but even crowned heads had long groaned. All these things concurred to make way for the advancement of the reformation : while the books of the Germans being brought into England and translated, many were prevailed on by them. Upon this, a hot persecution was vigorously set on foot, to such a degree that six men and women were burnt at Coventry in passion-week, only for teaching their children the creed, the Lord's prayer, and the ten com- mandments in English. Great numbers were every where brought into the bishops' courts; of whom some were burnt, while the greater part fearfully abjured. The king laid hold of this occasion to become the champion of the the church, and wrote against Luther in the manner already described. His book, besides the title of " Defender of the Faith," drew upon him all that flattery could invent to extol it; whilst Luther, not daunted with such an antagonist, answered it, and treated Henry as much below the respect due to a king, as his flatterers had raised him above it. Tindai's translation of the New Testament, with some notes added to it, drew a severe condemnation from the clergy; there being nothing in which they were more concerned than to keep the people unacquainted with that book. Thus much may serve to shew the condition of affairs in England both in church and state, when the process of the king's divorce was first set on foot. This incident, so replete with consequences the most important to the reformation, shall now be laid before the reader with somewhat of particular detail. Henry VII. had entered into a firm alliance with Ferdinand of Spain, and agreed to a match between his eldest son prince Arthur, and Katharine the Infanta of Spain. She came into England and was married in November; but on the second of the following April the prince died, leaving the throne as well as the lady open to his brother. Arthur and Katharine had lodged and even slept together, to carry on the farce of marriage ; but such was their youth, and the feebleness of the young prince, that beyond this farce no effect detrimental to Henry's hopes, or of service to the nation, could be expected. The king, being unwilling to restore so great a portion as two hundred thousand ducats, which the princess brought as her dowery, proposed a 304 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. second match for her with his younger son Henry. Warham objected to it as unlawful; but Fox, bishop of Winchester, was for it, and the opinion of the pope's authority was then so well established, that it was thought a dispensation from Rome was sufficient to remove all objec- tions. Accordingly one was obtained, grounded upon a desire of the two young persons to marry together for preserving peace between the crowns of England and Spain. The pope was then at war with Lewis XII. of France, and would refuse nothing to the king of England, being perhaps not unwilling that princes should contract such marriages, since the lawfulness of their issue depending on the pope's dispensation, they would be thereby obliged in interest to support that authority. Upon this a marriage followed, the prince being yet under age; but the same day in which he came to be of age, he did, by his father's orders, make a protestation that he retracted and annulled the contract. His father, at his death, charged his son to break it off entirely, being perhaps apprehensive of such a return of confusion upon a controverted succession to the crown, as had occurred during the wars between the houses of York and Lancaster; but the son being then eighteen years of age, married her and she bore him two children who died soon after they were born ; and another, Mary, afterwards queen of England. After this Katharine contracted some diseases that made her unacceptable to the king; who, at the same time beginning or pretending to have some scruples of con- science with regard to the lawfulness of his marriage, determined to have the affair investigated. He seemed to lay the greatest weight on the prohibition in theLevitical law of marrying the brother's wife, and being conversant in the writings of Thomas Aquinas, he found that he and the other schoolmen looked on those laws as moral, and for ever binding; and consequently the pope's dispensation was of no force, since his authority went not so far as to dispense with the laws of God. b All the bishops of England, Fisher of Rochester only excepted, declared under their hands and seals that they judged the marriage unlawful. The ill consequences of wars that might follow upon a doubtful title to the crown, were also much considered. It is not certain that the king's affections for any other gave rise to all this. It is possible that, conceiving himself on the point of being freed of his former marriage, he gave a free scope to his affections, which settled on Anne Boleyn. This lady was born in the year 1507, and at seven years of age was sent to France, where she remained twelve years, and then returned to England. She was much admired in both courts, was more beautiful than graceful, and more cheerful than discreet. She wanted none of b This was one of the firmest, as it was one of the first steps laid for advancing to a glorious reformation on scriptural principles; and was infinitely preferable as an argument to all the ressonings afterwards introduced, and exalted to the rank of infallible axioms, when this, alas! became slighted and forgotten. Hitherto and afterwards, it was assumed that no papal decree could err; but in a happy moment of sudden light it is here seen and confessed that edicts of the pope may run contrary to the law of God, and thus be un- doubtedly wrong-. Would to heaven that this principle were considered by protestant as well as popish bishops, and carried by all people into their confidence in episcopal SOME ACCOUM OF AiSNE BOLEYN. 305 the charms of wit or person, and must have had extraordinary attrac- tions, since she could so long- manage such a king's affection ; for it is evident that in the long course of seven years' courtship she kept him at a due distance. Knight, then secretary of state, was sent to Rome to prepare the pope to grant a dispensation from the former marriage. He made application to the pope in the most secret manner he could, and had a very favour- able answer : for the pope promised frankly to dissolve the marriage ; but another promise being exacted of him in the emperor's name, not to proceed in that affair, he was reduced to great straits, being then at the emperor's mercy, while he had no mind to lose the king of England; he therefore studied to gain time, and promised that if the latter would have a little patience, he should not only have that which he asked, but every thing that was in his power to grant. The chief cardinal, indeed, made some scruples concerning the bull that was demanded, till he had raised his price, and got a great present; then the pope signed both a commission for Wolsey to try the cause, and judge in it, and also a dis- pensation, and put them into Knight's hands; but with tears prayed him that there might be no proceedings upon them, till the emperor was incapable of executing his revenge upon him ; and whenever that was done he would own this act of justice which he did in the king's favour. The pope was at this time displeased with Cardinal Wolsey ; for he understood that during his captivity, he had been in an intrigue to get himself chosen vicar of the papacy, and was to have sat at Avignon, which might have produced a new schism. Staphileus, dean of the Rota, being then in England, was wrought on by the promise of a bishopric, and a recommendation to a cardinal's hat, to promote the king's affair. By him the cardinal wrote to the pope, in a most earnest strain, for a dispatch of this business ; and he desired, that an indifferent and tractable cardinal might be sent over, with a full commission to join with him, and to judge the matter ; proposing to the king's ambassadors Campegio as the fittest man. Wolsey, in several letters to Cassali, who was in great favour with the pontiff, offered to take the blame on his own soul, if the pope would grant this bull ; and with an earnestness, as hearty and warm as can be expressed in words, he pressed the thing, and added, that if the pope continued inexorable, he perceived the king- would proceed another way. These entreaties had such effect that Campegio was declared legate, and ordered to go to England, and join in commission with Wolsey for judging this matter. He accordingly set out from Rome, and carried with him a decretal bull for annulling the marriage, which he was autho- rized to shew to the king and Wolsey ; but was required not to give it out of his hands to either of them. In fact the divorce was trusted to his authority. In October he arrived in. England, and after the usual compliments were over, he first advised the king to give up the prosecu- tion of his suit ; and then counselled the queen, in the pope's name, to enter into a religious life, and make vows : but both were in vain ; and he, by affecting an impartiality, almost lost his ground on either side. But he in great measure pacified the king when he shewed him the bull lie had brought over for annulling the marriage ; yet he would not part x 306 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. with it either to the king- or the cardinal ; upon which, great instances were made at Rome, that Campegio might be ordered to shew it to some of the king's counsellors, and to go on and end the business, otherwise Wolsey would be ruined, and England lost. All this however did not prevail on the pope, who knew it was intended to get the bull out of Campegio's hands, and then the king would leave him to the emperor's indignation : but though he positively refused to grant that, yet he said he left the legates in England free to judge as they saw cause, and pro- mised that he would confirm their sentence. The affair proceeding very slowly, ambassadors were dispatched to Rome with new propositions for a speedy termination. On this, the pope gave new assurances, that though he would not grant a bull, by which the divorce should be immediately his own act, yet he would con- firm the legate's sentence. Just after he granted this boon, the pope was taken suddenly ill, upon which the Imperialists began to prepare for a conclave; but Farnese, and the cardinal of Mantua, opposed them, and seemed to favour Wolsey ; whom, as his correspondents wrote to him, they reverenced as a Deity. Upon this he dispatched a courier to Gardiner, then on his way to Rome, with large directions how to manage the election. It was reckoned, that the king of France, joining heartily with the king of England, the matter might be set at rest. There were only six cardinals wanting to make the election sure ; and besides sums of money, and other rewards, which were to be distributed among them, he was to give them assurance that the cardinals' prefer- ments should be equally divided. These were the secret methods of attaining the chair: and indeed it would puzzle a man of an ordinary degree of credulity, to think that one chosen by such means could pre- sume to be Christ's vicar, and the infallible judge of controversies. The recovery, however, of the pope put an end to these intrigues. At length the legates began the process, when the queen protested against them as incompetent judges. They, however, proceeded accord- ing to the forms of law, although the queen had appealed from them to the pope, and objected both to the place, to the judges, and her lawyers ; when they pronounced her contumacious, and went on to examine witnesses, chiefly to the particulars of the consummation of her marriage with prince Arthur. But now since the process was thus going on, the emperor's agents pressed the pope vehemently for an avocation; and all possible endeavours were used by the king's agents to hinder it. They spared nothing that would work on the pope, either in the way of persuasion or threatening: it was told him there was a treaty set on foot between the king and the Lutheran princes of Germany; and that upon declaring himself so partial as to grant the avocation, he would cer- tainly embark in the same interests with them. The pope however thought the king so far engaged in honour on points of religion, that he would not be prevailed upon to unite with Luther's followers ; he did not imagine that the effects of his granting the avocation would be so fatal as the cardinal's agents represented them. In conclu- sion, therefore, after the emperor had engaged to restore his family to the government of Florence, he resolved to publish his treaty with him, and told the English ambassadors that he was forced to it; both because FALL OF CARDINAL WOLSEY. 307 all the lawyers said it could not be denied, and that he could not resist the emperor's forces, which surrounded him on all hands. Their endea- vours to pain a little time by delay were as fruitless as other artifices, for on the 15th of July, the pope signed the avocation, and on the 19th sent it by an express messenger to England. The legates, Campegio in particular, drew out the matter with all the delay they could contrive, and gained much time. At last, it being brought to the point that sentence was to be pronounced, Campegio, in- stead of doing it, adjourned the court till October, and said, that as they were members of the consistory they must observe their times of vacation. This gave the king and his court great offence, when they saw r what was like to be the issue of a process on which his majesty was so much bent, and in which he was so far engaged both in honour and interest. The king governed himself upon the occasion with more temper than was expected : he dismissed Campegio civilly, only his officers searched his coffers when he went beyond sea, with evident design to see if the decretal bull could be found. Wolsey was now upon the point of being disgraced, though the king seemed to treat him with all his former confidence. At this period, Dr. Cranmer, a fellow of Jesus College in Cambridge, meeting accidentally with Gardiner and Fox at Waltham, and entering into discourse upon the royal marriage, suggested that the king should engage the chief universities and divines of Europe, to examine the lawfulness of his marriage ; and if they gave their resolutions against it, then it being certain that the pope's dispensation could not derogate from the law of God, the marriage must be declared null. This novel and reasonable scheme they proposed to the king, who was much pleased with it, and said, " He had the sow by the right ear." He saw this way was both better in itself and w T ould mortify the pope. Cranmer was accordingly sent for, and on conversing with him, the king conceived a high opinion both of his learning and prudence, as well as of his pro- bity and sincerity, which took such root in the king's mind, that no artifices nor calumnies were ever able to remove it. From this moment and these circumstances began the rise of Cranmer and the decline of Wolsey. The great seal was taken from the latter and given to Sir Thomas More ; and he was sued in a prsemunire, for having held the legatine courts by a foreign authority, to the laws of England. Wolsey confessed the indictment, pleaded ignorance, and submitted himself to the king's mercy; so judgment passed on him; when his rich palace and furniture were seized for the royal use. Yet the king received him again into his protection, and restored to him the temporalities of the sees of York and Winchester, and above 6000/. in plate and other goods; at wdiich he was so transported, that it is said he fell down on his knees in a kennel before the messenger who brought him the news. Articles were put in against him in the house of lords for a bill of attainder, where he had but few friends : in the house of commons, Cronnvell, who had been his secretary, so managed the matter, that it came to nothing. This failing, his enemies procured an order to be sent to him to go into Yorkshire : thither he went in great state, with one hundred and sixty horses in his train, and seventy-two 308 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Carts following him, and there he lived some time. But the king being informed, that he was practising with the pope and the emperor, he sent the earl of Northumberland to arrest him of high treason, and bring him up to London. On the way he sickened and died at Leicester, making great protestations of his constant fidelity to the king, particu- larly in the matter of his divorce : and wishing he had served God as faithfully as he had done the king ; for then he would not have cast him off in his grey hairs, as the king had done: words that declining favourites are apt to reflect on in adversity ; but they seldom remember them in the height of their fortune. The king intending to proceed in the method proposed by Cranmer, sent to Oxford and Cambridge to procure their conclusions. At Oxford it was referred by the major part of the convocation to thirty-three doctors and bachelors of divinity, whom that faculty was to name : they were empowered to determine the question, and put the seal of the uni- versity to their conclusion. They gave their opinions, that the marriage of the brother's wife was contrary both to the laws of God and nature. At Cambridge the convocation referred the question to twenty-nine ; of which number, two-thirds agreeing, they were empowered to put the seal of the university to their determination. These agreed in opinion with those of Oxford. The jealousy of Cranmer's favouring Lutheranism caused the fierce popish party to oppose every thing in which he was engaged. They were also afraid of Anne Boleyn's advancement, who was believed to be tinctured with the reformed opinions. Crook, a learned man in the Greek tongue, was employed in Italy, to procure the resolution of divines there; in which he was so successful, that besides the great discoveries he made in searching the manuscripts of the Greek fathers concerning their opinions in this point, he engaged several per- sons to write for the king's cause. He also got the Jews to give their opinions of the laws in Leviticus, that they were moral and obligatory — that when a brother died without issue, his brother might marry his widow within Judea, for preserving their families and succession ; although that might not be done out of Judea. The state of Venice would not declare themselves, but said they would be neutral; and it was not easy to persuade the divines of the republic to give their opinions, till a brief was obtained of the pope, permitting all divines and canonists to deliver judgment according to their consciences. The pope abhorred this way of proceeding, though he could not decently oppose it; but he said in great scorn, that no friar should set limits to his power. Crook was ordered to give no money, nor make promises to any, till they had freely delivered their opinion ; which he faithfully observed. This man sent over to England a hundred various books, and papers, with many subscriptions ; all condemning the king's mar- riage as unlawful in itself. At Paris, the Sorbonne made their deter- mination with great solemnity; after mass of the Holy Ghost, all the doctors took an oath to study the question, and to give their judgment according to their consciences ; and after three weeks study, the greater part agreed on this strange and contradictory decree — " that the king's marriage was unlawful, and the pope could not dispense with it." At Orleans, Angiers, and Toulouse, they determined to the same purpose. OPINIONS ON THE KING'S MARRlAtiU. 309 Calvin thought the marriage null, and they all agreed that the pope's dispensation was of no force. Osiander was employed to engage the Lutheran divines, but they were afraid of giving the emperor new grounds of displeasure. Melancthon thought the law in Leviticus was dispensable, and that the marriage might be lawful; and that in such matters, states and princes might make what laws they pleased. Though the divines of Leipsic, after much disputing about it, did agree that those laws were moral, yet they could never be brought to justify the divorce, with the subsequent marriage that followed upon it. And the king appeared very inclinable to receive their doctrine, so steadily did they follow their consciences even against their interests : but the pope was more compliant, for he offered to Cassali to grant his amorous pe- titioner dispensation for having another wife, with which the Imperialists seemed on the whole to be willing to comply. The king's cause being thus fortified by so many resolutions in his favour, he made certain members of parliament sign a letter to the pope, complaining, that notwithstanding the great merits of their sovereign, the justice of his cause, and the importance of it to the safety of the kingdom, yet the pope made still new delays ; they therefore pressed him to dispatch it speedily, otherwise they would be forced to seek other remedies, though they were not willing to drive things to extremities, till it was unavoidable. The letter was signed by the cardinal, the arch- bishop of Canterbury, four bishops, twenty-two abbots, forty-two peers, and eleven commoners. To this the pope wrote an answer, taking notice of the vehemence of their style, and freeing himself from the imputations o£, ingratitude and injustice. He acknowledged the king's great merits; and said, he had done all he could in his favour: he had granted a commission, but could not refuse to receive the queen's appeal; all the cardinals with one consent judging that an avocation was necessary. Since that time, the delays were not with him, but with the king; that he was ready to proceed, and would bring it to as speedy an issue as the importance of it would admit of; and as for their threatenings, they were neither proofs of their wisdom, nor of their religion. The king, now disgusted at his dependence on the pope, issued a pro- clamation against any that should purchase, bring over, or publish any bull from Rome, contrary to his authority : and after that he made an abstract of all the reasons and authorities of fathers, or modern writers, against his marriage, to be published both in Latin and English. Both sides having produced the strength of their cause, it evidently appeared that, according to the authority given to tradition in the church of Rome, the king had clearly the right on his side. At the same time he was not exempt from opposition, even in England. The friends of Katharine were more numerous than he had all along imagined, and the queen herself, amidst these disputes, continued firm to her resolution of leaving the matter in the pope's hands, and would hearken to no propositions that were made to her, for referring it to the arbitration of a number chosen on both sides. The sovereigns of England claimed the same latitude of power in ecclesiastical matters, as the Roman emperors had exercised before the 310 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. decline of their authority. Anciently they had divided bishoprics, granted investitures, and made laws relating both to ecclesiastical causes and persons. When the popes began to extend their power beyond the limits assigned them by the canons, great opposition arose to them in England; but they managed the advantages they found, either from the weakness or ill circumstances of princes, so steadily, that at length they subdued the world : and if they had not by their cruel exactions so oppressed the clergy, that they were driven to seek shelter under covert of the temporal authority, men generally were so absorbed by superstition and credulity, that not only the whole spiritual power; but even the temporal authority of the princes, was likely to have fallen under papal tyranny. But the discontented clergy now supported the secular power as much as they had before advanced that of the papal. Boniface VIII. had raised his pretensions to that impudent pitch, that he declared all power, both ecclesiastical and civil, was derived from him; and this he established as an article of faith, necessary to salvation ; on which he, and his successors, took upon them, to dispose of all ecclesiastical benefices by their absolute bulls and provisions. To restrain these invasions of the rights of princes, laws were made in England against their authority; but no punishment being declared for transgressors, the courtiers at Rome were not frightened at their publi- cation ; so that the abuses still continued : but in the time of Edward III. a more severe act was made, by which all that transgressed were to be imprisoned, to be fined at pleasure, and to forfeit all their benefices. These long forgotten statutes were now revived, to bring the clergy into a snare : it was designed by the terror of this proceeding to force them to an entire submission, and to oblige them to redeem themselves by the grant of a considerable subsidy. They pleaded ignorance; it was a public error, and they ought not therefore to be punished for it. To this it was answered, that the laws which they had transgressed were still in force, and so no ignorance could excuse the violation of them. The convocation of Canterbury made their submission, and in their address to the king he was called the protector and supreme head of the church of England; but some objecting, it was added — " in so far as it is agreeable to the law of Christ." This was signed by nine bishops, fifty abbots and priors, and the greater part of the lower house; and with it they offered the king a subsidy of 100,000/. to procure his favour, and promised for the future not to make nor execute any constitutions without his licence. The convocation of York did not pass this so easily; they objected to the word head, as agreeing to none but Christ: whereupon the king wrote them a long expostulatory letter, and told them with what limitations those of Canterbury had passed that title; upon which they all submitted, and offered 18,840/. which was accepted : thus the clergy were again received into the king's protection, and re- ceived his precarious pardon for their heavy offences. After the prorogation of this session of parliament, new applications were made to the queen to persuade her to depart from her appeal ; but she remained fixed in her resolution, and said she was the king's lawful wife, and would abide by it till the court at Rome should declare the contrary. Upon that the king desired her to choose any of his houses PAPAL AND ROYAL CORRESPONDENCE. 311 in the country to live in, and resolved never to see her more. She chose the palace of Ampthill, in Bedfordshire, for her residence, and the monastery of Kimbolton, at no great distance, for her religious resorts. In these she passed the remainder of her life, beloved by all around her, and respected by none more than by the king himself, whose passions rather than judgment and conscience constrained him to prefer the youth and beauty of another. In January 1532, the pope, on the motion of the Imperialists, wrote to the king, complaining that notwithstanding a suit was depending concerning his marriage, yet he had put away his queen and kept one Anne as his wife, contrary to a prohibition served on him; he therefore exhorted him to live with his queen again, and to put away Anne. Upon this the king sent Dr. Bennet to Rome with a dispatch in which he complained that the pope proceeded in that matter upon the suggestion of others, who were ignorant and rash men : that he had carried himself inconstantly and deceitfully in it, and not as became Christ's vicar : that he had granted a commission, had promised never to recall it, and had sent over a decretal bull defining the cause. Either these were unjustly granted, or unjustly recalled. It was plain that he acted more with regard to his interests, than according to conscience; and that, as the pope had often confessed his own ignorance in these matters, so he was not furnished with learned men to advise him, otherwise he would not defend a marriage which almost all the learned men and universities in England, France, and Italy, had condemned as unlawful. He would not question his authority without he was compelled to it, and would do nothing but reduce it to its first and ancient limits, which was much better than to let it run on headlong, and still do amiss. This high letter made the pope resolve to proceed and end the matter, either by a sentence or a treaty. The king was cited to answer to the queen's appeal at Rome in person, or by proxy: accordingly, Sir Edward Karne was sent thither in the new character of the king's apologist, to excuse the king's appearance, upon such grounds as could be founded on the canon law, and upon the privileges of the crown of England. The Imperialists pressed the pope much to give sentence, but all the wise cardinals, who observed by the proceedings of the parliament that the nation would adhere to the king, if he should be provoked to shake off the pope's yoke, suggested milder counsels. In conclusion, the pope seemed to favour the king's plea, upon which the Imperialists made great complaints. But this amounted to no more than that the king was not bound to appear in person; therefore the cardinals, who were in his interest, advised the king to send over a proxy for answering the merits of the cause; and both the pope and the college wrote to him to finish the matter next winter. Bonner, at that time in Rome, was also sent to England to assure the king, that the pope was now so much in the French interest, that he might con- fidently refer this matter to him. On this the king sent for the speaker of the house of commons, and told him he found the prelates were but half subjects; for they swore at their consecration an oath to the pope, inconsistent with their allegiance and oath to him. By their oath to the pope, they swore to be in no council against him, nor to disclose his 312 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. secrets; but to maintain the papacy, and the regalities of St. Peter against all men, together with the rights and authorities of the church of Rome; and that they should honourably entreat the legates of the apostolic see, and observe all the decrees, sentences, provisions, and commandments of that see; and yearly, either in person, or by proxy, visit the thresholds of the apostles. In their oath to the king, they re- nounced all clauses in their bulls contrary to his royal dignity, and swore to be faithful to him, and to live and die with him against all others, and to keep his counsel; acknowledging that they held their bishoprics only of him. By these it appeared they could not keep both their oaths, in case a breach should fall out between the king and the pope ; a discovery which would have been of serious consequence, had not the plague broke off the consultations of parliament at this time. Soon after, Sir Thomas More, seeing a rupture with Rome coming on so fast, desired leave to lay down his office, which was upon that con- ferred on Sir Thomas Audley. More had been satisfied with the king's keeping up the laws formerly made in opposition to the papal encroach- ments, and had concurred in the suit of the prsemunire; but now the matter went farther, and not being able to keep pace with the new order of things, he returned to a private life. An interview soon followed between the kings of France and Eng- land; to which Anne Boleyn, now marchioness of Pembroke, was car- ried. After the first ceremonies and magnificence were over, Francis promised Henry to second him in his suit: he encouraged him to pro- ceed to a second marriage without delay; and assured him he would stand by him in it: meantime, the pope offered to the king, to send a legate to any indifferent place, out of England, to form the process, reserving only the sentence himself to pronounce ; and proposed to him and all princes a general truce, that so he might call a general council. The king answered, that such was the present state of the affairs of Europe, it was not seasonable to call a general council ; and that it was contrary to his prerogative to send a proxy to appear at Rome : that by the decrees of general councils, all causes ought to be judged on the spot and by a provincial council ; and that it was fitter to judge it in England than any where else : that by his coronation oath, he was bound to maintain the dignities of his crown, and the rights of his subjects, and not to appear before any foreign court. Sir Thomas Elliot was therefore sent over with instructions, to move that the cause might be judged in England. Soon after this, the king mar- ried Anne Boleyn ; Rowland Lee, afterwards bishop of Coventry and Litchfield, officiated, none being present but the duke of Norfolk, and her father, her mother, her brother, and Cranmer. It was thought that the former marriage being null, the king might proceed to another : and perhaps they hoped, that as the pope had formely proposed this method, so he would now approve of it. But though the pope had joined himself to France, yet he was still so much in fear of the emperor that he resolved to continue resisting Henry's marriage, rather than provoke the imperial wrath. A new citation was therefore issued out, for the king to answer to the queen's complaints ; but Henry's agents protested that their master was a sovereign prince, and England a free CRANMER CREATED ARCHBISHOP. 313 church, over which the pope had no just authority; and that the king could expect no justice at Rome, where the emperor's power and the pope's authority were paramount to all others. At this time parliament met again, and passed an act condemning all appeals to Rome. In it they set forth — That the crown was imperial, and that the nation was a complete body, having full power to do justice in all cases, both spiritual and temporal; and that as former kings had maintained the liberties of the kingdom against the usurpa- tions of the see of Rome, so they found the great inconvenience of allowing appeals in matrimonial causes; that they put them to great charges, and occasioned many delays: therefore they enacted, that thereafter those should be judged within the kingdom, and no regard be had to any appeals to Rome, or censures from it; but sentences given in England were to have their full effect; and all who executed any censures from Rome were to incur the pain of praemunire. The archbishopric of Canterbury was now vacant by the decease of Warham, who died the previous year: he was a great patron of learning, a good canonist, and a wise statesman; but he was a cruel persecutor of heretics, and inclined to believe fanatical legends. Cranmer was in Germany, disputing in the king's cause with some of the emperor's divines, when the king resolved to advance him to that dignity; and sent him word of it, that he might make haste to return. But a pro- motion so far above his thoughts, had not its common effects on him : he had a true and primitive sense of so great a charge; and instead of aspiring to it, he was afraid of it, and he both returned very slowly to England, and used all his endeavours to be excused from the advance- ment. Bulls were sent for to Rome in order to his consecration, which the pope granted. , On the 13th of March, Cranmer was consecrated by the bishops of Lincoln, Exeter, and St. Asaph. The oath to the pope was of hard digestion to one " almost persuaded" to be a protestant: he therefore made a protestation before he took it, that he conceived himself not bound by it in any thing that was contrary to his duty to God, to his king, or country; and this he repeated when he took it. The convocation had then two questions before them ; the first was concerning the lawfulness of the king's marriage, and the validity of the pope's dispensation ; the other was a curious question of fact, whether prince Arthur had consummated the marriage. For the first, the judg- ments of nineteen universities were read ; and after a long debate, there being twenty-three only in the lower house, fourteen were against the marriage, seven for it, and two voted dubiously. In the upper house, Stokesly bishop of London, and Fisher bishop of Rochester, maintained the debate at great length, the one for the affirmative, and the other the negative. At last it was carried nemine contradicente, the few that were of the other side it seems withdrawing, against the marriage, two hun- dred and sixteen being present. For the other, which concerned matter of fact, it was referred to the canonists ; and they all, except five or six, reported that the presumptions were very strong ; and these in a matter not capable of plain proof were always received as legally con- clusive. The convocation having thus judged in the matter, the ceremony of 314 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. pronouncing the divorce judicially was now the only thing wanting-. The new queen was reported to be in a promising condition for the future monarchy. On Easter-eve she was declared queen of England : and soon after, Cranmer, with Gardiner, who had succeeded Wolsey as bishop of Winchester, and the bishops of London, Lincoln, Bath and Wells, with many divines and canonists, went to Dunstable ; queen Katharine living then near it, at Ampthill. The king and queen were cited ; he appeared by proxy, but the queen refused to take any notice of the court : so after three citations, she was declared contumacious, and all the merits of the cause formerly mentioned were examined. At last, on the 23rd of May, sentence was given, declaring the marriage to have been null from the beginning. Among the archbishop's titles in the commencement of the judgment, he is called " Legate of the apos- tolic see," which perhaps was added to give it the more force in law. Some days after this, he gave another judgment, confirming the king's marriage with queen Anne, and on the first of June she was crowned queen. All people admired queen Anne's conduct, who in a course of so many years managed the spirit of so violent a king in such a manner, as neither to surfeit him with too many favours, nor to provoke him with too much rigour. They that loved the reformation looked for better days under her protection : but many priests and friars, both in sermons and discourses, condemned the king's proceedings. The king sent ambassadors to all courts to justify what he had done: he sent also two to queen Katharine, to charge her to assume no other title but that of princess dowager; but she would not yield; she said she would not take that infamy on herself; and so resolved that none should serve about her who did not treat her as queen. At Rome the cardinals of the Imperial faction complained much of the attempt made on the pope's power, and urged him to proceed to censures. But there was only sentence given, annulling all that the archbishop of Canterbury had done ; and the king was required, under pain of excommunication, to place things again in the state in which they formerly were : this decree was framed at Rome, and brought for publication to Dunkirk. The king sent a great embassy to the French monarch, who was then setting out to Marseilles to meet the pope : their errand was to dissuade him from the journey, unless the pope would promise to give the king satisfaction. Francis said, he was engaged in honour to go on; but assured them, he would mind the king's concerns with as much zeal as if they were his own. In September the queen brought forth a daughter, the renowned Elizabeth ; and the king having before declared lady Mary princess of Wales, did now the same for the infant: though since a son might exclude her from it, she could not be heir apparent, but only heir presumptive to the crown. The eventful moment was nigh at hand, when the incident should take place that would cause the separation of England from the church of Rome. There was a secret agreement between the pope and Francis, that if Henry would refer his cause to the consistory, excepting only to the cardinals of the Imperial faction, as partial, and would in all other things return to his obedience to the see of Rome, the sentence should be given in his favour. When Francis returned to Paris, he sent over SENTENCE AGAINST THE KING. 315 the bishop of that city to the king, to tell what he had obtained of the pope in his favour, and the terms on which it was promised. This wrought so much on the king, that he presently consented to them; upon which the bishop of Paris, though it was now in the middle of winter, went to Rome with the welcome tidings. On his arrival there, the matter seemed agreed: for it was promised that upon the king's sending a consent under his hand to place things in their former state, and his ordering a proxy to appear for him, judges should be sent to Cambray for making the process, and then sentence should be given. Upon the notice given of this, and of a day that was prefixed for the return of the courier, the king dispatched him with all possible haste ; and now the business seemed at an end. But the courier had a sea and the Alps to pass, and in winter it was not easy to observe a limited day so exactly. The appointed day came, and no courier arrived ; upon which, the Imperialists gave out, that the king was abusing the pope's easiness; and pressed him vehemently to proceed to a sentence : the bishop of Paris requesting only a delay of six days. The design of the Imperial- ists was to hinder a reconciliation : for if the king had been set right with the pope, there would have been so powerful a league formed against the emperor as would have frustrated all his measures; and therefore it was necessary for his politics to embroil them. Seduced by the artifice of this intriguing prince, the pope, without consulting his ordinary prudence, brought in the matter to the consistory; and there the Imperialists being the greater number, it was driven on with so much precipitation, that they did in one day that which, according to form, should have extended at least to three. They gave the final sentence, declared the king's marriage with queen Katharine good, and required him to live with her as his wife, other- wise they would proceed to censures. Two days after this, the courier came with the king's submission in due form ; he also brought earnest letters from Francis in the king's favour. This wrought on all the in- different cardinals, as well as those of the French faction, so that they prayed the pope to recall what was done. A new consistory was called, but the Imperialists urged with greater vehemence than ever, that they would not give such scandal to the world as to recall a definitive sen- tence of the validity of a marriage, and give heretics such advantage by their unsteadiness in matters of that nature; it was therefore carried that the former sentence should remain, and the execution of it be com- mitted to the emperor. When this was known in England, it deter- mined the king in his resolutions of shaking off the pope's yoke, in which he had made so great a progress, that the parliament had passed all the acts concerning it before he received the news from Rome; for he judged that the best way to secure his cause was to let Rome see his power, and with what vigour he could make war. All the rest of the world looked on astonished to see the court of Rome throw off England, as if it had been weary of the obedience and profits of so great a kingdom. In England people of nearly all ranks had been examining the foun- dations on which the papal authority was built with extraordinary care for some years ; and several books were written on that subject. It was 316 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. demonstrated, that all the apostles were made equal in the powers that Christ gave them ; that he often condemned their contests about supe- riority, but never declared in St. Peter's favour. St. Paul withstood him to his face, and reckoned himself not inferior to him. If the dignity of a person left any authority with the city in which he sat, then Antioch must carry it rather than Rome; and Jerusalem, where Christ suffered, was to be preferred to all the World, for it was truly the mother-church. Christ said to Peter, "Upon this rock will I build my church." The agents understood by the rock either the confession Peter had made, or, which is the same, Christ himself; and though it were to be meant of St. Peter, all the rest of the apostles are also called foundations ; and the injunction, "Tell the church," was by many doctors of Rome turned against the pope for a general council. The other privileges ascribed to St. Peter, were either only a precedence of order, or were occasioned by his fall; as that, "Feed my sheep," being a restoration of him to the apostolic functions. St. Peter had also a limited province, the circumcision, as St. Paul had the uncircumcision, which was of far greater extent, and which shewed that Peter was not considered as the universal pastor. Several sees, as Ravenna, Milan, and Aquilea, pretended exemption from the papal authority. Many English bishops had asserted that the popes had no authority against the canons, and to that day no canon made by the pope was binding till it was received, which shewed the pope's authority was not believed to be founded on divine authority; and the contests that the kings of England had with the popes concerning investitures, bishops doing the king homage, appeals to Rome, and the authority of papal bulls and provisions, shewed that the pope's power was subject to law and custom, and so not derived from Christ and St. Peter ; and as laws had given them some power, and princes had been forced in ignorant ages to submit to their usurpations, so they might as they saw cause change those laws, and resume their rights. The next point enquired into was, the authority that kings had in matters of religion and the church. In the New Testament, Christ was himself subject to the civil powers, and charged his disciples not to affect temporal dominion. The apostles also wrote to the churches to be subject to the higher powers, and to call them supreme; they charged every soul to be subject to them: in scripture the king is called head and supreme, and every soul is said to be under him, which joined with the other parts of their sage argument, brought the wise men of that day to the conclusion, that he is supreme head over all persons. In the primitive church the bishops only made rules or canons, but pretended to no compulsive authority, but what came from the civil magistrate. Upon the whole matter, they concluded that the pope had no power in England, and that the king had an entire dominion over all his subjects which extended even to the regulating of ecclesiastical matters. These questions being fully discussed in many disputes, and published in several books, all the bishops, abbots, and friars of England, Fisher only excepted, were so far satisfied with them, that they resolved to comply with the changes the king was determined to make. At the next meeting of parliament there were but seven bishops and ACTS RESPECTING HERETICS. ."517 twelve abbots present, the rest it seems were unwilling to coneur in making- this change, though they complied with it when it was made. Every Sunday during the session a bishop preached at St. Paul's, and declared that the pope had no authority in England : before this, they had only said that a general council was above him, and that the ex- actions of that court, and appeals to it, were unlawful; but now they went a strain higher, to prepare the people for receiving the acts then in agitation. On the 9th of March the commons began the bill for taking away the pope's power, and sent it to the lords on the 14th, who passed it on the 20th without any dissent. In it they set forth the ex- action of the court of Rome, grounded on the pope's power of dispen- sation ; and that as none could dispense with the laws of God, so the king and parliament only had the authority of dispensing with the laws of the land : therefore such licences as were formerly in use, should be for the future granted by the two archbishops, to be confirmed under the great seal. It was moreover appointed that, thereafter, all commerce with Rome should cease. They also declared that they did not intend to alter any article of the catholic faith of Christendom, or that which was declared in the scripture necessary to salvation. They confirmed all the exemptions granted to monasteries by the popes, but subjected them to the king's visitation, and gave the king and his council power to examine and reform all indulgencies and privileges granted by the pope : the offenders against this law were to be punished according to the statutes of praemunire. This act subjected the monasteries entirely to the king's authority, and put them in no small confusion. Those who loved the reformation rejoiced to see the pope's power rooted out, and to find the scripture made the standard of religion. After this act another passed in both houses in six days' time without any opposition, settling the succession of the crown, confirming the sentence of divorce, and the king's marriage with queen Anne, and declaring all marriages within the degrees prohibited by Moses to be unlawful : all that had married within them were appointed to be divorced, and their issue illegitimatized ; and the succession to the crown was settled upon the king's issue by the present queen, or in default of that to the king's right heirs for ever. All were required to swear to maintain the contents of this act; and if any refused the oath, or should say any thing to the slander of the king's marriage, he was to be judged guilty of misprision of treason, and to be punished accordingly. About this time one Phillips complained to the house of commons of the bishop of London for using him cruelly in prison upon suspicion of heresy : the commons sent up this to the lords, but received no answer; they therefore sent some of their members to the bishop, desiring him to reply to the complaints put in against him: but he acquainted the house of lords with it; and they with one consent voted, that none of their house ought to appear or answer to any complaint at the bar of the house of commons. On this the commons let this case fall, and sent up a bill to which the lords agreed, regulating the proceedings against heretics: that whereas, by the statute made by Henry the Fourth, bishops might commit men upon suspicion of heresy ; and heresy was generally defined to be whatever was contrary to the scrip- 318 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. tures or canonical sanctions, which was liable to great ambiguity; therefore that statute was repealed, and none were to be committed for heresy but upon a presentment made by two witnesses ; none were to be accused for speaking against things that were grounded only upon the pope's canons. Bail was to be taken for heretics, and they were to be brought to their trial in open court; and if upon conviction they did not abjure, or relapsed after abjuration, they were to be burnt; a royal writ being first obtained. This was a great check to the bishops' tyranny, and gave no small encouragement to all that favoured the reformation. The convocation sent in a submission at the same time, by which they acknowledged that all the convocations ought to be assembled by the king's writ; and promised upon the words of priests, never to make nor execute any canons without the king's assent. They also desired, that since many of the received canons were found to be contrary to the king's prerogative and the laws of the land, there might be a committee named by the king of thirty-two, the one half out of the houses of parliament and the other from the clergy, empowered to abrogate or regulate them as they should see cause. This was confirmed in parliament, and the act against appeal to Rome was renewed ; and an appeal was allowed from the archbishop to the king, upon which the lord chancellor was to grant a commission for a court of delegates. Another act passed for regulating the elections and consecrations of bishops, condemning all bulls from Rome, and appointing that upon a vacancy the king should grant licence for an election, and should by a missive letter signify the person's name whom he would have chosen ; and within twelve days after these were delivered, the dean and chapter, or prior and convent, were required to return an election of the person named by the king under their seals. The bishop elect was upon that to swear fealty, and a writ was to be issued for his consecration in the usual manner ; after that he was to do homage to the king, upon which both the temporalities and spiritualities were to be restored, and bishops were to exercise their jurisdictions as they had done before. All who transgressed this act were made guilty of a praemunire. A private act passed depriving cardinal Campegio and Jerome de Gainuccii of the bishoprics of Salisbury and Worcester : the reasons given for it were, because they did not reside in their dioceses, for preaching the laws of God, and keeping hospitality, but lived at the court of Rome, and drew 3,000/. a year out of the kingdom. The last act of a particular nature, though relating only to private persons, was concerning the nun of Kent and her accomplices. It was the first occasion of shedding blood in these disputes, and it was much cherished by all the superstitious clergy who adhered to the queen's and the pope's interests. The nun, and many of her accomplices, came to the bar of the house of lords and confessed the whole matter. Among the concealers of this treason, Sir Thomas More and Fisher were named ; the former of whom wrote a long letter upon the subject to Cromwell, giving him a particular account of all the conversations he had with the nun : he acknowledged he had esteemed her highly, not so much out of any regard to her prophecies, but for the opinion he conceived of her holiness and humility. But he added, that he was then convinced ACCOUNT OF ELIZABETH BARTON. 319 that she was the most dissembling hypocrite he had ever known, and guilty of the most detestable hypocrisy and devilish falsehood: he also believed that she had communication with an evil spirit. This justifica- tion of Af ore's prevailed so far, that his name was struck out of the bill. The tale of the nun thus incidently referred to is worth telling. Her name was Elizabeth Barton; she lived in Kent, and in occasional trances into which she fell, she spake such things as made those about her think she was inspired of God. The parson of her parish, named Master, hoping to draw advantage from this, informed archbishop Warham of it, who ordered him to watch her carefully, and bring him an account of whatever he should observe. But it seems she forgot all that she said in her fits when they were over. The artful priest however would not suffer his hopes thus to pass away, but persuaded her she was inspired, and taught her so to counterfeit those trances, that she became very expert in the trick, and could assume them at her pleasure. The matter was soon noised about, and the priest intended to raise the credit of an image of the blessed virgin, which stood in his church, that so pilgrimages and offerings might be made to it by her means. He accordingly associated to himself one Bocking, a monk of Canterbury, and they taught her to say in her fits, that the blessed virgin appeared to her, and told her she could not be well till she visited that image. She spake many good words against ill life, and also against heresy, and the king's suit of divorce then depending; and by many strange motions of her body she seemed to be inwardly possessed. Soon after this, a day was appointed for her cure ; and oefore an assemblage of two thousand people, she was carried to that image: and after she had acted over her fits, she seemed suddenly to recover, which was ascribed to the intercession of the virgin, and the virtue of her image. She then took the veil, and Bocking was her confessor: but between this wolf in sheep's clothing and Elizabeth many persons strongly suspected a criminal intercourse to subsist; while the esteem she was held in bore them down. Many thought her a prophetess, d and Warham c In the reign of queen Mary, the works of Sir T. More were published. But the letter from which the above extract is taken, although printed among the rest, was sup- pressed. The reason of which seems to be, that there was a design to canonize the nun at that time, for she was considered as a martyr to the cause of queen Katharine. To justify this extravagance, there were numbers of feigned miracles concerning the nun ; therefore a letter so full and clear against her was judged best to he concealed. d Amidst the comparative darkness of that age, much allowance may be made for the delusion of the multitude. But in the present day it is unaccountable to see the pervading influence of supersitition enveloping the minds of such numbers. We allude to the spreading of Johanna Southcotte's doctrines. But it is as the apostle hath said, " God shall send them strong delusions, that they should believe a lie." And why is it.l Because their fear towards the Lord is taught by the precepts of men ; they are ever learning, and never come to the knowledge of the truth ; beguiling unstable souls, led away with every wind of doctrine. Not knowing " that many false prophets shall arise, which shall deceive many." The above note was printed in the edition of 1806 : had the editor of that edition lived to become the reviser of this, he might have placed Edward Irving by the side of Johanna Southcotte and Elizabeth Barton. Widely different from these women in intellect and station, his patronage of the unknown tongues has reduced him to a humiliating level with those two vulgar female impostors. Alas for human nature ! To what vile uses may mind as well as body come! 320 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. among the rest. A book was written of her revelations, and an epistle was shewed in letters of gold, pretended to be written to her from Heaven by Mary Magdalen. She said, that when the king was last at Calais, she was carried invisibly beyond sea, and brought back again ; that an angel gave her the sacrament, and that God revealed to her that if the king went on in his divorce, and married another wife, he should fall from his crown and not live a month longer, but should die a villain's death. Several monks of the Charter-house, and the observant friars, with many nuns, and bishop Fisher, came to give credit to all this, set a great value on the woman, and grew very insolent upon her visions. Friar Peyto, preaching in the king's chapel at Greenwich, denounced the judgments of God upon him ; and said, though others as lying prophets deceived him, yet he, in the name of God told him, that dogs should lick his blood as they had done Ahab's. The king bore this patiently, contenting himself with ordering Dr. Corren to preach the next Sunday, and to answer ail that he had said ; who railed against Peyto as a dog and a traitor. Peyto had gone to Canterbury; but Elston, a Franciscan of the same house, interrupted him, and called him one of the lying pro- phets who went about to establish the succession of the crown by adul- tery, and spoke with such vehemence, that the king himself was forced to command silence. So unwilling was Henry to go to extremities, that all which was done upon so high a provocation was, that the parties were summoned before the council, and rebuked for their insolence. The nun's confederates proceeding to publish her revelations in all parts of the kingdom, she and nine of her accomplices were at length appre- hended, when they all, without any rack or torture, discovered the whole conspiracy. Upon this confession they were appointed to go to St. Paul's, where, after a sermon preached upon the occasion by the bishop of Bangor, they repeated their confession in the hearing of" the people, and were sent as prisoners to the Tower. It was given out of course by the papal party that all was extorted from them by violence, and messages were sent to the nun, inducing her to deny all that she had confessed. The king, on this, judged it necessary to proceed to further extremities : accordingly she and six of her chief accomplices were attainted of treason, and the bishop of Rochester and five more were attainted of misprision of treason. But at the intercession of queen Anne, as is expressed in the act, all others that had been concerned with her were pardoned. After this, the nun with her coadjutors were executed at Tyburn. There she voluntary confessed herself to be an impostor, and acknow- ledged the justice of her sentence, laying the blame on those who suf- fered with her, by whom she had been seduced into the crime ; adding, that they had exalted her for no other cause than for her having been of great profit to them, and they had presumed to say, that all she had done was through the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, when they were sensible the whole was human artifice. She then begged pardon of God and the king, and resigned herself to her fate. Thus ended one of the vilest impostures ever known in this country. Had this fallen out in a darker age, in which the world went mad after visions, the king MORE AND FISHER BEFORE THE COUNCIL. 321 might have lost his crown by it. The discovery of it disposed all to look on older stories of the trances of monastical people, as contrivances to serve base ends, and made way for the ruin of that order of men in England ; but all that followed at present upon it was, that the Obser- vants were put out of their houses, and mixed with the other Franciscans, and the Austin friars were put in their room. On the first discovery of the imposture, Cromwell sent Fisher's brother to him to reprove him for his conduct in that business, and to advise him to ask the king's pardon for the encouragement he had given to the nun, which he was confident the king would grant him. But Fisher excused himself, and said he had only tried whether her revelations were true or not. He confessed, that upon the reports he had heard, he was induced to have a high opinion of her, and that he had never discovered any falsehood in her. It is true, she had said some things to him con- cerning the king's death which he had not revealed; but he thought it was not necessary to do it, because he knew she had told them to the king herself : she had named no person that should kill the king, but had only denounced it as a judgment of God upon him: and he had reason to think that the king would have been offended with him if he had spoken of it to him ; he therefore desired to be no more troubled with that matter. On this statement Cromwell wrote him a sharp letter shewing him that he had proceeded rashly in that affair ; being so partial in the matter of the king's divorce, that he easily believed every thing that seemed to make against it. Moreover, he told him how necessary it was to use great caution before extraordinary things should be received or spread about as revelations, since otherwise the peace of the world would be in the hands of every bold and crafty impostor ; and in con- clusion, he advised him again to ask the king's pardon for his rashness, and he assured him that the king was ready to forgive him. But Fisher would make no submission, and was in consequence included within the act; though it was not executed till a new provocation drew him into farther trouble. The secular and regular clergy every where took the oath of succession, which none more zealously promoted than Gardiner, who before the 6th of May got all his clergy to swear it : and the reli- gious orders being apprehensive of the king's jealousies of them, took care to remove them by sending in declarations under the seals of their houses, that in their opinion the king's present marriage was lawful, and that they would always acknowledge him head of the church of England. A meeting of the council was held at Lambeth, to which many were cited that they might take the oath, among whom were Sir Thomas More and Fisher. More was first summoned to take it: he answered, that he neither blamed those that made the acts, nor those that took the oath ; and that he was willing to swear to maintain the succession to the crown, but could not take the oath as it was expressed. Fisher made the same answer, but all the rest that were cited before them took it. More was pressed to give his reasons against it : but he refused, for it might be called a disputing against law: yet he would put them into writing if the king commanded him to do it. Cranmer said, if he did not blame those that took it, it seems he was not persuaded it was a sin, and so Y 322 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. was only doubtful of it ; but he was sure he ought to obey the law, if it was not sinful: so there was a certainty on one hand, and only a doubt on the other, and therefore the former ought to determine him. This More confessed did shake him a little, but he said he thought in his conscience that it would be a sin in him. In conclusion, both he and Fisher declared that they thought it was in the power of the parliament to settle the succession to the crown, and so were ready to swear to that; but they could not take the oath that was tended to them, for by it they must swear to maintain the king's former marriage as unlawful, to which they could not assent; so they were both committed to the Tower, and denied the use of pen, ink, and paper. The old bishop was also hardly used both in his raiment and diet; he had only rags to cover him, and fire was often denied him ; a cruelty not capable of excuse, and as bar- barous as it was imprudent. In winter parliament met again, and the first act that passed declared the king to be supreme head on earth of the church of England, which was ordered to be prefixed to other titles ; and it was enacted, that he and his successors should have full authority to reform all heresies and abuses in the spiritual jurisdiction. By another act, parliament con- firmed the oath of succession, which had not been specified in the former, though agreed to by the lords. They also gave the king the first- fruits and tenths of ecclesiastical benefices, as being the supreme head of the church ; for the king being put in the pope's room, it was thought reasonable to give him the annats which the popes had formerly exacted. Another act passed, declaring some things treason ; one of these was the denying the king any of his titles, or calling him heretic, schismatic, or usurper of the crown. By another act, provision was made for setting up twenty-six suffragan bishops over England, for the more speedy administration of the sacraments, and the better service of God. The supreme diocesan was to present two names to the king, and upon the king's declaring his choice, the archbishop was to consecrate the person, and then the bishop was to delegate such parts of his charge to his care as he thought fitting, which was to continue during his pleasured The great extent of the dioceses in England made it difficult for one bishop to govern them with that exactness that was necessary; these were therefore appointed to assist them in the discharge of the pastoral care. Fisher and More, by two special acts, were attainted of misprision of treason ; five other clerks were in like manner condemned, all for refus- ing to take the oath of succession. The see of Rochester was declared void ; yet it would seem that few were willing to succeed such a man, for it continued vacant two years, and was at last with difficulty filled. But now a new scene commenced ; and before we enter upon it we shall find it necessary to state the progress that the new opinions had made in England during the time of the king's suit of divorce. While e These were the same as those whom the ancient church called Cherepiscopi, who were at first the bishops of some villages, but were afterwards put under the jurisdiction of the bishop of the next city. They were set up before the council of Nice, and continued in the church for many ages; but the bishops devolving their whole spiritual power upon them they were put down, and a decretal epistle was forged in the name of P. Damascus, condemning them. TINDAL'S NEW TESTAMENT BURNED IN CHEAPSIDE. 323 Wolsey was a minister, the reformed preachers were gently used ; and it is probable the king- ordered the bishops to give over their enquiring after them, when the pope began to use him ill; for the progress of heresy was always reckoned at Rome among the mischiefs that would follow upon the pope's rejecting the king's suit. But More coming into favour, he offered new counsels, and thought the king's proceeding severely against heretics would be so meritorious at Rome, that it would work more effectually than all his threatenings had done. Upon this, a severe proclamation was issued both against their books and persons, ordering all the laws against them to be put in execution. Tindal and others at Antwerp were every year either translating or writing books against some of the received errors, and sending them over to England : but his translation of the New Testament gave the greatest wound, and was much complained of by the clergy as full of errors. Tonstal, then bishop of London, being a man of great learning, returning from the treaty of Cambray, to which More and he were sent in the king's name, as he came through Antwerp, dealt with an English merchant who was secretly a friend of Tindal's, to procure him as many of his Testaments as could be had for money. Tindal gladly received this ; for being engaged in a more correct edition, he found he should be better able to proceed if the copies of the old were sold off; he therefore gave the merchant all he had, and Tonstall paying the price of them, got them over to England, and burnt them publicly in Cheapside. This was called a burning of the word of God : and it was said the clergy had reason to revenge themselves on it ; for it had done them more mischief than all other books whatsoever. But a year after this, the second edition being finished, great numbers were sent over to England, when Constantine, one of Tindal's partners, happened to be taken : believing that some of the London merchants furnished them with money, he was promised his liberty if he would discover who they were, when he told him the bishop of London did more than all the world beside ; for he had bought up the greatest part of a faulty impression. The clergy, on their condemning Tindal's trans- lation, promised a new one ; but a year after they said it was unnecessary to publish the Scriptures in English, and that the king did well not to set about it. About this time a singular book written by one Fish, of Gray's Inn, was published. It was entitled, " The Supplication of the Beggars," and had a vast sale. The beggars complained that the alms of the people were intercepted by the mendicant friars, who were a useless burthen to the government ; they also taxed the pope with cruelty for taking no pity on the poor, since none but those who could pay for it were deli- vered out of purgatory. The king was so pleased with this publication, that he would not suffer any thing to be done against the author. More answered it by another supplication in behalf of the souls in purgatory; setting forth the miseries they were in, and the relief which they received by the masses that were said for them ; and therefore called upon their friends to support the religious orders which had now so many enemies. Fish published a serious answer, in which he shewed that there was no mention made of purgatory in scripture; that it was inconsistent 324 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. with the merits of Christ, by which upon sincere repentance all sins were pardoned ; for if they were pardoned, they could not be punished ; and though temporary judgments, either as medicinal corrections or a warning to others, do sometimes fall even on true penitents, yet fiery punishments in another state cannot consist with a free pardon and the remembering of our sins no more/ In expounding many passages of the New Testament, he appealed to More's great friend Erasmus, and shewed that the fire spoken of by St. Paul, as that which would con- sume the wood, hay, and stubble, could only be meant of the fiery trial of persecution. He shewed that the primitive church did not receive the doctrine of purgatory. Ambrose, Jerome, and Austin did not believe it; the last having plainly said that no mention was made of it in scripture. The monks alone brought it in ; and by many wonderful stories possessed the world of the belief of it, and had made a very profitable trade in it. This book so provoked the clergy, that they re- solved to make the author feel a real fire, for endeavouring to extinguish their imaginary one. More objected poverty and want of learning to the new preachers ; but it was answered, the same thing was made use of to disgrace Christ and his apostles; while a plain simplicity of mind, without artificial improvements, was rather thought a good disposition for men that were to bear a cross, and the glory of God appeared more eminent than the instruments seemed contemptible. But the pen being thought too feeble and gentle a tool, the clergy betook themselves to persecution. Many were vexed with imprison- ments for teaching their children the Lord's prayer in English, for har- bouring the preachers, and for speaking against the corruptions in the worship, or the vices of the clergy; but these generally abjured and saved themselves from death. Others more faithful were honoured with martyrdom. One Hinton, formerly a curate, who had gone over to Tindal, was seized on his way back with some books he was conveying to England, and was condemned by archbishop Warham. He was kept long in prison ; but remaining firm to his cause, he was at length burned at Maidstone. But the most remarkable martyr of this day was Thomas Bilney, who was brought up at Cambridge from a child, and became a bold and uncompromising reformer. On leaving the university, he went into several places and preached ; and in his sermons spoke with great boldness against the pride and insolence of the clergy. This was during the ministry of Wolsey, who hearing of his attacks, caused him to be seized and imprisoned. Overcome with fear, Bilney abjured, was pardoned, and returned to Cambridge in the year 1530. Here he fell into great horror of mind in consequence of his instability and the denial of the truth. He became ashamed of himself, bitterly repented of his sin, and, growing strong in faith, resolved to make some atonement by a f It is evident that the papists, who hold the doctrine of purgatory, have no correct notions of a future state, and on this primary doctrine of the New Testament are almost in as great darkness and doubt as were the pagans of antiquity, and as are many heathens to this day. Their future world is in fact much worse than this, and many pious sufferers would infinitely prefer remaining here, with all the infirmities that beset them, than go hence to fall into purgatorial fires, even though but of a few years duration. MARTYRDOM OF THOMAS B1LNEY. 325 public avowal of his apostacy and confession of his sentiments. To prepare himself for his task, he studied the scriptures with deep atten- tion for two years ; at the expiration of which he again quitted the university, and went into Norfolk, where he was born, and preached up and down that country against idolatry and superstition; exhorting the people to live well, to give much alms, to believe in Christ, and to offer up their souls and wills to him in the sacrament. He openly confessed his own sin of denying the faith; and using no precaution as he went about, was soon taken by the bishop's officers, condemned as a relapse, and degraded. Sir Thomas More not only sent down the writ to burn him, but in order to make him suffer another way, he affirmed that he had said in print that he had abjured; but no paper signed by him was ever shewn, and little credit was due to the priests that gave it out that he did it by word of mouth. Parker, afterwards archbishop, was an eye-witness of his sufferings. He bore all his hardships with great forti- tude and resignation, and continued very cheerful after his sentence. He ate the poor provisions that were brought him heartily, saying, He must keep up a ruinous cottage till it fell. He had these words of Isaiah often in his mouth, " When thou walkest through the fire, thou shalt not be burned:" and by burning his finger in the candle, he pre- pared himself for the fire, and said it would only consume the stubble of his body, while it would purify his soul, and give it a swifter con- veyance to the region where Elijah was conveyed by another fiery chariot. On the 10th of November he was brought to the stake, where he re- peated the creed, as a proof that he was a true Christian. He then prayed earnestly, and with the deepest feeling offered this prayer — "Enter not into judgment with thy servant, O Lord, for in thy sight no flesh living can be justified." Dr. Warner attended and embraced him, shedding many tears, and wishing he might die in as good a frame of mind as Bilney then was. The friars requested him to inform the people, that they were not instrumental to his death, which he did, so that the last act of his life was full of charity, even to those who put him to death. The officers then put the reeds and fagots about his body, and set fire to the first, which made a great flame, and disfigured his face : he held up his hands, and often struck his breast, crying sometimes " Jesus!" sometimes " Credo!" but the flame was blown away from him several times, the wind being very high, till at length the wood taking fire, the flame was stronger, and he yielded up his spirit to God who gave it. As his body shrunk up it leaned down on the chain, till one of the officers with his halberd struck out the staple of the chain behind him, on which it fell down into the bottom of the fire, when they heaped up wood upon it and consumed it. The sufferings, the confession, and the heroic death of this martyr, inspired and animated others with the same fortitude. Byfield, who had formerly abjured, was taken dispersing Tindal's books; and he, with one Tewkesbury, were condemned by the bishop of London, and burnt. Two men and a woman suffered the same fate at 326 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. York. Of these proceedings the parliament complained to the king; but this did not check the sanguinary proceedings of the clergy. One Bainham, a counsellor of the Temple, was taken on suspicion of heresy, was whipped in the presence of Sir T. More, and afterwards racked in the Tower ; yet he could not be wrought on to accuse any : through fear, however, he abjured himself. After this being discharged, he was in great trouble of mind, and could find no quiet till he went publicly to church, where he openly confessed his sins, and declared the torments he felt in his conscience for what he had done. Upon this he was again seized on, and condemned for having said that Thomas a Becket was a murderer, and was damned if he had not repented ; and that in the sacrament, Christ's body was received by faith, and not eaten with the mouth. Sentence was passed on him by Stokesly, and he was burnt. Soon after this More delivered up the great seal, in consequence of which the preachers had some ease. The rage of persecution stopped not at the living, but vented itself even on the dead. Lord Tracy made a will by which he left his soul to God, in hope of mercy through Christ, without the help of any saint; and therefore he declared that he would leave nothing for soul-masses. This will being brought into the bishop of London's court to be proved, after his death, gave so much offence, that he was condemned as a heretic, and an order was sent to the Chancellor of Worcester to raise his body ; but he proceeded farther and burnt it, which could not be justified, since he was not a relapse. Tracy's heir sued him for it, and he was turned out of his place, and fined 400Z. The clergy proclaimed an indulgence of forty days' pardon to any that carried a fagot to the burning of a heretic, that so cruelty might seem the more meritorious. An aged man, Harding, being condemned by Longland, bishop of Lincoln, as he was tied to the stake, a barbarian flung a fagot with such force against him, that it dashed out his brains. The reformed enjoyed a respite of two years, when the crafty Gardiner represented to the king, that it would give him great advan- tages against the pope if he would take some occasion to shew his hatred of heresy. Accordingly a young man named Frith was chosen as a sacrifice for this affected zeal for religion. He was distinguished for learning, and was the first who wrote against the corporeal presence in the sacrament in England. He followed Zuinglius's doctrine on these grounds: Christ received in the sacrament gave eternal life, but this was given only to those who believed, from which he inferred that he was received only by faith. St. Paul said, that the fathers before Christ eat the same spiritual food with christians; from which it appears that Christ is now no more corporeally present to us than he was to them ; and he argued from the nature of sacraments in general, and the end of the Lord's supper, that it was only a commemoration. Yet, upon these premises, he built no other conclusion but that Christ's presence was no article of faith. His reasons he put in writing, which falling into the hands of Sir Thomas More, were answered by him : but Frith never saw his publication till he was put in prison; and then, though he was loaded with irons, and had no books allowed, he replied. He insisted much on the argument, that the Israelites did eat the same food, 1 Kt lll'S ARGUMENTS AGAINST TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 327 and drank of the same rock, and that rock was Christ; and since Christ was only mystically and by faith received by them, he concluded that be was at the present time also received only in the same manner. He shewed that Christ's words, " This is my body," were accommodated to the Jewish phrase of calling the lamb the Lord's passover; and con- tained his opinion with many passages out of the fathers, in which the elements were called signs and figures of Christ's body; and they said, that upon consecration they did not cease to be bread and wine, but remained still in their own proper natures. He also shewed that the fathers were strangers to all the consequences of that opinion, as that a body could be in more places than one at the same time, or could be every where in the manner of a spirit : yet he concluded, that if that opinion were held only as a speculation, so that adoration were not offered to the elements, it might be well tolerated, but that he condemned it as gross idolatry. This was intended by him to prevent such heats in England, as were raised in Germany between the Lutherans and Helvetians, by reason of their different opinions concerning the sacra- ment. For these offences he was seized in May, 1533, and brought before Stokesly, Gardiner, and Longland. They charged him with not believ- ing in purgatory and transubstantiation. He gave the reasons that de- termined him to look on neither of these as articles of faith ; but thought that the affirming or denying them ought to be determined positively. The bishops seemed unwilling to proceed to sentence; but he continuing resolute, Stokesly pronounced it, and so delivered him to the secular arm, insisting that his punishment might be moderated, so that the rigour might not be too extreme, nor yet the gentleness of it too much mitigated. This obtestation by the bowels of Christ was thought a mockery, when all the world knew that it was intended that he should be burnt. One Hewitt, an apprentice of London, was also condemned with him on the same account. They were brought to the stake at Smithfield on the 4th of July, 1533. On arriving there, Frith expressed great joy, and hugged the fagots with seeming transport. A priest named Cook, who stood by, called to the people not to pray for them more than they would do for a dog: at this Frith smiled, and prayed God to forgive him ; after which the fire was kindled, which consumed them both to ashes. This was the last instance of the cruelty of the clergy at present; for the act already mentioned, regulating their proceedings, followed soon after. Phillips, at whose complaint that bill was begun, was committed upon suspicion of heresy; a copy of Tracy's will was found about him, and butter and cheese were also found in his chamber in Lent ; but he being required to abjure, appealed to the king as supreme judge in such matters. Upon that he was set at liberty; but whether he was tried by the king or not, is not upon record. The act being passed, gave the new preachers and their followers some respite. The king was also empowered to reform all heresies and idolatries: and his affairs now obliged him to unite himself to the princes of Germany, that by their means he might so embroil the em- peror's affairs, as not to give him leisure to turn his arms against Eng- 328 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. land ; and this produced a slackening of all severities against the reformers at home; for those princes, in the first fervour of the refor- mation, made it an article in all their treaties, that none should be pro- secuted for favouring their doctrine. The queen also openly protected them; she took Latimer and Shaxton to be her chaplains, and promoted them to the bishoprics of Worcester and Salisbury. Cranmer was fully convinced of the necessity of a reformation, and that he might carry it on with true judgment, and justify it by good authorities, he made a careful collection of the opinions of the ancient fathers, and later doctors, in all the points of religion, comprising six folio volumes. He was a man of great candour and much patience and industry; and thus was on all accounts well prepared for that work, to which the providence of God now called him : and though he was in some things too much subject to the king's imperious temper, yet in the matter of the six ar- ticles, he shewed that he wanted not the courage that became a bishop in the most critical affairs. Cromwell was his great and constant friend ; a man of mean birth but of excellent qualities, as appeared in his adhering to his master Wolsey after his fall. The following incident strongly characterizes the generous temper of this minister : — At the height of his prosperity he happened to see a merchant of Lucca, who had pitied and relieved him when he was in Italy, but did not so much as know him, or pretended to any returns for the small favours he had formerly shewed him, and was then reduced to a low condition. Cromwell, however, made himself known to him, gave him the strongest acknowledgments and the most substantial proofs of his gratitude and liberality. While these men set themselves to carry on a reformation, another party was formed who as vigorously opposed it. This was headed by the duke^of Norfolk and Gardiner ; and almost all the clergy joined with them. They persuaded the king that nothing would give the pope or the emperor such advantages, as his making any changes in religion ; and it would reflect much on him, if he who had written so learnedly for the faith, should in spite to the pope make any changes in it. Nothing would encourage other princes so much to follow his example, or keep his subjects so faithfully to him, as his continuing steadfast in the ancient religion. These things made a great impression on him. On the other hand, Cranmer represented to him that if he rejected the pope's authority it was very absurd to let such opinions or practices continue in the church which had no other foundation but papal decrees; and therefore he desired that this might be put to the trial ; he ought to depend on God, and hope for good success if he proceeded in this matter according to the duty of a christian prince. England was a complete body within itself; and though in the Roman empire, when united under one prince general councils were easily assembled, yet now they were not easily to be converted, and therefore should not be relied on ; but every prince- ought to reform the church in his dominions by a national synod ; and if in the ancient church such synods condemned heresies, and reformed abuses, this might be much more done, when Europe was divided into so many kingdoms. It was visible that though both the emperor and the princes of Germany had for twenty years desired a general council, it CB W.MKK's SPEECH. 329 could not be obtained of the pope; he had indeed offered one at Mantua, but that was only an illusion. Upon this the king desired others of his bishops to give their opinions concerning the emperor's power of calling councils ; so Cranmer of Canterbury, Tonstal of London, Clark of Bath and Wells, and Goodrick of Ely, made answer, that though ancient councils were called by the Roman emperors, yet that was done by reason of the extent of their monarchy, which had now ceased, and other princes had an entire monarchy within their dominions. At this assembly of prelates Cranmer made a long speech, setting forth the necessity of reformation. He began with the impostures and deceit used by the canonists and other courtiers at Rome. Then he spoke to the authority of a general council ; he shewed that it flowed not from the number of the bishops, but from the matter of their decisions, which were received with an universal consent ; for there were many more bishops at the council of Arimini, which was condemned, than either at Nice or Constantinople, which was received. Christ had named no head of the whole church, as God had named no head of the world ; but that grew up for order's sake, as there were archbishops set over provinces; yet some popes were con- demned for heresy, as Liberius and others. If faith must be showed by works, the ill lives of most popes of late shewed that their faith was to be suspected ; and all the privileges which princes or synods granted to that see might be recalled. Popes ought to submit themselves to general councils, and were to be tried by them ; he showed what were the pre- sent corruptions of the pope and his court, which needed reformation. The pope, according to the decree of the council of Basil, was the church's vicar, and not Christ's; and so was accountable to it. The churches of France declared the council to be above the pope, which had been acknowledged by many popes themselves. The power of councils had also bounds, nor could they judge of the rights of princes, or proceed to a sentence against a king ; nor were their canons of any force till princes added their sanctions to them. Councils ought also to proceed moderately, even against those that held errors, and ought not to impose things indifferent too severely. The scriptures, and not men's traditions, ought to be the standard of their definitions. The divines of Paris held, that a council could not make a new article of faith that was not in the scriptures ; and all Christ's promises to the church were to be understood with this condition, " if they kept the faith :" there- fore there was great reason to doubt concerning the authority of a council -, some of them had contradicted others, and many others were never received. The fathers had always appealed to the scriptures, as superior in authority to councils, by which only all controversies ought to be decided: yet, on the other hand, it was dangerous to be wise in one's own conceit, and he thought when the fathers all agreed in the exposition of any place of scripture, that ought to be looked on as flow- ing from the spirit of God. He showed how little regard was to be had to a council, in which the pope presided, and that if any common error had passed upon the world, when that came to be discovered, every one was at liberty to shake it off, even though they had sworn to maintain that error: this he applied to the pope's authority. This was the state 330 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. of the court after king Henry had shaken off the pope's power, and assumed a supremacy in ecclesiastical affairs. The nobility and gentry were generally well satisfied with the change ; but the body of the people were more under the power of the priests, who studied to infuse into them great fears of a change in religion. It was said the king now joined himself to heretics ; that both the queen, Cranmer, and Cromwell favoured them. It was left free to dispute what were articles of faith, and what were only the decrees of popes ; and changes would be made under this pretence, that they only rejected those opinions which were supported by the papal authority. The monks and friars saw themselves left at the king's mercy. Their bulls could be no longer useful to them. The trade of new saints, and indulgences, was now at an end; they had also some intimations that Cromwell was form- ing a project for suppressing them : so they thought it necessary for their own preservation to embroil the king's affairs as much as was possible ; therefore both in confessions and discourses, they were inspiring the people with a dislike of his proceedings. But the practices of the clergy at home, and of cardinal Pole abroad, the libels there were published, and the rebellions that were afterwards raised in England, wrought so much on the king's temper, naturally imperious and boisterous, that he became too apt to commit acts of severity, and to bring his subjects into trouble upon slight grounds ; and his new title of head of the church seemed to have increased his former vanity, and made him fancy that all his subjects were bound to regulate their belief by the measures he set them. The bishops and abbots did what they could to free the king of any jealousies he might have of them; and of their own accord, before any law was made about it, they swore to maintain the king's supre- macy. The first act of it was making Cromwell vicar-general, and visitor of all the monasteries and churches of England, with a delega- tion of the king's supremacy to him ; he was also empowered to give commissions subaltern to himself; and all wills, where the estate was in value above 200/. were to be proved in his court. This was after- wards enlarged, and he was made the king's vicegerent in ecclesiastical matters, and had the precedence of all next the royal family ; and his authority was in all points the same as the pope's legates. Pains were taken to engage all the clergy to declare for the supremacy. At Oxford a public determination was made, to which every member assented, that the pope had no more authority in England than any other foreign bishop. The Franciscans at Richmond made some opposition ; they said that by the rule of St. Francis, they were bound to obey the holy see. The bishop of Litchfield told them that all the bishops in England, all the heads of houses, and the most learned divines, had signed that proposition. St. Francis made his rule in Italy, where the bishop of Rome was metropolitan, but that ought not to extend to England : and it was shewed that the chapter cited by them was not written by him, but added since; yet they continued positive in their refusal to sign it. It is well known that all the monks and friars, though they appeared to comply, yet hated this new power of the king's; the people were VISITATION OF THE MONASTERIES. 331 also startled at it : so one Dr. Leighton, who had been in the cardinal's service with Cromwell, proposed a general visitation of all the religious houses in England ; and thought that nothing would reconcile the nation so much to the king's supremacy, as to see some good effect flow from it. Others deemed this too bold a step, and feared it would provoke the religious orders too much. Yet it was known that they were guilty of such disorders, as nothing could so effectually check as enquiry. Cranmer led the way to this by a metropolitan visitation, for which he obtained the king's licence : he took care to see that the pope's name was struck out of all the offices of the church, and that the king's supremacy was generally acknowledged. In October the general visitation of the monasteries commenced; which was divided into several precincts : instructions were given them what things to enquire after, as whether the houses had the full number according to their foundation ? if they performed divine worship in the appointed hours? what exemptions they had? what were their sta- tutes ? how their heads were chosen ? and how their vows were observed ? Whether they lived according to the severities of their orders ? how the master and other officers did their duties ? how their lands and revenues were managed ? what hospitality was kept ? what care was taken of the novices ? what benefices were in their gift, and how they disposed of them? how the inclosures of the nunneries were preserved? whether the nuns went abroad, or if men were admitted to come to them ? how they employed their time, and what priests they had for their confessors ? They were also ordered to give them some injunctions in the king's name, that they should acknowledge his supremacy, and maintain the act of succession, and declare all to be absolved from rules or oath that bound them to obey the pope; and that all their statutes tending to that bond should be erased out of their books. That the abbots should not have choice dishes, but plain tables, for hospitality ; and that the scriptures should be read at meals ; that they should have daily lectures of divinity; and maintain some of every house at the university. The abbot was required to instruct the monks in true religion, and to shew them that it did not consist in outward ceremonies, but in clearness of heart, and purity of life, and the worship of God in spirit and truth. Rules were given about their revenues, and against admitting any under twenty years of age. Visitors were empowered to punish offenders, or to bring them to answer before the visitor-general. What the ancient British monks were is not well known ; whether they were governed according to the rules of the monks of Egypt or France, is matter of conjecture. They were in all things obedient to their bishops, as all the monks of the primitive times were. But upon the confusions which the Gothic war brought upon Italy, Benedict set up a new order with more artificial rules for its government. Not long after, Gregory the Great raised the credit of that order much, by his dialogues: and Austin the monk being sent by him to convert England, founded a monastery at Canterbury, which bore his name, and which both the king and Austin exempted from the archbishop's jurisdiction, s s This requires some explanation, as Austin, or Augustine, was himself archbishop of Canterbury, and could only concur in such a measure by his will. 332 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. After that many other abbeys were founded and exempted by the kings of England, if credit is due to the records and charters of the monas- teries. In the end of the eighth century, the Danes made several descents upon England; and finding the most wealth and the least resistance in the monasteries, they generally plundered them, insomuch that the monks were forced to quit their seats, and leave them to the secular clergy : so that in King Edgar's time there was scarce a monk left in all England. He was a lewd and cruel prince: and Dunstan and other monks taking advantage from some horrors of conscience into which he fell, persuaded him that restoring the monastic state would be matter of great merit ; on which he converted many of the chapters into monas- teries. He only exempted them from all payments to the bishops ; but others were exempted from episcopal jurisdiction. In some only the precinct was exempted; in others, the exemption was extended to all the lands or churches belonging to them. The latest exemption from epis- copal jurisdiction granted by any king, is that of Battel, founded by William the Conqueror. After this the exemptions were granted by the popes, who pretending to an universal jurisdiction, assumed this among other usurpations. Some abbeys had also the privilege of being sanctuaries to all who fled to them. The foundation of all their wealth, was the belief of purgatory, and of the virtue that was in masses to redeem the souls of men; and that these eased the torments of departed spirits, and at last delivered them. Hence it passed among all for piety to parents, and of care for their own souls and families, to endow those houses with some lands, on condition that they should have masses said for them, as it was agreed on more or less frequently, according to the measure of the gift. This would have drawn the whole wealth of the nation into those houses, if the statute of Mortmain had not put some restraint to the practice. They also persuaded the world that the saints interceded for them, and would take it kindly at their hands, if they made great offerings to their shrines, and would thereupon intercede the more earnestly for them. The credulous vulgar, measuring the court of heaven by those on earth, believed presents might be of great efficacy there, and thought the new favourites would have the most weight in their intercessions : so that upon every new canonization there was a fresh fit of devotion towards the last saint, whilst the elder was almost forgotten. Some images were believed to have an extraordinary virtue in them, and pilgrimages to these were much extolled. There was also great rivalry among the several orders, as well as the different houses of the same orders, every one magnifying their own saints, images, and relics most. The wealth of these houses brought them under great corruptions. They were generally very disso- lute, and grossly ignorant. Their privileges were become a public griev- ance, and their lives gave great scandal to the world. So that, as they had found it easy to bear down the secular clergy, when their own vices were more secret, the begging friars found it easy to carry the esteem of the world from them. These, under the appearance of poverty, and coarse diet and clothing, gained much esteem, and became almost the only preachers and confessors then in the world. They had a general QUEEN KATHARINE'S DEATH. 333 at Rome, from whom they received such directions as the popes sent them ; so that they were more useful to the papacy than the monks had boon. They had also the school-learning in their hands, on which ac- count they were generally much cherished. But living much in the world they could not conceal their vices so artfully as the monks had done ; and though several reformations had been made of their orders, they had all fallen under great scandal and disesteem. The king in- tended to erect new bishoprics; but to do this it was necessary to make use of some of their revenues, and he thought the best way to bring their wealth into his hands, would be to expose their vices. Cranmer promoted this because the houses were founded on gross abuses, and subsisted by them; which were necessary to be removed if a refor- mation went on. The extent of many dioceses was also such, that one man could not oversee them; to remedy which, he intended to have more bishoprics founded, and to have houses at every cathedral for the education of those who should be employed in the pastoral charge. The visitors went over England, and found in many places monstrous disorders. The most unnatural crimes were found in many houses : great factions and barbarous cruelties were in others ; and in some there were found tools for coining. The report contained many abominable things, not fit to be mentioned: some of these were printed, but the greater part were suppressed and concealed. The first house that was surrendered to the king was Langdon, in Kent; the abbot was found to live with a woman who went in the habit of a lay brother. To prevent greater evil to himself, he and ten of his monks signed a resignation of their house to the king. Two other monasteries in the same county, Folkstone and Dover, followed their example. And in the following year, four others made the like surrenders. In the year 1536, queen Katharine died. She had been resolute in maintaining her title and state, saying that when the pope had judged her marriage was good, she would die rather than do any thing to pre- judice it. She desired to be buried among the Observant friars, who had most strongly supported and suffered for her cause. She ordered 500 masses to be said for her soul ; and that one of her women should go a pilgrimage to our lady of Walsingham, and give two hundred nobles on her way to the poor. When she found death approaching, she wrote to the emperor, recom- mending her daughter Mary, who afterwards became queen, to his care. She also wrote to the king, with this inscription, " My dear lord, king, and husband/' She forgave him all the injuries he had done her, and wished him to have regard to his soul. She recommended her daughter to his protection, and desired him to be kind to her three maids, and to pay her servants a year's wages. Strange to say, she concluded hei letter to the king with this sentence, " Mine eyes desire you above all things." She expired on the eighth of January, at Kimbolton, in the fiftieth year of her age, having been thirty-three years in England. She was devout and exemplary; used to work with her own hands, and kept her women at work with her. Her alms-deeds, joined to her troubles, be- gat an esteem for her among all ranks of people. The king ordered her to 334 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. be buried in the abbey of Peterborough, and was, or seemed to be, considerably affected at her death. The same year the parliament confirmed the act which empowered two to revise the ecclesiastical laws ; but no time being limited for its completion it had no effect. The chief business of this session was the suppressing of monasteries under 200Z. a year. The act set forth the great disorders of those houses, and the many unsuccessful attempts made to reform them. The few truly serious people that were in them were ordered to be placed in the greater houses, where religion was better observed, and the revenues given to the king. The king was also em- powered to make new foundations of such of the suppressed houses as he pleased, which were in all three hundred and seventy. This parlia- ment, after six years' continuance, was dissolved rather suddenly, and somewhat against the will of the king. It was more than suspected, by persons interested in the preservation of the remaining monasteries, that they would soon share the fate of their predecessors, and the most strenuous efforts were therefore made to get rid of the parliament in order to keep a few of these obnoxious establishments in the land. In a convocation which sat at this time, a motion was made for trans- lating the Bible into English, which had been promised when Tindal's translation was condemned, but was afterwards laid aside by the clergy, as neither necessary nor expedient. It was said, that those whose office was to teach people the word of God, did all they could to suppress it. Moses, the prophets, and the apostles, wrote in the vulgar tongue: Christ directed the people to search the scriptures; and as soon as any nation was converted to the christian religion, the Bible was translated into their language; nor was it ever taken out of the hands of the people, till the christian religion was so corrupted, that it was deemed impolitic to trust them with a book which would so manifestly discover those errors : hence the legends, as agreeing better with those abuses, were read instead of the word of God. Cranmer thought, that putting the Bible into the people's hands would be the most effectual means of promoting the reformation ; and therefore moved that the king might be prayed to order it. But Gardiner and all the other party opposed this vehemently. They pleaded that all the extravagant opinions then in Germany rose from the indiscreet use of the scriptures. Some of those opinions were at this time disseminated in England, both against the divinity and incarnation of Christ, and the usefulness of the sacra- ments. It was therefore urged that during these distractions the use of the scriptures would prove a great snare, and proposed that instead of them, there might be some short exposition of the christian religion put in the people's hands, which might keep them in subjection to the king and the church : but it was carried in the convocation for the affirmative. At court men were much divided in this point; some said, if the king gave way to it, he would never be able after that to govern his people, and that they would break into many divisions : on the other hand, it was maintained, that nothing would make the difference between the pope's power and the king's supremacy appear more eminently, than for the one to give the people the free use of the word of God, while the other kept them in darkness, and ruled them by a blind obedience. It would QUEEN ANNE SENT TO THE TOWER. 335 also go far to extinguish the interest that either the pope or the monks had in England. The Bible would teach them, that the world had been long deceived by their impostures, which had no foundation in the scrip- tures. These reasons, joined with the interest that the queen had in the king-, prevailed so far with him, that he gave order for setting about this important affair with all possible haste; and within three years the impression of it was finished. The popish party saw with disappointment and concern, that the new queen was the great obstacle to their designs. Henry had married Anne chiefly through passionate fondness, and she grew not only in the king's esteem, but in the love of the nation. It was reported that she bestowed above 14,000/. in alms to the poor, and she seemed to delight in doing good. Soon after Katharine's death, she bore a dead son, which was believed to have made some impression on the king's mind unfavourable to her. It was also considered that Katharine being dead, the king might marry another papist, and thus regain the friendship of the pope and the emperor, and that the issue by any other marriage would never be questioned. With these reasons of state the king's affections coincided, for he was now in love with Jane Seymour, whose disposition was tempered between the gravity of Katharine and the gaiety of Anne. The latter used all possible arts to re-inflame a dying affection; but the king was changed, and even determined on her de- struction : and her brother's wife being jealous of her husband and her, prejudiced the king with her own extravagant apprehensions, and filled his head with many false reports. Norris, Weston, and Brereton, the king's servants, and Smeton a musician, were said to have been particularly officious about her. Something was pretended to have been sworn by the lady Wingfield at her death that determined the king, but there is little light left to judge of that matter. The king left her, upon which she was confined to her chamber, and the five persons before mentioned were seized and sent to the Tower, and the next day she was sent thither. On the river some privy counsellors came to examine her, but she made deep protestations of her innocence ; and on landing at the Tower she fell on her knees and prayed God to assist her, as she was free of the crimes laid to her charge. The others who were imprisoned on her account, denied every thing, except Smeton, who, it is supposed through hopes of favour and acquittal, confessed that he had been criminally connected with her. This, however, he denied when he was brought afterwards to execution, a denial of undoubted proot that she was indeed innocent. She was of a remarkable lively temper, and having resided long in the French court, had imbibed in her beha- viour somewhat of the levities of that people. She was also free from pride, and hence, in her exterior, she might have condescended too much to her familiar servants. She even confessed she had once rallied Norris, and told him that he was in love with her, and only waited the king's death to marry her: this was the head and front of her offending. The whole court however was turned against her, and she had no friend about the king but Cranmer : her enemies therefore procured an order for him not to come to court; yet he put all to hazard, and wrote the king a long letter upon this critical juncture. He acknowledged, 336 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. that if the things reported of the queen were true, it was the greatest affliction that ever befel the king, and therefore exhorted him to bear it with patience and submission to the will of God : he confessed he never had a better opinion of any woman than of her; and that next to the king he was more bound to her than to all persons living, and therefore he begged his leave to pray that she might be found innocent : he loved her not a little, because of the love which she seemed to bear to God and his gospel ; but if she was guilty, all who love the gospel must hate her, as having been the greatest slander possible to the gospel : but he prayed the king not to entertain any prejudice to the gospel on her account, nor give the world to say, that his love to that was founded on the influence she had with him. But the king was inexorable. The indictments were laid in the counties of Kent and Middlesex, the former relating to what was done in Greenwich. Smeton pleaded guilty, as before; the rest pleaded not guilty; but they were all condemned. On the 15th of May the queen and her brother, who was then a peer, were tried before the duke of Norfolk, as high steward, and a court of twenty-seven peers. The crime charged on her was, that she had pro- cured illicit favours from her brother and four other persons, and had often said to them, that the king never had her heart; and this was to the slander of the issue begotten between the king and her, which was treason by the act which confirmed her marriage, so that this act was now turned to her ruin. They would not now acknowledge her the king's lawful wife, and therefore did not found the treason on the known statute 25th Edw. III. It does not appear what evidence was brought against her; for Smeton being already condemned could not be subpoenaed to attest her guilt; and his never being brought face to face against her, gave just suspicion that he was persuaded to his con- fession by base practices. The evidence rested only on the declaration of a dead woman; but whether that was forged or real, can never be known till the great day discovers it. The forgery, however, rests on the strongest suspicion. The earl of Northumberland was one of the judges. He had for- merly been in love with the queen, and either from reviving affection, or from some other circumstance, he became suddenly so ill that he could not stay out the trial. Yet all this did not satisfy the king ; he resolved to illegitimatize his daughter, the lady Elizabeth, and in order to that to annul his marriage with the queen. It was remembered that the earl of Northumberland had said to cardinal Wolsey, that he had en- gaged himself so far with her that he could not go back, which was perhaps done by some promise conceived in words of the future tense ; but no promise, unless in the words of the present tense, could annul the subsequent marriage. Perhaps the queen did not understand that difference, or probably the fear of a terrible death wrought so much on her, that she confessed the contract; but the earl denied it positively, and took the sacrament upon it, wishing it might turn to his damnation if there was ever either contract or promise of marriage between them. Upon her own confession, however, her marriage with the king was judged null from the beginning, and she was condemned, although nothing could be more contradictory; for if she was never the king's ACTS AGAINST THE POPE. 33*7 wife, she could not be guilty of adultery, there being no breach of the faith of wedlock. But the king was resolved both to be rid of her, and to declare the daughter she had borne him illegitimate. The day before her death, she sent her last message to the king, as- serting her innocence, recommending her daughter to his care, and thanking him for his advancing her first to be a marchioness, then to be a queen, and now, when he could raise her no higher upon earth, for sending her to be a saint in heaven. The day she died the lieutenant of the Tower wrote to Cromwell, that it was not fit to publish the time of her execution, for the fewer that were present it would be the better, since he believed she would declare her innocence at the hour of her death; for that morning she had made great protestations of it when she received the sacrament, and seemed to long for death with great joy and pleasure. On being told that the executioner, who had been sent for expressly from France, was very skilful, she expressed great happi- ness; for she said, with laughter, she had a very short neck. A little before noon, she was brought to the place of execution; there were present some of the chief officers and great men of the court. She was it seems prevailed on, out of regard to her daughter, to make no reflections on the cruel treatment she met with, nor to say any thing touching the grounds on which sentence was passed against her. She only desired that all would judge the best; she highly commended the king, and then took her leave of the world. She remained for some time in her private devotions, and concluded, "To Christ I commend my soul;" upon which the executioner struck off her head: and so little respect was paid to her body, that it was with brutal insolence put in a chest of elm-tree, made to send arrows into Ireland, and then buried in the chapel in the Tower. Norris then had his life promised him if he would accuse her; but this faithful and virtuous servant said he knew she was innocent, and would die a thousand times rather than defame her : he and the three others were therefore beheaded, all of them con- tinuing to the last to vindicate her. The day after Anne's death the king married Jane Seymour, who gained more upon him than all his wives before; but she was fortunate that she did not out-live his love to her. Pope Clement VII. was now dead, and Farnese succeeded him by the name of Paul III., who, after an unsuccessful attempt which he made to reconcile himself with the king, when that was rejected, thundered out a most terrible sentence of deposition against him. Yet now, since the two queens upon whose account the breach was made were out of the way, he thought it a fit time to attempt the recovery of the papal interest, and ordered Cassalli to let the king know that he had been driven, much against his mind, to pass sentence against him, and that now it would be easy for him to recover the favour of the apostolic see. But the king, instead of hearkening to the proposition, caused two acts to be passed, one for utterly extinguishing the pope's authority; in which it was made a praemunire for any one to acknowledge it, or to persuade others to it; and in the other, all bulls and all privileges flowing from them were declared null and void ; only marriages or con- secrations made by virtue of them were excepted. All who enjoyed z 338 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. privileges by these bulls were required to bring them into the chancery, upon which the archbishop was to make them a new grant of them, which being confirmed under the great seal was to be of full force in law. The convocation sat at the same time, and was much employed : for the house of lords was often adjourned, because the spiritual lords were busy in the convocation. Latimer preached the Latin sermon; he was the most celebrated preacher of that time ; the simplicity of his matter, and his zeal in expressing it, being preferred to more elaborate compo- sitions. They first confirmed the sentence of the divorce of the king's marriage with queen Anne. Then the lower house made an address to the upper house complaining of sixty-seven opinions, which they found were much in the kingdom. These were either the tenets of the old Lollards, or the new Reformers, or of the Anabaptists; but many of them were only indiscreet expressions, which might have flowed from the heat and folly of some rash zealots, who had endeavoured to disgrace both the received doctrines and rites. They also complained of some bishops who were wanting in their duty to suppress such abuses. This was understood as a reflection on Cranmer, Shaxton, and Latimer, the first of whom it was thought was now declining by queen Anne's fall. But all these projects failed, for Cranmer was now fully established in the king's favour; and Cromwell was sent to them with a message from his majesty, that they should reform the rites and ceremonies of the church according to the rules set down in scripture, which he said ought to be preferred to all glosses or decrees of popes. There was one Alesse, a Scotchman, whom Cromwell entertained in his house, who being appointed to deliver his opinion, largely shewed that there was no sacrament instituted by Christ but baptism and the Lord's supper. Stokesly answered him in a long discourse upon the principles of the school-divinity; upon which Cranmer took occasion to shew the vanity of scholastic learning, and the uncertainty of tradition; and that reli- gion had been so corrupted in the latter ages, that there was no finding out the truth but by resting on the authority of the scriptures. Fox, bishop of Hereford, seconded him, and told them that the world was now awake, and would be no longer imposed on by the niceties and dark terms of the schools ; for the laity now not only read the scriptures in the vulgar tongues, but searched the original languages; therefore they must not think to govern them as they had been in the times of ignorance. Among the bishops, Cranmer, Goodrick, Shaxton, Latimer, Fox, Hilsey, and Barlow, pressed the reformation ; but Lee, archbishop of York, bishops Stokesly, Tonstall, Gardiner, Longland, and several others opposed it as much. The contest would have been much sharper, had not the king sent certain articles to be considered by them, when the following mixture of truth and error was agreed upon. 1. That the bishops and preachers ought to instruct the people ac- cording to the scripture, the three creeds, and the four first general councils. 2. That baptism was necessary to salvation, and that children ought to be baptised for the pardon of original sin, and obtaining the Holy Ghost. ARTICLES PROPOSED BY THE KING. 339 3. That penance was necessary to salvation, and that it consisted in confession, contrition, and amendment of life, with the external works of charity, to which a lively faith ought to be joined; and that confes- sion to a priest was necessary where it might be had. 4. That in the eucharist, under the forms of bread and wine, the very flesh and blood of Christ was received. 5. That justification was the remission of sins, and a perfect renova- tion in Christ; and that not only outward good works, but inward holiness was absolutely necessary. As for outward ceremonies, the people were to be taught, that it was meet to have images in churches, but they ought to avoid the superstition as has been usual in time past, and not to worship the image, but only God. . That they were to honour the saints, but not to expect those things from them which God only gives. That they might pray to them for their intercession, but all superstitious abuses were to cease; and if the king should lessen the number of saints' days, they ought to obey him. That the use c f the ceremonies was good, and that they contained many mystical significa- tions that tended to raise the mind towards God; such were vestments in divine worship, holy water and bread, carrying of candles, and palms, creeping to the cross, and hallowing the font, with other exor- cisms. That it was good to pray for departed souls, and to have masses said for them ; but the scriptures having neither declared in what place they were, nor what torments they suffered, that was uncertain, and to be left to God ; therefore all abuses pf the pope's pardons, or saying masses in special places, or before certain images, were to be put away. These articles were signed by Cromwell, the two archbishops, sixteen bishops, forty abbots and priors, and fifty members of the lower house. The king afterwards added a preface, declaring the pains that he and the clergy had taken for removing the differences in religion which existed in the nation, and that he approved of these articles, and re- quired all his subjects to accept them, and he would be thereby en- couraged to take further pains in similar matters for the future. On the publication of these points, the favourers of the reformation, though they did not approve of every particular, yet were well pleased to see things brought under examination; and since some were at this time changed, they did not doubt but more changes would follow. They were glad that the scriptures and ancient creeds were made the standards of the faith, without adding tradition; and that the nature of justifica- tion and the gospel-covenant was rightly stated; that the immediate worship of images and saints was condemned, and purgatory left un- certain. The necessity of auricular confession, and the corporeal pre- sence, doing reverence to images, and praying to saints, were of hard digestion to them; yet they rejoiced to see grosser abuses removed, and a reformation once set on foot. The popish party, on the other hand, were sorry to see five sacraments passed over in silence, and the trade created by purgatory put down. At the same time other things were in consultation, though not finished. Cranmer offered some queries to shew the imposition that had been put on the world : as that priestly absolution without contrition was of more efficacy than contrition without it ; and that the people trusted wholly 340 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to outward ceremonies, in which the priests encouraged them, because of the gain they made by them. He offered a paper to the king, exhort- ing him to proceed to further reformation, and that nothing should be determined without clear proofs from scripture, a departure from which occasioned all the errors that had been in the church. Many things were now acknowledged to be erroneous, for denying which some not long before had suffered death. He therefore proposed several points to be discussed, as whether there were a purgatory? whether departed saints ought to be invoked, or tradition believed? whether images ought to be considered mere representations of history ? and whether it was lawful for the clergy to marry? He prayed the king not to give judgment in these points till he heard them well examined ; but no definitive mea- sures respecting them were at present adopted. Visitors were now appointed to survey all the lesser monasteries; they were to examine the state of their revenues and goods, form inventories of them, and take their seals into their keeping; they were to try how many of the religious would return to a secular course of life; and these were to be sent to the archbishop of Canterbury, or the lord chancellor for licences, an allowance being granted them for their journey; but those who intended to continue in a religious state were to be removed to some of the great monasteries. A pension was also to be assigned to the abbot, or prior, of each house during life ; and they were particu- larly to examine what leases had been made during the last year. Ten thousand of the religious were by this means driven to seek for their livings, with forty shillings and a gown for each. Their goods and plate were estimated at 100,000/. and the rents of their houses 32,000/. but they were above ten times this value. The churches and cloisters were in most places pulled down, and the materials sold, yielding an incre- dible amount. These proceedings gave great discontent ; and the monks were now as much pitied, as they were formerly hated. The nobility and gentry, who provided for their younger children or friends by putting them in those sanctuaries, were sensible of their loss. The people, who as they travelled over the country found abbeys to be places of recep- tion to strangers, had cause to lament their suppression. But the super- stitious, who thought their friends must now lie still in purgatory, with- out relief from the masses, were out of measure offended and afflicted. But to remove this discontent, Cromwell advised the king to sell those lands at very easy rates to the nobility and gentry, and to oblige them to keep up the wonted hospitality. This would both be grateful to them, and would engage them to assist the crown in promoting the changes that had been made, since their own interests would be interwoven with that of their sovereign. And upon a clause in the act empowering the king to found anew such houses as he should think fit, there were fifteen monasteries and sixteen nunneries newly founded. These were bound to obey such rules as the king should send them, and to pay him tenths and first fruits. But all this did not pacify the people, for there was still a great outcry. The clergy studied much to inflame the nation, and urged that an heretical prince, deposed by the pope, was no more to be acknowledged; that it was a part of the papal power to depose kings, and give away their ATTEMPTS OF THE INSURGENTS. 341 dominions; and it had often been put in practice in almost all the parts of Europe, and some who had been abettors of great sedition had been canonized for it. There were certain injunctions given by Cromwell' which increased this discontent. All churchmen were required every Sunday for a quarter of a year, and twice every quarter after that, to preach against the pope's power, and to explain the six articles of the convocation. They were forbidden to extol images, relics, or pilgrimages ; but to exhort to works of charity. They were also required to teach the Lord's prayer, the creed, and the ten commandments in English, and to explain these carefully, and instruct the children well in them. They were to perform the divine offices reverently, and to have good curates to supply their places when they were absent. They were charged not to go to ale- houses, or sit too long at games; but to study the scriptures, and be exemplary in their lives. Those who did not reside in their parishes were to give the fortieth part of their income to the poor ; and for every hundred pounds a year, they were to maintain a pupil at some grammar school, or the university. If the parsonage-house was in decay, they were ordered to apply a fifth part of their benefice for the purpose of repairing it. The people continued quiet till they had got in their harvest; but in the beginning of October, 20,000 rose in Lincolnshire, led by a priest in the disguise of a cobler. They took an oath to be true to God, the king and the commonwealth, and sent a paper of their grievances to the king. They complained of some acts of parliament, of suppressing of many religious houses, of mean and ill counsellors, and bad bishops; and prayed the king to redress their grievances by the advice of the nobility. The king sent the duke of Suffolk to raise forces against them, and gave an answer to their petition. He said it belonged not to the rabble to direct princes what counsellors they should choose. The religious houses were suppressed by law, and the heads of them had under their hands confessed such horrid scandals, that they were a re- proach to the nation; and that as they wasted their rents in riotous living, it was much better to apply them to the common good of the nation. He required them to submit to his mercy, and to deliver up two hundred of their leaders into the hands of his lieutenants. At the same time there was a more formidable rising in Yorkshire, which being in the neighbourhood of Scotland, was likely to draw assist- ance from that kingdom, though their king was then gone into France to marry Francis' daughter; which inclined Henry to make more haste to settle matters in Lincolnshire. He sent them secret assurances of mercy, which wrought on the greatest part, so that they dispersed them- selves, while the most obstinate went over to those in Yorkshire. The leader and some others were taken and executed. The distance of those in the North gave them time to assemble, and form themselves into some regimental order. One Ask was commander in chief, and performed his part with great dexterity: their march was called "the Pilgrimage of Grace;" they had on their banners and sleeves the five wounds of Christ; they took an oath that they would restore the ^ church, suppress heretics, preserve the king and his issue, and drive base born men and 342 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. ill counsellors from him. They became 40,000 strong in a few days, and forced the archbishop of York and the lord Darcy to swear to their covenant, and to proceed with them. They besieged Skipton, but the earl of Cumberland made it good against them. Sir Ralph Evers held out Scarborough castle, though for twenty days he and his men had no provisions but bread and water. There was also a rising in the other northern countries, against whom the earl of Shrewsbury made head ; and the king sent several of the nobility to his assistance, and within a few days the duke of Norfolk marched with some troops and joined him. They possessed themselves of Doncaster, and resolved to keep that pass till the rest of the forces which the king had ordered should arrive ; for they were not in a con- dition to engage with such numbers of desperate men ; and it was very likely that if they met with an accident, the people might have risen about them every where; the duke of Norfolk resolved, therefore, to keep close at Doncaster, and let the provision and rage of the rebels waste away, and then they might probably fall into factions and disperse. They were now reduced to 10,000, but the king's army was not above 5000. The duke of Norfolk proposed a treaty; they were persuaded to send their petitions to the king, who to make them more secure, discharged a rendezvous which he had appointed at Northampton, and sent them a general pardon, excepting six by name, and reserving four to be afterwards named ; but this put them all in such apprehension, that it made them more desperate : yet the king, to give his people some content, issued injunctions requiring the clergy to continue the use of all the ceremonies of the church: meanwhile 300 were employed to carry the demands of the rebels to the king. - These were, a general pardon, a parliament to be held at York, and that courts of justice should be set up there; some acts of parliament to be repealed, that the princess Mary might be restored to her right of succession, and the pope to his wonted jurisdiction ; that the monasteries might be revived; that Audley and Cromwell might be removed from the king; and that some of the visitors might be imprisoned for their bribery and extortion. These proposals being rejected, the rebels took heart again, and finding that with the loss of time they lost heart, resolved to fall upon the royal troops, and drive them into Doncaster; but at two several times in which they had thought to ford the river, such rains fell as made it impassable. The king, at length, sent an answer to their demands : he assured them he would live and die in the defence of the christian faith; but the rabble ought not to prescribe to him and to the convocation in that matter. He answered that which concerned the monasteries as he had done to the men of Lincolnshire. If they had just complaints to make of any about him, he was ready to hear them; but he would not suffer them to direct him what counsellors he ought to employ: nor could they judge of the bishops who had been promoted, whom they knew not. He charged them not to believe lies, nor be governed by incen- diaries, but to submit to his mercy. On the 9th of December he signed a proclamation of pardon without any restriction. As soon as the affair was over, the king went on more resolutely in his design of suppressing the monasteries; being now less apprehensive of any new commotion. VISITATION AND SUPPRESSION OF MONASTERIES. 343 A new visitation was appointed to enquire into the conversation of the monks, to examine how they stood affected to the pope, and how they promoted the king's supremacy. It was likewise ordered to examine what impostures might be among- them, either in images or relics, by which the superstition of the credulous people was excited. Some few houses of greater value were prevailed with the former year to sur- render to the king. Many of the houses which had not been dissolved, though they were within the former act, were now suppressed, and many of the greater abbots were induced to surrender by several motives. Some had been faulty during the rebellion, and to prevent a storm offered a resignation. Others liked the reformation, and did it on that account ; some were found guilty of great disorders in their lives, and to prevent a shameful discovery, offered their houses to the king; while others had made such wastes and dilapidations, that having taken care of themselves, they were less concerned for others. At St. Al ban's the rents were let so low, that the abbot could not maintain the charge of the abbey. At Battel the whole furniture of the house and chapel was not. above 1000/. in value, and the plate was not 300/. In some houses there was scarcely any plate or furniture left. Many abbots and monks were glad to accept of a pension for life, which was propor- tioned to the value of their house, and to their innocence. The abbots of St. Alban's and Tewksbury had 400 marks a year : the abbot of St. Edmondsbury was more innocent and more resolute; the visitors wrote that they found no scandals in that house; he was, however, prevailed with by a pension of 500 marks to resign. The inferior governors had some 30, 20, or 10/. pensions, and the monks had generally 61. or eight marks a piece. By these means one hundred and twenty-one of these houses were this year resigned to the king. In most cases the visitor made the monks sign a confession of their vices and disorders, of which there is only one original extant. They acknowledged in a long nar- rative, their former idleness, gluttony, and sensuality, for which they said the pit of hell was ready to swallow them up. Others were sensible that the manner of their former religion consisted in dumb ceremonies, by which they were blindly led, having no true knowledge of God's laws; but that they had procured exemption from their diocesans, and had subjected themselves wholly to a foreign power, which took no care to reform their abuses; and therefore since the most perfect way of life was revealed by Christ and his apostles, and that it was fit they should be governed by the king as their supreme head, they freely resigned to him. Some resigned in hopes that the king would found them anew; these favoured the reformation, and intended to convert their houses to better uses, for preaching, study, and prayer; and Latimer pressed Cromwell earnestly, that two or three houses might be reserved for such purposes in every county. But it was resolved to suppress all. The common preamble to most surrenders was, "That upon full deliberation, and of their own proper motion, for just and reasonable causes moving their consciences, they did freely give up their houses to the king." In short, they went on at such a rate, that one hundred and fifty-nine re- signations were obtained before the parliament met. Some thought that these resignations could not be valid, since the incumbents had not the 344 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. property, but only the trust for life. But the parliament afterwards declared them good by an ex post facto law. Others were more roughly handled. The prior of Wooburn was sus- pected of a correspondence with the rebels, and of favouring the pope ; he was requested to submit to the king, and prevailed on to do it, but he was not easy in it, nor fixed to it; he complained that the new preachers detracted from the honour due to the virgin and saints; he thought the religion was changed, and wondered that the judgments of God on queen Anne had not terrified others from going on to subvert the faith. When the rebellion broke out he joined in it, as did also the abbots of Whaley, Garvaux, and Sawley, and the prior of Burlington ; all these were taken, attainted of treason, and executed. The abbots of Glastonbury and Reading had also sent a great quantity of their plate to the rebels; the former, to disguise it the better, had hired a man to break into the house where the plate was kept : thus he was convicted both of burglary and treason, and at his execution he confessed his crime, and begged both God and the king's pardon for it. The abbot of Reading- had complied so far, that he was grown into favour with Cromwell. Many of the Carthusians were executed for denying the king's supremacy: others were suspected of favouring them, and of receiving books sent from beyond sea against the king's proceedings, and were shut up in their cells, in which most of them died. The prior was a man of extraordinary charity and good works, as the visitor reported; but he was made to resign, with this preamble, "That many of the houses had offended the king, and deserved that their lives should be taken, and their goods confiscated; and therefore to avoid that, they surrendered their houses. " Great complaints were made of the visitors, as if they had used undue practices to make the abbots and monks surrender ; and it was said, that they had in many places embezzled much of the plate for their own uses; and in particular, it was com- plained that Dr. Loudon had corrupted many nuns. The visitors, on the other hand, published many of the vile practices that they found in the houses, so that several books were printed upon this occasion. No story became so public as that of the prior of Crutched-friars in London, who was detected with a strumpet at noon-day: he fell down on his knees, and begged that they who surprised him would not discover his shame. They made him give them 30/. which he protested was all he had; and he promised them as much more: but not keeping his word, a suit followed upon it. Yet these personal blemishes did not much concern the people. They deemed it unreasonable to extinguish noble foundations for the fault of some individuals: therefore another way was taken which had a better effect. They disclosed to the world many impostures about relics and images, to which pilgrimages had been made. At Reading they had an angel's wing, which, they said, brought over the spear's point that pierced our Saviour's side; and as many pieces of the cross were found, as when joined together would have made a large cross. The rood of Grace at Bexley, in Kent, had been much esteemed, and had attracted many pilgrims to it: it w T as observed to bow, and roll its eyes, and look at times well pleased or angry; which the credulous multitude imputed to Vl'LE IMPOSTURES DISCLOSED. 345 a divine power: but all was now discovered to be a cheat, and it was brought up to St. Paul's cross, where the springs were openly shewed that governed its several motions. At Hales, in Gloucestershire, blood was shewed in a vial which was pretended to be the blood of Christ; and it was believed that none could see it who were in mortal sin Those who could bestow liberal presents were of course gratified, by being led to believe that they were in a state of grace. This miracle consisted in the blood of a bird or beast, renewed every week, put in a vial very thick on one side, and thin on the other; and either side turned towards the pilgrim, as the priests were satisfied with their oblations. Several other similar impostures were discovered, which contributed much to the undeceiving of the people. The richest shrine in England was Thomas a Becket's at Canterbury,' 1 whose story is well known. After he had long embroiled England, and shewed that he had a spirit so turned to faction that he could not be at quiet, some servants of Henry II. killed him in the church at Canter- bury. He was presently canonized, and held in greater esteem than any other saint whatever; so much more was a martyr for the papacy valued, than any who suffered for the christian religion : and his altar drew far greater oblations than those dedicated to Christ or the blessed Virgin, as appears by the accounts of two years. In the first year 31. 2s. 6d., and in the second not a penny, was offered at Christ's altar. In the Virgin's, there was in the first year 631. 5s. 6d., and in the second 41. Is. 8c?.; while at the shrine of Becket, there was in the first year 832/. 125. 3d., and in the second 964/. 6s. 3d. offered. The shrine continued to grow in veneration and riches. Lewis VII. of France came over in pilgrimage to visit it, and offered a stone esteemed the richest in Europe. This saint had not only one holy day, the 29th of December, called his martyrdom; but another for his translation, namely, the 7th of July. Besides these, every fiftieth year there was a jubilee, and an indulgence granted to all who came and visited his tomb, which was so great a number, that on these occasions there have been supposed to be assembled not less than 100,000 pilgrims. The lane leading from the main street of the city to the cathedral gate has one side of it almost occupied with very ancient houses. These were once one entire house of accommodation called the Pilgrim's Inn. The cellars are still in their ancient state, and give us a notion of incredible quantities of wine being then kept in store for those pilgrims who could pay for it. Intemperance among them was then as common almost as superstition. Those of smaller wealth were accommodated in a h Thomas a Becket was archbishop of Canterbury; and, seconded by the clergy, he insisted that they should be exempted from the jurisdiction of the temporal courts in criminal cases. His conduct was so galling to the king, and so marked with insolence, that his majesty said hastily, " Have I no friend to rid me of this insolent enemy 'J " Upon this four of his knights, esteeming it a signal for his death, instantly quitted the royal presence, and hastened to Canterbury, where finding the archbishop before the altar of the church at prayers, they slew him with their daggers. Henry found great difficulty to excuse himself to the pope, and was obliged to do penance. It was this king who, with the French monarch, performed the office of yeoman of the stirrup to pope Alexander. It is worthy of remark that one of the assassins was ancestor of a most respectable and excellent family of quakers now flourishing in this country. 346 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. suburb of the city, called to this day Wincheap — denoting the greater cheapness of the wine there than at the Pilgrim's Inn. It is hard to tell whether hatred to his seditious practices, or the love of his shrine, led king Henry to unsaint Thomas a Becket. His shrine was broken, and the gold of it was so heavy that it rilled two chests, each of which took eight men to carry it out of the church. The skull, which had been so idolized, was proved to be an imposture; for the true one was safe in his coffin : his bones had either been burnt, as it was given out at Rome ; or so mixed with others, as our writers say, that it would have been a miracle indeed to have distinguished them. When these things were known at Rome, all the eloquent pens there were employed to represent king Henry as the most sacrilegious tyrant that ever made war with Christ's vicar on earth, and his saints in heaven. He was compared to the worst of princes; to Pharaoh, Nebuchadnezzar, Belshazzar, Nero, and Dioclesian; but the parallel with Julian the apostate was most insisted on. It was said, he copied after him in all things, while his manners were worse. The pope proceeded farther; he published all those thunders with which he had threatened him three years before. He pretended that, as God's vicar, he had power to root out, and to destroy ; and had authority over all the kings in the world : and therefore, after he had enumerated all the crimes of Henry, he required him to appear within ninety days at Rome, either in person or by proxy, and all his accomplices within sixty days; and that if he and they did not appear, he declared the king to have fallen from his crown, and them from their estates. He put the kingdom under an interdict, and absolved his subjects from their oaths of allegiance: he declared him and his accomplices infamous; and put their children under in- capacities. He required all the clergy to go out of England, within five days after the stated time should expire, leaving only so many as might serve for baptizing children or giving the sacrament to such as died in penitence. He charged all subjects to rise in arms against the king, and that none should assist him. He absolved all other princes from their confederacies with him, and conjured them to have no more commerce with him. He required all Christians to make war on him; and to seize on the persons and goods of all his subjects, and make slaves of them; and, in conclusion, he charged all bishops to publish the sentence with due solemnities, and ordained it to be affixed on the churches of Rome, Tournay, and Dunkirk. This was given out on the 30th of August, 1 535 ; but it had been suspended till the suppression of monasteries, and the burning of Becket's bones; at which the pope was so exasperated, that he resolved to forbear extremities no longer. On the 17th of December this year, he therefore published the bull. By this sentence it is certain, that either the pope's infallibility must be confessed to be a vain assumption upon the world, or if any believe it, they must presume that the power of deposing princes is really lodged in that chair ; for this was not a sudden fit of passion, but done ex Cathedra, with all the deliberation it could admit of. The sentence was in some particulars without a precedent ; but as to the main points of deposing the king, and absolving his subjects from their obedience, there were numerous instances to be brought in the last five hundred FREE CIRCULATION OF THE SCRIPTURES. 347 years, to shew that this had been always asserted as the right of* papacy. The pope wrote to the kings of France and Scotland, to inflame them against Henry; and had this been an age of crusades, no doubt there had been one undertaken against him; but the thunders of the Vatican had already begun to lose their force. To counteract this violence, the king caused all the bishops, and emi- nent divines of England, to sign a declaration against all churchmen who pretended to the power of the sword, or to authority over kings; and that all who assumed such powers were subverters of the kingdom of Christ. Many of the bishops also signed another paper, declaring the limits of the regal and ecclesiastical power; that both had their au- thority from God, for several ends and different natures; and that princes were subject to the word of God, as well as bishops ought to be obedient to their laws. There was also another declaration signed by Cromwell, the two archbishops, eleven bishops, and twenty divines; asserting the distinction between the power of the keys, and that of the power of the sword : the former of which was not absolute, but limited by the scrip- ture. Orders were declared to be a sacrament instituted by Christ, which were conferred by prayer and imposition of hands. It was also decreed that in the New Testament no mention was made of any other ranks but of deacons or ministers and of priests or bishops. This year the English Bible was finished. The translation was first sent over to Paris to be printed, the workmen in England not being thought able to get through it. Bonner was at that time ambassador at Paris ; and he obtained a licence of Francis for printing it ; but upon a complaint made by the French clergy, the press was stopped, and many of the copies were seized and burnt. It was therefore brought over to England, where it was undertaken and now finished by Grafton. Cromwell procured a general warrant from the king, allowing all his subjects to read it; for which Cranmer wrote his thanks to Cromwell, saying he rejoiced to see the day of reformation risen in England, since the word of God now shone over all without a cloud. Not long after this, Cromwell gave injunctions requiring the clergy to set up Bibles in their churches, and to encourage all the people to read them. In- cumbents were required to instruct and teach them the creed, the Lord's prayer, and the ten commandments, in English; and once every quarter to preach a sermon, to declare the true gospel of Christ; and to exhort the people to works of charity; and not to trust to pilgrimages, or relics, or counting their beads, which tended to superstition. Images, abused by pilgrimages made to them, were ordered to be taken away. And such as had formerly magnified images, or pilgrimages, were required openly to recant, and confess that they had been in error, which covet- ousness had brought into the church. All incumbents were required to keep registers for christenings and marriages; and to teach the people that it was good to omit the suffrages to the saints in the litany. Thus was a vital stab given to some of the main points of superstition ; but the free use of the scriptures gave the deadliest blow of all. Yet, not- withstanding, the clergy submitted to nearly the whole change without murmuring. This year was celebrated by the birth of prince Edward, an event 348 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. which blasted the hopes of the popish party, chiefly built on the proba- bility of the lady Mary's succeeding to the crown. Lee, Gardiner, and Stokesly, now seemed to vie with the bishops of the other party, which of them should most zealously execute the injunctions, and thereby in- sinuate themselves into the king's favour. Gardiner had been some years ambassador in France, but Cromwell had caused Bonner, who seemed to be the most zealous promoter of the reformation then in England, to be sent in his stead. Gardiner afterwards was sent to the emperor's court with sir Henry Knevet, and there he gave occasion to suspect that he was treating on a reconciliation with the pope's legate. But the Italian who managed it, being sent with a message to the ambassador's secretary, mistook Knevet's for Gardiner's, and told his business to him. Knevet endeavoured to fathom the mystery, but could not carry it farther; for the Italian was disowned, and put in prison upon it, and Gardiner complained of it as a scheme laid to ruin him. Such were his artifices and flatteries, that he was still preserved in some degree of favour as long as the king lived. Gardiner used one topic which prevailed much with the king, that his zeal against heresy was giving the greatest advantage to his cause over all Europe; and there- fore he pressed him to begin with the sacramentarists, such as denied the corporeal presence at the sacrament. Those being condemned by the German princes, he had the less reason to be afraid of embroiling his affairs by his severities against them. This meeting so well with the king's own persuasions concerning the corporeal presence, had a great effect on him; and an occasion quickly offered itself to display his zeal in that matter, and this was in the memorable instance of John Lambert. John Lambert was born in the county of Norfolk, and educated at the university of Cambridge. Having made himself master of Greek and Latin, he translated several books from those languages into the English. On his conversion, however, by Bilney, he became disgusted at the corruptions of the church ; and apprehensive of persecution, he crossed the sea and joined himself to Tindal and Frith, with whom he remained more than a year; and, from his piety and ability, was ap- pointed chaplain and preacher to the English factory at Antwerp. But there the jealousy and persecuting spirit of Sir T. More reached him, and on the accusation of a person named Barlow, he was taken and conveyed to London. There he was brought to examination first at Lambeth, then removed to the bishop's house at Oxford, before Warham, the archbishop of Canterbury, and other adversaries, having five and forty articles brought against him, to which he drew out at considerable length written answers, with a perspicuity and strength excelled by none of his age. These answers were directed and delivered to Warham, archbishop of Canterbury, about the year of our Lord 1532, at which time Lambert was in custody in the bishop's house at Oxford, where he was deprived of the assistance of books. But, so the providence of God wrought for him, that in the following year archbishop Warham died, whereby Lambert for that time was delivered. Cranmer succeeded to the see of Canterbury. Lambert in the mean time being delivered, partly by the death of the archbishop, partly by ACCOUNT OF JOHN LAMBERT. 349 the coming in of queen Anne, returned unto London, and there exercised himself in teaching youth the Greek and Latin tongues. As priests in those days could not be permitted to have wives, he resigned his priest- hood, and applied himself to teaching, intending shortly after to be married. But God, who disposeth all men's purposes after the good pleasure of his own will, did both intercept his marriage and also take away his freedom. Having continued his profession as teacher with great success, it happened, that in the present year, 1538, he was present at a sermon in St. Peter's church, London, preached by Dr. Taylor, a man in those days not far disagreeing from the gospel, and afterwards, in the time of king Edward, made bishop of Lincoln, of which he was again deprived in the time of queen Mary, and so ended his life among the confessors of Jesus Christ. Dr. Taylor having spoken something upon the corporeal presence which Lambert conceiving to be erroneous, he felt himself urged by duty to argue the subject with him. He, therefore, at the conclusion of the sermon, went to the doctor and began the contest. Taylor, excusing himself at the present for other business, wish- ed him to write his mind and to come again at a more convenient season. Lambert was contented and departed. When he had written his mind, he came again unto him. The sum of his arguments were ten, approving the truth of the cause, partly by the scriptures, by good reason, and by the doctors. These were written with great force and authority. The first reason was the following, gathered upon Christ's words, where it is said in the gospel, " This cup is the New Testa- ment." " If," he added, " these words do not change the cup nor the wine corporeally into the New Testament, by the same reason it is not agreeable that the words spoken of the bread should turn that corpo- really into the body of Christ." He then proceeded thus — " It is not agreeable to a natural body to be in two places or more at one time : wherefore it must follow of necessity that either Christ had not a natural body, or else truly, according to the common nature of a body, it cannot be present in two places at once, and much less in many, that is to say, in heaven and in earth, on the right hand of his Father, and in the sacrament." He added likewise many other positions from the writings of the doctors. Dr. Taylor, willing and desiring, as is supposed from goodness of heart, to satisfy Lambert in these matters, whom he took to council, he conferred with Dr. Barnes, who, although he otherwise favoured the gospel, and was an earnest preacher, seemed not to favour this cause; fearing, possibly, that it would breed some mischief among the people, in prejudice of the gospel which was now in a good state of forwardness. He, therefore, persuaded Taylor to submit the entire question to the superior judgment of Cranmer. Upon these things Lambert's quarrel began, and was brought to this point, so that from a private talk it came to be a public and common matter. He was sent for by the archbishop, brought into the open court, and forced publicly to defend his cause. The archbishop had not yet favoured the doctrine of the sacrament, although afterwards he was an earnest professor of it. In that point of disputation it is said Lambert appealed from the bishops to the king's majesty. Gardiner, ever awake to his worldly interest, and to every occasion of 350 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. checking that cause which in his heart he hated, learning the particulars of the affair, went privately to the king, and with all artifice and subtlety emptied the malice of his own heart into that of the king's, empoisoning the royal ear with his pernicious counsels. He said that the world viewed him with suspicion, and began to charge him with being a favourer of heretics; and that the present affair relating to Lambert would enable him, by proceeding against him, to banish from the hearts of all those unfavourable suspicions and complaints. To this advice, the king, giving ear more willingly than prudently, sent out a general commission, commanding all the nobles and bishops of his realm to come with speed to London, to assist the king against heretics and heresies, upon which the king himself would sit in judgment. These preparations made, a day was appointed for Lambert, where a great assembly of the nobles was gathered from all parts of the country, not without much wonder and expectation in this singular case. All the seats and places round the scaffold were crowded. At length John Lambert was brought from the prison under a guard of armed men, as a lamb to fight with many lions, and placed directly opposite to the king's seat. Then came the king himself as judge of the controversy, with his body-guard clothed all in white. On his right hand sat the bishops, and behind them the celebrated lawyers, clothed in purple, according to the manner. On the left hand sat the peers of the realm, justices, and other nobles in their order ; behind whom were the gentlemen of the king's privy chamber. This manner and form of the judgment was enough of itself to abash innocence; yet the king's look, his cruel countenance, and his brows bent to severity, augmented the terror, plainly declaring a mind full of indignation unworthy such a prince, especially in such a matter, and against a subject so humble and obe- dient. Being seated on his throne, he beheld Lambert with a stern countenance, and then turning himself to his counsellors, called forth Day, bishop of Chichester, and commanded him to declare to the people the cause of the present assembly and judgment. The bishop's oration tended to this purpose: that the king in session would have all states and degrees to be admonished of his will and pleasure, that no man should conceive any sinister opinion of him, that now the authority and name of the bishop of Rome being utterly abolished, he would not extinguish all religion by giving liberty unto heretics to perturb and trouble the churches of England, whereof he was the head, without punishment. Moreover, that they should not think they were assembled at that time to make any disputation upon the heretical doctrine; but only for this purpose, that by the industry of him and other bishops, the heresies of this man here present, and of all like him, should be refuted or openly condemned in the presence of them all. The oration being concluded, the king rose, and leaning upon a cushion of white cloth of tissue, turned himself toward Lambert with his brow bent and said, " Ho. good fellow, what is thy name?" Then the prisoner kneeling down, said, " My name is John Nicholson, although by many I am called Lambert." "What!" said the king, TRIAL OF LAMBERT BEFORE HENRY THE EIGHTH. PAUK 350. LAMBERT'S ADDRESS TO THE KING. 351 putting them in remembrance what those things were which they worshipped, and how God many times had plagued his people for running to such stocks and stones, and so would plague them and their posterity, if they would not keep themselves from idols. He admonished them so long, till at last his words affected some of them, that they said they never would go a pilgrimage more. Then he went further, and found another kissing a white lady made of alabaster, which was in a wall behind the high altar and adorned with a fringe made like TESTWOOD DEFACES AN IMAGE. 399 branches with hanging apples and flowers. On seeing several so super- stitiously use the image, as to wipe their hands upon it, and then to stroke them over their heads and faces, as though there had been great virtue in touching the picture, he lifted up his hand, in the which he had a key, and smote a piece of the border about the image, and with a slight inadvertent stroke chanced to break off the idol's nose. " Lo, good people," quoth he, " you see what it is, nothing but earth and can- not help itself; and how then will you have it to help you? For God's sake, brethren, be no more deceived." And as he went home to his house the rumour was so great, that many came to see the image as it was defaced ; and among others one William Simons, a lawyer, who seeing the image to lack its nose, took the matter grievously, and looking down upon the pavement, he spied the broken fragment, which he took up and put in his purse, saying it should be a dear nose to the infidel Testwood. Many were offended with Testwood: the canons for his speaking against their profit, the wax merchants for hindering their market, and Simons for an art which threatened to deprive him of certain fees and gains. There were of the canons men that threatened to kill him : where- upon Testwood kept his house, and durst not come forth, but sent the whole matter in writing by his wife to Cromwell, the king's secretary, who was his special friend. The canons hearing that Testwood would send to Cromwell, sent the verger unto him, to induce him to come to the church ; but he sent them word again that he was in fear of his life, and therefore would not come. Then they sent two of the elder minor canons to entreat him, and to assure him that no man should do him harm. He made them a plain answer, that he had no trust in their promises, but would complain to his friends. Then not knowing what shift to make, for of all men they feared Cromwell, they sent post haste for an old gentleman named Ward, a justice of peace, dwelling three or four miles off, who on hearing the matter was loath to meddle in it. But through their entreaty he went to Testwood, and had much ado to persuade him ; but at last he did faithfully promise him, by the oath he had made to God and the king, to defend him from all danger and harm, and Testwood was content to go with him. When they were come into the church, and were going toward the Chapter-House, where the canons abode their coming, one of the men drew his dagger at Testwood, and would have killed him ; but Ward with his man resisted, and got Test- wood into the Chapter-house, causing the assassin to be called in and sharply rebuked. Testwood, being alone in the Chapter-House with the canons and Ward, was gently treated, and the matter so pacified that Testwood might quietly come and go to the church, and do his duty as he had done before. Upon a relic Sunday, when every minister after their custom should have borne a relic in a procession, one was brought to Testwood, which as they said, was a rochet of bishop Becket's. But as the sexton would have put the rochet in Testwood's hands, he pushed it from him, saying, if he did give it to him, he would use it for an unclean purpose ; and so the rochet was given to another. This is one among several instances of the rash and indecent conduct of the zealous protestants of that age. They might doubtless often have escaped annoyance and suffering had 400 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. they adopted a gentler and more prudent course. The taste of the times, however, and the irritating provocation they received, offer considerable apology for their ebullitions of displeasure and impropriety. In the days of Mr. Franklin, who succeeded Dr. Sampson in the deanery of Windsor, there was set up at the choir door a certain foolish printed paper in rhyme to the praise and commendation of our lady, ascribing unto her our justification, our salvation, our redemption, the forgiveness of sins, to the great derogation of Christ : this paper one of the canons, named Magnus, caused to be set up in despite of Test- wood and his sect. When Testwood saw the paper, he plucked it down secretly. The next day another was set up in the same place. Then Testwood coming into the church, and seeing another paper set up, and also the dean coming a little way off, made haste to be at the choir door, while the dean stayed to take holy water ; then reaching up his hand as he went he plucked away the paper with him. The dean being come to his stall called Testwood to him, and said, that he marvelled greatly how he durst be so bold to take down the paper in his presence ; Testwood answered again, that he marvelled much more that his reverence would suffer such a blasphemous paper to to be set up, beseeching him not to be offended with what he had done, for he would stand to it. After this were no more papers set up, but poor Testwood was reviled as a heretic deserving of death. Such were the principal causes which moved Testwood's enemies to seek his des- truction ; but they could not attain their purpose, till that wicked Haman Dr. Loudon came into office at Windsor as one of the prebendaries. Anthony Pearson frequently went to Windsor, about the year of our Lord 1540, and using the talent that God had given him in preaching, was greatly esteemed among the people, who flocked so much to his ser- mons both in town and country, that the great priests of the castle, with other papists in the town, especially Simons, were sore offended : inso- much, that Simons at the last began to take down his sermons, and to mark his auditors; whereof ensued the death of many honest men. About a year and more after Dr. Loudon, warden of the New College in Oxford, was admitted one of the prebendaries of Windsor, who, at his first coming to Windsor, began to betray his bitter aversion to the friends of the Lutheran doctrine. At his first residence dinner which he made to the clerks, who for the most part at that time favoured the gospel, all his whole talk to two gentlemen, strangers at his board, was nothing else but of heretics, and what a desolation they would bring the realm to, if they were to be suffered. " And by St. Mary, masters," quoth he to the clerks at last, " I cannot tell, but there goeth a shrewd report abroad of this house." Some made answer, it was undeserved. "1 pray God it be. I am but a stranger, and have but small experience amongst you ; but I have heard it said before I came hither, that there be some in this house that will neither have prayer nor fasting." Then Testwood could not refrain, but said, " By my troth, sir, I think that was spoken in malice : for prayer, as you know better than I, is one of the first lessons that Christ taught us." " Yea sir," quoth he, " but the heretics will have no invocation to saints, which all the oli fathers do allow." " What the old fathers do allow," quoth Testwood- COMPLAINTS AGAINST HERETICS. 401 M 1 cannot tell ; but scripture doth appoint us to go to the Father, and to ask our petitions of him in Christ's name." " Then you will have no mean between you and God," quoth the doctor. " Yes, sir," quoth Testwood, 14 our mean is Christ, as St. Paul saith, 'There is one mediator between God and man, even Jesus Christ.' " " Give us water," quoth the enraged doctor, as though he were rendered impure by heretical company. Water being set on the board, he said grace and washed, and so falling into other communication with the stranger, the clerks took their leave and departed. When this new and haughty prebendary had been at Windsor awhile among his catholic brethren, and learned what Testwood was, and also of Simons what a sort of heretics were in the town and about the same, and how they increased daily by reason of a priest called Anthony Pear- son, he was so maliciously set against them, that he appeared almost in- fernally bent on doing them injury. To bring his wicked purpose about he conspired with Simons, a meet clerk to serve such a curate, how they might compass the matter, first to have all the arch-heretics, as they termed them, in Windsor and thereabout indicted, and if possible punished and destroyed. They had good ground to work upon, as they thought, which was the six articles, on which foundation they began to build. First, they drew out certain notes of Anthony Pearson's ser- mons, which he had preached against the sacrament of the altar, and their popish mass. That done, they accused Sir William Hobby with his wife, Sir Thomas Cardine, Mr. Edmund Harman, Mr. Thomas Weldon, with one Snowball and his wife, as chief aiders and maintainers of Anthony Pearson. Also they noted Dr. Haynes, dean of Exeter, and a prebendary of Windsor, to be a common receiver of all suspected persons. They wrote the names of all such as commonly attended Anthony Pearson's sermons, and of all such as had the Testament and favoured the gospel. They employed spies to walk up and down the church, to hear what men said, and to mark who did not reverence the sacrament at the eleva- tion time, and to bring the name of every offender. Of these spies some were chantry priests : among which there was one notable spy, Sir William Bows, a fleering priest, as would be in every coiner of the church pattering to himself, with his portoise in his hand, to hear and note the gesture of men towards the sacrament. Thus, when they had gathered as much as they could, and made a perfect book thereof, Loudon, with two of his catholic brethren, gave them to the bishop of Winchester, Stephen Gardiner, with a great complaint against the heretics that were in Windsor, declaring the town was disquieted through their doctrine and evil example, and beseeching his lordship's help, in purging both town and castle of such wicked persons. The bishop hearing their com- plaint and seeing their book, praised their doings, and bade them make friends and go forward, and they should not want his help. Then they applied to the matter seriously, sparing no money nor pains, as Marbeck says that he heard one of them say, who was afterwards sorry for what he had done, that it cost him that year, for his part only, an hundred marks, besides the death of three good horses. Bishop Gardiner now brought Wriothsley and other of the council on 2 d 402 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. his side, and went to the king, complaining what sort of heretics he had in his realm, and how they not only crept into every corner of his court, but even into his privy chamber, beseeching his majesty that his laws might be executed. The king, giving credit to the council's words, was content his laws should be executed on such as were offenders. Then had the bishop what he desired, and forthwith procured a commission for private search to be made in Windsor for books and letters that Anthony Pearson intended to send abroad : this commission the king granted to take place in the town of Windsor, but not in the castle. About the same time the canons of Exeter, especially Suthran, trea- surer of the church, and Brurewood the chancellor, had accused Dr. Haynes, their dean, to the council, for preaching against holy bread and water, and that he had said in one of his sermons that marriage and hanging were destiny ; upon which they imputed treason to him, because of the king's marriage. The bishop of Winchester had also informed the council of Sir W. Hobby, how he was a supporter of Anthony Pearson, and a great maintainer of heretics : whereupon both he and Dr. Haynes were apprehended and sent to the Fleet. But not very long after, by the mediation of friends, they were both released ; it was supposed by the king's command, because marriage was too tender a subject for him to allow to be discussed. As to the commission for searching for books, Ward and Fachel of Reading were appointed commissioners, and came to Windsor the Thursday before Palm-Sunday, in the year 1543, and began their search about eleven o'clock at night. There were then apprehended Robert Benet, Henry Filmer, John Marbeck, and Robert Testwood, for certain books and writings found in their houses against the six articles : they were kept till Monday after, and then fetched up to the council, except- ing Testwood, with whom the bailiffs of the town were charged, because he lay diseased of the gout. The other three, being examined before the council, were committed to prison ; Filmer and Benet to the bishop of London's gaol, and Marbeck to the Marshalsea. His examination we shall here give, to the great goodness of the council, and the cruelty of the bishop. We are of opinion, and are convinced that our readers will coincide with us, that it would deteriorate the importance of these arguments, were we strictly to modernize the style in which they were delivered : we have, therefore, only changed such expressions as, being now obsolete, would not be understood by the general reader ; and the speeches, in consequence, remain nearly as they were uttered by the Christians and their accusers. Marbeck had begun a great work in English, called The Concordance of the Bible ; which not being half finished, was among his other books taken in the search, and given up to the council. When he came into their presence to be examined, the whole work lay before the bishop of Winchester, Stephen Gardiner, at the upper end of the board. Looking steadfastly at the poor man awhile the bishop said, " Marbeck, dost thou know wherefore thou art sent for?" "No my lord," quoth he. "No!" quoth the bishop ; " that is a marvellous thing." " Forsooth my lord," quoth he, " unless it be for a certain search made of late in Windsor, I cannot tell wherefore it should be." " Then thou knowest the matter well ["HE SECOND EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 403 enough," quoth the bishop; and taking up a quire of the Concordance in his hand, said, " Understandeth thou the Latin tongue ?" " No, my lord," quoth he, " but simply." "No!" quoth the bishop. And with that spake Mr. Wriothsley, then secretary to the king, " He saith but sim- ply." " I cannot tell," quoth the bishop, " but the book is translated word for word out of the Latin Concordance," and so began to declare to the rest of the council the nature of a Concordance, and how it was first compiled in Latin by the great diligence of the learned men for the ease of preachers; concluding with this reason, that if such a book should go forth in English, it would destroy the Latin tongue. Then casting down the quire, he reached another book, the book of Isaiah the prophet, and turning to the last chapter, gave the book to Marbeck, and asked him who had written the note in the margin. Marbeck look- ing upon it, said, " Forsooth, my lord, I wrote it." " Read it," quoth the bishop. Then he read it thus : " Heaven is my seat, and the earth is my foot-stool." " Nay," quoth the bishop, " read it as thou hast written it." " Then shall I read it wrong," quoth he, " for I had written it false." " How hadst thou written it?" quoth the bishop. " I had writ- ten it," quoth he, " Heaven is my seat, and the earth is not my foot- stool." " Yea," quoth the bishop, " that was thy meaning." " No my lord," quoth he, " it was but an oversight in writing; for, as your lordship seeth, this negative is blotted out." At this time came other matters into the council, so that Marbeck was sent out to the next cham- ber. When he had stayed there awhile, one of the council, named Sir Anthony Wingfield, captain of the guard, came forth, and calling for Marbeck, committed him to one Belson of the guard, saying to him, " Take this man and have him to the Marshalsea, and tell the keeper that it is the council's pleasure that he should be treated gently, and if he have any money in his purse, as I think he hath not much, take it from him, lest the prisoners take it, and minister it to him as he shall have need." The messenger departed with Marbeck to the Marshalsea, and did his commission faithfully. The hope of the prisoner that he should soon be released was revived by the result of this examination. However on the next day, at eight o'clock in the morning, there came one of the bishop of Winchester's gentlemen into the Marshalsea, whose man brought after him two great books under his arm, and finding Mar- beck walking up and down in the chapel, demanded of the keeper why he was not in irons. " I had no such command," quoth he, " for the messenger who brought him yesternight from the council, said it was their pleasure he should be gently used." " My lord," quoth the gentleman, whose name was Knight, "will not be content with you;" and so taking the book of his man, he called for a chamber, to which he com- manded the prisoner, and casting the books from him upon a bed, sat down and said, " Marbeck, my lord doth favour thee well for certain good qualities that thou hast, and hath sent me hither to admonish thee to beware, lest thou cast away thyself wilfully. If thou wilt be plain, thou shalt do thyself much good; if not, thou shalt do thyself much harm. I assure thee, my lord laments thy case, for as much as he hath always heard good report of thee ; wherefore now see to thyself, and play the wise man. Thou art acquainted with great heretics, as Hobby and 404 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Haynes, and with many, others beside, and knowest much of their secrets ; if thou wilt open them at my lord's request, he will procure thy deliver- ance out of hand, and prefer thee to a better living." " Alas, Sir," quoth he, " what secrets do I know ? I am but a poor man, and was never worthy to be so conversant either with Mr. Hobby or Mr. Haynes, as to know any part of their minds." " Well," quoth the gentleman, " make it not so strange, for my lord doth know well enough in what estimation they held both thee and Anthony Pearson, for your religion." " For Anthony Pearson," quoth he, "I can say nothing, for I never saw him with them in all my life ; and as for my- self, I cannot deny but that they have always, I thank them, taken me for an honest man, and shewed me much kindness ; but as for their secrets, they were too wise to commit them to any such as I am." " Perhaps," quoth the gentleman, " thou fearest to utter any thing of them, because they were thy friends, lest hearing thereof they might hereafter withdraw their friendship from thee: which thou needest not to fear, I warrant thee, for they are safe enough, and never likely to pleasure thee any more, or any man else." With that the water stood in Marbeck's eyes. " Why weepest thou ?" quoth the gentleman. " Oh Sir," quoth he, " I pray you pardon me ; these men have done me good, wherefore I beseech the living God to comfort them as I would be comforted myself." " Well," quoth the gentleman, " I perceive thou wilt play the fool ;" and then he opened one of the books and asked him, if he understood any Latin ? " But a little, sir," quoth he. " How is it then," quoth the gentleman, " that thou hast translated thy book out of the Latin Concordance, and yet. understandest not the tongue?" " I will tell you," quoth he : " in my youth I learned the principles of my grammar, whereby I have some understanding therein, though it be very small." Then the gentleman began to try him in the Latin Concordance and English Bible which he had brought; and when he had so done, and was satisfied, he called up his man to fetch away the'book, and so departed, leaving Marbeck alone in the chamber, the door fast shut upon him. About two hours after, the gentleman came again, with a sheet of paper folded in his hand, and sat down upon the bedside, and said, " By my troth, M-arbeck, my lord seeth so much wilfulness in thee, that he saith it is pity to do thee good. When wast thou last with Haynes?" " About three weeks ago," said he, " I was at dinner with him." " And what talk," quoth the gentleman, "had heat his board?" "I cannot tell now," quothhe. "No!" said the gentleman, " thou art not so dull witted, to forget a thing in so short a space." " Yes, sir," quoth he, " such familiar talk as men use at their tables, is most com- monly by the next day forgotten, and so it was with me." " Didst thou never," quoth the gentleman, " talk with him, nor with any of thy fel- lows, of the mass, or of the blessed sacrament?" " No," answered Marbeck, firmly. " Now forsooth," quoth the gentleman, " thou liest; for thou hast been seen to walk with Testwood, and other of thy fellows, an hour together in the church, when honest men have walked up and down beside you, and as they have drawn near you, ye have stopped your talk till they have passed you, because they should not hear whereof IHF. SECOND EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 405 you talked." " I deny not," quoth he, "but I have talked with Test- wood and other of my fellows, I cannot tell how often, which makes not that we talked either of the mass, or of the sacrament: for men may commune and talk of many matters, that they would not wish every man should hear, and yet far from any such thing; therefore it is good to judge the best." "Well," quoth the gentleman, "thou must be plainer with my lord than this, or else it will be wrong with thee, and that sooner than thou weenest." " How plain will his lordship have me to be, Sir?" quoth he. " There is nothing that I can do or say with a safe conscience, but 1 am ready to do it at his lordship's pleasure." "What tellest thou me," quoth the gentleman, " of thy conscience? Thou mayst with a safe conscience tell of those that be heretics, and so doing thou canst do God and the king no greater service." " If I knew, sir," quoth he, "who was a heretic indeed, it were another thing; but if I should accuse him to be a heretic that is none, what a worm would that be in my conscience so long as I lived? yea it were a great deal better for me to be out of this life, than to live in such torment." " In faith," quoth the gentleman, "thou knowest as well who are heretics ot thy fellows at home, and who are not, as I know this paper to be in my hand : but it is no matter, for they shall all be sent for and examined : and thinkest thou that they will not utter and tell of thee all that they can ? Yes, I warrant thee. And what a foolish dolt art thou, that wilt not utter aforehand what they are, seeing it standeth upon thy deliverance to tell the truth?" "Whatsoever," quoth he, "they shall say of me, let them do it in the name of God, for I will say no more of them, nor of any man else, than I know." " Well," quoth the gentleman, " if thou wilt so do, my lord requireth no more. And forasmuch as now thy wits are troubled, so that thou canst not call things to thy remembrance, I have brought the ink and paper, that thoumayest write such things as shall come to thy mind." " O God !" quoth Marbeck, " what will my lord do? Will his lordship compel me to accuse men I know not whereof?" " No," quoth the gentleman, " my lord compelleth thee not, but gently intreateth thee to tell the truth; therefore make no more ado, but write, for my lord will have it so." So he laid down the ink and paper, and went his way. Marbeck was now so full of sorrow, that he knew not what to do, nor how to set the pen to the book to satisfy the bishop's mind, unless he accused men, to the wounding of his own soul. And thus being compassed with nothing but sorrow and care, he cried out to God in his heart, falling down weeping, and said — " O most merciful Father of heaven, thou that knowest the secret doings of all men, have mercy upon thy poor prisoner who is destitute of all help and comfort. Assist me. O Lord, with thy special grace, for to save this frail and vile body which shall turn to corruption at his time, I have no power to say or to write any thing that may be to the casting away of my christian brother; but rather, O Lord, let this vile flesh suffer at thy will and pleasure. Grant this, O most merciful Father, for thy dear Son Jesus Christ's sake." Then he rose up and began to search his conscience what he might write, and at last framed out these words: " Whereas your lordship will have me to write such things as I know of my fellows at home; pleaseth 406 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. it your lordship to understand, that I cannot call to remembrance any manner of thing whereby I might justly accuse any one of them unless it be the reading of the New Testament, which is common to all men ; more than this I know not." The gentleman came again, and found Marbeck walking up and down the chamber. ''How now," quoth he, "hast thou written nothing?" " Yes, Sir," quoth he, " as much as I know." " Well said," quoth the gentleman ; and took up the paper. But when he had looked over it, he cast it from him in a great fume, swearing by our Lord's body, that he would not for twenty pounds carry it to his lord and master. *' Therefore," quoth he, " go to it again, and advise thyself better, or else thou wilt set my lord against thee, and then art thou utterly un- done." " By my troth, sir," quoth Marbeck, " if his lordship shall keep me here these seven years I can say no more than I have said." " Then wilt thou repent it," quoth the gentleman; and so putting up his pen and inkhorn, departed with the paper in his hand. The next and third examination of this excellent man was by Gardiner himself, who seemed impatient of the result, and fearful to trust any more to his deputy. The next day, by eight o'clock in the morning, the bishop sent for Marbeck to his house at St. Mary Overy's, and as he was entering into the hall, he saw the bishop himself coming out at a door in the upper end thereof, with a roll in his hand, and going toward the great window, who called to him and said, " Marbeck, wilt thou cast away thyself?" " No, my lord," quoth he, " I trust." " Yes," quoth the bishop, " thou goest about it, for thou wilt utter nothing. What the devil made thee meddle with the scriptures ?<* Thy vocation was another way, wherein thou hast a goodly gift, if thou didst esteem it." " Yes, my lord," quoth he, " I do esteem it, and have done my part therein, according to the little knowledge that God hath given me." " And why the devil," quoth the bishop, " didst thou not hold thee there?" And with that he went away from the window out of the hall, the poor man following him from place to place, till he had brought him into a long gallery, and being there, the bishop began on thiswise: "Ah, sirrah, the nest of you is broken, I trow." And unfolding his roll, which was about an ell long, he said, " Behold, here be your captains, both Hobby and Haynes, with all the whole pack of thy sect about Windsor, and yet thou wilt accuse none of them." "Alas, my lord," quoth he, "how should I accuse them, of whom I know nothing?" "Well," quoth the bi- shop," if thou wilt needs cast away thyself, who can help thee? what helpers hadst thou in setting forth thy book?" "Forsooth, my lord," quoth he, "none." "None!" quoth the bishop, " how can that be? It is not possible that thou shouldst do it without help." "Truly, my lord," quoth he, " I cannot tell in what part your lordship doth take it, but howsoever it be, I will not deny but I did it without the help of any 1 If this be a faithful record, it would appear true, as asserted of Gardiner, that he was a profane as well as a cruel man. Indeed, these base qualities are generally found in union. A modern member of the episcopal bench, of splendid talents, and high reputation for his orthodox and gifted publications, is said to have been in his violent passions a most profane swearer. Judging by the fury with which he sometimes treats his literary oppo- nents, he might, in the age of Gardiner, have been an inquisitor equally barbarous. EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 407 one save God alone." " Nay," quoth the bishop, " I do not discom- mend thy diligence, but why shouldst thou meddle with that thing which pertaineth not to thee?" On speaking these words, one of his chaplains, called Mr. Medow, came up, and stopped at a window, to whom the bishop said, " Here is a marvellous thing : this fellow hath taken upon him to set out the Concordance in English, which book when it was set out in Latin, was not done without the help and diligence of a dozen learned men at the least, and yet will he insist that he hath done it alone. But say what thou wilt," quoth the bishop, " except God himself would come down from heaven, and tell me so, I will not believe it:" and so going forth to a window where two great bibles lay upon a cushion, the one in Latin and the other in English, he called Marbeck unto him, and pointing his finger to a place in the Latin bible, said, " Canst thou English this sentence?" " Nay, my lord," quoth he, "I trow I be not so clever to give it perfect English, but I can make out the English thereof in an English bible." " Let us see," quoth the bishop. Then Marbeck turn- ing the English bible, found out the place, and read it to the bishop. So he tried him three or four times, till one of his men came up and told him the priest was ready to go to mass. As the bishop was going, the gentleman who had examined Marbeck in the Marshalsea the day before, said, " Shall this fellow write nothing while your lordship is at mass?" " It is no matter," quoth the bishop, " for he will tell nothing;" and so went down to hear mass, leaving Marbeck alone in the gallery. The bishop was no sooner down, but the gentleman came up again with ink and paper. " Come, sir," quoth he, " my lord will have you occupied till mass be done;" persuading him with fair words that he would soon be dispatched out of trouble, if he would use truth and plainness. " Alas, sir," quoth he, " what would my lord have me to do? For more than I wrote to his lordship yester- day, I cannot." "Well, well, go to," quoth the gentleman, "and make speed," and so went his way. There was no remedy, but Marbeck must now write something; wherefore he, calling to God again in his mind, wrote a few words, as near as he could frame them, to those he had written the day before. When the bishop was come from mass, and had looked on the writing, he pushed it from him, saying, " What will this do? It hath neither head nor foot. There is a marvellous sect of them," quoth the bishop to his men, " for the devil cannot make one of them betray another." Then was there nothing among the-bishop's gentlemen, as they were making him ready to go to the court, but erucifige* upon the poor man. And when the bishop's white rochet was on him — " Well, Marbeck," quoth he, " I am now going to the court, and intended, if I had found thee tractable, to have spoken to the king's majesty for thee, and to have given thee thy meat, drink, and lodging here in mine house ; but seeing thou art so wilful and so stubborn, thou shalt go to the devil for me." Then was he carried down by the bishop's men, with many railing r This appears to have been a slang word of frequent use in that day — a term of abuse, as though they would say eruptionize him, belch him, let him be emptied — that is compel him to confess. 408 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. words. And coming through the great chamber there stood Dr. Loudon, with two more of his fellows, waiting the bishop's coming by them into the hall; he was there received by his keeper, and carried to prison again. In half an hour after, the bishop sent one of his gentlemen to the under keeper, called Stokes, commanding him to put irons upon Marbeck, and to keep him fast shut in a chamber alone, and when he should bring him down to dinner or supper, to see that he spake to no man, and no man to him. Further, that he should suffer no manner of person, not even his own wife, to come and see him, or give any thing to him. When the porter, who was the cruellest man that could be to all such as were imprisoned for any matter of religion, and yet providentially favourable to Marbeck, had received this command from the bishop, he put irons upon him, and shut him up, giving warn- ing to all the house, that no man should speak or talk to Marbeck, whensoever he was brought down: and so he continued the space of three weeks or more, during which time, however, his wife was suffered to visit him once or twice at least. About three weeks before Whit Sunday, Marbeck was sent for to the bishop of London's house, where sat in commission Dr. Capon, bishop of Salisbury; Dr. Skip, bishop of Hereford; Dr. Goodrick, bishop of Ely; Dr. Oking, Dr. May, and the bishop of London's clerk, having before them all Marbeck's books. Then said the bishop of Salisbury, " We are here in commission from the king, to examine thee of certain things whereof thou must be sworn to answer us faithfully and truly." " I am content, my lord," quoth he, "to tell you the truth so far as I can," and so took his oath. Then the bishop of Salisbury laid before him his three books of notes, demanding whose hand writing they were. He answered they were his own, and notes which he had gathered out of other men's works six years ago. " For what cause," quoth the bishop of Salisbury, " didst thou gather them?" " For no other cause, my lord, but to come to knowledge. For I being unlearned, and de- sirous to understand some part of Scripture, thought by reading learned men's works, to come the sooner thereby; and where I found any place of scripture opened and expounded by them, that I noted, as ye see, with a letter of his name in the margin, that had set out the work." " So methinks," quoth the bishop of Ely, who had one of the books in his hand all the time of their sitting, "thou hast read all sorts of books, both good and bad, as seemeth by the notes." " So I have, my lord," quoth he. " And to what purpose?" quoth the bishop of Salisbury. " By my troth," quoth he, " for no other purpose but to see every man's mind." Then the bishop of Salisbury drew out a quire of the Concordance, and laid it before the bishop of Hereford, who looking upon it awhile, lifting up his eyes to Dr. Oking, standing next him, and said, " This man hath been better occupied than a great many of our priests." To which he made no answer. Then said the bishop of Salisbury, " Whose help hadst thou in setting forth this book?" ''Truly my lord," quoth he, "no help at all." — " How couldst thou," quoth the bishop, " invent such a book, or know what a concordance meant, without an instructor?" " I will tell you, my lord," quoth he, "what instructor I had to begin it. When Thomas FOURTH EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 409 Matthew's Bible came out in print, I was much desirous to have it, and being a poor man, not able to buy it, determined with myself to borrow one amongst my friends, and to write it forth. And when I had written out the five books of Moses in fair great paper, and was entered into the book of Joshua, my friend Turner, chanced to steal upon me unawares, and seeing me writing out the Bible, asked me what I meant thereby. And when I had told him the cause — * Tush,' quoth he, ' thou goest about a vain and tedious labour. But this were a profitable work for thee, to set out a concordance in English.' 'A concordance,' said I, 1 what is that?' Then he told me it was a book to find out any word in the bible by the letter, and that there was such an one in Latin already. Then I told him I had no learning to go about such a thing. * Enough,' quoth he, ' for that matter, for it requireth not so much learning as diligence. And seeing thou art so industrious a man, and one that cannot be unoccupied, it were a good exercise for thee.' And this, my lord, is all the instruction that ever I had, before or after, of any man." " And who is that Turner?" quoth the bishop of Salisbury. " Marry," quoth Dr. May, " an honest learned man, and a bachelor of divinity, and some time a fellow in Magdalen College, in Oxford." " How couldst thou," quoth the bishop of Salisbury, "with this instruction, bring it to this order and form as it is?" " I borrowed a Latin Con- cordance," quoth he, " and began to practise, and at last, with great labour and diligence, brought it into this order, as your lordship doth see." " It is a great pity," quoth the bishop of Ely, " he had not the Latin tongue." " So it is," quoth Dr. May. " Yet I cannot believe," quoth the bishop of Salisbury, " that he hath done any more in this work than written it out after some other that is more learned than himself." " My lords," quoth Marbeck, " I shall beseech you all to pardon me what I shall say, and grant my request if it shall seem good unto you." " Say what thou wilt," quoth the bishop. " I do marvel greatly wherefore I should be so much examined for this book, and whether I have committed any offence in doing it or no? If I have, then were I loth any other should be molested or punished for my fault. There- fore, to clear all men in this matter, this is my request, that ye will try me in the rest of the book that is undone. Ye see that I am yet but at the letter L, begin now at M, and take out what word ye will of that letter, and so in every letter following, and give me the words on a piece of paper, and set me in a place alone where it shall please you, with ink and paper, the English Bible, and the Latin Concordance; and if I bring you not these words written in the same order and form that the rest before is, then was it not I that did it, but some other." " By my truth, Marbeck," quoth the bishop of Ely, " that is honestly spoken, and then shalt thou bring many out of suspicion." "That he shall," quoth they all. Then they bade Dr. Oking draw out such words as he thought best on a piece of paper, and so rose up; and in the mean time fell into familiar talk with Marbeck (as the bishops of Ely and Hereford were both acquainted with him afore, and his friends, so far as they durst), who perceiving the bishops so pleasantly disposed, besought them to tell Jiim in what danger he stood. " I shall tell thee, 410 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Marbeck," quoth the bishop of Sarum, " thou art in a better case than any of thy fellows, of whom there be some would give forty pounds to be in no worse case than thou art," whose sayings the others affirmed. Then came Dr. Oking with the words he had written ; and while the bishops were perusing them over, Dr. Oking said to Marbeck, very friendly, " Good Mr. Marbeck make haste, for the sooner you have done, the sooner you shall be delivered." And as the bishops were going away, the bishop of Hereford took Marbeck a little aside, and informed him a word which Dr. Oking had written false, and also to comfort him, said, " fear not, there can no law condemn you for any thing that ye have done; for if ye had written a thousand heresies, so long as they be not your sayings nor your opinions, the law cannot hurt you." And so they all went with the bishop of Sarum to dinner, taking the poor man with them, who dined in the hall at the steward's board, and had wine and meat sent down from the bishop's table. When dinner was over, the bishop of Sarum came down into the hall, commanding ink and paper to be given to Marbeck, and the two books to one of his men to go with him ; at whose going he demanded of the bishop, what time his lordship would appoint him to do it in. " Against to-morrow this time," quoth the bishop, which was about two of the clock, and so departed. Marbeck now being in his prison-chamber fell to his business, and so applied himself, that by the next day, when the bishop sent for him again, he had written so much, in the same order and form he had done the rest before, as contained three sheets of paper and more, which, when he had delivered to the bishop of Sarum, Dr. Oking standing by, he marvelled and said, " Well, Marbeck, thou hast put me out of all doubt, I assure thee;" and added, putting up the paper into his bosom, " the king shall see this ere I be twenty-four hours older." But he dissembled every word. For afterwards the matter being come to light, and known to the king what a book the poor man had begun, which the bishops would not suffer him to finish, the king said he was better occupied than they that took it from him. So Marbeck departed from the bishop of Sarum to prison again, and heard no more of his book till at Whitsuntide he was ordered to prepare for another and a fifth examination at the same place. 8 On Whit Sunday following in the afternoon, Marbeck was sent for again to St. Mary Overy's, where he found Dr. Oking and another gentleman in a gown of damask, with a chain of gold about his neck, sitting together in one of the stalls, their backs towards the church door, looking upon an epistle of John Calvin's which Marbeck had written out; and when they saw the prisoner come, they rose and had him up to a side altar, leaving his keeper in the body of the church alone. Now as soon as Marbeck saw the face of a gentleman which before he knew not by reason of his apparel, he saw it was the same person that first examined him in the Marshalsea, and caused him to write in the bishop's 8 It may please the antiquarian reader to be reminded that these lively and crafty exami- nations took place in a chapel, which has lately excited no small portion of interest in the public mind — our Lu dye's chapelle, at the east end of St. Saviour's church, and which, in a restored and beautified state, now adorns the western scene of the new London bridge. THE FIFTH EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. * 411 gallery, but never knew his name till now he heard Dr. Oking call him Mr. Knight. This man held forth the paper to Marbeck, and said, " Look upon this, and tell whose hand it is." When Marbeck had taken the paper and seen what it was, he confessed it to be all his hand, saving the first leaf and the notes that were placed in the margin. " Then I perceive," quoth Mr. Knight, " thou wilt not go from thine own hand." " No, Sir," quoth he, " I will deny nothing that I have done." " Thou dost well in that," quoth Knight; " for if thou shouldst, we have testimonies enough to try thy hand by: but I pray thee tell me whose hand is the first leaf?" "That I cannot tell you," quoth Marbeck. "Then how earnest thou by it?" quoth Knight. " There was a priest," answered he, " dwelling with us five or six years ago, called Marshall, who sent it unto me with the first leaf written, desiring me to write it out with speed, because the copy could not be spared but an hour or two, and so I wrote it out, and sent him both the copy and it again." " And how came this hand in the margin," quoth he, "which is a contrary hand to both the others?" " That I will tell you," quoth Marbeck. " When I wrote it out at the first, I made so much haste that I understood not the matter, whereof I was desirous to see it again, and to read it with more delibera- tion : and being sent to me the second time, it was thus quoted in the margin as you see. And shortly after this it was his chance to go beyond the seas, by reason whereof the epistle remaineth with me; but whether the first leaf or the notes in the margin were his hand, or whose hand else, that I cannot tell." " Tush," quoth Dr. Oking to Mr. Knight, " he knoweth well enough that the notes be Haynes's own hand." " If you know so much," quoth Marbeck, " you know more than I do; for I tell you truly, I know it not." " By my faith, Marbeck," quoth Knight, " if thou wilt not tell by fair means, those fingers of thine shall be made to tell." " By my truth, Sir," quoth Marbeck, " if .you do tear my whole body in pieces, I trust in God you shall never make me accuse any man wrongfully." " If thou be so stubborn," quoth Dr. Oking, "thou wilt die for it." "Die! Mr. Oking," quoth he; " wherefore should I die? You told me the last day before the bishops, that as soon as I had made an end of the piece of concordance they took me, I should be delivered; and shall I now die ? This is a sudden mutation. You seemed then to be my friend. But I know the cause; ye have read the ballad I made of Moses' chair, and that hath set you against me; but whenever ye shall put me to death, I doubt not but that I shall die God's true man and the king's." " How so?" quoth Knight, " How canst thou die a true man unto the king, when thou hast offended his laws? Are not this epistle, and most of thy notes thou hast written, directly against the six articles?" " No, sir," quoth Marbeck, " I have not offended the king's laws therein; for since the first time I began with the concordance, which is almost six years ago, I have been occupied in nothing else ; so that both this epistle, and all the notes I have gathered, were written a great while before the six articles came forth, and are clearly remitted by the king's general pardon." " Trust not to that," quoth Knight, " for it will not help thee." "No, I warrant him," quoth Dr. Oking; and so going down 412 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to the body of the church, they committed him to his keeper, who led him away to prison again. Some particulars of other interesting characters must now receive our attention. When the time drew nigh that the king (who was newly married to lady Catharine Parr) should make his progress abroad, the bishop of Winchester had so compassed his matters, that no man bore so great sway about the king as he did : at which the reformers were so concerned, that the best of them looked every hour to be destroyed. The saying went abroad, that the bishop had bent his bow to shoot at some of the head deer. In the mean time three or four of the leading men were caught — Anthony Pearson, Henry Filmer, and John Marbeck — and sent to Windsor by the sheriffs men, the Saturday before St. James' day, and laid fast in the town jail; and Testwood, who had kept his bed, was brought out of his house upon crutches, and laid with them; but as for Benet, who should have been the fifth man, his chance was to be sick of the pestilence, and was therefore left behind in the bishop of London's jail. These men being brought to Windsor, there was a session specially procured to be holden the Thursday following, which was St. Anne's day. Against these sessions, by the counsel of Dr. Loudon, and Simons, were all the farmers belonging to the college of Windsor warned to appear, because they could not select papists enough in the town to go upon the jury. The judges that day were, Dr. Capon, bishop of Salisbury; Sir William Essex; Sir Thomas Bridges; Sir Humfrey Foster; Mr. Franklen, dean of Windsor; and Fachel of Reading. When they had taken their places, and the prisoners were brought forth before them, Robert Ockam, occupying for that day the clerk of the peace's room, called Anthony Pearson, according to the manner of the court, and read his indictment, as follows: — ThaJ ne na d preached, two years before, in a place called Winkfield, and there said, that " like as Christ was hanged between two thieves, even so when the priest is at mass, and hath consecrated and lifted him over his head, there he hangeth between two thieves, except he preach the word of God truly, as he hath taken upon him to do." Also that he said to the people in the pulpit — " Ye shall not eat the body of Christ, as it did hang upon the cross, gnawing it with your teeth, that the blood may run about your lips; but you shall eat him this day as ye eat him to-morrow, the next day, and every day; for it refresheth not the body but the soul." Also, that after he had preached and com- mended the scripture, calling it the word of God, he said as follows: "This is the word, this is the bread, this is the body of Christ." Also he said, that Christ, sitting with his disciples, took bread, and blessed, and brake it, and gave it to his disciples, saying, "Take and eat, this is my body. What is this to us, but to take the scripture of God and to break it to the people?" To these things Anthony answered, " I will be tried by God and his holy word, and by the true church of Christ, whether this be heresy or no, whereof ye have indicted me this day. So long as T preached the bishop of Rome, and his filthy traditions, I never was troubled ; but since I have taken upon me to preach Christ and his gospel, ye have TRIALS OF PEARSON, TESTWOOD, AND FILMER. 413 always sought my life. But it maketh no matter, for when you have taken your pleasure of my body, I trust it shall not lie in your power to hurt my soul." "Thou callest us thieves," quoth the bishop. "I say," quoth Anthony, "ye are not only thieves, but murderers, except ye preach and teach the word of God purely and sincerely to the people; which ye do not, nor ever did, but have allured them to idolatry, super- stition, and hypocrisy, for your own lucre and honour's sake, through which ye are become rather bite-sheeps, than true bishops; biting and devouring the poor sheep of Christ, like ravening wolves, never satisfied with blood ; which God will require at your hands one day, doubt it not." Then spoke Simons his accuser, standing within the bar — " It is a pity this fellow had not been burnt long ago, as he deserved." " In faith," quoth Anthony, " if you had as you deserved, you are more worthy to stand in this place than I am; but I trust, in the last day, when we shall both appear before the tribunal of Christ, it will be known which of us hath best deserved this place." " Shall I have so long a day?" quoth Simons, holding up his finger; " nay, then I care not;" and thus the most solemn of all seasons and subjects was turned into laughter, which the grave bishop did not suppress. Testwood was next called, and his indictment read, which was that he should say in the time the priest was lifting up the sacrament — " What wilt thou lift up so high? what higher? take heed, let him not fall." To this charge Testwood answered it was but a thing maliciously forged by his enemies to bring him to death. "Yes," quoth the bishop, "thou hast been seen, that when the priest should lift up the consecrated host over his head, then wouldst thou look upon thy book, or some other way, because thou wouldst not abide to look upon the blessed sacra- ment." "Ibeseehyou, my lord," quoth Testwood, " whereon did he look that marked me so well?" " Marry," quoth Bucklayer, the king's attorney, "he could not be better occupied, than to mark such heretics that so despised the blessed sacrament." A striking proof this of the arrant sophistry with which the judicious arguments of the reformers were met by their enemies. After Testwood, Filmer was called, and his indictment read; that he should say that the sacrament of the altar is nothing but a similitude and a ceremony ; and also if God be in the sacrament of the altar, he had eaten many Christs in his day. Here it should be understood, that these words were gathered of certain communications which passed between Filmer and his brother. The story was as follows: — Henry Filmer coming on a Sunday from Clewer, his parish church, in the company of one or two of his neighbours, chanced in his way to meet his brother, who was a poor labouring man, and asked him whither he went? "To the church," said he. "And what to do?" quoth Filmer, "To do," quoth he, "as other men do." "Nay," quoth Filmer, "you go to hear mass, and to see your Christ." " What if I do so?" quoth he. " If that be Christ," Filmer said, " I have eaten twenty Christs in my days. Turn again, fool, and go home with me, and I will read thee a chapter out of the Bible, that will be better than all that thou shalt see or hear there." This tale was no sooner brought to Dr. Loudon, by Simons, Filmer's 414 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. utter enemy, but he sent for the poor man home to his house, telling him he should never want so long as he lived, so that Filmer, thinking to have a daily friend in the doctor, was content to do so, and say what- soever he and Simons would have him against his own brother. And when the doctor had thus won the poor man, he retained him as one of his household, until the court day was come, and then sent him up to witness this aforesaid tale against his brother : which tale Filmer denied utterly, saying that Dr. Loudon, for a little meat and drink, had set him on and made him say what he pleased. " Wherefore my lord," quoth Filmer to the bishop, " I beseech your lordship weigh the matter indif- ferently, forasmuch as there is no man, in all this town, that can or will testify that ever he heard any such talk between him and me ; and if he can bring forth any that will witness it, I refuse not to die." But say what he could it would not prevail. On Filmer seeing that his brother's accusement would take place, he said, "Ah, brother, what cause hast thou to shew me this unkindness? I have always been a natural brother unto thee and thine, and helped thee all in my power, from time to time, as thou thyself knowest; and is this a brotherly part, thus to reward me now for my kindness? God forgive thee, my brother, and grant thee grace to repent." Then Filmer, looking over his shoulder, desired some good person to let him see the book of statutes. His wife .being at the end of the hall, and hearing her husband call for the book of statutes, ran down to the keeper, and brought up the book, and got it conveyed to her husband. The bishop seeing the book in his hand, started up from the bench in a great fume, demanding who had given the prisoner that book, commanding it to be taken from him, and to make search who had brought it, swearing by the faith of his body that he should go to prison. Some said it was his wife, some said the keeper. " Like enough, my lord," quoth Simons, " for h§ is one of the same sort, and as worthy to be here as the best, if he were rightly served." But whosoever it was, the truth was not known, and so the bishop sat down again. Then said Filmer, " O my lord, I am this day judged by a law, and why should I not see the law that I am judged by? The law is, I should have two lawful witnesses, and here is but one, who acts not by his own will, but is forced thereunto by the suggestion of mine enemies." " Nay," quoth Bucklayer, the king's attorney, " thine heresy is so heinous, and so much against thine own brother, that it forceth him to witness against thee, which is more than two other witnesses." Thus was Filmer brought unjustly to his death by the malice of Simons and Dr. Loudon, who had incited his wretched brother to work his destruction. But God, who is a just avenger of all falsehoods and wrongs, would not suffer that wretch to live long upon earth ; but the next year he was taken up for a labourer to go to Boulogne, and had not been there three days, when a spring-gun took him and tore him all to pieces. Thus were the words of Solomon fulfilled — "A false witness shall not remain unpunished." John Marbeck was now called, and his indictment was nearly the same as that of the others — that he should say that the holy mass, which the priest consecrates into the body of our Lord, is polluted, deformed, sinful, and open robbery of the glory of God, from which a christian CONDEMNATION OF MARBECK AND OTHERS. 415 heart ought both to abhor and flee. And the elevation of the sacrament is the similitude of setting up the images of the calves in the temple built, by Jeroboam: and that it is greater abomination than the sacrifices made by the Jews in Jeroboam's temple to those calves. And that certain and sure it is, that Christ himself is made in the mass man's laughing-stock. To this Marbeck answered and said, that the words whereof they had indicted him were not his, but the words of a learned man called John Calvin, drawn out of a certain epistle which Calvin had made, which epistle he had only written out, and that long before the six articles came forth; so that now he was discharged of that offence by the king's general pardon, desiring that he might enjoy the benefit thereof. Then was the jury called, who were all farmers belonging to the college of Windsor, whereof few or none had ever seen the men before, on whose life and death they sat. Wherefore the prisoners, counting the farmers as partial, desired to have the townsmen, or such as did know them, and had heard their daily conversations, in place of the farmers, or else to be equally joined with them; but this justice was not allowed, for the matter was otherwise foreseen and determined. When the jury had taken their oath, Bucklayer, the king's attorney, began to speak; first he alleged many reasons against Anthony Pearson, to prove him a heretic: and when Anthony would have disproved them, the bishop said, " Let him alone, sir, he speaketh for the king:" and so went Bucklayer on, making every man's cause as heinous to the hearers as he could devise. When he had done, Sir Humfrey Foster spoke in favour of Marbeck, as follows: " Masters, you see there is no man here that accuseth or layeth any thing to the charge of this poor man, Marbeck, saying he hath writ certain things of other men's sayings, with his own hand, whereof he is discharged by the king's general pardon ; therefore ye ought to have a conscience therein." Then started up Fachel, at th£ lower end of the bench, and said, "How can we tell whether they were writ- ten before the pardon, or after? they may as well be written since as before, for any thing that we know." These words of Fachel, as every one said, were the cause of Marbeck's being cast that day. Then the jury went up to the chamber, and when they had been together there about the space of a quarter of an hour, Simons went up to them. After that came one of them down to the bishop, and talked with him and the other two a good while: whereby many conjectured that the jury could not agree. But whether it was so or no, it was not long after his going up again, ere that they came down to give their verdict; and being required according to the form of the Jaw to say their minds, one Hide, the foreman, said the prisoners were all guilty of the charges brought against them. The judges, beholding the prisoners a good while — some of them even with tears — contended who should give judgment. Fachel requiring the bishop to do it, he said, "I may not." The others also being required, said, "We will not." Then said Fachel, " It must be done; one must do it, and if no man will, then will I." And so he, though he was the lowest of all the bench, gave judgment. Then Marbeck, being the last upon whom sentence was given, cried to the bishop, 416 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. saying, "Ah, my lord, you told me otherwise when I was before you and the other two bishops. You said then, that I was in better case than any of my fellows, and is your saying come to this? Ah, my lord, you have deceived me!" Then the bishop, casting up his hand, said, " I cannot do so with all," — evidently meaning that, as he could not spare all, all must die. The prisoners being condemned and had away, prepared to die on the morrow, comforting one another in the death and passion of their master Christ, who had led the way before them, trusting that the same Lord, who had made them worthy to suffer thus far for his sake, would not now withdraw his strength from them, but give them stedfast faith and power to overcome all fiery torments, and of his free mercy and goodness, for his promise sake, receive their souls. Thus lay they all the night long, calling to God for his aid and strength, and praying for their persecutors, who from blind zeal and ignorance had done they knew not what; that God of his merciful goodness would forgive them, and turn their hearts to the love and knowledge of his blessed and holy word. Indeed, such heavenly talk was amongst them that night, that the hearers watching the prison without, and of whom the sheriff himself was one, with many gentlemen more, were constrained to shed tears, as they themselves confessed On the morrow, which was Friday, as the prisoners were all preparing themselves to suffer, word was brought that they should not die that day. The cause was this : the bishop of Sarum had sent a letter to the bishop of Winchester, who was with the court at Okingham, in favour of Marbeck ; at the sight of which the bishop straightway went to the king, and obtained his pardon. This being granted, he caused a warrant to be made for the sheriff's discharge, delivering the same to the messenger, who returned with speed, bringing news of the pardon, whereat many rejoiced. Of the cause of this pardon were divers conjectures made; some said it was through the suit of the good sheriff Sir William Barrington, and Sir Humfrey Foster, with other gentlemen who favoured Marbeck, to the bishop of Sarum and the other commissioners, that the letter was again sent. Some said again that it came through the bishop of Sarum, and because Fachel himself was troubled in conscience for having convicted Marbeck. Others thought again that it was a policy of the bishops of Winchester and of Sarum, and of Dr. Loudon, because they would for once at least seem to be merciful. On Saturday in the morning, when the prisoners were to go to exe- cution, came into the prison two of the canons of the college, the one called Dr. Blithe, and the other Mr. Arch, who were both sent to be their confessors. Mr. Arch asked them, if they would be confest? and they said, "Yea." Then he demanded if they would receive the sacra- ment? "Yea," said they, "with all our hearts." "I am glad," quoth Arch, "to hear you say so; but the law is, that it may not be ministered to any that are condemned of heresy : however, it is enough for you that ye desire it." And so he had them up to the hall to hear their confessions, because the prison was full of people. Dr. Blithe took Anthony Pearson to confess, and Mr. Arch the other two. But how- soever the matter went between the doctor and Anthony, he was not long DEATH OF TESTWOOD, KILMER, AND PEARSON. 417 with him, but came down again, saying, " I will have no more of his doctrine.'' Soon after the other two came down also. Then Anthony, seeing many people in the prison, began to say the Lord's prayer, wherein he continued till the officers came to fetch them away; then taking their leave of Marbeck, they praised God for his deliverance, wishing him an increase of godliness and virtue, and last of all besought him heartily to help them with his prayer unto God, to make them strong in their afflictions: and so kissing him one after another, they departed. As the prisoners passed through the people in the street, they desired all the people to pray for them, and to stand fast in the truth of the gospel, and not to be moved at their afflictions, for it was the happiest thing that ever came to them. And as Dr. Blithe and Arch, who rode on each side the prisoners, would persuade them to turn to their mother holy church — "Away," would Anthony cry, " away with your Romish doctrine and all your trumpery, for we will have no more of it." When Filmer came to his brother's door, he stayed and called for his brother; but he could not be seen, for Dr. Loudon had kept him out of sight. When he had called for him three or four times, and saw he came not, he said, "And will he not come? Then God forgive him, and make him a good man." Thus they came to the place of execution, where Anthony Pearson, with a cheerful countenance, embraced the post in his arms, and kissing it said, " Now welcome mine own sweet wife; for this day shalt thou and I be married together in the love and peace of God." When they were all three bound to the post, a young man of Filmer's acquaintance brought him some liquor, asking if he would drink? " Yea," quoth Filmer, " I thank you. And now, my brother, I shall desire you in the name of the living Lord to stand fast in the truth of the gospel of Jesus Christ, which you have received;" and so taking the cup into his hand, asked his brother Anthony if he would drink. "Yea, brother Filmer," quoth he, "I pledge you in the Lord." When he had drunk, he gave the cup to Anthony, and Anthony gave it to Testwood, of which their adversaries made a jest, reporting abroad that they were all drunk, and knew not what they said ; though they were no otherwise drunk than the apostles were, when the people said they were full of new wine, as their deeds declared; for when Anthony and Testwood had both drunk, and given the cup from them, Filmer, rejoicing in the Lord, said, " Be merry, my brethren, and lift up your hearts and hands unto God, for after this sharp breakfast I trust we shall have a good dinner in the kingdom of Christ, our Lord and Redeemer." At these words Testwood, lifting up his hands and eyes to heaven, desired the Lord above to receive his spirit. Anthony Pearson, pulling the straw towards him, laid a good deal thereof upon the top of his head, saying, "This is God's hat; now I am dressed like a true soldier of Christ, by whose merits only I trust this day to enter his joy." Thus yielded they up their souls to the Father of Heaven, in the faith of his dear Son Jesus Christ, with such humility and stedfastness, that many who saw their patient suffering, confessed that they could have, found in their hearts to have died with them. 2 E 418 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. About the same time suffered, for the cause of God and truth, Adam Damlip, who was martyred at Calais, then belonging to the English, and was an Englishman. The spot is still shewn, just without the city, where he and others, at different times, endured with greater or less constancy the fiery trial by which the reformed faith was thus early put to the test. Calais would have witnessed many more martyrdoms, but that England began to lose its hold of the place as the persecutions advanced, Adam Damlip, otherwise George Bucker, went to Calais, in the year 1539. He had formerly been a zealous papist, and chaplain to Fisher, bishop of Rochester. After the death of the bishop, he travelled through France, Holland, and Italy, and as he went conferred with learned men concerning matters of controversy in religion, and thence proceeded to Rome, where he thought to have found all godliness and sincere religion; but instead of this, he found there, according to his assertion, such blasphemy of God, contempt of Christ's true religion, looseness of life, and abundance of all abominations and impurities, that his heart abhorred any longer to remain there. He was indeed earnestly requested by cardinal Pole, who wished him to read three lectures in the week in his house, for which he offered him great entertainment; but he preferred returning homeward by way of Calais. As he was waiting without the gate of the place for a passage to England, he was perceived by certain Calais men, named William Steven, and Thomas Lancaster, through conference of talk, to be a learned man, and also well affected ; and that being of late a zealous papist, he was now turned to a more perfect knowledge of true religion; they therefore heartily entreated him to stay at Calais awhile, and to read there a day or two, to the intent he might do some good in the city, after his painful travel. To this request Adam gladly consented, if he could be licensed by such as were in authority so to do. Whereupon Steven, at the opening of the gates, brought him to lord Lisle, the king's deputy of the town and marshes of Calais, to whom he declared thoroughly what conference had been between Damlip and him; which known, the lord deputy instantly desired Damlip to stay there, and to preach three or four days or more at pleasure, saying, that he should have both his licence and that of Sir John Butler, his com- missary, for that purpose. Having preached three or four times, he was so liked, both for his learning, his utterance, and the truth of his doctrine, that not only the soldiers and commoners, but the lord deputy and a great part of the council, gave him great praise and thanks for it; and the lord deputy offered him a chamber in his own house, and to dine and sup at his own mess, to have a man or two of his to wait upon him, and to have whatsoever he lacked, if it were to be had for money: he also offered him his purse to buy books, or otherwise, so that he would remain with them, and preach only so long as it should seem good to himself. Damlip refused with much gratitude these liberal offers of his lordship, requesting him to be only so good as to appoint him some quiet and decent place in the town where he might not be disturbed or molested, but have opportunity to give himself to his books, and he would daily, once in the forenoon and again at one o'clock in the falsi: accusations against damlip. 419 afternoon, by the grace of God, preach among them according to the talent that God had lent him. At this the lord deputy greatly rejoiced, and sent for William Stevens, whom he earnestly requested to lodge Damlip in his house, promising whatsoever he should demand, to see it paid; and moreover would send every meal from his own table of the best unto them: and indeed so he did, although Damlip refused that offer, shewing his lordship that thin diet was most convenient for students; yet could he not thus restrain the generous noble, who sent the choicest food. This godly man, for the space of twenty days or more, once everyday at seven o'clock, preached very learnedly and plainly the truth of the blessed sacrament of Christ's body and blood, inveighing against all papistry, and confuting the same, but especially those two most perni- cious errors — transubstantiation, and the propitiatory sacrifice of the Romish Mass. This he did by true conference of the scriptures, and applying of the ancient doctors, earnestly therewith oftentimes exhorting the people to return from their delusion, declaring how popish he him- self had been, and how by the detestable wickedness that he saw uni- versally in Rome, he was now become an enemy, through God's grace, to all papistry, shewing therewith that if gain or ambition could have moved him to the contrary, he might have been entertained by cardinal Pole; but for conscience sake, joined with true knowledge, grounded on God's most holy word, he now utterly abhorred the superstition, and willed them most earnestly to do the same. Thus he continued awhile reading in the Chapter-house of the White Friars; but the place not being large enough, he was desired to read in the pulpit,* and so proceeded in his lectures to declare how the world was deceived by the Roman bishops, who had set forth the damnable doctrine of transubstantiation, and the real presence in the sacrament. He came at length to speak against the pageant, or picture set forth of the resurrection in St. Nicholas' church, declaring the same to be but mere idolatry, and an illusion of the French, which the English should remove. The consequence of this was, there came a commission from the king to the lord deputy, that search should be made whether there were three hosts lying upon a marble stone be- sprinkled with blood ; and if they found it so, that immediately it should be plucked up, and so it was. For in searching thereof, as they brake up a stone in a corner of the tomb, they found soldered, in the cross of marble lying under the sepulchre, three plain white counters, which had been painted like unto hosts, and a bone; all this trumpery Damlip shewed to the people the Sunday following from the pulpit, and after that they were sent by the deputy to the king. Very soon, however, a prior of the White Friars, named Dove, with Buttoll, chaplain to the lord Lisle, began to speak against him. Yet after Adam had in three or four sermons confuted the erroneous doctrine of transubstantiation, and of the propitiatory sacrifice of the mass; the * This must have been the public rastrum of the city, then fixed in front of the town- hall, and near the centre of the great market-place ; and not the pulpit of the single church in Calais, which is in a remote corner of the place, and must then have been closed against all reformers. 420 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. friar outwardly seemed to give place, ceasing openly to inveigh, yet secretly practised to impeach him by letters sent unto the clergy in England; so that within eight or ten days after, Damlip was sent for to appear before the archbishop of Canterbury, with whom was assistant the bishop of Winchester, the bishop of Chichester, and divers others, before whom he constantly affirmed and defended the doctrine which he had taught, answering, confuting, and solving the objections; so that his adversaries, among whom was the learned and pious Cranmer, mar- velled at it, and said plainly, that the scriptures knew not such a term as transubstantiation. Then began the other bishops to threaten him, shortly to confute him with their accustomed argument of fire and fagot, if he would still stand to the defence of that he had spoken. To this he constantly answered, that he would the next day deliver unto them fully as much in writing as he had said, whereunto also he would stand; and so he was dismissed. The next day at the appointed hour for his appearance, when they looked surely to have apprehended him, he came not; for he had secret intimation from the archbishop of Canterbury, that if he again person- ally appeared, he would be committed to ward and not likely to escape a cruel death. On this he sent them four sheets of paper, learnedly written in the Latin tongue, containing his faith, with his arguments, conferences of the scriptures, and allegations of the doctors, by a friend of his; which done, he with a little money given him, stepped aside and fled into the west country; where he continued teaching a school about a year or two, after which he was again apprehended by the inquisition of the six articles, and brought to London. Gardiner commanded him into the Marshalsea, and there he lay the space of other two years, or about that time. During his confinement in the Marshalsea, John Marbeck was com- mitted to the same prison, on the morrow after Palm Sunday. It should be understood that at Easter every person must needs come to confes- sion ; whereupon Marbeck, who had never seen him before, entering into conference with him, perceived what he was, what he had been, what troubles he had sustained, how long he had lain in prison, which Damlip related to him. " And now," said he, " because I think they have forgotten me, I am fully minded to make my humble suit to the bishop of Winchester, in an epistle, declaring therein mine obedience, humble submission, and earnest desire to come to examination. I know the worst: I can but lose my life at present, which I had rather do, than remain here and not be suffered to use my talent to God's glory; wherefore, God willing, I will surely put it to the proof." Damlip, for honest and goodly behaviour, was beloved of all the house; but especially by the keeper himself whose name was Massy, whom he always called master; and being suffered to go at liberty within the premises whither he would, he did much good among the common and dissolute sort of prisoners, in rebuking vice and sin, and thus kept them in such good order and awe, that the gaoler thought him a great treasure. And no less also Marbeck himself confessed to have found great comfort from him. For notwithstanding the strict command given by the bishop of Winchester, that no man should come MARTYRDOM OF DAM LI P. 421 to him, nor he to speak with any man, yet Adam many times would find the means to comfort his companion. Now when he had made known and drawn ont his epistle, he de- livered it to the keeper on Saturday in the morning 1 , which was about the second week before Whit Sunday, desiring him to deliver it at the court to the bishop of Winchester. The keeper said he would, and so did. Having done it, he came home at night very late, and when the prisoners, who had waited supper for his coming, saw him sad and heavy, they deemed something to be amiss. At last casting his eyes upon Damlip, he said, " George, u I can tell thee tidings." " What is that, master?" quoth he. " Upon Monday next, thou and I must go to Calais." "To Calais! what to do?" "I know not," quoth the keeper, and pulled out of his purse a piece of wax, with a little label of parchment, hanging out thereat, which seemed to be a precept. When Damlip saw it, he said, " Well, well, master, now I know what the matter is." " What?" quoth the keeper. "Truly, master, I shall die in Calais." " Nay," quoth the keeper, " I trust it will not be so." " Yes, yes, master, it is most true ; and I praise God for his goodness therein." And so the keeper with Damlip and Marbeck went together to supper, with heavy cheer for Sir George, as they used to call him. He notwithstanding was merry himself, and ate his meat as well as ever: insomuch that some of the board told him they marvelled how he could eat so well, knowing he was so near his death. " Ah, mas- ters," quoth he, " do you think that I have been God's prisoner so long in the Marshalsea, and have not yet learned to die ? Yes, yes, and I doubt not but God will strengthen me therein." On Monday, early in the morning, the keeper, with three others of the knight -marshal's servants, setting out of London, conveyed Adam Damlip to Calais, upon Ascension Eve, and there committed him to the mayor's prison. On the same day, John Butler, the commissary afore- said, and Sir Daniel, the curate of St. Peter's, were also committed to the same prison, and commandment given for no man to speak with Butler especially, nor generally to the rest. The following Saturday was the day of execution for Damlip. The cause which they laid to his charge was heresy; but by reason of an act of parliament all such offences, done by a certain day, were pardoned. Through this act he could not be burdened with any thing that he had preached or taught before; yet for receiving a French crown of cardi- nal Pole, which he gave him merely to assist him in his travelling ex- pences, he was condemned of treason, and cruelly put to death, being hung, drawn, and quartered. The day before his execution, came unto him one Mr. Mote, then parson of our Lady's church in Calais, saying, " Your four quarters shall be hanged at four parts of the town." " And where shall my head be?" said Damlip. "Upon the Lantern gate," said Mote. "Then," answered Damlip, " shall I not need to provide for my burial." At his death, Sir R. Ellerker. then knight-marshal there, would not suffer the innocent and godly man to declare either his faith, or the cause he died n His names as before observed, were George Bucker, Adam Damlip. 422 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. for; but said to the executioner, "Dispatch the knave, have done!" Mote was appointed there to preach, and declared to the people how Damlip had been a sower of seditious doctrine; and albeit he was for that absolved by the general pardon, yet he was condemned for being a traitor against the king. To which when Adam Damlip would have replied, Ellerker would not suffer him to speak a word, but commanded him to be had away. Thus most meekly, patiently, and joyfully, the blessed and innocent martyr took his death ; Ellerker saying, that he would not away before he had seen the traitor's heart plucked out of his body. Divine Providence, however, shortly after overtook this san- guinary monster with a just punishment: for in a skirmish between the French and English at Boulogne, he was among others slain. His mere death sufficed not his enemies : but after they had stripped him naked, they cut the heart out of his body, and so left him a terrible example to all bloody and merciless men. For no cause was known why they shewed such indignation against Sir Ralph Ellerker more than against the rest, but that it is written, Faciens justitias Dominus fy judicia omnibus injuria pressis. Among others who suffered there, was a certain scholar, counted to be a Scotchman, named Dod, who coming out of Germany was taken with certain German books about him, and being examined, and standing constantly to the truth that he learned, was condemned to death, and burned in the same city. The chief thing now aimed at by the whole popish party was Cran- mer's ruin. Gardiner employed many to insinuate to the king, that he gave the chief encouragement to heresy of any in England, and that it was in vain to lop off the branches, and leave the root still growing. The king, till then, would never hear the complaints that were made him : but now, to penetrate into the depths of this design, he was willing to draw out all that was to be alleged. Gardiner reckoned that this point being gained, all the rest would follow; and judging that the king was now alienated from him, more instruments and artifices than ever were accordingly made use of. A long paper containing many particulars, both against Cranmer and his chaplains, was put in the king's hands. Upon this the king sent for him; and after he had complained much of the heresy in England, he said he resolved to find out the chief promoter of it, and to make him an example. Cranmer wished him first to consider well what heresy was, that so he might not condemn those as heretics who stood for the word of God against human inventions. Then the king told him frankly, that he was the man complained of as most guilty; and shewed him all the informations he had received against him. Cranmer confessed he was still of the same mind that he had when he opposed the six articles, and submitted himself to a trial; he confessed many things to the king — in particular that he had a wife, but he had sent her out of England when the act of the six articles passed; and expressed so great a sincerity, and put so entire a confidence in the kinor, that, instead of being ruined, he was now 7 better established with him than ever. The king was so well pleased that he even commanded him to appoint some to examine the contrivance that was laid to destroy him. Cranmer answered that it was not decent for him to nominate the judge in a A GENERAL PARDON EXCEPT FOR HERESY. 4213 cause in which himself was concerned; but the king being positive, he named some to undertake it, and the whole secret was found out. It appeared that Gardiner had been the chief instrument, and had en- couraged informers to appear against him. Cranmer did not press the kino- to give him any reparation; for he was so noted for his readiness to forgive injuries, and to do good for evil, that it was commonly said by the king himself, that the best way to obtain his favour, was to do him an injury. Of this he gave signal proof at this time, both in rela- tion to some of the clergy and laity who sought to undermine him: by which it appeared that he was actuated by that meek and lowly spirit which became all the followers of Christ; and more particularly one who was so great an instrument in reforming the Christian church, and who therefore was publicly pledged to eminent acts of charity, and him- self to practise that which he taught others to do. A parliament was now called, in which the great act of succession to the crown passed. By it the crown was first to descend to prince Edward and his heirs, or the heirs by the king's present marriage: after them to the lady Mary, and lady Elizabeth; and in case they had no issue, or did not observe such limitations and conditions as the king should appoint, then it was to fall to any other whom he should name, either by letters patent, or by his last will signed with his own hand. An oath was appointed both against the pope's supremacy, and for maintaining the succession according to this act, which all were required to take under the penalty of treason. It was made treason to say or write any thing contrary to this act, or to the slander of any of the king's heirs named in it. Another act passed, qualifying the severity of the act of the six articles: none were to be imprisoned but upon a legal present- ment, except upon the king's warrant. None were to be challenged for words but within a year ; nor for a sermon, but within forty days. This was made to prevent such conspiracies as had been discovered the former year. Another act passed, renewing the authority given to thirty-two commissioners to reform the ecclesiastical law, which Cranmer promoted much; and, to push it forward, he put out of the canon law, a collection of many things against the regal, and for the papal au- thority, with several other very extravagant propositions, to shew how indecent a thing it was to let a book, in which such things were, con- tinue still in any credit in England: but he could not bring this to any good issue. A general pardon now was granted, out of which heresy was excepted. The king was now engaged in a war both with France and Scotland. The earl of Hertford was sent with an army by sea to Scotland, who, landing at Grantham a little above Leith, burnt both Leith and Edin- burgh ; but neither stayed to take the castle of Edinburgh, nor did he fortify Leith, but only wasted the country from that to Berwick. He did too much, if it was intended to gain the hearts of that nation; and too little, if it was intended to subdue them; for this only inflamed their spirits more, and rendered them so united in their aversion to England, that the Earl of Lennox, who had been cast off by France and was gone over to the English interest, could make no party in the west, but was forced for his own preservation to flee into concealment. Audley, the 424 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. chancellor, dying at this time, Wriothesly, who was of the popish party was put in his place. On the other hand Dr. Petre, hitherto Cranmer's friend, was made secretary of state : so equally did the king keep the balance between both parties. Being to cross the seas, he left a com- mission for the administration of affairs during his absence, to the queen, the archbishop, the chancellor, the earl of Hertford, and secretary Petre; with the proviso that if they should have any occasion to raise any force, he appointed the earl of Hertford his lieutenant. He gave orders also to translate the prayers, processions, and litanies, into the English tongue, which gave the reformers some hope that he had not quite cast off his design of reforming such abuses as had crept into the worship of God. And they also hoped that the reasons which prevailed with the king for this, would also induce him to order a translation of all the other offices into the English tongue. The king crossed the sea with great pomp, the sails of his ship being of cloth of gold. He sat down before Boulogne, and took it after a siege of two months. It was soon after almost retaken by a surprise; but the garrison were quickly put in order, and beat out the French. Thus the king returned victorious, and was as much flattered for taking this single town as if he had conquered a kingdom. The next year the king of France set out a fleet of above 300 ships; and the king of England set out an hundred sail : on both sides they were mostly mere merchantmen hired for the occasion. The French made two descents upon England, but were beaten back with loss. The English made a descent in Normandy, and burnt some towns. The people of Germany saw their danger if this war went on ; for the pope and the emperor had made a league for procuring obedience to the council now opened at Trent. The emperor was raising an army, though he had made peace both with France and the Porte ; and he was resolved to make good use of this opportunity, the two crowns being now at war. So the Germans sent to mediate a peace between them ; but it stuck long at the business of Boulogne. Lee, archbishop of York, died at this time, and Holgate was removed from Landaff thither, who in his heart favoured the reformation. Kitchen was put in Landaff, who turned with every change that was made — was " tossed to and fro with every wind of doctrine." Heath was removed from Rochester to Worcester, Holbeck was put into Rochester, and Day was appointed bishop of Chichester. All those were moderate men, and well disposed to a reformation, at least to comply with it. Still the punishments for pretended heresy went on, and the year 1546 was celebrated by the persecution and death of that glorious martyr, George Wishart, in Scotland. But, before we proceed to him, we shall relate the sufferings of some other martyrs of that country, who, although not so conspicuous in history, were equally deserving public admiration and gratitude, being all of one spirit, and that " the spirit of wisdom and knowledge in the revelation of Jesus Christ." Not long after the burning of Stratton and Gurley, by the influence of David Beaton, bishop and cardinal of St. Andrew's, and George Treichton, bishop of Dunkeld, there arose a canon of St. Colmes and ACCOUNT OF THOMAS FORRET. 425 vicar of Dolone, culled dean Thomas Forret, who preached every Sunday to his parishioners out of the epistle or gospel as it fell for the time; which then was a great novelty in Scotland, scarcely any one ever preaching except a black or a grey friar. Therefore the friars envied Fonet, and accused him to the bishop of Dunkeld, in whose diocese he remained, as a heretic, and one that showed the mysteries of the scriptures to the vulgar in English, to make the clergy detestable in the sight of the people. The bishop, moved by the friars' instigation, called Forret before him and said, " I love you well, and therefore must give you my council how you should rule and guide yourself in these days. My dear dean Thomas, I am informed that you preach from the epistle or gospel every Sunday to your parishioners, and that you take not the cow, nor the uppermost cloth from your parishioners, which is very prejudicial to the churchmen ; and, therefore, I would you took your cow and your upper- most cloth as other churchmen do, or else it is too much to preach every Sunday ; for in so doing you may make the people think that we should preach likewise. v But it is enough for you, when you find any good epistle, or any good gospel, that setteth forth the liberty of the holy church, to preach that, and let the rest be." Thomas answered, " My lord, I think that none of my parishioners will complain that I take not the cow nor the uppermost cloth, but will gladly give me the same, together with any other thing that they have; and I will give and communicate with them anything that I have; and so, my lord, we agree right well, and there is no discord among us. In regard to what your lordship saith, ' it is too much to preach every Sunday,' indeed I think it is too little; and also would w T ish that your lordship did the like." " Nay, nay, dean Thomas, let that be," said the bishop, " for we are not ordained to preach." Then said Thomas, " Where your lordship biddeth me preach, when I find any good epistle, or a good gospel, truly, my lord, I have read the new Testament and Old, and all the epistles and gospels, and among them all I could never find an evil epistle or an evil gospel ; but if your lordship will shew me the good epistle and the good gospel, and the evil epistle and the evil gospel, then I shall preach the good and omit the evil." Then spake my lord stoutly, and said, " I thank God that I never knew what the Old and New Testament was; w therefore, dean Thomas, I will know nothing but my portuise and my pontificial. Go your way, and let be all these fantasies, for if you persevere in these erroneous opinions, ye will repent. when ye may not mend it." Thomas said, " I trust my cause to be just in the presence of God; and, therefore, I pass not much what do follow thereupon;" and thus my lord and he parted at that time. Soon after a summons was directed v What a vile criminal was this reformer, Forret, for waving his right to the cow and the upper garment of his poor parishioners, that their families might have more milk and be better clothed than usual, and then to think of supporting his charitable conduct by appeal- ing to the gospels and epistles of the New Testament! And what a holy churchman was the bishop of Dunkeld to insist upon both these novel practices being discontinued ! * From this arose the proverb so common in Scotland — " You are like the bishop of Dunkeld, you know not either the old or the new one." 426 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. from the cardinal of Saint Andrew's and the bishop of Dunkeld, upon the dean Thomas Forret, upon two black friars, called Kelow and Benarage, and upon a priest of Striveling, called Duncane Sympson, and a gentleman called Robert Foster, with three or four others of the town of Striveling; who, at the day of their appearance, were condemned to death, without any place for recantation; because, as was alleged, they were heresiarchs, or chief heretics and teachers of heresy ; and especially because many of them were at the bridal of a priest, the vicar of Twybody, and did eat flesh in Lent at the said bridal. These were the heinous crimes of the several prisoners, and for which they were altogether burnt upon the castle-hill at Edinburgh, where they that were first bound to the stake piously and marvellously did comfort them which came behind, and by their example induced them to be equally courageous and submissive. Robert Lambe, William Anderson, James Hunter, James Ravelson, James Founleson, and Hellen his wife, were not long after the victims of a cruel persecution in the city of Perth; the occasion and preparation of which was chiefly as follows. There was a certain act of parliament made in the time of the lord Hamilton, earl of Arran, and governor of Scotland, giving privilege to all men of the realm of Scotland to read the scriptures in their mother tongue and language; yet forbidding all reasoning, conference, and convocation of people to hear the scriptures read or expounded. This liberty of private reading, being granted by public proclamation, lacked not his own fruit, so that in sundry parts of Scotland thereby were opened the eyes of the people of God to see the truth and abhor the papistical abominations. Among these were certain persons in Perth, then called by the ancient and ecclesiastical name of St. Johnstone. At this time there was a sermon by friar Spense, in Perth, affirming prayers made to saints to be so necessary, that without them there could be no hope of salvation to man. This blasphemous doctrine a burgess of the town, called Robert Lambe, could not abide, but accused the friar in open audience of erroneous doctrine, and abjured him in God's name to utter the truth. The friar, being stricken with fear, promised to do this, but the trouble and tumult of the people increased so, that he could have no audience; and yet Lambe with great danger of his life, escaped the hands of the multitude, chiefly made up of women, who contrary to nature addressed themselves to extreme cruelty against him. The ene- mies of truth proceeded so far as to procure John Chartuous, who favoured the truth, and was provost of the city of Perth, to be deposed from his office by the governor's authority: a papist, named Alexander Marbeck, was chosen in his room, that they might the more easily accomplish their ungodly enterprise. After deposing the former provost, and electing the other, which took place in the month of January on St. Paul's day, there came to Perth the governor, the cardinal, the earl of Argyle, justice Campbel of Lunde, justice Defort, the lord Borthwike, the bishops of Dunblane and Orkeney, with certain others of the nobility and gentry. And although there were many accused of the crime of heresy, as they term it, yet these persons only were at this time apprehended : Robert Lambe, CONDEMNATION OF ANDERSON AND OTHERS. 427 William Anderson, James Hunter, James Raveleson, James Founleson, and Hellen his wife. They were cast that night in the Spay Tower of the said city, to abide judgment on the morrow. When they then were brought forth to judgment, there was laid in general to all their charge, violating of the act of parliament before expressed, and their conference and assemblies in hearing and expounding scripture against the tenor of the said act. Robert Lambe was specially accused for interrupting the friar in the pulpit; which he not only confessed, but also affirmed constantly that it was the duty of no man, who understood and knew the truth, to hear the same impugned without contradiction; and there- fore any who were there present in judgment, who withheld their defence of the truth, should bear the burden in God's presence for neglecting the same. William Anderson and James Raveleson, were accused of hanging up the image of St. Francis in a cord, nailing ram's horns to his head, and a cow's rump to his tail, and for eating a goose on Allhallows eve. James Hunter, being a simple man and without learning, and a fletcher x by occupation, so that he could be charged with no great knowledge in doctrine, yet because he was often found in the company of the rest was accused with them. The woman, Hellen, was charged with not calling upon the name of the Virgin Mary, being exhorted thereto by her neighbours, but only upon God for Jesus Christ's sake; and because she said in like manner that if she herself had been in the time of Virgin Mary, God might have looked to her humility and base estate, as he did to the Virgin's, in making her the mother of Christ: thereby meaning, that there was no merit in the Virgin, which procured her the honour to be made mother of Christ, and to be preferred before other women; but only God's free mercy exalted her to that estate. These words were counted most execrable in the face of all the clergy, and of the whole multitude. James Raveleson building a house, set upon the round of his fourth pair of stairs the triple crown of the pope in carved work, which the cardinal took as done in derision of St. Peter, the pope, and himself; and this procured no favour to James at his hands. These persons, on the morrow after St. Paul's day, were condemned to death, and that by an assize, for violating the act of parliament, for reasoning and conferring upon scripture, for eating flesh upon days for- bidden, for interrupting the holy friar in the pulpit, for dishonouring images, and blaspheming the Virgin Mary. After sentence was given, their hands were bound, and they were cruelly treated; all but the woman ; when she desired likewise to be bound by the sergeants with her husband for the sake of Christ. There was great intercession made by the people of the town to the governor for the life of these persons, and he seemed willing so to have done, that they might have been delivered. But the governor was so subject to the tyranny of the cruel priests, that he could not do that which he would. They even menaced to assist his enemies and to depose x This was a maker of arrows, an occupation which the discovery of gunpowder and other modern means of warfare were fast reducing in importance; but. which at earlier periods was one of the most prosperous and active concerns in the land. 428 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. him, except he assisted their cruelty. There were certain priests in the city who had eaten and drunken before in the honest men's houses and were much indebted to them. These priests were earnestly desired to intreat for their friends at the cardinal's hands; but altogether refused, desiring rather their death than their preservation. In fact no means could be found to save them, and they were carried by a great band of armed men to the place of execution, which was common to the worst criminals, and that to make their cause appear more odious to the people. Robert Lambe made his exhortations to the people, desiring them to fear God, and leave the leaven of papistical abominations. He prophe- sied of the ruin and plague which came upon the cardinal thereafter. The rest were also firm and resigned, so that every one comforting ano- ther, and assuring themselves that they should sup together in the king- dom of heaven that night, they commended their souls to God, died in the Lord, and were truly blessed. The woman desired earnestly to die with her husband, but she was not allowed ; yet, following him to the place of execution, she gave him comfort, exhorting him to perseverance and patience for Christ's sake, and parting from him with a kiss, said : " Husband, rejoice, for we have lived together many joyful days ; but this day, in which we must die, ought to be the most joyful unto us both, because we must have joy for ever; therefore I will not bid you good night, for we shall very very soon meet with joy in the kingdom of heaven." The woman was taken to a place to be drowned, and though she had a child sucking on her breast, yet this moved not the unmerci- ful hearts of her enemies. So after she had commended her children to the neighbours of the town for God's sake, and the sucking infant was given to the nurse, she sealed the truth by her death. The reader will now be introduced to George Wishart, or Wisehart, another Scottish martyr, who suffered in 1546 at St. Andrews; but before we enter upon the examination of this bright luminary of the church of Christ, we will give a testimonial of his manners, written by one of his scholars to Mr. Fox. He was commonly called Mr. George, of Bennet's college, was a man of tall stature, bald-headed, and wore a round French cap : judged to be of melancholy complexion by his phy- siognomy, black- haired, long-bearded, comely of personage, well spoken after his country of Scotland, courteous, lowly, lovely, glad to teach, desirous to learn, and was well travelled, wearing never but a mantle or frieze gown to the shoes, and plain black hose, coarse canvass for his shirts, and white falling bands. All this apparel he gave to the poor, some weekly, some monthly, some quarterly, as he liked, saving his French cap, which he kept at least a whole year. He was modest and temperate, fearing God and hating covetousness ; his charity had never end, night, noon, nor day ; he forbare one meal in three, one day in four, for the most part, except what was necessary to sustain nature. He lay upon straw, and coarse canvass sheets, which when he changed he gave away. He had commonly by his bed-side a tub of water, in which he used to bathe himself. He taught the young with great modesty and gravity. Some of his people thought him severe, and would have slain him, but the Lord was his defence. And he, after WISIIART'S EXAMINATION. 429 due correction for their malice, by good exhortation amended them and went his way. His learning was no less sufficient than his desire; al- ways pressed and ready to do good in that he was able, both in the house privately and in the school publicly, professing and reading divers authors. If we should declare his love to all men, his charity to the poor, in giving, relieving, caring, helping, providing, yea, infinitely studying how to do good unto all, and hurt to none, we should sooner want words than just cause to commend him. This is the testimony of a young servant and friend of the name of Tylney, who knew Wishart well, and who was every way worthy of credit and confidence. Wishart was by birth a Scotchman, but received his education at Cambridge. The year before his death he returned to his own country, and on his way preached in many places against idolatry. He made some stay at Dundee ; but by means of Beaton he was expelled thence, and at his departure, he denounced heavy judgment on them for reject- ing the gospel. He then went and preached in many other places, and entrance to the churches being denied him, he preached in the fields. He would not suffer the people to open the church doors by violence, for that he said became not the gospel of peace which he preached. He heard the plague had broken out in Dundee, within four days after he was banished ; so he returned thither, and took care of the sick, and did all the offices of a faithful pastor among them. He shewed his gen- tleness towards his enemies, by rescuing a priest who was coming to kill him, but was discovered, and was almost torn in pieces by the people. He foretold several extraordinary things; particularly his own sufferings, and the spread of the reformation over the land. He preached last in Lothian, and there the earl of Bothwell took him, but promised upon his honour that no harm should be done him ; yet he delivered him to the cardinal, who brought him to St. Andrews, and called a meeting of bishops thither to destroy him with the more solemnity. While imprisoned in the castle, the dean of St. Andrews was sent by the cardinal to summon him to appear before the judge on the following morning, to render an account of his seditious and heretical doctrine, as they termed it. Wishart answered — " What need my lord cardinal to summon me, when I am thus in his power and bound in irons ? Can he not compel me to answer ; or does he believe that I am unprovided with the means of defending my doctrine ? But to manifest yourselves, ye do well to keep your old ceremonies and constitutions made by men." The next morning, the lord cardinal caused his servants to clothe and arm themselves in their warlike array, with jack, knapskal, splent, spear, and axe, more seeming for the battle, than for defending the true word of God. When the procession of these armed champions marching in warlike order had conveyed the bishops into the abbey church, they sent for Wishart, who was conducted into church by the captain of the castle accompanied by a hundred men thus equipped, like a lamb led to the sacrifice. As he entered the abbey church door, there was a poor man lying, vexed with great infirmities, asking of him alms, to whom he flung his purse. And when he came before the lord cardinal, the superior of the abbey, called dean John Winryme, stood up in the pulpit, and made a 430 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. sermon to all the congregation, taking his matter out of the 13th chap- ter of Matthew, and dividing his sermon into four principal parts. The first part was a brief and short declaration of the Evangelist. The second, part of the interpretation of the good seed. He called the word of God the good seed, and heresy the evil seed, and declared how heresy should be known ; which he denned thus : " Heresy is a false opinion defended with pertinacy, clearly impugning the word of God." The third part of the sermon was, the cause of heresy in that realm and all other realms. " The cause of heresy, is the ignorance of them which have the cure of men's souls : to whom it belongeth to have the true un- derstanding of the word of God, that they may be able to refute heresies with the word of God ; as saith St. Paul : " A bishop must be faultless, as becometh the minister of God, not stubborn nor angry, no drunkard, no fighter, not given to filthy lucre, but one that loveth goodness, sober- minded, righteous, holy, temperate, and that cleaveth to the true word, that he may be able to exhort with wholesome learning, and to answer that which they say against him." The fourth part was, how heresies should be known. " Heresies are known after this manner; as the gold- smith knoweth fine gold by the touchstone ; so likewise may we know heresy by the undoubted touchstone, the true and undefiled word of God." At last he added, that heretics should be put down in this present life. Here he faultered, because the gospel said," Let both grow together till the harvest," and "The harvest is the end of the world." Nevertheless, he affirmed that they should be put down by the civil magistrate and law in this life. When he ended his sermon, they caused Wishart to ascend the pulpit, there to hear his accusation and articles. Over against him stood one of the fed flock, John Lauder, laden full of cursings written on paper. Of these he took out a roll, both long and also full of devilish spite and malice, saying to the innocent George so many cruel and abominable words, and striking him so spitefully with the pope's thunder, that the ignorant people dreaded lest the earth would have swallowed him up quick. Not- withstanding he stood still with great patience, hearing the dreadful say- ings, not once moving or changing his countenance. -When Lauder had read throughout hismenacings, he spat in Wishart's face, saying, " What answerest thou to these sayings, thou runagate, traitor, which we have duly proved thee to be by sufficient witness?" Wishart hearing this, kneeled down in the pulpit, making his prayer to God. When he had ended his prayer, sweetly and christianly, he answered as follows : — " Many horrible sayings unto me a Christian man, many words abo- minable to hear, ye have spoken this day, which not only to teach, but also to think, must be great abomination. Wherefore I pray your dis- cretion quietly to hear me, that ye may know what were my sayings, and the manner of my doctrine. This my petition, my lord, I desire to be heard for three causes. First, because by means of preaching the word of God, his glory is made manifest. It is reasonable therefore, for ad- vancing the glory of God, that ye hear me, teaching truly, as I do, the pure word of God without any dissimulation. Second, because your health springeth of the word of God ; for he worketh all things by his word. It were therefore an unrighteous thing if ye should stop your ears CHARGES AGAINST WISIIART. 431 from me, teaching truly the word of God. Third, because you utter many blasphemous and abominable words, not coming of the inspiration of God, but of the devil, with no less peril than of my life. It is just therefore and reasonable, that your discretion should know what my words and doctrine are, and what I have ever taught in this realm, that I perish not unjustly to the great peril of your souls. Wherefore both for the glory and honour of God, your own health, and safeguard of my life, I beseech your patience to hear me, and in the mean time I shall recite my doctrine without any colour." " Since the time I came into this realm, I taught nothing but the ten commandments of God, the twelve articles of the faith, and the prayer of the Lord in the mother tongue. Moreover, in Dundee, I taught the epistle of St. Paul to the Romans. And I shall shew you faithfully what manner I used when I taught without any human dread ; so that your discretion give your ears benevolence and attention." This was more than his enemies could endure, and with a high voice the accuser cried out, "Thou heretic, runagate, traitor, and thief, it was not lawful for thee to preach. Thou hast taken the power in thine own hand, without any authority of the church. We fo rethink that thou hast been a preacher so long." Then all the congregation of the prelates, with their accomplices, said : "If we give him licence to preach, he is so crafty, and in the Holy Scriptures so exercised, that he will persuade the people to his opinion, and raise them against us." Seeing their malicious and wicked intent, Wishart appealed from the lord cardinal to the lord governor, as to an indifferent and equal judge. To whom Lauder answered, " Is not my lord cardinal the second per- son within this realm, chancellor of Scotland, archbishop of St. Andrews, bishop of Meropois, commendator of Aberbroshok, Legatus ?iatus, Legatus a Latere?" thus reciting all his unworthy honours. "Is not he an equal judge of thy cause and conduct? what other desirest thou to be thy judge!" "I refuse not my lord Cardinal," said Wishart, " but I desire the word of God to be my judge, and the temporal estate, with some of your lordships mine auditors, because I am here my lord governor's prisoner." Whereupon the proud and scornful people that stood by, mocked him, saying, "Such man, such judge! speaking seditious and reproachful words against the governor and other nobles meaning them also to be heretics." Then without delay and without further process they would have given sentence upon him, had not cer- tain men present counselled the Cardinal to read again the articles, and to hear his answers thereupon, that the people might not complain of his unjust condemnation. These were the articles following, with his answers, so far as they would give him leave to speak. For when he intended to mitigate their falsehoods, and shew the manner of his doctrine, they stopped his mouth with some new charge. Thus ran their bitter invectives — "Thou false heretic, runagate, traitor, and thief, deceiver of the people, thou de- spisest the holy church, and contemnest my lord governor's authority. And this we know, that when thou didst preach in Dundee, and wast charged by my lord's authority to desist, nevertheless thou wouldst not obey, but persevered in the same ; and therefore the bishop of Brothen 432 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. cursed thee, and delivered thee into the devil's hands, and gave thee in commandment that thou should preach no more: notwithstanding, thou didst continue obstinately." Wishart availed himself of a pause and said — " My lords, I have read in the Acts of the Apostles, that it is not lawful to desist from preaching the gospel for the threats and menaces of men. There it is written, * We should rather obey God than man.' I have also read in the pro- phet Malachi, ' I shall curse your blessings, and bless your cursings;' and I believe firmly that the Lord will turn your cursing into blessings." No longer could he speak, for they cried out — ''Thou false heretic didst say that the priest, standing at the altar saying mass, was like a fox wagging his tail in July." Wishart answered — " My lords, I said not so, these were my sayings — The moving of the body outward, with- out the inward moving of the heart, is nought else but the playing of an ape, and not the true serving of God : for God is a secret searcher of men's hearts; therefore whoever will truly adore and honour God, must in spirit and verity serve and worship him." Again they sought anew charge, and said — "Thou preachedst against the sacrament, saying, that there were not seven sacraments." To this absurdity he replied with caution and wisdom. — " My lords, if it be your pleasure, I never taught the number of the sacraments, whether they were seven or eleven. So many as are instituted by Christ are shewed to us by the evangelists, and all these I profess openly. Except it be the word of God, I dare affirm nothing." Without striving to refute him, they railed again — " Thou hast openly taught that auricular confession is not a blessed sacrament, and sayest that we should only confess to God, and not to any priest." To this he answered — " My lords, I say that auricular confession, seeing that it hath no promise of the gospel, it therefore cannot be a sacrament. Of the confession to be made to God, there are many testimonies in scripture, as when David saith, * I said I would acknowledge mine iniquity unto the Lord, and he forgave the punishment of my sin.' In this Psalm xxxii, David's confession signifieth the secret knowledge of our sins before God. When I exhorted the people in this manner I reproved no manner of confession; but I taught what St. James saith, ' Acknow- ledge your faults one to another, and pray one for another, that you may be healed.'" On his speaking thus cautiously, the bishops and their accomplices cried and grinned, saying — " See ye not what colour he hath in his speaking, that he may beguile and seduce us to his opinion?" One of them said, " Heretic, thou didst say openly, that it was necessary to every man to know and understand his baptism, and what it was, contrary to general councils and the estate of the holy church." He answered — " My lords, I believe there be none so unwise here that will make merchandise with a Frenchman, or any other unknown stranger, except he know and understand first the condition or promise made by such foreigners: so likewise I would that we understood what thing we promise in the name of the infant unto God in baptism. For this cause I believe ye have confirmation." Bleiter, the chaplain, then furiously interposed, and insinuated that he had the devil within him, and the spirit of error. On which a little child who was present, and WISHART DEFENDS HIS DOCTRINE. 433 heard the chaplain, said, "The devil cannot speak such words as yonder man doth speak." This enraged his foes to madness, and one cried out — " Heretic, traitor, thief, thou saidstthat the sacrament of the altar was but a piece of bread baked upon the ashes, and no other thing; and that all which is there done is but a superstitious rite against the commandment of God." To this abuse he boldly replied thus — "As concerning the sacrament of the altar, my lords, I never taught any thing against the Scripture, which I shall, by God's grace, make manifest this day, being ready there- fore to surfer death." No one interposing, he went on — " The lawful use of the sacrament is most acceptable unto God ; but the great abuse of it is very detestable unto him. But what occasion they have to say such words of me, I shall shortly shew your lordships. I once chanced to meet with a Jew when I was sailing upon the Rhine. I did enquire of him what was the cause of his pertinacy, that he did not believe that the true Messiah was come, considering that he had seen all the prophecies which were spoken of him to be fulfilled. Moreover the prophecies taken away, and the sceptre of Judah departed; and by many other testimonies of scripture I convinced him that Messiah was come, whom they called Jesus of Nazareth. This Jew answered me that ' when the Messiah cometh, he shall restore all things, and he shall not abrogate the law, which was given to our fore-fathers, as ye do. For why? ye see the poor almost perish through hunger amongst you; yet you are not moved with pity toward them : but amongst us, though we be poor Jews, there are no beggars found.' ? " It is forbidden by the law to feign any kind of imagery of things in heaven above, or in the earth beneath, or in the sea under the earth; but one God only is to be honoured : while your sanctuaries and churches are full of idols. Moreover, I must repeat what the Jew said, that a peace of bread baked upon the ashes ye adore and worship, and say, that it is your God. I have rehearsed here but the sayings of the Jew, which I never affirmed to be true." Some one replied — " Thou saidst, that extreme unction was not a sacrament." He denied the charge, " I never taught any thing of extreme unction in my doctrine, whether it were a sacrament or not." Again they accused him — " Thou saidst that holy water is not so good as wash, and such like. Thou condemnest conjuring, and saidst holy churches' cursings avail not." To this he was as usual quick in answering — " As for holy water, what strength it is of I never taught in my doctrine. Conjurings, and exorcisms, if they are conformable to the word of God, I would commend them; but in- somuch as they are not conformable to the commandment and word of God, I reprove them." Again — " Heretic and runagate, thou hast said, that every layman is a priest, and such like ; thou saidst that the pope had no more power than any other man." Wishart now felt greater need of prudence, and said — " My lords, I have taught nothing but the word of God; I remember that I have read in some places in St. John, and St. Peter, ' He hath y This speech, though found among the answers of Wishart, and introduced in the place in which he uttered it, does not appear to be so appropriate as his other replies. 2f 434 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. made us kings and priests,' and i He hath made us a royal priesthood/ Wherefore I have affirmed that any man wise in the word of God, and the true faith of Jesus Christ, hath this power given him from God; not by the power or violence of men, but by the virtue of the word of God, which word is called the power of God, as St. Paul witnesseth evidently enough. And again I say, that any unlearned man, not exer- cised in the word of God, nor yet constant in his faith, whatsoever estate or order he be of, I say, he hath no power to bind or loose, seeing he wanteth the instrument, by which he bindeth or looseth; that is to say, the word of God." After he had uttered this admirable speech, all the bishops laughed and mocked him. " Laugh ye, my lords?" said he; " though these say- ings appear scornful and worthy of derision to your lordships, neverthe- less they are very weighty to me, and of great value, because they stand not only upon myself, but also the honour and glory of God." While many godly men beholding the obstinacy and cruelty of the bishops and invincible patience of Wishart, greatly mourned and lamented, his implacable foes added to their impieties and insults, and cried out — " False heretic, thou saidst that a man hath no free will, but like as the stoics say, that it is not in man's will to do any thing, but that all cometh by God, whatsoever kind it be of." To which he wisely answered "My lords, I said not so, truly; but I said that as many as believe in Christ firmly, unto them is given freedom, conformable to the saying of St. John — ' If the Son make you free, then shall ye verily be free.' Of the contrary, as many as believe not in Christ Jesus, they are bond- servants of sin — ' He that sinneth is bound to sin.' " "Thou saidst," they exclaimed again, " it is as lawful to eat flesh upon the Friday as on Sunday." With another firm appeal to scrip- ture, he replied — " I have read in the epistles of St. Paul, that ' Whoso is clean, unto him all things are clean.' On the contrary, * To the filthy man all things are unclean.' A faithful man, clean and holy, sancti- fieth by the word the creature of God ; but the creature maketh no man acceptable unto God. So that a creature may not sanctify any impure and unfaithful man ; but to the faithful man all things are sanctified by the word of God and prayer." At this all the bishops, with their accomplices, said — " What need we any witness against him? hath he not here openly spoken blasphemy ? Heretic, thou dost say, that we should not pray to saints, but to God only. Say whether thou hast said this or not?" To which he answered — "My lord there are two things worthy of note; the one is certain, the other uncertain. It is found plainly and certain in scripture, that we should worship and honour one God, according to the saying of the first commandment, thou shalt worship and honour thy Lord God only, with all thy heart. As for praying to and honouring saints, there is great doubt among many whether they hear or not any invocation made unto them. Therefore I exhorted all men equally in my doctrine, that they should leave the uncertain way, and follow that way which was taught us by our master Christ. He is the only mediator, and alone maketh inter- cession for us to God his father. He is the door by which we must enter in : he that entereth not by this door, but climbeth another way, is a WISH ART DEFENDS HIS DOCTRINE. 435 thief and a murderer. He is the verity and life. Every one that goeth out of this way, there is no doubt but he shall fall into the mire; yea verily, is fallen into it already. This is the fashion of my doctrine, which I have ever followed. Verily, that which I have heard and read in the uford of God I taught openly, and in no corners. And now ye shall witness the same, if your lordships will hear me. Except it stand by the word of God, I dare not be so bold as to affirm any thing." Without attempting to answer these scriptural testimonies and appeals, his enemies multiplied their absurd accusations, and said — "Thou hast preached plainly, saying there is no purgatory, and that it is a feigned thing for any man after this life to be punished in purgatory." Wishart reminded them of his former answers — "As I have said heretofore, without express witness and testimony of the scripture I dare affirm nothing. I have oft read over the bible, and yet such a term found I never, nor yet any place of scripture applicable to it. Therefore I was ashamed ever to teach that thing which I could not find in the scripture." Then said he to Lauder, his accuser — " If you have any testimony of the scripture, by which you may prove any such place, shew it now before this auditory." Lauder had not a word to say for himself, but was as dumb as a beetle, except in devising a fresh charge. This was — "Thou hast taught against the vows of monks, friars, nuns, and priests; saying that whosoever was bound to such vows, vowed themselves to the estate of damnation. Moreover, that it was lawful for priests to marry." In answer, he again appealed to scripture — "My lords, I have read in the gospel, that there are three kinds of chaste men : ' some are eunuchs from their birth ; some are made such by men ; and some make themselves such for the kingdom of heaven's sake!' Verily, I say these men are blessed by the scripture of God. But as many as have not the gift of continence, nor yet for the gospel's sake have overcome the concupiscence of the flesh, and have vowed chastity, ye have experience, although I should hold my peace, to what incon- venience they have vowed themselves." When he had said these words they were all dumb for a time, and then one broke out and said — "False heretic, thou sayest thou wilt not obey our general nor provincial councils." Once more he took the sword of the Spirit: " My lords, what your general councils are I know not, I was never exercised in them ; but to the pure word of God I gave my labours. Read here your general councils, or else give me a book wherein they are contained, that I may read them: if they agree with the word of God, I will not dispute or disobey them." Upon this they cried out — "Why do we suffer him to speak further? Read on the rest of the articles, and do not stay upon them." Amono- the rest, John 'Grey-fiend' Scot, standing behind Lauder's chair, hastened him to read the rest of the articles, and not to tarry upon answers. " For we may not abide them," quoth he, " any more than the devil may abide the sign of the cross, when it is made." Then he turned to Wishart — "Thou sayest, that it is in vain to build to the honour of God costly churches, seeing that God remaineth not in the churches made with men's hands, nor yet can God be in so little space as between the priest's hands." He had now a sublime reply at hand — "My lords, 436 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Solomon saith, ' If that- the heaven of heavens cannot comprehend thee, how much less this house that I have built?' and Job consenteth to the same sentence : 'Seeing that he is higher than the heavens, therefore what canst thou build unto him? He is deeper than hell, then how shalt thou know him ? He is longer than the earth and broader than the sea.' So that God cannot be comprehended in any one place, because he is infinite. Notwithstanding, I never said that churches should be destroyed; but the contrary, I affirm ever, that churches should be sustained and upholden, that the people should be con- gregated into them, there to hear of God. Moreover, wheresoever is the true preaching of the word of God, and the lawful use of the sacra- ments, undoubtedly there is God himself: so that both these sayings are true together; God cannot be comprehended in any place, and where- soever two or three are gathered together in his name, there he is present in the midst of them. If you think otherwise, show forth reasons before this auditory." Then Lauder, not answering one word, proceeded forth in his articles — " False heretic, thou contemneth fasting, and sayest thou didst not fast." Wishart could here be at no loss with scripture and reason before him — " My lords, I find that fasting is commended in the scripture; therefore I were a slanderer of the gospel, if I condemned fasting. And not so only, but I have learned, that fasting is good for the health of the body: but God knoweth who fasteth the true fast." Lauder proceeded — " Thou hast preached openly, saying, that the soul of man shall sleep till the latter day of judgment, and shall not obtain life immortal until that day." At this foul charge, Wishart was indignant, and said — " God full of mercy and goodness forgive them that say such things of me; I know surely by the word of God, that he which hath begun to have the faith of Jesus Christ, and believeth firmly in him, believeth that the soul of man shall never sleep, but ever shall live an immortal life; which life, from day to day, is renewed in grace and augmented; nor yet shall ever perish or have an end, but ever immortal shall live with Christ. To which life all that believe in him shall come, and rest in eternal glory. Amen." When the bishops with their accomplices had thus accused this innocent man, they next condemned him to be burnt as a heretic, not having respect to his godly answers and true reasons which he alleged, nor yet to their own consciences, thinking verily that they should do to God good sacrifice, conformable to the saying of St. John — "They shall excommunicate you: yea, and the time shall come that he which killeth you shall think that he hath done God service." First they made the common people, whose desire was always to hear that innocent man speak, to disperse, after which these sons of darkness pronounced their sentence definitive, not having respect to the judgment of God. When all this was done and said, the cardinal caused his warders to return again with the prisoner into the castle, until such time as the fire was made ready. When he arrived at the castle there came Friar Scot and his mate, saying, " Sir, you must make your confession unto us." "I will make no confession unto you," replied Wishart; "go fetch me yonder man that preached this day, and DEATH OF WISH ART. 437 I will make my confession unto him." Then they sent for the sub-prior of the abbey, who came to him with all diligence; but what was said in this confession is unknown. When the fire was made ready, and the gallows at the west part of the castle near to the priory, the lord cardinal, dreading that Wishart should have been taken away by his friends, commanded to bend all the ordnance of the castle right against that part, and all his gunners to be ready and stand beside their guns, until such time as he was burned. All this being done, they bound the martyr's hands behind him, and led him forth with their soldiers from the castle to the place of execution. As he came out of* the castle gate, there met him certain beggars, asking alms for God's sake; to whom he answered, " I want my hands where- with to give you alms, but the merciful Lord, of his benignity and abundance of grace that feedeth all men, vouchsafe to give you neces- saries both unto your bodies and souls." Then afterwards met him two fiends, called friars, saying, "Master George, pray to our lady, that she may be mediatrix for you to her Son." To whom he answered meekly, " Cease, tempt me not, my brethren." After this he was led to the fire with a rope about his neck, and a chain of iron for his girdle. When he came to the fire he sunk down upon his knees, rose again, and thrice he repeated these words: — "O thou Saviour of the world, have mercy on me. Father of heaven, I commend my spirit into thy holy hands." Then he turned him to the people and said — " I beseech you. Christian brethren and sisters, that ye be not offended with the word of God for the affliction and torments which ye see prepared for me; but I exhort you that you love the word of God, and suffer patiently and with a comfortable heart for the word's sake, which is your undoubted salvation and everlasting comfort. Moreover, I pray you shew my brethren and sisters, which have heard me oft before, that they cease not, nor leave off the word of God which I taught them, after the grace given to me, for any persecutions or troubles in this world, which last not; and shew unto them that my doctrine was no old wives' fable, after the constitution made by men. Had I taught men's doctrine, I had gotten great thanks by men; but for the word's sake and the true gospel, which was given to me by the grace of God, I suffer this day by men, not sorrowfully, but with a glad heart and mind. For this cause I was sent, that I should suffer this fire for Christ's sake. Consider and behold my visage, ye shall not see me change my colour. This grim fire I fear not. If any persecution come to you for the word's sake, do not fear them that slay the body, and afterward have no power to slay the soul. Some have said of me that I have taught that the soul of man should sleep until the last day; but I know surely, and my faith is such, that my soul shall sup with my Saviour Christ this night, ere it be six hours, for whom I suffer this. I beseech thee, Father of Heaven, to forgive them that have of any ignorance or of any evil mind forged lies upon me; for 1 forgive them with all my heart. I beseech Christ to forgive them that have condemned me to death this day ignorantly; and, last of all, I beseech you brethren and sisters, to exhort your prelates to the learning of the word of God, that they at the last may be ashamed to do evil, and learn to do good. And if they will not 438 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. convert themselves from their wicked error, there shall hastily come upon them the wrath of God, which they shall not eschew." Many other faithful words said he in the mean time, taking no heed or care of the cruel torments which were then prepared for him. At last the hangman fell upon his knees and said — " I pray you forgive me, for I am not guilty of your death." He answered — " Come hither to me." When he was come to him, he kissed his cheek, and said, " Lo! there is a token that I forgive thee. My heart, do thine office;" -and presently he was put upon the gibbet and hanged, and there burnt to ashes. The people beheld the glorious exit of this triumphant martyr with sentiments of mingled wonder, sorrow, and indignation. The clergy rejoiced much at his death, and extolled the courage of the cardinal, for proceeding in it against the orders of the governor. But the people looked on Wishart as a martyr and a prophet. It was also said that his death was nothing less than murder, since no writ had been obtained for it; and the clergy had no right to burn any one without a warrant from the secular power. It was therefore inferred that the cardinal deserved to die for his presumption ; for if his dignity set him above the law, then private persons might execute that which the gover- nor could not do. Such practices had been formerly too common in the kingdom ; and upon this occasion some gentlemen of quality began to think it would be an heroical action to conspire his death. His in- solence had rendered him generally hateful; thus public and private resentment concurring, twelve persons entered into an engagement to kill the cardinal privately in his house. On the 30th of May, they sur- prized the gate early in the morning; and though there were a hundred men in the castle, yet being all asleep, they came to them apart, and either turned them out, or shut them up in their chamber. Having made all sure, they proceeded to the cardinal's chamber ; who, per- ceiving they had a design upon his life, exclaimed, "Alas! alas! slay me not, I am a priest:" but paying as little regard to him as he had done to Wishart, they immediately slew him, and laid out his body in the same window from which he had looked on Wishart's execution. Some justified this act, as the killing of a robber and murderer; but it was generally condemned; yet the accomplishment of Wishart's pre- diction made great impression on the people. Before we return to our English history, we shall proceed with an ac- count of the Scottish martyrs who suffered at this time, and the few following years. The violent death of cardinal Beaton was expected to put a stop to all such proceedings; but his successor unhappily resolved to continue them. The famous, or rather infamous, John Hamilton suc- ceeded to the archbishopric of St. Andrews, who,, in the spirit of per- secution, was not a jot inferior to his predecessor. The year following his elevation, he brought to judgment and martyrdom Adam Wallace. This excellent man was brought on a charge of heresy into a court assembled at the Black Friars' Church in Edinburgh, composed of many dignitaries and nobles in Scotland. Among them were the dean of Glasgow ; the archbishop of St. Andrew's ; the bishops of Dunblane and Moray ; the abbots of Dunfermline ana Glenluce ; with other churchmen of lower estimation, as the official of St. Andrew's, and MARTYRDOM OF GEORGE WISEHART.— PAOB 4.38. EXAMINATION OF ADAM WALLACE. 439 some doctors of that city. The earl of Argyle, the justice, with his deputy sir John Campbell ; the earls of Huntley and Angus; the bishop of Galloway; the prior of St. Andrews; the bishop of Orkney; the lord Forbes ; dean John Winryme, sub-prior of St. Andrews, were also present; and behind the seats stood the whole senate, the clerk of the register, and other officers of the court. At the further end of the chancelary wall, in the pulpit, was John Lauder, accuser, clad in a surplice and red hood, while a large congre- gation of the people were in the body of the church, standing on the ground. Before the examination of Wallace, John Ker, prebendary of St. Giles's church, was accused, convicted, and condemned, for the making and giving forth a sentence of divorce, whereby he falsely put asunder a man and his lawful wife, in the name of the dean of Restal- rige, and certain other judges appointed by the holy father the pope. He confessed the falsehood, and that never any such thing was done indeed, nor yet meant or moved by the aforesaid judges. His sentence was to be banished the realms of Scotland and England for his life- time, and to lose his right hand if he were found there after, and in the mean time to forfeit his benefices for ever, and they to be vacant. Adam Wallace was then introduced by a servant of the bishop of St. Andrews, set in the midst of the scaffold, and commanded to look to the accuser. He was a man of simple and humble appearance, but was by no means daunted by the grandeur of his judges. On being asked his name, he answered, "Adam Wallace." The accuser said he had another name, which he granted and said he was commonly called Fean. Then he asked, where he was born? " Within two miles of Fayle," said he, " in Kyle." Then said the accuser, " I repent that such a poor man as you should put these noble lords to so great encumbrance this day by your vain speaking." " I must speak," said he, " as God giveth me grace; and I believe I have said no evil to hurt any body." " Would to God," said the accuser, " ye had never spoken ; but you are brought forth for such horrible crimes of heresy, as never were imagined nor heard of in this country before, and shall be suffi- ciently proved, that ye cannot deny them; and I forethink that they should be punished for hurting of weak consciences. Now I will say no more, but thou shalt hear the points against thee. " Adam Wallace, alias Fean: thou art openly accused for preaching and teaching of the blasphemies and abominable heresies under-written : — In the first, thou hast said and taught that the bread and wine on the altar, after the words of consecration, are not the body and blood of Christ." On this Wallace turned to the lord governor, and the whole court, saying — " I never said, nor taught any thing but what I found in this book (having a Bible at his belt in French, Dutch, and English), which is the word of God ; and if you will be content that the Lord God be judge to me, and this his holy writ, here it is; and wherein I have said wrong, I shall take that punishment you put me to; for I never said any thing concerning this that I am accused of, but that which I found in this blessed book." "What didst thou say?" said the accuser. "I said," quoth he, " that after our Lord Jesus Christ had eaten the paschal lamb in his last 440 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. supper with his apostles, and fulfilled the ceremonies of the old law, he instituted a new sacrament, in remembrance of his death then to come. He took bread, he blessed, and brake it, and gave it to his disciples, and said—' Take ye, eat ye, this is my body which shall be broken and given for you.' And likewise the cup he blessed, and bade them drink all thereof, for that was the cup of the New Testament which should be shed for the forgiving of many. ' How oft ye do this, do it in my remembrance.' " Then said the bishop of St. Andrew's, the official of Lothian, and others, " We know this well enough." The earl of Huntley said, "Thou answerest not to that which is laid to thee ; say either nay or yea there- to." He answered, "If ye will admit God and his word spoken by the mouth of his blessed son Jesus Christ our Lord and Saviour, ye will admit that which I have said: for I have said and taught nothing but what the word, which is the trial and touchstone, saith ; which ought to be judge to me, and to all the world. " Why," said the earl, again, " hast thou not a judge good enough? and thinkest thou that we know not God and his word? Answer to what is spoken to thee." And then they made the accuser repeat the question. Wallace answered, "I never said more than the word saith, nor yet more than I have said before. For I know well by St. Paul when he saith, ' Whosoever eateththis bread and drinketh of this cup unworthily, receiveth to himself damnation.' And therefore when I taught — which was but seldom, and to them only which required and desired me — I said, that if the sacrament of the altar were truly ministered, and used as the Son of the living God did institute it, where that was done, there was God himself by his divine power, by which he is over all." The bishop of Orkney then asked him, " Believest thou not that the bread and wine in the sacrament of the altar, after the words of the consecration, is the very body of Christ, flesh, blood, and bone?" To which he answered — " I know not what the word consecra- tion meaneth. I have not much Latin, but I believe that the Son of God was conceived of the Holy Ghost, and born of the Virgin Mary, and hath a natural body, with hands, feet, and other members; and in the same body he walked up and down in the world, preached and taught, suffered death under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, dead, and buried, and that by his godly power he raised that same body again the third day; and the same body ascended into Heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of the Father, which shall come again to judge both the quick and the dead. I moreover believe that this body is a natural body with hands and feet, and cannot be in two places at once; this he sheweth well himself; for the which everlasting thanks be to him that maketh this matter clear. When the woman brake the ointment on lum, answering to some of his disciples which grudged thereat, he said, ' The poor shall you always have with you, but me ye shall not have always,' meaning his natural body. And likewise at his ascension said he to the same disciples that were fleshly, and would ever have had him remaining with them corporeally, ' It is needful for you that I pass away ; for if I pass not away, the Comforter the Holy Ghost shall not come to you,' EXAMINATION OF ADAM WALLACE. 441 meaning- that his natural body behoved to be taken away from them : 4 but be stout and be of good cheer, for I am with you always, unto the world's end.' Thus you must see that the eating of his very flesh profiteth not, as may well be known by his words which he spake in the sixth of John ; where, after he had said, ' Except ye eat my flesh, and drink my blood, ye shall not have life in you,' they murmuring thereat, he reproved them for their gross and fleshly taking of his words, and said, ' What will ye think when ye see the Son of man ascend to the place that he came from? It is the Spirit that quickeneth, the flesh profiteth nothing,' (to be eaten as they took it, and even so take ye it.") " It is a horrible heresy," said the bishop of Orkney. Then the accuser propounded the second article, and said to Wallace, " Thou saidst likewise, and openly didst teach, that the mass is very idolatry, and abominable in the sight of God." To this he ingeniously replied — " I have read the word of God in three tongues, and have understood them so far as God gave me grace, and yet never read I the word ' mass ' in any ; but I found that the thing which was highest and most in estima- tion among men, and not in the word of God, was idolatry, and abominable in his holy sight. And I say the mass is holden greatly in estimation, and high amongst men, and is not founded in the divine word ; therefore I said it was idolatry, and abominable in the sight of God. If any man will find it in the Scripture and prove it by God's word, I will grant mine error, and that I have failed ; otherwise not. In that case I will submit to all lawful correction and punishment." " Ad tertiam," said the bishop. " To the third charge." Then said the accuser, " Thou hast said and openly taught, that the God which we worship is but bread sown of corn, growing of the earth, baked of men's hands, and nothing else." To this Wallace answered, " I worship the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, three persons in one Godhead, which made and fashioned the heaven and earth, and all that is therein, of nought. But I know not which God you worship ; and if you will show me whom you worship, I will show you what he is as well as I can by my judgment." " Believest thou not," said the accuser, " that the sacrament of the altar, after the words of the consecration, by the priest's hands, is the very body and blood of the Son of God, and God himself?" — " What the body of God is," Wallace replied, " and what kind of body he hath, I have shewed you, so far as I have found in the scripture." Then said the accuser — " Thou has preached divers other great errors and abominable heresies against all the seven sacraments, which for short- ness of time I pretermit and overpass. Whether dost thou grant thy foresaid articles that thou art accused of, or no? and thou slialt hear them shortly." And then repeated the accuser the three articles afore- said shortly over, and asked him whether he granted or denied them? Wallace answered, that he had said nothing but what he thought to agree with the holy word, so God judge him, and his own conscience accuse him, and thereby would he abide unto the time he were better instructed by scripture, and the contrary proved, even to the death: and he said to the lord governor and the rest — " If you condemn me for holding by God's word, my blood shall be required at your hands, when ye shall be brought before the judgment seat of Christ, who is mighty 442 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM, to defend my innocent cause ; before whom ye shall not deny it, nor yet be able to resist its wrath, to whom I refer the vengeance, as it is written, * Vengeance is mine and I will reward.' " Then they gave sentence, and condemned him by the laws, and so left him to the secular power, in the hands of Sir John Campbell, justice deputy. He delivered him to the provost of Edinburgh to be burnt on the Castle-hill, who put him in the uppermost house in the town, with irons about his legs and neck, and gave charge to Sir Hugh Terry to keep the key of the house. Terry was an ignorant man, and a creature of the bishops, and as directed, sent to the poor man two grey friars, to instruct him, with whom he would enter into no communing. Soon after that were sent in two black friars, an English friar, and another subtle sophist, called Arbuthnot : with the English friar he would have reasoned and declared his faith by the scriptures ; but he said he had no commission to enter into disputation with him, and so departed and left him. Then was sent to him a man, not ungodly in the understanding of the truth, the dean of Restalrige, who gave him christian consolation, during which he exhorted him to believe the reality of the sacrament after the consecration ; but he would consent to no- thing that had not evidence in the holy scripture, and so passed over that night in singing, and praising God, to the ears of divers hearers, having learned the psalter of David without book, to his consolation : for they had before taken from him his bible, which always, till after he was condemned, was with him wherever he went. When Sir Hugh knew that he had certain books to read and comfort his spirit, he came in a rage and took them from him, and gave divers ungodly and inju- rious provocations by his devilish venom, to pervert him from the patience and hope he had in Christ his Saviour : but God suffered him not to be moved therewith. All the next morning he remained in irons, and preparation was com- manded to be made for his burning against the next day. On that day the lord governor, and all the principal both spiritual and temporal lords, departed from Edinburgh. He soon knew of their departure, when there came the dean of Restalrige to him again, and reasoned with him. But Wallace answered as before, that he would say nothing concerning his faith, but as the scripture testifieth : yea, though an angel came from heaven to persuade him to the same ; saving that he confessed himself to have received good consolation of the said dean in other behalf as becometh a christian. Then came in Sir Hugh Terry again, and ex- amined him after his old manner, and said he would force devils to come forth of him before night. Wallace answered, " You should rather give me consolation in my case. When I knew you were come, I prayed God I might resist your temptations; which I thank him, he hath made me able to do; therefore I pray you let me alone in peace." Then he asked one of the officers that stood by — " Is your fire making ready?" who answered him it was. " As it pleaseth God," said Wallace, " I am ready soon or late as it shall please him ;" and then he spoke to one true in that company, and bade him commend him to all the faithful, being sure to meet together with them in heaven. From that time, to his coming to the fire, no man spake with him. At his forth-coming, the provost with great menacing words forbade ACCUSATION OF WALTER MILLE. 443 him to speak to any one, or any to him, as probably he had command- ment of his superiors. Coming from the town to the Castle-hill, the common people said, " God have mercy upon you !" " And on you too," said he. Being beside the fire, he lifted up his eyes to heaven twice or thrice, and said to the people, " Let it not offend you that I suffer death this day for the truth's sake; for the disciple is not greater than his master." On this the provost was angry that he spake. Then he looked up to heaven again, and said, " They will not let me speak." The cord being about his neck, the fire was lighted, and so he departed to God constantly, and with good countenance. About this time a remarkable schism took place in the Scotch church, relative to the Pater-noster. Numbers of the clergy contending that it might be addressed to any saint in heaven ; while the less superstitious urged it was proper to be recited only to God. The first of these opinions, in all its extravagance and blasphemy, originated with a grey friar named Tottis, and the following distorted sophistry he used in supporting and defending it. " If we meet an old man in the street, we say to him, Good day, father! and, the-refore, much more may we call the saints our fathers; and because we grant, also, that they are in heaven, we may say to them — Our fathers, who art in heaven! God hath made their names holy, therefore may we say to any one of them — hallowed be thy name; and for the same cause, as they are in heaven, we may say to them — thy kingdom come. And except their will had been the will of God, they had never been there; consequently we may say — thy will be done." But when he came to the fourth petition — give us this day our daily bread, he was rather at a loss: he however got over his difficulty, saying, that although the saints certainly could not them- selves give us bread, yet they could intercede for us, and that we might consequently address the prayer unto them, that they might pray unto the Father in our behalf. Thus did he impiously gloss over the rest in like manner. Among other martyrs of Scotland, the constancy of Walter Mille is not to be passed over with silence. Out of his ashes sprang thousands of his opinion and religion in Scotland, who altogether chose rather to die than to be any longer trodden over by the tyranny of the bishops, abbots, monks, and friars: and so began the congregation of Scotland to debate the true religion of Christ against the Frenchmen and papists, who sought always to depress and keep them down. The martyrdom of Mille was brought on by the following events. In the year of our Lord, 1558, in the time of Mary, duchess of Longueville, queen regent of Scotland, and John Hamilton, bishop of St. Andrew's and primate of Scotland, Walter Mille, who in his youth had been a papist, after he had travelled to Germany, where he had heard the doctrine of the gospel, returned to Scotland, and, contrary to papal celibacy took to himself a wife, which made the bishops of Scotland suspect him of heresy; and after long watching him he was taken by two popish priests, namely, sir George Strachen, and sir Hugh Terry, servants to the said bishop, and imprisoned in the castle of St. Andrew's. While in confinement, the papists earnestly laboured to seduce him, and threatened him with torture and death, to the intent they might 444 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. cause him to recant and forsake the truth; but seeing- they could. profit nothing thereby, and that he remained firm and constant, they laboured to persuade him by fair promises, and offered him a monk's portion for the remainder of his life, in the abbey of Dunfermline, so that he would deny what he had taught, and grant that they were heresies : but he, continuing in the truth to the end, equally despised their threatenings and fair promises. Then assembled together the bishops of St. Andrew's, Moray, Brechin, Caithness, and Athens ; the abbots of Dunfermline, Lindores, Balindrinot, and Cowpers ; with doctors in theology of St. Andrew's, as John Grison, black friar, and dean John Winryme, sub-prior of St. Andrew's, William Cranston, provost of the old college, with others, as sundry friars black and grey. These being assembled, and having consulted together, he was taken out of prison, and brought to the metropolitan church, where he was put in a pulpit before the bishops to be accused, the twentieth day of April. Being brought into the church, and climbing up into the pulpit, they seeing him so weak and feeble of person, partly by age and travel, partly by evil treatment, that without help he could not ascend, they were out of hope to have heard him for weakness of voice. But when he began to speak, he made the church to ring and echo, with so great courage and stoutness, that the christians which were present were no less rejoiced than his adversaries were confounded and ashamed. Being in the pulpit, on his knees at prayer, Andrew Oliphant, one of the bishop's chaplains, commanded him to rise and answer to the articles, saying on this manner — " Sir Walter Mille, rise and answer to the articles, for you hold my lord here over long." To whom Walter, after he had finished his prayer, answered, saying, " We ought to obey God more than man; I serve one more mighty, even the Omni- potent Lord ; and I beseech you call me Walter, and not Sir Walter ; I have been over-long one of the pope's knights. Now say what thou hast to say." Oliphant. What think you of priests' marriage? Mille. I hold it a blessed band: for Christ himself maintained it, and approved the same, and also made it free to all men ; but you think it not free to you ; ye abhor it, and in the mean time take other men's wives and daughters, and will not keep the band God hath made. Ye vow chastity, and break the same. Saint Paul had rather marry than burn ; the which I have done, for God never forbade marriage to any man, what state or degree soever he were. Oliphant. Thou sayst there be not seven sacraments. Mille. Give me the Lord's Supper and Baptism, and take you the rest, and part them among you. For if there be seven, why have you omitted one of them, to wit, marriage, and given yourselves to whoredom ? Oliphant. Thou art against the blessed sacrament of the altar, and sayst that the mass is wrong, and is idolatry. Mille. A lord or a king sendeth and calleth many to a dinner, and when the dinner is in readiness, he causeth a bell to ring, and the men come to the hall, and sit down to be partakers of the dinner; but the lord, turning his back unto them, eateth all himself, and mocketh them: EXAMINATION OF WALTER MILLE. 445 so do ye turn your backs in the sacrament on the people you have invited. Oliphant. Thou deniest the sacrament of the altar to be the very body of Christ really in flesh and blood. Mille. The scripture of God is not to be taken carnally, but spiri- tually, and standeth in faith only; and as for the mass it is wrong, for Christ was once offered on the cross for man's trespass, and will never be offered again, for then he ended all sacrifices. Oliphant. Thou deniest the office of a bishop. Mille. I affirm that they, whom ye call bishops, do no bishops' works; nor use the office of bishops, as Paul biddeth, writing- to Timo- thy, but live after their own sensual pleasure, and take no care of the flock, nor yet regard they the word of God, but desire to be honoured and called, my lords. Oliphant. Thou spakest against pilgrimage, and calledst it a pilgrim- age to whoredom. Mille. I affirm and say, that it is not commanded in the scripture, and that there is no greater whoredom in any place, than at your pil- grimages, except it be in common brothels. Oliphant. Thou preachedst secretly and privately in houses, and openly in the fields. Mille. Yea, man, and on the sea also, sailing in a ship, as Christ did. Oliphant. Wilt thou not recant thy erroneous opinions? and if thou wilt not, I will pronounce sentence against thee. Mille. I am accused of my life; I know I must die once, and there- fore as Christ said to Judas, what thou doest do quickly. Ye shall know that I will not recant the truth, for I am the corn, I am no chaff; I will not be blown away with the wind, nor burst with the flail ; but I will abide both. These things rehearsed they, with other trifles, to augment their final accusation; and then sir Andrew Oliphant pronounced sentence against him, that he should be delivered to the temporal judge, and punished as a heretic, that is to be burnt. Notwithstanding, his boldness and constancy moved so the hearts of many, that the bishop's steward of his regality, provost of the town, called Patrick Lermond, refused to be his temporal judge, to whom it appertained, if the cause had been just. Also the bishop's chamberlain, being therewith charged, would in no wise take upon him so ungodly an office. Indeed the whole town was so offended with his unjust condemnation, that the bishop's servants could not purchase for their money so much as one cord to tie him to the stake, or a tar-barrel to burn him, but were constrained to cut the cords of their master's own pavilion to serve their turn. At last, however, there was one servant of the bishop's more ignorant and cruel than the rest, named Alexander Somervaile, ambitious of the office of a temporal judge in that part, who conveyed him to the fire, where, against all natural reason of man, his boldness and firmness did more and more increase, so that the Spirit of God working miraculously in him, made it manifest to the people, that his cause and articles were most just, and that he died innocently and in the Lord. All things being ready for his death, he was conducted by armed men to the fire. On arriving there, Oliphant bade him pass to the stake: but 446 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. he said, " Nay, but wilt thou put me up with thy hand and take part of my death? thou shalt see me pass up gladly; for by the law of God I am forbidden to put hands upon myself." Then Oliphant put him up with his hand, and he ascended gladly, saying, Introibo ad altare Dei, and desired that he might have space to speak to the people; the which Oliphant and other of the burners denied, because he had spoken over- much, for the bishops were altogether offended that the matter was so long continued. Then some of the young men committed both the burners and the bishops their masters to the devil, remarking that they believed they should lament that day, and desired Walter to speak what he pleased. So after he made his humble supplication to God on his knees, he arose, and standing upon the coals said on this wise: "Dear friends, the cause why I suffer this day is not for any crime laid to my charge, albeit I be a miserable sinner before God, but only for the defence of the faith of Jesus Christ, set forth in the New and Old Testament unto us; for which as the faithful martyrs have offered themselves gladly before, being assured after death of their bodies of eternal felicity ; so this day I praise God that he hath called me of his mercy among the rest of his servants to seal up his truth with my life : which as I have received it of him, so willingly I offer it to his glory. Therefore as you will escape the eternal death, be no more seduced with the lies of priests, monks, friars, priors, abbots, bishops, and the rest of the sect of Anti- christ, but depend only upon Jesus Christ and his mercy, that ye may be delivered from condemnation." While he spake there was great mourning and lamentation of the multitude ; who perceiving his patience, boldness, and constancy, were not only moved and stirred up, but their hearts also were so inflamed, that he was the last martyr that died in Scotland for the religion. After his prayer, he was hoisted up on the stake, and being in the fire, he said, " Lord have mercy on me; pray people whilst there is time : " and thus resigned his soul to Him who gave it. From Scotland we turn again to England, to the papal history of Henry VIII. This important reign, which draws near to a conclusion, is so replete with incidents, and the political and ecclesiastical affairs are so connected, that we entreat the reader to pardon the breaks and chasms he may observe, for were we to give this long chain of events link by link, as they stand in the pages of general history, we should too much swell the limited size of this work, which, be it remembered, is rather a history of individuals than of countries and general events. The next English martyrs who stand upon record are Kerby and Roger Clarke. They were apprehended at Ipswich, and brought before lord Wentworth, with other commissioners appointed there to sit upon their examinations. The night before they were arraigned, a bill was fixed upon the town-house door, by whom it was unknown, and brought the next day unto lord Wentworth; who answered, that it was good counsel to render them cautious and prudent. In the mean time, Kerby and Clarke, being in the house of the gaoler, whose name was Bird, there came in Mr. Robert Wingfield, son of Humfrey Wingfield, knight, with Mr. Bruess, of Wenham ; who having conference with Kerby, CONDEMNATION OF KERBY AND CLARKE. 447 Wincfield said to him, ** Remember the fire is hot, take heed of thine enterprise, that thou take no more upon thee than thou shalt be able tc perform. The terror is great, the pain will be extreme, and life is sweet. Better it were betimes to stick to mercy, while there is hope of life, than rashly to beg-in, and then to shrink." Kerby answered — " Ah, Mr. Wing-field, be at my burning, and you shall say, there standeth a christian soldier in the fire: for I know that fire and water, sword and all other things, are in the hands of God, and he will suffer no more to be laid upon us than he will give strength to bear." "Ah, Kerby," said Mr. Wingfield, " if thou be at that point, I will bid thee farewell; for I promise thee I am not so strong that I am able to burn." And so both the gentlemen saying that they would pray for them, shook hands with them and departed. When Kerby and Clarke came to the judgment seat, where were present lord Wentworth, the commissary, and others, they lifted up their eyes and hands to heaven with great devotion, making their prayers secretly to God for a space of time. That done, their articles were declared to them with all circumstances of the law : and then it was demanded and required of them, whether they believed, that after the words spoken by a priest, as Christ spake them to his apostles, there were not the very body and blood of Christ, flesh, blood, and bone, as he was born of the Virgin Mary, and no bread after?" To this usual and sweeping question they answered — " No ! we do not so believe; but we believe the sacrament which Christ Jesus instituted at his last supper to his disciples, was only to put them in remembrance of his precious death and blood-shedding for the remission of sins; and that there was neither flesh nor blood to be eaten with the teeth, but bread and wine, and yet more than bread and wine, for they are con- secrated to a holy use." Then with much persuasions, both with fair means and threats were they beset, but most at the hands of Foster, an inferior justice, a man quite ignorant of what he spoke; yet they both continued faithful and constant, choosing rather to die than to live, and so continued unto the end. Then sentence was given upon them, Kerby to be burnt in the said •town on the next Saturday, and Clarke at Bury on the Monday after. Kerby, when his judgment was given by lord Wentworth, with most humble reverence holding up his hands, and bowing himself devoutly, said — " Praised be Almighty God!" and stood still without any more words. Then did lord Wentworth talk secretly, putting his hand behind another justice that sat near him. Clarke perceiving this, said with a loud voice, " Speak out, my lord; and if you have any thing contrary to your conscience, ask God mercy, and we for our parts forgive you : and speak not in secret, for ye shall come before a judge, and then make answer openly, even before him that shall judge all men." Lord Wentworth, somewhat changing colour, as it was thought through remorse, answered, " I spoke nothing of you, nor have I done any thing unto you, but as the law is," Then were the prisoners sent forth, Kerby to prison there, and Clarke to Bury St. Edmunds. On quitting the court, Clarke exclaimed aloud — " Fight for your God, for he hath not long to continue." On Saturday, about ten o'clock, Kerby was brought to the market- 448 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. place, where a stake with wood and straw was ready. He put off his clothes to his shirt, having a night-cap upon his head, and was then fastened to the stake with irons; there being in the gallery lord Wentworth, with the greater part of the justices of those quarters, where they might see his execution, how every thing should be done, and also might hear what Kerby had to say; there were also a great number of people. Upon the gallery also, by lord Wentworth, stood Dr. Rugham, who was before a monk of Bury, and sexton of the house, having on a surplice and stole about his neck. Then silence was pro- claimed, and the doctor began to excuse himself, as not meet to declare the Holy Scriptures, being unprovided because the time was so short, but that he hoped in God's assistance it should come well to pass. While the executioners were preparing their irons, fagots, and straw, for the martyr, he, as one that should be married with new garments, nothing changed in cheer nor countenance, but with a most meek spirit glorified God. Dr. Rugham at last entered into the sixth chapter of St. John, and in handling that matter, so oft as he alleged the Scriptures, and applied them rightly, Kerby told the people that he said true, and bade them believe him. But when he did otherwise, he told him again, "You say not true; believe him not, good people." Whereupon, as the voice of the people was, they judged Dr. Rugham a false prophet. When he had ended his collation, he said to Kerbv, " Thou, good man, dost thou not believe that the blessed sacrament of the altar is the very flesh and blood of Christ, and no bread, even as he was born of the Virgin Mary?" Kerby answering boldly, said — " I do not so believe." " How dost thou believe?" said the doctor. Kerby answered boldly, saying, "I believe that in the sacrament which Jesus Christ instituted at his last supper to his disciples is his death and passion and his blood- shedding for the redemption of the world, to be remembered; and, as I said before, yet bread, and more than bread, for that it is consecrated to a holy use." After this the doctor spake not one word more to Kerby. Then the under-sheriff demanded of Kerby whether he had any thing more to say. "Yea, sir," said he, " if you will give me leave." " Say on then," said the sheriff. The martyr summoning all his fortitude, and taking the cap from his head, put it under his arms as though it should have done him service again : but remembering himself, he cast it from him, and lifting up his hands, he repeated the Te Deum, and the belief, with other prayers in the English tongue. Lord Wentworth, whilst Kerby was thus doing, concealed himself behind one of the posts of the gallery, and wept, and so did many others. " Then," said Kerby, " I have done: you may execute your office, good sheriff." On this, fire was set to the wood, while with a loud voice he called unto God, striking his breast, and holding up his hands so long as his remembrance would serve ; and so ended his life, the people giving shouts, and praising God with great admiration of his constancy, being so simple and unlettered. On the following Monday, about ten o'clock, Roger Clarke of Mendel- sham was brought out of prison, and led on foot to the gate, called South- gate, in Bury. By the way, the procession met with them; but he went on, and would not bow, but with most vehement words rebuked their idolatry ROGER CLARKE TURNING AWAY FROM THE HOST. — PAGB 4+8. PARTICULARS OF ANNE ASKEW. ! i ( ) and superstition, the officers being much offended. Without the gate, where was the place of execution, the stake being ready, and the wood lying- by, he came and kneeled down, and said Magnificat in the English tongue, making as it were a paraphrase upon the same, wherein he declared that the blessed Virgin Mary, who might as well rejoice in pureness, as any other, yet humbled herself to our Saviour. " And what sayest thou John Baptist," said he, " the greatest of all the children? 1 Behold the lamb of God which taketh away the sins of the world.' " Thus with a loud voice he cried unto the people, while they were fasten- ing him to the stake, and then the fire was set to him. His sufferings were dreadful, for the wood was green, and would not burn, so that he was choaked with smoke: and moreover, being set in a pitch barrel, with some pitch sticking still by the sides, he was therewith sore pained, till he got his feet out of the barrel. At length one standing by took a fagot-stick, and striking at the ring of iron about his neck, and then upon his head, he shrunk down on one side into the fire, and so was destroyed. The reformation now appeared to go back instead of forward for a time. This year it was ordained and decreed, and solemnly given out in proclamation by the king's name and authority, and his council, that the English procession should be used throughout the kingdom, as it was set forth by his council, and none other to be used throughout the whole realm. In the month of November, after the king had subdued the Scots, and joining with the emperor had invaded France, and had got from them the town of Boulogne, he summoned his high court of par- liament; which granted unto him, besides other subsidies of money, all colleges, chantries, free chapels, hospitals, fraternities, brotherhoods, guilds, and perpetuities of stipendary priests, to be disposed of at his will and pleasure. Whereupon in the month of December following, the king after his wonted manner, came into the parliament house to give his royal assent to such acts as were there passed : where after an eloquent oration made to him by the speaker, he answered him, not by the lord chancellor, as the manner was, but in an artful speech which he himself composed and delivered. He first eloquently and lovingly declared his grateful heart to his subjects for their grants and supplies offered unto him. In the second part with no less vehemency, he exhorted them to concord, peace, and unity; but had he sought the right way to work charity, and to help innocency amongst his subjects, he would have taken away the impious law of the six articles, that mother of all division. For what is it to the purpose, to exhort charity in words, and, at the same time, to put a weapon into the murderer's hand to run upon his naked brother, who never in conscience can leave his cause, nor yet hath power to defend himself? The mischief and misery produced by this law never were more fully shewn than in its operation against two or three martyrs at this time, upon whom it was put in force. Of these the most memorable was Anne Askew, whose bitter persecution and merciless death tended to shew the sanguinary spirit of the times, while they also shew the firmness which a female can attain when aided by the power of religion and truth. 2 G 450 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Anne Askew was descended from a good family, and had received an accomplished education ; and the reader will best form his judgment of her by what follows of her trial and conduct under it. Her first examination was in the year of our Lord 1545, in the month of March. Christopher Dare examined her at Sadler's Hall, being one of the quest, and asked, if she did not believe that the sacrament hanging over the altar was the very body of Christ really. Then she demanded this question of him, Wherefore was St. Stephen stoned to death? and he said, he could not tell. Then she answered that no more would she answer his vain question. Then he said, that there was a woman, who did testify that Anne Askew should read, how God was not in temples made with hands. On this she shewed him the seventh and seventeenth chapters of the Acts of the Apostles, what Stephen and Paul had said therein. Whereupon he asked her how she took those sentences? She answered, " I would not throw pearls amongst swine, for acorns were good enough." He proceeded to ask her why she said — " I had rather read five lines in the Bible, than hear five masses in the temple. " She confessed she said so, not for the dispraise of either the epistle or the gospel, but because the one greatly edified her, and the other nothing at all. As St. Paul doth witness in the fourteenth chapter of his first epistle to the Corinthians, wherein he saith, " If the trumpet giveth an uncertain sound, who will prepare himself to the battle?" On this she was accused of saying, that if an ill priest ministered, it was the devil and not God. To which her answer was a denial of both the words and the sentiment. Instead of which she only said, " Whoever ministered unto me, his ill conditions could not hurt my faith, but in spirit I received nevertheless the body and blood of Christ." He then asked her what she said concerning confession. She answered, " My meaning was as St. James saith, that every man ought to acknowledge his faults to others, and the one to pray for the other." Enquiry was made what she said to the king's book; and she answered him that she could say nothing to it, because she never saw it. A priest was then sent for to examine her, and when he came to her, he asked several questions; but the principal one was what she said to the sacrament of the altar, and required much to know her meaning therein. But she desired him again to hold her excused concerning that matter: no other answer would she make him, because she per- ceived him to be a papist. On her silence he asked her if she did not think that private masses helped the departed souls; she said, it was great idolatry to believe more in them, than in the death which Christ died for us. Then they brought her unto my lord mayor, and he examined her, as they had before, and she answered him directly in all things in a lively manner, on which the bishop's chancellor rebuked her, and said that she was much to blame for uttering the scriptures. St. Paul, he said, forbade women to speak or to talk of the word of God. She answered him that she knew Paul's meaning as well as he, which was that a woman ought not to speak in the congregation by the way of teaching: and then she asked him how many women he had seen go into the pulpit and preach? EXAMINATION OF ANNE ASKEW. 45 J He said he never saw any. Then said she you ought to find no fault with poor women, except they had offended the law. Then the lord mayor was for committing her to prison, when she asked him if sureties would not serve : he made her short answer, that he would take none. Then was she forced to the counter, where she remained eleven days, no friend being admitted to speak with her. In the mean time there was a priest sent unto her, who said that he was commanded by the bishop to examine her, and to give her good counsel, which he did not. But first he asked her, for what cause she was put in the counter, and she told him she could not tell. Then he said, it was great pity that she should be there without cause, and concluded that he was very sorry for her ; charging her with denying the sacrament of the altar : which she answered indifferently, observing that what she had said she had said. The priest then asked her if she were content to be shriven. She told him, so that she might have one of these three, that is to say, Dr. Crome, Sir Guillam, or Huntington, she was contented, because she knew them to be men of wisdom. " As for you, or any other," she said, " I will not dispraise, because I know you not." The priest answered, " Think not but that I, or any other who may be brought you, shall be as honest as they : for if we were not, you may be sure the king would not suffer us to preach." Then she answered with the saying of Solomon, " By communing with the wise I may learn wisdom, but by talking with a fool I shall take scathe." Confounded by her wit, the priest changed his course, and asked, If the host should fall, and a beast did eat it, whether the beast did receive God or no ? She answered, "Seeing that you have taken the pains to ask the question, I desire you also to assoil it yourself: for I will not do it, because I perceive you come to tempt me." He said it was against the order of schools, that he which asked the question should answer it: when she told him she was but a woman, and knew not the course of schools. Then he asked her if she intended to receive the sacrament at Easter or no? She answered, that else she were no Christian woman; and she rejoiced that the time was so near at "hand. He then departed with many fair words. On the 23rd of March, her cousin came unto her, and asked her whether she might be put to bail. Then went he imme- diately to the lord mayor, desiring him to be so good to her, that she might be bailed. My lord answered him, that he would be glad to do the best, but he could not bail her without the consent of a spiritual officer; requiring him to go and speak to the chancellor of London. For as he could not commit her to prison without the consent of a spiritual officer, no more could he bail her without the consent of the same. Upon that he went to the chancellor, requiring of him, as he did before of my lord mayor. The chancellor answered, that the matter was so heinous, he durst not of himself do it, without my lord of London was made privy thereto. But said he would speak to my lord of it, and bade him repair to him the next morning, and he should know his plea- sure. Accordingly upon the day after he came thither, and spoke to both the chancellor and bishop of London. The bishop declared that he was well contented that she should come forth to communication, and 452 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. appointed her to appear before him the next day, at three o'clock in the afternoon. Moreover he said, that he wished there should be, at the examination, such learned men as she was affectioned to, that they might see, and also make report, that she was handled with no rigour. He answered him, that he knew no man whom she had more affection to than another. Then said the bishop, " Yes, as I understand, she prefers Dr. Crome, Sir Guillam Whitehead, and Huntington, that they might hear the matter, for she did know them to be learned and of a godly judgment." Also he required her cousin Britain, that he should earnestly persuade her to utter even the very bottom of her heart; and he swore by his fidelity, that no man should take any advantage of her words, neither yet would he lay any thing to her charge for any thing that she should there speak; but if she said anything amiss, he, with others, would be glad to reform her therein with godly counsel. Next day in the forenoon, the bishop of London sent for her, and as she came before him, he said he was sorry for her trouble, and desired to know her opinions in such matters as were laid against her. He re- quired her also in any wise boldly to utter the secrets of her heart, bidding her not to fear in any points, for whatever she said in his house, no man should hurt her for it. She answered — " As your lordship has appointed three o'clock; and my friends will not come till that hour, I desire you to pardon my giving answers till they arrive." Then he said that he thought it meet to send for those who were before named and appointed. She desired him not to put them to the trouble, be- cause the two gentlemen who were her friends, were able enough to testify what she should say. Afterwards he went into his gallery with Mr. Spilman, and told him in any wise that he should exhort her to utter all she thought. And in the meanwhile he commanded his arch- deacon to commune with her, who said, " Mistress, wherefore are you accused and thus troubled here before the bishop ?" She answered, " Sir, ask my accusers, for I know not as yet." Then he took her hand, and pointing to the bible, said, " Such book as this has brought you to the trouble you are now in. Beware, beware, for he that made this book, and was the author thereof, was a heretic and burned in Smithfield." She asked him if he was certain and sure that it was true what he had spoken. He said he knew well the book was of John Frith's making. She asked him if he was not ashamed to judge of the book before he saw it within, or yet knew the truth thereof; and said also, that such unadvised hasty judgment is a token apparent of a very slender wit. Then she opened the book and shewed it him. He said he thought it had been another, for he could find no fault therein. Then she desired him no more to be so unadvisedly rash and swift in judgment, till he thoroughly knew the truth, and so he departed from her. Immediately after came her cousin Britain, with divers others, among whom was a Mr. Hall of Gray's-Inn. Then my lord of London per- suaded her cousin, as he had done oft before, that she should utter the very bottom of her heart in any wise. My lord said after that unto her that he would she should credit the counsel of such as were her friends and well-wishers in this behalf, which was that she should utter all EXAMINATION OF ANNE ASKEW. 4.33 things that burthened her conscience; for he assured her that she should not need to stand in doubt. For as he promised them, he promised her, and would perform it; namely, that neither he, nor any man for him, should take her at advantage of any word, and therefore he bade her speak her mind without fear. She answered him, that she had nought to say, for her conscience was burdened with nothing. Then the bishop, Bonner, began to use similitudes, and his first, especially to a delicate female, was not a very savoury similitude: " If a man had a wound, no wise surgeon would minister help unto it before he had seen it uncovered. In the same manner can I give you no good counsel, unless I know wherewith your conscience is burthened." " My con- science," she said, " is clear in all things, and to lay a plaister unto a whole skin w T ould appear much folly." Bonner exclaimed — " Then you drive me to lay to your charge your own report, which is this: You did say, he that doth receive the sacrament by the hands of an ill priest, or a sinner, receiveth the devil, and not God." She answered, " I never spake such words; but, as I said before, that the wickedness of the priest did not hurt me, but in spirit and faith I received no less than the body and blood of Christ." " What saying is this, in spirit?" demanded he ; "I will not take you at the advantage." Then she answered, " My lord, without faith and spirit, I cannot receive him worthily." He said she had affirmed, that "the sacrament remaining in the pix was not bread." She answered, she had never said so ; but indeed the quest had asked the question, whereunto she would not reply till they had answered her question, "Wherefore Stephen was stoned to death?" The bishop evidently remembered this, and changing his tone, said, that she had alleged a certain text of the scripture. She answered, " I alleged none other but St. Paul's own saying to the Athenians, in the 17th chapter of the Acts, that God dwelleth not in temples made with hands." Then he inquired what her faith and belief was in that matter? She answered him, "I believe as the scripture doth teach me." On this he inquired, " What if the scripture doth say that it is the body of Christ?" " I believe," she said, " as the scripture doth teach." Then he asked again, " What if the scripture doth say that it is not the body of Christ?" Her answer was still, " I believe as the scripture informeth me." On this argument he tarried a great while, to have driven her to make him an answer to his mind. Howbeit she would not, but concluded this with him, " I believe therein, and in all other things, as Christ and his apostles did leave them. " The bishop, displeased that she said so little, sharply asked, " Why she had so few words?" when she answered, " God hath given me the gift of knowledge, but not of utterance; and Solomon saith, 'That a woman of few words is the gift of God.' " Then he laid to her charge, that she had said that the mass was superstitious, wicked, and no better than idolatry. She answered him that she had not said so : adding, " The quest asked me whether private mass did relieve departed souls or no ? Unto whom I answered — Lord, what idolatry is this, that we should rather believe in private masses than in the death of the dear Son of God?" Then said the bishop again, " What an answer is that?" "Though it be but mean," she said, "yet is it good enough for the 454 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. question. And there was a priest who did hear what I said there, before my lord mayor and them." The chancellor then asked the priest, who said she spake it in very deed, before the lord mayor and himself. There were certain priests, as Dr. Standish and others, who tempted her so much to know her mind. She answered them always thus: — " What I have said to my lord of London, I have said." Then Dr. Standish desired the bishop to bid her speak her mind concerning the text of St. Paul's learning, probably to betray her, that she being- a woman should interpret the scriptures in the presence of so many wise and learned men. The bishop then quickly said, " I am informed that one has asked you if you would receive the sacrament at Easter, and you made a mock of it." To this she boldly yet calmly and meekly replied, " I desire that my accuser might come forth" — which he would not allow. But he said again unto her, " I sent one to give you good counsel, and at the first word you called him Papist." " I deny not that," she said, " for I perceived he was no less, and I made him no other reply." Then he rebuked her, and said that she had reported there were sent against her threescore priests at Lincoln. " Indeed," she answered, " I said so; for my friends told me, if I did come to Lincoln, the priests would assault me, and put me to great trouble, as thereof they had made their boast; and when I heard it I went thither not being afraid, because I knew my matter to be good. Moreover I remained there nine days, to see what would be said to me ; and as I was in the Minster, reading the Bible, they resorted unto me by two and two, and by greater numbers, minding to have spoken unto me, yet went they their ways again without speaking." The bishop asked if there were not one who had spoken to her ? She answered, " Yes, there was one of them at the last which did speak indeed, but his words were of small effect, so that I do not now remember them." Then said the bishop, " There are many that read and know the scripture, and yet follow it not, nor live thereafter." She said again, " My lord, I would wish that all men knew my conversation and living in all points; for I am sure myself this hour that there are none able to prove ariy dishonesty against me. If you know that any can do it, I pray you bring them forth." Then the bishop went away, and said he would put some of her meaning in writing; but what it was she was uncertain, for he would not suffer her to have the copy thereof. A small part of it ran thus: — " Be it known of all men, that I, Anne Askew, do confess this to be my faith and belief, notwithstanding many reports made afore to the contrary. I believe that they which are houseled at the hands of a priest, whether his conversation be good or not, do receive the body and blood of Christ in substance really. Also I do believe, that after the consecration, whether it be received or re- served, it is no less than the very body and blood of Christ in substance. Finally, I do believe in this and in all other sacraments of holy church in all points, according to the catholic faith of the same. In witness whereof, I the said Anne have subscribed my name." It is evideut that all this was palmed on Mrs. Askew by the treacherous bishop; and there was somewhat more in it, which because she had not the copy, she RELEASEMENT OF ANNE ASKEW. 455 could not remember. He read it to her, and asked if she did not agree to it? To which she said, "I believe so much thereof, as the holy scripture cloth agree unto; wherefore I desire you that you will add that thereunto." To this he said, that she should not teach him what he should write; and with that he went forth into his great chamber and read the same bill before the audience, which inveigled and willed her to set to her hand, saying also, that she had been favoured, and that she might thank others, and not herself for the favour she found at his hand ; for he considered that she had good friends, and that she came of a good family. Never sure did a bishop shew favour to a lady with so ill a grace. Christopher, a servant to Mr. Denny, said to his lordship, " Rather ought you, my lord, to have done it in such case for God's sake, than for man's." Then my lord sat down, and took her the writing to set thereto her hand, and she wrote after this manner: — " I Anne Askew do believe all manner of things contained in the faith of the catholic church." Because of the latter words he flung the paper into his chamber in great fury. With that her cousin Britain followed, desiring him for God's sake to be a good bishop to her. He answered, that she was a woman, and that he was nothing deceived in her. Then her cousin Britain desired him to treat her as a woman, and not to set a weak woman's wit to his lordship's great wisdom. There went in unto him Dr. Weston, and said, " The cause why she did write there the catholic church,, was, that she understood not the church written afore." So with much ado they persuaded the bishop to come out again, and take her name, with the names of the sureties, which were her cousin Britain and master Spilman of Gray's Inn. This being done, it was thought that she should have been put to bail immediately, according to the order of the law. Howbeit he would not suffer it, but committed her from thence to prison again until the morrow, and then he willed her to appear in the Guildhall, which she did. Notwithstanding they would not put her to bail there, but read the bishop's writing unto her as before, and commanded her again to prison. Then were her sureties appointed to come on the morrow in Paul's church, who did so. They would once again have broken off with them, because they would not be bound also for another woman, whom they knew not, nor yet what matter was laid unto her charge. Notwithstanding at the last, after much ado and reasoning to and fro, they took a bond of them of recognizance for her forth coming: and thus she was at the last delivered. Thus ends her first persecution, from which, for a time, she escaped; but not conforming to the erroneous doctrine of the sacrament, she was in 1546, again apprehended. The following account of her examination before the council at Greenwich is taken, like the previous one, from her own papers: only this, for its peculiarity, is retained in her own words. " Your request as concerning my prison-fellows I am not able to satisfy, because I heard not their examinations. But the effect of mine was this. I being before the council, was asked of Mr. Kyme. I an- swered, that my lord chancellor knew already my mind in that matter. They with that answer were not contented, but said it was the king's 456 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. pleasure that I should open the matter unto them. I answered them plainly, I would not do so; but if it were the king's pleasure to hear me, I would shew him the truth. Then they said it was not meet for the king- to be troubled with me. I answered, that Solomon was reckoned the wisest king that ever lived, yet misliked he not to hear two poor common women ; much more his grace a simple woman and his faithful subject. So in conclusion, I made them none other answer in that matter. Then my lord chancellor asked of me my opinion in the sacrament. My answer was this, I believe that so oft as I in a Christian congregation do receive the bread in remembrance of Christ's death, and with thanksgiving, according to his holy institution, I receive there- with the fruits also of his most glorious passion. The bishop of Win- chester bade me make a direct answer : I said I would not sing the song of the Lord in a strange land. Then the bishop said I spake in parables. 1 answered, it was best for him, for if I shewed the open truth they would not accept it. Then he said I was a parrot. 2 I told him again 1 was ready to suffer all things at his hands, not only his rebukes, but all that should follow besides, yea, and all that gladly. Then had I divers rebukes of the council, because I would not express my mind in all things as they would have me. But they were not in the mean time unanswered for all that, which now to rehearse were too much, for I was with them about five hours. Then the clerk of the council con- veyed me from thence to my lady Garnish. The next day I was brought again before the council, which would needs know what I said to the sacrament. I answered that I had already said what I could say. After many words they bid me go aside. Then came lord Lisle, lord Essex, and the bishop of Winchester, requiring me earnestly that I should confess the sacrament to be flesh, blood, and bone. I told these noblemen that it was a great shame for them to counsel contrary to their knowledge; whereunto in a few words they said, that they would gladly all things were well. The bishop said he would speak with me familiarly. I said, " So did Judas, when he betrayed Christ." Then he desired to speak with me alone; but that I refused. He asked me why. I said, that in the mouth of two or three witnesses every matter should stand, after Christ's and Paul's doctrine. Then my lord chancellor began to examine me again on the sacra- ment. I asked him, How long he would halt on both. He asked where I found that. I said, in the scripture. Then he went his way. The bishop said I should be burnt. I answered, That I had searched all the scriptures, yet could I never find that either Christ or his apostles put any creature to death. " Well, well," said I, " God will laugh your threatenings to scorn." Then was I commanded to stand aside; after z This is almost the only charge against this excellent woman which has a semblance of truth. If she had a fault it was of garrulity, so often laid to the account of her sex. Her wit was of the quickest and most piercing kind, and not at any time unmingled with prudence any more than piety. Before such treacherous judges, we rather rejoice than regret that her tongue felt itself at perfect liberty. Her rebukes are a standing protest against the assumptions of an intolerant and intolerable priesthood, and are moreover, some of the most interesting in both expression and sentiment that tongue ever uttered or pen recorded. ANNE ASKEWS LETTERS. 457 which came Dr. Cox and Dr. Robinson to me; but in conclusion we could not agree. After striving to convince me they drew out a confes- sion respecting the sacrament, urging me to set my hand thereunto; but this I refused. On the following Sunday I was so extremely ill, that I thought death was upon me ; upon which I desired to see Mr. Latimer, but this was not granted. In the height of my illness I was conveyed to Newgate, where the Lord was pleased to renew my strength. On my being brought to trial at Guildhall they said to me there that I was a heretic, and condemned by the law, if I would stand in mine opinion. I answered, That I was no heretic, neither yet deserved I any death by the law of God. But as concerning the faith which I uttered and wrote to the council, I would not deny it, because I knew it true. Then would they needs know if I would deny the sacrament to be Christ's body and blood? I said, "Yea; for the sameSon of God, who was born of the Virgin Mary, is now glorious in heaven, and will come again from thence at the latter day. And as for that ye call your God, it is a piece of bread. For more proof thereof, mark it when you list, if it lie in the box three months, it will be mouldy, and so turn to no- thing that is good. Whereupon I am persuaded that it cannot be God." After that they willed me to have a priest; at which I smiled. Then they asked me if it were not good? I said, I would confess my faults unto God, for I was sure that he would hear me with favour. And so I was condemned. And this was the ground of my sentence : — My belief, which I wrote to the council that the sacramental bread was left us to be received with thanksgiving, in remembrance of Christ's death, the only remedy of our soul's recovery; and that thereby we also receive the whole benefits and fruits of his most glorious passion. Then would they know whether the bread in the box were God or no : I said God is a spirit, and will be worshipped in spirit and truth. Then they demanded, Will you plainly deny Christ to be in the sacrament? I answered, that I believe faithfully the eternal Son of God not to dwell there; in witness whereof I recited again the history of Bel, Dan. xix., Acts vii. and xvii., and Matt, xxiv., concluding thus: "I neither wish death, nor yet fear his might: God have the praise thereof with thanks." After this Mrs. Askew addressed a letter to the king, and sent it by the hands of the chancellor. It ran thus: — " 1 Anne Askew, of good memory, although God hath given me the bread of adversity, and the water of trouble, yet not so much as my sins have deserved, desire this to be known unto your grace, that forasmuch as I am by the law con- demned for an evil doer, here I take heaven and earth to record, that I shall die in my innocency ; and according to that I have said first, and will say last, I utterly abhor and detest all heresies. And as concern- ing the supper of the Lord, I believe so much as Christ hath said therein, which he confirmed with his most blessed blood. I believe so much as he willed me to follow, and believe so much as the Catholic church of him doth teach. For I will not forsake the com- mandment of his holy lips. But look what God hath charged me with his mouth, that I have shut up in my heart. And thus briefly I end for lack of learning." This pious and gifted lady was, notwithstanding, still deemed a 458 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. heretic, and doomed to undergo farther suffering. In a few days she was sent from Newgate to the sign of the Crown, where Mr. Rich, and the bishop of London, with all their power and flattering words, went about to persuade her from God; but she did not esteem their glossing pre- tences. After them either came or was sent one Nicholas Shaxton, who counselled her to recant as others had done. She said to him, " It had been good for you never to have been born;" with many other like words, chiefly from Scripture. She was then sent to the Tower, where she remained till three o'clock, when Rich came and one of the council, charging her upon her obedience to show unto them if she knew any man or woman of her sect. Her answer was, " I know none." Then they asked her of lady Suffolk, lady Sussex, lady Hertford, lady Denny, and lady Fitzwilliam. Of whom she answered, " If I should pro- nounce any thing against them, that I were not able to prove it." Then said they unto her, " The king is informed that you could name, if you would, a great number of your sect." She answered, That the king was as well deceived in that behalf, as he was dissembled with by them in other matters. Then they commanded her to shew how she was maintained in the prison, and who willed her to stick to her opinion. She answered that there was no creature that therein did strengthen her. And as for the help that she had in the Compter, it was by the means of her maid. For as she went abroad in the streets, she told her case to the apprentices, and they by her did send her money, but who they were she never knew. On this they said, That there were several ladies that had sent her money. She answered, That there was a man who delivered her ten shillings, and said that my lady of Hertford sent it her; and another gave her eight shillings, and said my lady Denny sent it her. Whether it were true or no she could not tell, for she was not sure who sent it her, but as the maid did say. Then they said, " There are some of the council who maintain you," which she strictly denied. Then did they put her on the rack, because she confessed no ladies or gentlewomen to be of her opinion, and thereon they kept her a long time, and because she lay still and did not cry, the lord chancellor and Mr. Rich took pains to rack her with their own hands till she was nigh dead — an instance of unusual cruelty even for that age. The lieutenant then caused her to be loosed from the rack, when she immediately swooned, and then recovered again. After that she sat two hours rea- soning with the lord chancellor upon the bare floor, where he with many flattering words persuaded her to leave her opinion; but her Lord God, thanks to his everlasting goodness gave her grace to persevere. Then she was brought to a house and laid on a bed, with as weary and painful bones as ever had patient Job, yet expressing her thanks to God. Then the lord chancellor sent her word, if she would leave her opinion she should want for nothing; if she would not, she should forthwith to Newgate, and so be burned. She sent him again word, that she would rather die than break her faith — praying that God would open his eyes, that the truth might take place. Touching the order of her racking in the Tower, thus it was: first, she was led down into a dungeon, where Sir Anthony Knevet, the lieu- ANNE ASKEW'S ANSWERS. 459 tenant, commanded his gaoler to pinch her with the rack: which being done st) muofa as he thought sufficient, he went about to take her down, supposing that lie had done enough. But Wriothesley, the chancellor, displeased that she was loosed so soon, confessing nothing, commanded the lieutenant to strain her on the rack again, which because he refused to do, tendering the weakness of the woman, he was threatened, the chancellor saying, that he would signify his disobedience unto the king; and so consequently, he and Mr. Rich, throwing off their gowns, would needs play the tormentors themselves, first asking her, if she were with child ; to whom she answering again, said, " Ye shall not need to spare for that, but do your wills upon me;" and so quietly and patiently pray- ing unto the Lord, she abode their tyranny, till her bones and joints were almost plucked asunder, so that she was carried away in a chair. When the racking was past, Wriothesley and his fellow left. Meantime, while they were making their way by land, the good lieu- tenant, eftsoons taking boat, sped him to the court in all haste to speak with the king before the other ; who there making his humble suit to the king, desired his pardon, and showed him the whole matter as it stood, and of the racking of Mrs. Askew ; and that he was threatened by the lord chancellor, because at his commandment, not knowing his high- ness's-pleasure, he refused to rack her, which he for compassion could not find in his heart to do, and therefore desired his highness's pardon. This when the king had understood, he seemed not very well to like their so extreme handling the woman, and also granted to the lieutenant his pardon, willing him to return and see to his charge. There was great expectation in the mean season among the warders and officers of the Tower, waiting for his return. When they saw him come so cheerfully, declaring unto them how he had sped with the king, they were not a little joyous, and gave thanks to God therefore — a proof this that persecution was more in favour with the higher than the lower officers. The following is a letter from Mrs. Askew to a fellow martyr, in answer to one which he had written to her : his name was John Lacel. " O friend, most dearly beloved in God ! I marvel not a little what should move you to judge me in so slender a faith as to fear death, which is the end of all misery. In the Lord, I desire you not to believe of me such weakness ; for I doubt it not, that God will perform his. work in me, like as he hath begun. I understand the council is not a little dis- pleased, that it should be reported abroad that I was racked in the Tower. They say now, that what they did there was but to fear me; whereby I perceive they are ashamed of their uncomely doings, and fear much lest the king's majesty should have information thereof, wherefore they would no man to noise it. Well, their cruelty God forgive them." She was falsely accused of beginning to recant, and she thus answered the accusation. " I have read the process which is reported of them that know not the truth, to be my recantation. But, as the Lord liveth, I never meant a thing less than to recant. Notwithstanding this I confess, that in my first troubles, I was examined by the bishop of London about the sacra- ment. Yet had they no grant of my mouth but this, that I believed therein as the word of God did bind me to believe. More had they 460 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. never of me. Then he made a copy, which is now in print, and required me to set thereunto my hand; but I refused it. Then my two sureties did will me in no wise to stick thereat, for it was no great matters, they said. Then with much ado, at the last I wrote thus: — I, Anne Askew, do believe this, if God's word do agree to the same, and the true catholic church. Then the bishop being in great displeasure with me, because I made doubts in my writing, commanded me to prison, where I was awhile, but afterwards by the means of friends I came out again. Here is the truth of that matter; and as concerning the thing that ye covet most to know, resort to the sixth of John, and be ruled always thereby. Thus fare ye well." The reader has already seen a brief confession of this pious woman's faith, and will delight in perusing an enlargement of the same. " I, Anne Askew, of good memory, although my merciful Father hath given me the bread of adversity, and the water of trouble, yet not so much as my sins have deserved, do confess myself here a sinner before the throne of his heavenly majesty, desiring his forgiveness and mercy. And for so much as I am by the law unrighteously condemned for an evil doer, concerning opinions, I take the same most merciful God of mine, which hath made both heaven and earth, to record, that I hold no opinions contrary to his most holy word; and I trust in my merciful Lord, who is the giver of all grace, that he will graciously assist me against all evil opinions which are contrary to his blessed verity; for I take him to witness that I have done, and will,unto my life's end, utterly abhor them to the uttermost of my power. " But this is the heresy which they report me to hold, that after the priest hath spoken the words of consecration, there remaineth bread still. They both say, and also teach it for a necessary article of faith, that after these words be once spoken, there remaineth no bread, but even the self-same body that hung upon the cross on Good Friday, both flesh, blood, and bone. To this belief of theirs say I, nay. For then were our common creed false, which saith, that he sitteth on the right hand of God the Father Almighty, and from thence shall come to judge the quick and the dead. Lo, this is the heresy that I hold, and for it must suffer the death. But as touching the holy and blessed supper of the Lord,, I believe it to be a most necessary remembrance of his glori- ous sufferings and death. Moreover, I believe as much therein as my eternal and only Redeemer Jesus Christ would I should believe. " Finally, I believe all those scriptures to be true, which he hath con- firmed with his most precious blood; yea, and as St. Paul saith, those scriptures are sufficient for our learning and salvation, that Christ hath left here with us: so that, I believe, we need no unwritten verities to rule his church with. Therefore look what he hath said unto me with his own mouth in his holy gospel that I have with God's grace closed up in my heart, and my full trust is, as David saith that it shall be a lantern to my footsteps. There be some that say I deny the eucharist, or sacrament of thanksgiving; but those people untruly report of me, for I both say and believe it, that if it were ordered as Christ instituted it and left it, a most singular comfort it were unto us all. But as con- cerning your mass as it is now used in our days, I say and believe it to MARTYRDOM OF ANN r. ASKEW AM) OTHERS. 461 be the most abominable idol that is in the world. For my God will not be eaten with teeth, neither yet dieth he again ; and upon these words that I have now spoken, will I suffer death." To this confession she added a prayer. " O Lord, I have more enemies now than there be hairs on my head; yet Lord, let them never overcome me with vain words, but fight thou Lord in my stead, for on thee cast I my care. With all the spite they can imagine, they fall upon me who am thy poor creature. Yet, sweet Lord, let me not set by them which are against me, for in thee is my whole delight; and, Lord, I heartily desire of thee, that thou wilt of thy most merciful goodness forgive them that violence which they do and have done unto me. Open also thou their blind hearts, that they may hereafter do that thing in thy sight, which is only acceptable before thee, and to set forth thy verity aright, without any vain fantasy of sinful men. So be it, O Lord, so be it." After tLes^ refreshing things we are better prepared to speak concern- ing her martyrdom. Being born of such stock and kindred as would have enabled her to live in great wealth and prosperity, if she had chosen rather to have followed the world than Christ, she now had been so tormented, that she could neither live long in such great distress, nor yet by her adversaries be suffered to die in secret; the day of her exe- cution being appointed, she was brought to Smithfield in a chair, because she could not walk, from the cruel effects of the torments. When she was brought to the stake, she was fastened to it by the middle with a chain that held up her body. Three others were brought to suffer with her, and for the same offence; these were, Nicholas Belenian, a priest of Shropshire; John Adams, a tailor; and John Lacel, gentleman of the court and household of king Henry. The martyrs being chained to the stake, and all things ready for the fire, Dr. Shaxton, then appointed to preach, began his sermon. Anne Askew hearing and answering him, where he said well, she approved; where he said amiss, expressing firmly her dissent, saying, " He speaketh without the book." The sermon being finished, the martyrs, standing at three several stakes ready to their martyrdom, began their prayers. The multitude of the people was exceeding great, the place where they stood being railed about to keep out the press. Upon the bench, under St. Bar- tholomew's church, sat Wriothesley, the chancellor of England, the old duke of Norfolk, the old earl of Bedford, the lord mayor, with divers others. Before the fire was kindled, one of the bench hearing that they had gunpowder about them, and being afraid lest the fagots, by strength of the gunpowder, would come flying about their ears, began to be afraid; but the earl of Bedford observing how the gun- powder was not laid under the fagots, but only about their bodies to rid them of their pain, which having vent, there was no danger to them, so diminished that fear. Then the lord chancellor sent to Anne Askew, offering to her the king's pardon if she would recant: a letter said to be written by the king was put into her hand ; but she, refusing once to look upon it, made this answer again, "I came not hither to deny my Lord and 462 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. master." Then were letters likewise offered unto the others, who in like manner, following the constancy of the woman, denied not only to receive them, but also to look upon them, continuing to cheer and exhort each other by the end of their sufferings, and the glory they were about to enter ; whereupon the lord mayor, commanding fire to be put to them, cried with a loud voice, "fiat justitia." Thus were these blessed martyrs compassed in with flames of fire, as holy sacrifices unto God and his truth. There is a letter extant, which John Lacel briefly wrote in prison respecting the sacrament of Christ's body and blood, wherein he confutes the error of them, who, not being contented with the spiritual receiving of the sacrament, will leave no substance of bread therein, and also the sinister interpretation of many thereupon. These events were so many triumphs to the popish party, who, stimu- lated by fresh hopes, sought to complete the victory they anticipated by an important scheme. This was the ruin of Cranmer and the queen, whom they considered the greatest barriers to their aims. They per- suaded the king that Cranmer was the source of all the heresies in England; but Henry's esteem for him was such, that none would come in against him ; they therefore desired that he might at least be put in the Tower, as a place of safeguard, and then it would appear how many would inform against him. The king seemed to approve this plan, and they resolved to execute it the next day: but in the night the king relented, and he sent for Cranmer, and told him what was resolved concerning him. Cranmer thanked the king for giving him notice of it, and not leaving him to be surprised. He submitted to it, only desiring he might be heard in answer for himself; and that he might have im- partial judges, competent to decide. Henry wondered to see him so little concerned in his own preservation : and told him, since he took so little care of himself, that he must take care of him. He therefore gave him instructions to appear before the council, and to desire to see his accusers before he should be sent to the Tower ; and that he might be used by them, as they would desire to be used in a similar case; and, if he could not prevail by the force of reason, then he was to appeal to the king in person, and was to shew the royal seal ring, which he took from his finger and gave him, which they would know so well that they would do nothing after they once saw it. Accordingly, on being summoned next morning, he came over to Whitehall; there he was detained with great insolence in the lobby before he was called into the council chamber : but when that was done, and he had observed the method the king had directed him to use, and at last shewed the ring, they all rose in great confusion and went to the king. He upbraided them severely for what they had done, and expressed his esteem and kindness to Cranmer in such terms that his enemies were glad to get off, by pretending that they had no other design but that of having his inno- cence declared by a public trial. From this vain attempt they were so convinced of the king's unalterable favour to him, that they forbore any further designs against him. But what they durst not do in relation to Cranmer, they thought might be more safely tried against the queen, who was known to love the new learning, as the reformation was now called. She used to have Till: QUEEN'S ARGUMENTS. 463 sermons in her privy chamber, which could not be so secretly carried, but that it came to the knowledge of her royal spouse; yet her conduct in all other things was so exact, and she expressed such a tender care of the king's person, that it was observed she had gained much upon him; while his peevishness growing with his distempers, made him sometimes impatient even to her. They used often to talk of matters of religion, and sometimes she held the argument for the reformers so strenuously, that he was offended at it; yet as soon as that appeared she let it fall. But once the debate continuing long, the king expressed his displeasure at it to Gardiner, when she went away. The crafty bishop took this opportunity to persuade the king that she was a great cherisher of heretics. The chancellor joined with him in the same artifice, and filled the angry king with stories, insomuch that he signed the articles upon which she was to be impeached. The chancellor, however, letting the paper fall from him carelessly, it happened to be taken up by one of the queen's friends, who carried it to her. The night following after su pper, she was waited upon only by lady Herbert, her sister, and lady Lane, who carried the candle before her, unto the king's bedchamber, whom she found sitting and talking with certain gentlemen of his chamber. Henry very courteously welcomed her, and breaking off the talk with the gentlemen, began of himself, contrary to his manner before ac- customed, to enter into talk of religion, seeming as it were desirous to be resolved by the queen of certain doubts which he propounded. The queen perceiving to what purpose this talk did tend, not being unprovided how to behave herself towards the king, resolved his ques- tions as the time and opportunity allowed. With a mild and reverent countenance she answered his inquiries thus — "Your majesty doth right well know, neither I myself am ignorant, what great imperfection and weakness by our first creation is allotted unto us women, to be ordained and appointed as inferior, and subject unto man as our head, from which head all our direction ought to proceed; and that as God made man to his own shape and likeness, whereby he, being endued with more special gifts of perfection, might rather be stirred to the contemplation of heavenly things, and to the earnest endeavour to obey his command- ments, even so also made he woman of man, of whom, and by whom, she is to be governed, commanded, and directed. Her womanly weak- ness and natural imperfection ought to be tolerated, aided and borne withal, so that by his wisdom such things as be lacking in her ought to be supplied. Since then God hath appointed such a natural difference between man and woman, and your majesty being so excellent in gifts and ornaments of wisdom, and I so much inferior in all respects of nature unto you, how then cometh it now to pass that your majesty, in such diffuse causes of religion, will seem to require my judgment? which, when I have uttered and said what I can, yet must I, and will I, refer my judgment in this, and in all other cases to your majesty's wisdom, as my only anchor, supreme head and governor here on earth, next under God to lean unto." "Not so, by St. Mary," quoth the king; "you are become a doctor, Kate, to instruct us, and not to be instructed or directed by us." " If your majesty take it so," replied the queen, "then hath your 464 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. majesty very much mistaken me, who have ever been of the opinion to think it very unseemly, and preposterous, for the woman to take upon her the office of an instructor or teacher to her lord and husband ; but rather to learn of her husband, and to be taught by him. And whereas I have with your majesty's leave heretofore been bold to hold talk with your majesty, wherein sometimes in opinions there hath seemed some difference, I have not done it so much to maintain opinion, as I did it rather to minister talk, not only to the end your majesty might with less grief pass over this painful time of your infirmity, being intentive to our talk, and hoping that your majesty should reap some ease thereby; but also that I, hearing your majesty's learned discourse might receive to myself some profit thereby; wherein, I assure your majesty, I have not missed any part of my desire in that behalf, always referring myself in all such matters unto your majesty, as by ordinance of nature it is con- venient for me to do." "And is it even so, sweetheart?" quoth the king, " and tended your arguments to no worse end? Then perfect friends we are now again, as ever at any time heretofore. " And as he sat in his chair, embracing her in his arms, and kissing her, he added this, saying, that it did him more good at that time to hear those words of her own mouth, than if he had heard present news of a hundred thousand pounds in money fallen unto him; and with' great signs and tokens of marvellous joy and liking, with promises and assurances never again in any sort more to mistake her, entering into other very pleasant discourses with the queen and the lords, and gentlemen standing by, about midnight he gave her leave to depart; and in her absence to the standers by, he gave as singular and affec- tionate commendations, as before to the bishop and the chancellor — who then were neither of them present — he seemed to mislike of her. The day, and almost the hour appointed being come, the king being- disposed in the afternoon to take the air, waited upon by two gentlemen only of his bedchamber, went into the garden, whither the queen also came, being sent for by the king himself, the three ladies above named waiting upon her. Henry seemed at that time disposed to be as pleasant as ever he was in all his life before : when suddenly in the midst of their mirth came the lord chancellor into the garden with forty of the king's guards at his heels, intending to have taken the queen, together with the three ladies, even then unto the Tower. The king sternly beholding them, broke off his mirth with the queen, and stepping a little aside, called the chancellor unto him, who upon his knees spake unto the king, but what they were, on account of their whispering and distance, is not well known : but it is most certain that the king's reply unto him was, " Knave, yea, arrant knave, beast, and fool;" and then commanded him presently to avaunt out of his presence. These words, although they were uttered somewhat low, yet were they so vehemently whispered out by the king, that the queen and her ladies overheard them, which would have been not a little to her comfort, if she had known at that time the whole cause of his coming, so perfectly as after she knew it. Thus departed the lord chancellor out of the king's presence as he came, with all his train, the whole mould of his device being utterly broken. FALL OF THE DUKE OF NORFOLK. 465 The king immediately returned to the queen, who perceived him to be very much chafed : then, with as sweet words as she could utter, she en- deavoured to pacify his displeasure, with request unto his majesty in behalf of the lord chancellor, with whom he seemed to be offended ; saying-, "Albeit I know not what just cause your majesty had at that time to be offended with him, yet I think that ignorance, not will, was the cause of his error ;" and so besought his majesty for him. "Ah, poor soul," quoth he, " thou little knowest how ill he deserveth this grace at thy hands. On my word, sweetheart, he hath been towards thee an arrant knave, and so let him go." To this the queen, in charitable manner replying in few words, ended that talk. Thus the design against her vanished ; and Gardiner, who had set it on, lost the king's favour entirely by it. Now the tall of the duke of Norfolk, and his son, the earl of Surrey, came 'on. The father had been long treasurer, and served the king with great fidelity and success ; his son was a man of rare qualities, and more than ordinarily learned. He hated the earl of Hertford, and scorned an alliance with him, which his father had projected. The Seymours also were apprehensive of the opposition they might meet with, if the king should die, from the earl of Surrey, who was very haughty, had a vast fortune, and was the head of the popish party. The duke's family was also fatally divided; his duchess had been separated from him about four years, and now turned informer against him. His daughter also hated her brother. Mrs. Holland, a mistress of the duke, also betrayed him, and discovered all she could ; , yet all amounted to no more than some complaints of the father's, who thought the services he had done the crown were little regarded, and some threatenings of the son's. It was also said, that the father gave the coat of arms that belonged to the prince of Wales, and the son gave Edward the Confessor's coat. One Southwell objected things of a higher nature to the earl of Surrey; he denied them, and desired that, according to the martial law, they might have a trial by combat: but that was not granted; yet both father and son were sent to the Tower. The earl was tried by a jury of commoners, found guilty of treason, and executed. He was much lamented by his party, who threw the blame of his death on the Seymours, against whom they raised a general odium. The old duke saw a parliament called to destroy him by an act of attainder, for there was not matter enough to ruin him at common law. To prevent that, he made a very humble submission to the king; but it had no effect. When the parliament met, the king was not able to come to West- minster, but sent his pleasure to them by a commission. He intended to have his son Edward crowned prince of Wales, and therefore desired they would make all possible haste in the attainder of the duke of Norfolk, so that the places which he held by patent might be disposed of to others, who should assist at the coronation; which, though it was a very slight excuse for so high a piece of injustice, yet it had such an effect that in seven days both houses passed the bill. On the 27th of January, the royal assent was given by those commissioned by the king; and the execution was ordered to be next morning. There was no special matter in the act, but that of the coat of arms, which he and his ancestors were used to give, according to the records in the herald's office; so that this was 2 H 466 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. condemned as a most inexcusable act of tyranny. But the night after, the king died ; and it was thought contrary to the decencies of govern- ment, to begin a new reign with such an act, and so he was preserved. Cranmer would not interfere in this matter, but that he might be out of the way, retired to Croydon; whereas Gardiner, who had been friendly to the duke all along, continued still about the court. The king's distemper had been growing long upon him. He was become so corpulent that he could not go up and down stairs, but made use of an engine, when he intended to walk in his garden, by which he was let down and drawn up. He had an old wound in his leg, which pained him much, the humours of his body discharging themselves that way, till at last all settled in a dropsy. Those about him were afraid to let him know that his death seemed near, lest it might have been brought within the statute of foretelling his death, which was made treason. His will was made ready, and as it was given out, was signed by him on the 30th of December. He ordered Gardiner's name to be struck out, who had been named one of the executors. When Sir Anthony Brown endeavoured to persuade him not to put that disgrace on an old servant, he continued positive in it; for he said he knew his temper, and could govern him; but it would not be in the power of others to do it, if he were put in so high a trust. The most material thing in the will was, that of preferring the children of his second sister, by Sir Charles Brandon, to the children of his eldest sister, the queen of Scotland, in the succession to the crown. On his death-bed he finished the foundation of Trinity-college, in Cambridge, and of Christ's-church hospital, near Newgate; but this last was not so fully settled as was needful, till his son completed what he had begun. On the 27th of January his spirits sunk so that it was visible he had not long to live. Sir Anthony Denny took the courage to tell him that death was approaching, and desired him to call on God for his mercy. He expressed in general his sorrow for his past sins, and his trust in the mercies of God in Christ Jesus. He ordered Cranmer to be sent for, but he was speechless before he could be brought from Croydon ; yet he gave a sign that he understood what was said to him, and soon after he died, in the fifty-seventh year of his age, after he had reigned thirty- seven years and nine months. His death was concealed three days; for the parliament, which was dissolved with his last breath, continued to do business till the 31st, when his death was published. It is probable the Seymours concealed it so long, till they made a party for putting the government into their own hands. The severities which Henry used against many of his subjects, in matters of religion, made both sides write with great sharpness of him. His temper was imperious and cruel; he was both sudden and violent in his revenge, and stuck at nothing by which he could gratify his passions. These were much provoked by the sentence the pope thundered against him, by the virulent books cardinal Pole and others published, by the rebellions that were raised in England, and the apprehensions he was in of the emperor's greatness, and of the inclinations his people had to join with him, together with what he had read in history of the fates of those princes, against whom popes had thundered in former times: these SEVERITIES OF HENRY VIII. 4G7 considerations made him think it necessary to keep his people under the terror of a severe government, and by some public examples to secure the peace of the nation, and thereby to prevent a more profuse effusion of blood, which might have otherwise followed if he had been more gentle; and it was no wonder, if after the pope deposed him, he pro- ceeded to great severities against all who supported that authority. The first instance of capital proceeding upon that account, was in Easter term 1535, in which three priors and a monk of the Carthusian order were condemned of treason, for saying that the king was not supreme head of the church of England. It was then only premunire not to submit to the king's supremacy; but it was made treason to deny it, or speak against it. Hall, a secular priest, was condemned of treason, " for calling the king a tyrant, a heretic, a robber, and an adulterer; and saying that he would die as king John or Richard III. died; and that it would never be well with the church till the king was defunct : that they looked w T hen Ireland and Wales would rise ; and were assured that three parts of four in England would join with them." All these pleaded not guilty; but being condemned they justified what they had said. The Carthusians were hanged in their habits. Soon after three other Carthusians were condemned and executed at London, and two more at York, upon the same account, for opposing the king's supremacy. Ten other monks were shut up in their cells, of whom nine died there, and one was condemned and hanged. These had been all accomplices in the business of the maid of Kent, and though that was pardoned, yet it gave the government ground to have a watchful eye over them, and to proceed more severely against them upon the first provocation. After these Fisher and More were brought to their trials. The first was tried by a jury of commoners, and was found guilty of treason, for having spoken against the king's supremacy; but instead of the common death in cases of treason, the king ordered him to be beheaded. On the 22nd of June he suffered. He dressed himself with more than ordinary care that day, for he said it was to be his wedding day. As he was led out, he opened the New Testament at a venture, and prayed that such a place might turn up as would comfort him in his last moments. The words on which he cast his eyes were, "This is life eternal, to know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom thou hast sent." So he shut the book, and continued me- ditating on these words to the last. On the scaffold he repeated the Te Deum, and so laid his head on the block, which was severed from his body. He was learned and devout; but much addicted to super- stition, and too cruel in his temper against heretics. It was harder to find matter against Sir Thomas More, for he was very cautious, and satisfied his own conscience by not swearing to the supremacy, but would not speak against it. He said the act had two eda;es, if he consented to it, it would damn his soul, and if he spoke against it, it would condemn his body, and that the matter of supremacy was a point of religion, to which the parliament's authority did not extend itself. He received his sentence with that equal temper of mind which he had shewed in both conditions of life. He expressed great 468 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. contempt of the world, and much weariness in living in it. He was beheaded on the 6th of July, in the fifty-second or fifty-third year of his age. In his youth he had freer thoughts, but he was afterwards much corrupted by superstition, and became fierce for all the interests of the clergy. His learning in divinity was but ordinary; for he had read little more than some of St. Austin's treatises, and the canon law, and the master of the sentences, beyond which his quotations seldom go. There were no executions after these, till the rebellions of Lincoln- shire and Yorkshire gave new occasions to severity ; and then not only the lords of Darcy and Hussy, but six abbots, and many gentlemen, the chief of whom was Sir Thomas Percy, brother to the Earl of Northumberland, were attainted. When these judgments and executions were over, a new and unheard-of precedent was made, of attainting some without bringing them to make their answers, which is a blemish on this reign that can never be washed off, and was a breach of the most sacred and unalterable rules of justice. In the year 1541, five priests, and ten laymen, stirred up the people in the North to a new rebellion; but it was prevented, and they suffered for it. In the year 1543, the bishop of Winchester's secretary, and three other priests, were condemned and executed, for denying the king's supremacy : and this was the last occasion given to the king to shew his severity on that account. In all these executions it cannot be denied but the laws were excessively severe, and the proceedings upon them never tempered with that mildness which ought to be often applied for the mitigating the rigour of penal statutes; but though they are much aggravated by popish writers, they were trifling, compared with the cruelties in Queen Mary's reign. Before we leave the martyrdoms of this reign, justice to the memory of two good men in humble life, who have been passed over in their proper place, requires that some record be preserved in this work of their sufferings. Their names were Bent and Trapnell, and they suffered shortly after the heroic Thomas Bilney. They were Wiltshire men; and, as one suffered at Devizes and the other at Bradford in that county, it is likely they were born where they were martyred. Their offence was a resolute denial of the doctrine of transubstantiation. A curious incident follows in the order of time. In the year 1532, there was an idol named the Rood of Dover-court, whereunto was con- tinually a great resort of people. For at that time there was a great rumour abroad amongst the ignorant, that the power of the idol of Dover-court was so great, that no man could shut the church-door where he stood; and therefore they let the door, both night and day, continually stand open, to give more credit to their blind rumour. This once being conceived in the heads of the vulgar sort, seemed a great miracle unto many; but to others again, whom God had blessed with his Spirit, was greatly suspected, especially to those whose names follow: Robert King of Dedham, Robert Debnam of Eastbergholt, Nicholas Marsh of Dedham, and Robert Gardiner of Dedham, whose consciences were burthened to see the honour and power of the Almighty God so blasphemed Wherefore they were moved by the spirit of God to travel out of Dedham in a night suitable to their purpose, it being a MARTYRDOM OF KING AND OTHERS. 469 hard frost, and moonlight, although the nights before were exceeding foul and rainy. It was from the town of Dedham, to the place where the Rood stood, ten miles. Notwithstanding, they were so willing in that their enterprize, that they went this distance without pain, and found the church-door open according to the blind talk of the igno- rant people: for there durst no unfaithful body shut it. This hap- pened well for their purpose; for they found the idol, which had as much power to keep the door shut as to keep it open. And for proof thereof, they took the image from its shrine, and carried it a quarter of a mile from the place where it stood, without any resistance from itself or any of its devotees. Whereupon they struck fire with a flint-stone, and suddenly set the idol on a blaze, who burned out so brightly that he lighted them homeward one good mile of the ten. This done, there went a great talk abroad that they should have great riches in that place ; but it was very untrue ; for it was not their thought or enterprize, as they themselves afterwards confessed, for there was nothing taken away but the coat, the shoes, and the tapers of the image. The tapers they used to burn him, the shoes they had again, and the coat one sir Thomas Rose burnt, but they had neither penny, halfpenny, gold, groat, nor jewel. However they could not hope to be deemed innocent, and soon three of them were indicted of felony, and hanged in chains within half-a-year after. Robert King was hanged in Dedham at Burchet; Robert Debnam at Cataway- cawsey; and Nicholas Marsh at Dover-court. They all, through the Spirit of God at their death, did more edify the people in godly learn- ing, than all the sermons that had been preached there a long time before. Robert Gardiner escaped their hands and fled. Although great search was made after him, the Lord preserved him; to whom be all honour and glory, world without end. The example of these reso- lute men was followed in other instances. The same year there were many images cast down and destroyed in many places : as the image of the crucifix in the highway of Cogshal, the image of St. Petronil in the church of great Horksleigh, the image of St. Christopher by Sud- bury, and another image of St. Petronil in a chapel at Ipswich. The most remarkable act was that of John Seward of Dedham, who over- threw the cross in Stoke-park, and took two images out of a chapel in the park, and cast them into the water. He however escaped the punishment threatened against such desperate heretics. We proceed to Exeter, honoured by the martyrdom of Thomas Benet, who was born in Cambridge, and by order of degree of the university there made M. A. He was formerly a priest, a man well learned and of a godly disposition, intimately acquainted with Thomas Bilney, the glorious martyr of Christ. The more he increased in the knowledge of God and his holy word, the more he disliked the corrupt state of religion then used ; and therefore thinking his own country to be no safe place for him to remain in, and being desirous to live in more freedom of conscience, he quitted the university, and went into Devonshire, in the year 1524, and resided at Torrington, a market-town, both town and country being to him altogether unknown, as he was also unknown to all men there. There, for the better maintenance of 470 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. himself and his wife, he taught young children, and kept a school for the purpose. But that town not serving his expectation, after his abode there one year, he removed to the city of Exeter, and hiring a house resumed his teaching, and by that means maintained his wife and family. He was of a quiet behaviour, of a godly conversation, and of a very courteous nature, humble to all men, and offensive to none. His greatest delight was to be at all sermons and preachings, whereof he was a diligent and attentive hearer, and he devoted all his leisure to the study of the Scriptures, having no dealings nor confer- ences with any body, saving with such as he could learn and under- stand to be favourers of the gospel. Understanding that William Strowd, of Newnham, in the county of Devon, Esq. was committed to the bishop's prison in Exeter upon suspicion of heresy, although he was not before acquainted with him, yet did he send letters of consolation to him. In one of these letters, to avoid all suspicion which might be conceived of him, he disclosed himself, and said — " Because I would not be a whoremonger, or an unclean person, I married a wife, with whom I have hidden myself in Devonshire, from the tyranny of the antichristians these six years." But as every tree and herb hath its due time to bring forth its fruit, so did it appear by this man. For daily seeing the glory of God to be so blasphemed, idolatrous religion so embraced and maintained, and the usurped power of the bishop of Rome so extolled, he was so grieved in conscience, and troubled in spirit, that he could not be quiet till he uttered his mind therein. Wherefore dealing privately with certain of his friends, he plainly disclosed how blasphemously and abominably God was dishonoured, his word contemned, and the people, by blind guides, carried headlong to everlasting damnation. In fact he could no longer endure, but must needs utter their abominations publicly, and for his own part, for the testimony of his conscience, and for the defence of God's true religion, would yield himself most patiently, as God would give him grace, to die and shed his blood therein; alleging that his death should be more profitable to the church of God, and for the edifying of his people, than his life should be. To whose per- suasions when his friends had yielded, they promised to pray to God for him, that he might be strong in the cause, and continue a faithful soldier to the end. This done, he gave order for bestowing of such books as he had, and shortly after, in the month of October, he wrote his mind in certain scrolls of paper, which privately he affixed upon the doors of the cathedral church of the city, in which was written — "The pope is antichrist, and we ought to worship God only, and no saints." These bills being found, there was no small ado, and no little search made for the heretic who had set them up. Orders were given that the doctors should haste to the pulpit every day, and confute this heresy. Nevertheless, Benet keeping his own doings in secret, went the Sunday following to the cathedral church to the sermon, and by chance sate down 'by two men, who had been the busiest in all the city in seeking and searching for heretics ; and they beholding Benet, said the one to the other, Surely this fellow is the heretic that hath set up the bills, and it were good to examine him. Nevertheless when they had well beheld EXCOMMUNICATION OF BENET. 471 him, and saw the quiet and sober behaviour of the man, his attentive- ness to the preacher, his godliness in the church, being always occupied in his book, which was a Testament in the Latin tongue, they were astonished and had no power to speak to him, but departed and left him reading his book. Meanwhile the canons and priests, with the officers and commons of that city, were earnestly busied, by what means such an enormous heretic might be espied and known ; but it was long before they obtained a clue to the man. At last the priests found out a toy to curse him, whatsoever he were, with book, bell, and candle; which curse at that day, seemed most fearful and terrible. The manner of the curse was after this sort. One of the priests, apparelled in white, ascended the pulpit. The other rabblement, with certain of the two orders of friars, and some superstitious monks of St. Nicholas standing round about, and the cross being holden up with holy candles of wax fixed to the same, he began his sermon with this theme of Joshua: Est blasphemia in castris — there is a curse in the camp. On this he made a long protestation, but not so long as tedious and superstitious; and concluded, that the foul and abominable heretic who had put up such a foul and blasphemous bill, was for that his blasphemy damnably cursed, and besought God, our lady, St. Peter, patron of that church, with all the holy company of martyrs, confessors, and virgins, that it might be known what heretic had done the accursed thing ! Then followed the curse, uttered by the priest in these words: — " By the authority of God the Father Almighty, and of the blessed Virgin Mary, of St. Peter and Paul, and of the holy saints, we excom- municate, we utterly curse and ban, commit and deliver to the devil of hell, him or her, whatsoever he or she be, that have in spite of God and of St. Peter, whose church this is, in spite of all holy saints, and in spite of our most holy father the pope, God's vicar here on earth, and in spite of the reverend father in God, John our diocesan, and the worshipful canons, masters, and priests, and clerks, which serve God daily in this cathedral church, fixed up with wax such cursed and here- tical bill full of blasphemy, upon the doors of this and other holy churches within this city. Excommunicate plainly be he or she plenally, or they, and delivered over to the devil, as perpetual male- factors and schismatics. Accursed may they be, and given body and soul to the devil. Cursed be they, he or she, in cities and towns, in fields, in ways, in paths, in houses, out of houses, and in all other places, standing, lying, rising, walking, running, waking, sleeping, eating, drinking, and whatsoever thing they do besides. We separate them, him or herefrom the threshold, and from all the good prayers of the church, from the participation of the holy mass, from all sacraments, chapels, and altars, from holy bread and holy water, from all the merits of God's priests, and religious men, and from all their cloisters, all their pardons, privileges, grants, and immunities, which all the holy fathers, popes of Rome, have granted to them. We give them over utterly to the power of the fiend, and let us quench their souls, if they be dead, this night in the pains of hell-fire, as this candle is now quenched and put out — with that he put out one of the candles. And let us pray to 472 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. God, if they be alive, that their eyes may be put out, as this candle light is — then he put out the other candle: and let us pray to God and to our lady, and to St. Peter and Paul, and all holy saints, that all the senses of their bodies may fail them, and that they may have no feeling, as now the light of this candle is gone — putting out the third candle — except they, he, or she, come openly now and confess their blasphemy, and by repentance make satisfaction unto God, our lady, St. Peter, and the worshipful company of this cathedral church; and this holy cross staff now falleth down, so may they, except they repent and shew them- selves." Here one first taking away the cross, the staff fell down : and then what a shout and noise was there! what terrible fear! what holding up hands to heaven, to hear this terrible denunciation ! This foolish fantasy and mockery being done and played, which was to a Christian heart a thing ridiculous, JBenet could no longer forbear, but fell into laughter within himself, and for a great space could not cease, by the which thing the poor man was discovered. For those that were next to him, wondering at that great curse, and believing that it could not but light on one or the other, asked Benet, for what cause he should so laugh. " My friends," said he, " who can forbear, hearing such merry conceits and interludes ?" Straightway a noise was made, "Here is the heretic! here is the heretic! Hold him fast! hold him fast ! " With that there was a great confusion of voices, and much clapping of hands, and yet they were uncertain whether he were the heretic or not. Some say that upon the same he was taken and apprehended. Others re- port, that his enemies, being uncertain of him, departed, and so he went home to his house; where, he, being not able to digest the lies there preached, renewed his former bills, and caused his boy, early in the morning follow- ing, to replace them upon the gates of the churchyard. As the boy was performing his office at a gate, called "The Little Stile," it chanced that one going to the cathedral to hear mass, called Barton's Mass, which was daily said about five of the clock in the morning, found the boy at the gate, and asking him whose boy he was, charged him to be the heretic which had set the bills upon the gates; wherefore pulling them down, he brought the same together with the boy before the mayor; and there- upon Benet, being known and taken, was violently committed to prison. On the morrow began both the canons and heads of the city to fall to examination, Benet for that day had not much communication with them, but confessed and said to them, " It was even I that put up those bills; and if it were to do, I would do it again; for in them I have written nothing but that is very truth." " Couldst not thou," said they, " as well have declared thy mind by word of mouth, as by putting up bills of blasphemy?" " No," said he, " I put up the bills, that many should read and hear what abominable blasphemers ye are, and that they might the better know your antichrist, the pope, to be that boar out of the woods, which throweth down the hedges of God's church; for if I had been heard to speak but one word, I should have been clapped fast in prison, and the matter of God hidden. But now I trust more of your blasphemous doings will thereby be opened and EXAMINATION OF BENET. 473 come to light; for God so will have it, and no longer will suffer you to prostitute his service and truth unrebuked. The next day he was sent unto the bishop, who first committed him to prison, where he was kept in stocks and strong irons. Then the bishop associating' unto him one Dr. Brewer his chancellor, and other of his lewd clergy and friars, began to examine him and burthen him, that contrary to the Catholic faith, he denied praying to saints, and the supremacy of the pope. To this he answered in such sober manner, and so learnedly proved and defended his assertions, that he did not only confound and put to silence his adversaries, but also brought them in great admiration of him, the most part having pity and compassion on him. The friars took great pains with him to persuade him to recant and acknowledge his fault, touching the bills; but it was in vain, for God had manifestly appointed him to be a witness of his holy name. To declare here with what cruelty the officers searched his house for bills and books, how cruelly and shamefully they handled his wife, charging her with divers enormities, it were too long to write. But she, like a good woman, took all things patiently, as in other things she was contented to bear the cross with him, to fare hardly with him at home, and to live with coarse meat and drink, that they might be the more able somewhat to help the poor, which they did to the utter- most of their power. Among other priests, Gregory Basset was most busy with him. Basset was learned, and had a pleasant tongue, and not long before had fallen from the truth, for which he had been impri- soned in Bristol; at whose examination there was provided and set before him a great pan of fire, where his holy brethren, as the report went abroad, menaced to burn his hands off: whereupon he recanted, and became afterward a mortal enemy to the truth. He was fervent with Benet, to please the canons of the church, and marvellously tormented his brains how to turn him from his opinions, and was so diligent with him that he would not depart the prison, but lay there night and day. He, notwithstanding, lost his labour: for Benet made it a point of con- science not to deny Christ before men, upon which Gregory, with the other holy fathers, said in open audience, " There was never so obstinate a heretic." The principal point between Basset and him was touching the supre- macy of the bishop of Rome, whom in his bills he named " Antichrist, the thief, the mercenary, and murderer of Christ's flock." These dis- putations lasted about eight days, during which at sundry times repaired to him both the black and grey friars, with priests and monks of that city. They who had some learning persuaded him to leave the church, and shewed by what tokens she is known. The unlearned railed, and said, that the devil tempted him, and spat upon him, calling him heretic : while he prayed God to give them a better mind and to forgive them. He boldly said, " I will rather die, than worship such a beast, the very whore of Babylon, and a false usurper, as manifestly doth appear by his doings." They asked, "What doth the pope that he has not au- thority to do, being God's vicar?" "He doth," quoth he, "sell the sacraments for money, he selleth remission of sins for money, and so do you likewise: for there is no day but ye say divers masses for souls 474 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. in purgatory: yea, and ye spare not to make lying sermons to the people, to maintain your false traditions and foul gains. The whole world begins now to note your doings, to your utter confusion and shame." " The shame," said they, '• shall be to thee, and such as thee, foul heretic. Wilt thou allow nothing done in holy church?" " I am," said he, "no heretic, but a Christian, I thank Christ, and with all my heart will allow all things done and used in the church to the glory of God, and edifying of my soul: but I see nothing in your church, but what maintaineth the devil." "What is our church?" said they. " It is not my church," quoth Benet; " God give me grace to be of a better church, for verily your church is the church of anti- christ, the malignant church, the false church, a den of thieves, and as far wide from the true universal and apostolic church, as heaven is dis- tant from the earth." " Dost not thou think," said they, " that we pertain to the universal church?" "Yes," quoth he, "but as dead members, unto whom the church is not beneficial: for your works are the devices of men, and your church a weak foundation; for ye say and preach, that the pope's word is equal with God's in every degree." "Why," said they, "did not Christ say to Peter, to thee I will give the keys of the kingdom of Heaven?" " He said that," quoth he, " to all the apostles as well as Peter, and Peter had no more authority given him than the rest, or else the churches planted in every kingdom by their preaching are no churches. Doth not St. Paul say, ' Upon the foundations of the apostles and prophets?' Therefore I say plainly, that the church that is built upon a man, is a man's church and not God's. And as every church this day is appointed to be ruled by a bishop or pastor, ordained by the word of God for preaching and administration of the sacraments under the prince, the supreme governor under God; so, to say that all the churches with their princes and governors be subject unto one bishop is detestable heresy ; and the pope, your god, challenging this power to himself, is the greatest schismatic that ever was in the church, and the most foul whore ; of whom John, in the Revelation, speaketh." " thou blind and unlearned fool," said they, " is not the confes- sion and consent of all the world as we confess and consent; that the pope's holiness is the supreme head and vicar of Christ?" " That is," said Benet, "because they are blinded and know not the scriptures: but if God would of his mercy open the eyes of princes to know their office, his false supremacy would soon decay." " We think," said they, " thou art so malicious, that thou wilt confess no church." " Look," said he, " where they are that confess the true name of Jesus Christ, where only Christ is the head, and under him the prince of the realm, to order bishops, ministers, and preachers, and to see them do their duties in setting forth the glory of God by preaching his word; and where it is preached, that Christ is our only advocate, mediator, and patron before his Father, making intercession for us; and where the true faith and confidence in Christ's death and passion, and his only merits and deservings are extolled, and our own depressed; where the sacrament is duly without superstition or idolatry administered in re- membrance of his blessed passion, and only sacrifice upon the cross BENET AND THE FRIAR. 475 once for all, and where no superstition reigneth — of that church will 1 be." 11 Doth not the pope," said they, " confess the true gospel? and do not we all the same?" " Yes," said he, "but ye deny the fruits thereof in every point. Ye build upon the sands, not upon the rock." " And wilt thou not believe indeed," said they, "that the pope is God's vicar?" "No," said he, "indeed! And that because he usurpeth a power not given him of Christ, any more than to other apostles; also because by force of that usurped supremacy, he blinds the whole world, and doth contrary to all that ever Christ ordained or commanded." " What," said they, " if he do all things after God's ordinance and commandment should he then be his vicar?" " Then," said he, " would I believe him to be a good bishop at Rome over his own diocese, but to have no further power. And if it pleased God, I would every bishop did this in his diocese: then should we live a peaceable life in the church of Christ, and there should be no seditions therein. If every bishop would seek no further power, it were a goodly thing. But now, because all are subject to one, they must do and consent to all wicked- ness as he doth, or be none of his. This is the cause of great super- stition in every kingdom ; and what bishop soever he be that preacheth the gospel, and maintaineth the truth, is a true bishop of the church." " And doth not," said they, " our holy father the pope maintain the gospel?" " Yea," said he, " I think he doth read it, and peradventure believe it, and so do you also; but neither he nor you do fix the anchor of your salvation therein. Besides that, ye bear such a good will to it, that ye keep it close, and no man may read it but yourselves. And when you preach, God knows how you handle it: insomuch, that the people of Christ know no gospel but the pope's; and so the blind lead the blind, and both fall into the pit. In the true gospel of Christ, confi- dence is none; but only in your popish traditions and fantastical inventions." Then said a black friar to him, (God knoweth, a blockhead,) " Do we not preach the gospel daily?" "Yes," said he; " but what preaching of the gospel is that when you extol superstitious things, and make us believe that we have redemption through pardons and bulls from Rome, a 'poena et culpa, as ye term it ; and by the merits of your orders ye make many brethren and sisters, ye take yearly money of them, ye bury them in your coats, and in shrift ye beguile them : yea, and do a thousand superstitious things more; a man may be weary to speak of them." " I see," said the friar, " thou art a damned wretch ; I will have no more talk with thee." Then stepped to him a grey friar, a doctor, (God knoweth, of small intelligence,) and laid before him great and many dangers. " I take God to record," said Benet, " my life is not dear to me ; I am content to depart from it, for I am weary of it, seeing your detestable doings, to the utter destruction of God's flock ; and, for my part, I can no longer for- bear. I had rather by death, which I know is not far off, depart this life, that I may no longer be witness of your idolatries, or be subject to anti- christ, your pope." " Our pope," said the friar, " is the vicar of God, and our ways are the ways of God." " I pray you," said Benet, " depart from me, and tell not me of your ways. He is my only way who saith, ' I am the way, the truth, and the life.' In this way will I walk, his doings shall 476 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. be my example, not yours, nor your false pope's. His truth will I em- brace ; not the lies and falsehood of you and your pope. His everlasting life will I seek, the true reward of all faithful people. Away from me, I pray you. Vex my soul no longer ; ye shall not prevail. There is no good example in you, no truth in you, no life to be hoped for at your hands. Ye are all more vain than vanity itself. If I should hear and follow you this day, everlasting death would hang over me, a just reward for all them that love the life of this world. Away from me: your company liketh me not." Never was confessor more to be admired for wisdom and courage, purity and truth, than this holy man. Well might such a mind and conscience be wearied with the blasphemies of his subtle adversaries. Yet did they continue to cast at him the venom of their poisoned tongue, and the arrows of their bitter words — thus through a whole week, night and day, was he harassed by these hypocrites. It were an infinite matter to declare all things done and said to him in the time of his imprisonment; and the hate of the people that time, by means of ignorance, was hot against him: notwithstanding they could never move his patience; he answered to every matter soberly, and that more by the aid of God's Spirit than by any worldly study. He was at least fifty years old. Being in prison, his wife provided sustenance for him; and when she lamented, he comforted her, and gave her many godly exhortations, praying her to move him not to apply to his adversaries for the least favour. His enemies at length, finding both their threats and their persuasions equally useless, proceeded to judgment, and condemned him to the flames ; which being done, and the writ which they had procured being brought from London, they delivered him the fifteenth of January, 1531, unto Sir Thomas Denis, knight, then sheriff of Devonshire, to be burn- ed. The mild martyr rejoicing that his end approached so near, as the sheep before the shearer, yielded himself, with all humbleness, to abide and suffer the cross of persecution. Being brought to his execution, in a place called Livery-dole, without Exeter, he made his humble confes- sion and prayer unto Almighty God, and requested all the people to do the like for him, exhorting them, at the same time, with such gravity and sobriety, and with such an impressive oration, to seek the true honouring of God, and the true knowledge of him; as also to leave the imaginations of man's inventions, that all the hearers were asto- nished and in great admiration: insomuch, that most of them, as alsp the scribe who wrote the sentence of condemnation against him, con- fessed that he was God's servant, and a good man. Two esquires, namely, Thomas Carew and John Barnehouse, standing at the stake by him, first with fair promises and goodly words, but at length through threatenings, required him to revoke his errors, to call to our lady and the saints, and to say, Precor sanctam Mariam, et omnes sanctos Dei. To them he with all meekness, answered, saying, " No, no; it is God only upon whose name we must call, and we have no advocate with him but Jesus Christ, who died for us, and now sitteth at the right hand of the Father to intercede for us. By him must we offer and make our prayers to God, if we will have them to take place and be heard." With this answer Barnehouse was so enraged, that he took BURNING OF BENET. 477 a furze-bush upon a pike, and setting it on tire, thrust it into his face, saying, " Heretic, pray to our Lady, and say, Sancta Maria, ora pro nobis, or by God's wounds I will make thee do it." To whom the said Thomas Benet, with an humble and a meek spirit, most patiently answered, "Alas, sir! trouble me not." And holding up his hands, he said, Pater! ignosce Mis. Whereupon the gentlemen caused the wood and furze to be set on fire, and therewith this godly man lifted up his eyes and hands to heaven, saying, O Do mine ! recipe spiritum meum. And so, continuing in his prayers, most patiently abode the cruelty of the fire, until his life was ended. For this the Lord God be praised, and send us his grace and blessing, that at the latter day we may with him enjoy the bliss and joy prepared for the elect children of God. At his burning, such was the rage of the blind people, that well was he that could cast a stick into the fire. In the year 151 1, a severe persecution took place in the county of Kent, under Warham, archbishop of Canterbury, and five were committed to the flames. These were William Carder, of Tenterden ; Agnes Grebil, of Tenterden, aged sixty years ; Robert Harrison, of Halden, of the same age ; John Browne, of Ashford ; and Edward Walker, of Maidstone, cutler. The witnesses against Agnes Grebil were her husband and her two sons — all of whom had abjured, and, instigated by base fear, sacrificed the life of the unhappy woman to preserve their own. This may be a proper place for a few remarks on the laws of that day, as they affected different offenders, extracted from the register of the said William Warham, archbishop of Canterbury. It is first to be noted, that the catholic fathers, in their processes of heretical depravity, had three distinct kinds of judgments and proceeding. One class of offences required the offenders to be burned, that, others being brought into terror, they might therefore more quietly maintain their power. The persons thus con- demned consisted of either such as had before abjured, and fallen again into relapse; or else such as stood constantly in their doctrine, and refused to abjure ; or such as they intended to make a terror and example, not- withstanding their willingness to submit themselves, and to abjure. Against the last, the process used was this : First, after they are suspected by some promoter, they are denounced and cited ; then by virtue of inquisition they are taken, and confined fast in irons in prison. Then they are brought forth for examination, if they be not dead by famine, cold, or straitness of the prison. Then be articles drawn, or rather wrested, out of their writings or preachings, and they put to their oath, to answer truly to every point and circumstance against them ; which articles if they seem to deny, or solve by true expounding the articles, then are witnesses called in and admitted, what witnesses soever they are, be they never so infamous, usurers, ribalds, women, yea, and common harlots. Or, if no other wit- nesses can be found, then is the husband brought in and forced to swear against the wife, or the wife against the husband, or the children against the mother, as in the example of Agnes Grebil. Or, if no such witness at all can be found, then are they strained upon the rack, or by other bitter torments forced to confess their knowledge, and to impeach others. Neither must any be suffered to come to them, what need soever they have; neither must any public or private audience be given them to speak for themselves ; till at last sentence be read against them, to give them up 478 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to the secular arm, or to degrade them, if they be priests, and so to burn them. Yet the malignity of these persecutors doth not here cease. For after the fire hath consumed their bodies, then they fall upon their books, and condemn them to be burned ; and no man must be so hardy as to read them, or keep them, under pain of heresy. But before they have abolished these books, they gather articles out of them, such as they list themselves, and so perversely wrest them after their own purpose, contrary to the meaning of the author. This done, and the books abolished, that no man may compare them, and espy their falsehood, they publish those extracts which they have so carefully perverted. To the second order belonged that sort of heretics whom the papists condemned not to death, but assigned them to monasteries, there to con- tinue, and to fast all their life, in pane doloris, et aqua angustice, with bread of sorrow, and water of affliction ; and that they should not re- move one mile out of the precinct of the monastery so long as they lived, unless they were by the archbishop himself or his successors dispensed withal. Frequently, however, the said persons were so dis- pensed withal that their penance of bread and water was confined only to Wednesdays and Fridays, or some similar punishment. The third class of heretics were those whom they did not judge to perpetual prison, but only enjoined them penance, either to stand before the preacher, or else to bear a fagot about the market, or in pro- cession; or else to wear the picture of a fagot bordered on their left sleeves, without any cloak or gown upon it; or else to kneel at the saying of certain masses, or to say so many pater nosters, to such or such a saint; or to go in pilgrimage to such or such a place; or to bear a fagot to the burning of some heretic ; or to fast certain Fridays on bread and water. In the year of our Lord 1539, John, a painter, and Giles German, were accused of heresy; and whilst they were in examination in London before the bishop and other judges, by chance there came in one of the king's servants, named Launcelot, a very tall man, and of no less godly mind and disposition, than strong and tall of body. This man standing by seemed by his countenance and gesture, to favour the cause of the poor men as though they were his friends. Whereupon, being apprehended, he was examined and condemned together with them; and the next day, at five o'clock in the morning, they were all carried into St. Giles* Fields, and there burned. There was but a small company of people at their death ; yet they behaved with remarkable firmness, and spoke to the few around them with a pious fidelity, exhorting them to embrace suffering rather than idolatry and sin. In the company and fellowship of those blessed saints and martyrs of Christ, who innocently suffered, and were burned in Smithfield about the latter end of Cuthbert Tonstal's time, bishop of London, was one called Stile, as is credibly reported to us by Sir Robert Outred, who was present at his martyrdom, and an eye witness of the same. With him there was burned also a book of the Apocalypse, which he was wont to read. This book when he saw fastened unto the stake to be burned with him, lifting up his voice he exclaimed, " O blessed Apocalypse ! how happy am I that I shall be burned with thee!" And so this good IMPRISONMENT OF BROWN. 479 man and the blessed Apocalypse were both together consumed in the same fire, whereas nothing could consume the spirit of either. As Gardiner and other bishops set on King Henry against Anne Askew and her fellow martyrs, so Dr. Repse, bishop of Norwich, incited no less the old duke of Norfolk against one Rogers, in the county of Norfolk ; who, much about the same year and time, was there condemned, and suffered martyrdom for the six articles. This martyr must be dis- tinguished from the clergyman of his name, one of the earliest victims of Mary's cruelty; though in christian courage he almost equalled his well known namesake and successor in suffering. A certain priest, passing down to Gravesend in the common barge about this time, where one Brown was amongst other passengers, and disdaining that he should sit so near him in the barge, began to swell against him. At length bursting forth in his priestly voice and dis- dainful countenance, he asked him, " Dost thou know whom I am? Thou sittest too near me, and sittest on my clothes." " No, sir," said the other, " I know not who or what you are." " I tell thee," quoth he, " I am a priest." " What, Sir, are you a parson or vicar, or some lady's chaplain?" asked Brown. " No, I am a soul priest, I sing for a soul," replied he. " Do you so, Sir," said Brown; " that is well done. I pray you, Sir, where find you the soul when you go to mass,?" " I cannot tell thee," said the priest. " I pray you, where do you leave it, Sir, when the mass is done?" asked Brown. " I cannot tell thee," said the priest. "You cannot tell me where you find it when you go to mass, nor where you leave it when the mass is done; how can you then save the soul?" inquired Brown. " Go thy ways," said the priest, " I perceive thou art a heretic, and I will be even with thee." And he kept his word, for at the landing, the priest taking with him Walter and William More, two gentlemen and brethren, rode straight to arch- bishop Warham. John Brown, within three days after, was sent for by the archbishop. The messengers came suddenly into his house on the same day on which his wife was churched, and just as he was bringing in a mess of pottage to the serving his guest: and laying hands upon him, they set him upon his own horse, and binding his feet under the belly of the beast, carried him away to Canterbury — neither he, nor his wife, nor any of his friends knowing whither they went — and there was kept the space of forty days. During this long captivity, when he was thought to be lost, the arch- bishop caused his bare feet to be set on hot burning coals, to make him deny his faith; which, notwithstanding, he would not do, but patiently abiding the pain, continued in the Lord's cause unshaken. At length, after this cruelty, he was, on Friday before Whitsunday, sent to Ashford, where he dwelt, the next day to be burned, his wife being all the time ignorant of what happened. However, just after he was brought to the town over night to be set in the stocks, it happened, as God would have it, that a young maid of his house came by, and seeing her master, ran home and told her mistress. Her consternation may be imagined, when coming to him, and finding him in the stocks, appointed to be burned the next morning: she sat by him all night long. To whom he of course declared the whole story, or rather tragedy, how he had been 480 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM, handled, and how his feet were burned to the bones by the archbishop of Canterbury and bishop of Rochester, that he could not set them upon the ground, and all to make him deny his Lord, which he would never do — " for should I deny him in this world," he said, " he would deny me hereafter: therefore, I pray thee, good Elizabeth, continue as thou hast begun, and bring up thy children virtuously in the fear of God. The next day, being Whitsun-eve, this godly martyr was burned. Standing at the stake, he uttered this prayer, lifting up his hands and eyes to heaven : — " I yield, O Lord, unto thy grace, O, let thy mercy crown my race. Let not the fiend my soul pursue, When death is near, and just in view ; But while by envious foes I'm driv'n, Save me from hell, and give me Heaven." William Tindall, or Tyndale, although he did not suffer in England, ought to be ranked with the martyrs of our country, of which, from his great zeal, perseverance, and dispersing of truth, he may properly be esteemed the apostle. Though he went to heaven from a foreign land, he came on earth in the land of the ancient Britons. He was born on the borders, of Wales, and brought up from a child in the university of Oxford, where, by long continuance, he grew and increased as well in knowledge of tongues and other liberal arts, as in the knowledge of the scriptures, whereunto his mind was singularly addicted; insomuch, that lying then in Magdalen-hall, he read privily to certain of the students and fellows of that college, some parcel of divinity; instructing them in the knowledge and truth of the scriptures; and all that knew him reputed and esteemed him to be a man of most virtuous disposition, and of unspotted life. Having remained some time at Oxford, he removed to the other university of Cambridge, where, after making great progress in his studies, he quitted, went to Gloucestershire, and engaged himself to a knight, named Welch, as tutor of his children. To this gentleman's hospitable table used to resort several abbots, deans, and other beneficed men, with whom Tindall used to converse and talk of learned men, particularly of Luther and Erasmus; examining also many questions relative to the scriptures. Being learned and practised in religion, he spared not to avow unto them simply his opinions; and if they objected to his reasonings, he would shew them the book, and lay plainly before them the open and manifest places of the scriptures, to confute their errors, and confirm his sayings. And thus continued they for a certain season, reasoning and contending together, till at length they became envious, and bore a secret grudge in their hearts against him. Not long after this it happened that certain of these great doctors invited Mr. Welch and his wife to a banquet, where they spoke to him without the fear of contradiction, uttering their blindness and ignorance. Then Welch and his wife coming home, and calling for Mr. Tindall, began to reason with him about those matters; when Tindall as usual, answered by scripture, maintained the truth, and reproved their false opinions. Then said the lady Welch, a stout and wise woman, " Well ACCUSATIONS AGAINST TINDALL. 481 there was such a doctor who spent a hundred, another two hundred, and another three hundred pounds : and were it reason, think you, that we should believe you before them?" Tindall gave her no answer at the time; and after that, because he saw it would not avail, he talked but little in those matters. However, he was about the translation of a book called Enchiridion militis Christiani, written by Erasmus, which, being finished, he delivered to his master and lady. After they had read and well perused the same, the doctorly prelates were not so often called to the house, neither had they the cheer and countenance when they came as before. This they well perceiving, and supposing that it came by the means of Tindall, refrained themselves, and at last utterly withdrew from the house. As this grew on, the priests of the country clustered together, and began to storm upon Tindall, railing against him in ale-houses, and other places. Tindall himself, in his prologue to the first book of Moses, testifieth, that he " suffered much in that country by a sort of unlearned priests, being rude and ignorant, as God knoweth; who have seen no more Latin than that only which they read in their portueses and missals ; which yet many of them can scarcely read, except it be Albertus,de secretis mulierum; in which yet, though they be never so sorrily learned, they pore day and night, and make notes therein, to assist the midwives, as they say ; and also another called Lindwood, a book of constitutions to gather tithes, mortuaries, offerings, customs, and other pillage, which they call not theirs, but God's part — the duty of holy church, to discharge their consciences withal. For they are bound that they shall not diminish but increase an things unto the uttermost of their powers, which pertain to holy church." Thus these blind and rude priests flocking together to the ale-house, their preaching-place, railed against him, affirming that his sayings were heresy ; adding, moreover, unto his sayings of their own heads, and so accused him secretly to the chancellor, and other of the bishop's officers. It followed not long after this, that there was a sitting of the bishop's chancellor appointed, and warning was given to the priests to appear against Tindall. Whether he had any misdoubt by their threatenings, or knowledge given him that they would lay some things to his charge, it is uncertain ; but certain it is that he doubted their privy accusations ; so that he, by the way, in going thitherwards, cried in his mind heartily to God, to give him strength to stand in the truth of his word. When the time came for his appearance before the chancellor, he threatened him grievously, reviling and rating at him as though he had been a dog, and laid to his charge many things whereof no accuser could be brought forth, notwithstanding the priests of the country were there present. And thus did Tindall escape out of their hands, and returned home. There dwelt not far off a certain doctor, named Mummuth, who had been formerly chancellor to a bishop, and who had been an old familiar acquaintance with Tindall, and favoured him well. Unto him Tindall went, and opened his mind upon divers questions of the Scripture : for to him he durst be bold to disclose his heart. After some discourse, the doctor said, "Do you not know that the pope is the very antichrist whom 2 i 482 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the Scripture speaketh of? but beware what you say; for if you be perceived of that opinion, it will cost you your life ; I have been an officer of his; but I have given it up, and defy him and all his works." Soon after, Tindall happened to be in company of a certain divine, accounted a learned man, and in communing and disputing with him, he drove him to that issue, that the great doctor burst out into these blasphemous words, " We were better to be without God's laws than the pope's/' Tindall hearing this, full of godly zeal, and not bearing that blasphemous saying, replied, " I defy the pope, and all his laws :" and added, that if God spared him life, ere many years, he would cause a boy that driveth the plough to know more of the Scripture than he did. The grudge of the priests now increased more against Tindall, they never ceased barking at him, and laid many things to his charge, say- ing that he was a heretic in sophistry, in logic, and in divinity ; more- over, that he bare himself boldly to the gentleman in that country ; but notwithstanding, shortly he should be otherwise talked withal. To whom Tindall said, that he was contented they should bring him into any county in England, giving him ten pounds a year to live with, and binding him to no more but to teach children, and to preach the gospel of Christ. At length being so molested and vexed by the priests, he was con- strained to leave that country, and to seek another place ; and coming to Mr. Welch, he requested his permission to depart, saying, " Sir, I perceive that I shall not be suffered to tarry long in this country, neither shall you be able, though you would, to keep me out of the hands of the spirituality ; and also what displeasure might grow thereby to you by keeping me, God knoweth, for the which I should be sorry." He accordingly departed, came up to London, and there preached awhile as he had done in the country before, and especially about the city of Bristol. At length bethinking himself of Tonstal, then bishop of London, and especially for his great commendation of Erasmus, who in his annotations so extolleth him for his learning, thus cast with himself, that if he might attain unto his service, he were a happy man. Coming to Sir Henry Gilford, the king's comptroller, and bringing with him an oration of Isocrates, which he had then translated from the Greek, he desired him to speak to the bishop for -him ; which he did, and willed him moreover to write to the bishop, and accompany him. Thus he did and delivered his epistle to a servant. But God, who secretly disposeth the order of things, saw that was not the best for Tindall's purpose, nor for the profit of his church, and therefore gave him to find little favour in the bishop's sight, who said, that his house was full, he had more than he could well find, and advised him to seek about in London, where he said he could lack no service. He therefore remained in London almost a year, marking with himself the course of the world, and espe- cially the demeanour of the preachers, how they boasted themselves, and set up their authority and kingdom ; also the pomp of the prelates, with other things more which greatly vexed him. Soon he understood, not only there to be no room in the bishop's house for him to translate the New Testament, but also no place to do it in all England. And TINDALL TRANSLATES THE BIBLE. 483 therefore, having some aid by God's providence from his friend Humphrey Mummuth, and other good men, he took his leave of the realm, and departed to Germany. There, being inflamed with a tender care and seal of his country, he studied how by all means possible to bring his countrymen to the same taste and understanding of God's holy word and verity, which the Lord had endued him withal. He perceived that the principal cause of the people's blindness, and of the gross errors of the church, with all their evils, was the scriptures being concealed in an unknown tongue, by which the truth was kept out of sight, and the corruptions of the priests remained undetected. No wonder therefore all their labour was with might and main to keep it down, so that either it should not be read at all, or if it were, they would darken the right sense with the mist of their sophistry, and so entangle those who rebuked or despised their abominations, with argu- ments of philosophy, worldly similitudes, apparent reasons of natural wisdom; and with wresting the Scripture unto their own purpose, that they would so delude, and amaze them, expounding it in many senses, laid before the unlearned lay people, that though they were sure that all were false, yet could none solve their subtle riddles. These and other considerations moved this good man, who was no doubt stirred up of God, to translate the scripture into his mother tongue, for the utility and profit of the simple people of the country. He first began with the New Testament, which he translated about the year 1527. After that he took in hand the old Testament, finishing the five books of Moses, with sundry learned and godly prefaces prefixed before every one, which he also did before the New Testament. Nor was he content with trans- lating scripture : he also wrote divers other works under sundry titles, amongst which was, " The obedience of a Christian man," wherein with singular dexterity he instructed all men in the office and duty of Chris- tian obedience, with several other treatises, as, "The wicked Mammon — The practice of prelates ;" with expositions upon certain parts of the Scripture, and other books also, answering Sir Thomas More and other adversaries of the truth. His books being compiled, published, and sent over to England, it is past description what a door of light they opened to the eyes of the whole nation, which before were many years shut up in darkness. At his first departure, he had taken his journey into the further parts of Germany, to Saxony, where he had conference with Luther, and other learned men in those quarters, whence, after he had continued a season, he came down into the Netherlands, and resided mostly in the town of Antwerp. His several publications, especially the New Testament, after they came into men's hands, wrought singular profit to the godly, while ungodly priests, envying and disdaining that the people should be wiser than they, and fearing lest by the shining beams of truth, their hypo- crisy and works of darkness should be discerned, took great offence; as at the birth of Christ, Herod and all Jerusalem were troubled with him. An accident befel our zealous and persevering martyr, which occasioned a considerable delay. Having finished- the five books of Moses, he set sail to Hamburgh intending to print them there. But, on his voyage, he was shipwrecked and lost all his manuscripts, with almost all he pos- 484 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. sessed. He, however, in another vessel, pursued his voyage, and arriv- ing at Hamburgh, where at his appointment, Mr. Coverdale tarried for him, and helped him in translating the whole five books of Moses, from Easter till December, in the house of Miss Margaret Van Emmerson, anno 1529. Having dispatched his business, he returned to Antwerp again. When God's will was that the New Testament in the common tongue should come abroad, Tindall added at the end a letter, wherein he desired the learned to amend ought they found amiss. But the fathers of the clergy, not willing to have that book to prosper, cried out against it, that there were a thousand heresies in it, and that it was not to be corrected, but utterly suppressed. Some said it was impossible to trans- late the Scripture into English; others, that it was not lawful for the laity to have it in their mother-tongue ; some that it would make them all heretics. To induce the temporal rulers also unto their purpose, they said that it would make the people rebel and rise against the king. All this Tindall himself declared, shewing moreover its truth ; while they scanned and examined every tittle and point in the translation so narrowly, that there was not one letter therein, but if it lacked a perfect form, they did note it, and numbered it unto the ignorant people for a heresy. So great were then the forward devices of the English clergy, to drive the people from the text and knowledge of the Scripture, which they would neither translate themselves, nor yet suffer it to be translated by others. The bishops and prelates of the realm, thus incensed and inflamed in their minds, and conspiring together with their councils, how to repeal the cause of their alarm, never rested till they had brought the king at last to their consent. By reason whereof, a proclamation in all haste was devised and set forth under public authority, but no just reason shewed, that the Testament of Tindall's translation, with other works both of his and of other writers, were prohibited and denounced. This was about the year 1527. Not contented herewith, they proceeded fur- ther, how to entangle him in their nets, and to bereave him of his life. The means they employed to ensnare him were these. In the registers of London it appeareth that the bishops and Sir Thomas More brought several poor men to be examined before them, namely, such as had been at Antwerp : most studiously would they search and examine all things belonging to Tindall, where and with whom he hosted, where stood the house, what was his stature, in what apparel he went, what resort he had. All these things when they had diligently learned, as appeared by the examination of Simon Smith and others, then began they to work their works of darkness. Tindall being in the city of Antwerp, had lodged about a year in the house of Thomas Pointz, an Englishman, who kept there an hostel of Eng- lish merchants, when there arrived thither out of England, Henry Philips, his father being customer of Pool, a comely fellow, and in appearance a gentleman, having a servant with him ; but wherefore he came, or for what purpose he was sent thither, no man could tell, unless it was for the work of darkness already mentioned. Tindall was frequently invited to dinner and supper amongst merchants; by the means whereof TREACHERY OF PHILIPS. 485 this Henry Philips became acquainted with him, so that in a short space Tindall conceived a great friendship and confidence for him, brought him to his lodging to the house of Thomas Pointz, had him once or twice to dinner and supper, and further entered into such friendship with him, that through his interest he lodged in the house of Pointz. He also shewed him his books and other secrets of his study, so little did Tindall then mistrust this traitor. Pointz having no great confidence in the fellow, asked Tindall how he came acquainted with him, who answered, that he was an honest man, tolerably learned, and very agreeable. Pointz, perceiving that he bare such favour to him, said no more, thinking that he was brought ac- quainted with him by some friend of his. Philips being in the city three or four days upon a time, desired Pointz to walk with him forth of the town to shew him the commodities thereof; and in walking together without the town, had communication of divers things, and some of the king's affairs ; by which talk Pointz as yet suspected nothing, but by the sequel he perceived more what he intended. In the mean time he learned, that he bare no great favour either to the setting forth of any good thing, or to the proceedings of the king of England, and perceived about him a deal of mystery, and a sort of courting him to make him subservient to his design, by the hopes of reward, he always appearing very full of money: but Pointz kept at a distance from all bribery. So Philips went from Antwerp to the court of Brussels, which is from thence twenty-four English miles, the king having there no am- bassador ; for at that time the king of England and the emperor were at a controversy, for the question betwixt Henry and the lady Katharine. Philips, as a traitor both against God and the king, was there the better retained, as also other traitors more besides him ; and after he had betrayed Mr. Tindall into their hands, shewed himself likewise against the king's own person. To make short, the said Philips did so much there, that he procured to bring from thence with him to Antwerp, that procurator-general, who is the emperor's attorney, with certain other officers; which was not done with small charges and expenses, from whom- soever it came. Sometime after, Pointz sitting at his door, Philips' servant came unto him, and asked whether Mr. Tindall were there, and said, his master would come to him, and so departed. Whether his master Philips were in the town or not, it was not known ; but at that time Pointz heard no more, neither of the master nor of the man. Within three or four days after, Pointz went on business to the town of Barrow, eighteen English miles from Antwerp, and in his absence Philips came again to Antwerp to the house of "Pointz, and coming in, spake with his wife, asking her for Mr. Tindall, and whether he would dine there with him, saying, 11 What good meat shall we have?" She answered," Such as the market will give." Then went he forth as though he would purchase food, and set the officers which he brought with him from Brussels in the street and about the door. About noon he returned, went to Mr. Tindall, and desired him to lend him forty shillings ; for, said he, I lost my purse this morning, coming over at the passage between this and Mechlin. Tindall took him forty shillings, the which was easy to be had of him, if 486 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. he had it, for in the wily subtilties of this world he was simple and unexpert. Then said Philips, " Mr. Tindall, you shall be my guest hereto-day." " No," said Tindall, " I am engaged this day to dinner, and you shall go with me, and be my guest, where you shall be welcome." So when it was dinner time they went. At the going out of Pointz' house, was a long narrow entry, so that two could not go in front. Tindall would have put Philips before him, but Philips would in no wise, but insisted on Tindall's going before. So Tindall, being a man of no great stature, went before, and Philips a tall and comely person, followed behind him. He had set officers on either side of the door upon two seats, who might see who came in the entry ; and on coming through, Philips pointed with his finger over Tindall's head down to him, that the officers which sate at the door might see that it was he whom they should take, as the officers themselves afterwards told Pointz, and said, that when they had laid him in prison, they pitied his simplicity when they took him. Then they seized him and brought him to the emperor's procurator-general, where he dined. Then came the procurator-general to the house of Pointz and sent away all that was there of Mr. Tindall's, as well his books as other things, and from thence Tindall was had to the castle of Filford, eighteen miles from Antwerp, where he remained until he was put to death. By the help of English merchants, letters were sent in favour of Tin- dall to the court of Brussels. Also, not long after, letters were directed from England to the council at Brussels, and sent to the merchant adventurers to Antwerp, commanding them to see that with speed they should be delivered. Then such of the chief of the merchants as were there at that time, being called together, required Pointz to take in hand the delivery of those letters, with letters also from them in favour of Tindall to the lord of Barrois and others. This lord, as it was told Pointz by the way, at that time had parted from Brussels, as the chief conductor of the eldest daughter of the king of Denmark, to be married to the palesgrave, whose mother was sister to the emperor, she being chief princess of Denmark. After he heard of his departure, he rode the same way, and overtook him at Achon, where he delivered to him his letters. When he had received and read them, he made no direct answer, but somewhat objecting, said — There were of their countrymen who had been burned in England not long before ; as indeed there were Anabaptists burned in Smithfield : and so Pointz said to him, " Howbeit, whatsoever the crime was, if his lordship or any other nobleman had written, requiring to have had them, he thought they should not have been denied." " Well," said he, " I have no leisure to write, for the prirfcess is ready to ride." Then said Pointz, " If it please your lordship, I will attend upon you unto the next baiting place," which was at Maestricht. " If you will," said the lord, " I will advise myself by the way what to write." Upon this, Pointz followed him from Achon to Maestricht, which are fifteen English miles asunder; and there he received letters of him, one to the council there, another to the company of the merchant adventurers, and another also to the lord Cromwell in England. So Pointz rode from thence to Brussels, and then and there delivered ACCUSATIONS AGAINST POINTZ. 487 to the council the letters from England, with the lord of Barrow's letters also, and received answers from England of the same by letters, which he brought to Antwerp to the English merchants, who required him to go with them into England. He very desirous to have Mr. Tindall out of prison, forbore no pains, nor regarded the loss of time in his own business, but diligently followed with the said letters, which he there delivered to the council, and was commanded to wait until he had others, of which he was not dispatched thence till a month after. At length the letters being delivered him, he returned again, and delivered them to the emperor's council at Brussels, and there tarried for answer of the same. After he had impatiently and fearfully remained three or four days, he was told by one that belonged to the chancery, that Tindall should have been delivered to him according to the tenor of the letters; but Philips being there, followed the suit against Tindall, and hearing that he should be delivered to Pointz, and doubting lest he should be put from his purpose, he knew no other remedy but to accuse Pointz, saying, that he was a dweller in the town of Antwerp, and had been a succourer of Tindall, and was one of the same opinion ; and that all this was only his own labour and suit, to have Master Tindall at liberty, and no man's else Thus upon his information and accusation, Pointz was attached by the procurator-general, the emperor's attorney, delivered to the keeping of two sergeants at arms; and the same evening was sent to him one of the chancery, with the procurator-general, who ministered an oath, that he should truly make answer to all such things as should be in- quired of him, thinking they would have no other examinations of him but of his own message. The next day they came again, and had him in examination, and so five or six days successively, upon more than an hundred articles, as well of the king's affairs as of the messages con- cerning Tindall, of his aiders and his religion. Out of these examina- tions, the procurator-general drew twenty-three or four articles, and de- clared the same against Pointz, the copy whereof he delivered to him to make answer thereunto, and permitted him to have an advocate and proctor in the law for his defence; and order was taken, that eight days after he should deliver unto them his answer, and from eight days to eight days to proceed till the process was ended. Also that he should send no messenger to Antwerp, where his house was, although only twenty-four English miles from Brussels, where he was now a prisoner; nor to any other place but by the post of Brussels ; nor to send any letters, nor any to be delivered to him, but such as were written in Dutch ; and the procurator-general, who was party against him, was to read them and ex- amine them thoroughly, contrary to all right and equity, before they were sent or delivered. Neither might any be suffered to speak or talk with him in any other tongue or language, except only in the Dutch tongue so that his keepers who were Dutchmen, might understand what the contents of letters or talk should be. Saving that at one certain time the provincial of the white friars came to dinner where Pointz was pri- soner, and brought with him a young novice, being an Englishman, whom the provincial after dinner, of his own accord bid to talk with Pointz, and so with him he was licensed to converse. The purpose 488 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. and great policy of this was easy to be perceived. Between Pointz and the novice was much talk, as of Sir Thomas More, and of the bishop of Rochester. After this Pointz delivered up his answer to the procurator- general, and then at the days appointed he went forth with whatever he could gather as evidence against him. When the commissioners came to Pointz, Philips the traitor accom- panied them to the door in following the process against him, as he had also done against Tindall, for so they that had Pointz in keeping shewed him. Thus Pointz was greatly troubled for his friend, and long kept in prison ; but at length, when he saw no other remedy, by night he made his escape, and avoided their hands. Tindall however could not so escape, but remained in prison, and being brought unto his answer, was offered to have an advocate and a proctor ; for in any criminal cause there, it is permitted to have council, to make answer in the law. Ye he refused to have any such, saying, — that he would answer for himself; and so he did. Still nothing that he could say served him ; and at last, after much reasoning, when no reason would avail, although he deserved no death, he was condemned by virtue of the emperor's decree, made in the assembly at Augsburgh, and upon that vile statute brought forth to the place of execution, where he was tied to the stake, and strangled first by the hangman, and afterwards burnt. His martyrdom was at the town of Filford, anno 1536. As he stood firmly amidst the wood, with the executioner at his side ready to strangle him, he lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said in a loud and fervent manner — " Lord, open the eyes of the king of England!" Such was the power of his doctrine, and sincerity of the life of this most amiable man and glorious martyr, that during his imprisonment, which was a year and a half, it is said he converted the keeper, his daughter, and other of his household. Also the prisoners that were with him conversant in the castle reported of him, that if he were not a good Christian, they could not tell whom to trust. Even the procurator- general being there, left his testimony of him, that he was a most learned, good, and godly man. An instance this remarkably resembling that of the Centurion who said of Christ, watching his crucifixion — "Cer- tainly this was a righteous man." It was reported of Philips who be- trayed him, that he fell a victim to a loathsome disease, being consumed by vermin that preyed upon his body. To enumerate the virtues and actions of this blessed martyr would re- quire much time and many pages. Suffice it to say, that he was one of those who, by his works, shone as a light amidst a dark world, and gave evidence that he had been called and commissioned to bring others to glory, honour, immortality, and eternal life. 489 BOOK X. CONTAINING THE ACTS AND THINGS DONE IN THE REIGN OF KING EDWARD THE SIXTH. Edward was the only son of Henry the Eighth, by his wife Jane Sey- mour, who died the second day after his birth. He was born on the twelfth of October 1537, and came to the throne in 1547, being but ten years old. At six years of age, he was placed under Dr. Coxe and Mr. Cheek : the one was to form his mind, and teach him philosophy and divinity ; the other to teach him languages and mathematics. Masters were also appointed for the other parts of his education. He discovered very early a good disposition to religion and virtue, and a particular rever- ence for the scriptures. As a striking proof of the latter, he was once greatly offended with a person, who in order to reach something hastily, laid a Bible on the floor to stand upon. He made great progress in learning, and at the age of eight years wrote Latin letters frequently to the king, to queen Katherine Parr, to the archbishop of Canterbury, and his uncle the earl of Hertford. On his father's decease, the latter nobleman and Sir Anthony Brown were sent to bring him to the Tower of London: and when Henry's death was published, Edward was pro- claimed king. On his coming to the Tower, his father's will was opened, by which it was found that he had named sixteen to be the governors of the king- dom, and of his son's person till he should be eighteen years of age. These were the archbishop of Canterbury, the lord Wriothesly, lord chancellor, the lord St. John, great master, the lord Russel, lord privy seal, the earl of Hertford, lord great chamberlain, viscount Lisle, lord admiral, Tonstal bishop of Durham, Sir Anthony Brown, master of the horse, Sir Willi'am Paget, secretary of state, Sir Edward North, chan- cellor of the augmentations, Sir Edward Montague, lord chief justice of the common pleas, judge Bromley, Sir Anthony Denny, and Sir William Herbert, chief gentlemen of the privy chamber, Sir Edward Wotton, treasurer of Calais, and Dr. Wotton, dean of Canterbury and York. They were also to give the king's sisters in marriage; who, if they mar- ried without their consent, were to forfeit their right of succession : for the king was empowered by act of parliament to leave the crown to them with what limitations he should think fit to appoint. There was also a privy council named to be their assistants in the government; if any of the sixteen died, the survivors were to continue in the adminis- tration, without a power to substitute others in their room. It was also proposed that one should be chosen out of the sixteen to whom ambassadors should address themselves, and who should have the chief direction of affairs; but should be restrained to do every thing by consent of the greater part of the other co-executors. The chancellor, who thought the precedence fell to him by his office, since the arch- bishop did not meddle much in secular affairs, opposed this, and said, " It is a change of the king's will; who has made us all equal in power 490 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. and dignity; and if any are raised above the rest in title, it will not be possible to keep him within due bounds, since great titles make way for high power." Notwithstanding this, the earl of Hertford was de- clared governor of the king's person, and protector of the kingdom; with this restriction, that he should do nothing but by advice and con- sent of the rest. Upon this advancement and the opposition made to it, two parties were formed, the one headed by the protector, and the other by the chancellor : the favourers of the reformation were of the former, and those that opposed it of the latter. The chancellor was ordered to renew the commissions of the judges and justices of peace, and king Henry's great seal was to be made use of till a new one should be made. The day after this, all the executors took oaths to execute their trust faithfully ; the privy counsellors were also brought into the king's presence, who all expressed their satisfaction in the choice of the protector: and it was ordered that all dispatches to foreign princes should be signed only by him. All that held offices were required to come and renew their commissions, and to swear allegiance to the king. Among the rest came the bishops, and took out such commissions as were granted in the former reign, by which they became subaltern to the king's vicegerent: but there being no one now in that office, they were immediately subaltern to the king. By these commissions they were to hold their bishoprics only during the king's pleasure, and were empowered in the king's name, as his delegates, to perform all parts of the episcopal function. Cranmer set an example to the rest in taking out such a commission. This check upon the bishops was judged ex- pedient in case they should become refractory in point of religion; but the ill-consequences of such an unlimited power being well foreseen, the bishops, who were afterwards promoted, were not so fettered, but were permitted to hold their bishoprics during life. The grant of so many ecclesiastical dignities to the eail of Hertford, was no extraordinary thing at that time, for as Cromwell had been dean of Wells, so divers other laymen were promoted to them; which was thus excused, because there was no cure of souls belonging to them; and during vacancies, even in times of popery, the king had by his own authority, by the right of the Regale, given institution to them, so that they seemed to be no spiritual employments, and the ecclesiastics that enjoyed them, were generally a lazy and sensual sort of men, An accident soon fell out, that made way for great changes in the church. The curate and churchwardens of St. Martin's in London were brought before the council for removing the crucifix and other images, and putting some texts of Scripture on the walls of their church. They answered, that they going to repair their church, had removed the images, which being rotten, they did not renew, but put words of Scrip- ture in their room: they had also removed others, which they found had been abused to idolatry. Great pains was taken by the popish party to punish them severely, in order to strike a terror into others ; • but Cranmer was for removing all images set up in churches, as expressly contrary both to the second commandment, and the practice of Chris- tians in the earliest and purest ages : and though in compliance with the gross abuses of paganism, there was very early much of the pomp GARDINER'S SUPERSTITIOUS ARGUMENTS. 491 of their worship brought into the Christian church, yet it was long before any images were introduced. At first all were condemned by the fathers: then they allowed the use, but condemned the worship of them; and afterwards in the eighth and ninth centuries, the worship of them was, after a long contest both in the East and West, both approved and condemned. Finally they were however approved, and generally adopted. Some, in particular, were believed to be most wonderfully enchanted, and this was much improved by the cheats of the monks, who enriched themselves by such means. It was grown to such a height, that heathenism itself had not been guilty of greater absurdities towards its idols; and the singular virtues in some images shewed they were not worshipped only as representations, for then all should have equal degrees of veneration paid to them. Since these abuses had risen merely out of the use of them, and setting them up being contrary to the command of God, and the nature of the Christian religion, which is simple and spiritual, it seemed most reasonable to cure the disease in its root, and to clear the churches of them all, that the people might be preserved from idolatry. These reasons prevailed so far, that the curate and wardens were dis- missed with a reprimand ; they were required to beware of such rashness for the future, and to provide a crucifix, and till that could be had, were ordered to cause one to be painted on the wall. Upon this, Dr. Ridley, in a sermon preached before the king, inveighed against the superstition towards images and holy water, and spread over the whole nation a general disposition to pull them down; which soon after commenced in Portsmouth. Upon this, Gardiner made great complaints, and said the Lutherans themselves went not so far, for he had seen images in their churches. He distinguished between image and idol, as if the one, which he said was only condemned, was the representation of a false God, and the other of the true; and he thought, that as words con- veyed through the ear begat devotion, so images, by conveyance through the eye, might have the same effect on the mind. He also thought a virtue might be both in them and in holy water, as well as there was in Christ's garments, Peter's shadow, or Elijah's staff: and there might be a virtue in holy water as in the water of baptism. But to these argu- ments which Gardiner wrote in several letters, the protector answered, that the bishops had formerly argued in another strain, namely, that because the scriptures were abused by the vulgar readers, therefore they were not to be trusted to them; and so made' a pretended abuse the ground of taking away, that which by God's special appointment, was to be delivered to all Christians. This held much stronger against images forbidden by God. The brazen serpent set up by Moses, by God's own directions was broken when abused to idolatry; for that was the greatest corruption of religion possible. Yet the protector acknow- ledged he had reason to complain of the forwardness of the people, who broke down images without authority: to prevent which, in future, orders were sent to the justices to look well to the peace and govern- ment of the nation, to meet often, and every six weeks to advertise the protector of the state of the country to which they belonged. The funeral of the deceased king was performed with the ordinary 492 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. ceremonies at Windsor. He had left six hundred pounds a year to the church of Windsor, for priests to say mass for his soul every day, and for four obiits a year, and sermons, and the distributions of alms at every one of them, and for a sermon every Sunday, and a maintenance for thirteen poor knights, which was settled upon that church by his executors in due form of law. Obiit was the anniversary of a person's death, and to observe such a day with prayers, alms, or other comme- moration, was termed keeping of the obiit. The chantries mentioned in this work were little churches, chapels, or particular altars, endowed with lands, or other revenues for the maintenance of one or more priests, to sing mass daily, and to perform divine service for the souls of the founders and such others as they appointed. The pomps of these endowments in a more inquisitive age, led people to examine the usefulness of soul-masses and obiits. Christ appointed the sacrament for a commemoration of his death among the living, but it was not easy to conceive how that was to be applied to departed souls. For all the good that they could receive, seemed only applicable to the prayers for them ; but bare prayers would not have wrought so much on the people, nor would they have paid so dear for them. It was a clear project for drawing the wealth of the world into the hands of the priests. In the primitive church there was a commemoration of the death, or an honourable remembrance, made in the daily offices; and for some very small faults names were not mentioned, which would not have been done if they had looked upon that as a thing that was really a relief to them in another state. But even this custom grew into abuse, and some inferred from it, that departed souls, unless they were signally pure, passed through a purgation in the next life, before they were admitted to Heaven; of which St. Austin, in whose time the opinion began to be received, says, that it was taken up without any sure ground in scripture. But what was wanting in scripture-proof was supplied by visions, dreams, and fables, till it was generally re- ceived. King Henry had acted like one who did not believe it, for he could expect no good usage in purgatory from those innumerable souls whom he had deprived of the masses that were to be said for them in monasteries, by destroying those foundations. Yet it seems even he intended to make sure work for himself, so that if masses could avail departed souls, he resolved to be secure ; and as he gratified the priests by this part of his endowment, so he pleased the people by appointing sermons and alms to be given on such days. Thus he died as he had lived, wavering between the two persuasions: and it occasioned no small debate, when men sought to find out what his opinions were in the controverted points of religion. But now the diversions of the coronation took them off from more serious thoughts. The protector was made duke of Somerset, the earl of Essex marquis of Northampton, the lords Lisle and Wriothesley earls of Warwick and Southampton; while Seymour, Rich, Willoughby, and Sheffield, were made barons. In order to the king's coronation, the office for that ceremony was reviewed, and much shortened : one remarkable alteration was, that whereas formerly the king used to be presented to the people at the corners of the scaffold, and they were asked if they would have DIVISIONS IN ENGLAND. 493 him to be their king, now their assent and good will were taken for granted. The former looked like a rite of an election, rather than a ceremony of investing one that was already king. This was therefore changed, and the people were desired only to give the duty of allegiance they were bound to do. On the twentieth of February, Edward was crowned, and a general pardon was proclaimed, out of which the duke of Norfolk, cardinal Pole, and some others were shamefully excepted. The lord chancellor, who was looked on as the head of the popish party, now lost his place by granting a commission to the master of the rolls and three masters of chancery, of these two were civilians, to execute his office in the court of chancery as if he were present, only their decrees were to be brought to him to be signed before they could be enrolled. The first business of consequence that required great consideration, was the Smalcaldic war, then begun between the emperor and the princes of that league ; the effects of which, if the emperor prevailed, were likely to be, not only the abolition of Lutheranism, but his being the absolute master of Germany; which the emperor ambitiously sought after, in order to a universal monarchy, but disguised it to other princes. To the pope he pretended that his design was only to extirpate heresy ; to other princes he pretended it was only to repress some rebels, while he denied all design of suppressing their new doctrines ; which he managed so artfully, that he even divided Germany itself, and got some Lutheran princes to declare for him, and others to be neutrals. Having obtained a liberal supply for his wars with France and the Turks, for which he granted an edict for liberty of religion, he made peace with both these powers, and resolved to employ that treasure which the Ger- mans had given him against themselves. That he might deprive them of their chief allies, he had used means to engage king Henry and Francis the First in a war ; but that was now in a measure composed ; for as Henry died in January, so Francis followed him into another world in March following. Many of their confederates began to capitulate ; and the divided command of the duke of Saxe, and the landgrave of Hesse, lost them great advantages the former year ; in which it had been easy to have driven the emperor out of Germany ; but often it happened that when the one was for engaging, the other was against it ; which made many very doubtful of their success. The pope had a mind to engage the emperor in a war in Germany, that so Italy might be at quiet : and in order to that, and to embroil him with all the Lutherans, he published his treaty so that it might appear that the design of the war was to extirpate heresy ; though the emperor was making great protestations to the contrary at home. He also opened the council at Trent, which the emperor had long desired in vain ; but it was now brought upon him when he least wished for it ; for the pro- testants all declared, that they could not look upon it as a free general council, since it was so entirely at the pope's command that not so much as a reformation of some of the grossest abuses that could not be justified, was like to be obtained, unless clogged with such clauses as made it ineffectual. Nor could the emperor prevail with the council not to proceed to condemn heresy : but the more he obstructed that by 494 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. delays, the more did the pope drive it on to open the eyes of the Germans, and engage them vigorously against the emperor : yet he gave them such secret assurances of tolerating the Augsburgh confes- sion, that the marquis of Brandenburgh declared for him. This event, joined with the hopes of the electorate, drew in Maurice of Saxe. The count Palatine was old and feeble; the archbishop of Cologne would not make resistance, but retired, being condemned both by pope and emperor; while many of the cities submitted. And Maurice, by falling into Saxe, forced the elector to separate from the landgrave, and return to the defence of his own dominions. This was the state of the affairs in Germany : so that it was a hard point to resolve on what answer the protector should give the duke of Saxe's chancellor, whom he sent over to obtain an aid in money for carrying on the war. It was, on the one hand, of great importance to the safety of England to preserve the German princes, and yet it was very dangerous to begin a war of such consequence, under an infant king. At present they promised, within three months, to send by the merchants 50,000 crowns to Hamburgh, and resolved to do no more till new emergencies should lead them to new councils. The nation was in an ill condition for a war with such a mighty prince, labouring under great distractions at home: moreover the people generally cried out for a reformation, despised the clergy, and loved the new preachers. The priests were, for the most part, both very ignorant and immoral : many of them had been monks, and those who had to pay them the pensions which were reserved to them at the destruction of the monasteries, till they should be provided, took care to get them into some small benefice. The greatest part of the par- sonages were impropriated, for they belonged to the monasteries, and the abbots had only granted the incumbents either the vicarage, or some small donative, and left them the perquisites raised by masses and other offices. At the suppression of those houses there was no care taken to provide the incumbents better ; so that they chiefly subsisted by trentals and other devices, which brought them in some small relief, though the price of them was very low, for masses went often at half a groat, and a groat was a great bounty. Now these persons saw that a reformation of abuses took the bread out of their mouths ; therefore their interests prevailing more than any thing else, they were zealous against all changes : yet that same prin- ciple made them comply with every change which was made, rather than lose their benefices. Their poverty made them run into another abuse, that of holding more benefices than one at a time, a corruption of so crying and scandalous a nature, that wherever it is practised it is suffi- cient to possess the people with great prejudices against the church which is guilty of it : there being nothing more contrary to the plainest impressions of reason than that every man who undertakes a cure of souls, whom at his ordination he has vowed to instruct, feed, and govern, ought to discharge that trust himself as the greatest and most important of all others. The clergy were encouraged in their opposition to all changes, by the protection they expected from Gardiner, Bonner, and Tonstal, men of great .reputation and in power: above all, the lady VISITATION OF THE CHURCHES. 495 Mary openly declared against all changes till the king- should be of age. On the other hand, Cranmer resolved to proceed more vigorously : the protector was firmly united to him, as were the young king's tutors. Edward himself was as much engaged as could be expected from so young a person ; for both his knowledge and zeal for true religion were above his age. Several of the bishops also declared for a reformation; but Dr. Ridley, now bishop of Rochester, was the person on whom he most depended. Latimer remained with him at Lambeth, and did great service by his sermons, which were very popular ; but he would not return to his bishopric, choosing rather to serve the church in a more disengaged manner. Many of the bishops were very ignorant and poor spirited men, raised merely by court favour, and little concerned for any thing but their revenues. Cranmer resolved to proceed by degrees, and to state the reasons of every advance so fully, that he hoped, by the blessing of God, to possess the nation of the fitness of what they should do, and thereby prevent any dangerous opposition that might otherwise be apprehended. The power of the privy council had been much exalted in Henry's time, by act of parliament ; and one proviso in it was, that the king's council should have the same authority when he was under age that he himself had at full age : it was, therefore, resolved to begin with a gene- ral visitation of all England, which was divided into six precincts : and two gentlemen, a civilian, a divine, and a register, were appointed for each visit. But before they were sent out, a letter was written to all the bishops, giving them notice of it, suspending their jurisdiction while it lasted, and requiring them to preach nowhere but in their cathedrals ; and the other clergy should not preach but in their own churches, with- out licence : by this it was intended to restrain such as were not accept- able to their own parishes, and to grant others the licences to preach in any church of England. The greatest difficulty the reformers found, was in the want of able and prudent men, most of whom were too hot and indiscreet; while the few who were eminent, were required in London and the universities. These they intended to make as useful as possible, and appointed them to preach as itinerants and visitors. The only thing by which the people could be universally instructed, was a book of homilies: therefore, the twelve first homilies in the book, still known by that name, were compiled, in framing which the chief design was to acquaint the people aright with the nature of the gospel-covenant. The people were taught to depend on the sufferings of Christ, and to lead their lives according to the rules of the gospel. Orders were also given, that a Bible should be in every church, which though it had been commanded by Henry, yet had not been generally obeyed ; and for understanding the New Testament, Erasmus's paraphrase was translated into English, and appointed to be set up in every church. His great reputation and learning, and his dying in the communion of the Roman church, made this book to be preferable to any other, since there lay no prejudice to Erasmus, which would have been objected to in any other author. They renewed also all the injunctions made by Cromwell in the former reign, which, after his fall, were but little looked afl r, as those for instructing the people, for Removing images, and 496 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. putting down all other customs abused to superstition ; for reading the scriptures, saying the litany in English, frequent sermons and catechising, the exemplary lives of the clergy, their labours in visiting the sick, and other parts of their function, such as reconciling differences, and exhort- ing the people to charity. All who gave livings by simoniacal bargains, were declared to have forfeited their right of patronage to the king. A great charge was also given for the strict observation of the Lord's day, which was appointed to be spent wholly in the service of God, it not being enough to hear mass in the morning, and spend the rest of the day in drunkenness and revelling, as was commonly practised ; but it ought to be all employed, either in the duties of religion, or in acts of charity. Direction was also given for the bidding of prayers, in which the king as supreme head, the queen and the king's sisters, the protector and council, and all orders of the kingdom were to be men- tioned. There were also injunctions given for the bishops to preach four times a year in all their dioceses, once in their cathedral, and thrice in any other church, unless they had a good excuse to the contrary : that their chaplains should preach often : and that they should ordain none but such as were duly qualified. These excellent rules were variously censured. The clergy were only empowered to remove the abused images, and the people were restrained from doing it; but this authority being put in their hands, it was thought they would be slow and backward in it. The corruptions of lay-patrons and simoniacal priests had been often complained of, but no laws nor provisions were ever able to preserve the church from this great mischief: which can never be removed till patrons look on their right to nominate a man to the charge of souls, as a trust for which they are to render a severe account to God; and till priests are cured of aspiring to that charge, and look on it with dread and great caution. The prayer for departed souls was now moderated, to be a prayer only for the consum 7 mation of their happiness at the last day ; whereas in king Henry's time they prayed that God would grant them release from all sin, which implied a purgatory. The visitors at length ended the visitation, and had been every where submitted to. In London, and every part of England, the images, for refusing to bow down to which many a saint had been burnt, were now committed to the flames. Bonner at first protested that he would obey the injunctions, if they were not contrary to the laws of God and the ordinances of the church : but being called before the council, he retracted that, and asked pardon ; yet, for giving terror to others, he was for some time put in prison. Gardiner wrote to one of the visitors, before they came to Winchester, that he could not receive the homilies; and if he must either quit his bishopric, or sin against his conscience, he resolved to chose the former. Upon this he was called before the council, and required to receive the book of homilies : but he objected to one of them, which taught that charity did not justify, contrary to the book set out by the late king and confirmed in parliament. He also complained of many things in Erasmus's paraphrase ; and being pressed to declare whether he would obey the injunctions or not, he refused to promise it, and was inconsequence sent to the Fleet. Cranmer treated ACT CONCERNING THE SACRAMENT. 497 in private with him, and they argued much about justification. Gar- diner thought the sacraments justified, and that charity justified as well as faith. Cranmer urged, that nothing- but the merits of Christ justified, as they were applied by faith, which could not exist without charity. Nothing could be more correct than this: for what is faith but the love of God shed abroad in the heart — filling the believer with benevolence, and the desire of imparting the happiness he feels to all around him? Gardiner lay in prison till the act of general pardon, passed in par- liament, set him at liberty. Many blamed the severity of these pro ceedin^s, as contrary both to law and equity, and said, that all people, even those who complained most of arbitrary power, were apt to usurp it when in authority. Lady Mary was so alarmed at these proceedings, that she wrote to the protector, that such changes were contrary to the honour due to her father's memory, and it was against their duty to the king to enter upon such points, and endanger the public peace before he was of age. To which he answered, that her father had died before he could finish the good things he had intended concerning religion; and had expressed his regret both before himself and many others, that he left things in so unsettled a state: moreover he assured her, that nothing should be done but what would turn to the glory of God, and the king's honour and happiness. Parliament was opened the 4th of November, and the protector was by patent authorized to sit under the cloth of state, on the right hand of the throne; and to have all the honours and privileges that any uncle of the crown ever had. Rich was made lord chancellor. The first act that passed, five bishops only dissenting, was, " A repeal of all statutes that had made any thing treason or felony in the late reign, which was not so before, and of the six articles, and the authority given to the king's proclamations, as also of the acts against Lollards. All who denied the king's supremacy, or asserted the pope's, for the first offence are to forfeit their goods, for the second are to be in a premunire, and to be attainted of treason for the third. But if any intend to deprive the king of his estate or title, that is made treason : none are to be accused of words but within a month after they were spoken." Par- liament also repealed the power that the king had of annulling all laws made, till he was twenty-four years of age, and restrained it onlv to annulling them for the time to come, but that it should not be of force for the declaring them null from the beginning. Another act passed, with the same dissent, for the laity receiving the sacrament in both kinds and that the people should always communi- cate with the priest; and by it irreverence to the sacrament was con- demned under severe penalties. Christ had clearly instituted the sacrament in both kinds, and St. Paul mentions both. In the primitive church that custom was universally observed, but upon the belief of transubstantiation, the reserving and carrying about the sacrament were brought in: this made them first endeavour to persuade the world, that the cup was not necessary, for wine could neither keep, nor be carried about conveniently. It was done away by degrees, the bread was for some time given dipped in the wine, as it is yet in the Greek church : but it being believed that Christ was entire under either kind, the 9 K 498 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. council of Constance entirely took the cup from the laity; while the Bohemians could not be brought to submit to the loss. The abuse being now clearly seen, the use of the cup was, in every part, one of the first things insisted on by those who demanded a reformation. At first all who were present communicated, and censures were passed on such as did it not: none were denied the sacrament but penitents, a who were made to withdraw during the action. But as the devotion of the world slackened, the people were still exhorted to continue their oblations, and come to the sacrament, though they did not receive it; and were made to believe, that the priests received it in their stead. The name sacrifice given to it, as being a holy oblation, was so far improved, that the world came to look on the priests officiating, as a sacrifice for the dead and living: hence followed an infinite variety of masses for all the accidents of human life; and that was the chief part of the priests' trade, and occasioned many unseemly jests con- cerning it, which were now restrained by the act that stopped the cause. Another act passed without any dissent, that the conge d'elire, and the election pursuant to it, being but a shadow, since the person was named by the king, should cease for the future, and that bishops should be named by the king's letters patent, and thereupon be consecrated; and should hold their courts in the king's name, and not in their own, excepting only the archbishop of Canterbury's court: and they were to use the king's seal in all their writings, except in presentations, colla- tions, and letters of orders, in which they might use their own seals. The apostles chose bishops and pastors, by an extraordinary gift of discerning spirits, and proposed them to the approbation of the people; yet they left no rules to make that necessary in future. In times of persecution, the clergy being maintained by the oblations of the people, they were chosen by them. But when the emperors became Christian, the town-councils and eminent men took the elections out of the hands of the rabble: and the tumults in popular elections were such, that it was necessary to regulate them. In some places the clergy, and in others the bishops of the province made the choice. The emperors reserved the confirmation of the elections in the great sees to themselves. But when Charles the Great annexed vast territories and regalities to bishoprics, a change followed. Churchmen were soon corrupted by this undue greatness, and came to depend on the humours of those princes to whom they owed their increase of wealth. Princes named them, and invested them in their sees: but the popes intended to sepa- rate the ecclesiastical state from all subjection to secular princes, and to make themselves the heads of that state. At first they pretended to restore the freedom of elections, but these were now engrossed in a few hands, for only the chapters chose. Another act was made against idle vagabonds, that they should be made slaves for two years, by any who should seize on them; this was chiefly designed against some vagrant monks, as appears by the provi- a This sounds strange to modem Christian ears : but by peintents are here evidently meant persons suspended for a time for certain offences from the communion of the church, and are supposed to bewail what they have done. REFORM IN POPISH CEREMONIES. 499 sions of the act. These men went about the country infusing into the people a dislike of the government. The severity of this act excited m the nation, ever averse to slavery, a dislike so that it was but little attended to; and this was the reason that the other provisions for supplying those who were truly indigent, and willing to be employed, had no effect. After this followed the act for giving the king all those chantries which his father had not seized on by virtue of the grant made to him of them. Cranmer much opposed this; for the poverty of the clergy was such that the state of learning and religion was like to suffer greatly if it should not be relieved; and yet he saw no probable fund for that, but the preserving these till the king should come to age, and allow the selling them, for buying in of at least such a share of the impropriations as might afford them some more comfortable subsistence: yet notwithstanding he and seven other bishops dissented, it was passed. Last of all a general pardon, but clogged with some exceptions, was passed. The convocation sat at the same time; and moved, that a commission begun in the late reign of thirty-two persons for reforming the eccle- siastical laws might be revived, and that the inferior clergy might be admitted to sit in the house of commons, for which they alleged a clause in the bishop's writ and ancient custom. Since some prelates had, under the former reign, begun to alter the form of the service of the church, they desired this might be brought to perfection; and that some care mi^ht be had of supplying the poor clergy, and relieving them from the taxes that lay so heavily on them. The question of the inferior clersrv sitting in the house of commons, was the subject of some debate, and was again set on foot, both under queen Elizabeth and king James, but to no effect. It was, however, resolved that some bishops and divines should be sent to Windsor, to finish some reformations in the public offices; for the whole lower house of convocation, without a contradictory vote, agreed to the bill about the sacrament, while it is not known what opposition it met with in the upper house. A proposi- tion being also set on foot concerning the lawfulness of the marriage of the clergy, thirty-five subscribed to the affirmative, and only fourteen dissented. Gardiner being included in the act of pardon was set at liberty: he promised to receive and obey the injunctions, objecting only to the homily of justification; yet he complied in that likewise: but it was visible that in his heart he abhorred all their proceedings, though he outwardly conformed. Candlemas and Lent were now approaching, and the clergy and people were much divided with respect to the ceremonies usual at those times. By some injunctions in king Henry's reign it had been declared that fasting in Lent was only binding by a positive law. Wakes and games were also suppressed, and hints were given that other customs, which were much abused, should be shortly done away. The gross rabble loved these things, as matters of diversion, and thought divine worship without them would be but a dull business. But others looked on them as relics of heathenism, and thought they did not become the gravity and simplicity of the Christian religion. Cranmer, upon this, procured an order of council against carrying candles on Candlemas- 500 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. clay, ashes on Ash-wednesday, and palms on Palm-sunday; which was directed to Bonner to be intimated to the bishops of the province of Canterbury. A proclamation followed against all who should make changes without authority. Creeping to the cross and taking holy bread and water were put down, and power was given to the archbishop of Canterbury to certify, in the king's name, what ceremonies should be afterwards laid aside; and none were to preach out of their own parishes without license from the king or the visitors, the archbishop, or the bishop of the diocese. Soon after this, when the general order followed for a removal of all images out of churches, there were every where great contests whether the images had been abused to superstition or not. Some thought the consecration of them was an abuse common to them all. Those also which represented the Trinity as a man with three faces in one head; or as an old man with a young man before him, and a dove over his head; gave so great scandal, that it was no wonder for the people as they grew more enlightened, not longer to endure them. The only occasion given to censure in this order was, that all shrines, and the plate belonging to them, were appointed to be brought into the king's use. Eighteen bishops, and other divines, were now employed to examine the offices of the church, to see which of them needed amendment. They began with the eucharist, and proceeded in the same manner as in the former reign. Every one gave his opinion in writing, in answer to the question put to him. It was clearly found that the plain institution of the sacrament was much vitiated, with a mixture of many heathenish rites and pomps, to raise the credit of the priests, in whose hands that great performance was lodged. This was at first done to draw over the heathens by those splendid rites to Christianity; but superstition once begun had no bounds nor measures; and ignorance and barbarity increasing in the darker ages, there was no regard paid to any thing in religion, but as it was set off with pageantry; and the belief of the corporeal presence raised this to a still greater height. The office was in an unknown tongue; all the vessels and garments belonging to it were consecrated with much devotion; great part of the service was secret, to make it look like a wonderful charm ; the consecration itself was to be said very softly, for words that were not to be heard agreed best with a change that was not to be seen : many gesticulations, and magnificent processions, all tended to raise this pageantry higher. Masses were also said for all the turns and affairs of human life. Trentals, a custom of having thirty masses a year on the chief festivities for redeeming souls out of purgatory, was that which brought the priests most money, for these were thought God's best days, in which access was easier to him. On saints' days it was prayed, that by their inter- cession the sacrifice might become the more acceptable, and procure a larger indulgence; which could not be easily explained, if the sacrifice was the death of Christ. The first step that was now made was a new office for the communion, that is, the distribution of the sacrament, for the office of consecration was not at this time touched. In the exhortation, auricular confession \o a priest is left free to be done or omitted, and all are required not to GARDINER BROUGHT BEFORE THE COUNCIL. 501 judge one another in that matter. There was also a denunciation made, requiring - impenitent sinners to withdraw. The bread was to be still the same as that formerly used. In the distribution it was said, "The body of our Lord preserve thy body;" and " the blood of our Lord preserve thy soul." This was printed with a proclamation, requiring all to receive it with such reverence and uniformity as might encourage the king to proceed further, and not to run to other things before the king gave direction, assuring the people of his earnest zeal to set forth godly orders; and therefore it was hoped they would wait for it: the books were sent all over England, and the clergy were appointed to give the communion next Easter according to them. Many were offended to find confession left indifferent, so this matter was examined. Christ gave his apostles a power of binding and loosing; and St. James commanded all to confess their faults to one another. In the primitive church, all that denied the faith, or otherwise gave scandal, were separated from the communion, and not admitted to it till they made public confession : and according to the degrees of their sin, the time and degree of public penitence and their separation were proportioned : which was the chief subject of the consultations of the councils in the fourth and fifth centuries. Secret sins the people lay under no obligation to confess, but they went often to the priests for direction, even for these. Near the end of the fifth century they began to have secret penances and con- fessions, as well as public; and in the seventh century this became the general practice. In the eighth century the commutation of penance for money, or other services done the church, was brought in. Then the holy wars and pilgrimages came to be magnified. Crusades against heretics, or princes deposed by the pope, were set up instead of all other penances : priests managed confession and absolution, so as to enter into people's secrets, and to govern their consciences by them ; but they becoming very ignorant, and not so associated as to be governed by orders that might be sent them from Rome, friars were mostly em- ployed to hear confessions, and many reserved cases were made, in which the pope only gave absolution. Such cases were trusted to monks, who had the trade of indulgences put in their hands, which they managed with as much confidence as mountebanks used in selling their medicines, with this advantage, that the inefficiency of their devices was not so easily discovered, for the people believed all that was told them. In this they grew to such a pitch of confidence, that for saying some collects, indulgences for years, and for hundreds and thousands of years were granted ; so cheap a thing was heaven made. This trade was now thrown out of the church, and private confession was declared indifferent. Gardiner was again brought into trouble ; many complaints were made of him, that he disparaged the preachers sent with the king's licence into his diocese, and that he secretly opposed all reformation. On being- brought before the council, he denied most of the things objected to him, and offered to explain himself openly in a sermon before the king. This being granted, he justified many of the changes that had been made; but when he came to the sacrament, he contended so strongly for the corporeal presence, that a great disturbance took place in the 502 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. church. This conduct of his being deemed seditious, he was sent to the Tower, where, however, he was treated with the greatest lenity, which he returned by sullen obstinacy and resentment. Now a more general reformation of the whole liturgy was under consideration, that all the nation might have an uniformity in the worship of God. Anciently the liturgies were short, and had few ceremonies in them : every bishop had one for his diocese ; but in the African churches they began first to put them into a more regular form. Gregory the great laboured much in this ; yet he left Austin the monk to his liberty, either to use the Roman or French forms in England, as he found they were like to tend most to edification. Great additions were made in every age ; for the pri- vate devotions of some who were reputed saints, were added to the pub- lic offices ; and mysterious significations were invented for every new rite, which was the chief study of some ages : this swelled them up to a vast bulk. It was not then thought of, that praying consisted in the inventing new words, and uttering them with warmth ; and it seemed too great a subjection of the people to their priests, that they should be compelled to join with them in all their hearts in prayer. It was then resolved to make a liturgy, and to bring the worship to a fit medium between the pomp of superstition and naked simplicity. It was resolved to change nothing merely in opposition to received practices, but rather in imitation of what Christ did in the institution of the two sacraments of the gospel, which consisted of rites used among the Jews, but blessed by him to higher purposes; to comply with what had been formerly in use as much as was possible, and thereby to gain the people. The con- secrations of water, salt, and other things, in the church of Rome, looked like the remainder of heathenism, and were laid aside : these had been like spirits, which being abjured, and a divine virtue supposed to be in them, the people came to think that by such observances they might be sure of Heaven. The absolutions by which, on account of the merits of the blessed virgin and the saints, the sprinklings of water, fastings, and pilgrimages, with many other observances, sins were par- doned, as well as on the account of the passion of Christ; these and the absolution given to dead bodies looked like gross impostures, tending to make the world think, that besides the painful way to Heaven in a course of true holiness, the priests had secrets in their hands of carry- ing people thither by another method, and on easier terms. This drew them to purchase their favour, especially when they were dying : so that, as their fears were then heightened, there was no other way left them, in the conclusion of an ill life, to die with any good hopes, but as they bargained with their priests : therefore all this was now rejected. It was resolved to have the whole worship in the vulgar tongue ; upon which St. Paul has copiously enlarged; and all nations, as they were converted to Christianity, had their offices translated into their own language. But of late it had been pretended, that it was part of the communion of saints, that the worship should be every where in the original tongue, though the people were hardly used, when for the sake of some vagrant priests that might come from foreign parts, they were kept from knowing what was said in the worship of God. It was pre- tended that Pilate having ordered the inscription on the cross in Greek, CHANGES IN THE PUBLIC WORSHIP. 503 Latin, unci Hebrew, these three languages were sanctified ; but it is not easv to understand what authority the Jewish king had for conferring ■uch a privilege on them. But keeping all in an unknown tongue pre- ; id dark ages the esteem of their offices ; in which there were such prayers and hymns, and such lessons, that if the people had under- stood them they must have given great scandal. In many prayers the pardon of sins and the grace of God were asked in such a stvle of the saints, as if they had been wholly at their disposal, and as if they had been more merciful than God or Christ. In former times, all who officiated were peculiarly habited, and all their garments were blessed, and these were considered as a part of the train of the mass ; but on the other hand, white had been the colour of the priests' vestments under the mosaical law, and had early been brought into the Christian churches : it was a proper expression of innocence, and it being fit that the worship of God should be in a decent habit, it was continued. Since the sacrifices offered to idols were not thereby, according to St. Paul, of their own nature polluted, and every creature of God was good, it was thought, notwithstanding the former abuse, most reasonable to use these garments still. The morning and evening prayers were put almost in the same form as that in which they now stand, only there was no confession nor abso- lution. In the office for the communion there was a commemoration of thanksgiving for the Blessed Virgin and all departed saints, and they were commended to God's mercy and peace. In the consecration the use of crossing the elements was retained ; but there was no elevation of the host, which was at first used as an historical rite, to shew Christ's being lifted up on the cross, and was afterwards done to excite the people to adore it. No stamp was to be on the bread, and it was to be thicker than ordinary. It was to be put in the people's mouths by the priests, though it had been anciently put in their hands. Some in the Greek church began to take it in spoons of gold, others in a linen cloth, called their dominical : but after the corporeal presence was received, the people were not suffered to touch it, and the priests' hands were peculiarly anointed to qualify them for the mystic contact. In baptism the child's head and breast were crossed, and abjuration was made of the devil to depart from it : children were to be thrice dipped, or in case of weak- ness, water was to be sprinkled on their faces, and then they were to be anointed. The sick might also be anointed if they desired it. At funerals, the departed soul was recommended to God's mercy. The sacraments were formerly believed of such virtue, that they con- ferred grace by the very receiving them ; what was called the opus operation was deemed sufficient, though both faith and repentance were absent. The ancients used to send portions of the eucharist to the sick, but without any pomp : which came in when the corporeal presence was believed. But it was now appointed that the sacraments should be ministered to the sick, and therefore, in case of weakness, children were allowed to be baptised in houses ; though it was more suitable to the design of baptism, which was the admission of a new member to the church, to do it before the whole congregation. This, which was then a provision for weakness, is now a mark of vanity, and a piece of affected 504 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. state. It was also appointed, that theLord's supper should be given to the sick; not to be sent from the church, but consecrated by their bed- sides : since Christ had said, that where two or three were assembled in his name he would be in the midst of them. But it is a gross relique of the worst part of popery for any to imagine, that after an ill life, some sudden sorrow for sin, with a hasty absolution, and the sacrament, will be a passport to Heaven ; since the mercies of God in Christ are offered in the gospel only to those who truly believe, sincerely repent, and change the course of their lives. The liturgy thus compiled was published with a preface concerning ceremonies. Of course it was narrowly scanned in every part. When the book came into all men's hands several things were censured : as particularly the frequent use of the cross, and anointing. The former began to be used as the badge of a crucified Saviour : but the supersti- tion of it was so much advanced that latria — the highest kind of worship — was given to the crosier. The using of it was also believed to have virtue for driving away evil spirits, and preserving from dangers; so that a sacramental efficacy was ascribed to it; which could not be maintained, since there is no institution for it in scripture. But the using it was made a ceremony, expressing the belief and worship of a crucified Saviour, which could import no superstition, nor involve idolatry. These several regulations were of great importance, because the protestant religion now appeared almost ruined in Germany, which made the divines of that country turn their eyes to England. Calvin wrote to the protector, and pressed him to go on to a more complete reformation; and that prayers for the dead, chrism, and extreme unction, might be laid aside. He desired him to trust in God, and advance, and wished there was more preaching, and in a more lively way than he heard was then in the land: but above all things he prayed him to suppress that impiety and profanity that, he heard, abounded in the nation. In February 1549, an act passed granting the clergy to marry. It was declared, that it were better for priests to live unmarried, free from all worldly cares; yet, since the laws compelling it had occasioned great debauchery, they were repealed. The pretence of chastity in the Romish priests had possessed the world with a high opinion of them, and had been a great reflection on the reformers, if the world had not clearly seen through it, and been made sensible of the ill effects of it, by the defilement it brought into their own houses and families. Nor was there any point in which the reformers had studied more to remove the prejudice that lay against them. In the Old Testament the priests were not only married, but the office descended by inheritance. In the New Testament, marriage was declared honourable in all: among the qualifi- cations of bishops and deacons, each being the husband of one wife is reckoned up. Many of the apostles were married, and carried their wives about with them, as also Aquilla did Priscilla. Forbidding to marry is reckoned a mark of the apostacy of the latter days, and called a doctrine of devils. All the canons made against the married clergy, were only positive laws which might be repealed. The priests in the Greek church still A NEW LITURGY FORMED. 505 lived in a conjugal state. In the west the clergy generally married ; and in Edgar's time, they were for the most part married in England. In the ninth century, the doctrine of celibacy, though urged by pope Nicholas, was resisted by a large majority of both priests and people. In the eleventh century, Gregory VII. intending to set up a new eccle- siastical empire, found that the unmarried clergy would be his best servants, since the married clergy gave pledges to the state; therefore he proceeded furiously to celibate the church, and called all the married priests Nicolaitans: while in England, Lanfrac only imposed celibacy on the prebendaries, and the clergy that lived in towns. Anseim im- posed it on all without exception; but both he, Bernard, and Peter Damiani, complained that lust abounded much, even among the bishops. Not only Panormitan, but Pius II., wished that the law of celibacy was taken away. It was therefore clear, that it was not founded on the law of God ; and it was a sin to force churchmen to vow that which sometimes was not in their power. It was found by examining the forms of ordination, that the priests in England had made no such vows; and even the vow in the Roman pontifical to live chastely, did not import a tie not to marry, since a man might live chaste in a married state. Many lewd stories were published of the clergy, but none seemed more remark- able, than that of the pope's legate in the time of Henry II. who the very same night after he had put all the married clergy from their benefices, himself was chargeable with flagrant impurity. Another act passed confirming the liturgy which was now finished ; eight bishops and three temporal lords only protesting against it. There was a long preamble, setting forth the inconvenience of the former of- fices, and the pains that had been taken to reform them; and that divers bishops and divines had, by the aid of the Holy Ghost, with an uniform agreement concluded on the new book: therefore they enacted that by Whitsunday next, all divine offices should be performed accord- ing to it; and if any used other offices, for the first offence they should be imprisoned six months, lose their benefices for a second, and be im- prisoned during life for the third. Another act also passed respecting fasting. It declared that notwith- standing all days and meats were in themselves alike, yet fasting, being a great help to virtue, and to subduing the body to the mind, and a dis- tinction of meats conducing to the advancement of the fishing-trade, it was enacted, that Lent, and all Fridays, Saturdays, and Emberdays, should be fish-days, under several penalties, excepting the weak, or those that had the king's licence. Christ had told his disciples, that when he was taken from them they should fast: so in the primitive church chris- tians fasted before Easter; but the same number of days was not ob- served in all places : afterwards other rules and days were established ; but St. Austin complained, that many in his time placed all their reli- gion in observing them. Fast-days were turned to a mockery in the church of Rome, in which clergy as well as laity sumptuously dined, and eat fish exquisitely dressed, and drank wine, and other choice beverage. Both the laity and clergy granted the king subsidies, upon which the parliament was prorogued. The first thing taken into care was the 506 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. receiving the act of uniformity. Some complaints were made of the priests' manner of officiating ; who did it with such a tone of voice that the people could not understand what was said any more than when the prayers were said in Latin. Prayers were, therefore, ordered to be said in parish churches in a plain voice; while in cathedrals the old way was still kept up, as agreeing better with the music used in them. Though this seemed not very decent in the confession of sins, nor in the litany, where a simple voice, gravely uttered, agreed better with those devotions than cadences and quavering notes, it was yet retained. Others continued to use all the gesticulations, crossings, and kneelings, to which they had been formerly accustomed. The people also con- tinued the use of their beads, which had been brought in by Peter the Hermit, in the eleventh century, by which repeating the angels saluta- tion to the virgin was made a great part of their devotions, and was ten times said for one Pater Noster. Instructions were given to the visitors to put all these down in a new visitation, and to enquire if any priests continued their trentals, their thirty masses for departed souls. Orders were also given, that there should be no private masses at altars in the corners of churches; also that there should be but one communion in a day, unless in great churches, and at high festivals, in which they were allowed to have two, one in the morning, and another at noon. The visitors made their report, that they found the book of common- prayer received universally over the kingdom, except that lady Mary continued to have mass said according to the abrogated forms. Upon this the council wrote to her to conform to the laws; pleading with her that being so near to the king in blood, she was the more obliged to give example to the rest of the subjects. She refused to comply, and sent to the emperor for his protection; upon which he pressed the English ambassador, who promised that for some time she should be dispensed. The emperor pretended afterwards that they had made him an absolute promise that she should never more be troubled about it; but the ambassador said it was only a temporary one. She refused to acknowledge the laws made when the king was under age, and carried herself very haughtily. She well knew that the protector was then fearful of a war with France, which made the emperor's alliance more necessary to England: yet the council sent for the officers of her house- hold, and required them to let her know that the king's authority was the same while he was a child as at full age; and that it was now lodged in them; and though as single persons, they were all inferior to her, yet as they were the king's council, she was bound to obey them, especially when they executed the law; which all subjects, of what- ever rank, were bound to obey. She obstinately refused to hear any of the bishops speak before her in favour of the reformation. Upon this the council returned an answer to her, that her objections were more the result of will than of reason, and therefore her grace must be admonished neither to trust her own opinion without ground, nor to mislike all others having ground. If hers were good, it were no hurt if she heard the worst. If it were ill, she might do well to hear the better. The reformation of the greatest errors in divine worship being thus FURTHER REFORMATION OF ERRORS. 507 established, Cranmer proceeded next to establish a form of doctrine. The chief point hitherto untouched, was the presence of Christ in the sacrament, which the priests magnified as the greatest mystery of the Christian religion, and the chief privilege of Christians; with which the simple and credulous vulgar were mightily affected. The Lutherans received that which had been for some ages the doctrine of the Greek church, that in the sacraments there was both bread and wine, and also the substance of the body and blood of Christ. The Helvetians looked on it only as a commemoration of the death of Christ. The princes of Germany were at great pains to have these reconciled, in which Bucer had laboured with great industry. Some took a middle way, and asserted a real presence, while it was not easy to understand what was meant by that expression, unless it was a real application of Christ's death ; so that the meaning of really was effectually. Though Bucer followed this method, Peter Martyr in his lectures declared plainly for the Helvetians. Dr. Smith and some others intended publicly to oppose and affront him ; and challenged him to a dispute about it, which he readily accepted on condition that the king's council should first approve of it, and that it should be managed in scripture terms: for the strength of those doctors lay in. a nimble managing of those barbarous and unintelligible terms of the schools, which, though they sounded high, yet really had no meaning : so that the protestants resolved to dispute in scripture terms, which were certainly more proper in matters of divinity than the metaphysical language of schoolmen. The council having appointed Dr. Cox and some others to preside in the dispute, Dr. Smith went out of the way, and a little after fled out of England : but before he went he wrote a very mean submission to Cranmer. Other doctors disputed with Peter Martyr concerning tran- substantiation, but it had the common fate of all public disputes, for both sides contended that they were victors. At this time there were also disputes at Cambridge, which were moderated by Ridley, who had been sent down by the council. He had fallen on Bertram's book of the sacrament, and wondered much to find so celebrated a writer in the ninth century engage so plainly against the corporeal presence. This disposed him to think that at that time it was not the received belief of the church : he communicated the opinion to Cranmer, and they together made great collections out of the fathers upon it, and both of them wrote concerning it. The substance of their arguments was, that as Christ called the cup " the fruit of the vine," so St. Paul called the other element bread, after the consecration ; which shews that their nature was not changed. When Christ substituted the eucharist in the room of the paschal lamb, he used such expressions as had been customary among the Jews on that occasion ; who called the lamb the Lord's passover ; which could not be meant literally, since the passover was the angels' passing over their houses, when the first-born of the Egyptians were killed. Being a commemoration of what was called the Lord's passover, in the same sense did Christ call the bread his body : figurative expressions being ordinary in scripture, and not improper in sacraments, which may be called figurative actions. The Lord's supper was also appointed for 508 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. a remembrance of Christ, and that supposes absence. The elements were also called by Christ his body broken, and his blood shed ; so it is plain they were his body, not as it is glorified in Heaven, but as it suf- fered on the cross : and since the scriptures speak of Christ's continu- ance in Heaven till the last day, from thence they inferred that he was not corporeally present. It was moreover shewed, that eating Christ's flesh, mentioned by St. John, was not to be understood of the sacrament, since of every partaker it is said that he has eternal life. It must there- fore be understood only of receiving Christ's doctrine as he himself ex- plained, when he said, "The flesh profiteth nothing; but my words, they are spirit and they are life." 5 There were some anabaptists at this time in England, who came from Germany. Of these there were two sorts ; the first only objected to baptising children, and to the manner of it by sprinkling instead of dipping. The other held many opinions, anciently condemned as here- sies : they had raised a cruel war in Germany, and had set up a new king at Munster : but all these bore the name of anabaptists from their rejection of infant baptism, though that was one of the mildest opinions they held. When they came over to England, a commission was granted to some bishops, and others, to search them out, and to proceed against them. Several of these persons on being taken up and brought before the council, abjured their errors, which were, that there was not a Trinity of persons ; that Christ was not God, and took not flesh of the Virgin ; and that a regenerate man could not sin. Among the most zealous and enthusiastic holders of the opinion that Christ was not the same flesh as his virgin mother, was Joan Bocher, generally called Joan of Kent. She was resolute in her opinions, and rejected all the instruction offered her with scorn : she was, therefore, condemned as an obstinate heretic, and delivered to the secular arm. It was with the most extreme reluctance that the king signed the war- rant for her execution ; he thought it was an instance of the same spirit of cruelty for which the reformers condemned the papists; and, not- withstanding all the arguments that were used with him, he was rather silenced than satisfied. He signed the warrant with tears in his eyes, and said to Cranmer, that since he resigned up himself to his judgment, if he sinned in it the sin should lie at his door. This struck the arch- bishop ; and both he and Ridley took Joan into their houses, and tried what reason joined with gentleness could do. But she became more and b It is remarkable that in the ninth century, many of the greatest men wrote against the real presence, and none of them were condemned as heretics. The contrary opinion was then received in England, as appeared by the Saxon homily, which was read on Easter- day, in which are several of Bertram's words. It was generally received in the eleventh century, and fully established in the fourth council in the Lateran. At first it was believed that the whole loaf was turned into one entire body, so that in the distribution every one had a small part given him ; and according to that conceit it was pretended, that it often bled, and was turned into flesh. But this seemed an indecent way of handling Christ's glorified body, so that the schoolmen invented a more seemly notion — that such a body might be in a place after the manner of a spirit, so that in every crumb there was an entire Christ. This, though it appeared hard to be conceived, yet generally prevailed, after which the miracles fitted for the former opinion were no more heard of, but new ones agreeing to this hypothesis were imposed in their stead. So dexterously did the priests deceive the world, until the time arrived for the great standing deception of the host! KKBELLION IN DEVONSHIRE. 509 more resolute in her profession, and at last was burnt. She was sustained in her last moments by the peculiar fervor of her soul in the resistance of what she called, and justly called, a most cruel and unrighteous tyranny. Unprejudiced spirits, under full christian controul, would have mercifully provided this poor victim of lunacy with some appropriate asylum, rather than indulge the thought of leading her to the stake and kindling the flames around her. Gracious God ! that this should have been done by Christians and Protestants! and that, while they were reforming the church, and attempting to establish on the ruins of a barbarous policy the gospel of peace and love! Joan was not the only victim of protes- tant misrule. George Van Parre, a Dutchman, was also condemned and burnt for denying the divinity of Christ, and saying, that the Father only was God. He had led a very exemplary life, both for fasting, devotion, and a good conversation ; and he suffered with extraordinary composedness of mind. Against the other sort of anabaptists no severities were used; but several books were written to justify infant baptism ; and the prac- tice of the church so clearly begun, and so universally spread, was thought a good plea, especially being grounded on such arguments in scripture as demonstrated at least its lawfulness and propriety. About this time a rebellion broke out in many parts of England, partly arising from a jealousy in the commons against the nobility and gentry, who finding more advantage by the trade of wool than corn, generally inclosed their grounds, and turned them to pasture, by which a great number of persons were thrown out of employment, and a general consternation prevailed. The other cause was the unquenched enmity of the priests to the reformation, who endeavoured to revive in the minds of the blinded multitude their former errors. In Devonshire, the insurrection was very formidable ; the superstition of the priests joining with the rage of the commons, they became quickly ten thou- sand strong. The lord Russel was sent against them with a small force, and ordered to try if the matter could be composed without blood : but Arundel, a man of quality, commanding the rebels, they were not a loose body of people so easily dispersed. They sent their demand to court — that the old service and ceremonies might be set up again ; that the act of the six articles, and the decrees of general councils might be again in force : that the bible in English should be called in ; that preachers should pray for the souls in purgatory ; that Cardinal Pole should be restored ; that the half of the abbey lands should be restored, to found two abbeys in every county ; and that gentlemen of 100 marks a year might have but one servant. They desired besides, a safe conduct for their chief leaders, in order to the redress of their particular grievances. Cranmer wrote an answer, shewing the impropriety and superstition of those rites and ceremonies, and of that whole way of worship of which they were so fond : and that the amendments and changes had been made according to the scriptures, and the customs of the primitive church : that their being fond of a worship which they understood not, and being desirous to be kept still in ignorance, without the scriptures, proved that their priests had greater power over them than the common reason of all mankind had. "As for the six articles," he added " that act. had 510 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. never passed if the king had not gone in person to the parliament, and argued for it: yet he soon saw his error, and was slack in executing it." After this a threatening answer was sent them in the king's name, charging them with their rebellion and blind obedience to their priests. In it the king's authority, though he was under age, was largely set forth; for by the pretence of his minority the people generally were taught to believe that their rising in arms was not rebellion. In con- clusion, they were earnestly invited to submit to the royal mercy, as others had done, whom the king had not only pardoned, but whose just grievances he had fully redressed. A fast was proclaimed at court, when Cranmer preached with great freedom and vehemence: he laid before them their vicious lives, particularly of those who pretended a love to the gospel; and declared the judgments of God which they might look for; enlarging on the fresh example of the calamities of Germany, and intimating the sad apprehensions he had of some terrible stroke, if they did not repent and amend. The rebels continuing in arms, troops were sent against them; and after some resistance, they were at length every where routed, their leaders punished, and tran- quillity restored. A visitation of Cambridge followed soon after. Ridley was the chief visitor. When he found that a design was laid to suppress some colleges, under pretence of uniting them to others, and to convert some fellow- ships that were provided for divines to the study of the civil law, he refused his assent. He said the church was already too much robbed, and yet some men's craving was not to be satisfied. It seems the de- sign was laid to drive both religion and learning out of the land; and therefore he desired leave to be gone. The visitors complained of him to the protector, who wrote him a chiding letter : but he answered it with the freedom that became a bishop, who was resolved to suffer all things rather than sin against his conscience ; and the protector was so well satisfied with him, that for his sake the college of Clare-hall, the suppression of which he had strongly objected to, was preserved. Bonner was now brought into trouble. It was not easy to know how to deal with him, for he obeyed every order that was sent to him; and yet it was known that he secretly hated and condemned the whole re- forming system, and as often as he could declare that safely, he was not wanting by such ways to preserve his interest with the papists : thus though he obeyed the orders of council, he did it in so remiss a manner that it was visible it went against him. He was therefore called before it, and charged with several particulars, that whereas he used to officiate himself on the great festivals, he had not done it since the new service was set out; that he took no care to repress adultery, and that he never preached. In the end, proving very refractory and violent, he was deprived of his bishopric, and committed to prison during the kind's pleasure. The English affairs this year upon the continent were extremely un- successful, and the protector being charged with the result, complaints went loud against him; and his enemies, who were very numerous and powerful, took off the mask and openly declared hostility to his govern- ment. The earls of Southampton and Warwick were the chief; the FALL OK THE PROTECTOR. 5:1 i one hated him for dismissing him from office, and the other hoped to be the chief man in the realm if he should fall. Nor was this all the protector's peril; the privy counsellors complained, that he was become so arbitrary in his proceedings, that he disregarded the opposition that was made by the majority of the council to any of his designs. All these things concurred to be^get him many enemies : and except Cranmer, Paget, and Smith, all turned against him. The council violently com- plained of his conduct in foreign affairs, and enlarged upon the evils that had resulted from it. The protector carried the king to Hampton-court, and put many of his own people about him, which increased the jealousy against him : upon which, nine of the privy council met at Ely-house, and assumed to themselves the authority of the council; and secretary Petre being sent by the king, to ask the account of their meeting, instead of re- turning joined himself to them. They made a large declaration of the protector's ill-government; and they resolved themselves to see to the safety of the king and kingdom. Both the city of London, and the lieutenant of the Tower declared for them : they also sent letters through England, desiring the assistance of the nobility and gentry. Seven more privy counsellors came and joined them. The protector had re- moved the king from Hampton-court to Windsor, which had some de- fence about it; and had armed some of his own servants, and set them about the king's person; yet seeing himself abandoned by all but a few friends, and finding the party against him was of such a strength that it would be in vain to struggle any longer, he offered to submit himself to the council. A proposition of treaty was set on foot, and the lords in London were desired to send two of their number with their pro- posals, and a passport was sent them for their safety. Cranmer and two others wrote to the council, to dispose them to an agreement, and not to follow cruel suggestions. Many false reports were abroad of the protector, that he had threatened, if they intended to put him to death, the king should die first, which served to increase the prejudices against him. The council wrote to Cranmer and Paget, charging them to look well to the king's person, that he should not be removed from Windsor; and tk*at the protector's dependants might be put from him, and his own sworn servants admitted. They also protested that they would proceed with all the moderation and favour towards the duke that was possible. Understanding that all things were prepared as they had desired, they sent first three of their number, to see that the duke and some of his friends, namely, Smith, Stanhope, Thynne, Wolf, and Cecil, should be confined to their lodgings; and on the 12th of October, the whole council went to Windsor, and made great protestations of their duty to the king, which he received favourably, and assured them he took all that they had done in good part. On this the protector, with the rest of his friends except Cecil, who was presently enlarged, were sent to the Tower, and many articles were objected to him, that he had treated with ambassadors apart, had made bishops and lord-lieutenants of his own will, had held a court of requests in his house, had embased the coin and neglected the places the king had in France, had encouraged the commons in their late insurrections, 512 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. had given out commissions, and proclaimed a pardon without con- sent of the council; that he had animated the king against them, had proclaimed them traitors, and had put his own servants armed about the king's person. Hence it appears, that the crimes alleged against him were the effects of his sudden exaltation, which had made him too much forget that he was a subject: although in fact he had carried his greatness with much innocence, since in all the studied charges brought against him by his numerous enemies, no acts of cruelty, rapine, or bribery, were objected to him. His faults were rather errors and weaknesses, than crimes. His embasing the coin was done upon a common mistake of weak governments, who fly to that as their last refuge in the necessity of their affairs. In his imprisonment, he set himself to the study of moral philosophy and divinity, and wrote a preface to a book of patience, which had made great impressions on him. His fall was a great affliction to all who loved the reformation, and this was increased because they had no reason to trust much to the two chief men of the party against him. Southampton was a known papist, and Warwick was looked on as a man of no religion : and both at the emperor's court, and in France, it was expected that upon this revolution, religion would again drop into the posture in which kino- Henry had left it. The duke of Norfolk and bishop Gardiner hoped to be discharged, Bonner looked to be re-established in his bishopric, and all people began to neglect the new service: this would no doubt immediately have been the case had not the earl of Warwick, finding the king zealously affected to the reformation, quickly forsook the popish party, and become a mighty promoter of that cause. A court of civilians was appointed to examine Bonner's appeal, and upon their report the council rejected it, and confirmed the sentence that had been upon him. In November the parliament met, when an act was passed declaring it treason to call any to the number of twelve together about matter of state, if on being required they did not disperse. The bishops made a heavy complaint of the growth of vice and impiety, and that their power was so much abridged, they could not repress them. Accordingly a bill was read, enlarging their authority; but it was thought to give them too much power, and it was so moderated that the lords passed it; but the commons rejected it, and sent up a bill that empowered thirty-two who were to be named by the king, one half of the temporality, and the other of the spirituality, to compile a body of ecclesiastical laws within three years; and that these, not being contrary to the common or statute law, and approved of by the king, should have ecclesiastical authority in the land. Of this thirty-two, four were to be bishops, and as many to be common lawyers. Twelve divines were also empowered to prepare a new form of ordination ; which being confirmed under the great seal, should take place after April. Articles were then put in against the duke of Somerset, with a confession signed by him. He protested that his errors had flowed rather from indiscretion than malice, and denied all treasonable designs against the king or the realm: he was fined in 2000Z. a year in land, and the loss of all his goods and offices. He complained of the heaviness of this censure, and desired CEREMONIES OF IHE LIOMISH CHURCH. 513 earnestly to be restored to the king's favour, trusting that he should make amends for his past tollies, lie was discharged in the beginning of February, soon after which he was pardoned, and was again brought both to the court and council. The reformation now proceeded with fresh vigour. The council sent, orders over England to require all to conform themselves to the new service, and to call in all the books of the old offices. An act passed iu parliament to the same effect. All the old books and images were appointed to be defaced, and all prayers to saints were to be struck out of the primmers published by the late king. A remarkable privilege was this session granted to the eldest sons of peers, who were allowed as such to sit in the commons' house. The committee appointed to prepare the book of ordinations, finished their work with common con- sent. It was found that in the ancient church, there was nothing used in ordinations, but prayer and imposition of hands: the additions of anointing and giving consecrated vestments were afterwards brought in. In the council of Florence, it w r as declared that the rite of or- daining a priest, the delivering vessels for the eucharist, with a power to offer sacrifices to God for the dead and living, were novelties invented to support the belief of transubstantiation. All these additions were now cut off, and ordination was restored to a greater simplicity ; and the form was almost the same as that still in use, only then in ordaining a priest, the bishop was to lay one hand on his head, and with the other to give him a Bible, and a chalice with bread in it. In the consecration of a bishop, the form was the same that we retain, only then the custom was retained of giving the bishop a staff, saying these words, " Be to the flock of Christ a shepherd." In the middle of the sixth century, the anointing the priests' hands was begun in France, but was not used in the Roman church for two ages after. In the eighth century, the vestments were given w 7 ith a special blessing, empowering priests to offer expiatory sacrifices ; then their heads were anointed : and in the tenth century, the belief of transub- stantiation being received, the vessels for the sacrament were delivered. It is evident from the several forms of ordination, that the church did not believe itself tied to one manner; and that the prayer, which in some ages was the prayer of consecration, was in other ages esteemed only a prayer preparatory to it. There were some sponsions promised, as a covenant, to which the ordination was a seal: the first of these was that the persons who came to receive orders professed that they were inwardly moved by the Holy Ghost. If this were well considered, it would no doubt put many that thirst after sacred offices to a stand ; who, if they examine themselves well, dare not pretend to a gift con- cerning which they know nothing, but that they have it not. At this time pope Paul the third died. In the conclave that followed, cardinal Farnese set up cardinal Pole, whose wise behaviour in the council of Trent had greatly raised his esteem. It also appeared, that though he was of the emperor's faction, yet he did not serve him blindly. Some loaded him with the imputations of Lutheranism, and incontinence : the last would not have hindered his advancement, though true, yet he fully cleared himself from it: but the former lay heavier, for in his re- 2 L 514 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. tirement at Viterbo, where he was legate, he had given himself to the study of controversies; and Tranellius, Flaminio, and others suspected of Lutheranism, had lived in his house; and in the council of Trent he seemed favourable to some of their opinions. But the great suffer- ings both of himself and family in England, seemed to set him above all suspicions. When his friends had almost gained a sufficient number of suffrages, he seemed little concerned at it, and rather declined than aspired to the dignity. When a full number had agreed, and came to adore him, according to the ordinary ceremony, he received it with his usual coldness; and it being done in the night, he said, "God loves light," advising them to delay it till day. The Italians, among whom ambition passes for the character of a great mind, looked on this as an insufferable piece of dulness ; so that the cardinals shrunk from him before day, and chose de Monte pope, who reigned by the name of Julius the Third. His first promotion is very extraordinary, for he gave his cardinal's hat to a servant who kept his monkey; and being asked the reason of it, he said, he saw as much in his servant to recommend him to be a cardinal, as the conclave saw in him to induce them to choose him pope. In February, Ridley was made bishop of London and Westminster; 1000/. a year of the rents of the see were assigned him, with licence to hold two prebends. Repse, bishop of Norwich resigned, upon which Therleby, bishop of Westminster, was removed to Norwich ; and it was resolved to re-unite London and Westminster, and to place them under one man's care. Ridley's patent was not during pleasure but during life — a strong proof of the king's favour. About this time there was a discourse on foot of a marriage between the king and a French princess, which grieved the reformers, who rather wished him to marry Maximilian's daughter, who was believed to favour the reformation, and was esteemed one of the best men of the age. Dr. Latimer preached at court, and warned the king of the ill effects of bad marriages, which were made up only as political bargains, without affection between the parties; and that they occasioned so much iniquity, and so many divorces: he also complained of the luxury and vanity of the age, and pressed the setting up a primitive discipline in the church. He preached this as his last sermon, and therefore used great freedom. The see of Gloucester fell vacant, and Hooper was named to it. He had some scruples about the episcopal vestments, and thought all those garments having been consecrated with much superstition were to be reckoned among the elements condemned by St. Paul: but Ridley jus- tified the use of them, and said the elements condemned by St. Paul, were only the Jewish ceremonies; which the apostles condemned when they were imposed as essential, as though the Mosaical law was not abrogated, and the Messiah was not come. Cranmer desired Bucer's opinion concerning the lawfulness of those habits, and the obligation lying on subjects to obey the laws about them. His opinion was that every creature of God was good, and that no former abuse could make a thing indifferent in itself become unlawful. Yet since those garments had been abused to superstition, and were likely to become a subject of contention, he wished they might be taken away by law; and that eccle- REVIEW OF THE COMMON PRAYER BOOK. 515 siastica] discipline, and a more complete reformation might be pursued, and a stop put to the robbing of churches; otherwise they might see, in the present state of Germany, a dreadful prospect of that which England ought to look for. He wished that all good men would unite against the greater corruptions, and then lesser abuses would easily be redressed. Peter Martyr also delivered his opinion to the same purpose. Hooper was suspended from preaching; but the earl of Warwick wrote to Cranmer to dispense with him in that matter: he answered, that while the law continued in force, he could not do it without incurring a Prcemunire. Upon this the king wrote to him, allowing him to do it, and dispensing with the law : yet this matter was not settled till a year after. John a Lasco, with some Germans of the Helvetian confession, came this year into England, being driven out of Germany by persecu- tion: they were erected by letters patent into a corporation, and a Lasco was their superintendent. He wrote both against the habits, and against kneeling in the sacrament. Polydore Virgil was this year suffered to go out of England, and still to hold the preferments he had in it. Pomet was made bishop of Rochester, and Coverdale co-adjutor to Veysey in Exeter, the bishop of which he soon became. A design was now set on foot for a review of the common-prayer book, in order to which Bucer's opinion was asked. He approved the main parts of the former book, and wished there might not only be a denunciation against scandalous persons who came to the sacrament, but a discipline to exclude them: that the habits might be laid aside; that no part of the communion office might be used, except when there was a sacrament; that communion might be more frequent; that the prayers might be said in a plain voice; the sacrament put in the people's hands; and that there might be no prayers for the dead. He advised a change of some phrases in the office of the communion which seemed to favour transubstantiation ; and that baptism might be only in churches. He thought the hallowing water, the chrism, and the white garment, were too scenical: nor did he approve of adjuring the devil, nor of the god-father's answering in the child's name: he thought confirmation should be delayed till the person was of age, and came sincerely to renew the baptismal covenant. He advised catechising every holy day, both of children and adults; he disliked private marriages, extreme unction, and offerings at the churching of women : and thought there ought to be greater strictness used in the examination of those who came to receive orders. At the same time he understood that the king expected a new-year's gift from him, of a book written particularly for his own use: he, there- fore, prepared a work for him concerning the kingdom of Christ: he pressed much the setting up a strict discipline, the sanctification of the Lord's day, appointed days of fasting, and that pluralities and non- residence might be effectually condemned; that children might be cate- chised ; that the reverence due to churches might be preserved ; that bishops should throw off secular affairs, take care of their dioceses, and govern them by the advice of their presbysters; that there might be rural bishops over twenty or thirty parishes; that provincial councils might meet twice a year; that church-lands should be restored, and a 516 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. fourth part be assigned to the poor ; that marriage without consent of parents should be annulled ; that a second marriage might be declared lawful, after divorce for adultery, and some other reasons ; that care should be taken of the education of youth, and for repressing luxury ; that the law might be reformed ; that no office might be sold, but given to the most deserving ; that none should be put in prison upon slight offences ; and that the severity of some laws, as that which made theft capital, might be mitigated. Edward was much pleased with these advices ; and upon them began himself to form a scheme for amending many things that were amiss in the government. This he writ with his own hand, and in a style and manner which had much of a child in it, though the thoughts were manly. It appears that he intended to set up a church discipline, and settle a method of bringing up youth ; but the discourse was not finished. He also wrote a journal of every thing that passed at home, and of the news from beyond sea. It had clear marks of his own composing, as well as it is written with his own hand. He wrote another discourse in French, being a collection of all the places of scripture against idolatry, with a preface before it, dedicated to the protector. At this time Ridley made his first visitation to his diocese ; the articles upon which he proceeded chiefly related to the service and ceremonies that were abolished. He also carried some injunctions with him against certain remainders of the former superstition, and for exhorting the people to alms, and to come oft to the sacrament ; and that altars might be removed, and tables put in their room, in the most con- venient place of the chancel. In the ancient church the tables were of wood; but the sacrament being called a sacrifice, as prayers, alms, and all holy oblations were, they came to be called altars. This gave the rise to the opinion of expiatory sacrifice in the mass, and therefore it was thought fit to take away both the name and form of altars. Ridley only advised the curates to do this ; but upon some contests arising concerning it, the council interposed, and required it to be done ; and sent with their order a list of reasons justi- fying it. The following among others were most excellent reasons as- signed in this official paper of the council for the substitution of simple tables for carved and adorned altars. " The form of a table shall more move the simple from the supersti- tious opinions of the popish mass, unto the right use of the Lord's supper. — For the use of an altar is to make sacrifice upon it ; the use of a table is to serve for men to eat upon. Now when we come unto the Lord's board, what do we come for? To sacrifice Christ again, and to crucify him again, or to feed upon him that was once only crucified and offered up for us? If we come to feed upon him, spiritually to eat his body, and spiritually to drink his blood, which is the use of the Lord's supper, then no man can deny but the form of a table is more meet for the Lord's board than the form of an altar." Then, moreover, "Jesus Christ did institute the sacrament of his body and blood at his last supper at a table, and not at an altar, as it ap- peareth manifestly by the three Evangelists. And St. Paul calleth the coming to the holy communion the coming unto the Lord's supper. PROGRESS OF HIE REFORMATION. 517 And also it is not read that any of the apostles or the primitive church did ever use any altar in ministration of the holy communion. Where- fore Beeing the form of a table is more agreeable to Christ's institution, and with the usage of the apostles, and of the primitive church, than the form of an altar, therefore the form of a table is rather to be used than the form of an altar in the administration of the holy communion." The government was now free of all disturbance : the coin was reformed, and commerce was encouraged. The faction in the court seemed also to be extinguished by a marriage between the earl of Warwick's son and the duke of Somerset's daughter. The duke of Lunenburgh made a proposition of marriage with lady Mary, but the treaty with the infant of Portugal did still depend, so it was not enter- tained. In addition the church promised well : even the popish clergy conformed to every change that was made. Oglethorpe, afterwards bishop of Carlisle, being informed against as favouring the old supersti- tion, under his hand declared, that he thought the order of religion then settled was neard the use of the primitive church than that which was formerly received, and that he condemned transubstantiation as a late invention, and approved the communion in both kinds, also the people's receiving it always with the priest. Smith, w 7 ho had written against the marriage of the clergy, and was upon some complaints put in prison, but discharged by Cranmer's intercession, wrote a submission to him, acknowledging the mistakes he had com- mitted in his book, and the archbishop's gentleness towards him: and wished he might perish if he was not sincere, and called God a witness against his soul if he lied. Day, bishop of Chichester, also preached at court against transubstantiation. The principle by which most of that party governed themselves was this — they concluded they ought to oppose all the changes before they were established by law ; yet that being done, that they might afterwards comply with them. Martin Bucer died in the beginning of this year. He had enter- tained great apprehensions of a fatal revolution in England, by reason of the ill lives of the people, the want of ecclesiastical discipline, and the neglect of the pastoral charge. Orders were sent from the court to Cambridge, to bury him with all the public honour to his memory that could be devised. Speeches and sermons were made both by Haddon, the university orator, and Parker, then Regius professor, and afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury. He Avas one of the most extra- ordinary men both for learning and a true judgment of things in that time : he had differed in some points from Bucer, and yet he acknow- ledged, that there was none alive of whom he hoped to learn so much as he had done by his conversation with him. Bucer was inferior to none of all the reformers in learning, and had a great zeal for preserv- ing the unity of the church : he had not that fluency in disputing for which Peter Martyr was admired, and the popish doctors took advantage from that to carry themselves more insolently towards him. Soon after this, Gardiner's process was put to an end : a commission was issued out to Cranmer, three bishops, and some civilians, to proceed against him, for his contempt in refusing to sign the articles that had been offered to him The things objected to him were, that he refused 518 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to advocate in his sermon the king's power when he was under age, and had affronted the preachers whom the king had sent to his diocese ; that he had been negligent in executing the king's injunctions, and refused to confess his fault and ask the king's pardon. It was said that the rebellions raised in England might have been prevented, if he had in time set forth the king's authority: to which he answered, that he was not required to do it by any order of council, but only in a private dis- course ; yet witnesses being examined upon these particulars, the dele- gates proceeded to sentence of deprivation against him notwithstanding his appeal to the king in person ; and he was appointed to lie still in the tower, where he continued till queen Mary discharged him. By this time the greater number of the bishops were such men as heartily received the reformation : it was, therefore, resolved to proceed to a settlement of the doctrine of the church. Many thought that should have been done in the first place ; but Cranmer judged it was better to proceed slowly in such a matter : he thought corruptions in the worship were to be first begun with, since while they remained the addresses to God were so defiled that all people were involved in un- lawful compliances. He thought that speculative opinions might come last, since errors in them were not of such ill-consequence : and he judged it necessary to lay these open, in many treatises and disputes, before the council should proceed to make alterations, in order that all people might be fully satisfied with what was done. Accordingly they framed a body of articles which contained the doctrine of the church of England : they divided them into forty-two, and afterwards some few alterations being made in the beginning of queen Elizabeth's reign, they were reduced to their present number, thirty nine. c The greatest care was taken to frame these articles in the most com- prehensive words, and the greatest simplicity united with strength. When this was settled, commenced the review of the common prayer book. In the daily service they added the confession and absolution, that so the worship of God might begin in a grave and humble manner: after which a solemn declaration of the mercy of God, according to the terms of the gospel, was to be pronounced by the priest. This was thought much better than giving absolution in such formal words, as, " I absolve thee:" which begat in the superficial worshipper an opinion, that the priest had authority to pardon sin, and which made them think of nothing so much as how to purchase it at his hands. In the com- munion service they ordered a recital of the commandments, with a short devotion between every one of them. The holy oil, the use of the cross in consecrating the eucharist, prayers for the dead, and some ex- pressions that favoured transubstantiation, were rejected, and the book cln the ancient church there was at first a great simplicity in their creeds; but after- wards, upon the breaking out of heresies concerning the person of Christ, equivocal senses being put on the terms formerly used, new ones, which could not be so easily eluded, were invented. A humour of explaining mysteries by similes and niceties, and of passing anathemas on all who did not receive these, was very common in the church : and though the council of Ephesus decreed that no new additions should be made to the creed, yet that did not restrain those who loved to make their own conceits be received as parts of the faith. LADY MARY REFUSES TO CONFORM. ol9 was put in the same order as that in which it continues to this day, ex- cepting only some inconsiderable variations. A ru brick was added to the otrice of the communion, explaining the reason of kneeling in it, tiiat it was only an expression of reverence and gratitude upon receiving so particular a mark of the favour of God : but that no adoration was iuiended by it, and no intimation that Christ was corporeally present in it. In queen Elizabeth's time this was omitted, that such as con- formed in other things, but still retained the belief of the corporeal presence, might not be offended at such a declaration; but it was again inserted on the restoration of Charles II., for removing the scruples of those who excepted to that posture. Christ at first instituted this sacra- ment in the ordinary table gesture. Moses appointed the pascal lamb to be eaten by the people standing, with staves in their hands, they being then to begin their march ; yet that was afterwards changed by the Jews, who ate it in the posture common at meals, which our Saviour's practice justifies. At this time six of the most eminent preachers were appointed to wait on the court by turns, two at a time, and the other four were sent as itinerant preachers into all the counties of England, in a circuit, for supplying the defects of the clergy, who were generally very weak and faulty. This was no new practice among reformers of the church. Wickliffe and his disciples w r ent from town to town, and from county to county, to preach the gospel ; which they proclaimed in church yards as well as churches, and even in markets and fairs, and whatever public places would allow of the greatest numbers to hear them. The protes- tants of France early adopted the same custom. Even the catholics have been examples of this zeal in defence of corruption and error, which the reformed have found so remarkably efficient in propagating the true faith. The mass, which was still continued in lady Mary's chapel, was now again challenged. The court was less afraid of the emperor's displea- sure than formerly, and therefore would no longer bear w 7 ith so public a breach of law : and the promise they had made being but temporary, and never given in writing, they thought they were not bound by it. But the emperor assured her that he had an absolute promise for that privilege in her behalf: this encouraged her so much, that when the council wrote, she said she would follow the catholic church, and adhere to her father's religion. Answer was written in the king's name, requir- ing her to obey the law, and not to pretend that the king was under age, since the late rebels had justified themselves by that. The way of worship then established, was also vindicated, as most consonant to the word of God. But she refused to engage in any disputes, and said she would continue in her former courses. She once was thinking of going out of England, insomuch that the emperor ordered a ship to lie near the coast for her transportation, and espoused her quarrel so warmly, that he threatened to make war, if she should be severely used. Dr. ^'otton was sent over to the emperor, to convince him that no absolute promise was ever made: but he pretended, that he had promised to her mother at her death to protect her, and was therefore bound in honour to take care of her : but now when the council were not in such 520 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. fear of the emperor's displeasure, they sent to seize on two of her chap- lains, who had said mass in her house, when she was absent ; they kept out of the way, and she wrote to the council to stop the prosecution, and continued to stand upon the promise made to the emperor. A long answer was returned to her by the council, in which after the matter of the promise was cleared, they urged the absurdity of prayers in an unknown tongue, offering the sacrament for the dead, and worshipping images : the ancients appealed upon all occasions to the scriptures, by which she might easily discover the errors and cheats of the old super- stition, that were supported only by false miracles and lying stories. They pleaded that being trusted with the execution of the laws, they were obliged to proceed equally. Mallet, one of the chaplains, was taken, and upon her earnestly desiring that he might be set at liberty, it was denied her. The council sent for the chief officers of her house, and required them to let her know the king's pleasure, that she must have the new service in her family ; and to give the like charge to her chaplains and servants. This vexed her much, and almost cast her into sickness. She said, she would obey the king in every thing in which her conscience was not touched ; but charged them not to deliver the council's message to her servants. Upon that, the lord chancellor, the lord Petre, and one other, were sent with the same orders to her : they carried to her a letter from the king, which she received on her knees ; but when she read it, she cast the blame of it on Cecil, then secretary of state. The chancellor told her, the whole council were of one mind, that they could not suffer her to use a form of worship against law, and had ordered them to in- timate this both to herself and her family. She made great protestations of duty to the king; but said, she would die rather than use any form of worship but that which was left by her father, only she was afraid she was not worthy to suffer on so good an account. If her chaplains refused to say mass, she could have none, for the new service she was resolved against, and if it was forced on her, she would leave her house. She insisted on the promise made to the emperor, and she believed him more than them all : she gave them a token to be carried to the king, and so dismissed them. Upon this her resolution, the council went no further, only after this her mass was said so secretly as to give no public offence. From Copthall, where this was done, she removed and lived at Hunsden, where Ridley went to see her. There is something so curious in this visit and dialogue between the bishop and Mary, that we shall give it in Mr. Fox's own words. About the eighth of September Dr. Ridley, then bishop of London, being at his house at Hadham, in Hertfordshire, went to visit the lady Mary then living at Hunsden, two miles off; and was gently entertained by Sir Thomas Wharton and other of her officers till it was almost eleven o'clock, about which time the lady Mary came forth into her chamber of presence, and then the bishop saluted her grace, and said, that he was come to do his duty to her grace. She thanked him for his pains, and for a quarter of an hour talked with him very pleasantly, saying that she knew him in the court when he was chaplain to her father, and could well remember a sermon that he made before king Henry her father, DIALOGUE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LADY MARY. 521 at the marriage of my lady Clinton that now is, to Sir Anthony Brown. So she dismissed him to dine with her officers. After dinner was done the bishop being called for by the lady Mary, resorted again to her grace, between whom this communication was. First the bishop began in manner as followeth : — "Madam, I came not only to do my duty to see your grace, but also to offer myself to preach before you on Sunday next, if it will please you to hear me." At this her countenance changed, and after silence for a space, she answered thus — " My Lord, as for this last matter I pray you make the answer to it yourself." The dialogue then proceeded thus: — Bishop. Madam, considering mine office and calling, I am bound in duty to make to your grace this offer, to preach before you. Mary. Well, 1 pray you make the answer to this matter yourself; for ycu know the answer well enough. But if there be no remedy but 1 must make you answer, this shall be your answer ; the door of the parish-church adjoining shall be open for you if you come, and ye may preach if you list; but neither I nor any of mine shall hear you. Bishop. Madam, I trust you will not refuse God's word. Mary. I cannot tell what ye call God's word; that is not God's word now, that was God's word in my father's days. Bishop. God's word is all one in all times, but hath been better un- derstood and practised in some ages than in other. Mary. You durst not for your ears have avouched ihat for God's word in my father's days, that now you do. And as for your new books, I thank God I never read any of them ; I never did, nor ever will do. After many bitter words against the form of religion then established, and against the government of the realm, and the laws made in the young- years of her brother, which she said she was not bound to obey till her brother came to perfect age, and then she affirmed she would obey them ; she asked the bishop whether he were one of the council : he answered, " No." " You might well enough," said she, " as the council goeth now a days." Then she concluded with these words: "My lord, for your gentleness to come and see me, I thank you ; but for your offering to preach before me, I thank you never a whit ," The bishop was dismissed, and brought by Sir Thomas Wharton to the place where they dined, and was desired to drink. After he had drunk, he paused awhile, looking very sadly, and suddenly brake out into these words: " Surely, I have done amiss!" "Why so?" quoth Sir Thomas Wharton. " I have drunk," said he, "in that place where God's word offered hath been refused : whereas if I had remembered my duty, I ought to havedeparted immediately, and to have shaken off the dust of my shoes for a testimony against this house." These words were by the bishop spoken with such a vehemency, that some of the hearers afterward confessed their hair to stand upright on their heads. This done, the bishop departed, and so returned to his house. At this time a great creation of peers took place. Warwick was nude duke of Northumberland, the Percies being then under an at- tainder: Paulet was made Marquis of Winchester; Herbert, earl of 522 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Pembroke; and a little before this, Russel had been created earl of Bedford ; and Darcy was made a lord. There was none so likely to take the king out of Northumberland's hands, as the duke of Somerset, who was beginning to form a new party. Therefore, upon some informations, the duke of Somerset and his duchess, Sir Ralph Vane, Sir Thomas Palmer, Sir Thomas Arundel, and several others, of whom some were gentlemen of quality, and others the duke's servants, were all committed to the Tower. Committing Palmer was a mere delusion, for he had betrayed the duke, and was seized as an accomplice, after which, he pretended to discover a plot: he said, the duke intended to have raised the people, and that Northumberland, Northampton, and Pembroke, having been invited to dine at the lord Paget's, he intended to have set on them by the way, or have killed them at dinner; that Vane was to have 2000 men ready ; Arundel was to have seized on the Tower, and all the gendarmarie were to have been killed. These things were told the young king with such specious circumstances, that he was deluded by them, and unhappily became alienated from his uncle, judging him guilty of so foul a conspiracy. It was added by others, that the duke intended to have raised the city of London; one Crane confirmed Palmer's testimony, and both the earl of Arundel and Paget were com- mitted as accomplices. On the first of December the duke was brought to his trial : the marquis of Winchester, lord steward presided; and twenty-seven peers sat in judgment, among whom were the dukes of Suffolk and Northumberland, and the earl of Pembroke. The particular charges were, a design to seize on the king's person, to imprison Northumberland, and to raise the city of London. It seemed a gross dereliction of justice for Nor- thumberland to sit as judge, when one crime alleged was a design against his life: for though by the law of England no peer can be challenged, yet by the law of nature no man can judge where he is a party. The chancellor, though a peer, was left out, upon suspicion of a reconcilia- tion which he was making with the duke. The protector was not deeply skilled in law, and neither objected to the indictment, nor desired counsel to plead for him, but only answered to matters of fact: he denied all design to raise the people, or to kill Northumberland; or if he had talked thus it was in passion, without any intention: and it was ridicu- lous to think, that he with a small troop could destroy nine hundred gendarmarie. The armed men he had about him were for his own de- fence; he had done no mischief to his enemies, though it was once in his power to have done it ; and he had surrendered himself without any resistance: he desired the witnesses might be brought face to face, and objected many things to them, chiefly to Palmer; but this common act of justice was denied him, and their depositions were only read. He carried himself during the trial with great temper, and all the sharpness which the king's counsel expressed in pleading against him did not provoke him to any indecent passion. When sentence was given his courage sank a little, and he asked the three lords, who were his enemies, pardon for his ill designs against them, and made suit for his life, and for his wife and children. It was generally thought that nothing being found against him but an intention FALL OF THE DUKE OF SOMERSET. 523 to imprison a privy counsellor, which had never taken effect, one so nearly related to the king', would not have been put to death on that account: it was therefore necessary to raise in the king a great aversion to him. Accordingly, a story was brought to him, as if in the Tower the protector had confessed a design to employ means to assassinate these lords; and the persons said to have been named for that wicked service were all persuaded to affirm it. This being believed by the king, he took no care to preserve him, assassination being a crime of so bar- barous a nature, that it possessed him with a horror, even of his uncle, when he thought him guilty of it: and thus was he given up to his ene- mies. Stanhope, Partridge, Arundel, and Vane, were next tried : the two first were not much pitied, for they had made an ill use of their in- terest in the duke during his greatness: the last two were much lamented. Arundel's jury was shut up a whole day and night, and those who were for the acquittal yielded to the fury of the rest, only that they might save their own lives, and not be starved. Vane had done great service in the wars, and carried himself with considerable magnanimity. They were all condemned: Partridge and he were hanged, the other two were beheaded. The lord chancellor had become a secret friend to the duke of Somerset, which was thus discovered : he went aside once at council and wrote a note giving the duke notice of what was then in agitation against him, and, endorsing it only for the duke, sent it to the Tower: but his servant, not having particular directions, fancied it was to the duke of Norfolk, and carried it to him. He, to make Northumberland his friend, forwarded it to him : upon Rich understanding the mistake into which his servant had fallen, to prevent the discovery, went imme- diately to the king, and pretending some indisposition desired to be discharged; upon which the great seal was taken from him, and put in the hands of the bishop of Ely. This was much censured, for all the reformers had inveighed severely against the secular employments and high places which bishops had held in the church of Rome. Christ said, " Who made me a judge?" St. Paul left it as a rule, that " No man that warreth, entangleth himself with the affairs of this life." This Saint Cyprian and the other fathers understood as a perpetual prohibi- tion of churchmen's meddling with secular matters, and condemned it severely. Many canons were made against this in provincial councils, and a very full one was decreed at Chalcedon. But as the bishops of Rome and Alexandria grew rich and powerful, they established a sort of secular principality in the church: and other sees, as they increased in wealth affected to imitate them. Charles the Great raised this much everywhere, and gave great territories and privileges to the church; upon which bishops and abbots were not only admitted to a share in the public counsels, by virtue of their lands, but all the chief offices of the state were open to them ; and then ecclesiastical preferments were given to courtiers as rewards for their services. By these means the clergy became very corrupt, merit and learning being no longer the standards by which men were esteemed or promoted : and bishops were only considered as a sort of great men, who went in a peculiar habit, and on great festivities were obliged to say mass, or perform some other 524 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. solemnities. They wholly abandoned the souls committed to their care, and left the spiritual part of their callings to their vicars and arch- deacons, who made no other use of it, but to oppress the inferior clergy and the people. We now proceed to relate the death of the Protector, as furnished by a certain nobleman, who was present at the deed-doing, and wrote the same. In the year of our Lord 1552, and the month of January, he was brought out of the Tower of London, delivered to the sheriffs of the city, and compassed about with a great number of armed men both of the guard and others. He was conducted to the scaffold on Tower-hill, where changing neither voice nor countenance, but in a manner and with the same gesture which he commonly used at home, kneeling upon both his knees and lifting up his hands, commended himself unto God. After he had ended a few short prayers, standing up again, and turning himself toward the east side of the scaffold, nothing at all abashed either with the sight of the axe, nor yet of the executioner, nor of present death ; but with the same alacrity and cheerfulness of mind and countenance as he was accustomed to shew when he heard the causes and supplication of others, and especially the poor, he uttered these words to the people : — " Dearly beloved friends, I am brought hither to suffer death, albeit that I never offended against the king either by word or deed, and have been always as faithful and true unto this realm as any man. But forsomuch as I am by law condemned to die, I do acknowledge myself as well as others to be subject thereunto. Wherefore to testify my obedience which I owe unto the laws, I am come hither to suffer death ; whereunto I willingly offer myself, with most hearty thanks unto God, who hath given me this time of repentance, who might through sudden death have taken away my life, that neither I should have acknowledged him nor myself. Moreover, dearly beloved friends, there is yet some- what that I must put you in mind of, as touching the Christian religion ; which so long as I was in authority, I always diligently set forth and furthered to my utmost power. Neither do I repent me of my doings, but rejoice therein, seeing that now the state of Christian religion cometh most near unto the form and order of the primitive church. Which thing I esteem as a great benefit given of God both unto you and me ; most heartily exhorting you all, that this which is most purely set forth unto you, you will with like thankfulness accept and embrace, and set out the same in your living. Which thing if you do not, without doubt greater mischief and calamity will follow." When he had spoken these words, there was suddenly a terrible noise heard; whereupon there came a great fear upon all men. This noise was as it had been the noise of some great storm or tempest, which to some seemed to be from above ; as if a great deal of gunpowder being- inclosed in an armory, and having caught fire, had violently broken out. But unto some it seemed as though it had been a great multitude of horsemen running together or coming upon them. Such a noise then was in the ears of all, although they saw nothing. Whereby it hap- pened that all the people being amazed without any evident cause, they ran away, some into the ditches and puddles, and some into the houses EXECUTION OF THE DUKE OF SOMERSET. 525 thereabouts; others fell down grovelling' unto the ground, with their poleaxes and halberta ; and most of them cried out, " Jesus save us, Jesus save us!" Those who remained in their places, for fear knew not where they were ; and I myself who was there among the rest, being also afraid in this hurly-burly, stood still amazed. It happened here, as the evangelist wrote of Christ, when as the officers of the high priests and pharisees, coming with weapons to take him, being astonished ran backwards and fell to the ground. In the meantime, whilst these things were thus in doing, the people by chance espied one Sir Anthony Brown riding under the scaffold ; which was the occasion of a new noise. For when they saw him coming they conjectured that which was not true, but which they all sincerely wished for, that the king by that messenger had sent his uncle pardon ; and therefore with great rejoicing and casting up their caps, they cried out, " Pardon, pardon is come, God save the king." Thus this good duke, although he was destitute of all man's help, yet saw before his departure, in how great love and favour he was with all men. And truly I do not think that in so great slaughter of dukes as hath been in England within these few years there were so many weeping eyes at one time ; and not without cause. For all men saw in his fall the public ruin of England, except such as indeed- did perceive nothing Mean- time standing in the same place, the duke modestly and with a grave countenance made a sign to the people with his hand, that they would keep themselves quiet. Which done, and silence obtained, he spake unto them in this manner. " Dearly beloved friends, there is no such matter here in hand as you vainly Jiope or believe. It seemeth thus good unto Almighty God, whose ordinance it is meet and necessary that we all be obedient unto. Wherefore I pray you all to be quiet, and to be contented with my death, which I am most willing to suffer ; and let us now join in prayer unto the Lord for the preservation of the king's majesty, unto whom hitherto I have always shewed myself a most faithful and true subject. I have always been most diligent about his majesty in his affairs both at home and abroad, and no less diligent in seeking the common good of the whole realm." At which words all the people cried out, " It is most true." The duke on their silence proceeding, said, " Unto whose majesty I wish continual health, with all felicity and all prosperous success." Whereunto the people again cried out, "Amen." The duke then added also, " I do wish unto all his counsellors the grace and favour of God, whereby they may rule in all things uprightly with justice. Unto whom I exhort you all in the Lord to shew yourselves obedient, as it is your bounden duty, under the pain of condemnation, and also most pro- fitable for the preservation and safeguard of the king's majesty. " Moreover, as heretofore I have had oftentimes affairs with divers men, and hard it is to please every man, therefore if there be any who hath been offended and injured by me, I most humbly require and ask him forgiveness; but especially Almighty God, whom throughout all my life I have most grievously offended ; and all others whosoever they be t!i at have offended me, I do with my whole heart forgive them. Now I once again require you, dearly beloved in the Lord, that you will keep 526 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. yourselves quiet and still, lest through your tumult you might trouble me. For albeit the spirit be willing and ready, the flesh is frail and wavering, and through your quietness I shall be much more composed. Above all I desire you to bear me witness that I die here in the faith of Jesus Christ ; desiring you to help me with your prayers, that 1 may persevere constant in the same unto my end." After this, turning himself again, he kneeled down. Then Dr. Cox, who was present to counsel and advise him, delivered a certain scroll into his hand, wherein was contained a brief confession unto God. This being read the duke stood up again without any trouble of mind, and first bade the sheriffs farewell, then the lieutenant of the Tower, and others, taking them all by the hand which were upon the scaffold with him. Then he gave money to the executioner ; which done, he put off his gown, and kneeling down again in the straw, untied his shirt strings. After that, the executioner coming to him turned down his collar about his neck and all other things which hindered him. Then lifting up his eyes to heaven and covering his face with his own handkerchief, he laid himself down along, shewing no trouble or fear, neither did his countenance change. But because his doublet covered his neck, he was commanded to rise up and put it off; and then laying himself down again upon the block, ajad calling thrice upon the name of Jesus, say- ing, " Lord Jesus, save me," as he was the third time repeating the same, even as the name of Jesus was in uttering, in a moment he was bereft both of head and life, and slept in the Lord ; being taken away from all dangers and evils of this life, and resting in the peace of God : in the preferment of whose truth and gospel he always shewed himselt an excellent instrument and member, and therefore hath received the reward of his labour. He was a man of extraordinary virtues, of great candour, and eminent piety: he was always a promoter of justice, and a patron of the oppressed. He was a better soldier than statesman, being too easy and open-hearted to be so cautious as such times and such employments required. The people saw that all this conspiracy, for which he and the other four suffered, was only a forgery : the other accomplices were quickly dis- charged, and Palmer, the chief witness, became Northumberland's par- ticular confident : and even those indiscreet words which the duke had spoken in his warmth, and his gathering armed men about him, was imputed to Palmer's artifices, who had put him in fear of his life, and thus made him do and say those things for which he lost it. His four friends all ended their lives, with the most solemn protestations of inno- cence; and the whole matter was looked on as a contrivance of Nor- thumberland's, by which he entirely lost the affections of the people. The chief objection to the duke was, his having raised much of his estate out of the spoils of bishops' lands, and his palace d out of the ruins of some churches ; and to this was added a remark, that he did not claim the benefit of the clergy, which would have saved him. Since he had so spoiled the church, they imputed it to a particular judgment on him d That beautiful building and ornament of the country, Somerset-house, in the Strand, London. THK COMMON PHAVER-BOOK ESTABLISHED. 527 that he forgot it ; hut in this they were mistaken, for in the act by which he was condemned, it was provided that no clergy should purge that felony — another proof, if it were wanting, that he was the innocent victim of a cruel conspiracy. The day after the duke of Somerset's execution, a session of parliament was assembled. The first act which passed established the common prayer- book, as it was now amended. The bishops were required to proceed by the censures of the church against such as used it not: they also au- thorised the book of ordinations, and enacted the same penalties against offenders, that were in the act for the former book three years before. The papists took occasion of the changes now made to say, that the new doctrines and ways of worship changed as fast as the fashions. It was answered, that it was no wonder if corruptions, which had been creeping in for a thousand years, were not all discovered and thrown out at once; and since they had been every age making additions of new ceremonies, it might be excused if the purging them out was done by such easy degrees. The book was not to be received till All-hallows, because it was hoped that in the interval the reformation of the eccle- siastical laws would have been finished. The following law passed for holy-days and fasts — " No days are to be esteemed holy in their own nature, but by reason of those holy duties which ought to be done in them, for which they were dedicated to the service of God. Days are esteemed to be dedicated only to the honour of God, even those in which the saints were commemorated. Sundays, and the other holy-days, are to be religiously observed, and the bishops are to proceed to censures against offenders. The eves before them are to be fasts, and abstinence from flesh are enacted both in Lent and on Fridays and Saturdays." The liberty to tradesmen to w T ork on these days, was abused to a public pro- fanation of them, and the stricter clauses in the act were little regarded. An act also passed empowering churchwardens to gather collections for the poor, and the bishops to proceed against such as refused to contri- bute; which, though it was a bill that taxed the people, yet had its rise in the house of lords. An act likewise passed for the marriage of the clergy. Whereas the former act about it was thought only a permission of it, as some other unlawful things were connived at; upon which the wives and children of the clergy were reproachfully used, and the word of God was not heard with due reverence ; therefore their marriages were declared good and valid. The bishopric of Westminster was re- united to London, only the collegiate church was still continued. The convocation now confirmed the articles of religion which had been prepared in the former year, and thus was the reformation of wor- ship and doctrine brought to such a degree, that since that time there has been very little alteration made. One branch of it was still un- finished, and was now under consultation, touching the government of the church, and the rules of the ecclesiastical courts. Two acts had passed in the former reign, and one in this, empowering a commission o revise all the laws of the church, and digest them into a body. King- Henry had issued the commission, and the persons were named who made some progress in it, as appears by some of Cranmer's letters to him. In this reign it had been begun several times; but the changes in 528 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the government had caused it to be laid aside. Thirty-two were found to be too many for preparing the first draught, so that eight were ap- pointed to make it ready for them: these were Cranmer, Ridley, Petre, Martyr, Trahern, Taylor, Lucas, and Gosnold, two bishops, two divines, two civilians, and two common lawyers; but it was generally believed that Cranmer drew it entirely by himself, while the rest only corrected what he designed. Haddon and Cheek were employed to put it in Latin; in which they succeeded so well, and arrived at so true a purity in the Roman style? that it is equal to a work of the best ages. The work was cast into fifty-one titles; perhaps it was designed to bring it near the number of the books into which Justinian digested the Roman law. The eight finished it, and offered it to the thirty-two; who divided themselves into four classes, every one of which was to offer his correc- tions, and when it had passed through them all, it was to be presented to the king for his confirmation ; but he died before it was quite finished. The principal objects of this bill are well worthy of being known. The first title was concerning the catholic faith : it was made capital to deny the christian religion. The books of scripture were reckoned up, and the apocrypha left out. The four first general councils were re- ceived; but both councils and fathers were to be submitted to only as they agreed with the scriptures. The second enumerates and condemns many heresies, extracted out of the opinions of the church of Rome, and the tenets of the anabaptists. The judgment of heresy was to lie in the bishop's court, except in exempted places. Persons suspected might be required to purge themselves, and those who were convicted, were to abjure and do penance; but such as were obstinate were de- clared infamous, and not to have the benefit of the law, or of making testaments, and so all capital proceedings for heresies were laid aside. Blasphemy against God was to be punished as obstinate heresy. Bishops were appointed once a year to call all their clergy together to examine them concerning their flocks : and itinerant preachers were to be often employed for visiting such precincts as might be put under their care. All marriages were to be after bans, and to be annulled if not done according to the book of common prayer. Corrupters of virgins were to marry them; or if that could not be done, to give them the third part of their goods, and suffer punishment. Marriages made by force, or without consent of parents, were declared null. Polygamy was forbid. A clergyman guilty of adultery was to forfeit his goods and estate to his wife and children, or to some pious use; and to be banished or imprisoned during life: a layman guilty of it was to forfeit the half, and be banished or imprisoned during life : wives who were guilty were to be punished in the same manner. The innocent party might marry again after a divorce. Desertion, or mortal enmity, or the constant perverseness of a husband might induce a divorce. Patrons were charged to give pre- sentations without making bargains; to choose the fittest persons, and not to make promises till the livings were vacant. The bishops were required to use great strictness in the trial of those whom they ordained; all plu- ralities and non-residence were condemned, and all who were presented were to purge themselves of simony by oath. All superstitious purgations were condemned. The communion was to be every Sunday in cathedrals. REDUCED CONDITION OF THE CLERGY. 520 and a sermon to be in the afternoon : such as received the sacrament were to give notice to the minister the day before, that he might examine them. The catechism was appointed to be explained an hour in the afternoon on holy-days. After the evening prayer the poor were to be taken care of. Penances were to be enjoined to scandalous persons; and the minister was to confer with some of the ancients of the people concerning the state of the parish, that admonitions might be applied as there was occasion. A rural dean was to be in every precinct to watch over the clergy according to the bishop's directions: archdeacons were to be over them, and the bishop over all ; who was to have yearly synods, and visit every third year. His family was to consist of clergymen, in imitation of St. Austin, and other ancient bishops; these he was to train up for the service of the church. When bishops became infirm they were to have co-adjutors; archbishops were to do the episcopal duties in their diocese, and to visit their province. Every synod was to begin with a communion, and after that, the ministers were to give an account of their parishes, and follow such directions as the bishop should give them. A scheme was drawn of excommunication, which was entrusted to churchmen for keeping the church pure, and was not to be inflicted but for obstinacy in some gross fault. Such as had the king's pardon for capital offences were yet liable to church-censures. Then followed the office of absolving penitents : they were to come to the church-door and crave admittance, and the minister having brought them in, was to read a long discourse concerning sin, repentance, and the mercies of God. Then the party was to confess his sin, and to ask God and the congregation pardon ; upon which the minister was to lay his hands on his head, and to pronounce the absolution. Then a thanksgiving was to be offered to God at the communion-table for the reclaiming that sinner. The other heads of this work relate to the other parts of the law of those courts. There were at this time remedies under consideration for the great misery and poverty of the clergy : but the laity were so much concerned to oppose them, that there was no hope of bringing them to any good effect, till the king should come to be of age, and endeavour to recover again a competent maintenance for them out of the hands of those who had devoured their revenues. Heath and Day, the bishops of Worcester and Chichester, were this year deprived of their bishoprics, by a court of delegates composed all of laymen : but it does not appear for what offences they were suspended. The bishoprics of Gloucester and Wor- cester were united, and put under Hooper's care; but soon after, the former was made an exempted archdeaconry, and he was declared bishop only of Worcester. In every see, as it became vacant, the best manors were seized by such hungry courtiers as had the interest to pro- cure the grant of them. It was thought, that the bishops' sees were so enriched, that they could never be made poor enough: and such haste was made in spoiling them, that they were reduced to a condition hardly possible for a bishop to subsist in them. If what had been thus taken from them had been converted to good uses, such as supplying the infe- rior clergy, it had been some mitigation of the robbery, but their lands 2 m } 530 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. were taken up by laymen, who thought of making no compensation for the spoils. This year the reformation had gained more ground in Ireland than formerly. Henry VIII. had assumed to himself, by consent of the parliament of that kingdom, the title of king of Ireland : the former kings of England having only been called lords of it. The popes and emperors pretended that such titles could be given only by them : the former said, all power in heaven and earth was given to Christ, and by consequence to his vicar. The latter, as carrying the title of Roman emperor, pretended that as the imperial power anciently bestowed those titles, so it devolved on him who retained only the name and shadow of that great authority. But princes and states have thought they may bring themselves under what titles they please. Though the kings of England were well obeyed within the English pale, yet the Irish con- tinued barbarous and uncivilized, and were guided entirely by the heads of their names or tribes, and were obedient or rebellious as they directed them. In Ulster they had a great dependance on Scotland, and there were some risings there, during the war with that country, which were quieted by giving the leading men pensions, and getting them to come and live within the English pale. Monluc, bishop of Valence, being then in Scotland, went over thither to raise new com- motions; but his efforts had no effect. While he was there his lascivi- ousness came to be discovered by an odd accident: a woman of the town, brought to him by some English friars, and secretly kept by him, searching among his clothes, fell on a small bottle of something very odori- ferous, and drank it off; which being discovered by the bishop, put him in a most violent passion, for it had been given him as a present by Solyman the magnificent, when he was ambassador at his court. It was called the richest balm of Egypt, and valued at 2000 crowns. His rage grew so boisterous that all about him discovered both his passion and lewdness at once. The reformation was set up in the English pale, but had made small progress among the Irish. This year Basle was sent over to labour among them. He was an eager writer, and a learned zealous man. Goodaker was sent to be primate of Armagh, and Basle was to be bishop of Ossory. Two Irishmen were also promoted with them ; who undertook to advance the reformation there. The archbishop of Dublin intended to have ordained them by the old pontifical, and all except Basle were willing it should be so; but he prevailed that it should be done according to the new book of ordinations: after that he went into his diocese, but found all there in dark popery, and before he could make any progress the king's death put an end to his designs. The world had long been anxiously looking for the result of the council of Trent, trusting that it might lead to the establishment of order throughout the European countries; which appeared no less to have been desired both by princes and bishops in hopes that differences of religion would have been composed, and the corruptions of the court of Rome reformed by it. This had made the pope very apprehensive of it: but such was the cunning of the legates, the number of Italian bishops, and the dissensions of the princes, that it had an effect quite AN EDICT PASSED IN FAVOUR OF THE PROTESTANTS. 53\ contrary to what all sides expected. The breach in religion became past reconciling by the positive decisions they made: the abuses of the court of Rome were confirmed by the provisos made in favour of the privileges of the apostolic see: and the world was at length so cured of their longings for a general council, that none has been since that time desired. The history of that council was written with great exactness and judgment by father Paul, of Venice, while it was yet fresh in all men's memories; and though it discovered the whole secret of the trans- actions there, yet none set himself to write against it for forty years; then Pallavicini at last undertook it, and upon the credit of many memo- rials. In many things he contradicts father Paul ; but in the main of the history they both agree, so far that it is manifest things were not fairly carried, and that matters were managed by intrigue rather than fair and open discussion. Prince Maurice declared for the liberty of Germany, and took Augs- burgh, and several other towns. The king of France fell upon the em- pire with a great force, and by surprise made himself master of Metz and Verdun, and thought to have got Strasburgh. Maurice sent his demands to the emperor for the landgrave's liberty, and for restoring the freedom of the empire : but the emperor being slow in making an- swer, he marched on to Inspruck, where he surprised a post, and was within two miles of him before he was aware of it, so that the emperor was forced to flee, nor stopped till he was safe in Italy. Thus the very army and prince which had been chiefly instrumental in the ruin of the empire, now again asserted its freedom; and the emperor's great design on Germany was so blasted, that he could never after put any life in it. He was forced to discharge his prisoners, and to call in the proscriptions; and after some treaty, the edict of Passa was made by which the free exercise of the protestant religion was granted to the princes and towns: and thus did that storm which had almost overwhelmed the princes of that persuasion end, without any other considerable effect beyond the translation of the electorial dignity from John to Maurice. The emperor's misfortunes increased on him, for against all reason he be- sieged Metz in December, and after he had ruined his army in it he was forced to raise the siege. He retired into Flanders in such discon- tent that for some time he would not admit any to approach him. There it was believed he first formed that design, which some years after he put in execution, of forsaking the world, and exchanging the pomp of a court for the retirement of a monastery. This strange turn in his affairs gave a great demonstration of an over-ruling Providence govern- ing all human affairs, and of that particular care that God had of the reformation, in recovering it when it seemed to be lost, and hopeless of recovery in the German states. In the year 1553, another visitation took place in England. Visitors were sent to examine what plate was in every church, and to leave in each only one or two chalices of silver, with linen for the communion- table and for surplices; to bring all other things of value to the trea- surer of the king's household, and to sell the rest and give it to the poor. But from these and numerous other changes, the public atten- tion soon became diverted by a rumour of the young king's alarming 532 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. affliction. His wisdom and virtue were appreciated in all parts of the land, and for his own sake as well as on account of the reformation, the rumour excited deep and general lamentation. He had contracted cold by violent exercises, which in January settled into so obstinate a cough that all the skill of physicians and the aid of medicine proved ineffectual. There was a suspicion taken up and spread over all Europe that he was poisoned : but no certain grounds appear for justifying it. During this sickness, Ridley preached before him, and among other things spoke much on charity, and the duty of men of high condition to be eminent in good works. The king was much touched with this; and, after sermon, he sent for the bishop, and treated him with such respect that he made him sit down covered : he then told him what impression his exhortation had made on him, and desired to be directed by him how to do his duty in that matter. Ridley took a little time to consider of it, and after some consultation with the lord mayor and aldermen of London, he brought the king a scheme of se- veral foundations: one for the sick and wounded; another for such as were wilfully idle: and a third for orphans. Without delay Edward endowed St. Bartholomew's hospital for the first, Bridewell for the second, and Christ church, near Newgate, for the third; enlarging the grant he made the former year for St. Thomas's hospital in Southwark. The statutes and warrants relating to these were not finished before the 26th of June, though he gave order to make all the haste that was possible : and when he set his hand to them he blessed God for prolonging his life till he finished his designs concerning them. These houses have, by the good government and great charities of the city of London, continued to be so useful, and grown to be so well endowed, that they may be reckoned among the noblest in Europe. The king bore his sickness with great submission to the will of God, and seemed concerned in nothing so much as the state that religion and the church would be in after his death. The duke of Suffolk had three daughters: the eldest was married to the loid Guildford Dudley, son to the duke of Northumberland ; the second to the earl of Pem- broke's eldest son ; and the third to one Keys. The duke of Northum- berland married also his two daughters ; one to sir Henry Sydney, and the other to the earl of Huntingdon's eldest son. He grew to be so much hated by the people, that the jealousy of the king's being poisoned was fastened on him. But he regarded these things little, and resolved to improve the fears the king was in concerning religion to the advantage of lady Jane Grey. Edward was easily persuaded to order the judges to put some articles, which he had signed for the suc- cession of the crown, in the common form of law. They answered that the succession being settled by act of parliament, could not be taken away except by the same authority; yet the king required them to do what he commanded them. But the next time they came to the council they declared, that it had been made treason to change the succession by an act passed in this reign, so that they could not meddle with it. Montague was chief justice, and spoke in the name of the rest. On this Northumberland fell into a great passion against him, calling him traitor for refusing to obey the king's commands. The judges were not DEATH OF KING EDWARD VI. 533 shaken by his threatenings; and they were again brought before the king, who sharply rebuked them for their delays: but they said that all they could do would be of no force without a parliament, yet they were required to perform it in the best manner they could. At last Montague desired they might first receive pardon for what they were to do, which being granted, all the judges, except Gosnold and Hale, agreed to the patent, and delivered their opinion that the lord chancellor might put the seal to it, and that then it would be good in law. The former of these was at last wrought on; so that Hale was the only man who stood out to the last: he was a zealous protestant, and would not give his opinion against his conscience upon any con- sideration whatsoever. The privy counsellors were next required to set their hands to it: Cecil, in a relation he wrote of this transaction, says that hearing some of the judges declare so positively that it was against law, he refused to set his hand to it as a privy counsellor, but signed it only as a witness to the king's subscription. Cranmer stood out long, he came not to the council when it was passed, and refused to consent to it when he was pressed to it; for he said he would never have a hand in disinheriting his late master's daughters. The dying king was at last set on him, and by his importunity prevailed with him to doit; upon which the seal was put to the patents. The distemper continued to increase, so that the physicians despaired of the king's recovery. A confident woman undertook his cure, and he was put into her hands; but she left him worse than she found him ; and this heightened the jealousy against the duke of Northumberland, who had introduced her, and put the physicians away. At last, to crown his designs, he got the king to write to his sisters Mary and Elizabeth, to come and divert him in his sickness : and the matter of the exclusion had been carried so se- cretly, that they apprehending no danger had begun their journey. On the 6th of July the king felt death approaching, and prepared himself for it in a most devout manner. He was often heard offering up prayers and ejaculations to God. A few moments before he died he prayed earnestly that God would take him out of this wretched life, and committed his spirit to him; interceding very fervently for his subjects, that God would preserve England from popery, and maintain his true religion among them. Then turning his face, and seeing who was by him, he said unto them, "Are ye so nigh? I thought ye had been further off." Dr. Owen said, "We heard you speak to yourself, but what you said we know not." He then smiling said, " I was praying to God." The last words of his life were these, "I am faint, Lord have mercy upon me, and take my spirit." Soon after that he breathed out his pious soul to God, his emaciated body resting in Sir Henry Sydney's arms. Endeavours were used to conceal his death for some days, with design to draw his sisters into the snare before they should be aware of it, but that could not be done. Thus died Edward VI. in the sixteenth year of his age. He was counted the wonder of that time; e he was not only learned in the e The preceding year, Cardan the great philosopher of that age passed through England on his return from Scotland to the Continent. He waited on the youthful king, and was so charmed with his great knowledge and rare qualities, that he always spoke of him as the 534 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. tongues, and the liberal sciences, but knew well the state of his king- dom. He kept a book in which he had written the characters of all the eminent men of the nation ; he studied fortification, and understood the mint well : he knew the harbours in all his dominions, with the depth of water, and way of coming into them. He understood foreign affairs so well, that the ambassadors who were sent into England pub- lished very extraordinary things of him in the several courts of Europe. He had great quickness of apprehension; but being distrustful of his memory, he took notes of every thing he heard that was considerable, in Greek characters, that those about him might not understand what he wrote. The following anecdote related of him may serve to shew, that the playfulness of youth would sometimes break out amidst the dignity of the monarch. He resided much at Greenwich, and being there on St. George's day, in the fourth year of his reign, when he was come from the sermon into the presence-chamber, there being his uncle the duke of Somerset, the duke of Northumberland, with other lords and knights of that order, called, "The Order of the Garter," he said to them, " My lords, I pray you, what Saint is St. George, that we here so honour him?" At which question the lords being all astonished, the lord trea- surer gave answer and said, "If it please your majesty, I never read in any history of St. George, but only in Legenda aurea, where it is thus set down: ' St. George out with his sword, and run the dragon through with his spear.' " The king could not a great while speak for most excellent character of his age he had ever seen : and after his death, he wrote the following account of him. " All the graces were in him : he understood many tongues when he was yet but a child ; together with the English, he knew both Latin and French; he also understood Greek, Italian, and Spanish. Nor was he ignorant of logic, of the principles of natural philosophy, or of music. The sweetness of his temper was admirable. His gravity became the ma- jesty of a king, and his disposition was suitable to his high degree. These things are not spoken rhetorically, and beyond the truth, but are indeed short of it. When ] was with him, he was in his fifteenth year, in which he spake Latin politely and promptly. He asked me what was the subject of my book, De rerum veritate, which I dedicated to him] I answered, that in the first chapter I gave the true cause of comets, which had been long enquired into, but was never found out before. On his asking the cause, I said it was the concourse of the light of wandering stars. He asked how that could be, since the stars move in different motions 1 How came it that the comets were not dissipated, or did not move after them according to their motions! To this 1 answered, 'They do move after them, but much quicker than they, by reason of the different aspect; as we see in crystal, or when a rainbow rebounds from a wall : for a little change makes a great difference of place.' The king said, ' How can that be, where there is no subject to receive that light, as the wall is the subject for the rainbow 1 ' To this I answered, That this was as in the milky-way, or where many candles were lighted ; the middle place where their shining met was white and clear." From this sample it may be imagined what he was. The in- genuity and sweetness of his disposition had raised in all good and learned men, the great- est expectation of him possible. He began to love the liberal arts before he knew them, and to know them that he might use them : and in him there was such an attempt of nature, that not only England, but the world hath reason to lament his being so early snatched away. How truly was it said of such extraordinary persons, that their lives are short, and seldom do they come to be old ! He gave us an essay of virtue, though he did not live long to give a pattern of it. When the gravity of a king was needful, he carried himself like an old man, and yet he was always affable and gentle, as became his age. These ex- traordinary blossoms gave but too good reason to fear, that a fruit which ripened so fast, could not last long. THE REFORMATION DISCOURAGED. 535 laughing, and at length said, " I pray you, my lord, and what did he with his sword the while?" His virtues were wonderful : when he was made to believe, that his uncle was guilty of conspiring the death of the other counsellors, he upon that abandoned him. Barnaby Fitzpatrick was his favourite, and when he sent him to travel he often wrote to him, to keep good com- pany, to avoid excess and luxury, and to improve himself in those things that might render him capable of employment on his return. He was afterwards made lord of Upper Ossory in Ireland, by queen Elizabeth, and well answered the hopes which this excellent king had of him. Edward was very merciful in his nature, which appeared in his unwil- lingness to sign the warrant for burning the Maid of Kent. He took great care to have his debts well paid, reckoning that a prince who breaks his faith and loses his credit, has thrown up that which he can never recover, and made himself liable to perpetual distrust and extreme contempt. He took special care of the petitions that were given him by poor and oppressed people. But his great zeal for religion crowned all the rest. It was not a temporary heat about it that excited him, but it was a true tenderness of conscience, founded on the love of God and his neighbours. These extraordinary qualities, set off with great sweetness and affabi- lity, made him universally beloved by his people. Some called him their Josiah, others Edward the Saint, and others the Phcenix that rose out of his mother's ashes. All people concluded, that the sins of Eng- land must have been very great, since they provoked God to deprive the nation of so signal a blessing, as the rest of his reign would, to all appearance, have proved. Bishop Ridley, and the other good men of that time, made great lamentations of the vices, w 7 hichwere grown then so common, that men had passed all shame in them. Luxury, oppres- sion, and a hatred of religion had over-run the higher ranks of people, who gave a countenance to the reformation, merely to rob the church ; but by that, and their other practices, were become a great scandal to so good a work. The inferior classes were so much in the power of the priests, who were still, notwithstanding their outward compliance, papists in heart, and were so much offended at the spoil they saw made of all good endowments, without putting other and more useful ones in their room, that they who understood little of religion, laboured under great prejudices against every thing that was done in such a manner. And these things, as they provoked God highly, so they disposed the people much to that sad catastrophe which was experienced in the fol- lowing reign. BOOK XL THE REIGN OF QUEEN MARY. SECTION I. ACCESSION AND DEPOSITION OF THE LADY JANE GREY — FIRST ENTERING OF QUEEN MARY TO THE CROWN ALTERATIONS OF RELIGION, AND OTHER PERTURBANCES HAPPENING THE SAME TIME IN ENGLAND. The attention of British protestants is now called to a period of church history which cannot fail to awaken in their hearts that sympathy for their ancestors, which at present lies dormant in too many bosoms. A long career of religious prosperity appears to have obliterated from their minds the cruel persecutions of their forefathers, who for them bled in every vein — for them were consigned to devouring flames in every part of their country — preparing and establishing for their descendants, by the sacrifice of themselves, genuine liberty of person and of conscience. And while we review with gratitude and admiration effects produced by such causes, let us learn to appreciate those blessings which, by the continued providence of God, we have so long enjoyed. It has been asserted by Roman catholics, that all those who suffered death during the reign of queen Mary, had been adjudged guilty of high treason, in consequence of their having stood up in defence of lady Jane Grey's title to the crown. To disprove this, however, is no difficult matter, since every one conversant in history must know, that those who are tried on the statute of treason are to be hanged or be- headed. How can even papists affirm that ever men in England were burned for this crime? Some few suffered death in the ordinary way of process at common law, for their adherence to lady Jane; but none of those were burned. Why, if traitors, were they taken before the bishops, who have no power to judge in criminal cases? Even allowing the bishops, as peers, to have had power to judge, yet their own bloody statute did not empower them to execute. The proceedings against the martyrs are still extant, and they were carried on directly according to the forms prescribed by their own statute. There was not one of those burned in England ever accused of high-treason, much less were they tried at common law. And this should teach the reader to value a history of transactions in their own country, particularly of their blessed martyrs, in order that they may be able to see through the veil which falsehood has cast over the face of truth. It should also be observed, that Mary's title to the throne was acknowledged by a very large number whom she burned as heretics, and that none of her burnings were considered necessary to render her throne and crown secure. MARYS LETTER AND THE COUNCH-'S ANSWER. 537 What time king Edward, by long sickness, became more feeble and weak, i ho marriage was provided, concluded, and shortly after solemnized in May, 15.">3, between the lord Guilford, son of the duke of Northumberland, and lady Jane Grey, daughter of the duke of Suffolk, and grand-niece of Henry VIII. When king Edward was dead, this lady Jane was established in the kingdom by the nobles' consent, and proclaimed queen at London, and in other cities where was any great resort. In the meantime, while things were working at London, Mary, who had knowledge of her bro- ther's death, wrote to the lords of the council, reminding them of her title to the crown, and complaining of the preparations made to withstand her. ""Wherefore, my lords," she concluded, "we require you, and charge you and every one of you, that of your allegiance which you owe to God and us, and to none other, for our honour and the surety of our person, only employ yourselves; and forthwith, upon receipt hereof, cause our right and title to the crown and government of this realm to be proclaimed in our city of London and other places, as to your wisdom shall seem good, and as to this case appertaineth; not failing hereof, as our very trust is in you. And this letter, signed with our hand, shall be your sufficient warrant in this behalf." To this letter the lords of the council replied, that after king Edward's death the lady Jane was invested with and possessed the just right and title to the imperial crown by the ancient laws of the realm, and also by the late king's letters patent, sealed with the great seal of England in presence of the most part of the nobles, councillors, and judges, with divers others grave and sage personages, assenting and subscribing to the same ; and that they must therefore, as of most bounden duty and alle- giance, assent unto her said grace, and to none other. At the same time reminding the lady Mary, that the marriage between her father and the lady Katharine being declared null, she was justly made illegitimate and uninheritable to the crown. " Wherefore," they said, " we can no less do, but, for the quiet both of the realm and you also, advertise you to surcease by any pretence to vex and molest any of our sovereign lady queen Jane's subjects from their true faith and allegiance due unto her grace : assuring you, that if you will for respect show yourself quiet and obedient, (as you ought,) you shall find us all and several ready to do you any service that we with duty may, and be glad, with your quietness, to preserve the common state of this realm, wherein you may be otherwise grievous unto us, to yourself, and to them. And thus we bid you most heartily well to fare, your ladyship's friends, showing yourself an obedient subject. From the Tower of London, in this ninth of July, 1553." This letter was signed by Canterbury, Winchester, Ely, Northumberland, Bedford, Northampton, Suffolk, Arundel, Shrewsbury, Pembroke, Riche, and twelve other lords of the council. On receiving which the lady Mary withdrew into Norfolk and Suffolk, where the duke of Northumberland was hated for the service that had been done there under king Edward, in subduing the rebels ; and there, gathering to her such aid of the common people on every side as she might, kept herself close for a space within Framlingham castle. Here she was joined by many who promised her their aid, on condition that she would not attempt the alteration of the re- ligion established by king Edward. This was readily agreed to by Mary; 538 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. upon which they asserted her right, and she promised to maintain the true religion, and the laws of the land. Northumberland's proceeding against the duke of Somerset, and the suspicions that lay on him as the author of the late king's untimely death, begat a great aversion in the people to him, which disposed them to set up queen Mary. She in the mean time was very active. She gathered all in the neighbouring counties about her. The men of Suffolk were generally for the reformation, and a great body of them came to her, and asked if she would promise not to alter the religion established in king Edward's days. She assured them she would make no changes; but should be content with the private exercise of her own religion. Upon this they all vowed to live and die with her. The earl of Sussex, and several others, raised forces and proclaimed her queen. When this reached the knowledge of the council, they sent the earl of Huntingdon's brother to raise men in Buckinghamshire, and meet the forces that should be sent from London, at Newmarket. The duke of Northumberland was ordered to command the army. He was now much distracted in his thoughts ; for it was of equal importance to keep London and the privy counsellors steady, and to conduct the army well: a misfortune in either of these was likely to be fatal to him. He was at a loss what to do: not a man of spirit who was firm to him could be left behind; and yet it was most necessary to disperse the force that was daily growing about queen Mary. The lady Jane and the council were removed to the Tower, not only for state, but for security ; for here the council were upon the matter prisoners. He could do no more, but lay a strict charge on the council to be firm to lady Jane's interests. He therefore marched out of London with 2000 horse, and 6000 foot, on the 14th of July : but no acclamations or wishes of success were to be heard as he passed through the streets. The council gave the emperor notice of th". lady Jane's succession, and complained of the disturbance that was raised by Mary, and that his. ambassador had officiously meddled in their affairs ; but the emperor would not receive the letters. Mary's party in the mean time continued daily to augment. Hastings went over to her with 4000 men out of Buckinghamshire, and she was proclaimed queen in many places. At length the privy council began to see their danger, and to think how to avoid it. The earl of Arundel hated Northumberland. The marquis of Winchester was dexterous in shifting sides for his advantage. The earl of Pembroke's son had married the lady Jane's sister, which made him think it necessary to redeem the danger he was in by a speedy turn. To these many others were joined. They pretended it was necessary to give an audience to the foreign am- bassadors, who would not have it in the Tower : and the earl of Pem- broke's house was chosen, he being least suspected. When they got out, they resolved to declare for queen Mary, and rid themselves of Northumberland's uneasy yoke, which they knew they must bear if he were victorious. They sent for the lord mayor and aldermen, and easily gained their concurrence. They then went imme- diately to Cheapside, and proclaimed the queen; and from thence they went to St. Paul's, where Te deum was sung. They sent next to the SUBT1LTY OF QUEEN MARY. 539 Tower, requiring the duke of Suffolk to quit the government of that place, and the lady Jane to lay down the title of queen. To this she submitted with as much greatness of mind as her father shewed of abjectness. They sent also orders to Northumberland to dismiss his forces, and to obey Mary as queen; and the earl of Arundel and lord Paget were sent to carry these welcome tidings to her. When Nor- thumberland heard of the change that was in London, he disbanded his forces, went to the market-place at Cambridge, where he then was, and proclaimed the queen. The earl of Arundel was sent to apprehend him, and when he was brought to him, in the most servile manner he fell at his feet to beg his favour. He and three of his sons, and Sir Thomas Palmer — his wicked instrument against the duke of Somerset — were all sent to the Tower. All people now flocked to implore the queen's favour, and Ridley among the rest; but he too was sent to the Tower: for she was both offended with him for his sermon, and resolved to put Bonner again in the see of London. Some of the judges, and several noblemen were also sent to the Tower; among the rest the duke of Suffolk, who was three days after set at liberty. He was a weak man, and could do little harm, he was consequently chosen as the first instance towards whom the queen should express her clemency. She came to London on the 3rd of August, and on the way was met by her sister, lady Elizabeth, with a thousand horse, whom she had raised to come to the queen's assistance. On arriving at the Tower, she liberated the duke of Norfolk, the duchess of Somerset, and Gardiner; also the lord Courtenay, son to the marquis of Exeter, who had been kept there ever since his father's attainder, whom she made earl of Devonshire. In this easy manner was Mary I. seated on the throne of England. To a disagreeable person and weak mind, she united bigotry, superstition, and cruelty. She seems to have inherited more of her mother's than her father's qualities. Henry was impatient, rough, and ungovernable; but Catherine, while she assumed the character of a saint, harboured bitter rancour and hatreol against the protestants. It was the same with her daughter Mary, as appears from a letter in her own hand-writing, now in the British museum. In this letter, which is addressed to bishop Gardiner, she declares her fixed intention of burning every protestant; and it contains an insinuation, that as soon as circum- stances would permit, she would restore back to the church the lands that had been taken from the convents. This, however, discovers an ignorance, equalled only by her tyranny, for the convents had been demolished, except a few of their churches; and the rents were in the hands of the first nobility, who, rather than part with them, would have overturned the government both in church and state. On some occasions Mary had discovered no small degree of subtilty. During her father's life, " The king's displeasure at her was such," says bishop Burnet, " that neither the duke of Norfolk nor Gardiner durst venture to intercede for her." Cranmer was the only man who hazarded it, and did it effectually. But after her mother's death, she hearkened to other counsels, so that upon Anne Boleyn's fall, she made a full sub- mission to her father, as was mentioned before. She did also in many letters which she writ both to her father and to Cromwell, " Protest 540 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. great sorrow for her former stubbornness, and declared, that she put her soul in his hand, and that her conscience should be always directed by him ; and being asked what her opinion was concerning pilgrimages, purgatory, and reliques, she answered, that she had no opinion, but such as she received from the king, who had her whole heart in his keeping, and might imprint upon it in these and in all other matters whatever his inestimable virtue, high wisdom, and excellent learning, should think convenient for her." So perfectly had she learned the style that she knew was most acceptable to her father. Her promise to the Suffolk men also shewed the craft of her character, which was equalled only by its cruelty. The sword of power being now in her hand, she began to employ it against those who had supported the title of lady Jane Grey. This devoted victim remained with her husband, lord Guildford, almost five months in the Tower, waiting her pleasure. The duke of Northumberland had offers of pardon on con- dition of renouncing his religion and hearing mass; which he not only did, but also exhorted the people to return to the catholic faith. Not- withstanding this, within a month after confinement he was condemned and beheaded. The papists immediately published and spread abroad his recantation; but the duke, in consequence of his crimes arising from a sordid ambition, died unpitied; nay, he was insulted on the scaffold by those who remembered in what manner he had acted to their beloved Somerset. Sir Thomas Palmer and Sir John Gates were the next who suffered. The former confessed his faith in the reformed religion, and lamented that he had not lived more conformably to its precepts. Mary having thus begun her reign with the blood of these men, and with hearing mass in the Tower, clearly evinced the career in which she intended to proceed, and that she should but little regard the promise she had made to the Suffolk men. Besides these ill omens, there were other things which every day more and more discomfited the people, and which too plainly betrayed the queen's aversion to the reformation. Gardiner was made lord chancellor and bishop of Winchester. Bonner was advanced to the bishopric of London, by displacing Ridley. Day was promoted to the see of Durham, by displacing Scory. Tonstal was made bishop of Chichester, and Heath bishop of Worcester: Hooper was committed to the Fleet; and Vesie was made bishop of Exeter, by removing Miles Coverdale. All these innovations greatly alarmed the protestants, and afforded equal rejoicings to their enemies. Having thus laid the foun- dation of her reign in blood and treachery, Mary removed from the Tower to Hampton-court, and caused a parliament to be summoned on the 10th of October ensuing. We have mentioned Dr. Ridley, bishop of London, among those who were removed. He was a learned and pious prelate, who in the time of queen Jane, by order of the council, preached a sermon at Paul's Cross, declaring his opinion concerning the lady Mary, and enumerating the evils that might arise by admitting her to the crown : prophesying, as it were, that she would bring in a foreign power to reign over them, and subvert the christian religion then happily established. This, with ano- ther sermon after things were changed, disconcerted the queen beyond TUMULT AT PAUL'S CllOSS. 541 measure. The Sunday following her accession to the throne, Mr. Rogers preached, discoursing very learnedly on the gospel for the day. Where- upon Mary, perceiving things not to go forward according to her mind, consulted with her council how to bring about by other means, what by open law she could not well accomplish; and accordingly, by pro- clamation, prohibited any man from preaching or reading openly the word of God in churches, except by licence, which Gardiner took care to give only to such as would conform to his doctrine. The clergy dif- fered in opinion how far they were bound to obey this prohibition : some thought they might forbear public preaching when they were so re- quired, if they made it up by private conferences and instructions : others thought, that if this had been only a particular hardship upon a few, regard to peace and order should have obliged them to submit to it; but since it was general, and done on purpose to extinguish the light of the gospel, they ought to go on, and preach at their peril. Of this last sort several were put in prison for their disobedience, among others Hooper and Coverdale. On the 22d of August, the queen declared in council, That though she was fixed in her own religion, yet she would not compel others to its observance ; but would leave that to the motions of God's Spirit, and the labours of good preachers. The day after Bonner went to St. Paul's, and Bourne his chaplain preached, and extolled Bonner much, inveigh ing against the sufferings he had undergone. He took occasion from the gospel of the day to speak largely in justification of Bonner, saying that four years ago he had preached from the same text, and in the same place, for which he was most cruelly and unjustly cast into that most vile dungeon the Marshalsea, where he was confined during the reign of king Edward. The sermon provoked his hearers so as to cause them to murmur and stir in such a sort, that the mayor and aldermen feared an uproar : some cast stones at the preacher, and one hurled a dagger at him. In short, the tumult became so violent that Bourne was silenced, broke off his discourse, and durst no more appear in that place ; his discourse tended much to the dispraise of king Edward, which the people could in no wise endure. Mr. Bradford then stood forth, at the request of Mr. Bourne's brother, and spoke so mildly and effectually to the people, that with a few words quite pacified them. This done, he and Mr. Rogers conducted Mr. Bourne home ; for which generous conduct they were both, shortly after, rewarded with long imprisonment, and at last with fire in Smithfield, under the pretence, that the authority they shewed in quelling the tumult was a proof of their being the authors of it! It has already been intimated that all the pulpits were now put under an interdict, till the preachers should obtain a licence from Gardiner : and that he resolved to grant licences to none but such as would preach as he should direct them. His conduct encouraged the papists generally, and in their love of ancient rites and superstitions they began speedily to replace their images, and to revive their ceremonies in many of the churches. Every thing in fact seemed to threaten a subversion of the reformation, and the immediate re-establishment of all the errors and enormities of the Romish church. 542 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. SECTION II. THE REPORT OF THE DISPUTATION HAD AND BEGUN IN THE CONVOCATION HOUSE AT LONDON, APPOINTED BY THE QUEEN, OCT. 18, 1553. On October 18th, Dr. Weston, who had been chosen prolocutor, certified to the house, that it was the queen's pleasure the learned men there as- sembled should debate of matters of religion, and constitute laws, which her grace and the parliament would ratify. " And for that," said he " there is a book of late set forth, called the Catechism, bearing the name of this honourable synod, and yet put forth without your consents, as I have learned ; being a book very pestiferous, and full of heresies ; and likewise a book of Common Prayer very abominable," as it pleased him to term it. "I thought it therefore best, first to begin with the articles of the Catechism, concerning the sacrament of the altar, to confirm the natural presence of Christ in the same, and also transubstantiation. Wherefore, it shall be lawful, on Friday next, for all men freely to speak their conscience in these matters, that doubts may be removed, and they satisfied therein." The Friday coming, being the 20th of October, when men had thought they should have entered disputations of the questions proposed, the prolocutor exhibited two bills to the house : the one for the natural pre- sence of Christ in the sacrament of the altar, and the other concerning the Catechism, denying its being published by the consent of that house, re- quiring all them to subscribe to the same, as he himself had done. The whole house assented, except the deans of Rochester and Exeter, the arch- deacons of Winchester, Hereford, and Buckingham, and one more. And whilst the rest were about to subscribe these two articles, John Philpot spoke concerning the articles of the Catechism, and asserted that it had been composed by the order and authority of the convocation. Moreover, he said, as concerning the article of the natural presence in the sacrament, that it was against reason and order of learning, and also very prejudicial to the truth, that men should be moved to subscribe before the matter were thoroughly examined and discussed. But when he saw his allegation was to no purpose, he requested the prolocutor that there might be an equal number of persons of both sides concerned in this disputation, and desired that he would intercede with the lords, that some of those that were learned, and setters-forth of the same Catechism, might be admitted into the house ; and that Dr. Ridley and Mr. Rogers, with two or three more, might be liberated to be present at this disputation, and to be associated with them. This request was thought reasonable, and was proposed to the bishops, who returned for answer, that it was out of their power to call such persons to the house, since some of them were prisoners ; but they would petition the council in this behalf, and in case any of them were absent that ought to be of the house, they were agreeable to their admission. After this, they minding to have entered into disputation, there came a gentleman as messenger from the lord great master, signify- ing unto the prolocutor, that the lord great master and the earl of Devon- shire would be present at the disputations, and therefore he deferred the same unto Monday, at one of the clock at afternoon. DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 543 Upon that day, the prolocutor made a protestation, in the presence of many earls, lords, knights, gentlemen, and divers others of the court and of the city also, that they of the house had appointed this disputation, not to call in question the truth to which they had subscribed, but that those gainsayers might be resolved respecting their doubts. Then he demanded of Mr. Haddon, whether he would reason against the questions proposed, or no. To whom he answered, that he had cer- tified him before in writing that he would not, since the request of such learned men as were demanded to be assistant with them, would not be granted. Mr. Elmar was likewise asked, who made the like answer : adding that they had already too much injured the truth by their sub- scribing before the subjects were discussed. Mr. Weston, turning to Mr. Cheney, or Cheyney, desired to know whether he would propose his doubts concerning transubstantiation ; when the latter answered, " I would gladly my doubts to be resolved which move me not to believe transubstan- tiation. The first is out of St. Paul to the Corinthians, who, speaking of the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ, called it ofttimes bread, after the consecration. The second is out of Origen, who, speaking of this sacrament, saith that the material part thereof goeth down to the ex- crements. The third is out of Theodoret, who making mention of the sacramental bread and wine after the consecration, saith, that they go not out of their former substance, form, and shape. These be some of my doubts, among many others, wherein I require to be answered." Then the prolocutor assigned Dr. Moreman to answer him, who to St. Paul answered him thus : " The sacrament is called by him, bread indeed ; but it is thus to be understood : that it is the sacrament of bread ; that is, the form of bread." Then Mr. Cheney alleged, that Hesychius called the sacrament both bread and flesh. " Yea," said Moreman, " Hesychius calleth it bread, because it was bread, and not because it is so." And, passing over Origen, he came to Theodoret, and said, that men mistook his authority by interpreting a general into a special, as Peter Martyr has done in the place of Theodoret, interpreting ovola for substance, which is a special signification of the word; whereas ovala is a general word, as well to accidents as to substance. " And therefore I answer thus unto Theodoret : that the sacramental bread and wine do not go out of their former substance, form, and shape; that is to say, not out of their acci- dental substance and shape." After this Mr. Cheney sat down ; and by and by Mr. Elmar rose, de- claring that Moreman's answer to Theodoret was not just or sufficient, but an illusion and subtle evasion, contrary to Theodoret's meaning," etc. After this stood up John Philpot ; and then began a further discussion, in which Dr. Moreman, the dean of Rochester, and Dr. Watson took part. The night coming on, the proculator broke up the disputation for that time; and appointed Philpot to be the first that should begin the dis- putation next day, concerning the presence of Christ in the sacrament. On Wednesday, October 25th, John Philpot was prepared to enter upon the disputation, minding first to have made a certain oration in Latin, of the matter of Christ's presence which was then in question ; which the prolocutor perceiving, he forbade him to make any declaration or oration in Latin, but to deliver his arguments in English. After remind- 544 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. ing him of what he had appointed, and that his arguments were prepared in Latin, Philpot added, " You have sore disappointed me, thus suddenly to go from your former order : but I will accomplish your commandment, leaving mine oration apart ; and I will come to my arguments, which, as well as so sudden a warning can serve, I will make in English. But, be- fore I bring forth any argument, I will, in one word, declare what manner of presence I disallow in the sacrament, to the intent the hearers may the better understand to what end and effect mine arguments shall tend ; not to deny utterly the presence of Christ in his sacrament, truly ministered ac- cording to his institution ; but only that gross and carnal presence, which you of this house have already subscribed unto, to be in the sacrament of the altar, contrary to the truth and manifest meaning of the Scriptures : That by transubstantiation of the sacramental bread and wine, Christ's natural body should, by the virtue of the words pronounced by the priest, be contained and included under the forms of bread and wine. This kind of presence, imagined by men, I do deny, and against this I will reason." But before he could end his speech, he was interrupted by the prolocutor, and commanded to descend to his argument. " I am about it," quoth Philpot, " if you will let me alone. But first I must needs ask a question of my respondent, Dr. Chedsey, concerning a word or two of your supposition ; that is, of the sacrament of the altar, what he meaneth thereby ? Dr. Chedsey answered, that in their supposition they took the sacrament of the altar and the sacrament of the mass to be all one. '* Then," quoth Philpot, " the sacrament of the altar, which ye reckon to be all one with the mass, once justly abolished, and now put in full use again, is no sacrament, neither is Christ in any wise present in it." This he offered to prove before the whole house, the queen and her council, or before six of the most learned men of that house of a contrary opinion, and refused none. " And if I shall not be able to maintain, by God's word, that I have said, and confound those six which shall take upon them to withstand me in this point, let me be burned with as many fagots as be in London, before the court gates !" This he uttered with great vehe- mency of spirit. The prolocutor, urged by some that were about him, consented that he should be allowed an argument, so that he would be brief therein. " I will be as brief," quoth Philpot, "as I may conveniently. And, first, I will ground my arguments upon the authority of Scripture, whereon all the buildings of our faith ought to be grounded ; and after I shall confirm the same by ancient doctors of the church. And I take the occasion of my first argument out of Matthew xxviii., of the saying of the angel to the three Marys, seeking Christ at the sepulchre, saying, " He is risen, he is not here;" and, Luke xxiii., the angel asketh them, " Why seek ye the living among the dead?" Likewise the Scripture testifieth that Christ is risen, ascended into heaven, and sitteth on the right hand of the Father ; all which is spoken of his natural body ; therefore it is not on earth included in the sacrament. I will confirm this yet more effectu- ally by the saying of Christ in John xvi. : " I came from my Father into the world, and now I leave the world and go away to my Father :" the which coming and going he meant of his natural body. Therefore we may affirm thereby, that it is not now in the world. But I look here to be DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 545 answered with a blind distinction of visibly and invisibly, that he is visibly departed in his humanity, but invisibly he remaineth notwithstanding in the sacrament. — But I will prove that no such distinction ought to take awav the force of that argument, by the answer which Christ's disciples uave unto him, speaking these words : ' Now thou speakest plainly, and interest forth no proverb;' which words St. Cyril, interpreting, saith, 1 That Christ spake without any manner of ambiguity and obscure speech.' And therefore I conclude hereby thus, that if Christ spake plainly and without parable, saying, ' I leave the world now, and go away to my Father,' then that obscure, dark, and imperceptible presence of Christ's natural body to remain in the sacrament upon earth invisibly, contrary to the plain words of Christ, ought not to be allowed ; for nothing can be more uncertain, or more parabolical or insensible, than so to say. Here now will I attend what you will answer, and so descend to the confirma- tion of all that I have said, by ancient writers." Then Dr. Chedsey took upon him to answer every point progressively. First to the saying of the angel, " Christ is not here;" and " Why seek ye the living among the dead?" he answered, that these sayings per- tained nothing to the presence of Christ's natural body in the sacra- ment, but that they were spoken of Christ's body being in the sepulchre, when the three Marys thought him to have been in the grave still. And, therefore, the angel said, " Why do ye seek him that liveth among the dead ?" And to the authority of St. John, where Christ saith, " Now I leave the world and go to my Father;" he meant that of his ascension. And so likewise did Cyril, interpreting the saying of the disciples, who knew that Christ would visibly ascend to heaven ; but that doth not exclude the invisible presence of his natural body in the sacrament. St. Chrysostom, writing to the people of Antioch, affirms the same, comparing Elias and Christ together, and Elias's cloak, and Christ's flesh. "When Elias," saith he, "was taken up in the fiery chariot, he left his cloak behind him unto his disciple Elisseus. But Christ as- cending into heaven, took his flesh with him, and left also his flesh behind him." From whence we may justly conclude, that Christ's flesh is visibly ascended into heaven, yet abideth invisibly in the sacrament of the altar. Philpot replied, " You have not directly answered to the words of the angel, ' Christ is risen and is not here;' because you have omitted that which was the chief point. For I proceed further, as thus, He is risen, ascended, and sitteth on the right hand of God the Father: therefore he is not remaining on earth. Neither is your explication of Cyril suffi- cient. But I will presently return to your interpretation of Cyril, and plainly declare it, after I have refuted the authority of Chrysostom, which is one of the chief principles that you adduce to support your carnal presence in the sacrament; which being well understood, per- taineth nothing thereunto." The prolocutor was irritated and started with impatience to think that one of the chief pillars on this point should be overthrown. He therefore recited the authority in Latin, and after- wards turned it into English, calling the attention of all present to remark that saying of Chrysostom which he thought invincible on their side. " But I will make it appear," said Philpot, "that it serves little 2 N 546 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. for your purpose, for I have two objections to propose ; one drawn from Scripture, the other from the very place of Chrysostom himself. " First, where he seemeth to say, that Christ ascending took his flesh with him, and left his flesh also behind him, truth it is : for we all do con- fess and believe that Christ took on him our human nature in the Virgin Mary's womb, and through his passion in the same, hath united us to his flesh ; and thereby are we become one flesh with him : so that Chrysostom might thereby right well say, that Christ, ascending, took his flesh, which he received of the Virgin Mary, away with him ; and also left his flesh behind him, which are we that be his elect in the world, who are the members of Christ, and flesh of his flesh, as very aptly St. Paul to the Ephesians, chap, v., doth testify : ' We are flesh of his flesh, and bone of his bones.' And if percase any man will reply that he entreateth there of the sacrament, so that this interpretation cannot so aptly be applied unto him in that place, then will I yet interpret Chrysostom another way by himself. For in that place, a few lines before those words which were here now lately read, are these words : that Christ, after he ascended into heaven, left unto us, endued with his sacraments, his flesh in mysteries — that is, sacramentally. And that mystical flesh Christ leaveth as well to his church in the sacrament of baptism, as in the sacramental bread and wine. St. Paul doth witness, ' As many of us as are baptized in Christ have put upon us Christ;' and thus you may understand that St. Chrysostom maketh nothing for your carnal and gross presence in the sacrament." The fifth day's debate was opened on Friday, October 27th. The pro- locutor began with observing, that the convocation had spent two days in disputing about one father, which was Theodoret, and about one Greek word, (ova/a ;) and now they were assembled to answer all things tnat could be objected; therefore, he desired they would shortly pro- pound their arguments. Upon this Haddon, dean of Exeter, requested leave to oppose Mr. Watson, who, with Morgan and Harpsfield, were appointed to answer him. Mr. Haddon then demanded, if any substance of bread and wine remained after consecration? To which Watson replied by asking another question, namely, whether he thought there was a real presence of Christ's body or not? Mr. Haddon said, it was a breach of order that one, who was appointed respondent, should be opponent; nor should he, whose business was to object, answer. Mr. Haddon then proceeded to shew, from the words of Theodoret, that the substance of bread and wine remained; for his words are; "The same they were before the sanctification, which they are after." Mr. Watson said, that Theodoret meant not the same substance, but the same essence. On this they were driven again to a discussion of the Greek word above mentioned ; and Mr. Haddon proved it to mean a substance, both by its etymology, and by the words of Theodoret. He then asked Watson, when the bread and wine became symbols? Watson answered, " After consecration, and not before." Then Mr. Haddon raised out of his author the following syllogism : " Theodoret saith, that the same thing the bread and wine were before they were symbols, the same they still remain, in nature and substance, after they are symbols. Bread and wine they were before. Therefore bread and wine they are after." DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 547 Mr. Cheyney addressing liimself particularly to Mr. Watson, began after this manner. " You said that Mr. Haddon was not fit to dispute, because he had not granted the natural and real presence, but you are much less fit to answer, because you take away the substance of the sacrament." Watson said, that he had subscribed to the real presence, and should not go from that; but he would explain what he meant by subscribing to the real presence, far otherwise than they supposed. He then prosecuted Haddon's argument, proving that the Greek word before discussed was a substance, using the same reason that Haddon did: and when he had received the same answer that was made to Haddon, he told them it was but a poor refuge, when they could not answer, to deny the author, and proved the author to be a catholic doctor; that being proved, he further confirmed what was said of the nature and substance. The prolocutor perceiving that Mr. Watson was closely attacked, called upon Mr. Morgan to help him out, who said that Theodoret did no more than what was justifiable ; for, first he granted the truth, and then, for fear of such as were not fully instructed in the faith, he spake mystically: he granted the truth, by calling the bread and wine the body and blood of Christ; after which he seems to give somewhat to the senses and to reason : but that Theodoret was of the same opinion with them, will appear from his words that follow, which are the cause of what went before; therefore he says, the immortality, &c. whereby it appears, that he meant the divine, and not the human nature. Watson now said: " Suppose Theodoret be on your side, he is but one; and what is one against the consent of the whole church?" Chey- ney affirmed, that not only Theodoret was of his opinion, that the sub- stance of bread and wine do remain, but many others also, particularly Irenaeus, who making mention of this sacrament says: " When the cup which is mingled with wine, and the bread that is broken, do receive the word of God, it is made the Eucharist of the body and blood of Christ, by which the substance of our flesh is nourished and doth con- sist." From whence I infer, that if the thanksgiving doth nourish our body, then there is some substance besides Christ's body. To this both Watson and Morgan replied, observing, that the words, " by which," in that sentence of Irenseus, were to be referred to the next antecedent, that is to the body and blood of Christ; and not to the wine which is in the cup, and the bread which is broken. Mr. Cheyney said, that it was not the body of Christ which nourished our bodies; and granting that the flesh of Christ nourisheth to immortality, yet it doth not make for their argument, although it might be true; no more than that answer which was made to the allegation out of St. Paul, ' the bread which we break, is it not the communion of the body of Christ?' with many others; whereunto you answered, that bread was not to be taken there in its proper signification, that is, not for that it was bread, but for that it had been so; any more than the rod of Aaron was taken for a ser- pent, because it had been a serpent." After this, Mr. Cheyney brought in Hesychius, and used the same reason that he did, of burning of symbols ; and he asked them, What was burnt ? Watson said we must not inquire ; when Cheyney asked, Whereof came 548 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. those ashes — not from substance? or can any substance arise from accidents? Here Mr. Harpsfield was called to the assistance of Watson, and began with a fair preamble about the omnipotency of God, and the weakness of human reason as to the comprehension and attainment of religious matters; observing, that whatsoever we saw, or tasted, it was not convenient to trust our senses. He also related a curious legend out of St. Cyprian, how a woman saw the sacrament burning in her coffer! " Now that which burned there," said Harpsfield, " burneth here, and becometh ashes; but what that was which burnt we cannot tell." Mr. Cheyney continued still to force them with this question — " What was it that was burnt? it was either the substance of bread, or else the substance of the body of Christ — which is too great an ab- surdity to grant." At length they answered, it was a miracle. At this Mr. Cheyney smiling, said that he would then proceed no further. Dr. Weston now asked the company, whether those men had not been sufficiently answered? Certain priests said, "Yes;" but the mul- titude exclaimed — " No, no!" Dr. Weston answered sharply, that he asked not the judgment of the rude multitude, but such as were mem- bers of that house. He then demanded of Mr. Haddon and his fellow- disputants, whether they would answer them other three days? Haddon, Cheyney, and Elmar all replied, " No." Upon which the archdeacon of Winchester, Mr. Philpot, said they should be answered; and though all others refused to answer, yet he would not ; but would himself an- swer them all in turns. The prolocutor abused him, saying, that he should go to Bedlam ; to whom the archdeacon seriously answered, that he himself was much more suited to the place. On the sixth debate, October 30th, the prolocutor, addressing himself to Mr. Philpot, demanded whether, in the questions before propounded, he would answer their objections? Mr. Philpot said if they would answer but one of his arguments sufficiently, he would reply to all the objections they could bring. The prolocutor then bid him state his argument, and it should be resolutely controverted by some of them. Mr. Philpot then proceeded — " On Wednesday last, I was compelled to silence before I had prosecuted half my argument, the sum of which was, that the human body of Christ had ascended into heaven, and gone to the right hand of God the Father; wherefore, after the ima- gination of man, it could not be situated upon earth invisibly in the sacrament of the altar. My argument is this. One and the self-same nature receiveth not any thing that is contrary to itself. But the body of Christ is a human nature, distinct from the Deity, and is a proper nature of itself. I infer therefore that it cannot receive any thing that is contrary to that nature, and that varieth from itself. To be bodily pre- sent and to be bodily absent — to be on earth, and to be in heaven — and all at one time, are things incompatible with the nature of a human body. Therefore, it cannot be said of the human body of Christ, that the self-same body is both in heaven and on the earth at one instant, either visibly or invisibly." Morgan objected to the first part of the argument, which Philpot supported out of Vigilius, an ancient writer. Morgan cavilled still, and said it was no scripture, and desired him DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 549 to prove the same from thence ; upon which Philpot quoted St. Paul, who says that " Christ is made like unto us in all points, except sin ; " adding, " As one of our bodies cannot receive in itself anything contrary to the nature of a body, as to be in St. Paul's Church and in Westminster Abbey at one and the same instant ; or to be in London visibly and in Lincoln invisibly at one time; whereof he concluded that the body of Christ might not be in more places than one, which is in heaven ; and so consequently not to be contained in the sacrament of the altar." To this the prolocutor answered that it was not true that Christ was like unto us in all points, as Phiipot took it, except sin. For that Christ was not conceived by the seed of man, as we be. Whereunto Philpot replied, that Christ's concep- tion was prophesied before, by the angel, to be supernatural ; but after he had received our nature by the operation of the Holy Ghost in the Virgin's womb, he became in all points like unto us, except sin. Morgan again cavilled ; when Philpot said that he was not destitute of other Scriptures to confirm his argument, quoting the words of St. Peter : " Whom heaven must receive until the consummation of all things," etc ; which words were spoken of his humanity. " And if," said he, " heaven must hold Christ, then can he not be here on earth, in the sacrament, as is pretended." After this the prolocutor spake to Philpot, and said, " Lest thou shouldest slander the house, and say that we will not suffer you to declare your mind, we are content that you shall come into the house as you have done before ; so that you be apparelled in a long gown and a tippet, like as we be, and that you shall not speak but when I command you." "Then" quoth Philpot, " I had rather be absent altogether." Thus did they reason, till at length, about the middle of December, queen Mary interfered, and sending to Bonner, bishop of London, commanded him to dissolve the convocation. Near the same time the parliament broke up, having first repealed all such statutes as concerned any alteration of religion, and administration of the sacraments, in the reign of Edward VI. In this session also the parliament were ac- quainted with the queen's intended marriage with Philip, the emperor's son. In the mean time, cardinal Pole, having been sent for by Mary, was requested by the emperor to stay with him, to the intent, according to general opinion and report, that the cardinal's presence in England should not be a bar to the marriage between his son and the queen; to accomplish which, he sent a most splendid embassy, with full power; which had such good success, that, after a few days, the marriage be- tween Mary and Philip was settled on the following terms. The go- vernment to rest solely with the queen. Her hand alone to give authority to every thing. No Spaniard to be capable of any office. No change to be made in the law, nor the queen to be required to go out of England against her will, nor their issue but by consent of the nobility. The queen to have of jointure 60,000Z. out of Spain. Their son to inherit Burgundy and the Netherlands, as well as England. Their daughters to succeed to her crown, and to have such portions from Spain as were generally given to king's daughters. The prince to have no share in the government after her death. 550 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. SECTION III. WYATT's REBELLION — LADY JANE GREY CONVERSATION WITH FECKNAM LETTERS BEHAVIOUR AT EXECUTION, WITH OTHER MATTERS. The year 1554 commenced with persecution. Dr. Crome was com- mitted to the Fleet, for preaching without, license on Christmas-day ; and Thomas Wootton, a protestant esquire, on account of his religious profes- sion. The publication of the queen's intended marriage was very ill re- ceived by the people and several of the nobility ; and soon a rebellion arose, whereof sir Thomas Wyatt was one of the chief promoters. He said that the queen and council would, by this marriage, bring upon the realm slavery and popery. He resided in the county of Kent, and as soon as intelligence was received in London of the insurrection there, and of the duke of Suffolk having fled into Warwick and Leicestershire, with a view of raising forces in those counties, the queen caused them both, with the Carews of Devonshire, to be proclaimed traitors. At the same time she sent some forces, under the duke of Norfolk, into Kent; but, on reaching Rochester-bridge, he found himself so deserted, that he was obliged to return to London. The earl of Huntingdon was sent into Warwickshire to apprehend the duke of Suffolk, who, entering the city of Coventry before Suffolk, frustrated his designs In his distress, the duke confided in a servant of his, named Underwood, in Astley-park, who, like a false traitor, betrayed him. And so he was brought to the Tower of London. Sir Peter Carew, hearing what was done, fled into France ; but the others were taken. Wyatt came towards London in the beginning of February. The queen, hearing of Wyatt's coming, came into the city to the Guildhall, where she made a vehement oration against him. When she had concluded, Gardiner, standing by her, with great admiration cried to the people, "Oh, how happy are we, to whom God hath given such a wise and learned prince !" etc. On the 3rd of February, lord Cobham was committed to the Tower. Wyatt was now 4000 strong, and came to Southwark, but could not force the bridge of London : he was informed the city would all rise if he should come to their aid ; but he could not find boats for passing into Middlesex or Essex, so he was forced to go to the bridge of Kingston. On reaching it, he found it cut ; yet his men repaired it, and he reached Hyde-park the next morning. Weary and disheartened, his troops were reduced to 500, and the queen's forces could have easily dispersed them ; yet they let them go forward, that they might be obliged to surrender at discretion. He marched through the Strand, and got to Ludgate. Re- turning from thence, he was opposed at Temple-bar, and there surrendered himself to sir Clement Parson, who brought him to court, with the re- mains of his army, after about one hundred had been killed. A great number of the captives were hanged ; and Wyatt was beheaded on Tower hill, and then quartered. It was now resolved to proceed against lady Jane Grey and her hus- band. She had lived six months in the hourly meditation of death ; so she was not much surprised when the catastrophe arrived. Fecknam, LADY JANE GREY'S RELTGIOUS OPINIONS. 551 alias Howman, was sent from the queen, two days before her death, to Commune with her, and to reduce her from the doctrine of Christ to queen Mary's religion : the effect of which communication here followeth. Fecknam. Madam, 1 lament your heavy case; and yet I doubt not but that von bear out this sorrow of yours with a constant and patient mind. Jane. You are welcome unto me, sir, if your coming be to give Chris- tian exhortation. And as for my heavy case, I thank God, I do so little lament it, that rather I account the same for a more manifest declaration of God's favour towards me, than ever he showed me at any time before. Therefore, there is no cause why either you or others which bear me good will should lament or be grieved with this my case, being a thing so profitable to my soul's health. <- Fecknam. I am here come to you at this present, sent from the queen and her council, to instruct you in the true doctrine of the right faith : although I have so great confidence in you, that I shall have, I trust, little need to travel with you much therein. Jane. Forsooth, I heartily thank the queen's highness, who is not un- mindful of her humble subject ; and I hope that you will no less do your duty therein, truly and faithfully, according to that you were sent for. Fecknam. What is then required of a Christian man ? Jane. That he should believe in God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost: three Persons and one God. Fecknam. What ? Is there nothing else to be required or looked for in a Christian, but to believe in him ? Jane. Yes, we must love him with all our heart, with all our soul, and with all our mind ; and our neighbour as ourself. Fecknam. Why ? then faith justifieth not, nor saveth not. Jane. Yes verily, faith, as St. Paul saith, alone justifieth. Fecknam. Why? St. Paul saith, " If I have all faith without love, it is nothing." Jane. True it is ; for how can I love him whom I trust not ? Or how can I trust him whom I love not ? Faith and love go both together, and yet love is comprehended in faith. Fecknam. How shall we love our neighbour ? Jane. To love our neighbour is to feed the hungry, to clothe the naked, to give drink to the thirsty, and to do to him as we would to ourselves. Fecknam. Why ? then it is necessary unto salvation to do good works also, and it is not sufficient only to believe. Jane. I deny that, and I affirm that faith only saveth ; but it is meet for a Christian, in token that he followeth his master Christ, to do good works ; yet may we not say that they profit to our salvation. For when we have done all, yet we be unprofitable servants, and faith only in Christ's blood saveth us. Fecknam. How many sacraments are there? Jane. Two — the one the sacrament of baptism, and the other the sacrament of the Lord's supper. Fecknam. No, there are seven. Jane. By what scripture find you that ? Fecknam. Well, we will talk of that hereafter. But what is signified by your two sacraments ? 552 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Jane. By the sacrament of baptism, I am washed with water, and re- generated by the Spirit ; and that washing is a token to me that I am the child of God. The sacrament of the Lord's supper, offered unto me, is a sure seal and testimony that I am, by the blood of Christ, which he shed for me on the cross, made partaker of the everlasting kingdom. Fecknam. Why, what do you receive in that sacrament ? Do you not receive the very body and blood of Christ ? Jane. No surely, I do not so believe. I think that at the supper I neither receive flesh nor blood, but bread and wine ; which bread when it is broken, and the wine when it is drunken, put me in remembrance how that for my sins the body of Christ was broken, and his blood shed on the cross ; and with that bread and wine I receive the benefits that come by the breaking of his body, and shedding of his blood, for our sins on the cross. Fecknam. Why, doth not Christ speak these words, " Take, eat, this is my body ? " Require you any plainer words ? Doth he not say, it is his body ? Jane. I grant, he saith so ; and so he saith, il I am the vine, I am the door ; " but he is never the more for that, the door or the vine. Doth not St. Paul say, " He calleth things that are not as though they were?" God forbid that I should say, that I eat the very natural body and blood of Christ : for then either I should pluck away my redemption, or else there were two bodies, or two Christs. One body was tormented on the cross, and if they did eat another body, then had he two bodies ; or if his body were eaten, then was it not broken upon the cross ; or if it were broken upon the cross, it was not eaten of his disciples. Fecknam. Why, is it not as possible that Christ, by his power, could make his body both to be eaten and broken, and to be born of a virgin, as to walk upon the sea, having a body, and other such like miracles as he wrought by his power only ? Jane. Yes verily, if God would have done at his supper any miracle, he might have done so : but I say, that then he minded no work nor miracle, but only to brake his body and shed his blood on the cross for our sins. But I pray you to answer me to this one question : Where was Christ when he said, "Take, eat, this is my body?" Was he not at the table when he said so ? He was at that time alive, and suffered not till the next day. What took he, but bread ? what brake he, but bread ? and what gave he, but bread? Look, what he took he brake ; and look, what he brake he gave : and look, what he gave they did eat : and yet all this while he himself was alive, and at supper before his disciples, or else they were deceived. Fecknam. You ground your faith upon such authors as say and unsay both in a breath ; and not upon the church, whom ye ought to credit. Jane. No, I ground my faith on God's word, and not upon the church. For if the church be a good church, the faith of the church must be tried by God's word ; and not God's word by the church, neither yet my faith. Shall I believe the church because of antiquity, or shall I give credit to the church that taketh away from me the half part of the Lord's Supper, and will not let any man receive it in both kinds ? which things if they deny to us, then deny they to us part of our salvation. And I say, that it is an evil church, and not the spouse of Christ, but the spouse of the devil, that LADY JANE'S LETTER TO MR. HARDING. 553 alter eth the Lord's supper, and both taketli from it and addeth to it. To that church, say I, God will add plagues; and from that church will he take their part out of the book of life. Do they learn that of St. Paul, when lie ministered to the Corinthians in both kinds? Shall I Relieve this church ? God forbid ! Fecknam. That was done for a good intent of the church, to avoid a heresy that sprang on it. Jane. Why, shall the church alter God's will and ordinance, for good intent? How did king Saul? The Lord God defend ! With these and such like persuasions he would have had her lean to the church, but it would not be. There were many more things whereof they reasoned, but these were the chiefest. After this, Fecknam took his leave, saying that he was sorry for her : " For I am sure," quoth he, " that we two shall never meet." " True it is," replied lady Jane, openly, " that we shall never meet, except God turn your heart ; for I am assured, unless you repent and turn to God, you are in an evil case. And I pray God, in the bowels of his mercy, to send you his Holy Spirit ; for he hath given you his great gift of utterance, if it pleased him also to open the eyes of your heart." A letter of the lady Jane to master Harding, late chaplain to the duke of Suffolk, her father, and then fallen from the truth of God's most holy word : — " So oft as I call td mind the dreadful and fearful saying of God, ' That he which layeth hold upon the plough, and looketh back, is not meet for the kingdom of heaven ;' and, on the other side, the comfortable words of our Saviour Christ to all those that, forsaking themselves,, do follow him ; I cannot but marvel at thee, and lament thy case, who seemed sometime to be the lively member of Christ, but now the deformed imp of the devil ; sometime the beautiful temple of God, but now the stinking and filthy kennel of Satan ; sometime the unspotted spouse of Christ, but now the unshamefaced paramour of antichrist ; sometime my faithful brother, but now a stranger and apostate ; sometime a stout Christian soldier, but now a cowardly runaway. Yea, when I consider these things, I cannot but speak to thee, and cry out upon thee, thou seed of Satan, and not of Judah, whom the devil hath deceived, the world hath beguiled, and the desire of life subverted, and made thee of a Christian an infidel. Wherefore hast thou taken the testament of the Lord in thy mouth ? Wherefore hast thou preached the law and the will of God to others ? Wherefore hast thou instructed others to be strong in Christ, when thou thvself dost now so shamefully shrink, and so horribly abuse the testament and law of the Lord ? when thou thyself preachest, not to steal, yet most abominably stealest, not from men, but from God, and, committing most heinous sacrilege, robbest Christ thy Lord of his right members, thy body and soul ; and choosest rather to live miserably with shame to the world, than to die, and gloriously with honour reign with Christ, in whom even in death is life? Why dost thou now show thyself most weak, when indeed thou oughtest to be most strong? The strength of a fort is unknown before the assault, but thou yieldest thy hold before any battery be made. O wretched and unhappy man, what art thou but 554 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. dust and ashes ? And wilt thou resist thy Maker, that fashioned thee and framed thee? Wilt thou now forsake Him that called thee from the custom-gathering among the Romish antichristians, to be an ambassador and messenger of his eternal word ? He that first framed thee, and since thy first creation and birth preserved thee, nourished and kept thee, yea, and inspired thee with the spirit of knowledge, (I cannot say, of grace,) shall he not now possess thee? Darest thou deliver up thyself to another, being not thine own, but his ? How canst thou, having knowledge, or how darest thou neglect the law of the Lord, and follow the vain tradi- tions of men ; and, whereas thou hast been a public professor of his name, become now a defacer of his glory? Wilt thou refuse the true God, and worship the invention of man, the golden calf, the whore of Babylon, the Romish religion, the abominable idol, the most wicked mass ? Wilt thou torment again, rend and tear the most precious body of our Saviour Christ, with thy bodily and fleshly teeth ? Wilt thou take upon thee to offer up any sacrifice unto God for our sins, considering that Christ offered up himself, as Paul saith, upon the cross, a lively sacrifice once for all ? Can neither the punishment of the Israelites — which, for their idolatry, they so oft received — nor the terrible threatenings of the prophets, nor the curses of God's own mouth, fear thee to honour any other god than him ? Dost thou so regard Him that spared not his dear and only Son for thee, so diminishing, yea, utterly extinguishing his glory, that thou wilt attribute the praise and honour due unto him to the idols, ' which have mouths and speak not, eyes and see not, ears and hear not;' which shall perish with them that made them ? ****** " Last of all, let the lively remembrance of the last day be always be- fore your eyes ; remembering the terror that such shall be in at that time, with the runagates and fugitives from Christ, which setting more by the world than by heaven, more by their life than by Him who gave them life, did shrink, yea, did clean fall away, from him that forsook not them : and contrariwise, the inestimable joys prepared for them, that fearing no peril, nor dreading death, have manfully fought, and victoriously triumphed over all power of darkness, over hell, death, and damnation, through their most redoubted captain, Christ. — To whom, with the Father and the Holy Ghost, be all honour, praise, and glory everlasting. Amen." A letter written by the lady Jane in the end of the New Testament in Greek, the which she sent unto her sister the lady Katherine, the night before she suffered : — " I have here sent you, good sister Katherine, a book, which although it be not outwardly trimmed with gold, yet inwardly it is more worth than pre- cious stones. It is the book, dear sister, of the law of the Lord. It is his testament and last will, which he bequeathed unto us wretches ; which shall lead you to the path of eternal joy : and, if you with a good mind read it, and with an earnest mind do purpose to follow it, it shall bring you to an immortal and everlasting life. It shall teach you to live, and learn you to die. It shall win you more than you should have gained by the possession of your woeful father's lands. For as, if God had pros- pered him, you should have inherited his lands ; so, if you apply diligently EXECUTION OF LADY .TANK OKKY. 555 to this book, seeking to direct your life after it, you shall be an inheritor of such riches, as neither the covetous shall withdraw from you, neither thief shall steal, neither yet the moths corrupt. Desire with David, good sister, to understand the law of the Lo.'d God. Live still to die, that you by death may purchase eternal life. And trust not that the tenderness of your age shall lengthen your life ; for as soon, if God call, goeth the young as the old; and labour always to learn to die. Defy the world, deny the devil, and despise the flesh, and delight yourself only in the Lord. Be penitent for your sins, and yet despair not : be strong in faith, and yet presume not ; and desire, with St. Paul, to be dissolved and to be with Christ, with whom even in death there is life. Be like the good servant, and even at midnight be waking, lest when death cometh and stealeth upon you as a thief in the night, you be, with the evil servant, found sleeping; and lest, for lack of oil, you be found like the five foolish women ; and like him that had not on the wedding garment, and then ye be cast out from the marriage. Rejoice in Christ, as I do. Follow the steps of your master Christ, and take up your cross ; lay your sins on hr back, and always embrace him. And as touching my death, rejoice as 1 do, good sister, that I shall be delivered of this corruption, and put on in- corruption. For I am assured that I shall, for losing a mortal life, win an immortal life, the which I pray God grant you, and send you of his grace to live in his fear, and to die in the true Christian faith, from the which, in God's name, I exhort you that you never swerve, neither for hope of life, nor for fear of death. For if you will deny his truth for to lengthen your life, God will deny you, and yet shorten your days. And if you will cleave unto him, he will prolong your days, to your comfort and his glory : to the which glory God bring me now, and you hereafter, when it pleaseth him to call you. Fare you well, good sister, and put your only trust in God, who only must help you." A prayer made by the lady Jane in the time of her trouble, and also a letter to her father, and part of that to Mr. Harding, are here omitted for want of space. It remaineth now, coming to the end of this virtuous lady, to infer the manner of her execution, with the words and behaviour of her at the time of her death. First, when she mounted the scaffold, she said to the people standing thereabout, " Good people, I am come hither to die, and by a law I am condemned to the same. The fact against the queen's highness was unlawful, and the consenting thereunto by me ; but, touch- ing the procurement and desire thereof by me, or on my behalf, I do wash my hands thereof in innocency before God, and the face of you, good Christian people, this day. — I pray you all, good Christian people, to bear me witness that I die a true Christian woman, and that I do look to be saved by no other mean, but only by the mercy of God, in the blood of his only Son Jesus Christ : and I confess, that when I did know the word of God, I neglected the same, and loved myself and the world : therefore this punishment is happily and worthily happened unto me for my sins ; and yet I thank God, that of his goodness he hath thus given me a time and respite to repent. And now, good people, while I am alive, I pray you assist me with your prayers." And then, kneeling down, she turned her to Fecknam, saying, " Shall 556 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. I say this psalm?" and he said, "Yea." Then said she the psalm of " Miserere mei Deus," in English, in most devout manner throughout to the end. Then she stood up, and gave her maiden, Ellen, her gloves and handkerchief, and her book to Mr. Bruges. After this, she untied her gown, in which the executioner offered to help her; but she, desiring him to let her alone, turned towards her two gentlewomen, who helped her off therewith, and also with her frowes, paaft and neckerchief, giving to her a fair handkerchief to knit about her eyes. Then the executioner kneeled down and asked her forgiveness, which she willingly granted, and said, " i pray you dispatch me quickly." Then she kneeled, saying, " Will you strike before I lay me down?" The executioner said, "No, madam/' Then tied she the handkerchief about her eyes, and feeling for the block, she said, " What shall I do ? Where is it?" One of the standers-by guiding her thereunto, she laid her head down upon the block, and then stretched forth her body, and said, " Lord, into thy hands I commend my spirit;" and so finished her life, in the year of our Lord 1554, the 12th day of February, about the 17th year of her age. Thus was beheaded the lady Jane, and with her also the lord Guilford, her husband, one of the duke of Northumberland's sons. Judge Morgan, who gave the sentence of condemnation against her, shortly after he had condemned her, fell mad, and in his raving cried out continually to have the lady Jane taken away from him ; and so ended his life. Upon the 21st of the same month, Henry duke of Suffolk, the father of lady Jane, was also beheaded at the Tower-hill ; and, about the same time, many gentlemen and yeomen were condemned for this conspiracy, whereof some were executed in London and some in the country. On the 24th of the same month of February, 1554, Bonner, bishop of London, sent down a commission to all the pastors and curates of his diocese, for the taking of the names of such as would not come, the Lent following, to auricular confession, and to the receiving at Easter. And on the 4th of the next month there was a letter sent from the queen to bishop Bonner requiring that all the canons and ecclesiastical laws of Henry the Eighth's time should be put in execution. Injunctions were now given to the bishops, to execute such ecclesiastical laws as had been in force in king Henry's time : that in their courts they should proceed in their own names ; that the oath of supremacy should be no more exacted ; that none suspected of heresy should be put in orders ; and that all married clergymen should separate from their wives. If they left their wives, the bishops might put them in some other cure, or reserve a pension for them out of their livings. Rules for ordination were established on popish principles. The queen gave also a special commis- sion to Bonner, Gardiner, Tonstall, Day, and Kitchin, to proceed against the archbishop of York, and the bishops of St. David's, Chester, and Bristol, and to deprive them of their bishoprics, for having contracted marriage, and thereby broken their vows and defiled their function. She also authorized them to call before them the bishops of Lincoln, Glou- cester, and Hereford, who held their bishoprics only during their good behaviour; and since they had done things contrary to the laws of God, and the practice of the universal church, to declare their bishoprics void. 557 SECTION IV. account of a public disputation which was appointed by the queen's special command in a convocation held at st. mary's church in oxford. la April 1554, Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer, were conveyed as pri- soners from the Tower to Windsor- and from thence to Oxford, to dispute with the divines and learned men of both the universities, Oxford and Cambridge, concerning the presence, substance, and sacrifice of the sacrament. The doctors and graduates appointed to dispute against them were of Oxford — Dr. Weston, prolocutor, Dr. Tresham, Dr. Cole, Dr. Oglethorpe, Dr. Pie, Mr. Harpsfield, and Mr. Fecknam. Of Cam- bridge, Dr. Young, vice-chancellor, Dr. Glyn, Dr. Seton, Dr. Watson, Dr. Sedgewick, and Dr. Atkinson. The questions of dispute were — Whether the natural body of Christ be really in the sacrament, after the words spoken by the priest or not ? Whether in the sacrament, after the words of consecration, any other substance do remain, than the sub- stance of the body and blood of Christ ? and whether in the mass there be a sacrifice propitiatory for the sins of the quick and the dead ? On the 13th of April the doctors of Cambridge arrived at Oxford, and lodged all at the Cross Inn, with one Wakecline, some time a ser- vant to bishop Bonner. After the ceremonies of welcome, and after consultation concerning the delivery of their letters and instrument of grace, they all repaired to Lincoln college to Dr. Weston the prolocutor, and to Dr. Tresham the vice-chancellor, to whom they delivered their letters, declaring what they had done touching the articles and graces. Having concluded on a procession, sermon, and convocation, on the day following, and that the doctors of Cambridge should be incorporated with the university of Oxford, and the doctors of Oxford with those of the university of Cambridge, they returned to their inn. The same day, the three prisoners were separated, Dr. Ridley to the house of Mr. Irish, Latimer to another house; while Cranmer remained in Bocardo, a prison in Oxford. The following day the vice-chancellor of Cambridge, with the other doctors of that university, again repairing to Lincoln college, found the prolocutor above in the chapel, with a company of the house singing mass for the dead, and tarried there until the end. Then having con- sulted together in the master's room, they all came to the university church of St. Mary's, where, after another consultation in a chapel, the vice-chancellor of Oxford caused the vice-chancellor of Cambridge, and the rest of the doctors of that university, to send for their scarlet robes brought from Cambridge. By this time, the regents in the con- gregation-house, had granted all the Cambridge doctors their graces, to be incorporate there ; and so they went up and were immediately admitted, Dr. Oglethorpe presenting them, and the proctor reading the statute, and giving them their oaths. They now all came into the choir to hold the convocation of the university: the mass of the Holy Ghost was solemnly sung before them 558 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. by the choir-men of Christ's church. First, the cause of the convocation was opened in English by the vice-chancellor and prolocutor declaring that they were commissioned by the queen, and wherefore they were sent; and caused master Say, the register, openly to read the commission. That done, the vice-chancellor read the Cambridge letters openly, and then concluded that three notaries, one for the convocation, one for Cambridge, and one for Oxford, should testify of their doings. Then they ordered the notaries to provide parchment, that the whole assembly might sub- scribe to the articles, except those who had subscribed before in the con- vocation-house at London and Cambridge. And so the vice-chancellor began first ; after him the rest of the Oxford men, as many as could in the mass time. The mass being done, they went in procession to Christ's church ; and there the choir sang a psalm, and after that a collect was read. They then departed to Lincoln college, where they dined with the mayor, one alder- man, four beadles, and the Cambridge notary. After dinner they all went again to St. Mary's church ; where, shortly after, all the commissioners arrived, and sat before the altar, to the number of thirty-three persons : Dr. Cranmer was then sent for, and shortly after arrived in custody. The archbishop paid his respects to them with much humility, standing with his staff in his hand, and though he had a stool offered him, refused to sit. The articles against him were read, and a copy of them delivered to him ; after which he was given in charge to the mayor, who remanded him to prison. Dr. Ridley was next brought in, who hearing the articles against him, immediately replied that they were all false ; and said farther, that they sprang from a bitter and sour root. Then he was asked whether he would dispute or not? He answered, that as long as God gave him life, he should not only have his heart, but also his mouth and pen to defend his truth ; but he required time and books. They said he could not have time, but must dispute on Thursday ; and till then he should have books. He said it was unreasonable that he might not have his own books and time also. Then they gave him the articles, and desired him to write his opinion upon them that night ; after which they commanded the mayor to take him whence he came. Last of all came in Mr. Latimer, with a kerchief and two or three caps on his head, his spectacles hanging by a string at his breast, and a staff in his hand, and was set in a chair. After his denial of the articles, when he had Wednesday appointed for disputation, he alleged age, sickness, disuse, and lack of books, saying, that he was almost as meet to dispute as to be a captain of Calais : but he, would declare his mind either by writing or word, and would stand to all they could lay upon him ; com- plaining, moreover, that he was permitted to have neither pen nor ink, nor yet any book but the New Testament in his hand, which he had read over seven times deliberately, and yet could not find the mass in it, neither the rnarrow-bones nor sinews of the same. At this the com- missioners were not a little offended ; and Dr. Weston said that he would make him grant that it had both marrow-bones and sinews in the New Testament. To whom Latimer said again, " That you will never do, master Doctor." And so, forthwith, they put him to silence ; so that whereas he was desirous to tell what he meant by those terms, he could CRANMER DISPUTING AT OXFORD. 5.39 not be suffered. The great press and throng of people were then dis- persed, and the convocation adjourned. At nine o'clcck on Sunday morning, Mr. Harpsfield preached at St. Mary's, where the doctors in their robes were placed in due order of precedency. After sermon, they all dined at Magdalen college, and supped at Lincoln college, with Dr. Weston ; whither Cranmer sent his answer upon the articles in writing. On Monday, Dr. Weston, with the residue of the visitors, censors, and opponents, repairing to the divinity school, each installed himself in his place. Cranmer was brought thither, and set in the answerer's place, with the mayor and aldermen by him ; when the prolocutor, apparelled in a scarlet gown, after the custom of the university, began the disputation with this oration : — " You are assembled hither, brethren, this day to confound the detest- able heresy of the verity of the body of Christ in the sacrament." At these strange words several of the learned men burst out into great laughter, as though, in the entrance of the disputation, he had betrayed himself and his religion, by terming the opinion of the verity of Christ's body in the sacrament a detestable heresy ! The rest of his oration was intended to prove, that it was not lawful to call these questions into controversy ; for such as doubted of the words of Christ might well be thought to doubt both of the truth and power of God. On this Dr. Cranmer, desiring leave, answered — " We are assembled to discuss and to lay before the world those doubtful points which ye think it unlawful to dispute. It is, indeed, no reason that we should dispute of that which is determined upon before the truth be tried. But if these questions be not called into controversy, surely my answer then is looked for in vain." Then Chedsey, the first opponent, began : " Rev. Doctor, these three conclusions are put forth unto us at present to dispute upon — In the sacrament of the altar, is the natural body of Christ, and also his blood, present really under the forms of bread and wine, by virtue of God's word pronounced by the priest ? Does there remain any of the former substance of bread and wine after the consecration, or any other sub- stance but the substance of God and man ? Is the lively sacrifice of the church in the mass propitiatory, as well for the quick as the dead ? These are the arguments on which our present controversy rests. Now, to the end we might not doubt how you take the same, you have already given unto us your opinion thereof. I term it your opinion, in that it disagreeth from the catholic. Wherefore I thus argue : Your opinion differeth from Scripture : ergo, you are deceived." Cranmer. I deny the antecedent. Chedsey. Christ, when he instituted his last supper, spake to his disciples,/' Take, eat: this is my body which shall be given for you." But his true body was given for us : ergo, his true body is in the sacrament. Cranmer. His body is truly present to them that truly receive him ; but spiritually. And so it is taken after a spiritual sort ; for when he said, " This is my body," it is all one as if he had said, " This is the breaking of my body ; this is the shedding of my blood. As oft as you shall do this, it shall put you in remembrance of the breaking of my body, and the shedding of my blood ; that as truly as you receive this sacrament, so truly shall you receive the benefit promised by receiving the same worthily." 560 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Chedsey. Your opinion differeth from the church, which saith, that the true body is in the sacrament : ergo, your opinion therein is false. Cranmer. I say and agree with the church, that the body of Christ is in the sacrament effectually, because the passion of Christ is effectual. Chedsey. Christ, when he spake these words, " This is my body," spake of the substance, but not of the effect. Cranmer. I grant he spake of the substance, and not of the effect after a sort : and yet it is most true that the body of Christ is effectually in the sacrament. But I deny that he is there truly present in bread, or that under the bread is his organical body. And because it should be too tedious, Cranmer said, to discourse of the whole, he delivered his written opinion to Dr. Weston, with answers to the three propositions, requiring that it might be read openly to the people ; which the prolocutor promised, but did not. The copy of this writing here followeth : — " In the assertions of the church and of religion, trifling and newfangled novelties of words are to be eschewed, whereof ariseth nothing but con- tention ; and we must follow as much as we can the manner of speaking of the Scripture. In the first conclusion, if ye understand by this word 1 really ,' ' re ipsaj that is, in very deed and effectually ; so Christ, by the grace and efficacy of his passion, is indeed and truly present to all true and holy members. But if ye understand by this word ' really ,' ' cor- poraliter,' that is, corporeally ; so that by the body of Christ is understood a natural body and organical ; so, the first proposition doth vary not only from the usual speech and phrase of Scripture, but also is clean contrary to the holy word of God and Christian profession : when as both the Scripture doth testify by these words, and also the Catholic church hath professed from the beginning — Christ to have left the world, and to sit at the right hand of the Father till he come to judgment. " And likewise I answer to the second question, that is, that it swerveth from the accustomed manner and speech of Scripture. The third conclu- sion, as it is intricate and wrapped in all doubtful and ambiguous words, and differing also much from the true speech of Scripture, so as the words thereof seem to import no open sense, is most contumelious against our only Lord and Saviour Christ Jesus, and a violating of his precious blood, which, upon the altar of the cross, is the only sacrifice and oblation for the sins of all mankind." Chedsey. By this your interpretation which you have made upon the first conclusion, this I understand — the body of Christ to be in the sacra- ment only by the way of participation : insomuch as we, communicating thereof, do participate the grace of Christ ; so that you mean hereby the effect thereof. But our conclusion standeth upon the substance, and not the efficacy only, which shall appear by the testimony both of Scriptures, and of all the fathers a thousand years after Christ. And first let us con- sider what is written in Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii., and 1 Cor. xi. Matthew saith, " As they sat at supper, Jesus took bread," etc. In Mark there is the same sense, although not the same words, who also for one part of the sacrament speaketh more plainly, saying, "Jesus taking bread," etc. After the same sense also writeth Luke, " And when Jesus had taken bread," etc. " In the mouth of two or three witnesses," saith the Scrip- DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 561 tare, " standeth all truth." Here we have tliree witnesses together, that Christ said that to-be liis body, which was given tor many; and that to be his blood, which should be shed for many ; whereby is declared the substance, and not only the efficacy thereof. Ergo, it is not true that you say, there is not the substance of his body, but the efficacy alone thereof. Gran, Thus you gather upon mine answer, as though I did mean of the efficacy, and not of the substance of the body ; but I mean of them both, as well as of the efficacy as of the substance. And forso- much as all things come not readily to memory, to a man that shall speak extempore, therefore, for the more ample and fuller answer in this matter, this writing here I do exhibit. Hereupon Cranmer put forth a lengthened explication, which the prolo- cutor said should be read in that place hereafter, and requested them to fall to the arguments. Ched. The Scriptures in many places do affirm, that Christ gave his natural body : Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. Ergo, I do conclude that the natural body is in the sacrament. Cran. To your argument I answer — If you understand by the body natural, the organic body, that is, having such proportion and members as he had living here, then I answer negatively. Furthermore, as con- cerning the evangelists, this I say and grant, that Christ took bread, and called it his body. Ched. The text of the Scripture maketh against you, for the circum- stance thereto annexed doth teach us, not only there to be the body, but also teacheth us what manner of body it is, and saith, " The same body which shall be given." That thing is here contained, that is given for us. But the substance of bread is not given for us. And therefore the sub- stance of bread is not here contained. Cran. I understand not yet what you mean by this word contained. If you mean really, then I deny your major. Ched. The major is the text of Scripture. He that denieth the major, denieth the Scripture : for the Scripture saith, " This is my body which is given for you." Cran. I grant, Christ said it was his body which should be given, but he said not it was his body which is here contained ; " but the body that shall be given for you." As though he should say, " This bread is the breaking of my body, and this cup is the shedding of my blood." What will ye say then ? Is the bread the breaking of his body, and the cup the shedding of his blood really? If you say so, I deny it. Ched. If you ask what is the thing therein contained ; because his apostles should not doubt what body it was that should be given, he saith, " This is my body which shall be given for you, and my blood which shall be shed for many." Here is the same substance of the body, which the day after was given, and the same blood which was shed. And I urge the Scripture, which teacheth that it was no fantastical, no feigned, no spiritual body, nor body in faith, but the substance of the body. Cran. You must prove that it is contained ; but Christ said not which is contained. He gave bread, and called it his body. I halt not in the words of the Scripture, but in your word, which is feigned and imagined by yourself. 2 o 562 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. The disputation went on, but only by repeating on both sides what had already been said more than once or twice. Mr. Chedsey having at last finished his argument, Dr. Oglethorpe, one of the arbitrators, said — " You still come in with one evasion or starting hole to flee to. He urgeth the Scriptures, saying, that Christ gave his very body. You say, that he gave his body in bread. What sort of body is meant? what is the body spoken of? the bread is the body." Cran. I answer to the question — It is the same body which was born of the Virgin, was crucified, ascended ; but tropically, and by a figure. And so I say, the bread is the body, as a figurative speech, speaking sacramentally, for it is a sacrament of his body. Oglethorpe. It is not a likely thing that Christ hath less care for his spouse the church, than a wise householder hath for his family in making his will or testament. But no householder maketh his testament after that sort. Cran. Yes ; there are many that do so. For what matter is it, so it be understood and perceived ? I say, Christ used figurative speech in no place more than in his sacraments, and specially in this of his supper. Ogle. No man of purpose doth use tropes in his testament ; for, if he do, he deceiveth them that he comprehendeth in his testament : therefore Christ useth none here. The good man of the house hath respect that his heirs, after his departure, may live in quiet and without wrangling. But they cannot be in quiet if he use tropes. Therefore, I say, he useth no tropes. Cran. I deny your minor, and insist that he may use them. Weston, the prolocutor, then said — " Augustine, in his book entitled De unitate Ecclesice-, ch. x., hath these words following : — ' What a thing is this, I pray you? When the last words of one lying upon his death-bed are heard, who is ready to go to his grave, no man saith, that he hath made a lie ; and he is not accounted his heir who regardeth not those words. How shall we then escape God's wrath, if, either not believing or not regarding, we shall reject the last words both of the only Son of God, and also of our Lord and Saviour, both ascending into heaven, and beholding from thence, who despiseth, who observeth them not, and so shall come from thence to judge all men?' " Thereupon followed a lengthened discussion between Cranmer, Weston, and Oglethorpe. After which Cranmer resumed : f* And why should we doubt to call it the sacrament of the body of Christ, offered upon the cross, seeing both Christ and the ancient fathers do so call it ? Chrysostom himself declareth — ' O miracle ! O the good will of God towards us, which sitteth above at the right hand of the Father, and is holden in men's hands at the time of sacrifice, and is given to feed upon, to them that are desirous of him ! And that is brought to pass by no subtlety or craft, but with the open and beholding eyes of all the standers-by.' Thus you hear Christ is seen here on earth every day, and is touched ; which no man having any judgment will say or think to be spoken without trope or figure." West. What miracle is it if it be not his body, and if he spake only of the sacrament, as though it were his body ? But hear what Chrysostom farther saith — " I shew forth that thing on earth unto thee, which is DKHATKS ON THE HEAT. PRESENCE. 563 worthy the greatest honour. For like as in the palace of kings, neither the walls, nor the sumptuous bed, but the body of the king sitting under the cloth of state, and royal seat of majesty, is of all things else the most excellent : so is in like manner the King's body in heaven, which is now set before us on earth. I show thee neither angels nor archangels, nor the heaven of heavens, but the very Lord and Master of all these things. Thou perceivest after what sort thou dost not only behold, but touchest ; and not only touchest, but eatest that which on the earth is the greatest and chiefest thing of all other ; and when thou hast received the same, thou goest home : wherefore cleanse thy soul from all uncleanness." Upon this, 1 conclude that the body of Christ is showed us upon the earth. Cran. What ! upon the earth ? No man seeth Christ upon the earth : he is seen here with the eyes of our mind only, with faith and spirit. West. I pray you, what is it that seemeth worthy highest honour on earth ? Is it the sacrament, or else the body of Christ ? Cran. Chrysostom speaketh of the sacrament ; and the body of Christ is showed forth in the sacrament. West. Ergo, then the sacrament is worthy greatest honour. Cran. I deny the argument. West. That thing is showed forth, and is now on the earth : " ostenditur et est," which is worthy highest honour. But only the body of Christ is worthy highest honour : ergo, the body of Christ is now on the earth. Cran. I answer, the body of Christ to be on the earth, but so as in the sacrament, and as the Holy Ghost is in the water of baptism. West. Chrysostom saith, " ostendo," " I show forth," which noteth a substance to be present. Cran. That is to be understood sacramentally. West. He saith, " ostendo in terra," " I show forth on earth," declar- ing also the place where. Cran. That is to be understood figuratively. Your major and conclu- sion are all one. Here Weston called upon Cranmer to answer to one part, bidding him repeat his words ; which when he essayed to do, such was the uproar in the divinity school, that his mild voice could not be heard. And when he went about to explain to the people that the prolocutor did not correctly English the words of Chrysostom, using for ostenditur in terra, " he is showed forth on the earth," est in terra, " he is on the earth ; " whereas Chrysostom hath not est, nor any such word implying being on the earth, but only of showing, as the grace of the Holy Ghost, in baptismo ostenditur, " is showed forth in baptism." And oftentimes as he did inculcate this word ostenditur, the prolocutor rudely interrupted him, and, substituting noise and insolence for argument, called him unlearned and impudent; at the same time, pointing at him scornfully, urged the people to silence him with hissing, clapping of hands, and other species of tumult, which this reverend man most patiently and meekly did abide, as one well inured to the suffering of such reproaches. And the prolocutor, not yet satisfied with this rude and unseemly demeanour, did urge and call upon him to answer the argument ; and then he bade the notary to repeat his words. From Chrysostom the disputants went to Tertullian, from whom Chedsey, who was better acquainted with the fathers than the prolocutor 564 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. himself, quoted as follows, for the purpose of again raising on their testi- mony his favourite and absurd syllogism : " Tertullian, speaking of the resurrection of the body, saith, ' Let us consider as concerning the proper form of the Christian man, what great prerogative this vain and foul sub- stance of ours hath with God. Although it were sufficient to it, that no soul could ever get salvation, unless it believe while it is in the flesh ; so much the flesh availeth to salvation : by the which flesh it cometh, that whereas the soul is so linked unto God, it is the said flesh that causeth the soul to be linked : yet the flesh moreover is washed, that the soul may be cleansed ; the flesh is anointed, that the soul may be consecrated ; the flesh is signed, that the soul may be defended ; the flesh is shadowed by the impositions of hands, that the soul may be illuminated with the Spirit ; the flesh doth eat the body and blood of Christ, that the soul may be fed of God.' Whereupon I gather this argument — The flesh eateth the body of Christ ; therefore the body of Christ is eaten with the mouth." To this quotation Cranmer replied, with some interruption from Weston and Chedsey, thus — "Tertullian calleth that the flesh which is the sacra- ment. For although God works all things in us invisibly, beyond man's reach, yet they are so manifest, that they may be seen and perceived of every sense. Therefore he setteth forth baptism, unction, and last of all the supper of the Lord unto us, which he gave to signify his operation in us. The flesh liveth by the bread, but the soul is inwardly fed by Christ. — Read that which followeth, and you shall perceive that, by things external, an internal operation is understood. Inwardly we eat Christ's body, and outwardly we eat the sacrament. So one thing is done outwardly, another inwardly. Like, as in baptism, the external element, whereby the body is washed, is one ; the internal thing, whereby the soul is cleansed, is another." A long discussion then took place between Chedsey, Cranmer, Weston, and Tresham. Dr. Young, vice-chancellor of Cambridge, at length strove to change the direction of the dispute, by putting certain questions to Cranmer relative to the nature of Christ's body, the subordination of sense and reason to faith, and the manner in which the words of the Lord Jesus were to be understood for the just belief of his doctrines, and the just observance of his commands and institutions. Young. This disputation is taken in hand that the truth might appear. I perceive that I must go another way to work than I had thought. It is a common saying, " Against them that deny principles, we must not dispute." Therefore that we may agree of the principles, I demand, whether there be any other body of Christ, than his instrumental body ? Cran. There is no natural body of Christ, but his organical body. Young. I demand, whether sense and reason ought to give place to faith? Cran. They ought. Young. Whether Christ be true in all his works ? And whether, at his supper, he minded to do that which he spake or no ? Cran. Yea, he is most true, and truth itself. In saying he spake, but in saying he made not, but made the sacrament to his disciples. Young. A figurative speech is no working thing. But the speech of Christ is working : ergo, it is not figurative. Cran. I said not, that the words of Christ do work, but Christ himself; and he worketh by a figurative speech. DEBATES ON THE HEAL PRESENCE. 565 West, If a figure work, it maketh of bread the body of Christ. Gran. A figurative speech worketh not. West. A figurative speech, by your own confession, worketh nothing. But the speech of Christ in the supper, as you grant, wrought somewhat : ergo, the speech of Christ in the supper was not figurative. Cran. I answer, these are mere sophisms. The speech doth not work ; but Christ, by the speech, doth work the sacrament. I look for Scrip- tures at your hands, for they are the foundation of disputations. — Ambrose speaketh of sacraments sacramentally. He calleth the sacraments by the names of the things; for he useth the signs for the thing signified: and therefore the bread is not called bread, but his body, for the excellency and dignity of the thing signified by it. — The body is nourished both with the sacrament, and with the body of Christ : with the sacrament to a temporal life ; with the body of Christ to eternal life. The discussion was carried on for some time between Cranmer, Young, Weston, Pie, Chedsey, and Harpsfield. Cranmer, in his answers, evinced the meekness of wisdom, and the ingenuousness and integrity of truth, whenever their clamour would allow him to reply, or he considered their sophistries and quibbles deserving refutation. Their disordered disputa- tion, sometimes in Latin, sometimes in English, continued almost till two of the clock. Being at length finished, and the arguments written and delivered to the hands of master Say, the prisoner, Dr. Cranmer, was had away by the mayor, and the doctors dined together at the University college. DISPUTATION AT OXFORD BETWEEN DR. SMITH, WITH HIS OTHER COLLEAGUES AND DOCTORS, AND BISHOP RIDLEY. The next day following, April 12th, was brought forth Dr. Ridley to dispute in the divinity school ; against whom was set Dr. Smith to be principal opponent. This Dr. Smith had often changed his religious opinions ; but not from conviction of conscience, as appears from his re- cantation, and also from his letter to Cranmer in king Edward's time. The rest of his opponents were Drs. Weston, Tresham, Oglethorpe, Glin, Seton, Cole, Watson; masters Harpsfield, Ward, Pie, Harding, Curtop, and Fecknam : to all of whom he answered very learnedly. Dr. Weston, the prolocutor, commenced the disputation, with the following speech : — " Good Christian people and brethren, we have begun this day our school, by God's good speed I trust ; and are entering into a controversy, whereof no question ought to be moved, concerning the verity of the body of our Lord Jesus Christ in the eucharist. Christ is true, who said the words. The words are true which he spake, yea, truth itself that cannot fail. Let us therefore pray unto God to send down upon us his Holy Spirit, which is the interpreter of his word ; which may purge away errors, and give light that verity may appear. Let us also ask leave and liberty of the church to permit the truth received to be called this day in question without any prejudice to the same. Your parts thereof shall be to im- plore the assistance of Almighty God, to pray for the prosperity of the queen's majesty, and to give us quiet and attentive ears. Now go to your question." Dr. Smith then said — " This day, right learned master Doctor, three 566 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. questions are propounded, whereof no controversy among Christians ought to be moved. They are these — Whether the natural body of Christ our Saviour, conceived of the virgin Mary, and offered for man's redemption upon the cross, is verily and really in the sacrament by virtue of God's word spoken by the priests. Whether in the sacrament after the words of consecration, there be any other substance than the body and blood of Christ ? Whether in the mass there is the sacrifice of Christ propitiatory. Touching these questions, although you have publicly declared your judgment on Saturday last; yet I will again de- mand your answer on the first question; upon which I stand here now to learn what may be answered." Dr. Ridley then addressed the convocation as follows without any material interruption : " I received of you the other day, right worshipful Mr. Prolocutor, and you my reverend masters, commissioners from the queen's majesty and her honourable council, three propositions ; whereunto ye com- manded me to prepare against this day, what I thought good to answer concerning the same. " Now whilst I weighed with myself how great a charge of the Lord's flock was of late committed unto me, for which I am certain I must once render an account to my Lord God (and how soon he only knoweth) and that moreover by the commandment of the apostle Peter, I ought to be ready always to give a reason of the hope that is in me, with meek- ness and reverence, unto every one that shall demand the same : be- sides this, considering my duty to the church of Christ, and to your worships, being commissioners by public authority ; I determined with myself to obey your commandment, and so openly to declare unto you my mind touching the aforesaid propositions. And albeit, plainly to confess unto you the truth of these things ye now demand of me, I have thought otherwise in times past than now I do, yet (I call God to record upon my soul, I lie not) I have not altered my judgment, as now it is, either by constraint of any man or law, either for the dread of any dangers of this world, either for any hope of commodity ; but only for the love of the truth revealed unto me by the grace of God (as I am undoubtedly persuaded) in his holy word, and in the reading of the ancient fathers. "These things I do rather recite at this present, because it may happen to some of you hereafter, as in times past it hath done to me : I mean, if ye think otherwise of the matters propounded in these propositions than I now do, God may open them unto you in time to come. But howsoever it shall be, I will in a few words do that which I think ye all expect I should ; that is, as plainly as I can, I will declare my judgment herein. Howbeit, of this I would ye were not ignorant, that I will not indeed willingly speak in any point against God's word, or dissent in any one jot from the same, or from the rules of faith, or the christian religion : which rules that same most sacred word of God prescribeth to the church of Christ, whereunto I now and for ever submit myself and all my doings. And because the matter I have now taken in hand is weighty, and ye all well know how unprepared I am to handle it accordingly, as well for lack of time, as also of books ; DI.BAIKS O.N 11 IK KKAL PRESENCE. 567 therefore hero I protest, that I will publicly this day require of you that it may be lawful for me concerning all mine answers, explications, and confirmations, to add or diminish whatsoever shall seem hereafter more convenient and meet for the purpose, through more sound judgment, better deliberation, and more exact trial of every particular thing. Having now, by the way of preface and protestation, spoken these few words, 1 will come to the answer of the propositions propounded unto me, and so to the most brief explication and confirmation of mine answers." THE FIRST PROPOSITION. In the sacrament of the altar, by the virtue of God's word spoken of the priest, the natural body of Christ, born of the Virgin Mary, and his natural blood, are really present under the forms of bread and wine. Ridley. In matters appertaining to God we may not speak accord- ing to the sense of man, nor of the world : therefore, this propo- sition or conclusion is framed after another manner of phrase, or kind of speech, than the scripture useth. Again, it is very obscure and dark, by means of sundry words of doubtful signification. And being taken in the sense which the schoolmen teach, and at this time the church of Rome doth defend, it is false and erroneous, and plainly contrary to the doctrine which is according to godliness. How far the diversity and newness of the phrase in all this first proposition is from the phrase of the holy scripture, and that in every part almost, it is so plain and evi- dent to any one who is but meanly exercised in holy writ, that I need not now (especially in this company of learned men) spend any time therein, except the same shall be required of me hereafter. " First, there is a double sense in these words, By virtue of God's ivord, for it is doubtful wdiat word of God this is, whether it be that which is read in the evangelists, or in St. Paul, or any other. And if it be that which is in the evangelists, or in St. Paul, what that is. If it be in none of them, then how it may be known to be God's word, and of such virtue that it should be able to work so great a matter. "Again, there is a doubt of these words, of the priest, whether no man may be called a priest, but he which hath authority to make a pro- pitiatory sacrifice for the quick and the dead; and how it may be proved that this authority was committed of God to any man, but to Christ alone. It is likewise doubted after what order the sacrificing priest shall be, whether after the order of Aaron, or else after the order of Mel- chisedek. For as far as I know, the holy scriptures doth allow no more. " Moreover, there is ambiguity in this word really, whether it be taken as the logicians term it " transcendenter," that is, most generally, and so it may signify any manner of thing which belongeth to the body of Christ, by any means: after which sort we also grant Christ's body to be really in the sacrament of the Lord's supper; or whether it be taken to signify the very same thing, having body, life, and soul, which was assumed and taken by the word of God, into the unity of person. In which sense, seeing the body of Christ is really in Heaven, because of the true manner of his body, it may not be said to be here on the earth. 568 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. if There is yet a further doubtfulness in these words, under the forms of bread and wine, whether the forms be there taken to signify the only acci- dental and outward shows of bread and wine ; or therewithal the substantial natures thereof, which are to be seen by their qualities, and perceived by exterior senses. Now the error and falseness of the proposition, after the sense of the Roman church and schoolmen, may hereby appear, in that they affirm the bread to be transubstantiated and changed to the flesh assumed of the word of God, and that, as they say, by virtue of the word which they have devised by a certain number of words, and cannot be found in any of the evangelists, or in St. Paul ; and so they gather that Christ's body is really contained in the sacrament of the altar. Which position is grounded upon the foundation of the transubstantiation ; which foundation is monstrous, against reason, and destroy eth the analogy or proportion of the sacraments : and therefore this proposition also, which is builded upon this rotten foundation, is false, erroneous, and to be counted as a detest- able heresy of the sacramentaries. " There ought no doctrine to be established in the church of God, which dissenteth from the word of God, from the rule of faith, and draweth with it many absurdities that cannot be avoided. But this doctrine of the first proposition is such : therefore it ought not to be established and main- tained in the church of God. " The major, or first part of my argument, is plain ; and the minor, or second part, is proved thus : — This doctrine maintaineth a real, corporeal, and carnal presence of Christ's flesh, assumed and taken of the word, to be in the sacrament of the Lord's supper, and that not by virtue and grace only, but also by the whole essence and substance of the body and flesh of Christ. But such a presence disagreeth from God's word, from the rule of faith, and cannot but draw with it many absurdities. Therefore, the second part is true. The former part of this argument is manifest, and the latter may yet further be confirmed thus : First of all, this presence is con- trary to many places of the Holy Scripture. Secondly, it varieth from the articles of the faith. Thirdly, it destroyeth and taketh away the institution of the Lord's supper. Fourthly, it maketh precious things common to profane and ungodly persons ; for it casteth that which is holy unto dogs, and pearls unto swine. Fifthly, it forceth men to maintain many monstrous miracles, without necessity and authority of God's word. Sixthly, it giveth occasion to the heretics who erred concerning the two natures in Christ to defend their heresies thereby. Seventhly, it falsifieth the' sayings of the godly fathers ; it falsifieth also the Catholic faith of the church, which the apostles taught, the martyrs confirmed, and the faithful, as one of the fathers saith, do retain and keep until this day. Wherefore the second part of mine argument is true." THE SECOND PROPOSITION. After the consecration there remaineth no substance of bread and wine, neither any other substance, than the substance of God and man. Ridley. The second conclusion is manifestly false, directly against the word of God, the nature of the sacrament, and the most evident testimonies of the godly fathers ; and it is the rotten foundation of the other two con- clusions propounded by you, both of the first, and also of the third. I DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 56[) will not therefore now tarry upon this answer, being contented witli that which is already added before to the answer of the first proposition. V It is very plain by the word of God, that Christ did give bread unto his disciples, and called it his body. But the substance of bread is another manner of substance, than is the substance of Christ's body, (lod and man. Therefore the conclusion is false. That which Christ took, on which he gave thanks, and which he brake, he gave to his disciples, and called his body. But he took bread, gave thanks on bread, and brake bread. Therefore the first part is true. And it is confirmed with the authorities of the fathers, Irene, Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian, Epiphanius, Jerome, Augustine, Theodoret, Cyril, Rabanus, and Bede. Whose places I will take upon me to shew most manifest in this behalf, if I may be suffered to have my books, as my request, is. " We may no more believe bread to be transubstantiate into the body of Christ, than the wine into his blood. The circumstances of the scrip- ture, the analogy and proportion of the sacraments, and the testimony of the faithful fathers, ought to rule us in taking the meaning of the holy Scripture touching the sacrament : and they most effectually and plainly prove a figurative speech in the words of the Lord's supper. There- fore, a figurative sense and meaning is specially to be received in these words, ' This is my body.' — The circumstances of the Scripture are : ' Do this in remembrance of me.' ' As oft as ye shall eat of this bread, and drink of this cup, ye shall show forth the Lord's death.' ' Let a man prove himself, and so eat of this bread, and drink of this cup.' ■ They came to- gether to break bread ; and they continued in breaking of bread.' * The bread which we break,' etc. ' For we being many, are all one bread,' etc." THE THIRD PROPOSITION. In the mass is the lively sacrifice of the church, propitiable and avail- able for the sins as well of the quick as of the dead. Ridley. I answer to this third proposition as I did to the first ; and moreover I say, that being taken in such a sense as the words seem to im- port, it is not only erroneous, but withal so much to the derogation and defacing of the death and passion of Christ, that I judge it may and ought most worthily to be counted wicked and blasphemous against the most precious blood of our Saviour Christ. " Concerning the Romish mass which you use at tills day, or the lively sacrifice thereof, propitiatory and available for the sins of the quick and the dead, the holy scripture has not so much as one syllable. There is ambiguity in the name mass, what it signifieth, and whether at this day there be any such indeed as the ancient fathers used; seeing that now there be neither Catechists nor Penitents to be sent away. And then as touching these words, the lively sacrifice of the church, there is doubt whether they are to be understood figuratively and sacrament- ally, or properly and without any figure; of which manner there was but one only sacrifice, and that once offered, namely upon the altar of the cross. Moreover, in these words, as well as, it may be doubted whether they be spoken in mockery, as men are wont to say in sport, of a foolish and ignorant person, that he is apt as well in conditions as in knowledge; being apt in neither of them. Finally, there is doubt in 570 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the word propitiable, whether it signify here that which taketh away sin, or that which may be made available for the taking away of sin; that is to say, whether it is to be taken in the active, or in the passive sig- nification." The following is an abridged form of Bishop Ridley's argument on the sacrifice of atonement. " No sacrifice ought to be done, but where the priest is meet to offer the same. All other priests are unmeet to offer propitiatory sacrifices, save only Christ. Therefore, no other priests ought to sacrifice for sin, but Christ alone. " After that eternal redemption is found and obtained, there needeth no more daily offering for the same. But Christ coming an high Priest, found and obtained for us eternal redemption. Therefore, there needeth now no more daily oblation for the sins of the quick and the dead. All remissions of sins cometh only by shedding of blood. In the mass there is no shedding of blood. Therefore, in the mass there is no remission of sins; and so it followeth also that there is no propitiatory sacrifice. In the mass, the passion of Christ is not in verity, but in a mystery re- presenting the same. Where Christ suffereth not, there is he not offered in verity: for the apostle saith, 'Not that he might offer up himself oftentimes — for then must he have suffered oftentimes since the beginning of the world.' And again — ' Christ appeared once in the latter end of the world, to put sin to flight by the offering up of himself. And as it is appointed to all men that they shall once die, and then cometh the judgment; even so Christ was once offered, to take away the sins of many. And unto them that look for him shall he appear the second time without sin unto salvation.' Where there is any sacrifice that can make the comers thereunto perfect, there ought men to cease from offering any more expiatory and propitiatory sacrifices. But in the New Testament there is one only sacrifice now already long since offered, which is able to make the comers thereto perfect for ever. Therefore, in the New Testament they ought to cease from offering any propitiatory sacrifices." Dr. Smith, the principal opponent of Ridley, now drew that holy bishop into a most unprofitable controversy on the real presence. Scarcely an idea occurred which has not been more than once before the reader already. On which side the truth lay, may be seen from a few of Ridley's answers. " You import as though I had made a strong argument by Christ's going up into heaven. But however my argument is made, you collect it not rightly. For it doth not only rest upon his ascension, but upon his abiding there also. — Of Christ's real presence there may be a double understanding: if you take the real presence of Christ according to the real and corporeal substance which he took of the virgin, that presence being in heaven, cannot be on the earth also. But if you mean a real presence, according to some thing that appertaineth to Christ's body, certainly the ascension and abiding in heaven hinder not at all that presence. Wherefore Christ's body after that manner is here present to us in the Lord's supper; by grace I say, as Epiphanius speaketh it. — I do not straightly tie Christ up in heaven, that he may not come into the eartn at his pleasure. For when he will, he may come down from heaven, DISl'l lAlUKN WITH RIDLEY. 571 and be on the earth, as it liketh himself. Howbeit, I do affirm, that it is not possible for him to be both in heaven and earth at one time. " I do not bind Christ in heaven so straitly. I see you go about to beguile me with your equivocations. Such equivocations are to be dis- tinguished, if you mean by his sitting in heaven, to reign with his Father, he may be both in heaven and also on earth. But if you un- derstand his sitting to be after a corporeal manner of sitting, so is he always permanent in heaven. For Christ to be corporeal here on earth, when corporeally he is resident in heaven, is clearly contrary to the holy scriptures, as Austin saith; 'The body of Christ is in heaven, but his truth is dispersed in every place.' Yet I do not deny that Christ was seen, even here on earth, after he had risen. I account this a sound and firm argument to prove the resurrection. Whether they saw him in heaven or on earth, -it maketh no great matter. Both ways the argument is of like strength. For whether he were seen in heaven, or whether he were seen on earth, either maketh sufficiently for the matter. Certain it is, he rose again: for he could not have been seen, unless he had risen again. ": He that found the means for Stephen to behold him in heaven, even he could bring to pass well enough, that Paul might hear him out of heaven. — I grant he was seen visibly and corporeally: but yet have you not proved that he was seen in earth. — Moreover, I say, that Christ was seen of men on earth after his ascension it is certain : for he was seen of Stephen ; lie was seen also of Paul. But whether he descended unto the earth, or whether he being in heaven did reveal or manifest himself to Paul, when Paul was rapt into the third heaven, I know that some contend about it : and the Scripture, as far as I have read or heard, doth not determine it. Wherefore we cannot but judge uncertainly of those things which be uncertain." Smith. We have Egesippus and Linus against you, which testify that Christ appeared corporeally on the earth to Peter after his ascension. Peter overcome with the requests and mournings of the people, which desired him to get him out of the city, because of Nero's lying in wait for him, began without company to convey himself away from thence : and when he was come to the gate, he seeth Christ come to meet him, and worshipping him, he said, " Master, whither walk you ? " Christ answered, " I am come again to be crucified." Linus, writing of the passion of Peter, hath the self-same story. St. Ambrose hath the same likewise, and also Abdias, scholar to the apostles, who saw Christ before his ascending in heaven. With what face therefore dare you affirm it to be a thing un- certain, which these men do manifestly witness to have been done ? Ridley suggested the uncertainty of this account; at the same time maintaining that even its certainty would not make against him. " I account not these men's reports so sure as the canonical scriptures. But if at any time Christ had to any man appeared here on the earth after his ascension, that doth not disprove my saying. For I go not about to tie Christ up in fetters; but that he may be seen upon the earth accord- ing to his divine pleasure, whensoever it pleaseth him. But we affirm, that it is contrary to the nature of his manhood, and the true manner of his body, that he should be together and at one instant both in heaven and earth, according to his corporeal substance." 572 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Harpsfield now took up the papal cause against Ridley, and endea- voured to confound him by means of Chedsey's famous argument with Mr. Philpot, respecting the bequest of Elijah's mantle and spirit to his venerable successor in office. Of course the authority of Chrysostom on this subject was introduced, and the popish disputant thought his armour perfect proof, and his victory absolutely certain and secure. It is needless to repeat the dialogue, as it contains nothing beyond what has already appeared. It may be remarked that the wearisome repetition of the same authorities and the same sophistries to ensnare the reformers, is a standing proof of the desperate condition to which, both intellectually and religiously, the cause of popery was even then reduced. What effect such arguments at that time might have had on minds prepared for them by superstitious discipline, we are unable to say : certain it is, however, that in the judgment of all candid readers in the present day they must appear altogether puerile and unworthy even of serious contempt. Weston and Cole successively followed Harpsfield in attacking the persecuted but patient bishop — who might well have said to either of them what the author of " Sacred Classics," in more modern times, said to a pert and prating chaplain, who was examining him for ordination — " 1 have forgotten more learning than you ever possessed!" Passing over their ridiculous efforts, we come to that of Dr. Glin, who claims more serious notice from his having been an old friend of Dr. Ridley. The following intercourse took place between them. Glin. I see that you evade all scriptures and fathers; I will go to work with you after another manner. Jesus Christ hath here his church known on earth, of which you were once a child, although now you speak contumeliously of the sacraments. Rid. This is a grievous reproach, that you call me a shifter-away of the scripture, and of the doctors: as touching the sacraments, I never yet spake contumeliously of them. I grant that Christ hath here his church on earth: but that church did ever receive and acknowledge the eucharist to be a sacrament of the body of Christ, yet not the body of Christ really, but the body of Christ by grace. Glin. Then I ask this question — Hath the catholic church ever, or at any time, been idolatrous? Rid. The church is the pillar and stay of the truth, that never yet hath been idolatrous in respect of the whole: but peradventure in respect of some part thereof, which sometimes may be seduced by evil pastors, and through ignorance. Glin. That church ever hath worshipped the flesh of Christ in the eucharist. Rid. And I also worship Christ in the sacrament, but not because he is included in the sacrament; even as I worship Christ also in the scrip- tures, not because he is really included in them. Notwithstanding, I say, that the body of Christ is present in the sacrament; but yet sacra- men tally and spiritually, according to his grace, giving life; and in that respect really, that is, according to his benediction, giving life. Further- more, I acknowledge, gladly, the true body of Christ to be in the Lord's supper, in such sort as the church of Christ doth acknowledge the same. But the true church of Christ doth acknowledge a presence of Christ's DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENbE. 573 body in the Lord's supper to be communicated to the godly by grace, and spiritually, as 1 have often showed, and by a sacramental signification, but not by the corporeal presence of the body of his flesh. Glin. Augustine against Faustus saith, " Some there were who thought us, instead of bread and of the cup, to worship Ceres and Bacchus." From this I gather, that there was an adoration of the sacrament among the fathers; and Erasmus, in an epistle to the brethren of Low Germany, saith, that the worshipping of the sacrament was before Augustine and Cyprian. Rid. We handle the signs reverently : but we worship the sacrament as a sacrament, not as a thing signified by the sacrament. Glin. What is the symbol or sacrament ? Rid. Bread. Glin. Therefore we worship bread. Rid. There is a deceit in the word adoramus. We worship the symbols when we reverently handle them. We worship Christ wheresoever we perceive his benefits : but we understand his benefit to be greatest in the sacrament. Glin. Think you that Christ hath now his church ? Rid. I do so. Glin. But all the church adoreth Christ verily and really in the sacrament. Rid. You know yourself that the eastern church would not acknowledge transubstantiation, as appeareth in the council of Florence. Cole. That is false : for in the same they did acknowledge transubstan- tiation, although they would not in treat of the matter, for that they had not in their commission so to do. — It was not because they did not acknow- ledge the same, but because they had no commission so to do. Curtop. Reverend sir, I will prove and declare, that the body of Christ is truly and really in the eucharist : and whereas the holy fathers, both of the west and east church, have written many things and no less manifest of the same matter, yet will I bring forth only Chrysostom. The place is this : " That which is in the cup, is the same that flowed from the side of Christ." But true and pure blood did flow from the side of Christ. Therefore, his true and pure blood is in the cup. Watson. It is a thing commonly received of all, that the sacraments of the new law give grace to them that worthily receive. Rid. True it is, that grace is given by the sacrament, but as by an instrument. The inward virtue and Christ give the grace through the sacrament. Wat. What is a sacrament ? Rid. I remember there be many definitions of a sacrament in Augustine; but I will take that which seemeth most fit to this present purpose. A sacrament is a visible sign of invisible grace. — The society or conjunction with Christ through the Holy Ghost is grace ; and by the sacrament we are made the members of the mystical body of Christ, for that by the sacrament the part of the body is grafted in the head. Wat. But there is difference between the mystical body and natural body. Rid. There is, I grant you, a difference; but the head of them both is one. Wat. The eucharist is a sacrament of the New Testament : therefore 574 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. it hath a promise of grace. But no promise of grace is made to bread and wine : therefore bread and wine are not the sacraments of the New Testament. Rid. I grant that grace pertaineth to the eucharist, according to this saying : " The bread which we break, is it not the communication or partaking of the body of Christ?" And like as he that eateth, and he that drinketh, unworthily of the sacrament of the body and blood of the Lord, eateth and drinketh his own damnation ; even so he that eateth and drinketh worthily, eateth life and drinketh life. I grant also, that there is no promise made to bread and wine. But inasmuch as they are sanctified, and made the sacraments of the body and blood of the Lord, they have a promise of grace annexed unto them; namely, of spiritual partaking of the body of Christ to be communicated and given, not to the bread and wine, but to them who worthily receive the sacrament. Wat. If the substance of bread and wine do remain, then the union betwixt Christ and us is promised to them that take bread and wine. But that union is not promised to bread and wine, but to the receivers of the flesh and blood. " He that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood hath eternal life." Therefore the substance of bread and wine remaineth not. Rid. The promise undoubtedly is made to the flesh and blood, but the same is to be received in the sacrament through faith. Every sacra- ment hath grace annexed unto it instrumentally. But there are divers understanding of this word " habet," " hath ;" for the sacrament hath not grace included in it ; but to those that receive it well, it is turned to grace. After that manner the water in baptism hath grace promised, and by that grace the Holy Spirit is given ; not that grace is included in water, but that grace cometh by water. — There is no promise made to him that taketh common bread and common wine; but to him that receiveth the sanctified bread of the communion, there is a large promise of grace made : neither is the promise given to the symbols, but to the thing of the sacrament. But the thing of the sacrament is the flesh and blood. — This sacrament hath a promise of grace made to those that receive it worthily, because grace is given by it, as by an instrument; not that Christ hath transfused grace into the bread and wine. — There is no pro- mise made to them that receive common bread, as it were; but to those that worthily receive the sanctified bread, there is a promise of grace made, as Origen doth testify. — The bread which we break, is it not a communication of the body of Christ? And we, being many, are one bread, one body of Christ. Wat. What doth he mean by bread in that place ? Rid. The bread of the Lord's table, the communion of the body of Christ. Wat. Hearken what Chrysostom saith on this place: "The bread which we break," etc. Wherefore did he not say participation ? Because he would signify some greater matter, and that he would declare a great convenience and conjunction betwixt the same. For we do not commu- nicate by participation only and receiving, but also by co-uniting, for likewise as that body is co-united to Christ, so also we, by the same bread, are conjoined and united to him. Rid. Let Chrysostom have his manner of speaking, and his sentence. DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 575 If it be true, I reject it not. But let it not be prejudicial to me to name it true bread. Wat. "All," saith Chrysostom, "which sit together at one board, do communicate together of one true body. What do I call," saith he, " this communicating? We are all the self-same body. What doth bread signify? The body of Christ. What are they that receive it? The body of Christ. For many are but one body." Chrysostom doth interpret this place against you. " All we be one bread, and one mystical body, which do participate together one bread of Christ." Rid. All we are one mystical body, which do communicate of one Christ in bread, after the efficacy of regeneration. I speak of the bread of the Lord's table. It is one, the church being one, because one bread is set forth upon the table : and so of one bread altogether do par- ticipate, who communicate at the table of the Lord. All, I say, which at one table together have communicated in the mysteries might well so do. But the heavenly and celestial bread is likewise one, whereof the sacramental bread is a mystery; which being one, all we together do participate. I do distribute this word " all ;" for all were wont together to communicate of the one bread divided into parts : all, I say, which were in one congregation, and which all did communicate together at one table. Wat . What ? Do you exclude then from the body of Christ all them which did not communicate, being present? Fecknam. But Cyprian saith, " Bread which no multitude doth con- sume : " which cannot be understood but only of the body of Christ. Rid. Also Cyprian in this place did speak of the true body of Christ, and not of material bread. Feck. Nay, rather he did there speak of the sacrament in that tractation, u De Coena Domini," writing upon the supper of the Lord. Rid. Truth it is, and I grant he entreateth there of the sacrament : but, also, he doth admix something therewithal of the spiritual manducation. Smith. When the Lord saith, " This is my body," he useth no tropical speech : therefore you are deceived. Rid. I deny your antecedent. Smith. I bring here Augustine expounding these words, " * Ferebatur in manibus suis — He was carried in his own hands.' How may this be understood to be done in man ? For no man is carried in his own hands, but in the hands of other. How this may be understood of David after the letter, we do not find ; of Christ we find it. For Christ was borne in his own hands, when he saith, ' This is my body,' for he carried that same body in his own hands." Augustine here did not see how this place, after the letter, could be understood of David ; because no man can carry him- self in his own hands: " Therefore," saith he, " this place is to be under- stood of Christ after the letter." For Christ carried himself in his own hands in his supper, when he gave the sacrament to his disciples, saying, " This is my body." Rid. I deny your argument, and I explicate the same. Augustine could not find, after his own understanding, how this could be under- stood of David after the letter. Augustine goeth here from others in this exposition, but I go not from him. But let this exposition of Augus- tine be granted to you ; although I know this place of Scripture be 576 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. otherwise read of other men, after the verity of the Hebrew text, and it is also otherwise to be expounded. Yet to grant to you this exposition of Augustine, I say yet, notwithstanding, it maketh nothing against my assertion : for Christ did bear himself in his own hands, when he gave the sacrament of his body to be eaten by his disciples. — If Augustine could have found in all the Scripture, that David had carried the sacra- ment of his body, then he would never have used that exposition of Christ. He verily did bear himself, but in a sacrament : and Augustine afterwards added quodam modo, that is, sacramentally. Smith. You understand not what Augustine meant when he said " quo- dam modo ;" for he meant that he did bear his very true body in that supper, not in figure and form of a body, but in form and figure of bread. Then Dr. Tresham began to speak, moved (as it seemed to Ridley) with great zeal; desiring he might reduce him again to the mother church. He was unknown to Ridley, who thought him some good old man ; but afterwards smelled a fox under a sheep's clothing. Tresham. I bring a place here out of the council of Lateran, the which council, representing the universal church, wherein were congregated three hundred bishops and seventy metropolitans, besides a great multi- tude of others, decreed that bread and wine, by the power of God's word, was transubstantiated into the body and blood of the Lord. Therefore whosoever saith contrary, cannot be a child of the church, but a heretic. Rid. Good sir, I have heard what you have cited out of the council of Lateran, and remember that there was a great multitude of bishops and metropolitans, as you said : but yet you have not numbered how many abbots, priors, and friars were in that council, who were to the number of eight hundred." Another then came in, whom Ridley knew not, and said, " The universal church, both of the Greeks and Latins, of the east and of the west, have agreed in the council of Florence uniformly in the doctrine of the sacra- ment, that there is the true and real body in the sacrament of the altar." Rid. I deny the Greek and the east church to have agreed either in the council at Florence, or at any time else, with the Romish church, in the doctrine of transubstantiation of bread into the body of Christ. For there was nothing in the council of Florence, wherein the Greeks would agree with the Romanists ; albeit, hitherto I confess it was left free for every church to use, as they were wont, leavened or unleavened bread. Here cried out Dr. Cole, and said, they agreed together concerning transubstantiation of bread into the body of Christ. Ridley meekly said that could not be. Weston. I, with one argument, will throw down to the ground your opinion, out of Chrysostom ; and I will teach, not only a figure and a sign or grace only, but the very same body, which was here conversant on the earth, to be in the eucharist. We worship the selfsame body in the eucharist which the wise men did worship in the manger. But that was his natural and real body, not spiritual: therefore the real body of Christ is in the eucharist. Again, the same Chrysostom saith, " We have not here the Lord in the manger, but on the altar. Here a woman holdeth him not in her hands, but a priest." Rid. We worship the same Lord and Saviour of the world which the wise DEBATES ON THE REAL I'RIvSKNCK. 577 men worshipped in the manger ; howbeit we do it in a mystery ; and in the sacrament of the Lord's supper, and that in spiritual liberty, as saith Augustine, De Doctrind Christiand : not in carnal servitude; that is, we do not worship servilely the signs for the things ; for that should be, as he also saith, the part of a servile infirmity. But we behold with the eyes of faith him present after grace, and spiritually set upon the table; and we worship him which sitteth above and is worshipped of the angels. For Christ is always assistant to his mysteries, as Augustine also said. And the Divine Majesty, as saith Cyprian, doth never absent itself from the divine mysteries; but this assistance and presence of Christ, as in baptism it is wholly spiritual, and by grace, and not by any corporal substance of the flesh : even so it is here in the Lord's supper, being rightly and according to the word of God duly ministered. Weston. That which the woman did hold in her womb, the same thing holdeth the priest. Rid. I grant the priest holdeth the same thing, but after another man- ner. She did hold the natural body ; the priest holdeth. the mystery of the body. I say that Chrysostom meant it spiritually. The prolocutor Weston, now dissolving the disputation, had these words : " Here you see the stubborn, the glorious, the crafty, the unconstant mind of this man. Here you see this day that the strength of the truth is with- out foil. Therefore I beseech you all most earnestly to blow the note, (and he began, and they followed,) f Verity hath the victory !' " DISPUTATION HAD AT OXFORD THE 18TH DAY OF APRIL, 1554, BETWEEN MASTER HUGH LATIMER, AND MASTER SMITH AND OTHERS. After these disputations of bishop Ridley ended, next was brought out master Hugh Latimer to dispute; which disputation began at eight of the clock in such form as before, and ended about eleven : but it was most in English, for Latimer alleged he was out of use with the Latin, and unfit for that place. There replied unto him master Smith of Oriel College ; Dr. Cartwright, Harpsfield, and divers others had snatches at him, and gave him bitter taunts. He escaped not hissings and scornful laughings, no more than they that went before him. He was very faint, and desired that he might not long tarry; and he durst not drink for fear of vomitinc. Latimer was not suffered to read what he had, as he said, painfully written; but it was exhibited up, and the prolocutor read part thereof, and so pro- ceeded unto the disputation. . Weston. Men and brethren ! we are come together this day, by the help of God, to vanquish the strength of the arguments, and dispersed opinions of adversaries, against the truth of the real presence of the Lord's body in the sacrament. And therefore, you father, if you have anything to answer, I do admonish you that you answer in short and few words. Latimer. I pray you, good master prolocutor, do not exact that of me which is not in me. I have not these twenty years much used the Latin. Weston. Take your ease, father. Lat. I thank you, sir, I am well; let me here protest my faith, for I am not able to dispute ; and afterwards do your pleasure with me. The con- clusions whereunto I must answer are these : — 2 p 578 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. M The first is — That in the sacrament of the altar, by the virtue of God's word pronounced by the priest, there is really present the natural body of Christ, conceived by the virgin Mary, under the kinds of the appear- ance of bread and wine ; in like manner his blood. The second is — That after consecration there remaineth no substance of bread and wine, nor any other substance, but the substance of God and man. The third is — That in the mass there is the lively sacrifice of the church, which is propitiable, as well for the sins of the quick, as of the dead. " Concerning the first conclusion, I think it is set forth with certain new-found terms that are obscure, and do not sound according to the speech of the scripture. But however I understand it, this I do answer plainly, though not without peril, that to the right celebration of the Lord's supper, there is no other presence of Christ required than a spiritual presence : and this presence is sufficient for a Christian, as a presence by which we abide in Christ, and Christ abideth in us, to the obtaining of eternal life, if we persevere. And this same presence may be called most fitly a real presence ; that is, a presence not feigned, but a true and a faithful presence : which thing I here rehearse lest some sycophant or scorner should suppose me, with the Anabaptists, to make nothing of the sacrament but a naked and bare sign. As for that which is feigned of many, concerning their corporal presence, I for my part take it but for a papistical invention; therefore think it utterly to be rejected. " Concerning the second conclusion, I dare be bold to say, that it hath no ground in God's word, but is a thing invented and found out by man, and therefore to be taken as false ; and I had almost said, as the mother and nurse of the other errors. It were good for my lords and masters of the transubstantiation, to take heed lest they conspire with the Nes- orians, for I do not see how they can avoid it. " The third conclusion, seemeth subtilly to sow sedition against the offering which Christ himself offered for us in his own proper person, according to those words of St. Paul, " That Christ his own self hath made purgation of our sins." And afterwards, " That he might be a merciful and faithful high priest concerning those things which are to be done with God, for the taking away of our sins." So that the expiation of our sins may be thought rather to depend on this, that Christ was an offering priest, than that he was offered, were it not that he was offered of himself; and therefore it is needless that he should be offered of any other. I will speak nothing of the wonderful presumption of man, to dare to attempt this thing without a manifest vocation, especially in that it tendeth to the overthrowing and making fruitless the cross of Christ; for truly it is no base or mean thing to offer Christ. And, therefore, well may a man say to my lords and masters, the offerers — " By what authority do ye this? and who gave you this authority? A man cannot take any thing, except it be given him from above ; much less then ought any man presume to usurp any honour, before he be thereto called. Again, " If any man sin," saith St. John, " we have (not a master and offerer at home, which can sacrifice for us at mass) an advocate, Jesus Christ," which once offered himself long ago; of which offering the efficacy and effect is perdurable for ever, so that it is needless to have such offerers. DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 579 " What meaneth Paul when lie saitli — "They that serve at the altar, are partakers of the altar?" and — "So the Lord hath ordained, that they that preach the gospel, shall live of the gospel." Whereas lie should have said, the Lord hath ordained, that they that sacrifice at mass, should live of their sacrificing, that there might be living assigned to our sacrificers now, as was before Christ's coming, to the Jewish priests. For now they have nothing to allege for their living, as they that be preachers have. So that it appeareth that the sacrificing priest- hood is changed by God's ordinance into a preaching priesthood ; and the sacrificing priesthood should cease utterly, saving inasmuch as all Christian men are sacrificing priests. The supper of the Lord was instituted to provoke us to thanksgiving, for the offering which the Lord himself did offer for us, rather than that our offerers should do there as they do. " Feed" saith Peter, "as much as ye may the flock of Christ;" but ye say, Nay, rather let us sacrifice as much as we may for the flock of Christ. If the matter be as men now make it, I can never wonder enough, that Peter would or could forget this office of sacrificing, which at this day is in such a price and estimation, that to feed is almost no- thing with many. If ye cease from feeding the flock, how shall ye be taken ? Truly catholic enough. But if you cease from sacrificing and massing, how will that be taken ? At the least, I warrant ye shall be called heretics. And whence I pray you come these papistical judg- ments ? Except, perchance, they think a man feedeth the flock in sacri- ficing for them : and then what needeth there any learned pastors? For no man is so foolish but soon he may learn to sacrifice and mass it. " Thus I have taken the more pains to write, because I refused to dis- pute, in consideration of my debility thereunto : that all men may know I have so done not without great pains, having been allowed no man to help me. God is my witness that I would as fain obey my sove- reign as any in this realm : but in these things I can never do it with an upright conscience. However, the Lord God be merciful unto us. Amen." The prolocutor, on receiving this paper, addressed the venerable writer, artfully leading him by a train of familiar questions into an argument, the chief parts of which are as follow : West. Then refuse you to dispute ? Will you here then subscribe ? Lat. No, I pray be good to an old man. You may, if it please God, be once old as I am : you may come to this age, and to this debility. West. You said on Saturday last that you could not find the mass, nor the marrow-bones thereof, in your book. What find you then there, in your book? Lat. A communion ; or two communions. I find no great diversity in them ; they are one supper of the Lord. I like the last very well ; but I do not well remember wherein they differ. West. You call the sacrament the supper of the Lord ; but you are deceived in that : for they had done the supper before, and therefore the scripture saith, "After they had supped." St. Paul findeth fault with the Corinthians, that some of them were drunk at this supper ; and vou know no man can be drunk at our communion. 58 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Lat. The first was called Ccena Judaica, " The Jewish Supper," when they eat the paschal lamb together; the other Ccena Dominica, " The Lord's Supper." Dr. Smith now interposed and said — " Because I perceive that this charge is laid upon my neck to dispute with you ; to the end that the same may go forward after a right manner and order, I will propose three questions, so as they are put forth unto me. And first I ask this ques- tion of you, although the same indeed ought not to be called in ques- tion ; but such is the condition of the church, that it is always vexed of the the wicked. I ask, I say, whether Christ's body be really in the sacrament ?" To this Latimer replied — "I trust I have obtained of master prolocutor, that no man shall exact that thing of me which is not in me. And I am sorry that this worshipful audience should be deceived of their expectation for my sake. I have given up my mind in writing to master prolocutor." Smith. Whatsoever ye have given up, shall be registered among the acts. Lat. Disputation requireth a good memory; my memory is gone clean, and marvellously weakened, and never the better, I think, for the prison. I have long sought for the truth in this matter of the sacrament, and have not been of this mind more than seven years: and my lord of Canterbury's book hath especially confirmed my judgment herein. If I could remember all therein contained, I would not fear to answer any man in this matter. In answer to a charge that he was once a Lutheran, he said boldly, "No, I was a papist : for I never could perceive how Luther could defend his opinion without transubstantiation. — I do not take in hand to defend Luther's sayings or doings. If he were here, he would defend himself well enough. I told you before that I am not meet for disputations. I pray you read mine answer, wherein I have declared my faith." fresham. It is written, " Except ye shall eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye shall have no life in you." Which when the Capernaites and many of Christ's disciples heard, they said, "This is a hard saying," etc. Now that the truth may the better appear, here I ask of you, whether Christ, speaking these words, did mean of his flesh to be eaten with the mouth, or of the spiritual eating of the same ? Lat. Christ meant of the spiritual eating of his flesh, as Augustine saith. Tresham. Of what flesh meant Christ ? his true flesh, or no? Lat. Of his true flesh, spiritually to be eaten by faith, and not corporally. Tresham. Of what flesh mean the Capernaites ? Lat. Of his true flesh also ; but to be taken with the mouth. Tresham. They, as ye confess, did mean Christ's true flesh to be eaten with the mouth. And Christ also, as I shall prove, did speak of the re- ceiving of his flesh with the mouth. Therefore they both did understand it of the eating of one thing, which is done by the mouth of the body. Lat. I say, Christ understood it not of the bodily mouth, but of the mouth of the spirit, mind, and heart. Tresham. I prove the contrary, that Christ understandeth it of the eat- ing with the bodily mouth. For, whereas custom is a good interpreter of things, and whereas the acts put in practice by Christ do certainly declare those things which he first spake ; Christ's deeds in his supper, where he gave his body to be taken with the mouth, together with the custom which hath been ever since that time of that eating which is done with the mouth, DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 581 doth evidently intimate that Christ did understand his words here cited by me, out of John vi., of the eating with the mouth. tat. He gave not his body to be received with the mouth, but he gave the sacrament of his body to be received with the mouth ; he gave the sacrament to the mouth, his body to the mind. After further discussion with Tresham, Seton, Cartwright, and Smith, the prolocutor Weston attacked Latimer out of St. Augustine, saying : "Augustine, in his Enchiridion, saith, 'We must not deny that the souls of the dead are relieved by the devotion of their friends which are living, when the sacrifice of the Mediator is offered for them.' Where he proveth the verity of Christ's body, and praying for the dead. And it is affirmed that the same Augustine said mass for his mother." To which the venerable man answered — " But that mass was not like yours, which thing doth manifestly appear in his writings, which are against it in every place. And Augustine is a reasonable man, who requireth to be believed no further than he bringeth scripture for his proof, and agreeth with God's word." The prolocutor said," Well, Mr. Latimer, this is our intent, to wish you well, and to exhort you to come to yourself, and remember that without Noah's Ark there is no health. What have they been that were the beginners of your doctrine? none but a few flying apostates, running out of Germany for fear of the fagot. What have they been which have set forth the same in this realm ? a sort of light heads, which were never constant in any one thing, as it was to be seen in the turning of the table, when like a sort of apes, they could not tell which way to turn their tails, looking one day west, and another day east ; one that way, and another this way. They will be like, they say, to the apostles, they will have no churches ! a hovel is good enough for them, They come to the communion with no reverence. They get them a tankard, and one saith I drink, and I am thankful ; the more joy of thee, saith another. In them was it true that Hilary saith, ' We make every year and every month a faith.' A runagate Scot took away the adoration or worshipping of Christ in the sacrament, by whose procurement that heresy was put into the last communion-book; so prevailed that one man's authority at that time. You never agreed with the Zurichers, or with the Germans, or with the church, or with yourself. Your stubbornness cometh of a vain glory, which is to no purpose : for it will do you no good when a fagot is in your beard. And we see all, by your own confessions, how little cause ye have to be stubborn. The queen's grace is merciful, if ye will turn." Latimer. You shall have no hope in me to turn. I pray for the queen daily, even from the bottom of my heart, that she may turn from this religion. Weston. Here you all see the weakness of heresy against the truth : he denieth all truth, and all the old fathers. And thus, good reader, thou hast the chief parts of this doctorly disputa- tion showed forth unto thee, against these three worthy confessors and martyrs of the Lord, wherein thou mayest behold the disordered usage of the university-men, the unmannerly manner of the school, the rude tumult of the multitude, and the fierceness and interruption of the doctors. And what marvel, if the prolocutor, having the law in his own hand, to do what he listed, would say for himself, " Vicit Veritas," although he said never a true word, nor made ever a true conclusion almost, in all that disputation. 582 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. On the following Friday, April 20th, the commissioners sat at St. Mary's church, as they had done on the Saturday before, when Dr. Weston in an imperious manner demanded of Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer, whether or not they would subscribe? He rudely told Cranmer that he had been overcome in the late disputation. The latter, in answer, charged him and his party with unfairness and blind partiality, urging that he had been overcome by noise only ; and that he had no chance of success unless he had brawled as loud as they, and that four or five of them had frequently attacked him at once. Ridley and Latimer were asked what they would do ? they replied that they would stand to what they had said : on which they were all called together, and sen- tence was read over them, that they were no members of the church : and therefore they, with their favourers and patrons, were condemned as heretics. And in reading of it — they were asked whether they would turn or not; but they bade them read on in the name of God, for they were not inclined to turn. So they were all three condemned. To this sentence Cranmer first answered — " From this your judgment and sentence I appeal to the just judgment of God Almighty, trusting to be present with him in heaven, for whose presence in the altar I am thus condemned." Ridley followed the archbishop — " Although I be rot of your company, yet doubt I not but my name is written in another place, whither this sentence will send us sooner than we should by the course of nature have gone." Latimer then said — " I thank God most heartily, that he hath prolonged my life to this end, that I may in this case glorify God by that kind of death." On the ensuing Saturday the papists had a mass, with a general proces- sion and great solemnity. Cranmer was caused to behold the procession out of the grating of the Bocardo prison ; Ridley from the sheriff's house ; and Latimer being brought to see it from the bailiff's house thought that he should have gone thence to burning, and spake to one Augus- tine, a peace-officer, to make a quick fire: but when he came to Carfox, the Oxford market-place, where four ways meet, he ran as fast as his aged bones would carry him, to one Spencer's shop, and would not look towards the vain procession. On the following Monday, Weston took his journey up to London, with the letters certificatory from the university to the queen, by whom Cranmer directed his letters suppli- catory unto the council : which the prolocutor opened by the way, and seeing the contents, sent them back again, refusing to carry them. Ridley also hearing of the prolocutor's going to London, sent to him his letters, which he desired him to carry up to certain bishops in London. SECTION V. PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS AGAINST THE PROTESTANTS. BEHEADING OF THE DUKE OF SUFFOLK. DECLARATION OF MR. BRADFORD AND OTHERS. MARRIAGE OF QUEEN MARY WITH PHILIP, PRINCE OF SPAIN. EVENTS THAT FOLLOWED THE MARRIAGE. Having finished our account of the disputations between the Roman catholics and the protestant divines of the reformed religion, of Oxford, PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS. 583 we shall now prosecute the historical narration of this tumultuous reign. So many things happened in different parts of the realm, that it is diffi- cult to preserve due order of time in reciting them, we shall therefore return to the month of July, 1553, when the duke of Northumberland was brought to London, and the following persons of distinction were committed to the Tower with him. The earls of Warwick and of Huntingdon; lords Ambrose, Dudley, and Hastings; Sir John and Sir Henry Gates, Andrew Dudley, Sir Thomas Palmer, and Dr. Sands, chancellor of Cambridge. Of these lord Hastings was the only one who, on his complaint, obtained liberation. The latter end of the same month several other noblemen and gentle- men, together with the bishop of London, and the chief justices of the king's bench and the common pleas, were committed either to the con- finement of the Tower, or the custody of the sheriff of London. Three days after, the queen entered the city, and her first concern was to liberate her friends. For this purpose she first proceeded to the Tower, where she remained seven days, and then removed to Richmond. She gave orders for Dr. Day to be delivered out of the Fleet, and Dr. Bonner out of the Marshalsea. The same day Tonstal and Gardiner were liberated from the Tower, and Gardiner was received into the queen's privy council, and made lord chancellor. The Latin Dirige was sung within the Tower by all the king's choristers, the bishop of Winchester being chief minister, and the queen and most of the council were present. A few clays after, the king's remains were brought to Westminster and there buried; on which occasion Dr. Day, bishop of Chichester, preached. The same day a mass of Requiem was sung within the Tower by the bishop of Winchester, who had on his mitre, and performed all things as in times past; the queen being present. Dr. Bourne preached at Paul's Cross soon after, and commands were issued throughout the city, that no apprentices should come to the sermon, nor bear any knife or dagger. Other committals to the Tower took place, among them Mr. Bradford, Mr. Beacon, and Mr. Vernon. The duke of Northumberland, the marquis of Northampton, and the earl of Warwick, were arraigned at Westminster, and condemned the same day, the duke of Norfolk presiding as high judge. Soon after these cases were determined Sir Andrew Dudley, Sir John and Sir Henry Gates, and Sir Thomas Palmer, were arraigned and condemned, the lord marquis of Winchester being high judge. At the same time a letter was sent to Sir Henry Tyrel, and to Anthony and Edmund Brown, esquires, praying them to commit to ward all such as should contemn the queen's order of religion, or keep themselves from church, and there to remain until they should be conformable, and to signify their names to the council. In the course of the month, Dr. Watson, chaplain to the bishop of Winchester, preached at St. Paul's Cross, at whose sermon were present the marquis of Winchester, the earls of Bedford and Pembroke, the lord Rich, and 200 of the guard with their halberds, lest the people should have offered to disturb the preacher. Apostacies now began. The duke of Northumberland, the marquis of Northampton, Sir Andrew Dudley, Sir John Gates, and Sir Thomas Palmer, heard mass within 584 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the Tower, after which they all received the sacrament in one kind only, as in popish times. On the same day also the queen set forth a procla- mation, signifying to the people that she could not hide any longer the religion which she from her infancy had professed, and prohibiting in the proclamation all printing and preaching — so adverse are the press and the pulpit to error. The unhappy noblemen, however, found their apostacy unavailing to save their lives. Two days after they had bowed before the idolatrous mass, three of them had to bow their wretched heads beneath the axe of the executioner. They suffered on Tower-hill ; and on the same day several others of the nobility heard mass within the Tower, and after- wards received the sacrament in one kind ; some of them in sad pre- paration for the same fate. It was rumoured that Cranmer had promised to say mass after the old manner, and that he even had said it at Can- terbury. Upon this, in order to check the evil effects of this artifice of his enemies, and to confirm his friends in their opinion of his steadiness, he published the following declaration, on Sept. 7, 1553. " As the devil, Christ's ancient adversary, is a liar, and the father of lies, even so hath he stirred up his servants and members to persecute Christ and his true word and religion with lying; which he ceaseth not to do most earnestly at this present time. For whereas the prince of famous memory, king Henry VIIL, seeing the great abuses of the Latin mass, reformed some things therein in his life-time; and afterwards our late sovereign lord king Edward VI. took the same wholly away, for the manifold and great errors and abuses of the same, and restored in the place thereof Christ's holy supper, according to his own institution, and such as the apostles used in the primitive church. To overthrow this the devil now goeth about by lying to restore his Latin satisfactory mass, a thing of his own invention and device. And to bring the same more easily to pass, some have abused the name of me Thomas, arch- bishop of Canterbury, reporting abroad, that I have set up the mass at Canterbury, and that I offered to say mass at the burial of our late sovereign, king Edward VI., and before the queen's highness, at St. Paul's church, and I know not where. And although I have been well exercised these twenty years to suffer and bear evil reports and lies, and have not been much grieved thereat, but have borne all things quietly; yet when untrue reports turn to the hindrance of God's truth, they are in no wise to be suffered. Wherefore these be to signify unto the world, that it was not I that set up the mass at Canterbury, but it was a false, flattering, lying and dissembling monk, one Dr. Thornton, who caused it to be set there without mine advice or counsel. The Lord recompense him in that day! And as for offering myself to say mass before the queen's highness, or in any other place, I never did it, as her grace well knoweth. But if her grace will give me leave, I shall be ready to prove, against all that will say the contrary, that all which is contained in the holy communion, set out by the most innocent and godly prince king Edward VI. in his high court of parliament, is conformable to that order which our Saviour Christ did both observe, and command to be observed, and which his apostles and the primitive church used many years; whereas the mass in many MARY'S CORONATION. 585 things, not only hath no foundation of Christ, his apostles, nor the primitive church, but is manifestly contrary to the same, and containeth many horrible abuses in it. And although many do report that Peter Martyr is unlearned; yet if the queen's highness will grant thereunto, I, with the said Peter Martyr, and other four or five which I shall choose, will, by God's grace, take upon us to defend, not only the common prayers of the church, the ministration of the sacraments, and other rites and ceremonies, but also all the doctrine and religion set out by our sovereign lord king Edward VI. to be more pure, and according to God's word, than any other that hath been used in England these 1000 years: so that God's word may be judge, and that the reasons and proofs of both parties may be set out in writing, to the intent, as well that all the world may examine and judge thereon, as that no man shall start back from his writing. And where they boast of the faith, that hath been in the church these 1500 years, we will join with them in this point; and that the same doctrine and usage is to be followed, which was in the church 1500 years past; and we shall prove, that the order of the church, set out at this present in this realm by act of par- liament, is the same that was used in the church 1500 years past; and so shall they never be able to prove theirs." This protest of Cranmer obtained for him an almost immediate com- mittal to the Tower. Latimer had been conducted to the same confine- ment the previous day. The queen was then at Richmond busied in preparing for her coronation. Anxious to know that the foes she most dreaded were safe, she came in little more than a week herself to the Tower, where she staid a short time to give every necessary direction concerning their secure custody and their purposed trial and punishment. After two or three days she proceeded from the Tower through the city, where many pageants were made to receive her, and thus she was triumphantly brought to Whitehall. On the following Sunday she went from Whitehall to Westminster Abbey, accompanied with most of the nobility of the realm, and all the foreign ambassadors, and the mayor of London, with all the aldermen. Out of the Abbey, to receive her, were brought three silver crosses, accompanied by about fourscore singing men, in very rich and gorgeous copes. Amongst them was the dean of Westminster, and divers of the queen's chaplains, all of whom bore some ensign in their hands; after them followed ten" bishops, all mitred, with their crosier staves in their hands. In this order they returned from Westminster Hall, before the queen, to the Abbey, where she was crowned by Stephen Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord chancellor of England. At the time of the coronation, Dr. Day, bishop of Chichester, delivered a sermon to the queen and the nobility. It was hoped that a general pardon would have been proclaimed within the. Abbey at the time of her coronation ; but all the prisoners of the Tower and of the Fleet were excepted, and upwards of sixty others. The vice-chancellor of Cambridge challenged one Mr. Pierson, who still ministered the communion in his own parish, and received strangers of other parishes to the same, but would not say mass. Whereupon, within two days after, he was discharged from further ministering in his cure. The archbishop of York also was sent to the Tower, Oct. 4, 1553. 586 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. On Sunday, the 15th of October, Laurence Saunders preached at All- hailows in Bread Street, where he declared the abomination of the mass, with divers other matters, very notably and godly ; whereof more will be heard hereafter. But about noon of the same day, he was sent for by the bishop of London, and from thence committed to the Marshalsea. On Thursday, October 5th, the new parliament met. There had been great violence used in many elections, and many false returns were made : some who were known to be zealous for the reformation were forcibly turned out of the house of commons, which was afterwards offered as a ground upon which that parliament, and all acts made in it, might have been annulled. There came only two of the reformed bishops to the house of lords, the two archbishops and three bishops being in prison; two others were turned out, the rest stayed at home, so only Taylor and Harley, the bishops of Lincoln and Hereford, attended. When mass began to be said, they are reported to have gone out, and were never suffered to come to their places again : others say, they refused to join in that worship, and were in consequence violently thrust out. In the house of commons some of the more forward moved that king Edward's laws might be reviewed, but things were not yet ripe enough for that. On Sunday, Oct. 20, Dr. Weston preached at Paul's Cross. In the beginning of his sermon he desired the people to pray for the souls of the departed. "You shall pray," said he, "for all them that be de- parted, who be neither in heaven nor hell, but in a place not yet sufficiently purged to come to heaven, that they may be relieved by your devout prayers." He named the Lord's table an oyster-board; said that the catechism in Latin lately published was abominable heresy, and likened its defenders to Julian the apostate, and the book to a dialogue written by Julian, wherein Christ and Pilate were the speakers; with many other things. This sermon Mr. Coverdale learnedly confuted in writing, and would have publicly read his refutation had he been allowed. Soon after these events the vice-chancellor of Cambridge went to Clare Hall, and removed Dr. Madew, on account of his being married, and placed Mr. Swynbourne in the mastership there, by virtue of the lord chancellor's letters. On Oct. 28, the papists in King's College, Cambridge, revived their whole service again in the Latin tongue, contrary to the law, then not repealed ; but anticipating its repeal very soon after. The vice-chancellor sent for the curate of the Round church in Cambridge, commanding him not to minister any more in the English tongue, saying, he would have one uniform order of service throughout the town, and that in Latin, with mass, which was established about the middle of November. The archdeacon's official visited Huntington, where he charged to imprison all such as disturbed the queen's pro- ceedings, in hindering the Latin service, setting up their altars, and saying mass or any part thereof: whereby it was easy to see how these men meant to proceed, having the law once on their side, who thus so readily, against a manifest law, would attempt the punishment of any man. In December there were two proclamations at London; one for PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS. 587 repealing certain acts made by king- Edward, and for setting up the mass before the feast of the nativity. The other was, that no man should interrupt any of those who would say mass after it became established. The parliament continued till the 5th of December. In it were dissolved, as well all the statutes made of praemunire in the time of king- Henry VIII. as also other laws and statutes concerning religion and administration of sacraments, decreed under Edward VI.; while it was appointed, that on the eve of St. Thomas ensuing, the old form and manner of church-service, used in the last year of king Henry, should again be restored. About this time a priest of Canterbury said mass on one day, and on the following he came into the pulpit, and desired the people to forgive him: for he said he had betrayed Christ, not as Judas did, but as Peter did, and made a long sermon against the mass. At the beginning of the new year, 1554, four ambassadors came into London from the em- peror, and were honourably received. Their names were, le compte de Egmont, le compte de Lalen, monsieur Corire, le chancelier Nigry. Very soon after, there were appointed a great number of new bishops, deans, and other church dignitaries; more than were ever made at one time since the conquest. They were, Dr. Holyman, bishop of Bristol; Dr. Cotes, bishop ot West-Chester; Dr. Hopton, bishop of Norwich; Dr. Bourne, bishop of Bath; Dr. White, bishop of Lincoln ; Dr. Mores, bishop of Rochester; Dr. Morgan, bishop of St. David's; Dr. Poole, bishop of St. Asaph; Dr. Brookes, bishop of Gloucester; Dr. Moreman, coadjutor to the bishop of Exeter, and after his decease bishop of Exeter; Dr. Glyn, bishop of Bangor; Mr. Fecknam, dean of St. Paul's; Dr. Reynolds, dean of Bristol ; with several others. The vice-chancellor of Cambridge now called a congregation general, wherein amongst other things he shewed, that the queen would have there a mass of the Holy Ghost upon the 18th of the following February, which was her birth-day. This was accordingly fulfilled on the day appointed, and that very solemnly. For opposing this measure Dr. Crome was committed to the Fleet, and one Addington was committed to the Tower. The same day, the bishop of Winchester declared openly in the court that the treaty of marriage between the queen's majesty and the prince of Spain was concluded : and the day following, the mayor, the aldermen, and several of the commons, were at the court, and there they were commanded by the lord chancellor to prepare the city to receive prince Philip of Spain; declaring unto them what a catholic, mighty, prudent, and wise prince he was. 1 1 When the treaty of the queen's marriage came to be known, the house of commons was much alarmed at it; and they sent their speaker with twenty of their members, with an address to her not to marry a stranger: they were indeed so inflamed, that the court judged it necessary to dissolve the parliament. Gardiner, upon this, let the emperor know that the jealousies which were taken up on account of the match were such, that unless very extraordinary conditions were offered, it would occasion a general rebel- lion. He also wrote to him that great sums of money must be sent over, both to gratify the nobility, and to enable them to carry the elections to the next parliament in opposition to such as would stand against them. As for conditions, it was resolved to grant any that should be demanded; for the emperor reckoned that if his son were once married to the queen of England, it would be easy for him to govern the councils as he pleased. 588 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Several additional arrests were now made : the lord Marquis of Nor- thampton was again committed to the Tower, and Sir Edward Warner with him. Mr. Justice Hales was committed to the Marshalsea ; and Mr. Rogers to Newgate. During several days about this time, the Londoners prepared a number of soldiers, by the queen's command, to go into Kent against the commons. These were commanded by the duke of Norfolk, the earl of Wormwood, Sir Henry Jerningham, Sir George Hayward,andten other captains. The soldiers, when they came to Rochester bridge, where they should have set upon their enemies, most of them left their own captains, and came wholly to the Kentish men ; and so the captains returned to the court both void of men and victory, leaving behind them six pieces of ordnance and treasure. In January, the duke of Suffolk, with his brethren, departed from his house at Shene, and went into Leicestershire ; after whom the earl of Huntingdon was sent to take him and bring him to London ; and on his return proclaimed the duke traitor as he rode. A few days after his arrival in the city, he was arraigned at Westminster, and the same day condemned to die by his peers; the earl of Arundel being chief judge. The three sons of Lord Cobham, a noble family, every generation of which were faithful to the reformed cause, were also arraigned at West- minster : the youngest was condemned, whose name was Thomas ; the other two came not to the bar. About the same time Lord John Gray was arraigned at Westminster, and condemned. Lord Thomas Gray, and Sir James Croft, were brought through London to the Tower, with a number of horsemen ; and Sir Nicholas Throgmorton was committed to the same common receptacle. The latter end of this month February, Henry Gray duke of Suffolk, was brought forth to the scaffold on Tower Hill, and in his coming thither there accompanied him Dr. Weston as his spiritual father, notwithstand- ing, as it seemed, against the will of the duke. For when the duke went up to the scaffold, Weston, being on the left hand, pressed to go up with him ; when he, with his hand, put him down again off the stairs; but Weston taking hold of the duke, forced him down likewise. And as they ascended the second time, the duke again put him down. Then Weston said, that it was the queen's pleasure he should attend. Where- with the duke casting his hands abroad, ascended up the scaffold, and paused a long time after. He then said, " Masters, I have offended the queen, and her laws, and thereby am justly condemned to die, and am willing to die, desiring all men to be obedient, and I pray God that this my death may be an example to all men, beseeching you all to bear me witness, that I die in the faith of Christ, trusting to be saved by his blood only, and by no other sacrifice ; for Christ died for me, and for all them that truly repent, and stedfastly trust in him. And I do repent, desiring you all to pray to God for me ; and that when you see my breath depart from me, you will pray that he may receive my soul." And then he desired all men to forgive him. Dr. Weston then declared with a loud voice, that the queen's majesty had forgiven him. With that several of the standers by said, with audible voices, " Such forgiveness God send thee !" The duke then kneeled, and said the psalm Miserere mei Deus unto the end, holding EXECUTION OF SUFFOLK. 589 up his hands, and looking up to heaven. And when he had ended he said, " Into thy hands, O Lord, I commend my spirit." Then he arose, and delivered his cap and his scarf unto the executioner, who, on his knees asked the duke forgiveness. " God forgive thee, and I do," said the duke : " and when thou dost thine office, I pray thee do it well, and send me out of this world quickly, and God have mercy on thee." Tlu-n stood there a man who said, " My lord, how shall I do for the money that you owe me?" The duke said, "Alas, good fellow, I pray thee trouble me not now, but go thy way to my officers." He then tied a handkerchief about his face, kneeled down, and said the Lord's prayer, and, " Christ have mercy upon me." After which he laid his neck on the block, and the executioner took the axe, and at the first blow struck off his head and then held it up to the people. The same day about 240 prisoners received pardon, and came through the city with halters about their necks. The next day Sir William Sentlow, one of the lady Elizabeth's gentlemen, was committed as a prisoner to the master of the horse. On the day following Sir John Rogers was committed to the Tower. Within a few days after, all such priests in the diocese of London as were married were divorced from their livings, and commanded to bring their wives within a fortnight, that they might be likewise divorced from them ; this was an act of the bishop's own power. The next month certain gentlemen of Kent were sent into that county to be executed, among whom we find the two Mantels, two Knevets, and Bret. When the elder Mantel was under the gallows, upon his being turned off the rope broke. Upon this the priests present urged him to recant, and receive the sacrament of the altar, promising him the queen's pardon : but this worthy gentleman rejected their insidious council, and chose rather to die, than live by dishonouring God. We now come to the second year of Mary's short and affecting reign. As Easter approached, every householder in London w r as commanded to appear before the alderman of his ward, and all were commanded, that they, their wives, and servants, should prepare themselves for confession, and receive the sacrament at Easter; and that neither they, nor any of them should depart out of the city until Easter was past. Additional excitement was produced by the lady Elizabeth, the queen's sister, being brought to the Tower. At the same time the marquis of Northampton, the lord Cobham, and Sir William Cobham, were released from their confinement. On Easter-day, in the morning, at St. Pancras in Cheap, the crucifix, with the vessel in which the host was kept, were stolen out of the sepulchre, before the priest declared the resurrection : so that when, after his accustomed manner, he put his hand into the sepulchre, and said very devoutly, " He is risen, he is not here," he found his words true, for that which he called the body of Christ was not there indeed. Whereupon, being half dismayed, the priests consulted among them- selves, whom they thought the likeliest to do this; in which consultation they remembered one Marsh, who a little before had been dismissed from his parsonage because he was married, to whose charge thev laid it. But when they could not prove it, being brought before the mayor, they then charged him to have kept company with his wife, since that they were by commandment divorced. Whereunto he answered, that 590 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. he thought the queen had done him wrong, to take from him both his living and his wife : which words were then noted, and taken very grievously, and he and his wife were both committed to separate prisons, though he was ill and needed her care. A ludicrous event distinguished the beginning of April. A cat was hanged upon a gallows at the cross in Cheapside, apparelled like a priest ready to say mass, with a shaven crown : her two. fore-feet were tied over her head, with a round paper like a wafer-cake, put between them, as though in the act of elevating the host. At this the queen and the bishops were very angry ; and the same afternoon there was a proclamation issued, that whosoever could bring forth the guilty party, should have twenty nobles, which were afterwards increased to twenty marks, but none could or would earn them. The first occasion of setting up this gallows was well understood. After the bishop of Winchester's sermon before the queen, for the speedy execution of Wyat's soldiers, there were several gibbets set up in divers parts of the city ; two in Cheapside, one at Leadenhall, one at Billings- gate, one at St. Magnus' church, one in Smithfield, one in Fleet-street, four in Southwark, one at Aldgate, one at Bishopsgate, one at Alders- gate, one at Newgate, one at Ludgate, one at St. James's Park corner, one at Cripplegate : all which remained for the terror of others, from February to June. But at the coming in of the queen's husband they were taken down. It should have been remarked that when Wyat was brought to the scaffold on Tower-hill, he spoke these words concerning the lady Eliza- beth, and the earl of Devonshire : " Concerning what I have said of others in my examination, to charge any as partakers of my doings, I accuse neither my lady Elizabeth's grace, nor my lord of Devonshire. I cannot accuse them, neither am I able to say, that to my knowledge they knew any thing of the rising." And when Dr. Weston told him, that his confession was otherwise before the council, he answered, " That which I said then, I said ; but that which I say now is true." Even at this dark and corrupt period the benefit of trial by jury was in some instances remarkably seen. Sir Nicholas Throgmorton was sus- pected to be of the conspiracy with the duke of Suffolk and the rest against the queen. But he so learnedly and wisely behaved himself, as well in clearing his own case, as also in opening such laws of the realm as were then alleged against him, that the jury could not in conscience find him guilty; for which the jury being substantial men of the city, were each bound in the sum of 500 nobles, to appear before the queen's council at a day appointed there to answer such things as should be said against them. This conscientious jury appeared accordingly before the council in the Star Chamber, upon Wednesday, April the 25th, from whence, after certain questioning, they were committed to prison, Emanuel Lucas and Mr. Whetstone to the Tower, and the other ten to the Fleet. Sir James Croft and Mr. Winter, two friends of Sir Nicholas Throgmorton, were imprisoned at the same time, and were soon after arraigned. Croft was sentenced, but the other re-committed. Soon after William Thomas was arraigned at Guildhall, and condemned ; on the following day he was hanged, drawn, and quartered. His accusa- THE LADY ELIZABETH IMPRISONED. 591 tion was, for conspiring the queen's death, of which he was generally supposed innocent. This is certain, that he made a godly end, and wrote many fruitful exhortations and letters in the prison before his death. A solemn disputation was now appointed at Cambridge, between Mr. Bradford, Mr. Saunders, Mr. Rogers, and their protestant friends, and the doctors of both universities on the papal side. Whereupon those defenders of the truth who were in prison, having notice thereof, not- withstanding they were destitute of books, and not ignorant of the pur- pose of their adversaries, and how the cause had been prejudged before at Oxford ; nevertheless they thought that they ought not refuse the offer, if they might be quietly heard ; and therefore wisely pondering the matter with themselves, by a public consent, directed out of prison a declaration of their mind by writing. Wherein first, as touching the disputation, although they knew that they should do no good, because all things were pre-determined ; yet they would not refuse to dispute, if the disputation might be either before the queen, or before the council, or before the parliament, or if they might argue by writing ; for else, if the matter were left with the popish doctors in their own schools, they had sufficient proof by the experience of Oxford, what little good would be done at Cambridge. Consequently, declaring the faith and doctrine of their religion, and exhorting the people to submit with all patience and humility, either to the will or punishment of the higher powers, they appealed from them to be their judges in this behalf, and so ended their protestation. This was drawn up by Miles Coverdale, late of Exon, and signed on the 18th day of May, 1554, by thirteen reformers, among whom were Farrar, Taylor, Bradford, Philpot, Rogers, Saunders, Wigorn, Crome, and Glouces. Episcopus, alias John Hooper. The lady Elizabeth, sister to the queen, now excited considerable attention and anxiety on both sides. On the 19th of May, in this year, she was brought to the Tower, and committed to the custody of Sir John Williams, afterwards lord Williams of Thame, by whom her highness was gently and courteously treated. She afterwards was sent to Woodstock, and there committed to the keeping of Sir Henry Beni- field, knight of Oxborough, in Norfolk; who, on the contrary, both for- getting her estate, and his own duty, as it is reported, shewed himself more hard and straight towards her, than either cause was given on her part, or reason of his own should have led him. Some such restraint, however, was thought necessary on the part of her jealous and vindictive sister, especially in the immediate prospect of the Spanish prince, her husband, arriving in England. He landed at Southampton July 20th. As he placed his foot for the first time on British ground he drew his sword, and carried it a little way naked in his hand. This was interpreted as a sign that he intended to rule by the sword ; but his friends ingeni- ously said, it imported that he would draw his sword for the defence of the nation. The mayor of Southampton brought him the keys of the town, which he took from him, and gave them back, without the least shew of his being pleased with this expression of respect. Five days after, the marriage took place in the cathedral church at Winchester, by the bishop of Winchester, in the presence of a great number of noble- 592 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. men of both realms. At the altar, the emperor's ambassador being' present, he openly pronounced that, in consideration of that marriage, the emperor had granted and given to his son the kingdom of Naples, and other domains and titles. Whereupon the 1st of August following, there was a proclamation, that from that time forth the style of all manner of writing should be altered, and the following be used through the realm : — " Philip and Mary by the grace of God, king and queen of England, France, Naples, Jerusalem, and Ireland, defenders of the faith, princes of Spain and Sicily, archduke and duchess of Austria, duke and duchess of Milan, Burgundy, and Brabant, count and countess of Hapsburg, Flanders, and Tyrol." Of this marriage, as the papists chiefly seemed to be very glad, so several of them, after divers studies to shew forth their inward affections, made interludes and pageants. Some drew forth genealogies, deriving the pedigree of the prince from Edward III., and John of Gaunt. Among others, Mr. White, then bishop of Lincoln, who was intoxicated with a poet's as well as a patriot's joy at the marriage, made several verses, which were answered by the bishop of Norwich and other sober- minded writers. In a short time, the king and queen removed from Winchester to several other places, and by easy journies came to Windsor Castle, where he was installed with the Order of the Garter. A remarkable circumstance occurred at this ceremony : a herald took down the arms of England at Windsor, and in the place of them would have set up the arms of Spain, but he was commanded by certain lords to restore the former to their place. The peculiar fondness of papists for pageantry of every kind, as well as the general spirit of the age, was now manifested in the several pro- gresses and processions of the new king and queen, as they were called, through some parts of the country and streets of the city. In addition to the display of flags and the discharge of cannon, giants were placed in conspicuous parts with addresses in their hands; conduits were built and adorned in the gayest manner; images of worthies, as they were called, were placed here and there, holding presents and inscriptions. Such was the fulsome desire to gratify the prince, that in one place were some verses describing the five worthies of the world in five Philips, namely, Philip of Macedon, Philip the Emperor, Philip the Bold, Philip the Good, and Philip prince of Spain and king of England! In other places he was saluted by an image representing Orpheus, and the English people likened to savage beasts, following after Orpheus's harp, and dancing after king Philip's pipe! Bonner, bishop of London, with the pomp of all his prebendaries* about him, in St. Paul's choir, the cross being laid along upon the pavement, and also the doors of the church being shut, proceeded to say and sing divers prayers: which done, they anointed the cross with oil in divers places, and afterwards crept unto it, and kissed it. Then they took the cross and set it in its accustomed place, and all the while the whole choir sang Te Deum, which ended, they rang the bells, not only for joy, but also for the notable and great fact they had done therein. The new prince was present, and after Dr. Harps- field had finished his oration in Latin, he set forward through Fleet Street, and so came to Whitehall, where he with the queen remained BTSHOP BONNER'S VISITATION. 593 four days, and from thence removed unto Richmond. The pageants being over, all the lords had leave to depart into their counties, with strait command to bring all their accoutrements and artillery into the Tower of London. Now there remained no English lord at court, but the bishop of Winchester. The king's gravity proved very unacceptable to the English, who love a mean between the stiffness of the Spaniards and the gaiety of the French. But if they did not like his temper, they were out of measure in love with his bounty and wealth : for he brought over a vast treasure with him, the greatest part of which was distributed among those, who, for his Spanish gold, had sold their country and religion. At his coming to London, he procured the pardon of many prisoners, and among others, of Holgate, archbishop of York. He also interposed for preserving lady Elizabeth, and the earl of Devonshire. Gardiner was much set against them, and thought they made but half work so long as she lived. The earl of Devonshire, to be freed from all jealousy, went beyond the sea, and died a year after in Italy, some said of poison. Philip at first took care to preserve the lady Elizabeth on a generous account, pitying her innocence, and hoping by so acceptable an act of favour to recommend himself to the nation: but interest soon after for- tified those good and wise inclinations ; for when he lost all hope of issue by the queen, he considered that the queen of Scotland, who was soon after married to the dauphin, was next in succession after lady Elizabeth; so that if she should be put out of the way, the crown of England would become an accession to the French crown; and therefore he took care to preserve her, and perhaps hoped to have wrought so much on her by his good offices, that if her sister should die without children, she might be induced to marry him. But this was the only grateful thing he did in England. He affected so extravagant a state, and was so sullen and silent, that it was not easy for any to come within the court ; and access to him was not to be had, without demanding it with almost as much formality as ambassadors used when they desired an audience: so that a general discontent was quickly spread into most places of the kingdom. But Gardiner was well pleased, for the conduct of affairs was put entirely in his hands. In the month of September, bishop Bonner began his visitation. The chief purpose of it was to see whether the old service, with all its rites, was again set up ; and to inquire concerning the lives and labours of the clergy, of their marriage, and their living chastely ; whether they were suspected of heresy, or of favouring heretics. Bonner conducted himself on this occasion like a madman ; for if either the bells were not rung when he came near any church, or if he had not found the sacra- ment exposed, he was ready to break out into the foulest language; and not content with that, he was accustomed to beat his clergy when he was displeased with any thing; for he was naturally cruel and brutal. He took care to have those parts of scripture, that had been painted on the walls of the churches, to be washed off: and upon this it was said, that it was necessary to dash out the scripture, to make way for images, for they agreed so ill, that they could not decently stand together. Upon the Sunday following the bishop of Winchester, lord chancellor 2 Q 594 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. of England, preached at St. Paul's Cross before all the council. The gospel whence he made his sermon was from Matthew, chap, xxii., where the Pharisees came unto Christ, and among them one asked Christ which was the greatest commandment. Christ answered, " Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and thy neighbour as thyself: in these two are comprehended the law and the prophets." After a long declaration of these words, speaking much of love and charity, at last he had occasion to speak of the true and false teachers : saying, that all the preachers almost in king Edward's time, preached nothing but voluptuousness, and blasphemous lies, affirming their doctrine to be that false doctrine whereof St. James speaketh in his third chapter, that it was full of perverse zeal, earthly, full of discord and dissention, that the preachers reported nothing truly, and that if a man vowed to-day, he might break it to-morrow at his pleasure, with many other things. When he spake of the sacrament, he said, that all the church from the beginning have confessed Christ's natural body to be in heaven, and here to be in the sacrament, and so concluded that matter. He con- cluded the discourse by an extravagant piece of flattery on the king and queen. SECTION VI. CARDINAL POLE ARRIVES FROM ROME. HIS ABSOLUTION. GARDINER'S SERMON. NATION RETURNS TO POPERY. FAITHFULNESS OF THE PRO- TESTANT LEADERS. DIFFERENCE OF SENTIMENT BETWEEN POLE AND GARDINER RESPECTING HERETICS. A treaty had commenced between Mary and the pope on her first coming to the throne, when the pope's legate at Brussels sent over Commendone, to see if he could speak with her, and to persuade her to reconcile her kingdom to the apostolic see. The management of the matter was left to his discretion, and the legate would not trust this secret to Gardiner, nor any of the other bishops. Commendone came over in the disguise of a merchant, and by accident met with one of the queen's servants, who had lived years beyond sea, and was known to him, and by his means procured access to the queen. She assured him of her firm resolution to return to the obedience of that see, but charged him to manage the matter with great prudence; for if it were too early dis- covered, it might disturb her affairs, and obstruct the design. By him she wrote both to the pope and to cardinal Pole; and instructed Com- mendone, in order to the sending over Pole with a legatine power, which accordingly took place. On his arrival, he first addressed the king and queen, inviting them to return to the sheepfold of the church. The queen felt a strange emotion of joy within her, as he made his speech, which her flattering attendants encouraged her to interpret as a sign that she should have a son! On this prediction Te Deum was sung and bonfires soon blazed around the city. The priests proclaimed that another John the Baptist was at hand, who had leaped on the salutation of the vicar of Christ! ! Both houses agreed on an address to the king CARDINAL POLE'S EMBASSAGE. 595 and queen, that they would intercede with the legate to reconcile them to the see of Rome, and they offered to repeal all the laws they had made against the pope's authority, in sign of their repentance. Upon this the cardinal came to the parliament, which was held at Whitehall on account of her majesty's confinement there by indisposition. She sat with the prince under the cloth of state, and the cardinal sitting on the right hand, with all the other estates of the parliament being present: the bishop of Winchester being lord chancellor, began in this manner. " My lords of the upper-house, and you my masters of the nether house, here is present the right reverend father in God my lord cardinal Pole, come from the apostolic see of Rome, as ambassador to the king and queen's majesties, upon one of the weightiest causes that ever hap- pened in this realm, and which pertaineth to the glory of Cod, and your universal benefit. The which embassage their majesties' pleasure is to be signified unto you all by his own mouth, trusting that you will receive and accept it in benevolent and thankful wise as their highnesses have done, and that you will give an attentive and inclinable ear unto him." The lord chancellor having ended, the cardinal began his oration, declaring the causes of his coming, and his desires and requests. In the mean time, the court-gate was kept shut until he had made an end of his oration. The next day after, the three estates assembled again in the great chamber of the court at Westminster; where the king and queen's majesties and the cardinal being present, they did exhibit (all kneeling on their knees) a supplication to their highnesses; which being read, the king and queen delivered the same unto the cardinal, who, perceiving the effects thereof to answer his expectation, did receive the same most gladly from their majesties: and after he had in a few words given thanks to God, and declared what great cause he had to rejoice above all others, that his coming from Rome into England had taken such happy success, he, by the pope's authority, gave them this absolution : — " Our Lord Jesus Christ, who with his most precious blood hath redeemed and washed us from all our sins and iniquities, that he might purchase unto himself a glorious spouse without spot or wrinkle, and whom the Father hath appointed head over all his church, he by his mercy absolve you. And we by apostolic authority given unto us by the most holy lord pope Julius the third, his vicegerent on earth, do absolve and deliver you, and every of you, with the whole realm and dominions thereof, from all heresy and schism, and from all and every judgment, censures, and pains, for that cause incurred : and also we do restore you again unto the unity of our mother the holy church, as in our letters more plainly it shall appear : in the name of the Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost." This business finished, they all went into the chapel, and there singing Te Deum, with great solemnity declared the joy for this reconciliation. The report of the cardinal's quick success was with great speed sent unto Rome ; as well by the king and cardinal's letters, which hereafter follow, as also otherwise. Whereupon the pope caused three processions to be made at Rome, and thanks to be given to God, with great joy, for the conversion of England to his church ; and therefore praising the cardinal's diligence, and the devotion of the king and queen, on 596 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Christmas eve, by his bulls he set forth a general pardon to all such as did truly rejoice in the same. On Sunday, December 2nd, Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord chancellor of England, preached at Paul's Cross, at which sermon the king and cardinal Pole were present. He took for his text these words of the epistle of St. Paul to the Romans, "This also we know the season, brethren, that we should now awake out of sleep, for now is our salvation nearer than when we believed. " From them he shewed how the saying of St. Paul was verified upon the Gentiles, who had a long time slept in dark ignorance, not knowing God : therefore St. Paul, to stir up their heavy dulness, willed them to awake out of their long sleep, because their salvation was nearer than when they believed. In amplifying this matter, and comparing present times with theirs, he took occasion to declare what difference the Jewish sacra- ments had from those of the christians, wherein he used these words: — " Even as the sacrament of the Jews declared Christ to come, so do our sacraments declare him to be already come : but Christ to come, and Christ to be come, is not all one. For now that he is come, the Jews' sacraments are done away, and ours only remain, which declare that he is already come, and is nearer us than he was to the fathers of the old law; for they had him but in signs, but we have him in the sacrament of the altar, even his very body. Wherefore now also it is time that we awake out of our sleep, who have slept, or rather dreamed, these twenty years past, as shall more easily appear, by declaring at large some of the properties and effects of a sleep or a dream. "And first, as men intending to sleep, do separate themselves from company, and desire to be alone; even so have we separated ourselves from the see apostolic of Rome, and have been alone, unlike any other realm in Christendom. Secondly, as in sleep men dream sometimes of killing, sometimes of maiming, sometimes of burning or drowning, sometimes of such beastliness as I dare not name, but will spare your ears; so we have in this our sleep, not only dreamed of beastliness, but we have done it indeed. For in this our sleep hath not one brother destroyed another? Hath not half our money been wiped away at one time? And again, those that would defend their conscience were slain, and others also otherwise troubled; besides infinite other things which you all know as well as I, whereof I appeal to your own consciences. Further, in a man's sleep all his senses are stopped, so that he can neither see, smell, nor hear; even so, whereas tl e ceremonies of the church were instituted to move and stir up our senses, they being taken away, were not our senses stopped, and we fast asleep? Moreover, when a man would gladly sleep, he will put out the candle, lest per- adventure it may hinder his sleep, and awake him : so of late all such writers as did hold any thing with the apostolic see, were condemned and forbidden to be read : and images, which were laymen's books, were cast down and broken. " The sleep hath continued with us these twenty years, and we were all that while without a head. For when king Henry did first take upon him to be head of the church, it was then no church at all. After whose death, king Edward, having over him governors and protectors, GARDINER'S POPISH SERMON. 597 who ruled as they listed, could not be head of the church, but was only a shadow or sign of a head, and at length it came to pass, that we had DO head at all; no, not so much as our two archbishops. For on the one side, the queen being a woman could not be head of the church; and on the other side, our two archbishops were both convicted of one crime, and so deposed. Thus while we desired to have a supreme head among us, it came to pass that we had no head at all. When the tumult was in the north, in the time of king Henry VIII., I am sure the king was determined to have given over the supremacy again to the pope : but the hour was not then come, and therefore it went not forward, lest some would have said that he did it for fear. " After this, Mr. Knevet and I were sent ambassadors unto the em- peror, to desire him that he would be a means between the pope's holiness and the king, to bring the king to the obedience of the see of Rome, but the time was not yet come: for it might then have been said, that it had been done for a civil policy. Again, in the beginning of king Edward's reign the matter was moved, but the time was not yet: for it would have been said, that the king being but a child, had been bought and sold. Neither in the beginning of the queen's reign was the hour come: for it would have been said, that it was done in a time of weakness. Likewise when the king first came, if it had been done, they might have said it had been done by force and violence. But now, even now, the hour is come, when nothing can be objected, but that it is the mere mercy and providence of God. Now hath the pope's holiness sent unto us this most reverend father, cardinal Pole, an am- bassador from his side. What to do? not to revenge the injuries done by us against his holiness, but to give his benediction to those that defamed and persecuted him. " And that we may be the more meet to receive the said benediction, I shall desire you that we may always acknowledge ourselves offenders against his holiness; I do not exclude myself from the number. I will ' weep with them that Weep, and rejoice with them that rejoice.' And I shall desire you, that we may defer the matter no longer, for now the hour is come. The king and queen's majesties have already restored our holy father the pope to his supremacy: and the three estates assembled in the parliament, representing the whole body of the realm, have also submitted themselves to his holiness and his successors for ever; wherefore let us not any longer stay. And even as St. Paul said to the Corinthians, that he was their father, so may the pope say, that he is our father: for we received our doctrine first from Rome, therefore he may challenge us as his own. We have all cause to rejoice, for his holiness hath sent hither and prevented us, before we sought him : such care hath he for us. Therefore let us say, ' This is the day which the Lord hath made, we will rejoice and be glad in it.' Rejoice in this day, which is of the Lord's working, that such a noble birth is come; yea, such a holy father as my lord cardinal Pole, who can speak unto us as unto brethren, and not as strangers. And let us now awake, who have so long slept, and in our sleep have done so much mischief to the sacraments of Christ, denying the blessed sacrament of the altar, and pulling down the altar, which thing Luther himself would not do, but 598 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. rather reproved them that did it, examining them of their belief in Christ." The above was the sum of his sermon. He afterwards prayed, first for pope Julius III., with all his college of cardinals, the bishop of London, with the rest of that order; then for the king and queen, and the nobility of this realm ; and lastly for the commons of the same, with the souls departed lying in the pains of purgatory. A striking proof this of the ascendancy of the priesthood in the realm, since intercession for that entire order preceded prayer for the senators, nobles, and even the sovereign and the royal family. Nay, departed saints must wait their turn after the existing priesthood, foreign and domestic, supreme, superior, and subordinate, have been blessed with the intercessions of the congregation. This ended, the time being late, they began in St. Paul's to ring their evening song, whereby the preacher could not be well heard, which caused him to make an end of his sermon. About this time a messenger was sent from the parliament to the pope, to desire him to confirm and establish the sale of abbey and chauntry lands: for the lords and the parliament would grant nothing in the pope's behalf, before their purchases were fully confirmed. Meanwhile the whole convocation, both bishops and others, were sent for to Lambeth to the cardinal, who forgave them all their perjurations, schisms, and heresies, and they all there kneeled down, and received his absolution ; and after an exhortation and gratulation for their conversion to the catholic church made by the cardinal, they departed. The new year, 1555, commenced with several arrests of protestants assembled for devotion. About thirty men and women of the city, with Mr. Rose, their minister, were taken as they were in a house in Bow church-yard, celebrating the communion, and were the same night all committed to prison. Two days after Mr. Rose was brought before the bishop of Winchester, the lord chancellor, and the same day committed to the Tower, after some communication between the bishop and him. It appears that a reference to the queen in his prayers was reported against him. He was charged with saying, and some of his congregation with repeating, these words — " God turn the heart of queen Mary from idolatry, or else shorten her days." There is reason to believe that the alternative of shortening her days was added by the accusers. The former petition however was enough to endanger their liberty and their lives. It was construed treason against her majesty. At the appre- hending of Mr. Rose and his companions, word was brought thereof to bishop Hooper, being then in the Fleet; whereupon the bishop sent a letter of consolation to the said prisoners; enjoining them not to fear their adversaries, though he acknowledged the papist's church was more bloody and tyrannical, than ever was the sword of the heathens. On Tuesday, the 8th of January, nineteen of the lower house of the parliament, with the speaker, came to Whitehall to the king, and offered him the government of the realm and of the issue, if the queen should fail, which was confirmed by act of parliament within ten days after. On the 16th of the same month, the parliament was clean dissolved; and on the 18th all the council went unto the Tower, and there the same day discharged and set at liberty all the prisoners, or most part of them, among EXAMINATION OF SEVERAL PROTESTANTS. 599 whom were the late clukc of Northumberland's sons, Ambrose, Robert, and Henry, Sir Andrew Dudley, Sir John Rogers, Sir James Crofts, Sir Nicholas Throgmorton, Sir Nicholas Arnold, Sir George Harper, Sir Edward Warner, Sir William Sentlow, Sir Gawen Carew, Mr. Gibbes, Cuthbert Vaughan, with many others. On January 22nd, all the preachers who were in prison, were called before the bishop of Winchester, and certain others, at his house in St. Mary Overy's. Being asked whether they would convert, and enjoy the queen's pardon, or else stand to that they had taught; they all answered, that they would stand to that they had taught: they were then committed to straiter prison than before, with charge that none should speak with them: of whom, one James George, died in prison, being there in bonds for religion and righteousness' sake, and as he was exempted burial in the popish church-yard, was buried in the fields. Cardinal Pole by no means sanctioned severe measures, for when the bishops, with the rest of the convocation-house, were before the cardinal at Lambeth, he desired them to repair every man where his cure and charge lay, exhorting them to treat their flock with all mildness, and to endeavour to win the people rather by gentleness, than by extremity and rigour, and so let them depart. Some complied ; but a large portion remained in London further to excite the people of the metro- polis in favour of popery. On the anniversary of St. Paul, then a high day in the city, there was a general and solemn procession through London, to give God thanks for their conversion to the catholic church. To set out their glorious pomp there were fourscore and ten crosses, one hundred and sixty priests and clerks, who had every one of them copes upon their backs, singing loudly. There followed also, for the better estimation of the sight, eight bishops; and last of all came Bonner, bishop of London, carrying a splendid box containing the host under a gorgeous canopy. There were also present the mayor, and aldermen, and all the livery of every occupation. Moreover the king also himself, and the cardinal, came to St. Paul's church the same day. As the king was entering the church, at the steps going up to the choir, all the gentlemen that of late were set at liberty out of the Tower, kneeled before him and offered unto him themselves and their services. The procession continued till sun set, and after the procession there was commandment given to make bonfires at night. Whereupon did rise among the people a doubtful talk why all this was done: some saying it was that the queen being likely to have a son ; while others thought that it was for joy that the realm was joined again to the see of Rome. It would appear that Gardiner and his abettors obtained considerable influence over the milder views of Pole, so as to induce him to sanction their bitter proceedings against some of the more distinguished and devoted protestants of the day : for, on Jan. 28, the bishops had com- mission from the cardinal to sit upon, and order, according to the laws, all such preachers and heretics as were in prison ; and according to this commission, the same day the bishop of Winchester, and the other bishops, with certain of the council, sat at St. Mary Overy's church, and called before them bishop Hooper, Mr. Rogers, and Mr. Cardmaker, who were brought thither by the sheriffs ; from whence, after communi- 600 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. cation, they were committed to prison till the next day, but Cardmaker submitted himself. The next day Hooper, Rogers, Taylor, and Brad- ford, were brought before them, and sentence of excommunication and judgment ecclesiastical was pronounced upon bishop Hooper and Mr. Rogers, by the bishop of Winchester, who sat as judge in Caiaphas's seat, and drove them out of the church, according to their law and order. Dr. Taylor and Bradford were re-committed to prison. On the day follow- ing Dr. Taylor, Dr. Crome, Mr. Bradford, Mr. Saunders, and Dr. Farrar, some time bishop of St. David's, were before the bishops. Dr. Taylor, Saunders, and Bradford, were excommunicated ; and sentence being pronounced upon them, they were committed to the sheriffs. Crome desired two months respite, which was granted him : and Farrar was again committed to prison till another time. All these men shewed themselves to be learned, as indeed they were: but what availeth either learning, reason, or truth itself, where arbitrary will alone beareth rule? After the examination and condemnation of these good men and preachers, commissions and inquisitors were sent abroad into all parts of the realm : by reason whereof a great number of most godly and true christians, especially of Kent, Essex, Norfolk, and Suffolk, were appre* hended, brought up to London, cast into prison, and most of them after- wards either consumed cruelly by fire, or else through evil handling died in prisons, and were buried on the dung-hills or in the fields. The parliament being dissolved, the first thing taken into consideration was the way to proceed against the heretics. Cardinal Pole had been suspected to bear some favour to them, but he took great care to avoid all occasions of being any more blamed for that; and indeed he lived in that distrust of all the English, that he opened his thoughts to very few : his chief confidents were two Italians who came over with him, Priuli and Ormaneto. Secretary Cecil, who in matters of religion com- plied with the times, was observed to have more of his favour than any other Englishman. Pole was an enemy to all severe proceedings; he had observed that cruelty rather inflamed than cured the distemper of heresy ; he thought the better and surer way was to begin an effectual reformation of the manners of the clergy, since it was the scandal given by their ill conduct and ignorance, that was the chief cause of the growth of heresy : so he concluded, that if a primitive discipline should be revived, the nation might in time be gained by gentle methods. Gardiner, on the other hand, being of an abject and cruel temper himself, thought the strict execution of the laws against the Lollards was that to which they ought chiefly to trust: if the preachers were made public examples, he concluded the people would be easily reclaimed : for he pretended that it was visible, if King Henry had executed the act of the six articles vigorously, all would have submitted. He confessed a reformation of the clergy was a good thing, but all times could not bear it. If they should proceed severely against scandalous churchmen, the heretics would take advantage that to deframe the church the more, and raise a clamour against all clergymen. The queen was for joining both these counsels together, and intended to proceed at the same time both against scandalous churchmen and incorrigible protestants. BOOK XII. CONTAINING A FURTHER ACCOUNT OF THE MURDERING OF GOD'S SAINTS, WITH THE PROCESSES AND NAMES OF SUCH GOOD MARTYRS AS IN THIS TIME OF QUEEN MARY WERE PUT TO DEATH. SECTION I. LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF JOHN ROGERS AND LAURENCE SAUNDERS. On the 4th of February, 1555, suffered the constant martyr of God, master John Rogers, concerning whose life, examinations, and sufferings, the following particulars are set forth. John Rogers, vicar of St. Sepulchre, and reader at St. Paul's, received his education in the university of Cambridge, and at length was chosen chaplain to the English factory at Antwerp. There he became ac- quainted with Mr. Tindall, whom he assisted in his translation of the New Testament, and with Miles Coverdale, who, with several other pro- testants, had been driven from England on account of the five articles, in the latter end of the reign of Henry VIII. By conversing with these undaunted and pious servants of God, Mr. Rogers became learned in the scriptures, and finding, according to these sacred oracles, that matrimony was honourable to all, he entered into that state, and went with his wife to Wittenburg, in Saxony, where, through indefatigable study and application, he in a short time attained such a knowledge of the Dutch language as to be capable of taking charge of a christian congregation in that part of Europe. After abandoning his popish superstitions, this aged minister served his cure faithfully and diligently for many years, until it pleased God to dispel the mists of papal dark- ness from his native country and restore the glorious light of the pure gospel of Christ, by the introduction of his chosen servant Edward VI. to the English throne. Mr. Rogers then complied with a request to leave his living in Saxony, and come into England to preach the gospel, without any previous con- dition, appointment, or establishment whatever: and having laboured in the vineyard of his Master for a time with great success, Dr. Ridlev, then bishop of London, gave him a prebend in his cathedral church of St. Paul's : he was afterwards chosen by the dean and chapter one of the divinity-lecturers in that church. There he continued till queen 602 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Mary, soon after her accession, banished the true religion, and restored the superstition and idolatry of the church of Rome, with all the horrid cruelties of blood-thirsty Antichrist. When Mary was in the Tower of London, imbibing Gardiner's per- nicious counsels, Mr. Rogers preached at Paul's Cross, confirming those doctrines which he and others had taught in king Edward's days, and exhorting the people, with peculiar energy, to continue stedfast in the same, and to beware of the false tenets that were about to be introduced. For this sermon the preacher was summoned before the council, then filled with popish and bloody bishops ; before whom he pleaded his own cause, in so pious and bold, yet prudent a manner, as to obviate their displeasure for that time, and was accordingly dismissed. But after Mary's proclamation to prohibit the doctrines of the reformed religion, Mr. Rogers, for a contempt of the same, was again summoned before a council of bishops, who, after having debated upon the nature of his offence, ordered him to keep close prisoner in his own house. There he remained a considerable time, till at the instigation of the sanguinary Bonner, bishop of London, he was removed to Newgate, and placed among common felons. What passed between him and the adversaries of Christ, during the time of his imprisonment, is not certainly known; but his examinations he left in his own hand- writing; the principal parts of which are here given. The examination and answer of John Rogers, made to the lord chan- cellor Gardiner, and to the rest of the council, Jan. 22nd, 1555 : — First, the lord chancellor said unto me thus: " Sir, you have heard the state of the realm in which it standeth now." Rogers. No, my lord, I have been kept in close prison; and except there have been some general thing said at the table, when I was at dinner or supper, I heard nothing; and there have I heard nothing whereupon any special thing might be grounded. Then said the lord chancellor mockingly, " General things, general things! Ye have heard of my lord cardinal's coming, and that the par- liament hath received his blessing, not one resisting it, but one man which did speak against it. Such an unity, and such a miracle, hath not been seen. And all they, of which there are eight score in one house, have with one assent received pardon of their offences, for the schism that we have had in England, in refusing the holy father of Rome to be head of the catholic church. How say you ? are you content to unite yourself to the faith of the catholic church with us, in the state in which it is now in England ? will you do that?" Rog. The catholic church I never did nor will dissent from. Gar. Nay, but I speak of the state of the catholic church, in that wise in which we stand now in England, having received the pope to be supreme head. Rog. I know no other head but Christ of his catholic church, neither will I acknowledge the bishop of Rome to have any more authority than any other bishop hath by the word of God, and by the doctrines of the old and pure catholic church, four hundred years after Christ. Gar. Why didst thou then acknowledge king Henry VIII. to be su- preme head of the church, if Christ be the only head ? EXAMINATION OF MR. ROGERS, 603 Rog. I never granted him to have any supremacy in spiritual tilings, as are the forgiveness of sins, giving of the Holy Ghost, authority to be a judge above the word of God. Oar. Yea, if thou hadst said so in his days, thou hadst not been alive now. What sayest thou ? make us a direct answer whether thou wilt be one of this catholic church or not, with us in that state in which we are now? Rog. My lord, without fail I cannot believe, that ye yourselves think in your hearts that he is supreme head in forgiving of sins, seeing you and all the bishops of the realm have now twenty years long preached, and some of you also written to the contrary, and the parliament hath so long ago condescended unto it. Gar. Tush ! that parliament was with great cruelty constrained to abolish and put away the supremacy from the bishop of Rome. Rog. With cruelty ? why then I perceive that you take a wrong way with cruelty to persuade men's consciences. For it should appear by your doings now, that the cruelty then used hath not persuaded your consciences. How would you then have our consciences persuaded with cruelty ? Gar. I talk to thee of no cruelty, but that they were so often and so cruelly called upon in that parliament, to let the act go forward ; yea, and even with force driven thereunto, whereas in this parliament it was so uniformly received. Rog. I will first see it proved by the Scripture. Let me have pen, ink, and books, etc., and I shall take upon me more plainly to set out the matter, so that the contrary shall be proved to be true; and let any man that will, confer with me by writing. Gar. Nay, that shall not be permitted thee. Here are two things, mercy and justice : if thou refuse the queen's mercy now, then shalt thou have justice ministered unto thee. Rog. I never offended, nor was disobedient unto her grace, and yet I will not refuse her mercy. But if this shall be denied me to confer by writing and to try out the truth, then it is not well, but too far out of the way. Gar. If thou wilt not receive the bishop of Rome to be supreme head of the catholic church, then thou shalt never have her mercy, thou may est be sure. If thou wilt enter into one church with us, tell us that; or else thou shalt never have so much proffered thee again as thou hast now. Rog. I will find it first in the scripture, and see it tried thereby, be- fore I receive him to be supreme head. I find not the bishop of Rome in the creed. For the word catholic there signifieth not the Romish church : it signifieth the consent of all true teaching churches of all times and all ages. But how should the bishop of Rome's church be one of them, which teacheth so many doctrines that are plainly and directly against the word of God ? Can that bishop be the true head of the catholic church, that doth so? That is not possible. Gar. Shew me one of them — one ! let me hear one ! Rog. The bishop of Rome, and his church, say, read, and sing, all that they do in their congregations, in Latin, which is directly and plainly against 1 Cor. xiv. To speak with tongues is to speak with a strange tongue, as Latin or Greek, etc. ; and so to speak, is not to speak unto men, but to God. But ye speak in Latin, which is a strange tongue; where- fore ye speak not unto men, but unto yourselves and God only. 604 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. I was willing to have declared how and after what sort these two texts do agree ; as, to wit, " to speak not to man, but unto God," and " to speak into the wind;" and so to have gone forward with the proof of my matter begun, but here arose a noise and a confusion. And here also I would have declared how they ought to proceed in these days, and so have come again to my purpose, but it was impossible ; for one asked one thing, another said another; so that I was fain to hold my peace. And even when I would take hold on my proof, the lord chancellor bade to prison with me again. Then sir Richard Southwell said to me, " Thou wilt not burn in this gear when it cometh to the pur- pose, I know well that." To whom I replied, " Sir, I cannot tell, but I trust in my Lord God, yes;" lifting up mine eyes unto heaven. Then my lord of Ely told me much of the queen's pleasure and meaning, saying that she took them that would not receive the bishop of Rome's supremacy to be unworthy to have her mercy, etc. I said I would not .refuse her mercy, and yet I never offended her in all my life: and that I besought her grace, and all their honours, to be good to me, reserving my conscience. "A married priest, and have not offended the law!" cried they. I said I had not broken the queen's law, nor yet any point of the law of the realm therein; for I married where it was lawful. I married in Dutchland. And if you had not here in England made an open law that priests might have had wives, I would never have come home again ; for I brought a wife and eight children with me : which ye might be sure I would not have done if the laws of the realm had not permitted it before. You say to me that there was never a catholic man or country who ever yet granted that a priest might have a wife. But I say that the catholic church never denied marriage to priests, nor yet to any other man." On giving this answer, Rogers was about to leave the cham- ber, the sergeant holding him by the arm ready to conduct him back to confinement. At his departure, the bishop of Worcester, who had before interposed with some trifling questions, taunted him with igno- rance of what and where the true catholic church was — a taunt which might with much more justice have been addressed to him and his coadjutors in this persecuting course. A second examination of Mr. Rogers soon after took place, most of which is here given in his own words. " Being asked again by the lord chancellor what I thought concerning the blessed sacrament; whether I believed it to be the very body and blood of our Saviour Christ, that was born of the Virgin Mary, and hanged on the cross, really and substantially? I answered, 'I have often told you that it was a matter in which I was no meddler, and therefore suspected of my brethren to be of a contrary opinion. Notwithstanding, even as the most part of your doctrine in other points is false, and the. defence thereof only by force and cruelty; so in this matter I think it to be as false as the rest. For I cannot understand the words really and sub- stantially, to signify otherwise than corporeally : but corporeally Christ is only in heaven, and so cannot Christ be so also in your sacrament. My lord you have dealt with me most cruelly, for you have put me in prison without law, and kept me there now almost a year and a half: for I was almost half a year in my house, where I was obedient to you, SECOND EXAMINATION OF ROGERS. 605 God knoweth, and spoke with no man. And now have I been a full year in Newgate, at great costs and charges, having a wife and ten children to provide for, and have not received a penny from my livings, which was against the law.' To this Gardiner answered that Dr. Ridley, \\\\o had given them me, was a usurper, and therefore I was the unjust nos^ssor of them. I then asked, * Was the king then an usurper, who g ;i\ e Dr. Ridley the bishopric ?' To which the chancellor replied — Yes ! Then he began to set out the wrongs that king Edward had done to the bishop of London, and to himself also. ' But yet I do mis-use my terms' — he confessed — ' to call the king usurper.' " I asked him wherefore he put me in prison. He said, because I preached against the queen. I answered that it was not true ; and I would be bound to prove it, and to stand to the trial of the law, that no man should be able to disprove me, and thereupon would set my life. I preached, I confessed, a sermon at the Cross, after the queen came to the Tower; but there was nothing said against the queen. He then charged me with having read lectures after, against the commandment of the council. To this I answered that I never did so, and said, let that be proved, and let me die for it. " I might and would have added, if I had been suffered to speak, that it had been time enough to take away men's livings, and then to have imprisoned them after that they had offended the laws, for they are good citizens that break not laws, and worthy of praise, and not of pu- nishment. But their purpose was to keep men in prison, until they may catch them in their laws, and so kill them. I might have declared that I most humbly desired to be set at liberty, sending my wife with a supplica- tion, while I was yet in my house. " I wrote two petitions to him out of Newgate, and sent my wife many times to him. Master Gosnold also, who is now departed in the Lord, laboured for me, and so did divers others take pains in the matter. These things declare my lord chancellor's antichristian charity, which is, that he hath and doth seek my blood, and the destruction of my wife and ten children. " This is a short sum of the words which were spoken on the 28th of January, in the afternoon, after that master Hooper had been the first, and master Cardmaker the second, in examination before me. The Lord grant us grace to stand together, fighting lawfully in his cause, till we be smitten down together, if the Lord's will be so to permit it. Then the clock being, as 1 guessed, about four, the lord chancellor said that he and the church must yet use charity with me, and gave me respite till to- morrow, to see whether I would return to the catholic church again, and repent, and they would receive me to mercy. I said that I was never out of the true catholic church, nor would be : but into his church would I, by the God's grace, never come. 'Well,' quoth he, • is our church false and antichristian?' I answered, 'Yea.' 'And what is the doctrine of the sacrament?' ' False,' quoth I; and cast my hands abroad. ' Come again to-morrow,' said the chancellor, ' between nine and ten.' ' I am ready to come again whensoever you call,' quoth I. And thus was I brought up by the sheriffs to the Compter in Southwark, master Hoopei going before me, and a great multitude of people being present, so that we had much to do to go in the streets." 606 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. On the morrow the third examination went on. Mr. Rogers writes — " The next day, January 29th, we were sent for in the morning about nine o'clock, and by the sheriffs brought from the compter in Southwark to St. Mary Overy's. When Mr. Hooper was condemned, as I understood afterwards, then sent they for me. My lord chancellor Gardiner said — ' Rogers, here thou wast yesterday, and we gave thee liberty to remem- ber thyself last night, whether thou wouldst come into the holy catholic church of Christ again or not. Tell us now what thou hast determined, whether thou wilt be repentant and sorry, and wilt return again and take mercy?' ' My lord/ quoth I, ' I have remembered myself right well, what you yesterday said to me, and desire you to give me leave to declare my mind, what I have to say thereunto; and that done I shall answer to your demanded question. When I yesterday desired that I might be suffered by the scripture and authority of the first, best, and purest church, to defend my doctrine by writing, all the doctrine that ever I had preached, you answered, that it might not, and ought not to be granted me, for I was a private person ; and that the parliament was above the authority of all private persons, and therefore the sentence thereof might not be found faulty and useless by me, being but a private person. Yet, my lord, I am able to show examples, that one man hath come into a general council, and after the whole had determined and agreed upon an act or article, some one man coming in afterwards, hath by the word of God proved so clearly that the council had erred in decreeing the said article, that he caused the whole council to change and alter their act or article before determined. And of these examples I am able to shew two. I can also shew the authority of St. Augustine ; that when he disputed with a heretic, he would neither himself, nor yet have the heretic to lean on the determina- tion of two former councils, of which the one was made for him, and the other for the heretic that disputed against him ; but he said that he would have the scriptures to be their judge, which were common for them both, and not peculiar to either of them/ " I could also shew the authority of a learned lawyer, Panormitanus, who saith, That unto a simple layman that bringeth the word of God with him, there ought more credit to be given, than to a whole council gathered together. By these things will I prove that I ought not to be denied to speak my mind, and to be heard against a whole parliament, bringing the word of God for me, and the authority of the whole church 400 years after Christ, albeit that every man in the parliament had will- ingly and without respect of fear and favour agreed thereunto, which thing I doubt not a little of; especially seeing the like had been per- mitted in the old church, even in general councils; yea, and that in one of the chiefest councils that ever was, unto which neither any acts of this parliament, nor yet any of the late general councils of the bishops of Rome ought to be compared. For if Henry VIII. were alive, and should call a parliament, and begin to determine a thing, then would ye all say Amen: yea, and it please your grace, it is meet that it be so enacted. ' Here my lord chancellor would suffer me to speak no more; but bade me sit down, mockingly, saying, That I was sent for to be instructed of CONDEMNATION OF MR. ROGERS. 607 them, and yet I would take upon me to be their instructor. To this I said — ' My lord, I stand and sit not: shall I not be suffered to speak for inv life ?' * Shall we suffer thee to tell a tale, and prate?' said he. And with that lie stood up, and began to face me, after his old arrogant proud fashion, for he perceived that I was in a way to have touched him somewhat, which he thought to hinder by dashing me out of my tale, and so he did : but he had much the like communication with me as he had the day before, taunt upon taunt, and check upon check. For in that case, being God's cause, I told him he should not make me afraid to speak. " The lord chancellor on this exclaimed, ' See what a spirit this fellow hath, finding fault at mine accustomed earnestness, and hearty manner of speaking !' On which I said — I have a true spirit, agreeing to, and obeying the word of God; and would further have said, that I was never the worse, but the better, to be earnest in a just and true cause, and in my master Christ's matters : but I could not be heard. At length he proceeded towards his excommunication and condemnation, after that I had told him, that his church of Rome was the church of Antichrist, meaning the false doctrine and tyrannical laws, with the maintenance thereof by cruel persecutions used by the bishops of the said church. To be brief, he read my condemnation before me, particularly mentioning therein but two articles : first, that I affirmed the Roman catholic church to be the church of Antichrist: and then that I denied the reality of their sacrament. He caused me to be degraded and condemned, and put into the hands of the laity, and then he gave me over into the sheriff's hands, which were much better than his." " After this sentence was read, bishop Gardiner sent Mr. Hooper and me to the Clink, there to remain till night ; when it was dark, they carried us, Mr. Hooper going before with one sheriff, and I coming after with the other, with bills and weapons out of the Clink, and led us through the bishop's house, and St. Mary Overy's church yard, and so into Southwark, hence over the bridge in procession to Newgate, through the city. When the bishop had read the condemnation, I petitioned to see and speak to my wife, who was a stranger, and had ten children ; but he said she was not my wife. I declared she was, for we had been married eighteen years. He still denied it, said I main- tained open whoredom, and that I should not see her I" While this excellent writer as well as patient sufferer remained in prison, he wrote his sentiments in a bold and manly strain, upon the evils and abuses brought into the country, and held out to its rulers, the vengeance that had fallen, in different ages, upon the enemies of truth. The following is a sample — " I am an Englishman born, and, God knoweth, do naturally wish well to my country. And I have often proved that the things, which I have much feared should come to pass have indeed followed. I pray God I may fail of my guessing in this behalf. And as touching your rejoicing, as though God had set you aloft to punish us by miracle, and to minister justice, if we will not receive your holy father's mercy, and thereby do declare your church to be true, and ours false; to that I answer thus: God's works are won- derful, and are not to be comprehended and perceived by man's wisdom, 608 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. nor by the wit of the most wise and prudent. — Our enemies sometimes cry out that we liken ourselves to prophets and apostles; but I answer the charge, that we make not ourselves like unto them, in the singular virtues and gifts of God given unto them; as of doing miracles, and of many other things. The similitude and likeness of them and us consisteth not in all things, but only in this, that is, that we be like them in doctrine, and in the suffering of persecution and infamy for the same. " The apostles were beaten for their boldness, and they rejoiced that they suffered for Christ's cause. Ye have also provided rods for us, and bloody whips : yet when ye have done that which God's hand and counsel hath determined that ye shall do, be it life or death, I trust that God will so assist us by his Holy Spirit and grace, that we shall patiently suffer it, and praise God for it : and whatsoever become of me and others, which now suffer for speaking and professing the truth, yet be ye sure, that God's word will prevail and have the upper hand, when your bloody laws and wicked decrees, for want of sure foundation, shall fall in the dust. — Of what force, I pray you, may a man think these par- liaments to be, which scantily can stand a year in strength ? or what credit is to be given to these law-makers, who are not ashamed to establish contrary laws, and to condemn that for evil which before they affirmed and decreed to be good? Truly ye are so ready, contrary to all right, to change and turn for the pleasure of man, that at length I fear God will use you like changelings, and both turn you forth of his kingdom, and out of your own country." After that John Rogers had been long and straitly imprisoned, lodged in Newgate amongst thieves, often examined, very uncharitably treated, and at length unjustly and most cruelly condemned by Gardiner, he was, on Feb. 4th, warned suddenly by the keeper's wife of Newgate to prepare himself for the fire; who being found asleep was with great difficulty awoke. At length being roused, he was led down first to Bonner to be degraded; which done, he craved of him one petition — that he might speak a few words with his wife before his burning. But that was denied him. " Then," said he, " you declare your charity, what it is." Now when the time came that he should be brought out of Newgate to Smithfield, the sheriff came to him, and asked if he would revoke his abominable doctrines. To whom Mr. Rogers said, " That which I have preached I will seal with my blood !" "Then," said the sheriff, " thou art a heretic." " That shall be known," said Rogers, " at the day of judgment." " Well," quoth the sheriff, " I will never pray for thee." " But I will pray for you" replied Rogers; and so was brought the same day, which was Monday the 4th of February, towards Smithfield, saying the psalm " Miserere" by the way, all the people rejoicing at his con- stancy, with great praises and thanks to God for the same. And there, in the presence of Rochester, comptroller of the queen's household, sir Richard Southwell, both the sheriffs, and many people, the fire was put unto him; and when it had taken hold both upon his legs and shoulders, he, as one feeling no smart, washed his hands in the flame, as though it had been in cold water. After lifting up his hands unto heaven, not re- moving the same until such time as the devouring fire had consumed PARTICULARS OF LAURENCE SAUNDER*. 609 them, most mildly this happy martyr yielded up his spirit into the hands of his heavenly Father. A little before his burning-, his pardon was brought if he would have recanted ; but he utterly refused it. He was the first of all the blessed martyrs that suffered in the reign of queen Mary; those which had previously suffered having suffered as traitors. His wife and children met him by the way as he went towards Smithfield. This sorrowful sight of his own flesh and blood could nothing move him; but he constantly and cheerfully took his death with wonderful patience, in defence of the gospel of Christ. Next to this faithful and holy man followed the Rev. Laurence Saunders, martyred at Coventry the next month. He was a man ot* good parentage. He was placed early at Eton school, whence, at a proper age, he was chosen to go to the King's college, in Cambridge, where he continued a scholar three years, and profited in knowledge and learning very much for that time ; shortly after he quitted the uni- versity, and went to his parents, upon whose advice he consented to become a merchant, for that his mother, who was a gentlewoman of good estimation, being left a widow, and having a good portion for him among his other brethren, thought to set him in the way of wealth; and so he, coming up to London, was bound apprentice to Sir William Chester, who afterwards chanced to be sheriff of London the same year that Saunders was burnt at Coventry. It happened that the master, being a good man, and hearing Saunders in his secret prayers inwardly to mourn by himself, called him unto him, to know the cause of his solitariness and lamentations: when, learning him not to fancy that kind of life, and perceiving also his whole purpose to be bent to the study of books, and spiritual contemplation, like a good and sensible man, wrote to his friends, and giving him his in- dentures, set him free. Thus Mr. Saunders being ravished with the love of learning, and especially with the reading of God's word, tarried not long in the traffic of merchandize, but shortly returned to Cambridge again to his study, where he began to add to the knowledge of the Latin, the study of the Greek tongue, in which he profited very much in a little time; presently after, he joined the study of the Hebrew. Then he gave himself wholly to the study of the holy scriptures, to furnish himself for the office of a preacher. In the beginning of king Edward's reign, when true religion was in- troduced, he began to preach, and was so liked by them who then had authority, that they had appointed him to read a divinity lecture in the college of Fotheringhay, where, by doctrine and life, he edified the pious, drew many ignorant to the true knowledge of God, and stopped the mouths of adversaries. He married about that time, and in the connubial state led a life unblameable before all men. The college of Fotheringhay being dissolved, he was appointed a reader in the minster at Litchfield : where he so behaved himself in teaching and living, that his very adversaries bore testimony as well of his learning as of his piety. After a certain space, he departed from Litchfield to a benefice in Leicestershire, called Churchlangton, where he resided and taught diligently, and kept a liberal house. From thence he was orderly called to take a benefice in the city of London, called Allhallows, in Bread- street. Then he was inclined to resign his cure in the country; and 2 R 610 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. after he had taken possession of his benefice in London, he departed into the country, clearly to discharge himself thereof. On Sunday, October 15th, in the forenoon, he delivered a sermon in his parish, treating on that place which St. Paul writeth to the Corin- thians: " I have coupled you to one man, that ye should make your- selves chaste virgins unto Christ. But I fear lest it come to pass, that as the serpent beguiled Eve, even so your wits should be corrupt from the singleness which ye had towards Christ." He recited the sum of that true christian doctrine, through which they were coupled to Christ, to receive of him free justification through faith in his blood. The papistical doctrine he compared to the serpent's deceiving: and lest they should be deceived by it, he made a contrast between the voice of God and the voice of the popish serpent; descending to more particular declaration therefore, as it were to let them plainly see the difference that is between the order of the church service, set forth by king Edward in the English tongue, and comparing it with the popish service then used in the Latin tongue. The first, he said, was good, because it was according to the word of God, and the order of the primitive church. The other, he said, was evil, and though in that evil be intermingled some good Latin words, yet was it but as a little honey or milk mingled with a great deal of poison to make them drink up all. In the afternoon he was ready in his church to have given another exhortation to his people. But the bishop of London interrupted him, by sending an officer for him. This officer charged him upon pain of contumacy forthwith to come to the bishop. And thus was Saunders brought before Bonner, who laid to his charge treason for breaking the queen's proclamation, and heresy and sedition for his sermon. After much talk, the bishop willed him to write what he believed of transubstantiation. Saunders did so ; and this writing the bishop kept for his purpose, as shall appear hereafter. Bonner sent him to the lord chan- cellor, who, being unable to resist his arguments, cried, "Carry away this frenzy-fool to prison." Here Saunders continued a whole year and three months ; in which space he sent divers letters to divers men : as one to Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer ; another to his wife, and also to others. But of his cause and estate thou shalt now see what Laurence Saunders himself did write to the bishop of Winchester, as an answer to certain things wherewith he had before charged him : — "Touching the cause of my imprisonment, I doubt whether I have broken any law or proclamation. In my doctrine I did not, forasmuch as at that time it was permitted by the proclamation to use, according to our consciences, such service as was then established. My doctrine was then agreeable unto my conscience and the same service then used. The act which I did (meaning his public teaching of God's word in his own parish, called Allhallows in Bread-street, in the city of London) was such as being indifferently weighed, sounded to no breaking of the proclamation, or at least no wilful breaking of it, forasmuch as I caused no bell to be rung, neither occupied I any place in the pulpit, after the order of sermons or lectures. But be it that I did break the proclama- tion, this long time of continuance in prison may be thought to be more than a sufficient punishment for such a fault. MR. SAUNDERS' LETTER TO HIS WIFE. 611 " Touching the charging of me witli my religion, I say with St. Paul: * I confess, that after the way which they call heresy, so worship I the God of my forefathers, believing all things which are written in the law and the prophets, and have hope towards God touching the resurrection of the dead. And herein study I to have always a clear conscience towards God and towards men.' So that God I call to witness, I have a conscience. And this my conscience is not grounded upon vain fantasy, but upon the infallible verity of God's word, with the witness- ing of his chosen church agreeable unto the same. " It is an easy thing for them which take Christ for their true pastor, and be the very sheep of his pasture, to discern the voice of their true shepherd, from the voice of wolves, hirelings, and strangers: forasmuch as Christ saith, ' My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me.' Yea, and thereby they shall have the gift to know the right voice of the true shepherd, and so to follow him, and to avoid the contrary, as he also saith, 'The sheep follow the shepherd, for they know his voice: a stranger they will not follow, but will fly from him, for they know not the voice of a stranger.' Such inward inspiration doth the Holy Ghost put into the children of God, being indeed taught of God, but otherwise unable to understand the true way of their sal- vation. And although the wolf, as Christ saith, cometh in sheep's clothing, yet by their fruits you shall know them. That the Romish religion is ravening and wolfish, is apparent in three principal points. It robbeth God of his due and only honour. It taketh away the true comfort of conscience, in obscuring, or rather burying, of Christ and his office of salvation. It spoileth God of his true worship and ser- vice in spirit and truth, appointed in his commandments, and driveth men unto that inconvenience, against which Christ with the prophet Isaiah doth speak sharply: — 'this people honoureth me with their lips, but their hearts are far from me; they worship me in vain, teaching the doctrines and precepts of men.' And in another place — ' Ye cast aside the commandments of God, to maintain your own traditions.'" As a prisoner in Christ's cause, he resigned himself in such sort as to forbade his wife to sue for his delivery ; and when others of his friends had by suit almost obtained it, he discouraged them, so that they did not follow their suit, as may appear by the following letter to his wife : — " Grace, mercy, and peace in Christ our Lord, Entirely beloved wife, even as unto my own soul and body, so do I daily in my hearty prayer wish unto you: for I do daily, twice at least, in this sort remember you. And I do not doubt, dear wife, but that both I and you, as we are written in the book of life, so we shall together enjoy the same everlastingly, through the grace and mercy of God our dear Father, in his Son our Lord Jesus Christ. And for this present life, let us wholly appoint ourselves to the will of our good God to glorify him either by life or by death; and even that same merciful Lord make us worthy to honour him either way as pleaseth him, Amen. I am cheerful, I thank my God and my Christ, in whom and through whom I shall be able to fight a good fight, and finish a good course, and then receive the crown, which is laid up in store for me, and all the true soldiers of Christ. Wherefore, wife, let us, in the name of our God, fight lustily to overcome the flesh, 612 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the devil, and the world. What our harness and weapons be in this kind of fight, look in the sixth chapter unto the Ephesians, and pray, pray, pray. I would that you make no suit for me in anywise. Thank you know whom, for her most sweet and comfortable putting me in remembrance of my journey whither I am passing. God send us all good speed, and a joyful meeting. I have too few such friends to further me in that journey, which is indeed the greatest friendship. The blessing of God be with you all, Amen. ''A prisoner in the Lord, L. Saunders." The constancy of this faithful servant of Christ, even unto the end, is sufficiently manifested and declared by his valiant contest with those two powerful enemies, antichrist and death : to neither of these did he give place, and finally triumphed over both. When he was in confine- ment, an order was sent to the keeper that no person should speak with him; but his wife coming to the prison gate with her young child in her arms, the keeper, though he durst not, on account of his charge, suffer her to come into the prison, yet he took the infant from her, and brought him to his father. Mr. Saunders, seeing the child, said, that he rejoiced more to have such a boy, than he should if two thousand pounds were given him. And to the standers-by, who praised the goodliness of the child, he said, "What man, fearing God, would not lose his life, rather, than by prolonging it, he should adjudge this boy to be a bastard? Yea, if there were no other cause, for which a man of my estate should lose his life, yet who would not give it, to vouch this child to be legitimate, and our marriage to be lawful and holy?" I do, good reader, recite this saying, not only to let thee see what be thought of priests' marriage; but chiefly to let all married couples learn to bear in their bosom true affections, unfeignedly mortified to do the natural works and offices of married couples, so long as with their doing they may keep Christ with a free confessing faith in a conscience unsoiled. And now to come to the examination of this good man : after that the bishops had kept him one whole year and a quarter in prison, at length they called him, as they did the rest of his fellows, openly to be examined. Of which first examination the effect and purport thus followeth : Praised be our gracious God who preserveth his from evil, and doth give them grace to avoid all such offences as might hinder his honour, or hurt his church. — Being convented before the queen's most honourable council, sundry bishops being present, the lord chancellor began thus to speak ; Lord Chan. It is not unknown, that you have been a prisoner for such abominable heresies and false doctrine as have been sown by you; and now it is thought good that mercy be shewed to such as seek for it. Wherefore if now you will shew yourself conformable, and come home again, mercy is ready. We must say that we have fallen in manner all: but now we are risen again, and returned to the catholic church; you must rise with us, and come home unto it. Give us forthwith a direct answer. Saun. My lord, and my lords all, may it please your honours to give me leave to answer with deliberation. Chan. Leave off your painting and pride of speech : for such is the EXAMINATION OF MR. SAUNDERS. 613 fashion of you all, to please yourselves in your glorious words. Answer yes, or no. Saun. My lord, it is no time for me now to paint. And as tor pride, there is no great cause why it should be in me; my learning I confess to be but small; and as for riches or worldly wealth, I have none at all. Notwithstanding, it standeth me in hand to answer your demand circumspectly, considering that one of these two extreme perils is likely to fall upon me, namely, the losing of a good conscience or the losing of this my body and life. And I tell you truth, 1 love both life and liberty, if I could enjoy them without the hurt of my con- science. Chan. Conscience! you have none at all, but pride and arrogancy, dividing yourself by singularity from the church. Saun. The Lord is the knower of all men's consciences. And where your lordship layeth to my charge this dividing myself from the church, I do assure you that I live in the faith wherein I have been brought up since I was fourteen years of age; being taught that the power of the bishop of Rome is but usurped, with many other abuses springing thereof. Yes, this I have received even at your hands, as a thing agreed upon by the catholic church and public authority. Chan. But have you received, by consent and authority, all your heresies of the blessed sacrament of the altar? Saun. My lord, it is less offence to cut off an arm, hand, or joint of man, than to cut off the head. For the man may live though he lose an arm, hand, or joint; but he cannot without his head. Now you all had agreed to cut off the supremacy of the bishop of Rome, whom now you will have to be the head of the church again. Bonner interposed with a single accusation, by which he hoped to render him at once self-confounded. Addressing the chancellor, he ob- sequiously said — " And if it please your lordship, I have this man's hand-writing against the blessed sacrament." Then turning scornfully to Saunders, he asked—" How are you able to answer that?" Saun. What I have written, that I have written, and further I will not accuse myself. Nothing have you to burden me withal, for break- ing of your laws since they were in force. Chan. Well, you are obstinate, and refuse liberty. Saun. My lord, I may not buy liberty at such a price; but I beseech your honours to be means to the queen's majesty for such a pardon for us, that we may live and keep our consciences unclogged, and we shall live as most obedient subjects. Otherwise, I must say for myself, that by God's grace I will abide the utmost extremity that man may do against me, rather than act against my conscience. Chan. Ah, sirrah, you will live as you like. The Donatists did desire to live in singularity ; but indeed they were not fit to live on earth : no more are you, and that you shall understand within these seven days: and therefore away with him. Saun. Welcome be it, whatsoever the will of God shall be, either life or death. And I tell you truly, I have learned to die. But I exhort you to beware of shedding innocent blood. Truly it will cry. The Spirit of God rest upon you all. Amen. 614 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. This examination being ended, the officers led him out of the place, and stayed until the rest of his fellow-prisoners were likewise examined, that they might have them all together to prison. Mr. Saunders, stand- ing among the officers, seeing there a great multitude of people, spoke freely, warning them all of that which by their falling from Christ to antichrist they deserved; and therefore exhorting them by repentance to rise again, and to embrace Christ with stronger faith, to confess him to the end, in the defiance of antichrist, sin, death, and the devil : so should they retain the Lord's favour and blessing. This faithful pro- cedure did not, of course, produce either a diminution of his adversaries' cruelty or a delay of his mortal suffering. It rather augmented the one and accelerated the other. Almost immediately he was delivered over to the secular power, and was brought by the sheriffs of London to the compter, a prisoner in his own parish of Bread-street; whereat he re- joiced greatly, both because he found there a fellow-prisoner, Mr. Card- maker, with whom he had much christian and comfortable discourse; and because out of prison, as before out of a pulpit, he might have an opportunity of preaching to his parishioners. On the fourth day of February, Bonner came to the prison to degrade him: which when he had done, Mr. Saunders said to him, M I thank God t am none of your church." The day following in the morning, the sheriff of London delivered him to certain of the queen's guard, which were appointed to carry him to the city of Coventry, there to be burned. On his arrival there, a poor shoemaker, who used to serve him, came to him, and said, " O my good master, God strengthen and com- fort you." " Good shoemaker," replied he, " I desire thee to pray for me, for I am the most unfit man for this high office that ever was ap- pointed to it: but my gracious God and dear Father is able to make me strong enough." The same night he was put into the common gaol among other prisoners, where he slept little, but spent the night in prayer, and instructing others. The next day, being the 8th of February, he was led to the place of execution in the park, without the city, clad in an old gown and shirt, bare-footed, and oftentimes falling on the ground for prayer. When he was come nigh to the place, the officer appointed to see the execution done, said to Mr. Saunders, that he was one of them who marred the queen's realm with false doctrine and heresy, wherefore he deserved death ; but yet if he would revoke his heresies, the queen would pardon him; if not, yonder fire was prepared for him. To whom Mr. Saunders answered, " It is not I, nor my fellow-preachers of God's truth, that have hurt the queen's realm; but it is yourself, and such as you are, who have always resisted God's holy word ; it is you who mar the queen's realm. I hold no heresies, but the doctrine of God, the blessed gospel of Christ; that hold I, that believe I, that have I taught, and that will I never revoke." With that his tormentor cried, " Away with him." And away from him went Mr. Saunders, with a cheerful courage, towards the fire. He fell to the ground once more and prayed : he rose up again and took the stake to which he should be chained in his arms, and kissed it, saying, "Welcome the cross of Christ, welcome everlasting life:" and being fastened to the stake, and fire put to him, he sweetly slept in EXEMPLARY CONDUCT OF HOOPER. 615 the Lord. In his life he appeared often prophetic. He had often told his friends, that many would suffer, if ever Mary ascended the throne. Before we take our final leave of him, one remarkable circumstance D reference to an earlier period of his course, merits attention. He was acquainted with one Dr. Pendleton, an earnest preacher in king Edwards reign. Meeting together in the country, they debated upon what they had best do in the dangerous time that Mary's accession had brought upon them. Saunders confessed that his spirit was ready, but he felt the flesh was at present too weak for much suffering. But Pendleton admonished him, and appeared all courage and forwardness to face every peril. They both came under the controul of circumstances to London, and there, when danger arose, Pendleton shrunk from the cross, and Saunders resolutely took it up! "Let him that thinketh to stand, take heed lest he fall." SECTION II. THE LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF JOHN HOOPER, BISHOP OF WORCESTER AND GLOUCESTER. John Hooper, student and graduate in the university of Oxford, having made great advances in the study of the sciences, was stirred with a fervent desire to the love and knowledge of the scriptures. Advancing more and more, by God's grace, in ripeness and spiritual understanding, and shewing withal some sparks of his spirit, being then about the beginning of the six articles, in the time of king Henry VIII. fell quickly into the displeasure and hatred of certain doctors in Oxford, who soon discovered their enmity to him, till at length, by the procure- ment of Dr. Smith, he was compelled to quit the university. Remov- ing from thence, he was retained in the house of Sir Thomas Arundel, in the capacity of steward, till Sir Thomas, having intelligence of his opinions and religion, which he in no case did favour, and yet exceed- ingly favouring the person and character of the man, found the means to send him with a message to the bishop of Winchester, writing his letter privily to the bishop, by conference of learning to do some good unto him, but in any case requiring him to send home his servant to him again. The bishop received him courteously ; but after long con- ference with him, perceiving that neither he could do that good which he thought to him, nor that he would take any good at his hand, ac- cording to Arundel's request, sent him home again, commending his learning and wit, but yet bearing in his breast a secret enmity against him. Not long after this, as malice is always working mischief, intelli- gence was given to Mr. Hooper to provide for himself, for danger was arising against him ; whereupon he left Sir Thomas Arundel's house, and borrowing a horse of a friend, whose life he had saved, took his journey to the sea side to go to France, sending back the horse again by one, who indeed did not deliver him to the owner. Mr. Hooper being at Paris, remained there not long, but in a short time returned into England again, and was retained by Mr. Sentlow, till he was 616 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. again molested and sought for : when he was compelled under the pretence of being captain of a ship going to Ireland, to take to the seas, and so escaped through France to the higher parts of Germany ; where, commencing acquaintance with learned men, he was by them friendly and lovingly entertained, both at Basil and at Zurich : af the latter place in particular by Mr. Bullinger. Here he also married, and applied very studiously to the study of the Hebrew tongue. At length, when God saw it good to end the bloody persecution which arose from the six articles, and to give king Edward to reign over this realm, with some peace and rest unto the church, amongst many other English exiles who then repaired homeward, was Mr, Hooper, who thought it his duty to forward the cause of God in his native country. Coming to Mr. Bullinger, and other of his acquain- tance in Zurich, to give them thanks for their singular kindness towards him, his kind host thus addressed him, " Mr. Hooper, although we are sorry to part with your company for your own cause, yet much greater cause have we to rejoice, both for your sake, and especially for the cause of Christ's true religion, that you shall now return out of long banishment to your native country, where you may not only enjoy your own private liberty, but also the cause and state of Christ's church by you may fare the better, as we doubt not but it will. Another cause, why we rejoice with you and for you, is this ; that you shall remove not only out of exile into liberty, but leave here a barren, sour, and un- pleasant country, rude and savage, and shall go into a land flowing with milk and honey, replenished with all fertility. But with this our rejoicing, one fear and care we have, lest you being absent, and so far distant from us, or else coming to such abundance of wealth and felicity, in your new welfare and plenty of all things, and in your flourishing honours, where you shall come peradventure to be a bishop, and where you shall find so many new friends, you will forget us your old acquain- tance and well-wishers. If however you shall forget and shake us off, yet this persuade yourself, that we will not forget our old friend. And if you will please not to forget us, then I pray you let us hear from you." Mr. Hooper gave Mr. Bullinger and the rest hearty thanks, for their singular good-will and undeserved affection, appearing not only now, but at all times towards him ; declaring, moreover, that as the principal cause of his removing to his country was the matter of reli- gion ; so touching the unpleasantness and barrenness of that country of theirs, there was no cause therein why he could not find in his heart to continue his life there, as soon as in any place in the world, and rather than in his own native country, if there were nothing else in his con- science that moved him to change. And as to the forgetting his old friends, although the remembrance of a man's country naturally delights him, and he could not deny but God had blessed his country with many great advantages ; yet neither the nature of country, nor pleasure of advantages, nor newness of friends, should ever induce him to the oblivion of such benefactors, to whom he was so entirely bound ; and therefore they should be sure from time to time to hear from him. But the last news of all I may not be able to write ; " for there," KING EDWARD'S LETTER TO HOOPER. 617 said he, (taking Mr. Bullinger by the hand) " where I shall take most pains, there shall you hear of me to be burned to ashes : and that shall be news which I shall not be able to write unto you, but you shall hear o( me from other hands." Having thus taken his farewell of Mr. Bullinger, and his friends in Zurich, he repaired again into England, in the reign of Edward the Sixth; and coming to London, used continually to preach, most times twice, and at least once every day. In all his discourses, according to his accustomed manner, he corrected sin, and sharply inveighed against the iniquity of the world, and corrupt abuses of the church. Nor was his example less proper : his life was so pure and good, that no kind of slander could fasten any fault upon him. He was of strong body, his health whole and sound, his wit very poignant, his invincible patience able to sustain whatever adversity could inflict. He was constant of judgment, frugal of diet, spare of words, and still more so of time. Jn house-keeping very liberal, and sometimes more free than his living would extend unto. After he had practised himself in this popular preaching, he was, at length, and that not without the great profit of many, called to preach be- fore the king, and soon after made bishop of Gloucester by his majesty's commands. In that office he continued two years, and behaved himself so well, that his very enemies could find no fault in him, except in the way in which the foes of Daniel found fault with that holy prophet — " concerning the law of his God." After two years he received, in con- nection with Gloucester, the bishopric of the neighbouring city of Worcester. But sinister and unlucky contention concerning the ordering and con- secration of bishops, and of their apparel, with other such trifles, began to disturb the good beginning of this bishop. For notwithstanding that godly reformation of religion that arose in the church of England, besides other ceremonies more ambitious than profitable, or tending to edification, they used to wear such garments and apparel as the popish bishops were wont to do ; first a chymere, and under that a white rochet; then a mathematical cap with four angles, indicative of dividing the world into four parts. These trifles tending more to superstition than otherwise, as he could never abide, so in no wise could he be per- suaded to wear them. For this cause he made supplication to the king, most humbly desiring his highness, either to discharge him of the bishopric, or else to dispense with him for such ceremonial orders : which petition the king granted immediately, writing to the archbishop in his behalf. The king's letter was as follows — " Right reverend father, and right trusty and well beloved, we greet you well. Whereas we, by advice of our councils have called and chosen our right well beloved Mr. John Hooper, professor of divinity, to be our bishop of Gloucester, as well for his great knowledge, deep judgment, and long study in the scriptures; as also for his good discretion, ready utterance, and honest life ; to the intent that all our loving subjects, which are in his said charge and elsewhere, might by his sound and true doctrine learn the better their duty towards God, their obedience towards us, and love towards their neighbour ; from consecrating of whom we understand 618 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. you to stay, because he would have you omit certain rites and ceremonies offensive to his conscience, whereby ye think ye should fall under the laws — we have thought good, by the advice aforesaid, to dispense and discharge you of all manner of dangers, penalties, and forfeitures, you shall be liable to run into by omitting any of the same. And these our letters shall be your sufficient warrant and discharge." The earl of Warwick seconded this request of his majesty by address- ing another letter to the archbishop, begging that he would dispense with Mr. Hooper's being burthened by the oath commonly used in the consecration of bishops. But these letters availed not: the bishops still stood earnestly in defence of the ceremonies, saying, it was but a small matter, and that the fault was in the abuse of the things, and not in the things themselves : adding, moreover, that Mr. Hooper ought not to be so stubborn in so light a matter, and that his wilfulness therein was not to be suffered. This being the case, Mr. Hooper at length agreed, that sometimes he should in his sermons shew himself apparelled as the other bishops were. Accordingly being appointed to preach before the king, he appeared in the objectionable habiliments. His upper garment was a long scarlet gown down to the foot, and under that a white linen rochet, that covered all his shoulders. Upon his head he had a geometrical, that is, a four-squared cap. But this private contumely and reproach, in respect of the public profit of the church, he suffered patiently. Then also very soon these differences vanished amidst the rage of persecution ; and the trifling shades of opinion were lost in their unanimity of essential truths; so that, while they were in prison, several affectionate letters passed between them. a After this discord, and not a little vexation, about vestures, at length Mr. Hooper entering into his diocese, there employed his time, under king Edward's reign, with such diligence as may be an example to all bishops. So careful was he in his cure, that he left neither pains un- taken, nor ways unsought, how to train up the flock of Christ in the true word of salvation, continually labouring in the same. Other men are commonly wont, for lucre or promotion's sake, to aspire to bishop- rics, some hunting for them, and some purchasing them, as men use to purchase lordships. To this class of worldly men bishop Hooper was quite contrary. He abhorred nothing more than covetousness, labour- ing always to save and preserve the souls of his flock. No father in his household, no gardener in his garden, nor husbandman in his vineyard, was more or better occupied, than he in his diocese amongst his flock, a The godly reconciliation of these good men appears by the following extract from bishop Ridley's letter to Mr. Hooper : " My dear brother — Forasmuch as I understand by your works, which I have yet but superficially seen, that we thoroughly agree and wholly consent together in those things which are the grounds and substantial points of our religion, against the which the world so furiously rageth in these our days, howsoever in time past, in certain bye-matters and circumstances of religion, your wisdom and my simplicity (I grant) have a little jarred, each of us following the abundance of his own sense and judgment; now, I say, be you assured that even with my whole heart, God is my witness, in the bowels of Christ I love you in the truth, and for the truth's sake which abideth in us, and as I am persuaded shall by the grace of God abide in us for evermore. And because the world, as 1 perceive, brother, ceaseth not to play a pageant, and busily conspireth against Christ our Saviour, with all possible force and power 'exalting high things against the knowledge of God,' let us join hands together in Christ; and, if we cannot overthrow, yet to our power, and as much as in us lieth, let us shake those high altitudes, not with carnal but with spiritual weapons ; and withal, brother, let us prepare for the day of dissolution, by the which, after the short time of this bodily affliction, by the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, we shall triumph together with him in eternal glory." EXEMPLARY CONDUCT OF HOOPER. 619 going about his towns and villages teaching and preaching to the people. The time that he had to spare from preaching, he bestowed either in bearing public causes, or else in private study, prayer, and in visiting schools : with his continual doctrine he adjoined due and discreet cor- rection, not so severe to any as to those who, for abundance of riches and wealthy state, thought they might do what they pleased. And doubtless he spared no kind of people, but was indifferent to all, as well rich as poor, to the great shame of many men in these days ; whereof we see so many addicted to the pleasing of the great and rich, that in the mean time they have no regard to the meaner sort whom Christ hath bought as dearly as the other. In his personal and private character how virtuous and good he was, may be conceived and known evidently by this, that as he was hated by none but the evil, the worst of them could not reprove his life in any par- ticular. At home, in his domestic concerns, he exhibited an example of a worthy prelate's life : bestowing the most part of his care upon the public flock and congregation of Christ, for which also he spent his blood ; yet there was nothing wanting in him to bring up his own children in learning and good manners : insomuch that it is difficult to say, whether he deserved more praise for his fatherly usage at home, or his public conduct abroad. Every where he kept religion in one uniform doctrine and integrity : so that if you entered into the bishop's palace, you would suppose yourselves to have entered into some church or temple. In every corner there was the beauty of virtue, good example, honest conversation, and reading of the holy scriptures. There was not to be seen in his house any courtly rioting or idleness ; no pomp, no dishonest word, no swear- ing, could there be heard. As to the revenues of his bishoprics, if any thing surmounted thereof, he saved nothing, but bestowed it in hospitality. Twice I was, as I remember, in his house in Worcester, where, in his common hall, I saw a table spread with good store of meat, and beset full of beggars and poor folk ; and I asking his servants what this meant, they told me that every day their lord and master's manner was, to have to dinner a certain number of poor folk of the said city by course, who were served by four at a mess, with hot and wholesome meats ; and, when they were served, then he himself sat down to dinner, and not before. After this sort and manner master Hooper executed the office of a most careful and vigilant pastor, by the space of two years and more, so long as the state of religion in king Edward's time safely flourished. And would God that all other bishops would use the like diligence and care in their function ! After this, in the reign of queen Mary, religion being subverted and changed, this good bishop was one of the first who was sent for by a pursuivant to London. Two reasons were assigned for this step. The first, that he might answer to Dr. Heath, then re-appointed bishop of that diocese, who was deprived thereof in king Edward's days, why he continued in an office to which he had no right ? And next to render an account to Bonner, bishop of London, because he had in king Edward's time been one of his accusers. Now although he was not ignorant of the evils that should happen to- wards him, being admonished by certain of his friends to get away, and shift for himself, yet he would not prevent them, but remained, saying, 620 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. " Once did I flee, and take me to my feet ; but now, because I am called to this place and vocation, I am thoroughly persuaded to remain, and to live and die with my sheep." On reaching London, before he could see Heath or Bonner, he was intercepted, and commanded to appear before the queen and her council, to answer certain bonds and obligations, wherein he was said to be bound unto her. When he met the council, Gardiner received him very opprobriously, railing at him, and accusing him of his religion. He freely and boldly answered, and cleared himself. But he was, notwithstanding, commanded to ward, and it was declared unto him at his departure, that the cause of his impri- sonment was only for certain sums of money, for which he was indebted to the queen, and not for religion. This, how false and untrue it was, shall in its place more plainly appear. Here it is enough to remark that at a second summons, such was the noise, that he could not be permitted to plead his cause, but was deprived of his bishoprics. Before we detail the examinations of Hooper, it will be proper to let him relate the cruel captivity he endured for eighteen months in the Fleet prison. "The first of September, 1553, 1 was committed unto the Fleet, from Richmond, to have the liberty of the prison ; and within six days after I paid five pounds sterling to the warden for fees for my liberty ; who immediately upon payment thereof, complained unto the bishop of Winchester, upon which I was committed to close prison a quarter of a year in the Tower-chamber of the Fleet, and used ex- tremely ill. By the means of a good gentlewoman, I had liberty to come down to dinner and supper, but was not suffered to speak with any of my friends ; but as soon as dinner and supper were done, to repair to my chamber again. Notwithstanding, whilst I came down thus to dinner and supper, the warden and his wife picked quarrels with me, and complained untruly of me to their great friend the bishop of Winchester. " After a quarter of a year, Babington the warden, and his wife, fell out with me respecting the wicked mass: and thereupon the warden resorted to the bishop of Winchester, and obtained to put me into the wards, where I have continued a long time, having nothing appointed to me for my bed, but a little pad of straw and a rotten covering, with a tick and a few feathers therein, the chamber being vile and stinking, until by God's means good people sent me bedding to lie on. On one side of the prison is the sink and filth of the house, and on the other the town ditch, so that the stench of the house hath infected me with sundry diseases. During this time I have been sick, and the doors, bars, hasps, and chains being all closed upon me, I have mourned, called, and cried for help; but the warden when he hath known me many times ready to die, and when the poor men of the wards have called to help me, hath commanded the doors to be kept fast, and charged that none of his men should come at me, saying, * Let him alone, it were a good riddance of him.' And he did this Oct. 18, 1553, as many can witness. " I paid always like a baron to the said warden, as well in fees, as for my board, which was twenty shillings a week, besides my man's table, until I was wrongfully deprived of my bishoprics; and since that time, I have paid him as the best gentleman doth in his house ; yet hath he SEVERE TREATMENT OF HOOPKH. 621 used me worse, and more vilely, than the veriest slave that ever came to the common side of the prison. He hath also imprisoned my man, William Downton, and stripped him of his clothes to search for letters, and could find none, but a little remembrance of good people's names who had given me their alms to relieve me in prison ; and to undo them also, the warden delivered the same bill unto Gardiner, God's enemy and mine. " 1 have suffered imprisonment almost eighteen months, my goods, liv- ings, friends, and comfort taken from me; the queen owing me, by just account, fourscore pounds or more. She hath put me in prison, and giveth nothing to keep me, neither is there suffered any one to come at me, whereby I might have relief. I am by a wicked man and woman cruelly treated, so that I see no remedy, saving God's help, but I shall be cast away in prison before I come to judgment. But 1 commit my just cause to God, whose will be done, whether it be by life or death." The first examination of bishop Hooper was before five bishops as com- missioners — of London, Durham, Winchester, Chichester, and Landaff. On his entering their presence, Gardiner, bishop of Winchester and lord chancellor asked whether he was married. To this the good man smil- ingly answered, " Yes, my lord, and will not be unmarried till death unmarry me. And this is not enough to deprive me, except you do it against the law." The subject of marriage was no more talked of then for some time : but all began to make great outcries, and laughed, and used such gestures as were unseemly for the place, and for such a matter. Day, bishop of Chichester, called Hooper a hypo- crite, with vehement voice, and scornful countenance. Tonstal, bishop of Durham, called him beast; so did Smith, one of the clerks of the council, and several others that stood by. At length the bishop of Winchester said, that all men might live chaste who would, and brought in this text. — " There are those that have become eunuchs for the king- dom of heaven." To this Hooper said, the text proved not that all men could live chaste, but such to whom it was given ; and read the verse before it. But again there was a clamour and cry, mocking and scorn- ing, calling him beast, and exclaiming that the text could not be ex- amined. Then Hooper said, that it appeared by the old canons, that marriage was not forbidden unto priests, and then named the decrees. But the bishop of Winchester sent for another part, namely, the Clemen- tines, or the Extravagants, and perversely, against all reason, determined that he should have no other, until he was judged by these. Then began such a noise, tumult, and speaking together of a great many who favoured not the cause, that nothing was done or spoken orderly or charitably. Afterwards, judge Morgan began to rail at Hooper a long time, with many opprobrious and foul words relative to his proceedings at Gloucester, in punishing of men, and said there was never such a tyrant as he was. After that the bishop of Chichester said, that the council of Ancyra, which was before the council of Nice, was against the marriage of priests. To this Hooper said, my lord of Chichester knoweth, that the great council of Nice, by the means of one Paphnutius, decreed, That no 622 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. minister should be separated from his wife. Again such clamours and cries were used, that the council of Nice was not attended to. After alternate clamour and silence, and much illiberal speech, Tonstal, bishop of Durham, asked him whether he believed the corporeal presence of the sacrament. He said plainly, that there was none such, neither did he believe any such thing. The offended bishop would then have read out of a book; but there was such a noise and confused talk on every side, that he did not proceed. Then the bishop of Winchester asked, What authority had moved him to deny the corporeal presence? He said, the authority of God's word, and alleged this text, " Whom heaven must hold until the latter day." But the bishop of Winchester would have made that text to serve nothing for his purpose, and said, he might be in heaven, and in the sacrament also. Then Hooper would have opened the text, but all who stood about the bishop prevented his speaking with clamours and cries, so that he was not permitted to say any more against Gardiner. Whereupon they bade the notaries write, that he was married, and said that he would not go from his wife ; and that he believed not the corporeal presence in the sacrament, for which he was worthy to be deprived of his bishopric. The next examination of Hooper took place at Winchester house, rather more privately than the former, no doubt to prevent much of the noise made on that occasion. On the 22nd of January, 1555, Babington, the warden of the Fleet, was commanded to bring him before Gardiner and some other bishops to Winchester house, in St. Mary Overy's: where the latter moved Hooper earnestly to forsake the evil and corrupt doctrine preached in the days of king Edward, to return to the unity of the catholic church, and to acknowledge the pope's holiness to be head of the same church, according to the determination of the whole parliament : promising, likewise, that as they with other their brethren, had received the pope's blessing, and the queen's mercy, even so mercy was ready to be shewed to him and others, if he would arise with them, and condescend to the pope's holiness. Master Hooper answered, that forasmuch as the pope taught doctrine altogether contrary to the doctrine of Christ, he was not worthy to be accounted as a member of Christ's church, much less to be head thereof; wherefore he would in no wise condescend to any such usurped jurisdic- tion. Neither esteemed he the church, whereof they call him head, to be the catholic church of Christ ; for the church only heareth the voice of her spouse Christ, and flieth the strangers. " Howbeit," saith he, " if in any point to me unknown I have offended the queen's majesty, I shall most humbly submit myself to her mercy, if mercy may be had with safety of conscience, and without the displeasure of God." Answer was made, that the queen would show no mercy to the pope's enemies. Whereupon Babington was commanded to carry him to the Fleet again. He did so, and shifted him from his former chamber into another, near unto the warden's own chamber, where he remained six days ; and, in the mean time, his former chamber was searched by Dr. Martin and others, for writings and books which master Hooper was thought to have made, but none were found. CONDEMNATION OF HOOPER AND ROGERS. 623 One more examination, or rather effort to make Hooper recant, oc- curred at the same place, and before the same crafty and cruel inquisitors. Jan. 28th, the bishop of Winchester, and other commissioners, again sat in judgment at St. Mary O very 's, where Hooper appeared before them in the afternoon, and after much reasoning and disputation, was com- manded aside, till Mr. Rogers, who was then come, had been examined. Examinations ended, the sheriffs were commanded, about four o'clock, to carry them to the compter in Southwark, there to remain till the follow ing day at nine o'clock, to see whether they would relent and come home again to the catholic church. Hooper went before with one of the sheriffs, and Mr. Rogers came after with the other; and being out of the church door, Hooper looked back and stayed a little till Mr. Rogers drew near, unto whom he said, " Come, brother Rogers, must we two take this matter first in hand, and begin to fry these fagots?" "Yes, sir," said Mr. Rogers, "by God's grace." " Doubt not," said Hooper, "but God will give strength." So going forwards, there was such a press of people in the streets, who rejoiced at their constancy, that they had much ado to pass. By the way the sheriff said to master Hooper, " I wonder that ye were so hasty and quick with my lord chancellor, and did use no more patience." He answered, " Master sheriff, I was nothing at all impatient, although I was earnest in my Master's cause, and it standeth me so in hand, for it goeth upon life and death ; not the life and death of this world only, but also of the world to come." Then they were committed to the keeper of the compter, and appointed to different chambers, with com- mand that they should not be suffered to speak one with another, nei- ther was any other permitted to come to them that night. Upon the day following, January 29th, at the hour appointed, they were brought up again by the sheriffs before Gardiner and the commis- sioners in the church, where they were the day before. And after long and earnest talk, when they perceived that Hooper would by no means condescend unto them, they condemned him to be degraded, and read unto him his condemnation. That done, Mr. Rogers was brought before them, and treated in like manner; and both were delivered to the secular power, the two sheriffs of London, who were ordered to carry them to the Clink, a prison not far from the bishop of Winchester's house, and there to remain till night. When it became dark, Hooper was led by one of the sheriffs, with many bills and weapons, through the bishop of Winchester's house, and over London-bridge through the city to Newgate, and by the way some of the Serjeants were sent before, to put out the coster-mongers' candles, who used to sit with lights in the streets; either fearing, that the people would have made some attempt to have taken him away from them by force, if they had seen him go to that prison ; or else, being burdened with an evil conscience, they thought darkness to be a most fit season for such a business. But notwithstand- ing this device, the people having some fore-knowledge of his coming, many of them came forth to their doors with lights, and saluted him, praising God for his constancy in the true doctrine which he had taught them, and desiring God to strengthen him in the same to the end. The 624 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. bishop required the people to make their earnest prayers to God for him; and so went through Cheapside to the place appointed, and was delivered as close prisoner to the keeper of Newgate, where he remained six days, nobody being permitted to come to him, saving his keepers, and such as should be appointed thereto. During this time, Bonner, bishop of London, and others at his ap- pointment, as Fecknam, Chedsey, and Harpsfield, resorted several times unto him, to try if by any means they could persuade him to relent, and become a member of their church. All the ways they could devise, they attempted. For, besides the disputations and allegation of testi- monies of the scriptures, and of ancient writers wrested to a wrong sense, according to their accustomed manner, they used also all out- ward gentleness and significations of friendship, with many great pro- mises of worldly wealth; not omitting, at the same time, most grievous threatenings, if with gentleness they could not prevail ; but they found him always the same man, steadfast and immoveable. When they per- ceived that they could by no means reclaim him to their purpose, with such persuasions and offers as they used for his conversion, then went they by false rumours and reports of recantations to bring him, and the doctrine of Christ which he professed, in discredit with the people. This being spread abroad, and believed by some of the weaker sort, Hooper was greatly grieved thereat, that the people should give credit to such false rumours, having so simple a ground. Hence he was con- strained to address the following letter to his fellow protestants. "The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with all them who unfeign- edly look for the coming of our Saviour Christ. Dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, and my fellow-prisoners for the cause of God's gos- pel, I do much rejoice and give thanks unto God for your constancy and perseverance in affliction, unto whom I wish continuance unto the end. And as I do rejoice in your faith and constancy in afflictions that be in prison; even so do I mourn and lament to hear of our dear brethren that yet have not felt such dangers for God's truth, as we have and do feel, and are daily like to suffer more, yea, the very extreme and vile death of the fire : yet such is the report abroad, as I am credibly informed, that I, John Hooper, a condemned man for the cause of Christ, should now after sentence of death, a prisoner in Newgate, and looking daily for execution, recant and abjure that which heretofore I have preached. And that talk a*iseth from this, that the bishop of London, and his chaplains resort unto me. Doubtless, if our brethren were as godly as I could wish them, they would think, that in case I did refuse to talk with him, they might have just occasion to say, that I was unlearned, and durst not speak with learned men, or else proud, and disdained to speak with them. Therefore to avoid just suspicion of both, I have, and do daily speak with them when they come, not doubting but they report that I am neither proud nor unlearned. And I would wish all men to do as I do in this point. For I fear not their arguments, nei- ther is death terrible unto me, praying you to make true report of HOOPER'S RKUOYAI. TO GLOUCESTER. 625 the same, as occasion shall serve; and that I am more confirmed in the truth which i have heretofore preached, by their coming. "Therefore, you that may send to the weak brethren, pray them that they trouble me not with such reports of recantations as they do. For I have hitherto left all things of the world, and suffered great pains and imprisonment, and I thank God I am as ready to suffer death as a mortal man can be. It were better for them to pray for us, than to credit or report sucli rumours that are untrue. We have enemies enough of such as know not God truly ; but yet the false report of weak brethren is a double cross. I wish you eternal salvation in Jesus Christ, and also require your continual prayers, that he which hath begun in us may con- tinue it to the end. I have taught the truth with my tongue, and with my pen heretofore; and hereafter shortly shall confirm the same, by God's grace, with my blood. Forth of Newgate, Feb. 2, 1555. Your brother in Christ, John Hooper." Upon Monday following, Bonner, bishop of London, came to Newgate, and there degraded bishop Hooper. The same Monday at night, his keeper g-ave Hooper a hint that he should be sent unto Gloucester to suffer death, whereat he rejoiced very much, lifting up his eyes and hands to heaven, and praising God that he saw it good to send him among the people over whom he was pastor, there to confirm with his death the truth which he had before taught them : not doubting but the Lord would give him strength to perform the same to his glory : and immediately he sent to his servant's house for his boots, spurs, and cloak, that he might be in readiness to ride when he should be called. The day following, about four o'clock in the morning, the keeper with others came and searched him, and the bed whereon he lay, to see if he had written any thing; after which, he was led by the sheriffs of London, and their officers, from Newgate to a place appointed, not far from St. Dunstan's church in Fleet-street, where six of the queen's guard were appointed to receive him to conduct him to Gloucester, there to be delivered unto the sheriff, who with the lord Chandos, Mr. Wicks, and other commissioners, were appointed to see execution done: which guard brought him to the Angel, where he brake his fast with them, eating his meat at that time more liberally than he had a good while before. About break of day he leaped cheerfully on horseback, having a hood upon his head, under his. hat, that he should not be known, and so took his journey joyfully towards Gloucester; and by the way the guard inquired of him, where he was accustomed to bait or lodge, but always carried him to another inn than the one he named. On the Thursday following he came to Cirencester, fifteen miles from Gloucester, and there dined at a woman's house who had always hated the truth, and spoken all the evil she could of him. This woman, per- ceiving the cause of his coming, shewed him all the friendship she could, and lamented his case with tears, confessing that she before had often reported, that if he were put to the trial, he would not stand to his doctrine. After dinner he resumed his journey, and came to Glou- cester about five o'clock. At a mile without the town much people 2 s 626 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. assembled, who cried and lamented his state; insomuch, that one of the guard rode post into the town, to require aid of the mayor and sheriffs, fearing lest he should have been taken from them. Accordingly, the officers and their retinue repaired to the gate with weapons, and com- manded the people to keep their houses; but there was none that gave any signification of violence. He was lodged at one Ingram's house in Gloucester; and that night, as he had done all the way, he eat his meat quietly, and slept soundly, as it was reported by the guard and others. After his first sleep, he continued in prayer until morning, and all the day, except a little time at his meals, and when conversing with such as the guard permitted to speak to him, he spent in prayer. Sir Anthony Kingston, formerly Hooper's good friend, was appointed by the queen's letters to attend at his execution. As soon as he saw the bishop he burst into tears. Hooper did not know him at first; the knight therefore addressing him, said, " Why, my lord, do not you know me — an old friend of yours, Anthony Kingston?" "Yes," answered Hooper, " Sir Anthony Kingston; I do know you well, and am glad to see you in health, and praise God for the same." " But I am sorry to see you, my lord, in this case," replied Kingston, " for as I understand you are come hither to die. But alas! consider that life is sweet, and death is bitter. Therefore seeing life may be had, desire to live; for life hereafter may do good." " Indeed, it is true, Sir Anthony, I am come hither to end this life, and to suffer death here, because I will not gainsay the truth that I have heretofore taught amongst you in this diocese, and elsewhere; and I thank you for your friendly counsel, although it be not as I could wish. True it is that death is bitter, and life is sweet ; but the death to come is more bitter, and the life to come is more sweet." After these, and many other words, they took leave of each other, Kingston with bitter tears, Hooper with tears also trickling down his cheeks. At his departure the bishop told him, that all the trouble he had sustained in prison, had not caused him to utter so much sorrow. Then the bishop was committed by the guard into the custody of the sheriffs of Gloucester. These men, named Jenkins and Bond, with the mayor and aldermen, repaired to his lodging, and at the first meeting saluted him, and took him by the hand. He was not insensible to their apparent kindness, nor unaware of their resolution, notwithstanding, to execute the law as it now stood. His remarkable and exemplary address to them merits particular attention. " I give most hearty thanks to you, and to the rest of your brethren, that you have vouchsafed to take me a prisoner and a condemned man, by the hand; whereby, to my rejoicing, it is very apparent that your old love and friendship towards me is not altogether extinguished : and I trust also that all the things I have taught you in times past, are not utterly forgotten, when I was your bishop and pastor. For which most true and sincere doctrine, because I will not now account it falsehood and heresy, as many other men do, I am sent hither, you know, by the queen's commands, to die, and am come where I taught it, to confirm it with my blood. And now, master sheriffs, I understand by these good men, and my good friends, at whose hands I have found as much favour and gentleness on the road hither, as a prisoner could reasonably require, HOOPER'S CONDUCT BEFORE EXECUTION. 627 for which I most heartily thank them, that I am committed to your cus- tody, as unto those that must see me brought to-morrow to the place of execution. My request to you shall be only, that there may be a quick Hre, shortly to make an end; and in the mean time I will be as obedient to you as yourselves could wish. If you think I do amiss in anv thing, hold up your finger and I have done. For I am not come hither as one forced or compelled to die ; for it is well known, I might have had my life with worldly gain ; but as one willing to offer and give my life for the truth, rather than consent to the wicked religion of the bishop of Rome, received and set forth by the magistrates in Eng- land to God's high displeasure and dishonour ; and I trust, by God's grace, to-morrow to die a faithful subject to God, and a true obedient subject to the queen." These words bishop Hooper used to the mayor, sheriffs, and aldermen, whereat many mourned and lamented. Notwithstanding, the two sheriffs went aside to consult, and were determined to have lodged him in the common gaol of the town, called Northgate, if the guard had not made earnest intercession for him ; who declared at large how quietly, mildly, and patiently, he had behaved on the way ; adding thereto, that any child might keep him well enough, and that they themselves would rather take pains to watch with him, than that he should be sent to the common prison. It was therefore determined that he should still remain in Robert Ingram's house; and the sheriffs, the sergeants, and other officers agreed to watch with him that night themselves. His desire was, that he might go to bed betime, saying, that he had many things to re- member : accordingly he went at five o'clock, and slept one sleep soundly, then spent the rest of the night in prayer. After he had got up in the morning, he desired that no man should be suffered to come into the chamber, that he might be solitary till the hour of execution. About eight o'clock came Sir John Bridges, lord Chandos, with a great band of men, Sir Anthony Kingston, Sir Edmund Bridges, and other commissioners appointed to see the execution. At nine, Hooper prepared himself to be in readiness, the time being now at hand. Immediately he was brought down from his chamber, by the sheriffs, who were accompanied with bills and other weapons. When he saw the multitude of weapons, he said to the sheriffs, " I am no traitor, neither needed you to have made such a business to bring me to the place where I must suffer ; for if you had suffered me, I would have gone alone to the stake, and troubled none of you." Afterwards looking upon the multitude of people who were assembled, being by estimation about 7000, he spake unto those who were about him, saying, " Alas ! why are these people assembled and come together? Peradventure they think to hear something of me now, as they have in times past : but alas ! speech is prohibited me. Notwithstanding the cause of my death is well known unto them. When I was appointed here to be their pastor, I preached unto them true and sincere doctrine, and that out of the word of God; and because I will not now account the same to be heresy and untruth, this kind of death is prepared for me." Having said this, he went forward, led between the two sheriffs, in a gown of his host's, his hat upon his head, and a staff in his hand to rest himself upon ; for 628 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the pain of the sciatica, which he had taken in prison, caused him some- what to halt. All the way, being strictly charged not to speak, he could not be perceived once to open his mouth ; but beholding the people, who mourned bitterly for him, he would sometimes lift up his eyes to- wards heaven, and look very cheerfully upon such as he knew; and he was never known, during the time of his being amongst them, to look with so happy and ruddy a countenance as he did then. When he came to the place where he should die, he smilingly beheld the stake, which was near to the great elm-tree over against the college of priests, where he had been wont to preach. The place round about the houses, and the boughs of the trees, were filled with spectators : and in the chamber over the gate stood the priests of the college. Then he kneeled down (forasmuch as he could not be suffered to speak unto the people) to prayer, and beckoned six or seven times unto one whom he well knew, that he might hear his prayer, and report faithfully the same. When this person came to the bishop he poured tears upon his shoulders and in his bosom, and continued his prayer for half an hour : which prayer was drawn from the whole creed. While at his prayer a box was brought and laid before him upon a stool, with his pardon from the queen if he would recant. At the sight of this he cried, " If you love my soul, away with it." The box being taken away, the lord Chandos said, " Seeing there is no remedy, dispatch him quickly." Hooper replied, " Good, my lord ; I trust your lordship will give me leave to make an end of my prayers." When he had risen from his last devotions in this world, he prepared himself for the stake, and put off his host's gown, and delivered it to the sheriffs, requiring them to see it restored unto the owner, and put off the rest of his apparel, unto his doublet and hose, wherein he would have burned. But the sheriffs would not permit that, unto whose plea- sure he very obediently submitted himself ; and his doublet, hose, and waistcoat were taken off. Thus being in his shirt, he took a point from his hose himself, and trussed his shirt between his legs, where he had a pound of gunpowder in a bladder, and under each arm the like quantity delivered him by the guard. So desiring the people to say the Lord's Prayer with him, and to pray for him, he went up to the stake; when he was at it, three irons made to bind him thereto were brought : one for his neck, another for his middle, and the third for his legs. But he refusing them, said, " You have no need thus to trouble your- selves. I doubt not God will give me strength sufficient to abide the extremity of the fire without bands : notwithstanding, suspecting the frailty and weakness of the flesh, but having assured confidence in God's strength, I am content you do as you shall think good." Then the hoop of iron prepared for his middle was brought, which being somewhat too short, he shrank and pressed in his body with his hand, until it fastened : but when they offered to have bound his neck and legs with the other hoops, he refused them, saying, " I am well assured I shall not trouble you." Being now ready he looked around on all the people, of whom he'might be well seen, for he was both tall, and stood also upon a high stool, and beheld that in every corner there was nothing to be seen but weeping and sorrowful people. Then lifting up LINES ON HOOPER'S MARTYRDOM. 629 his eyes and hands to heaven he prayed in silence. By and by, he that was appointed to make the lire came to him and asked him forgiveness. He asked why lie should forgive him, saying that he never knew any offence he had committed against him. " O, sir," said the man, " I am appointed to make the fire." " Therein," said Mr. Hooper, " thou dost nothing to offend me : God forgive thee thy sins, and do thine office, 1 pray thee." Then the reeds were cast up, and he receiving two bundles of them in his own hands embraced them, and putting one of them under each arm, showed with his hand how the rest should be bestowed, and pointed to the place where any were wanting. Command was now given that the fire should be kindled. But be- cause there were not fewer green fagots than two horses could carry, it did not kindle speedily, but was some time before it took the reeds upon the fagots. At length it burned about him ; but the wind having full strength in that place, and it being a lowering cold morning, it blew the flame from him, so that he was in a manner little more than touched by the fire. Endeavours were then made to increase the flame, and then the bladders of gunpowder exploded ; but did him little good, being so placed, and the wind having such power. In this fire he prayed with a loud voice, " Lord Jesus, have mercy upon me ! Lord Jesus, have mercy upon me ! Lord Jesus, receive my spirit !" And these were the last words he was heard to utter. Yet he struck his breast with his hands, until by the renewing of the fire his strength was gone, and his hand stuck fast in striking the iron upon his breast. So imme- diately, bowing forwards, he yielded up his spirit. Thus lingering were his last sufferings. He was nearly three quarters of an hour or more in the fire, as a lamb, patiently bearing the extremity thereof, neither moving forwards, backwards, nor to any side ; but he died as quietly as a child in his bed ; and he now reigneth as a blessed martyr in the joys of heaven, prepared for the faithful in Christ before the founda- tion of the world ; for whose constancy all christians are bound to praise God. A POEM, BY CONRADE GESNER, ON THE MARTYRDOM OF DR. JOHN HOOPER, BISHOP OF GLOUCESTER AND WORCESTER. Hooper, un vanquish 'd by Rome's cruelties, Confessing Christ in his last moments, dies : Whilst flames his body rack, his soul doth fly, Inflam'd with faith, to immortality ! His constancy on earth has rais'd his name, And gave him entrance at the gates of fame, Which neither storms, nor the cold north-wind's blast, Nor all-devouring time shall ever waste : For he whom God protects shall sure attain That happiness, which worldlings seek in vain. Example take by him, you who profess Christ's holy doctrines ; ne'er the world caress In hopes of riches ; or if fortune frown With inauspicious looks, be not cast down ; "For man ne'er 9aw, nor can his heart conceive, What God bestows on them that righteous live. 630 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. This good bishop and servant of God whose life and martyrdom is now declared, being in prison, wrote divers books and treatises, to the number of twenty- four. Also divers letters most fruitful and worthy to be read, es- pecially in these dangerous times, of those who seek to serve and follow the Lord through all the storms of this evil world, as by the perusal of the fol- lowing to his godly wife Anne Hooper, you shall better understand. " Dearly beloved and godly wife, " Our Saviour Jesus Christ in St. Matthew's gospel said to his disciples, that it was necessary scandals should come ; and that they could not be avoided, he perceived as well by the condition of those that should perish and be lost for ever, as also by their affliction they should be saved. For he saw the greatest part of the people would contemn and neglect whatsoever true doctrine should be shewn unto them, or else receive and use it as they thought good to serve their pleasures, without any profit to their souls, not caring whether they lived as they were com- manded by God's word or not ; but would think it sufficient to be counted to have the name of a christian, with such works and fruits of its profession as their fathers and elders, after their custom and manner, esteem and take to be good fruits and faithful works, without trying them by the word of God. These men by the just judgment of God, be delivered unto the craft and subtlety of the devil, that they may be kept by one scandalous stumbling-block or other never to come unto Christ, who came to save those that were lost ; as you may see how God deli- vered wicked men up unto their own lusts, to do one mischief after another, careless of coming into a reprobate mind, that forgetteth itself, and cannot know what is expedient to be done, or to be left undone; because they close their eyes, and will not see the light of God's word offered unto them : and being thus blinded, they prefer their own vanities before the truth of God's word. Where such corrupt minds, be, there are also corrupt notions of God's honour : so that the mind taketh falsehood for truth, superstitions for true religion, death for life, damnation for salvation, hell for heaven, and persecution of Christ's members for God's service and honour. And as such persons voluntarily reject the word of God ; so God most justly delivereth them up to blindness of mind and hardness of heart, that they cannot understand, nor yet consent to any thing that God would have preached, and set forth to his glory, after his own will and word ; but they hate it mortally, and of all things most detest God's holy word. As the devil hath entered into their hearts, that they cannot or will not come to Christ, to be instructed by his holy word : even so can they not abide any other person to be a christian, and to lead his life after the word of God; but hate him, per- secute him, rob him, imprison him, yea and kill him, if God suffer it. And so much are these wicked men blinded, that they regard no law, whether it be the law of God or man, but persecute such as never offended, yea, do evil to those that have prayed daily for them, and wish them God's grace. " In their blind fury they have no respect to nature. For brother per- secuted brother, and father the son : most dear friends in devilish slander HOOPER'S LKTTKR TO HIS WIFE. 631 and offence become most mortal enemies. And no marvel ; for when they have chosen sundry masters, the one the devil, the other God, the one shall agree with the former and the other with the latter. For this cause Christ said, it is expedient and necessary that scandals should come, and many may be advised to keep the babes of Christ from the heavenly Father. But Christ saith, Woe be unto him by whom the of- fence cometh. Yet is there no remedy, man being of such corruption and hatred towards God, but that the evil shall be deceived, and perse- cute the good ; and the good shall understand the truth, and suffer per- secution for it unto the world's end. For ' as he that was born after the flesh, persecuted in times past him that was born after the spirit, even so it is now.' Therefore as we live in this life amongst so many perils and dangers, we must be well assured by God's word how to bear them, and how patiently to take them as they be sent to us from God. We must also assure ourselves, that there is no other remedy for chris- tians in the time of trouble, than Christ himself hath appointed us. In St. Luke he giveth us this commandment, 'Ye shall possess your lives in peace.' In which words he giveth us both commandment what to do, and also great comfort and consolation in all troubles. " That the spirit of man may feel these consolations, the Giver of them, the heavenly Father, must be prayed unto for the merits of Christ's passion : for it is not the nature of man that can be contented, until it be regenerated and possessed with God's Spirit, to bear patiently the troubles of the mind or of the body. When the mind and heart of a man seeth on every side sorrow and heaviness, and the worldly eye beholdeth nothing but such things as be troubles and wholly bent to rob the poor of what he hath, and also to take from him his life; except we weigh these brittle and uncertain treasures with the riches of the life to come; and this life of the body, with the life in Christ's blood; and so for the love and certainty of the heavenly joys contemn all things present, doubtless we shall never be able to bear the loss of goods, life, or any other thing of this world. "Therefore St. Paul giveth a godly and necessary lesson to all in this short and transitory life, and therein sheweth how a man may best bear the iniquities and troubles of this world. ' If ye be risen again with Christ, seek the things which are above, where Christ sitteth at the right hand of God the Father.' Wherefore, the christian's faith must be always upon the resurrection of Christ when he is in trouble ; and in that glorious resurrection he shall not only see continual and perpetual joy and consolation ; but also victory and triumph over all persecution, trouble, sin, death, hell, the devil, and other tyrants and persecutors of Christ, and of Christ's people, the tears and weeping of the faithful dried up, their wounds healed, their bodies made immortal in joy, their souls for ever praising the Lord, in conjunction and society everlasting with the blessed company of God's elect in perpetual felicity. But the words of St. Paul in that place, if they be not marked, shall do little profit to the reader or hearer, and give him no peace at all in this im- patient and cruel world. "When a man hath, by seeking the word of God, found out what the things above be, then must he, saith Paul, ' set his affections ' on them. And 632 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.. this commandment is more hard than the other. For men's knowledge many time seeth the best, and knoweth that there is a life to come, better than this life present, yet they set not their affections upon it : they more affect and love indeed a trifle of nothing in this that pleaseth their hearts, than the treasure of treasures in heaven, which their own judg- ment saith is better than all worldly things. Wherefore we must " set our affections on the things that be above ;" that is to say, when any thing worse than heaven upon the earth offereth itself to be ours, if we will give our good wills to it, and love it in our hearts, then ought we to see by the judgment of God's word, whether we may have the world with- out offence of God, and such things as be for this worldly life without his displeasure. If we cannot, St. Paul's commandment must take place — ' Set your affections on things that are above.' If the riches of this world may not be gotten nor kept by God's law, neither our lives be continued without the denial of his honour, we must set our affections upon the riches and life that are above, and not upon things that are on the earth. Therefore this second commandment of St. Paul requireth, that our minds judge heavenly things to be better than things upon the earth, and the life to come better than the life present : so we should choose them before the other, and prefer them, and have such affection to the best, that in no case we set the worst before it, as the most part of the world doth and hath done, for they acknowledge the best and prove it, and yet follow the worst. " But these things, my godly wife, require rather thought, meditation, and prayer, than words or talk. They are easy to be spoken of, but not so easy to be used and practised. Wherefore seeing they be God's gifts, and yet they may become our privileges, we must seek them at our heavenly Father's hand, who seeth, and is privy how poor and wretched we be, and how naked, how spoiled, and destitute of all his blessed gifts we be by reason of sin. He did command, therefore, his disciples, when he shewed them that they should take patiently the state of this present life full of troubles and persecution, to pray that they might well escape those troubles that were to come, and be able to stand before the Son of man. When you find yourself too much oppressed — as every one shall be sometimes with the fear of God's judgment — use the 77th psalm that beginneth, " I will cry unto God with my voice, and he shall hearken unto me." In which psalm is both godly doctrine and great consola- tion unto the man or woman that is in anguish of mind. " Use also in such trouble the 88th psalm, wherein is contained the prayer of one that was brought to extreme anguish and misery, and being vexed with adversaries and persecutions, saw nothing but death and hell. Yet although he felt in himself, that he had not only man, but also God angry towards him: 'yet he by prayer humbly resorted unto God. Remember also that none of us must murmur against God, but always say his judgments are right and just, and rejoice that it pleaseth him by troubles to use us as he used heretofore such as he most loved in this world. " Be glad, and rejoice, for your reward is great in heaven." His promises shall by his grace, work both consolation and patience in afflicted christians. And when our Saviour Christ hath willed men in trouble to be content and patient, because God in the end HOOPER'S LETTER TO 1 1 IS WIFE. 633 of trouble, in Christ hath ordained eternal consolation; he useth also to take from us all shame and rebuke, and make it an honour to suffer for Christ, because the wicked world doth curse and abhor such poor trou- bled christians. Wherefore Christ placethall his honourably, and saith, ' Even so persecuted they the prophets that were before you.' We must therefore patiently suffer, and willingly attend upon God's doings, although they seem clean contrary, after our judgment, to our wealth and salvation : as Abraham did, when bid to offer his son Isaac, in whom God promised the blessing and multiplying of his seed. " And judge things indifferently, my good wife, the troubles be not yet generally, as they were in our good fathers' time, soon after the death and resurrection of our Saviour Jesus Christ, whereof he spake in St. Matthew. From which place you and I have taken many times great consolation, and especially of the latter part of the chapter, wherein is contained the last day and end of all troubles both for you and me, and for all such as love the coming of our Saviour Christ to judgment. Remember, therefore, that place, and mark it again, and you shall in this time see this great consolation, and also learn much patience. Were there ever such troubles as Christ threatened upon Jerusalem ? Was there since the beginning of the world such affliction ? Who were then best at ease ? The apostles that suffered in body persecution, and gathered of it ease and quietness in the promises of God. And no marvel, for Christ saith, " Lift up your heads, for your redemption is at hand ;" that is, your eternal rest approacheth and draweth near. The world is stark blind, and more foolish than foolishness itself, and so are the people of this world : for when God saith, trouble shall come, they will have ease. And when God saith, be merry and rejoice in trouble, we lament and mourn, as though we were to be cast-away. But this our flesh (which is never merry with virtue, nor sorry with vice : never laugheth with grace, nor ever weepeth with sin) holdeth fast with the world, and letteth God slip. But, my dearly beloved wife, you know how to perceive and to beware of the vanity, and crafts of the devil well enough in Christ. And that you may the better have patience in the Spirit of God, read again the 24th of St. Matthew, and mark what difference is between the destruction of Jerusalem, and the destruction of the whole world, and you shall see, that then there were alive many offenders to repent : but at the latter day there shall be absolute judgment and sentence, never to be revoked, of eternal life and eternal death upon all men : and yet towards the end of the world we have not so much extremity as they had then, but even as we are able to bear. So doth the merciful Father lay upon us now imprisonment, and I suppose for my part shortly death; now spoil of goods, loss of friends,* and the greatest loss of all, the knowledge of God's word. His holy will be done. I wish in Christ Jesus our only Mediator and Saviour, your constancy and consolation, that you may live for ever and ever, whereof in Christ I doubt not ; to whom, for his most blessed and painful passion, I commit you, Amen. " October 13, a.d. 1553. 634 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. While in prison, Hooper received a letter from his learned and pious friend Henry Bullinger, of Zurich. It was well worthy of its au- thor and of the spirit of a saint. He exhorted him to bear with firmness that awful task to which the Lord had appointed to him, and to look beyond his troubles to the crown that awaited him. a One more incident amongst other memorable things worthy to be remembered in the history of Hooper, is not to be forgotten : it happened a little after the beginning of his imprisonment. A friar came from France to England with great vaunt, asking who was the greatest heretic in England, thinking no doubt to do some great act upon him. To whom answer was made, that Dr. Hooper had then the greatest name to be the chiefest ringleader, who was then in the Fleet. The friar coming to him, asked why he was committed to prison? He said for debt. " Nay," said he, " it was for heresy;" which when Hooper had denied, " What sayest thou," quoth he, " to hoc est corpus meumV Hooper, being partly moved at the sudden question, desired that he might ask of him another, which was this, " what remains after the consecration in the sacrament, any bread or no?" " No bread at all," said the friar. " And when you break it, what do you break — whether bread or the body?" said Hooper. " No bread," said the friar; "but the body only." " If ye do so," said Hooper, "you do great injury, not only to the body of Christ, but also to the scriptures, which say, Ye shall not break of him one bone." With that the friar having nothing to answer, recoiled back, and with circles and crosses began to use exorcism as though Hooper had bewitched him ! SECTION III. THE LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF DR. ROWLAND TAYLOR, WHO SUFFERED FOR THE TRUTH OF GOD'S WORD, UNDER THE TYRANNY OF THE ROMAN BISHOPS, THE 9TH DAY OF FEBRUARY, 1555. The town of Hadley was one of the first that received the word of God in all England, at the preaching of Thomas Bilney ; by whose industry the gospel of Christ had such gracious success, and took such root there, that a great number became exceedingly learned in the holy Scriptures, as well women as men. Of this parish Dr. Rowland Taylor was vicar, being doctor both in the civil and canon laws, and a right perfect divine. In addition to eminent learning, his known attachment to the pure prin- a " Go forwards," he wrote, " constantly to confess Christ, and to defy Antichrist, being mindful of this most holy and most true saying of our Lord Jesus Christ : ' He that overcometh shall possess all things ; and I will be his God, and he shall be my son.' The first death is soon overcome, although a man must burn for the Lord's sake : for they say well that do affirm this our fire to be scarcely a shadow of that which is prepared for unbelievers, and them that fall from the truth. Moreover, the Lord granteth unto us, that we may easily overcome by his power the first death, the which he himself did taste and overcome; promising withal such joys as never shall have end, unspeakable, and passing all understanding, the which we shall possess so soon as ever we do depart hence. — Therefore, seeing you have such a large promise, be strong in the Lord, fight a good fight, be faithful to the Lord unto the end. I and all my household, with my sons-in-law and kinsmen, are in good health in the Lord. They do all salute you, and pray for your constancy ; being sorrowful for you and the rest of the prisoners. If there be any- thing wherein I may do any pleasure to your wife and children, they shall have me wholly at commandment. The Lord Jesus preserve and deliver you from all evil, with all them that call upon his name. Farewell, and farewell eternally. You know the hand, H. B." ALTERCATION BETWEEN DR. TAYLOR AND POSTER. (iM. r > eiples of Christianity recommended him to the favour and friendship of Cranmer, with whom he lived, till through his interest he obtained the vicarage of Hadley. This charge he attended with the utmost diligence, recommending and enforcing the doctrines of the gospel, not only by his judicious discourses from the pulpit, but also by the whole tenor of his life and conversation. Dr. Taylor continued promoting the interest of the great Redeemer, and the souls of mankind, both by his preaching and example during the reign of king Edward; but on his demise, and on the succession of Mary to the throne, he could not escape the cloud that burst on the protestant community. Two of his parishioners, Foster an attorney, and Clark a tradesman, out of blind zeal, resolved that mass should be celebrated in all its superstitious forms, in the parish church at Hadley, on the Monday before Easter. They had even caused an altar to be built in the chancel for that purpose, which being pulled down by the protestant inhabitants, they erected another, and prevailed with the minister of an adjacent parish to celebrate mass in the passion-week. Taylor being employed in his study, was alarmed by the ringing of bells at an unusual time, and went to the church to inquire the cause. He found the great doors fast, but lifting up the latch of the chancel door, he entered, and was surprised to see a priest in his habit pre- pared to celebrate mass, and guarded by a party of men under arms, to prevent interruption Being vicar of the parish, he demanded of the priest the cause of such proceeding without his knowledge or consent; and how he dared pro- fane the temple of God with abominable idolatries. Foster, the lawyer, insolently replied — " Thou traitor, how darest thou to intercept the exe- cution of the queen's orders?" but the doctor undauntedly denied the charge of traitor, and asserted his mission as a minister of Christ, and delegation to that part of his flock, commanding the priest as a wolf in sheep's clothing to depart, nor infect the pure church of God with popish idolatry. A violent altercation then ensued, between Foster and Dr. Taylor, the former asserting the queen's prerogative, and the other the authority of the canon-law, which commanded that no mass be said, but at a consecrated altar. Meanwhile the priest, intimidated by the intrepid behaviour of the protestant minister, would have departed without saying mass, but Clark said to him, " Fear not, you have a super altare;" which is a consecrated stone, commonly about a foot square, which the popish priests carry instead of an altar, when they say mass in gentlemen's houses. Clark then ordered him to proceed in his present duty. They then forced the doctor out of the church, celebrated mass, and immediately informed the bishop of Winchester of his behaviour, who summoned him to appear and answer the complaints alleged against him. Dr. Taylor upon receipt of the summons cheerfully prepared to obey the same : and on some of his friends advising him to fly beyond sea, in order to avoid the cruelty of his inveterate enemies, he told them that he was determined to go to the bishop; and he accordingly repaired to London and waited on him. As soon as Gardiner saw him, according to his common custom he reviled him, calling him knave, traitoi, 636 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. heretic, with many other villanous reproaches, which Taylor, having patiently heard for some time, at last answered thus without fear or impropriety—" My lord, I am neither traitor nor heretic, but a true subject, and a faithful christian, and am come according to your com- mandment, to know the cause of your lordship's sending for me." "Art thou come, thou villain?" said the violent Gardiner; "how darest thou look me in the face for shame? Knowest thou not who I am?" " Yes," said Dr. Taylor, " I know who you are, Dr. Stephen Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord chancellor, and yet but a mortal man. But if I should be afraid of your lordly looks, why fear you not God, the Lord of us all? How dare you for shame look any christian in the face, seeing you have forsaken the truth, denied our Saviour Christ and his word, and done contrary to your own oath and writing? With what countenance will you appear before the judgment seat of Christ, and answer to your oath made first unto king Henry, and afterwards unto Edward, his son?" The bishop answered, "That was Herod's oath, unlawful; and there- fore worthy to be broken: I have done well in breaking it; and I thank God I am come home again to our mother, the catholic church of Rome, and so I would thou shouldest do. Our holy father the pope hath dis- charged me of it." Then said Dr. Taylor, " But you shall not be so dis- charged before Christ, who doubtless will require it at your hands, as a lawful oath made to our liege and sovereign lord the king, from whose obedience no man can quit you, neither the pope nor any of his." " I see," quoth the bishop, " thou art an arrogant knave and a very fool." " My lord," said Dr. Taylor, " I am a Christian man ; and you know that ' he that saith to his brother, Raca, is in danger of a council : and he that saith, Thou fool, is in clanger of hell fire/ " The bishop answered, '* Ye are false and liars, all the sort of you." " Nay," quoth Dr. Taylor, "we are true men, and know that it is written, ' The mouth that lieth, slayeth the soul.* And therefore we abide by God's word, which ye deny and forsake." "Thou hast resisted the queen's proceedings," said Gardiner, "and would not suffer the parson of Aldham, (a very virtuous and devout priest,) to say mass in Hadley." Dr. Taylor answered, " My lord, I am parson of Hadley ; and it is against all right, conscience, and laws, that any man should come into my charge, and presume to infect the flock committed unto me with the venom of the popish idolatrous mass." With that the bishop waxed very angry, and said, " Thou art a blasphemous heretic indeed, that blas- phemest the blessed sacrament, (and put off his cap,) and speakest against the holy mass, which is made a sacrifice for the quick and the dead." Dr. Taylor answered, " Nay, I blaspheme not the blessed sacrament which Christ instituted, but I reverence it as a Christian man ought to do ; and confess that Christ ordained the holy communion in the remembrance of his death and passion. — Christ gave himself to die for our redemption upon the cross, whose body there offered was the propitiatory sacrifice, full, per- fect, and sufficient unto salvation for all them that believe in him. And this sacrifice did our Saviour Christ offer in his own person himself once for all, neither can any priest any more offer him, nor we need any more sacrifice." Then the bishop called his men, and said, " Have this fellow to the King's Bench, and charge that he be straitly kept." Then Taylor knelt, and held DEGRADATION ()!•' DR. TAYLOR. G37 up both his hands and said, " Good Lord, I thank thee! and from the tyranny of the bishop of Rome, and all his detestable errors, idolatries, and abominations, good Lord deliver us! and God be praised for good king Edward." They carried him to prison to the King's Bench, where he was confined almost two years. Of course Gardiner's command for strict confinement was obeyed. These several particulars are mentioned in a letter that Dr. Taylor wrote to a friend of his, thanking God for his grace, at the same time that he had confessed his truth, and was found worthy for truth to suffer prison and bonds, beseeching his friends to pray for him, that he might persevere constant unto the end. In January, 1555, Dr. Taylor, Mr. Bradford, and Mr. Saunders, were again called to appear before the bishops of Winchester, Norwich, London, Salisbury, and Durham, and being again charged with heresy and schism, a determinate answer was required, whether they would submit themselves to the Roman bishop, and abjure their errors, or hear their condemnation. Dr. Taylor and his fellows answered stoutly and boldly, that they would not depart from the truth which they had preached in king Edward's days, neither would they submit to the Romish Antichrist ; but they thanked God for so great mercy, that he would call them to be worthy to suffer for his word. When the bishops saw them so boldly, constantly, and unmovably fixed in the truth, they read the sentence of death upon them, which when they heard they most joyfully gave God thanks, and stoutly said unto the bishops, " We doubt not, but God the righteous judge will require our blood at your hands ; and the proudest of you all shall repent this receiving again of Antichrist, and your tyranny that ye now show against the flock of Christ." W r hen Dr. Taylor had lain in the Compter in the Poultry about a week, on Feb. 4, 1555, bishop Bonner, with others, came to degrade him, bringing with them such ornaments as do appertain to their massing-mummery. He called for Taylor to be brought unto him; the bishop being then in the chamber where the keeper of the Compter and his wife lay. Dr. Taylor was accordingly brought down from the chamber to Bonner. " I wish you would remember yourself, and turn to your holy mother church, so may you do well enough, and I will sue for your pardon," said Bonner. Dr. Taylor answered — " I wish that you and your fellows would turn to Christ. As for me, I will not turn to antichrist." Said the bishop, " I am come to degrade you: wherefore put on these vestures." Dr. Taylor said resolutely, " I will not." " Wilt thou not? I shall make thee, ere I go," replied Bonner. " You shall not, by the grace of God," said Taylor. Again Bonner charged him upon his obedience to do it, but he would not. Upon this he ordered another to put them upon his back; and being thoroughly furnished therewith, he set his hands to his side, walking up and down, and said — " How say you, my lord, am not I a goodly fool? How say you, my masters, if I were in Cheapside, should I not have boys to laugh at these apish toys and trumpery?" At this Bonner was so enraged, that he would have g;iven Dr. Taylor a stroke on the breast with his crosier-staff, when his chaplain said — "My lord, strike him not, for he will certainly strike again." The bishop 638 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. then laid his curse upon him, but struck him not. Dr. Taylor said, " Though you curse me, yet God doth bless me." The night after his degradation r his wife, his son, and his servant, came to him, and were, by the keepers, permitted to sup with him: at their coming, they kneeled down and prayed. After supper, walking up and down, he gave God thanks for his grace that had so called him, and given him strength to abide by his holy word; and turning to his son he said — " My dear son, Almighty God bless thee, and give thee his Holy Spirit, to be a true servant of Christ, to learn his word, and constantly to stand by his truth all thy life long : and see that thou fear God always. Flee from all sin and wicked living : be virtuous, serve God with daily prayer, and apply to the holy book. In any wise see that thou be obedient to thy mother, love her and serve her; be ruled by her now in thy youth, and follow her good counsel in all things. Beware of the lewd company of young men that fear not God, but who follow their lusts and vain appetites. Fly from whoredom, and hate all filthy living, remembering that I, thy father, die in the defence of holy marriage. Another day, when God shall bless thee, love and cherish the poor people, and count that thy chief riches is to be rich in alms ; and when thy mother is waxed old, forsake her not ; but provide for her to thy power, and see that she lack nothing : for so will God bless thee, and give thee long life upon earth and prosperity, which I pray God to grant thee." And then turning to his wife, he said — " My dear wife, continue stedfast in the fear and love of God : keep yourself undefiled from popish idolatries and superstition. I have been unto you a faithful yoke-fellow, and so have you to me, for which I pray God to reward you, and doubt not but he will reward it. Now the time is come that I shall be taken from you, and you discharged of the wed- lock bond towards me : therefore I will give you the counsel which I think most expedient for you. You are yet a child-bearing woman, and therefore it will be most convenient for you to marry." On the following morning the sheriff of London with his officers, came by two o'clock, and brought him forth, and without any light led him to the Woolpack, an inn without Aldgate. Mrs. Taylor, suspecting that her husband would that night be carried away, watched all night in St. Botolph's church porch, without Aldgate, having with her two children, the one named Elizabeth, an orphan, whom the doctor had adopted at three years old; the other named Mary, his own daughter. When the sheriff and his company came against St. Botolph's church, the grateful little Elizabeth cried — "O my dear father! mother, mother, here is my father led away!" "Rowland," said his wife, " where art thou?" for it was so dark a morning, that the one could not see the other. " Dear wife, I am here," said the doctor, and stopped. The sheriff's men would have forced him on; but the sheriff said — " Stay a little, I pray you, and let him speak to his wife." She then came to him, when he took his daughter Mary in his arms, while he, his wife, and Elizabeth, kneeled down and said the Lord's prayer. At which sight the sheriff wept much, as did several others of the company. The prayer finished, Taylor rose up and kissed his wife, DR. TAYLOR'S MEETING WITH HIS WIFE. 639 and pressing her hand, lie said — " Farewell, my dear wife; be of good comfort, for I am quiet in my conscience. God shall stir up a father tor inv children." And then he kissed his daughter Mary, and said, " God bless thee, and make thee his servant:" and kissing- Elizabeth, he said, God bless thee. I pray you all, stand strong and stedfast unto Christ and his word, and beware of idolatry." Then said his wife unto him, "God be with thee, mv dear Rowland: I will, with God's grace, meet thee at Hadley." He was then led on, while his wife followed him. As soon as he came to the YVoolpack, he was put into a chamber, wherein he was kept with four yeomen of the guard, and the sheriff's men. As soon as he entered the chamber, he fell on his knees, and gave himself wholly to prayer. The sheriff then seeing Mrs. Taylor there, would in no case grant her to speak any more with her husband, but gently desired her to go to his house, and use it as her own, promising her, that she should lack nothing, and sending two officers to conduct her thither. Not- withstanding this, she desired to go to her mother's, whither the officers led her, and charged her mother to keep her there till they came again. Meanwhile the journey to Hadley was delayed. Dr. Taylor was con- fined at the Woolpack by the sheriff and his company, till eleven o'clock, by which time the sheriff of Essex was ready to receive him; when they sat him on horseback within the inn, the gates being shut. On coming out of the gates his servant John Hull stood at the rails with young Taylor. When the doctor saw them, he called them saying — " Come hither, my son Thomas." John Hull lifted the child up, and set him on the horse before his father; who then put off his hat, and said to the people — " Good people, this is mine own son, begotten in lawful matrimony: and God be blessed for lawful matrimony." Then he lifted up his eyes towards heaven and prayed for his child, placing his hat upon his head. After blessing him, he delivered him to his faithful servant, whom he took by the hand and said — " Farewell, John Hull, the most faithful servant ever man had." After this they rode forth, the sheriff of Essex, and four yeomen of the guard, and the sheriff's men leading them. When they were come almost to Brentwood, one Arthur Faysie, a man of Hadley, who formerly had been Dr. Taylor's servant, met with them, and he, supposing him to have been at liberty, said — " Master, I am glad to see you again at liberty," and took him by the hand. " Sir," returned the sheriff, "he is a prisoner; what hast thou to do with him?" " I cry your mercy," said Arthur, "I knew not so much, and I thought it no offence to talk to a true man." The sheriff was very angry with this, and threatened to carry Arthur with him to prison ; notwithstanding he bid him get quickly away. And so they rode forth to Brentwood, where they caused to be made for Dr. Taylor a close hood. This they did, that no man should know him, nor he to speak to any man ; which practice they used also with others. All the way, Dr. Taylor was joyful and merry, as one that accounted himself going to a most pleasant banquet or bridal. He spake many notable things to the sheriff and yeomen of the guard that conducted him, and often moved them to weep through his much earnest calling upon 640 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. them to repent, and turn to the true religion. Of these yeomen of the guard three used him very tenderly, but the fourth, named Holmes, treated him most unkindly. The party supped and slept at Chelmsford] At supper the sheriff earnestly besought him to return to the popish religion, thinking with fair words to persuade him, and said — " Good Doctor, we are sorry for you, considering the loss of such a man as you. You would do much better to revoke your opinions, and return to the catholic church of Rome, acknowledge the pope's holiness to be the supreme head of the church, and reconcile yourselves to him. You may do well yet if you will : doubt not but you shall find favour at the queen's hands. I and all these your friends will be suitors for your pardon; this council I give you, Doctor, of a good heart and will to- wards you : and therefore I drink to you." In this joined all the rest. When the cup was handed to him, he staid a little, as one studying what answer he might give. At last he said — " Mr. Sheriff, and my masters all, I heartily thank you for your goodwill; I have attended to your words, and marked well your counsels. And to be plain with you, I find that I have been deceived myself, and am like to deceive a great -many of Hadley of their expectation." With that word they all rejoiced. " Yes, Doctor," said the sheriff, " God's blessing on your heart; hold you there still. It is the most comfortable word we have heard you speak yet." The cheerful man then explained himself, " 1 will tell you how I have been deceived, and, as I think, I shall deceive a great many. I am, as you see, a man of a very large body, which I thought should have been buried in Hadley church-yard, had I died as I hoped I should have done ; but herein I was deceived ; and there are a great number of worms in Hadley church yard, which would have had merry feeding upon me ; but now I know we shall be deceived, both I and they ; for this carcass must be burned to ashes, and they shall lose their feast." When the sheriff and his company heard him say so, they were amazed, and looking one on another, marvelled at his con- stant mind, that thus without fear he could speak of the torment and death now prepared for him. At Chelmsford he was delivered to the sheriff of Suffolk, and by him conducted to Hadley. On their arrival at Lavenham, the sheriff staid there two days ; and thither came to him a great number of gentlemen and justices, who were appointed to aid him. These endeavoured very much to reduce the Doctor to the Romish religion, promising him his pardon, which they said they had for him. They also promised him great promotions, even a bishopric if he would take it : but all their labour and flattery were in vain. When they came to Hadley, and were passing the bridge, there waited a poor man with five children ; who when they saw Dr. Taylor, fell down upon their knees, and holding up their hands, cried with a loud voice — " O dear father and good shepherd ! God help and succour thee as thou hast many a time succoured us !" Such witness had the ser- vant of God of his virtuous and charitable life. The streets of Hadley were crowded with men and women of the town and country, who waited to see him ; and in beholding him led to death, with weeping eyes and lamenting voices they cried one to another — " Ah, good Lord! there BURNING OF DR. ROWLAND TAYLOR. 641 goeth our good shepherd from us, who so faithfully hath taught us, so fatherly hath cared for us, and so godly hath governed us ! Good Lord, strengthen and comfort him." Arriving over against the alms-houses, which he well knew, he cast money to the poor people, that remained out of what had been given him in the time of his imprisonment. His living of Hadley they took from him at his first going to prison, so that he was sustained by the charitable alms of good people that visited him. At the last, coming to Aldham-common, and seeing a great multitude, he asked, " What place is this, and what meaneth it that so much people are gathered hither?" It was answered, "It is Aldham-common, the place where you must suffer ; and the people are come to behold you." Then said he, "Thanked be God, I am even at home;" and so alighted from his horse, and with both his hands rent the hood from his head. When the people saw him, they cried, " God save thee, good Dr. Taylor ! Jesus Christ strengthen thee and help thee; the Holy Ghost comfort thee :" with such other like godly wishes. Then desired Dr. Taylor license of the sheriff to speak ; but he denied it him. Perceiving that he could not be suffered to speak, he sat down, and seeing one named Soyce, he called him, and said — " Soyce, I pray thee come and pull off my boots, and take them for thy labour : thou hast long looked for them, now take them." Then he rose up and put off his clothes unto his shirt, and gave them away. Which done, he said with a loud voice — " Good people, I have taught you nothing but God's holy word, and those les- sons that I have taken out of God's blessed book, the Holy Bible: and I am come hither this day, to seal it with my blood." On hearing his voice, the yeoman of the guard who had used him cruelly all the way, gave him a great stroke upon the head and said — " Is that keeping thy promise, thou heretic?" Then seeing they would not permit him to speak, he kneeled down and prayed, and a poor woman who was among the people stepped in and prayed with him : they endeavoured to thrust her away, and threatened to tread her down with their horses : notwithstanding this she would not remove, but abode and prayed with him. When he had finished his devotions, he went to the stake and kissed it, and set himself into a pitch barrel, which they had brought for him to stand in, and thus stood with his back upright against the stake, with his hands folded together, and his eyes towards heaven, and continually prayed. Then they bound a chain around him, and the sheriff called Richard Donningham, a butcher, and commanded him to setup the fagots; but the man refused, and said — " I am lame, sir, and not able to lift a- fagot." The sheriff on this threatened to send him to prison ; still he would not do it. The sheriff then compelled several worthless fellows of the multitude to set up the fagots and make the fire, which they most diligently did : and one of them cruelly cast a fagot at the martyr, which struck him on the face, and the blood ran down. He meekly said — " O friend, I have suffering enough, what needed that?" Sir John Shelton standing by, as Dr. Taylor was speaking, and say- ing the psalm Miserere in English, struck him on the lips — '■* You knave," he said, "speak Latin, or I will make thee." At last they kindled the fire ; when the martyr, holding up his hands, called upon God, and 2 T 642 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. said, " Merciful Father of heaven, for Jesus Christ my Saviour's sake, receive my soul into thy hands." He then remained still without either crying or moving, with his hands folded together, till Soyce with an hal- berd struck him on the head so violently, that his brains fell out, and the dead corpse fell down into the fire. Thus rendered he his soul into the hands of his merciful Father, and to his most dear and certain Saviour Jesus Christ, whom he most entirely loved, faithfully and earnestly preached, obediently followed in living, and constantly glorified in death. These severities were very hateful to the nation. It was observed that in king Edward's time, those that opposed the laws were only turned out of their benefices, and some few of them were imprisoned ; but now men were put in prison on trifling pretences, and kept there till laws were made, by which they were condemned merely for their opinions, when they had acted nothing contrary to law. One piece of cruelty was remarkable — when the council sent away those who were to be burnt in the country, they threatened to cut out their tongues if they would not promise to make no speeches to the people ; to which they, to avoid that butchery, consented. Those who loved the reformation were now possessed with great aversion to the popish party, and the body of the nation now detested this cruelty, and began to hate king Philip for it. Gardiner and the other counsellors had openly said, that the queen set them on to it, so that the blame of it was laid on the king, the sourness of whose temper, together with his bigotry in matters of religion, made it seem reasonable. He finding that this was likely to raise such pre- judices against him as might probably spoil his design of making himself master of England, took care to vindicate himself. Accordingly his con- fessor, Alphonsus, a Franciscan, preached a sermon at court against taking people's lives for opinions in religion ; and inveighed against the bishops for doing it; thus the blame of it was turned back on them, and this made them stop for some weeks ; but at last they resolved rather to bear it avowedly, than not advance in their favourite career of blood ! At this time a petition was printed beyond sea, by which the reformers addressed themselves to the queen : they set before her the danger of being carried by a blind zeal to destroy the members of Christ, as St. Paul had done before his conversion : they reminded her of Cranmer's interposing to preserve her life in her father's time : they cited many passages out of the books of Gardiner, Bonner, and Tonstal, by which she might see that they were not actuated by true principles of conscience, but were turned as their fears or interests led them. They shewed her how contrary persecution was to the spirit of the gospel ; that Christians tolerated Jews ; and that Turks, notwithstanding the barbarity of their tempers, and the cruelty of their religion, yet tolerated Christians. They reminded her, that the first law for burning in England was made by Henry the IV. as a reward to the bishops who had helped him to depose Richard the II. and so to mount the throne. They repre- sented to her, that God had trusted her with the sword, which she ought to employ for the protection of her people, and not to abandon them to the cruelty of wolves. The petition also appealed to the nobility and the rest of the nation, on the dangers of a Spanish yoke, and a bloody CRUELTIES OF BONNER. 643 inquisition set before them. Upon this the popish authors wrote several books in justification of those proceedings- They observed that the Jews were commanded to put blasphemers to death ; and said, the heretics blasphemed the body of Christ, and called it only a piece of bread. Various other pleas were set up, and the nation had bitter experience in the coming years of the vigilance and industry with which they were acted upon. SECTION IV. AN ACCOUNT OF SEVERAL PROTESTANTS, WHO WERE PERSECUTED, TOR- MENTED, AND MOST OF THEM BURNED, UNDER THE TYRANNY OF BONNER, BISHOP OF LONDON. Stephen Gardiner, having condemned and burned several great and learned men, presumed that these examples would deter all in future from opposing the popish religion : but in this he found himself deceived, for within eight or nine days after sentence had passed against bishop Hooper and others, six other christians were brought to be examined for the same cause. Gardiner seeing this, became discouraged, and from that day meddled no more in such kind of condemnations ; but referred the whole of this cruel business to the more sanguinary Bonner, bishop of London ; who called before him in his consistory at St. Paul's (the lord mayor and several aldermen sitting with him) the six persons, upon the 8th of February, and on the next day read the sentence of condemna- tion upon them. But as their death did not take place till the next month, we will defer the account till we come to the time of their suf- fering, and proceed with other incidents of this bloody reign. What occasioned their execution to be delayed even a month, cannot with certainty be declared ; conjecture, however, reasonably ascribes it to the lenient sermon of Alphonsus, the king's confessor : for, added to the discourse already mentioned, he preached other sermons of the same kind, in which he pleaded the cause of reasoning to convert heretics, rather than burning to destroy them. Dr. Robert Farrar, bishop of St. David's, was about this time appre- hended, and sent to his diocese, where, as we shall soon perceive, he suffered the usual cruel death. Some trifling disturbances in London were made a pretext for arresting and imprisoning other protestants. The lord chancellor caused the image of Thomas a. Becket to be set up over the Mercers' chapel door, in Cheapside,in the form and shape of a bishop, with mitre and cross, but within two days after its erection, its head was taken off; whereupon arose great trouble, and many were suspected : among whom one Mr. John Barnes, mercer, dwelling over against the chapel, was vehemently by the lord chancellor charged as the offender, and the rather as he was a professor of the truth. Where- fore he and three of his servants were committed to prison : and at his delivery, although nothing could be proved against him, he was bound in a great sum of money, as well to build it up again so often as it should be broke down, as also to watch and keep the same. Therefore 644 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the image was again set up; but in a few days the head was again broken off; which offence was so heinously taken, that the next day, there was a proclamation that whoever would discover the perpetrator, should not only have his pardon, but also one hundred crowns of gold, with hearty thanks. But it was never known who did it. Queen Mary at length, after long delay, made full answer to the king of Denmark, who had written two letters to her in the behalf of Mr. Coverdale, for his deliverance, who at that time went under sureties, and was in great danger, had he not been rescued by the suit and letters of the Danish monarch. An intimation was set forth in Februarv 15/55, in the name of bishop Bonner, wherein was contained a general monition, and strict charge given to every man and woman within his diocese, to pre- pare themselves against the approaching Lent, to receive the glad tidings of peace and reconciliation sent from pope Julius III. by Pole his car- dinal and legate. Judge Hales, of Kent, was now brought before the lord chancellor, and examined respecting his having resisted the ceremony of the mass, or rather for having acted according to his duty as a justice, and as the law then stood, when several Romish priests had been indicted and brought before him. Not giving satisfactory answers to the chancellor, he was committed to prison. While there he was waited upon by Dr. Day and judge Portman, who by some means so worked upon his mind that he was filled with despair; and after in vain attempting to destroy himself by a penknife, he found means of drowning himself in a shallow river. This unhappy gentleman had, at the death of king Edward, stood firmly in defence of Mary's claim and title to the crown. But this service was found insufficient to protect him from the perse- cuting rage of the Roman catholic bishops and priests. Mention was made before of six prisoners brought before Bonner the 8th of February, whose names were Tomkins, Pygot, Knight, Haukes, Law- rence, and Hunter. Thomas Tomkins, a weaver by occupation, and an honest Christian, dwelling in Shoreditch, was kept in prison six months, and treated with the utmost cruelty. Bonner's rage was so great against him that he beat him about the face, and plucked off a piece of his beard with his own hands : yet was Tomkins so endued with God's mighty Spirit, and so constantly planted in the perfect knowledge of God's truth, that by no means could he be removed therefrom. Whereupon the bishop, being greatly vexed, devised another practice not so strange as cruel, fur- ther to try his constancy. So being at his palace at Fulham, and having with him Dr. Chedsey, masters Harpsfield, Pembleton, Willerton, and others standing by, he called for Tomkins; who coming before the bishop, and standing as he was wont in defence of his faith, Bonner fell from beating to burning. For, having a taper or wax candle of three or four wicks standing upon the table, he took Tomkins by the fingers, and held his hand directly over the flame, supposing that by the smart and pain of the fire being terrified, he would leave off the defence of his doctrine which he had received. Tomkins, thinking that he was there presently to die, began to commend himself unto the Lord, saying, " O Lord, into thy hands I commend my spirit," etc. His hand being in burning, Tomkins afterwards reported to one James Hinse, that his spirit was so rapt that he felt no FIRST EXAMINATION OF TOMKINS. 645 pain. In the burning he never shrunk, till the veins shrunk, and the sinews burst, and the water spurted in Mr. Harpsfield's face: insomuch that he, moved witli pity, desired the bishop to stay, saying, that he had tried him enough." When he had been half a year in prison, he was brought with several others before bishop Bonner in his consistory, to be examined. Against him first was brought forth a certain bill or schedule subscribed with his own hand, the fifth day of the same month, containing these words following — "Thomas Tomkins of Shoreditch, and of the diocese of London, hath believed and doth believe, that in the sacrament of the altar, under the forms of bread and wine, there is not the very body and blood of our Saviour Jesus Christ in substance, but only a token and remembrance thereof, the very body and blood of Christ being only in heaven and no where else. By me, Thomas Tomkins." On this being read he was asked, whether he did acknowledge the same subscription to be of his own hand. He granted it so to be. The bishop then went about to persuade him with fair words, rather than with good reasons, to relinquish his opinions, and to return to the unity of the catholic church, promising if he would do so to remit all that was past. B-ut he constantly refused. When the bishop saw he could not convince him, he brought forth and read to him another writing, containing articles and interrogatories, whereunto he should come the next day and answer : in the mean time he should deliberate with him- self what to do : and then either to revoke and reclaim himself, or else in the afternoon of the same day to come again and have justice ad- ministered unto him. The copy of the articles is as follows. " Thou dost believe, that in the sacrament of the altar, under the forms of bread and wine, there is not by the omnipotent power of Almighty God, and his holy word, really, truly, and in very deed, the very true and natural body of our Saviour Jesus Christ, as touching the sub- stance thereof, which was conceived in the womb of the Virgin Mary, and hanged upon the cross, suffering death there for the life of the world. " Thou dost believe, that after the consecration of the bread and wine prepared for the use of the sacrament of the altar, there doth remain the substance of material bread and material wine, not changed noi altered in substance by the power of Almighty God, but remaining as it did before. " Thou dost believe, that it is an untrue doctrine, and a false belief, to think or say, that in the sacrament of the altar there is, after conse- cration of the bread and wine, the substance of Christ's natural body and blood, by the omnipotent power of Almighty God, and his holy word. " Thou dost believe that thy parents, kinsfolks, friends, and acquaint- ance, and also thy godfathers and godmothers, and all people did err, and were deceived, if they did believe, that in the sacrament of the altar there was, after consecration, the body and blood of Christ, and that there did not remain the substance of material bread and wine." To these several articles Tomkins declared his free and full consent; 646 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM acknowledging after each, that what he was charged with believing he did believe. The next day, Tomkins was again brought before the bishop and his assistants, where the articles were again propounded unto him : where- unto he answered in substance as he had done before, avowing at the same time his belief in the scriptures, and his persuasion that popery- was opposed to them. After this answer he also subscribed his name to what he had declared. Whereupon, the bishop drawing out of his bosom another confession subscribed with Tomkins* hand, and also the article that was the first day objected against him, caused the same to be openly read, and then willed him to revoke and deny his opinions, which he utterly refused to do : therefore he was commanded to appear before the bishops again in the same place at two in the afternoon. Agreeably with this mandate, being brought before the bloody tribunal of bishops, and pressed to recant his errors and return to the mother- church ; he maintained his fidelity, nor would swerve in the least from the articles he had signed. Having therefore declared him an obstinate and damnable heretic, they delivered him up to the secular power, and he was burned in Smithfield, March 6th, 1555, triumphing in the midst of the flames, and adding to the noble company of martyrs, who had preceded him through the path of the fiery trial to the realms of im- mortal glory. The second of this noble band of intrepid saints was an apprentice of only nineteen years of age. His name was William Hunter. He had been trained to the doctrine of the reformation from his earliest youth, being descended from religious parents, who carefully instructed him in the principles of true religion. When queen Mary succeeded to the crown, orders were issued to the priests of every parish, to summon all their parishioners to receive the communion at mass, the Easter after her accession; and Hunter, re- fusing to obey the summons, was threatened to be brought before the bishop. His master, fearful of incurring ecclesiastical censure, desired him to leave him for a time ; upon which he quitted his service, went down to Brentwood, and resided with his father about six weeks. One day, finding the chapel open, he entered and began to read in the English bible, which lay upon the desk, but was severely reprimanded by an officer of the bishop's court, who said to him — " William, why meddlest thou with the bible? Understandest thou what thou readest? Canst thou expound scripture?" He replied — " I presume not to ex- pound scripture; but finding the bible here, I read for my comfort and edification." The officer then informed a neighbouring priest of the liberty the young man had taken in reading the bible; the priest therefore severely chid him, saying — " Sirrah, who gave thee leave to read the bible and expound it?" To this fierce rebuke he answered as he had done to the officer; and on the priest's telling him, that it became him not to meddle with the scriptures, he frankly declared his resolution to read them as long as he lived, as well as reproved the vicar for discouraging persons from that practice, which the scripture so strongly enjoined. On this the priest upbraided him as a heretic : he denied the charge, and being EXAMINATION OF WILLIAM HUNTER. 647 asked his opinion concerning the corporeal presence in the sacrament of the altar, he replied, that he esteemed the bread and wine but as figures, an( J looked upon the sacrament as an institution in remembrance of the death and sufferings of our blessed Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. He was then openly declared a heretic, for not believing in the sacra- ment of the altar, and the vicar threatened to complain of him to the bishop. A neighbouring justice, named Brown, having heard that he main- tained heretical principles, sent for his father and enquired of him concerning his son; the old man assured him that he had left him, that he knew not whither he was gone: and on the justice threatening to imprison him, he said with tears in his eyes — "Would you have me seek out my son to be burned?" The old man, however, was obliged to seek him; and by accident meeting him, with tears said, that it was by command of the justice who threatened to imprison him. The son, to prevent his father incurring danger, said that he was ready to ac- company him home; on which they returned together. The following day, he was taken and kept in the stocks four and twenty hours ; and then brought before the justice, who called for a bible, and turning to the sixth chapter of St. John, desired his opinion of the meaning of it, as it related to the sacrament of the altar. He, fearlessly gave the same explanation as he had done to the priest, persisting in his denial of the corporeal presence: the justice upbraided him with damnable heresy, and wrote to the bishop of London, to whom this valiant young martyr was soon conducted. After Bonner had read the letter, he caused William to be brought into a chamber, where he began to reason with him in this manner — " I understand, William Hunter, by Mr. Brown's letter, that you have had communication with the vicar of Welde, about the blessed sacrament of the altar, and that you could not agree; whereupon Mr. Brown sent for you to bring you to the catholic faith, from which, he saith, you have departed. Howbeit, if you will be ruled by me, you shall have no harm for any thing said or done in this matter." To this William answered — " I am not fallen from the catholic faith of Christ, I am sure; but do believe it, and confess it with all my heart." Said the bishop — " How sayest thou to the blessed sacrament of the altar? Wilt thou not recant thy saying before Mr. Brown, that Christ's body is not in the sacrament of the altar, the same that was born of the Virgin Mary?" No way daunted, William said — "My lord, I under- stand that Mr. Brown hath certified you of the talk which he and I had together, and thereby you know what I said to him, which I will not recant by God's help." Then said the bishop, " I think thou art ashamed to bear a fagot, and recant openly ; but if thou wilt recant privately, I will promise that thou shalt not be put to open shame : even speak the word here now between me and thee, and I will promise it shall go no further, and thou shalt go home again without any hurt." To this cunning, William replied — " My lord, if you let me alone, and leave me to my conscience, I will go to my father and dwell with him, or else with my master again, and if nobody disquiet nor trouble my conscience, I will keep my conscience to myself." 648 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Then said the bishop, " I am content, so that thou wilt go to the church, and receive, and be shriven ; and so continue a good catholic Christian." " No," quoth William, " I will not do so for all the good in the world." "Then," quoth the bishop, " if you will not do so, I will make you sure enough, I warrant you." " Well," replied William, " you can do no more than God will permit you." " Wilt thou not recant by any means ?" said the bishop. " No," quoth William, " never while I live, God willing ! " Then the bishop commanded his men to put William in the stocks in his gatehouse, where he sat two days and two nights, only with a crust of bread and a cup of water. At the two days' end the bishop came, and finding the crust and the water still by him, said to his men, "Take him out of the stocks, and let him break his fast with you." After breakfast, Bonner sent for William, and demanded whether he would recant or no. But he made answer, how that he would never recant as concerning his faith in Christ. Then the bishop said that he was no Christian ; but he denied the faith in which he was baptized. But William answered, "I was baptized in the faith of the Holy Trinity, which I will not go from, God assisting me with his grace." Then the bishop sent him to the con- vict prison, and commanded the keeper to lay irons upon him, as many as he could bear ; and moreover asked him how old he was. William said that he was nineteen years old. " Well," said the bishop, " you will be burned ere you be twenty years old, if you will not yield yourself better than you have done yet." William answered, " God strengthen me in his truth." And then he parted, the bishop allowing him a halfpenny a day to live on, in bread or drink. Thus he continued in prison three quarters of a year : in the which time he was before the bishop five times, besides when he was condemned in the consistory in St. Paul's, the 9th day of February ; at the which his brother, Robert Hunter, (who continued with his brother William till his death, and sent the true report unto us,) was present, and heard the bishop condemn him and the five others. At one time the bishop, calling for Hunter, asked him if he would recant, saying, " If thou wilt yet recant, I will make thee a freeman in the city, and give thee forty pounds in good money to set up thine occupation withal ; or I will make thee steward of my house, and set thee in office ; for I like thee well, thou hast wit enough, and I will prefer thee if thou recant." But William answered, " I thank you for your great offers : notwithstand- ing, my lord, if you cannot persuade my conscience with Scriptures, I cannot find in my heart to turn from God for the love of the world ; for I count all things worldly, but loss and dung, in respect of the love of Christ." Then said the bishop, " If thou diest in this mind, thou art con- demned for ever." William answered, " God judgeth righteously, and justifieth them whom man condemneth unjustly." Then the bishop departed, and William and the other prisoners returned to Newgate. About a month after, Hunter was sent to Brentwood, on the Saturday before the Annunciation of the Virgin Mary that followed on the Monday after ; he therefore remained till the Tuesday, because they would not put him to death then, for the holiness of the day. In the mean time William's father and mother came to him, and desired heartily of God that he might continue as he had begun : and his mother said to him, that she was glad that ever she bare such a child, who could find in MARTYRDOM OF WILLIAM HUNTER. 649 his heart to lose his life for Christ's sake. To this he replied — "For the little pain I shall suffer, which will soon be at an end, Christ hath promised me, mother, a crown of joy; should not you be glad of that?" With that his mother kneeled down, saying — "I pray God strengthen thee, my son, to the end: yea, I think thee as well bestowed as any child I ever bore." His father, suppressing his tears, then said — " I was afraid of nothing but that my son would have been killed in the prison by hunger and cold;" a result, however, which the good parent had prevented as well as apprehended, for he was at the expence of the very best food and clothing he could send him, which the son gratefully acknowledged. He continued at the Swan inn, Brentwood, whither resorted many people to see him: and many of William's acquaintance came to him, and reasoned with him, and he with them, exhorting them to come away from the abomination of popish superstition and idolatry. The short time before his martyrdom was thus usefully passed. On Monday ni^ht, William dreamed that he was at the place where the stake was pitched, at which he should be burned : he also thought that he met with his father, and that there was a priest at the stake who wanted him to recant; to whom he said — "Away, false prophet!" and exhorted the people to beware of him, and such as he was : all which came to pass. In the morning he was commanded by the sheriff to prepare for his fate. At the same time, the sheriff's son came to him, and embraced him, saying — " William, be not afraid of these men with bows and weapons prepared to bring you to the place where you shall be burned." " I thank God I am not afraid," replied the undaunted youth, " for I have reckoned what it will cost me already." Then the sheriff's son could speak no more to him for weeping". Hunter then took up his gown, and went forward cheerfully, the sheriff's servant taking him by one arm, and his brother by the other; and going along he met with his father according to his dream, who said to him weeping — " God be with thee, son William." " God be with you, good father," said he, " and be of good comfort; for I hope we shall meet again, when we shall be joyful." He then went to the place where the stake stood, even according to his dream; where all things not being ready, he kneeled and read the 51st Psalm, till he came to these words — "The sacrifice of God is a contrite spirit, a contrite and a broken heart, O God, thou wilt not despise." As one was attempting to dispute the translation of the words, the sheriff brought a letter from the queen, and said — " If thou wilt recant, thou shalt live; if not, thou shalt be burned." " I will not recant, God willing," answered the noble youth: on which he rose up and went to the stake, and stood upright against it. Addressing the justice, he said — " Mr. Brown, now you have that which you sought, and I pray God it be not laid to your charge in the last day; howbeit I forgive you. If God forgive you, I shall not require my blood at your hands." He then prayed — " Son of God, shine upon me!" and immediately the sun in the element shone out of a dark cloud so full in his face, that he was constrained to look another way; whereat the people wondered, because it was much obscured before. He then took up a fagot of 650 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. broom, and embraced it. The priest which he had dreamed of now came to his brother Robert, with a popish book to carry to William, that he might recant; which book his brother would not meddle with. Then William, seeing the priest, and perceiving how he would have showed him the book, said, "Away, thou false prophet! Beware of them, good people, and come away from their abominations, lest ye be partakers of their plagues." " Then," quoth the priest, " look how thou burnest here, so shalt thou burn in hell." William answered, "Thou liest, thou false prophet ! Away, thou false prophet, away ! " Then was there a gentle- man who said, " I pray God have mercy upon his soul." The people said, "Amen, Amen!" Immediately after, the fire was made. Then William cast his psalter to his brother, who said, " William ! think on the holy passion of Christ, and be not afraid of death." And William answered, " I am not afraid." Then lift he up his hands to heaven, and said, " Lord, Lord, Lord, receive my spirit;" and, casting down his head again into the smothering smoke, he yielded up his life for the truth, seal- ing it with his blood to the praise of God. Mention has already been made of six persons who were examined and condemned by bishop Bonner, of the which two were burned as ye have heard, viz., Tomkins on the 16th of March, and Hunter on the 26th of the same month. Three others, to wit, William Pygot and Stephen Knight suffered upon the 28th of March, and John Laurence on the following day. At their examinations it was first demanded of them what their opinion was of the sacrament of the altar. Whereunto they severally answered and also subscribed, that in the sacrament of the altar, under the forms of bread and wine, there is not the very substance of the body and blood of our Saviour Jesus Christ, but a special partaking of the body and blood of Christ ; the very body and blood of Christ being only in heaven, and nowhere else. This reply thus made, the bishop caused certain articles to be read unto them, tending to the same effect as did the articles before of Tomkins, and their answers were very similar. The present examination ended, they were commanded to appear again the next day, being the 9th of February, at eight o'clock in the morning, and in the meanwhile to be- think themselves what they would do. The next day, before their open appearance, Bonner sent for Pygot and Knight into his great chamber in his palace, where he persuaded with them to recant, and deny their former profession. They answered that they could not in their consciences abjure their opinions, whereunto they had subscribed. The bishop also had certain talk with John Laurence only, who answered that he was a priest, and was consecrated and made a priest about eighteen years past ; that he was some time a black friar professed ; as also that lie was assured unto a maid, whom he intended to have married. And being again demanded his opinion upon the sacrament, he said that it was a remembrance of Christ's body, and that many have been deceived in believing the true body of Christ to be in the sacrament of the altar ; and that all such as do not believe as he doth, do err. Being all three brought openly into the consistory, the same articles were propounded unto them as unto Thomas Tomkins, and thereto they also subscribed these words, " I do so believe." After many fair words and threatenings, they were all of them commanded to appear again in the afternoon. PYGOT, KNIGHT, AND LAURENCE MARTYRED. 651 At that hour they returned thither, and there after the accustomed manner were exhorted to recant and revoke their doctrine, and receive the faith. To the which they constantly answered that they would not, but would stick to that faith that they had declared and subscribed unto; for that they did believe that it was no error which they believed, but that the contrary thereof was very heresy. When the bishop saw that neither his flatterings nor his threatening would prevail, he gave them severally their judgments. And because John Laurence had been one of their anointed priests, he was by the bishop there solemnly degraded. Their sentence of condemnation and this degradation ended, they were committed unto the custody of the sheriffs of London, who sent them unto Newgate, where they remained with joy together, until they were carried into Essex : and there, on the 28th day of March, the said William Pygot was burned at Braintree; and Stephen Knight at Maldon, who at the stake, kneeling upon the ground, said this prayer which here followeth, the spirit of which the reader should mark, and compare with the prayer of the papists at the sacrifice of the mass : — " O Lord Jesus Christ, for whose love I leave willingly this life, and desire rather the bitter death of thy cross, with the loss of all earthly things, than to abide the blasphemy of thy most holy name, or to obey men in breaking thy holy commandment: thou seest, O Lord, that where I might live in worldly wealth to worship a false God, and honour thine enemy, I choose rather the torment of the body, and the loss of this life, and have counted all things but vile dust and dung, that I might win thee; which death is dearer unto me than thousands of gold and silver. Such love, O Lord, hast thou laid up in my breast, that I hunger for thee, as the wounded deer desireth the pasture. Send thy holy comforter, O Lord, to aid, comfort, and strengthen this weak piece of earth, which is empty of all strength in itself. Thou rememberest, Lord, that I am but dust, and able to do nothing that is good; there- fore, O Lord, as of thine accustomed goodness and love thou hast in- vited me to this banquet, and accounted me worthy to drink of thine own cup amongst thine elect; even so give me strength, O Lord, against this raging element, which as to my sight is most irksome and terrible, so to my mind it may at thy commandment be sweet and pleasant; that by the strength of thy Holy Spirit, I may pass through the rage of this fire into thy bosom, according to thy promise, for this mortal receive an immortal life, and for this corruptible put on incorruption. Accept this burnt offering, O Lord, not for the sacrifice, but for thy dear Son's sake my Saviour, for whose testimony I offer it with all my heart and with all my soul. O heavenly Father, forgive me my sins, as I forgive all the world. O sweet Son of God my Saviour, spread thy wings over me. O blessed and Holy Ghost, through whose merciful inspiration I am come hither, conduct me into everlasting life. Lord, into thy hands 1 commend my spirit. Amen." The next day Mr. Laurence was taken to Colchester. The irons he had worn in prison had so injured his limbs, and his body was so re- duced by want of food, that he was taken to the fire in a chair, and so sitting, was in his constant faith consumed. An incident worthy of remark occurred at his martyrdom : several young children came about 652 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the fire, and cried, as well as they could speak, " Lord, strengthen thy servant, and keep thy promise: strengthen thy servant, according to thy promise." God answered their prayer, for Mr. Laurence died as firmly and calmly as any one could wish to breathe his last. Thomas Causton, of Thundersby in Essex, and Thomas Higbed, of Horndon on the Hill, were zealous and religious in the true service of God. As they could not dissemble with the Lord, nor flatter with the world, so in this age of darkness and idolatry, they could not long lie hid from such a number of adversaries; but at length were perceived, and dis- covered to Bonner, by whose command they were committed to the officers of Colchester, to be safely kept, together with a servant of Causton, who was not inferior to his master in true piety. Bonner perceiving these gentlemen to be of good estate, and of great estimation in their county, lest any tumult should thereby arise, went himself, accompanied by Mr. Fecknam and several others, thinking to reclaim them ; so that great labour and diligence was taken therein, as well by terrors and threatenings, as by great promises and all fair means, to reduce them again to the unity of the mother church. Finding, however, after all that nothing could prevail, and that they remained steady in their doctrine, setting out also their confession in writing, the bishop departed thence, and carried them both with him to London, and with them certain other prisoners, who about the same time were appre- hended in those parts. They were brought to open examination at the consistory in St. Paul's, February 17th, 1555, where they were demanded as well by Bonner, as also by the bishop of Bath and others, whether they would recant their errors and perverse doctrine, and come to the unity of the popish church. On their refusing, the bishop ordered them to appear again next day; when he read several articles, and gave them respite until the following day to answer to the same, till which time they were again committed. The articles being given them in writing, a week was assigned them to give up and exhibit their answers to them. Accordingly on the 1st of March, being brought before the bishop in the consistory, they there exhibited their answers to the articles, in which they declared the true faith. Then the bishop, reading their former articles and answers to the same, asked them if they would recant; which when they denied, they were again dismissed, and commanded to appear in another week. On the 8th of March, therefore, Mr. Causton was first called to be re-ex- amined before the bishop and others in his palace, and there had read unto him his aforesaid articles with his answers. The bishop again ex- horted and persuaded him to recant, but he answered — " No, I will not abjure. You said that the bishops who were lately burned were heretics, but I pray God make me such a heretic as they were." The bishop then leaving Mr. Causton, called for Mr. Higbed, using with him the like persuasions that he did with the other; but he answered, " I will not abjure; for I have been of this mind and opinion that I am now these sixteen years : and do what ye can, ye shall do no more than God will permit you to do ; and with what measure you measure us, look for the same again at God's hands." Then Fecknam asked his opinion in the sacrament of the altar. To whom he answered, " I do not BURNING OF CAUSTON AND HIGBED. 653 believe that Christ is in the sacrament as ye will have him, which is of man's making." Both their answers thus severally made, they were again commanded to depart for that time, and to appear the next day in the consistory at St. Paul's, between one and three in the afternoon. At which day and hour, being 1 the 9th of March, they were both brought thither. The bishop caused Causton's articles and answers first to be read openly, and after persuaded with him to recant and abjure his heretical opinions, and to come home now, at the last, to their mother the catholic church, and save himself. But Causton answered again, " No, I will not abjure; for I came not hither for that purpose:" and therewithal he did exhibit in writing unto the bishop (as well in his own name, as also in Thomas Higbed's name) a confession of their faith, to the which they would stand. He required leave to read the same, which after great suit was obtained ; and he read it openly in the hearing of the people. When he had thus delivered their confession, the bishop, still persisting sometimes in fair promises, sometimes threatening to pronounce judgment, asked them if they would stand to this their confession and other answers. To whom Causton said, " We will stand to our answers written with our own hands, and to our belief therein contained. After which answer the bishop began to pronounce sentence against him. Then Causton said that it was much rashness, and without all love and mercy, to give judgment without answering to their confession by the truth of God's word, to which they submitted themselves most willingly. "And therefore," he said, "because I cannot have justice at your hand, but that ye will thus rashly condemn me, I do appeal from you to my lord cardinal." Then Dr. Smith said that he would answer their confession. But the bishop (not suffering him to speak) willed Harpsfield to say his mind, for the stay of the people; who, taking their confession in his hand, neither touched nor answered one sentence thereof. After this, Bonner pro- nounced sentence, first against the said Thomas Causton, and then calling Thomas Higbed, caused his articles and answers likewise to be read. Then the bishop asked him again, Whether he would turn from his error, and come to the unity of their church? To whom he said, "No; I would ye should recant — for I am in the truth, and you in error." Where- upon Bonner gave judgment on him as he had done upon Causton. When all this was thus ended, they were both delivered to the sheriffs, and so by them sent to Newgate, where they remained fourteen days, praised be God, not so much in afflictions as in consolations. These fourteen days expired, they were on the 23rd of March fetched from Newgate at four o'clock in the morning, and so led through the city to Aldgate, where they were delivered unto the sheriff of Essex. Being bound fast in a cart, they were brought to their appointed places of burning; that is to say, Thomas Higbed to Horndon on the Hill, and Thomas Causton to Raleigh, (both in the county of Essex,) where they did most constantly, on the 26th day of March, seal their faith with the shedding of their blood by most cruel fire, to the glory of God, and great rejoicing of the godly. At the burning of Higbed, justice Brown and divers gentlemen in the shire were also present, for fear belike lest he should be taken from them. And thus much concerning the apprehen- sion, examination, and burning of these two godly martyrs of God. 654 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Of those who sealed the truth of Christ with their blood at this period no one merits distinct mention more than Dr. Farrar, the venerable bishop of St. David's. This excellent and learned prelate had been pro- moted to his bishopric by the lord protector, in the reign of Edward ; but after the fall of his patron, he also had fallen into disgrace, through the malice of several enemies, among whom was George Constantine, his own servant. Articles, to the number of fifty-six, were preferred against him, in which he was charged with many negligences and con- tumacies of church government. These he answered and denied. But so many and so bitter were his enemies, that they prevailed, and he was in consequence detained in prison till the death of king Edward, and the coming in of queen Mary and popish religion, whereby a new trouble rose upon him, being now accused and examined not for any matter of prae- munire, but for his faith and doctrine. Whereupon he was called before the bishop of Winchester, with master Hooper, master Rogers, master Bradford, master Saunders, and others, on the 4th day of February. On the which day he should also with them have been condemned ; but because leisure or list did not so well then serve the bishop, his con- demnation was deferred, and he sent to prison again, where he continued till the 14th day of the said month of February. What his examinations and answers were, before the said bishop of Winchester, so much as re- mained and came to our hands I have here annexed in manner as followeth. At his first coming and kneeling before the lord chancellor Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, the bishop of Durham, and the bishop of Worcester, who sat at the table ; and master Rochester, master Southwell, master Bourne, and others, standing at the table's end, the lord chancellor first addressed him in such questions as these: " Now, sir, have you heard how the world goeth here? What say you? do you not know things abroad, notwithstanding you are a prisoner ? Have you not heard of the coming in of the lord cardinal ? Farrar. I know not my lord cardinal; but I heard that a cardinal was come in : but I did not believe it, and I believe it not yet. Winchester. The queen's majesty and the parliament have restored re- ligion into the same state it was in at the beginning of the reign of king Henry VIII. Ye are in the queen's debt; and her majesty will be good unto you, if you will return to the catholic church. Farrar. In what state I am concerning my debts to her majesty, in the court of exchequer, my lord treasurer knoweth : and the last time that I was before your honour, and the first time also, I showed you that I had made an oath never to consent nor agree that the bishop of Rome should have any power or jurisdiction within this realm : and further I need not rehearse to your lordship ; you know it well enough. Bourne. You were once abjured for heresy in Oxford. Farrar. That was I not : it is not true. Bourne. You went from St. David's to Scotland. Farrar. That did I never : but I went from York into Scotland. Bourne. You carried books out of Oxford to the archbishop of York. Farrar. That I did not ; but I carried old books from St. Oswald's. Bourne. You supplanted your master. Farrar. That did I never in my life; but did shield and save my master EXAMINATIONS OF BISHOP FARIIAR. 655 from danger ; and that I obtained of king Henry VIII., for my true ser- vice, I thank God there-for. " My lord," said master Bourne to my lord chancellor, " he hath an ill name in Wales as ever had any." Farrar. That is not so : whosoever saith so, they shall never be able to prove it. Bourne. He hath deceived the queen in divers sums of money. Farrar. That is utterly untrue : I never deceived king or queen of one penny in my life ; and you shall never be able to prove that you say. Winchester. Thou art a false knave. Then Farrar stood up unbidden, (for all that while he kneeled,) and said, " No, my lord, I am a true man ; I thank God for it ! I was born under king Henry VII.; I served king Henry VIII. and king Edward VI. truly ; and have served the queen's majesty that now is, truly, with my poor heart and word : more I could not do ; and I was never false, nor shall be, by the grace of God. Winchester. How sayest thou ? wilt thou be reformable ? Farrar. My lord, if it like your honour, I have made an oath to God, and to king Henry VIII., and also to king Edward, and in that to the queen's majesty, the which I can never break while I live, to die for it. Winchester. You made a profession to live without a wife ? Farrar. No, my lord, if it like your honour; that did I never. I made a profession to live chaste — not without a wife. Winchester. Well, you are a froward knave : we will have no more to do with you, seeing that you will not come ; we will be short with you, and that you shall know within this seven-night. Farrar. I am as it pleaseth your honour to call me; but I cannot break my oath, which your lordship yourself made before me, and gave in exam- ple, the which confirmed my conscience. Then I can never break that oath whilst I live, to die for it. Durham. Well ! he standeth upon his oath : call another. My lord chancellor then did ring a little bell; and master Farrar said, " I pray God to save the king and queen's majesties long to continue in honour to God's glory and their comforts, and the comfort of the whole realm ; and I pray God save all your honours :" and so he departed. After this examination bishop Farrar remained in prison uncon- demned, till the 14th day of February, and then was sent down into Wales, there to receive sentence of condemnation. Upon the 26th of February, in the church of Carmarthen, being brought by Griffith Leyson, esq. sheriff of the county of Carmarthen, he was there per- sonally presented before the new bishop of St. David's and Constan- tine the public notary : who did there and then discharge the said sheriff, and receive him into their own custody, further committing him to the keeping of Owen Jones; and thereupon declared unto Dr. Farrar the great mercy and clemency that the king and queen's highness' plea- sure was to be offered unto him, which they there did offer ; that if he would submit himself to the laws of the realm, and conform himself to the unity of the catholic church, he should be received and pardoned. Seeing that Dr. Farrar give no answer to the premises, the bishop minis- tered unto him these articles following — 656 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Whether he believed the marriage of priests lawful by the laws of God, and his holy church, or not? and whether he believed that in the blessed sacrament of the altar, after the words of consecration duly pro- nounced by the priest, the very body and blood of Christ is really and substantially contained, without the substance of bread and wine ? Upon the bishop requiring Dr. Farrarto answer upon his allegiance, the latter, doubting the bishop's authority said, he would answer when he saw a lawful commission, and would make no further answer at that time. Whereupon the bishop, taking no advantage upon the answer, committed him to prison until a new monition ; in the mean time to deliberate with himself for his further answer to the premises. It has been intimated that a new bishop was placed at St. David's : this was one Henry Morgan, a furious papist, who now became the chief judge of his persecuted predecessor. This Morgan, sitting as judge, ministered unto bishop Farrar certain articles and interrogatories in writing ; which being openly read unto him a second time, Farrar still refused to answer, till he might see his lawful commission and authority. Whereupon Morgan pronounced him as contumax, and for the punish- ment of this his contumacy to be counted pro confesso, and so did pro- nounce him in writing. This done, he committed him to the custody of Owen Jones, until the 4th of March, then to be brought again into the same place, between one and two. The day and place appointed, the bishop appeared again before his haughty successor, submitted himself as ready to answer to the arti- cles and positions above mentioned, gently required a copy of the articles, and a competent term to be assigned unto him, to answer for himself. This being granted, and the Thursday next being assigned to him between one and three to answer precisely and fully, he was com- mitted again to custody. On the appointed day he again appeared and exhibited a bill in writing, containing in it his answer to the articles objected and ministered unto him before. Then Morgan offered him again the articles in this brief form: That he willed him being a priest to renounce matrimony — to grant the natural presence of Christ in the sacrament, under the forms of bread and wine — to confess and allow that the mass is a propitiatory sacrifice for the quick and the dead — that general councils lawfully congregated never did, and never can err — that men are not justified before God by faith only, but that hope and charity are also necessarily required to justification — and that the catholic church only hath authority to expound scriptures and to define controversies of religion, and to ordain things appertaining to public discipline. To these articles he still refused to subscribe, affirming that they were invented by man, and pertain nothing to the catholic faith. After this Morgan delivered unto him the copy of the articles, assigning him Monday following, to answer and subscribe to them either affirmatively or negatively. The day came, and he exhibited in a written paper his mind and answer to the articles, adding these words, tenens se de cequitate et justitia esse episcopum Menevensem. The bishop assigned the next Wednesday, in the forenoon, to hear his final and definitive sentence. On that day, Morgan demanded of him whether he would ACCOUNT OF RAWLINS WHITE. 657 renounce and recant his heresies, schisms, and errors, which hitherto he had maintained, and if he would subscribe to the catholic articles otherwise than lie had done before. Upon this Farrai did exhibit a certain schedule written in English, and remaining in the acts, appealing from the bishop, as from an incom- petent judge, to cardinal Pole and other the highest authorities. This, however, did not avail him. Morgan proceeding in his rage, pronounced the definitive sentence against him: by which sentence he pronounced him as a heretic excommunicate, and to be given up forthwith to the secular power, namely to the sheriff of the town of Carmarthen, Mr. Leyson. After which his degradation followed of course. Thus was this godly bishop condemned and degraded, and committed to the secular power, and not long after was brought to execution in the town of Carmarthen, where in the market-place on the south side of the cross, on the 30th of March, being Saturday before Passion- Sunday, he most constantly sustained the torments of the fire. Among the incidents of this martyrdom worthy of mention is the following ; one Richard Jones, a young gentleman, and son of a knight, coming to Dr. Farrar a little before his death, seemed to lament the painfulness of what he had to suffer : unto whom the bishop answered, that if he saw him once to stir in the pains of his burning, he should then give no credit to his doctrine. And as he said, so he performed ; for so patiently he stood, that he never moved, till one Richard Gravell, with a staff, struck him down, that he fell amidst the flames, and expired, or rather rose to heaven to live for ever. Among more private persons who suffered at this period was Rawlins White, by occupation a fisherman, in the town of Cardiff. With respect to his religion at first, it cannot otherwise be known, than that he was a great partaker of the superstition and idolatry which prevailed in the reign of Henry VIII. But after God of his mercy had raised up the light of his gospel, through the government of king Edward VI. White began partly to dislike that which before he had embraced, and to have some good opinion of that which before by the iniquity of the times had been concealed from him ; and happily impressed with the importance of truth, he began to be a diligent hearer, and a great searcher of the word of God. Because the good man was unlearned, and withal very simple, he knew no ready way how he might satisfy his great desire. At length he took the following remedy to supply his necessity: he had a little boy, his own son, whom he sent to school to learn to read English. Now after the child could read indifferently well, his father every night after supper would have him read part of the holy scripture, and now and then of some other good book. In this kind of virtuous exercise the good man had such delight, that as it seemed, he rather practised himself in the study of the scripture, than in the trade or science which before-time he had used : so that within a few years in the time of king Edward, through the help of his little son, and through much conference besides, he so profited and went so forward, that he was able not only to resolve himself touching his own former blindness and ignorance, but 2 u 658 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. also to admonish and instruct others; and therefore when occasion served, he would go from one place to another teaching the truth. He had thus continued in his new profession about five years, when king Edward died, upon whose decease queen Mary succeeded, and with her came persecution ; the extremity and force whereof at last so pursued this good man, that he looked every hour to go to prison ; whereupon many who had received comfort by his instructions, began to persuade him to shift for himself, and dispose of his goods by some reasonable order to the use of his wife and children. Fearless, how- ever, White continued in his good purposes, till at last he was taken by the officers of his town, as a man suspected of heresy, upon which apprehension he was convened before the bishop of LandafF, then at his house near Chepstow: by whom, after divers combats and conflicts with him and his chaplains, he was committed to Chepstow prison. Thence he was removed to the castle of Cardiff, where he continued a whole year; during which time Mr. Dane, who furnished this account, resorted to him very often, with money and other relief from Mrs. Dane, his mother, who was a great favourer of those that were in affliction in those days, and others of his friends, which he received with great praises to God. At the expiration of a year, the bishop of LandafF caused him to be brought from the castle of Cardiff unto his own house near Chepstow; and while he continued there, the bishop endeavoured by various means to reduce him to conformity. When he found his threatenings and promises ineffectual, the bishop desired him to advise and determine with himself; for he must either recant his opinions, or else suffer the rigour of the law; and thereupon gave him a day of determination. This day being come, the bishop with his chaplains went into his chapel, with a great number of the neighbours who had the curiosity to see their proceedings. Being placed in order, White was brought before them. The bishop began bv making a long discourse, declaring that the cause of his being sent for was that he was well known to hold heretical opinions, and that by his instructions many were led into blind error. In the end, he exhorted him to consider his own state wherein he stood, at the same time offering favour if he recanted. At the close of the bishop's address, Rawlins boldly said — " My lord, I thank God I am a christian man, and I hold no opinions contrary to the word of God; and if I do, I desire to be reformed out of the word of God, as a christian ought to be." The bishop then told him plainly, that he must proceed against him by the law, and condemn him as a heretic. — "Proceed by your law, in God's name" — said the fearless Rawlins; " but for a heretic you shall never condemn me while the world stands!" This intrepid answer somewhat startled and confounded the bishop, who, after a moment's silence turned to some about him and said — " Before we proceed any further with him, let us pray to God that he would send some spark of grace upon him, and it may so chance, that God through our prayers will here turn his heart." Ac- cordingly having prayed, the bishop asked — " Now, Rawlins, wilt thou revoke thy opinions or not?" The man of truth replied — " Surely, my lord, Rawlins you left me, Rawlins you find me, and by God's grace MARTYRDOM OF RAWLINS WHITE. 659 Rawlins I will continue." When the bishop perceived that his artifice took no effect, he with sharp words reproved him, and forthwith was ready to read the sentence; but upon some advice given to him by his chaplains, he thought it best first to have a mass, thinking' that by so doing some wonderful change would be wrought in his prisoner's mind. During the mass Rawlins betook himself to prayer in a secret place, until the priest came to the sacring, as they term it, which is a principal part of the idolatry. When Rawlins heard the sacring-bell ring, he rose out of his place, came to the choir door, and there standing awhile, turned himself to the people, speaking these words — " Good people, if there be any brethren amongst you, or at least if there be but one brother amongst you, the same one bear witness at the day of judgment, that I bow not to this idol" — meaning the host that the priest held over his head. Mass being ended, Rawlins was called again, when the bishop re- peated his persuasions; but the blessed man continued so stedfast in his profession, that the prelate found his discourse altogether in vain. Whereupon he caused the definitive sentence to be read. This being ended, Rawlins was dismissed, and from thence he was carried again to Cardiff, there to be put into the prison of the town, a very dark, loathsome, and vile dungeon. Having continued a prisoner there some time, about three weeks before the day on which he suffered, the officers of the town who had the charge of his execution, wished to burn him to be the sooner rid of him, although they had not a writ of execution awarded as by the law they should have : but by the advice of the recorder of the town, they sent to London for the writ, upon the receipt whereof they hastened the execution. On the night before his death Rawlins was engaged in preparing himself by devotion; and on finding his end so near, he sent to his wife, and desired her by the messenger, that in any wise she should make ready and send unto him his wedding- garment, meaning the vest in which he was to be martyred. This request, or rather commandment, his wife with grief of heart performed, and early in the morning sent it to him. The hour of his execution being come, the martyr was brought out of prison, having on his wedding garment, and an old russet-coat which he was wont to wear. Thus being equipped, he was accompanied or rather guarded with a great number of bills and weapons. When he beheld this, he said, " Alas! what meaneth it? By God's grace I will not run away: with all my heart and mind I give God most hearty thanks that he hath made me worthy to abide all this for his holy name's sake." Arriving at a place where his poor wife and children - stood weeping and making great lamentation, the sudden sight of them so pierced his heart, that the tears trickled down his face. But soon after, as though he were ashamed of this infirmity of his flesh, he began to be as it were altogether angry with himself: insomuch, that striking his breast with his hand, he said, "Ah, flesh, hinderest thou me so? Well, I tell thee, do what thou canst, thou shalt not, by God's grace, have the victory." By this time he approached the stake ready set up, with some wood as prepared for the fire; which when he beheld, he set forward verv 660 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. boldly: but in going towards the stake, he fell upon his knees and kissed the ground; and in rising again, a little earth sticking on his face, he said, " Earth unto earth, and dust unto dust; thou art my mother, and unto thee I shall return." Then he went on, and cheer- fully set his back close to the stake. A smith came with a great chain of iron, whom when he saw, he cast up his hand, and with a loud voice gave God great thanks. When the smith had fastened him to the stake, the officers began to lay on more wood, with a little straw and reeds: wherein the good man was no less occupied than the best ; for as far as he could reach his hands, he would pluck the straw and reeds, and lay it about him in places most convenient for his speedy death. When all things were ready, directly over against the stake, in the face of the martyr, there was a standing erected, to which ascended a priest, addressing himself to the people, which were many in number, because it was market-day. Rawlins perceived him, and considered the cause of his coming; but paid little attention to him. Then went the priest forward in his sermon, wherein he spake of many things touching the authority of the church of Rome. At last, he came to the sacrament of the altar, when he began to inveigh against Rawlins's opinions: in which harangue he cited the common place of scripture. When Rawlins heard that he strove not only to preach and teach false doctrine, but also to confirm it by scripture, he suddenly started up, and beckoned his hands to the people, saying twice, " Come hither, good people, and hear not a false prophet preaching." And then said unto the preacher, " Ah! thou wicked hypocrite, dost thou presume to prove thy false doctrine by Scripture?* Look in the text what folio weth: did not Christ say, ' Do this in remembrance of me !' " Then some that stood by cried out, " Put fire, set to fire !" which being set to, the straw and reed cast up both a great and sudden flame : in the which flame this good and blessed man bathed his hands until the sinews shrunk, and the fat dropped away; saving that once he did, as it were, wipe his face with one of them. All this while he cried with a loud voice, " O Lord, receive my soul ! O Lord, receive my spirit !" until he could not open his mouth. At the last, the extremity or' the fire was so vehement against his legs, that they were consumed almost before the rest of his body was burned, which made the whole body fall over the chain into the fire sooner that it would have done. Thus died this godly and old man (for he was upwards of sixty years of age) for the testimony of God's truth, being now rewarded, no doubt, with the crown of everlasting life. a Upon the Shrove-Sunday in this year, 1555, a certain priest named Nightingale, parson of Crundal near Canterbury, preached a sermon on the words of St. John, "He that saith he hath no sin is a liar, and the truth is not in him." And so upon the same he declared all such articles as were set forth by the pope's authority, and by commandment of the bishops; saying moreover, "Now, masters and neighbours, rejoice and be merry, for the prodigal son is come home. For 1 know that the most part of you be as 1 am, for I know jour hearts well enough. And I shall tell you what hath happened in this week past : I was before my lord cardinal Pole's grace, and he hath made me as free from sin as I was at the font-stone : and on Thursday last being before him, he hath appointed me to notify the same unto you, and I will tell you what It is." — And after reading the pope's bull of pardon that was sent into England, he added that he believed that by the virtue of that bull he was as clean from sin as the night he was born. Im- mediately upon the same he fell suddenly down out of the pulpit, and never more stirred hand nor foot. This was testified by Robert Austen of Cartham, who both heard and saw the same, and was witnessed also by the whole country round about. 661 SECTION V. THE ABBEY LANDS RKSTORED — DEATH OF POPE JULIUS EXAMINATIONS AND BURNING OF GEORGE MARSH AT CHESTER. On the 19th of February, the bishop of Ely and the lord Montacute, with seven score horse, were sent as ambassadors from the king and queen unto Rome ; and on the 28th day of March the queen summoned four of her privy council, touching the restoring again of abbey lands ; declaring that they were taken away from the church by unlawful means, and that her conscience would not suffer her to detain them. "Therefore," she said, " I here expressly refuse either to claim or to retain the said lands for mine ; but with all my heart, freely and willingly, without all paction or condition, here, and before God, I do surrender and relinquish the said lands and possessions, or inheritances whatsoever, and do renounce the same with this mind and purpose, that order and disposition thereof may be taken, as shall seem best liking to our most holy lord the pope, or else his legate the lord cardinal, to the honour of God, and wealth of this our realm." This intimation coming to the cardinal's hand, he despatched a copy thereof to the pope, who not long after set forth a bull of excommu- nication against all who kept any of the church or abbey lands ; by virtue of which bull he also excommunicated all such princes, bishops, noblemen, justices, and others, who refused to put the same in execution. Albeit neither Winchester nor any of the pope's clergy would greatly stir in this matter, perceiving the nobility to be too strong for them, and therefore were contented to stay while time might better serve their purpose. About the latter end of March pope Julius died ; and upon command- ment from the king and queen, on Wednesday in Easter week there were hearses set up, and dirges sung for the said Julius in divers places, although this pope had led a very unholy life. At which time it chanced a woman to come into St. Magnus' church, in London, and there seeing a hearse and other preparations, asked what it meant. Another, who stood by, said that it was for the pope, and that she must pray for him. " Nay," quoth she, "that I will not, for he needeth not my prayers : and seeing he could forgive us all our sins, I am sure he is clean himself; therefore I need not to pray for him." She was heard speak these words of certain that stood by, who after awhile carried her unto the cage at London bridge, and bade her cool herself there. George Marsh was born in the parish of Deane, in the county of Lan- caster, and having received a good education, his parents brought him up in the habits of trade and industry. About the 25th year of his age, he married a young woman of the country; with whom he con- tinued living upon a farm, having several children. His wife dying, he having formed a proper establishment for his children, went into the university of Cambridge, where he studied, and much increased in learning, and was a minister of God's holy word and sacraments, and was for awhile curate to the Rev. Laurence Saunders. In this situation he continued for a time, earnestly setting forth the true religion, to the weakening of false doctrine, by his godly readings and sermons, as well there and in the parish of Deane, as elsewhere in Lancashire. 662 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. But such a zealous protestant could hardly be safe. At length he was apprehended, and kept close prisoner in Chester, by the bishop of that see, about the space of four months, not being permitted to have the relief and comfort of his friends; but charge being given unto the porter, to mark who they were that asked for him, and to signify their names to the bishop, as the particular description of his story, testified and recorded with his own pen, more evidently will shew. " On the Monday before Palm Sunday, which was the 12th of March, it was told me at my mother's house, that Roger Wrinstone, with other of Mr. Barton's servants, made diligent search for me in Bolton; and when they perceived that I was not there, they gave strict charge to Robert Ward and Robert Marsh to find and bring me to Mr. Barton the day following, with orders that I should be brought before the earl of Derby to be examined in matters of religion. On knowing this, my mother and other friends advised me to fly, and avoid the peril, as I in- tended at first to have done. To their counsel my weak flesh would gladly have consented, but my spirit did not fully agree; thinking and saying to myself, that if I fled away, it would be said, that I did not only fly the country, and my nearest and dearest friends, but much rather from Christ's holy word, according as these years past I had with my heart, or at least with my outward living, professed, and with my word and mouth taught, according to the small talent given me of the Lord. Being thus with their counsel and advice, and the thoughts and coun- sels of my own mind, drawn as it were divers ways, I went from my mother's house, saying, I would come again in the evening. " In the mean time I ceased not by earnest prayer to seek counsel of God, the giver of all good gifts, and of my friends, whose pious judg- ments and knowledge I much trusted to. After this I met with one of my friends on Deane-moor, about sun-set, and after we had con- sulted together, not without hearty prayer, we departed. Not fully de- termining what to do, but taking my leave of my friend, I said I doubted not but God would give me such wisdom and counsel, as should be most to his honour and glory, the profit of my neighbours and brethren in the world, and to the obtaining my eternal salvation by Christ in heaven. I then returned without fear to my mother's house, where several of Mr. Barton's servants had been seeking me; and when they could not find me they strictly charged my brother and William Marsh to seek me that night, and bring me to Smethehills the next day. They being so charged, were gone to seek me in Adderton, or elsewhere. Thus in- tending before to have been all night with my mother, but now consi- dering that my tarrying there would disquiet her, I departed, and went beyond Deane church, and stayed all night with an old friend. " At my first awaking, a person came to me from a friend, with letters, who said that their advice was that I should in no wise fly, but abide and boldly confess the faith of Jesus Christ. At these words I was so confirmed and established in my conscience, that from henceforth I consulted no more whether it were better to fly or to remain; but was determined that I would not fly, but go to Mr. Barton, and there present myself, and patiently bear such cross as it should please God to lay upon my shoulders. Rising therefore early the next morning, after I had said the English litany with other prayers, kneeling by my EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 663 friend's bod-side, I prepared myself to go toward Smethehills; and on niv way I wont into the houses of several relations and friends, desiring thom to pray for me, and have me commended to all my friends, and to comfort my mother, and be good to my little children; for I supposed they would see my face no more. I then took leave of them, not without tears shed on both sides, and came to Smethehills about nine o'clock, when I presented myself to Mr. Barton; who shewed me a letter from the earl of Derby, wherein he was commanded to send me with others to Latham ; where he told me I was to be brought the next day by ten o'clock, before the earl or his council. " We accordingly went to my mother's, where praying, I took my leave of her, the wife of Richard Marsh, and both their households, they and I both weeping. I then went towards Latham, lay all night within a mile and a half of it, and the next day we came to it betimes, and remained there till four o'clock in the afternoon. Then was I called before my lord and his council. After a little while my lord turned towards me and asked what was my name. I answered, Marsh. He then asked me whether I was one of those who sowed dissention amongst the people: which I denied, desiring to know my accusers, and what could be laid against me. This, however, I could not learn. " He next asked me whether I was a priest? I said, no. What had been my living? I answered, I was a minister, served a cure, and kept a school. Then said he to his council, 'This is a wonderful thing: be- fore he said he was no priest, and now he confesseth himself to be one.' I answered, ' By the laws now used in this realm I am none.' They then demanded who had given me orders, or whether I had taken any. I answered, I received orders of the bishops of London and Lincoln. Then said they, 'Those are of the new heretics:' and asked me what acquaintance I had with them. I answered, I never saw them but when I received orders. "They desired to know how long I had been curate, and whether I had ministered with a good conscience. I answered I had been curate but one year, and had ministered with a good conscience, I thanked God; and if the laws of the realm would have suffered me, I would have minisiered still; and if they at any time hereafter would suffer me to minister after that sort, I would minister again. Then they asked me what my belief was. " I answered, I believed in God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, according as the scriptures of the Old and New Testaments teach, and according to the four symbols or creeds, namely, the creed commonly called the Apostle's, the creed of the council of Nice, of Athanasius, and of Austin and Ambrose. I said I believed that who- ever, according to Christ's institution, received the holy sacrament of Christ's body and blood, did eat and drink Christ's body, and with all the benefits of his death and resurrection, to their eternal salvation; for Christ is ever present with his sacrament. When they asked me whether the bread and wine, by virtue of the words pronounced by the priest, were changed into the flesh and blood of Christ, and that the sacrament was the very body of Christ? I made answer, I knew no farther than I had said. " After many other questions, which I avoided as well as I could, re- 664 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. membering the saying of St. Paul, ' Foolish and unlearned questions avoid, knowing they gender strife;' my lord commanded me to come to the board, when he gave me pen and ink, and commanded me to write my answers to the questions of the sacrament. Accordingly I wrote as I had answered before. Being much offended, he commanded me to write a more direct answer. I then took the pen and wrote that further I knew not. On this he said, I should be put to death like a traitor, with other like words; but sometimes giving me fair words, if I would turn and be conformable as others were. In the end, after much ado, he commanded me to ward, in a cold, windy, stone-house, where was little room: there I lay without any bed, saving a few canvass tent clothes, and so continued till Palm-Sunday, occupying myself as well as I could in meditation, prayer, and study; for no man was suffered to come to me but my keeper twice a-day, when he brought me meat and drink. " On Palm-Sunday after dinner, I was again sent for to my lord and his council, amongst whom were Sir John Biron, and the vicar of Prescot. After I had communed apart with the vicar of Prescot a good while concerning the sacrament, he returned with me to my lord and his council, telling them that the answer which I had made before, and still made, was sufficient for a beginner, and as one who did not profess a perfect knowledge in the matter, until such times as I had learned further. Wherewith the earl was very well pleased, saying, he doubted not but by the means and help of the vicar of Prescot I should be conformable in other things; and after many fair words he com- manded I should have a bed, with fire, and liberty to go amongst his servants, on condition I would do no harm with my communication with them. Thus, after so much conference, I departed, much more troubled in my mind than before, because I had not with more boldness confessed Christ, but in such sort as mine adversaries thought they should prevail against me ; whereat I was much grieved : for hitherto I went about as much as in me lay, to rid myself out of their hands, if by any means, with- out open denying of Christ and his word, that could be done. This con- sidered, I cried more earnestly unto God by prayer, desiring him to strengthen me with his Holy Spirit, with boldness to confess him. " A day or two after I was sent for to the vicar of Prescot and the parson of Grappenhall ; where our most communication was concerning the mass : and he asked what offended me in it. I answered, the whole did offend me, because it was in a strange language, whereby the people were not edified, contrary to St. Paul's doctrine, 1 Cor. xiv.; and because of the manifold and intolerable abuses contained therein, contrary to Christ's priesthood and sacrifice. Then they asked me in what place thereof: and I named certain places; which places they went about with gentle and far- sought interpretations to mitigate, saying, those places were understood far otherwise than the words did purport, or than I did take them. Then they caused a mass-book to be sent for, and showed me where, in some places of the mass, was written, "sacrificium laudis." Whereto I answered, that it followed not therefore that in all places it signified a sacrifice or oblation of praise or thanksgiving ; and although it did, yet was it not a sacrifice of praise or thanksgiving to be offered for the sins of the people ; for that did Christ, by his own passion, once offer on the cross." FURTHER EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 665 After this, Mr. Marsh was sent to Lancaster castle; and being brought with other prisoners to the sessions, he was made to hold up his hand with the malefactors; when the earl of Derby had the following con- versation with him, which, like the preceding statements, are given to us partly in his own expressive and unaffected language. " I told his lordship, that I had not dwelt in the country these three or four years past, and came home but lately to visit my mother, children, and other friends, and that I meant to have departed out of the country before Easter, and to have gone out of the realm. Wherefore I trusted, seeing nothing could be laid against me, wherein I had offended against the laws, that his lordship would not with captious questions examine me, to bring my body into danger of death, to the great discomfort of my mother. On the earl asking me into what land I would have gone? I answered, I would have gone either into Germany, or else into Denmark. He said to his council, that in Denmark they used such heresy as they have done in England : but as for Germany the emperor had destroyed it. " I then said that I trusted, as his lordship had been of the honour- able council of the late king Edward, consenting and agreeing to acts concerning faith towards God and religion, under great pain, would not so soon after consent to put poor men to shameful deaths for be- lieving what he had then professed. To this he answered that he, with the lord Windsor, lord Dacres, and others, did not consent to those acts, and that their refusal would be seen as long as the parliament-house stood. He then rehearsed the misfortune of the dukes of Northumber- land and Suffolk, with others, because they favoured not the true reli- gion ; and again the prosperity of the queen's highness, because she favoured the true religion ; thereby gathering the one to be good, and of God, and the other to be wicked, and of the devil; and said that the duke of Northumberland confessed so plainly." And thus you have heard the whole trouble which George Marsh sus- tained both at Latham and also at Lancaster. While at Latham it was falsely reported that he had consented, and agreed in all things with the earl and his council ; and while at Lancaster many came to talk with him, giving him such counsel as Peter gave Christ : but he answered that he could not follow their counsel, but that by God's grace he would live and die with a pure conscience, and as hitherto he had believed and professed. Within a few days after, the said Marsh was removed from Lancaster ; and coming to Chester, was sent for by Dr. Cotes, then bishop, to appear before him in his hall, nobody being present but they twain. Then he asked him certain questions concerning the sacrament, and Marsh made such answers as seemed to content the bishop, saving that he utterly denied transubstantiation, and allowed not the abuse of the mass, nor that the lay people should receive under one kind only, contrary to Christ's institution ; in which points the bishop went about to persuade him, howbeit, (God be thanked,) all in vain. Much other talk he had with him, to move him to submit himself to the universal church of Rome; and when he could not prevail he sent him to prison again. And after, being there, came to him divers times one Massie, a fatherly old man, one Wrench the schoolmaster, one Hensham the bishop's chaplain, and the archdeacon, with many more ; who, with much philosophy, worldly wisdom, and deceitful vanity, after the 666 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. tradition of men, but not after Christ, endeavoured to persuade him to submit himself to the church of Rome, to acknowledge the pope as its head, and to interpret the scripture no otherwise than that church did. To these Mr. Marsh answered, that he did acknowledge and believe one only catholic and apostolic church, without which there is no sal- vation; and that this church is but one, because it ever hath confessed and shall confess and believe one only God, and one only Messiah, and in him only trust for salvation : which church also is ruled and led by one Spirit, one word, and one faith; and that this church is universal and catholic, because it ever hath been since the world's beginning, is, and shall endure to the world's end, and comprehending within it all nations, kindreds, and languages, degrees, states, and conditions of men : and that this church is built only upon the foundations of the prophets and apostles, Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner stone, and not upon the Romish laws and decrees, whose head the bishop of Rome was. And where they said the church did stand in ordinary suc- cession of bishops, being ruled by general councils, holy fathers, and the laws of the holy church, and so had continued for the space of fifteen hundred years and more; he replied, that the holy church, which is the body of Christ, and therefore most worthy to be called holy, was before any succession of bishops, general councils or Romish decrees: neither was it bound to any time or place, ordinary succession, or tra- ditions of fathers; nor had it any supremacy over empires and king- doms; but it was a poor simple flock, dispersed abroad, as sheep without a shepherd in the midst of wolves; or as a family of orphans and father- less children : and that this church was led and ruled by the word of Christ, he being the supreme head of this church, and assisting suc- couring, and defending it from all assaults, errors and persecutions, wherewith it is ever encompassed about. He also shewed by plain evidence, by the flood of Noah, the destruction of Sodom, the Israelites departing out of Egypt, the parable of the sower, of the king's son's marriage, of the great supper, and other plain sentences of scripture, that this church was of no estimation, and little in comparison with the church of hypocrites, and wicked worldlings. After the bishop of Chester had taken pleasure in punishing his prisoner, and often reviling him, giving taunts and odious names of heretic, etc., he caused him to be brought forth into a chapel in the cathedral church, called Our Lady Chapel, before him the said bishop, at two o'clock in the after- noon ; when were also present the mayor of the city, Dr. Wall and other priests assisting him, George Wensloe, chancellor, and one John Chetham, registrar. Then they caused George Marsh to take an oath to answer truly unto such articles as should be objected against him. Upon which oath taken, the chancellor laid unto his charge, that he had preached and openly published most heretically and blasphemously, within the parishes of Dean, Eccles, Bolton, Bury, and many other parishes within the bishop's diocese, in the months of January and February last preceding, directly against the pope's authority, and catholic church of Rome, the blessed mass, the sacrament of the altar, and many other articles. Unto all which in sum he answered, that he neither heretically nor blasphemously preached or spake against any of the said articles; but simply and truly, as occa- EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 667 sion served, and as it were thereunto forced in conscience, maintained the truth respecting the same articles, as he said all now present did likewise acknowledge in the time of king Edward VI. Then they examined him severally of every article, and bade him answer yes, or no, without equivocation ; for they were come to examine, and not to dispute at that present. He accordingly answered them every article very modestly, agreeably to the doctrine by public authority received, and taught in this realm at the death of king Edward ; which answers were every one written by the registrar, to the uttermost that could make against him. This ended, he was returned to his prison again. Within three weeks after this, in the said chapel, and in like sort as be- fore, the bishop and others before named, there being assembled, the said George Marsh was brought before them. Then the chancellor, by way of an oration, declared unto the people present, that the bishop had done what he could in showing his charitable disposition towards the said Marsh, but that all that he could do would not help ; so that he was now deter- mined, if the said Marsh would not relent and abjure, to pronounce sen- tence definitive against him. Wherefore he bade the said George Marsh to be now well advised what he would do, for it stood upon his life ; and if he would not at that present forsake his heretical opinions, it would (after the sentence given) be too late, though he might never so gladly desire it. Then the chancellor read all his answers that he made at his former ex- amination ; and at every one he asked, whether he would stick to the same, or no? To the which he answered again, " Yea, yea." Here also others took occasion to ask him (for that he denied the bishop of Rome's authority in England) whether Linus, Anacletus, and Clement, that were bishops of Rome, were not good men, and he answered, " Yes, and divers others. But," said he " they claimed no more authority in England than the bishop of Canterbury doth at Rome ; and I strive not with the place, neither speak I against the person of the bishop, but against his doctrine ; which in most points is repugnant to the doctrine of Christ." " Thou art an arrogant fellow indeed then," said the bishop. "In what article is the doc- trine of the church of Rome repugnant to the doctrine of Christ?" To whom George Marsh said, " O my lord, I pray you judge not so of me, I stand now upon the point of life and death : and a man in my case hath no cause to be arrogant, neither am I, God is my record. And as concerning the disagreement of the doctrine, among many other things, the church of Rome erreth in the sacrament. For Christ in the institution thereof did as well deliver the cup as the bread, saying, " Drink ye all of this," and St. Mark reporteth that they did drink of it. In like manner St. Paul delivered it unto the Corinthians. In the same sort also it was used in the primitive church for the space of many hundred years. Now the church of Rome doth take away one part of the sacrament from the laity. Wherefore if I could be persuaded in my conscience by God's word that it were well done, I could gladly yield in this point." Then said the bishop, "There is no disputing with a heretic." Therefore, when all his answers were ready, he asked him whether he would stand to the same, or else forsake them, and come unto the catholic church? to which Mr. Marsh answered, that he held no heretical opinion, but utterly abhorred all kind of heresy, although 668 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. they did so slander him. And he desired all to bear him witness, that in all articles of religion he held no other opinion than was by law established, and publicly taught in England at the death of Edward VI; and in the same pure religion and doctrine he would, by God's grace, stand, live, and die. The bishop of Chester then took a writing out of his bosom, and began to read the sentence of condemnation ; but when he had pro- ceeded half through it, the chancellor called him, and said, " Good my lord, stay, stay! for if you read any further it will be too late to call it again." The bishop accordingly stopped, when several priests, and many of the ignorant people, called upon Mr. Marsh, with many earnest words, to recant. They bade him kneel down and pray, and they would pray for him : so they kneeled down, and he desired them to pray for him, and he would pray for them. When this was over the bishop again asked him, whether he would not have the queen's mercy in time? he answered, he gladly desired the same, and loved her grace as faithfully as any of them ; but yet he durst not deny his Saviour Christ, lest he lose his mercy everlasting, and so win everlasting death. The bishop then proceeded with the sentence for about five or six lines, when again the chancellor with flattering words and smiling countenance stopped him and said, " Yet, good my lord, once again stay, for if that word be spoken, all is past, no relenting will then serve." Then turning to Mr. Marsh, he asked, " How sayest thou ? wilt thou recant?" Many of the priests and people again exhorted him to recant and save his life. To whom he answered, " I would as fain live as you, if in so doing I should not deny my master Christ; but then he would deny me before his Father in heaven. The bishop then read his sentence unto the end, and afterwards said unto him, " Now I will no more pray for thee, than I will for a dog." Mr. Marsh answered, that notwithstanding, he would pray for his lordship. He was then delivered to the sheriffs of the city ; when his late keeper finding he should lose him, said with tears, " Farewell, good George ;" which caused the officers to carry him to a prison at the north gate, where he was very strictly kept until he went to his death, during which time he had little comfort or relief of any creature. For being in the dungeon or dark prison, none that would do him good could speak with him, or at least durst attempt it, for fear of ac- cusation ; and some of the citizens who loved him for the gospel's sake, although they were never acquainted with him, would sometimes in the evening call to him and ask him how he did. He would answer them most cheerfully, that he did well, and thanked God highly that he would vouchsafe of his mercy to appoint him to be a witness of his truth, and to suffer for the same, wherein he did most rejoice ; beseech- ing that he would give him grace not to faint under the cross, but patiently bear the same to his glory, and to the comfort of his church. The day of his martyrdom being come, the sheriffs of the city, with their officers, went to the Northgate, and thence brought him forth, with a lock upon his feet. As he came on the way towards the place of execution, some proffered him money, and looked that he should Mil. MARSH'S LETTERS TO Ills FRIENDS. 669 have gone with a little purse in his hand, in order to gather money to give unto a priest to say masses for him after his death: but Mr. Marsh said, he would not be troubled to receive money, but desired some good man to take it if the people were disposed to give any, and give it to the prisoners or the poor. He went all the way reading intently, and many said, " This man goeth not unto his death as a thief, or as one that deserveth to die." On coming to the place of execution without the city, a deputy chamberlain of Chester shewed Mr. Marsh a writing under a great seal, saying, that it was a pardon for him if he would recant. He answered, Forasmuch as it tended to pluck him from God, he would not receive it upon that condition. He now began to address the people, shewing the cause of his death, and would have exhorted them to be faithful unto Christ : but one of the sheriffs told him there must be no sermoning now. He then kneeling down prayed earnestly, and was then chained to the post, having a number of fagots under him, and a barrel with pitch and tar in it, over his head. The fire being unskilfully made, and the wind driving it to and fro, he suffered great extremity in his death, which notwithstanding he bore very patiently. When the spectators supposed he had been dead, suddenly he spread abroad his arms, saying, " Father of heaven, have mercy upon me," and so yielded his spirit into the hands of the Lord. Upon this, many of the people said he was a martyr, and died marvellously patient ; which caused the bishop shortly after to make a sermon in the cathedral church, and therein to affirm, that the said Marsh was a heretic, burnt as such, and was then a fire-brand in hell. Besides his examinations, this good man, George Marsh, wrote divers and sundry letters out of prison, addressed to the faithful in Christ Jesus. That concerning his examinations here followeth, as also an extract from one sent to certain friends in Manchester. " Here you have, dearly beloved friends in Christ, the chief articles of christian doctrine briefly touched, which heretofore I have believed, professed, and taught, and as yet do believe, profess, and teach, and am surely purposed, by God's grace, to continue in the same until the last day. I want both time and opportunity to write out at large the probations, causes, parts, effects, and errors of these articles, which whoso desireth to know, let them read over the common places of those pious and learned men, Philip Melancthon and Erasmus Sarcerus, whose judgment in these matters of religion I do chiefly follow. The Lord give us understanding in all things, and deliver us out of the mouth of the lion, and from all evil doing, and keep us unto his everlasting and heavenly kingdom. "Though Satan be suffered as wheat to sift us for a time, yet our faith faileth not through Christ's aid, but that we are at all times able to confirm the faith of our weak brethren, and always ready to give an answer to every man that asketh us a reason of the hope that is in us, with meekness and fear; having a good conscience, that whereas they back-bite us as evil doers, they may be ashamed, when they falselv accuse our good conversation in Christ. I thought myself of late years well settled with my loving and faithful wife and children, and also well quieted in the peaceable possession of that pleasant Euphrates ; but 670 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. the Lord, who worketh all things for the best to them that love him, would not there leave me, but did take my dear and beloved wife from me ; whose death was a painful cross to flesh and blood. "Also I thought myself of late well placed under my most loving and gentle Mr. Laurence Saunders, in the cure of Langdon. But the Lord of his great mercy would not suffer me long there to continue, though for the time I was in his vineyard I was not an idle workman. But he hath provided me to taste of a far other cup ; for by violence hath he driven me out of that pleasing Babylon, that I should not taste too much of her wanton pleasures, but with his most dearly beloved disciples to have my inward rejoicing in the cross of his Son Jesus Christ; ' the glory of whose church, I see it well, standeth not in the harmonious sound of bells and organs, nor yet in the glittering of mitres and copes, neither in the shining of gilt images and lights, but in continual labour and daily affliction for his name's sake. "Take heed and beware of the leaven of the scribes and of the sadducees; I mean the erroneous doctrine of the papists which with their glosses deprave the scriptures. The apostle Peter doth teach us, ' There shall be false teachers amongst us, which privily shall bring in damnable heresies and many shall follow their pernicious ways, by whom the way of truth shall be evil spoken of; and through covetousness they shall with feigned words make merchandise of us.' Christ also ear- nestly warneth us, to ' Beware of false prophets, which come to us in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are ravenous wolves. By their fruits you shall know them.' The fruits of the prophets are their doctrine ; and here we are taught, that we should try the preachers that come under colour to set forth true religion unto us, according to the saying of St. Paul, ' Prove all things, hold fast that which is good.'" Of the letter to his Manchester friends we can give only an extract; one, however, of great force as well as truth and beauty. " Beloved in Christ, let us not faint because of affliction, wherewith God trieth all that are sealed to life everlasting ; for the only way into the kingdom of God is through much tribulation. For the kingdom of heaven is like unto a city built and set upon a broad field, and full of all good things ; but the entrance thereof is narrow, like as it were a burning flame on one hand and deep water on the other ; and as it were one straight path between them, so narrow that one person only can pass at a time. If this city were now given to an heir, and he never went through the perilous way, how could he receive his inheritance? Where- fore, seeing we are in this narrow way, which leadeth to the most joyful city of everlasting life, let us not halt or turn back afraid of the danger; but follow Christ and be fearful of nothing, no not even of death itself, for this must lead to our journey's end, and ooen to us the gate of ever- lasting life." 671 SECTION VI. EXAMINATION AND MARTYRDOM OF WILLIAM FLOWER, JOHN CARDMAKER, JOHN WARNE, JOHN SIMSON, AND JOHN ARDELEY. Willtam Flower, (otherwise named Branch,) was born at Snailwell, in Cambridgeshire, at which place he went to school some years, and thence to the abbey of Ely ; where, after he had remained a while, he became a professed monk, according to the order and rule of the house, wearing the usual habit, and observing the regulations until the age of twenty-one years; before which he had been a priest and celebrated mass. By reason of a visitation, and certain injunctions by the authority of Henry the VIII. he forsook the house, and casting from him the monk's habit and religion, took upon him the habit of a secular priest, returned to Snailwell, and there celebrated mass, and taught children for about half a year. He then went into Suffolk, where he served as a secular priest about a quarter of a year ; from thence he went to Stoniland, where he acted in the same capacity until the coming out of the six articles : when he departed and went into Gloucestershire, where after he had abode awhile, according to God's holy ordinance, he took a wife, with whom he ever after faithfully and honestly continued ; and after his marriage, he tarried in Tewkesbury about two years, and from thence he went to Bursley, where he remained three quarters of a year, and practised physic and chirurgery. From thence he removed into Northamptonshire, where he assisted a gentleman in teaching children to read and write. At length he came to London ; after that, being desirous to see his country, he returned to Snailwell, thence to Braintree, then to Coggle- shall, where he also taught children. Coming to Lambeth, near London, he hired a house, where he and his wife dwelt together. Being at home upon Easter-Sunday, about ten or eleven o'clock in the forenoon of the same day, he came over the water to St. Margaret's church at Westminster ; when seeing a priest, named John Cheltam, administer- ing the sacrament of the altar to the people, he was so provoked and inflamed, that he struck and wounded him upon the head, and also upon the arm and hand, the priest having at the same time in his hand a chalice, with certain consecrated hosts therein. For this he was imme- diately examined before bishop Bonner, and confessed he had done wrong, submitting himself willingly to punishment, whenever it should come. Howbeit touching his belief in the sacrament, and the popish ministration, he neither would nor did submit himself. Being apprehended and laid in the Gatehouse at Westminster, having as many irons as he could bear, he was summoned again before bishop Bonner, April 19th, 1555, when the bishop, after he had sworn him upon a book, ministered articles and interrogatories to him. Previous to this the following conversation took place between Mr. Flower and Mr. Robert Smith, a fellow prisoner. Smith. Friend, as I understand that you profess the gospel, and that 672 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. you have done so a long season, I am bold to come unto you, and in the way of communication to demand and learn a truth at your own mouth, of certain things by you committed, to the astonishment not only of me, but of others that also profess the truth. Flower. I praise God for his great goodness in shewing me the light of his holy word ; and I give you hearty thanks for your visitation, in- tending by God's grace to declare all the truth that you shall demand lawfully of me, in all things. Smith. Then I desire you to shew me the truth of your deed, com- mitted on John Cheltam, priest, in the church, as near as you can, that I may hear from your own mouth how it was. Flower. I came from my house at Lambeth over the water, and en- tering into St. Margaret's church, and there seeing the people falling down before a most detestable idol, being moved with extreme zeal for God, whom I saw before my face dishonoured, I drew forth my hanger, and struck the priest which ministered the same unto them ; whereupon I was immediately apprehended. Smith. Did you not know the person that you struck, or were you not zealous upon him for any evil will or hatred between you at any time ? Flower. No, verily, I never to my knowledge saw the person before, neither had evil will or malice ; for if he had not had it, another should, if I had at any time come where the like occasion had been ministered, if God had permitted me to do it. Smith. Do you think that thing to be well done, and after the rule of the gospel? Flower. I confess all flesh to be subject to the power of Almighty God, whom he maketh his ministers to do his will and pleasure ; as for example, Moses, Aaron, Phineas, Joshua, Zimri, Jehu, Judith, Mattathias, with many others, not only changing decrees, but also planting examples of zeal to his honour, against all order and respect of flesh and blood. For, as St. Paul saith, " His works are past finding out." By his Spirit I have also given my flesh at this present unto such order, as it shall please the good will of God to appoint in death, which before the act committed I looked for. Smith. Think you it is convenient for me, or any other, to do the like by your example? Flower. No verily, neither do I know whether I could do it again : for I was up very early at St. Paul's church upon Christ's day in the morning, to have done it in my jealousy : but when I came there, I was no more able to do it, than now to undo that which is done ; and yet now being compelled by the Spirit, not only to come over the water, and to enter the church, but being also in mind fully content to die for the Lord, I gave over my flesh willingly, without all fear, I praise God. Wherefore I cannot learn you to do the like ; first, because I know not what is in you; secondly, because the rules of the gospel command us to suffer with patience all wrongs and injuries. Yet never- theless, if he make you worthy that hath made me zealous, you shall not be letted, judged, nor condemned ; for he doth in his people his unspeakable works in all ages, which no man can comprehend. I humbly beseech you to judge the best of the Spirit, and condemn not ARTICLES EXHIBITED AGAINST MR. FLOWKR. 673 God's doings: for I cannot express with my mouth the great mercies that God hath shewed me in this thing, which I repent not. Smith. Are you not assured to have death ministered unto you for the act, and even with extremity? Flower. I did, before the deed committed, adjudge my body to die for the same : whereupon I carried about me, in writing, my opinion of the holy scriptures ; that if it had pleased God to have given them leave to have killed my body in the church, they might in the said writing have seen my hope, which I praise God, is laid up safe within my breast notwithstanding any death that may be ministered upon my body in this world; being ascertained of everlasting life through Jesus Christ our Lord, and being most heartily sorry for all my offences committed in this flesh, and trusting shortly, through his mercy, to cease from the same. Smith. I need not examine or commune with you of the hope that you have any further : for I perceive, God be praised, you are in good state, and therefore I beseech God, for his mercies, to spread his wings over you, that as for his love you have been zealous, even to the loss of this life, so he may give you his Holy Spirit to conduct you out of this world into a better life, which I think will be shortly. Flower. I hunger for the same, dear friend, being fully ascertained that they can kill but the body, which I am assured shall receive life again everlasting, and see no more death ; entirely desiring you and all that fear the Lord, to pray with me to Almighty God, to perform the same in me shortly. On the next examination before Bonner, Mr. Flower had the following articles exhibited against him. " That thou being of lawful age and discretion, at the least seventeen years old, wast a professed monk in the late abbey of Ely, wherein after thy profession thou remainedst until the age of twenty-one years, using all the mean-time the habit and religion of the same house, and wast reputed and taken notoriously for such a person. " That thou wast ordained and made priest, according to the laudable custom of the catholic church, and afterwards thou didst execute and minister as a priest, and wast commonly reputed, named, and taken for a priest. ''That after the premises, thou, forgetting God, thy conscience, honesty, and the laudable order of the catholic church, didst, contrary to thy profession and vow, take as thy wife, one woman, commonly called Alice Pulton, in the parish of Tewksbury, with whom thou hadst mutual cohabitation, as man and wife, and had by her two children. "That thou being a religious man and a priest, didst, contrary to the order of the ecclesiastical laws, take upon thee to practise in divers places within the diocese of London, physic and chirurgery, when thou wast not admitted, expert, nor learned. " That upon Easter day last, within the church of St. Margaret's, at Westminster, thou didst maliciously, outrageously, and violently pull out thy wood knife or hanger. And whereas the priest and' minister there, called John Cheltam, was executing his cure and charge, especially in doing his service, and administering the sacrament of the altar to 2 x 674 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. communicants, then didst thou wickedly and abominably smite with thy said weapon the said priest, first upon the head, and afterwards upon his hands and other parts of his body, drawing blood abundantly from him, he then holding the said sacrament in his hand, and giving no occasion why thou shouldst so hurt him, the people being grievously offended therewith, and the said church polluted thereby, so that the inhabitants were compelled to repair to another church to communicate, and receive the said sacrament. "That by reason of the premises, thou wast and art by the eccle- siastical laws of the church, amongst other penalties, excommunicated and accursed in very deed, and not to be accompanied withal, neither in the church nor elsewhere, but in special cases. "That thou, concerning the truth of Christ's natural body and blood in the sacrament of the altar, hast been for the space of one or more years, and yet art at this present of this opinion, that in the sacrament of the altar, after the words of consecration, there is not really, truly, and in very deed contained under the form of bread the very true and natural body of our Saviour Jesus Christ. " That thou for the hatred and disdain that thou hadst and didst bear against the said sacrament, and against the said priest administering the same, didst smite, and hurt him in manner before declared. " That thou art also, by order of the ecclesiastical laws of the church, to be reputed, taken, and adjudged a very heretic, and to be punished by and with the pains due for heresy, by reason of the said heresy and damnable opinion. "That all the premises be true, manifest, notorious, and famous, and that upon the same, and every part thereof, there was and is within the said parish of St. Margaret's, and other places thereabouts, a public voice and fame." It is unnecessary minutely to detail the answers of Mr. Flower to these charges. To the greater part of them, as an honest man he pleaded guilty, and as a faithful christian he gloried in the plea, and was ready to say — " If this be to be vile I will be more vile still." He denied, however, having at any time been a monk in his heart, declaring that wearing the habit had offended his conscience. On the main point — his violently assailing the priest at the altar — he answered with caution, or rather with silence, declining to explain his conduct or its motives; evidently under the conviction, on the one hand that he had acted from a divine impulse, and on the other that such an assertion before a papal court would only have been turned into an occasion of profane scoffing. After the deposition of certain witnesses were taken, the bishop asked him, if he knew any cause why sentence should not be read, and he be pronounced a heretic. Mr. Flower answered, " I have nothing at all to say, for I have already said unto you all that I have to say; and what I have said, I will not go from : therefore do what you will." The bishop then proceeded to the sentence, condemning and excommunicating him for a heretic; and after, pronounced him to be degraded, and then committed him to the secular power. Upon the 24th day of April he was brought to the place of martyrdom, which was in St. Margaret's PARTICULARS OF JOHN CARDMAKER. 675 churchyard at Westminster, where the fact was committed. There one Mr. Chohnley came to him, desiring him to recant his heresy, whereby he might do iiood to the people ; or else lie would be damned. Flower an- Bwered, " Sir, I beseech you, for God's sake, be contented ; for what I have said, I have said : and I have been of this faith from the beginning; and I trust to the living God he will give me his Holy Spirit so to continue to the end." Then he desired all the world to forgive him whom he had offended, as he forgave all the world. This done, his right hand being held up against the stake was struck off; and then fire was set unto him. While burning therein, he cried with a loud voice, " O the Son of God, have mercy upon me ! O the Son of God, receive my soul !" three times ; when his speech was taken from him. Thus endured this constant witness for God the extremity of the fire, being therein cruelly handled by reason of there not being fagots sufficient to burn him, so that they were fain to strike him down into the fire ; where he lying along upon the ground, his nether part was consumed in the fire, while his upper part was clean with- out the fire, his tongue in all men's sight still moving in his mouth. May 3rd, 1555, a letter was sent to George Colt and Thomas Daniel, to search for and apprehend John Bernard and John Walsh, who used to repair to Sudbury, and carrying about with them the bones of Pygot who was burned, shewed them to the people, and persuaded them to be constant in his religion; and upon examination to commit them to further ordering, according to the laws. The same day Stephen Appes was committed to the Little Ease in the Tower, there to remain two or three days till further examination. On the 30th of May suffered together, in Smithfield, John Cardmaker, alias sir John Taylor, prebendary of the church of Wells; and John Warne, upholsterer, of St. John's, Walbrook. Cardmaker was an observant friar before the dissolution of the abbeys. He afterwards married, and in Edward's time was appointed a reader in St. Paul's, where the papists were so enraged against him for his doctrine's sake, that while he was reading they cut and mangled his gown with their knives. Mr. Cardmaker being apprehended in the beginning of queen Mary's reign, with Mr. Barlow, bishop of Bath, was brought to London and put in the Fleet prison, king Edward's laws being yet in force. But after the sitting of that parliament, the pope was again admitted as supreme head of the English church, and the bishops had also gotten power and authority, officially to exercise their tyranny : Barlow and Cardmaker were therefore brought before the bishop of Winchester, and others appointed by commission, to examine the faith of such as were then prisoners: and as he had done unto others before, so now he did to them — offered the queen's mercy, if they would agree to be conformable to the papal church. Such were their answers to this, that the chancellor with his fellow commissioners mistook them for papists. Barlow was led again to the Fleet, from whence he was afterwards delivered, and did by exile constantly bear witness to the truth of Christ's gospel. Cardmaker was conveyed to the Compter in Bread street, the bishop of London publishing that he should shortly be delivered, after that he had subscribed to transubstantiation and certain other articles. Some of the articles objected by Bonner against Cardmaker were, that in times past he did profess the rule of St. Francis, and vowed to keep 676 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. poverty, chastity, and obedience, according to that rule ; that lie did re- ceive all the orders of the church then used ; that after the said profession and orders, he took to wife a widow, and with her lived in wedlock, break- ing- thereby his vow and order, and also the ordinance of the church ; that Christ, at his last supper, taking bread into his hands, blessing it, breaking it, giving it to his apostles, and saying, "Take, eat : this is my body," did institute a sacrament there, willing that his body really and truly should be contained in the said sacrament — no substance of bread and wine there remaining, but only the accidents thereof. To these articles Cardmaker replied, that while under age he did profess the said order and religion, but that he was absolved therefrom by king Henry VIII. ; that he had received all the orders of the church ; that by marriage he brake no vow, being set at liberty by the laws of the realm, and also by the laws and ordinances of the English church. To the last article he answered, that he doth believe that it is true; that is to say, that Christ, taking bread at his last supper into his hands, blessing it, breaking it, giving it to his disciples, and saying, "Take, eat: this is my body," did institute a sacrament there. And to the other part of this article, viz. that his body really and truly should be contained in the said sacrament, no substance of bread and wine there remaining, but only the accidents thereof — he answereth, that he doth not believe the same to be true. Cardmaker, calling to mind the cavillings of the papists, and thinking he had not fully answered the last article, did the next day add the following: " Whereas in my answers to your articles I deny the presence of Christ m the sacrament, I mean not his sacramental presence, for that I confess; but my denial is of his carnal presence in the same. But yet further, because this word is oftentimes taken by the holy fathers, not only for bread and wine, but also for the whole administration and receiving of the same according to Christ's institution; so I say, that Christ is present spiritually too, and in all them who worthily receive the sacrament; so that my denial is still of the real, carnal, and cor- poreal presence in the sacrament, and not of the sacramental nor spiritual presence. This I have thought good to add to my former answer, because no man should misunderstand it." Mr. John Warne, a respectable tradesman of London, was the next selected for trial before this iniquitous court. Some little variety dis- tinguished the articles alleged against this individual, as the following sample will shew. "Thou hast said, that about a twelvemonth ago and more, a rough spaniel of thine was shorn on the head, and had a crown like a priest made on the same, thou didst laugh at it, and like it, though thou didst it not thyself, nor knewest who did it. " Thou neither this Lent last past, nor at any time since the queen's majesty's reign, hast come into the church, or heard mass, or been con- fessed, or received the sacrament of the altar; and hast said that thou art not sorry that thou hast so done, but that thou art glad, because thou hast not therewith defiled thy conscience. "Thou wast in time past here in the city of London, accused of heresy against the sacrament of the altar, according to the order of the laws of this realm of England in the time of king Henry VIII. and when MARTYRDOM OF WARNE AND CARDMAKER. 677 alderman Barnes was then sheriff, and the Thursday after Anne Askew was burnt in Smithtiekl; and thereupon thou wast sent a prisoner to Newgate, to whom Edmund, bishop of London, did repair with his chaplains, to instruct thee in the true faith of Christ, touching the said sacrament of the altar, and to bring thee from thy error, which was, that in the sacrament of the altar there is not the body of Christ, nor any corporeal presence of Christ's body and blood, under the forms of bread and wine ; but that in the said sacrament there is only material bread and wine, without any substance of Christ's body and blood at all : and because thou wouldst not leave and forsake thy said heresy therein, but would persist obstinately therein, thou wert, according to the said laws, condemned to be burnt; and thereupon suit being made for thee to the king and others in the court, thou hadst a pardon of king Henry VIII. and thereby didst save thy life. Nevertheless in thy heart and conscience thou didst both then, and also afore believe no otherwise than at this present thou dost believe; that in the sacrament of the altar there is neither the very true body or blood of Christ, nor any other substance but the substance of material bread and wine; and to receive the said material bread and wine, and to break it, and to distribute it among the people, only is the true receiving of Christ's body, and no otherwise. In which thine opinion thou hast ever hitherto since continued, and so dost continue at this present, thou confessing all this to be true, and in witness thereof subscribing thy name thereunto." Mr. Warne being examined upon the above articles on the 23rd of May, answered for the same, confessing the articles and contents thereof to be true, according as they were Objected in every part, subscribing also the same with his hand. Such strength and fortitude God's Holy Spirit wrought in him, to stand firmly and confidently to the defence of the sincere doctrine of his Son. The bishop, however, exhorted him with many persuasions to leave his heresies, and return to the bosom of his mother the holy church, and commanded him to appear again the next day. On being brought up, he answered as before, and was again earnestly exhorted by the bishop to recant. He answered, that he would not depart from his received profession, unless he were thoroughly persuaded by the holy scriptures. Upon which he was ordered to come again the following day, at one in the afternoon; when the bishop examined him again upon all his former articles objected, to which he still constantly adhered, with this further answer — " 1 am persuaded that I am in the right opinion, and I see no cause to recant; for all the filthiness and idolatry is in the church of Rome." The bishop seeing that notwithstanding all his fair promises and ter- rible threatenings he could not prevail, pronounced the definitive sen- tence of condemnation against him, and charged the sheriffs of London with him, under whose custody he remained in Newgate until the 30th of May. Which day being appointed for execution, he, with John Cardmaker, were brought by the sheriffs to the place where they should suffer; and being come to the stake, first the sheriffs called Mr. Card- maker aside, and talked with him secretly, during which time Mr. Warne having prayed, was chained to the stake, and had wood and reeds set 678 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. about him. The people had before heard a rumour that Mr. Cardmaker would recant, and were greatly afflicted, thinking indeed that he would now recant at the burning of Mr. Warne. At length Mr. Cardmaker left the sheriffs, came towards the stake, and kneeled down and made a long prayer in silence to himself. His prayer ended, he rose, and advanced with a bold courage to the stake, and kissed it: then taking Mr. Warne by the hand, he heartily comforted him, and cheerfully gave himself to be bound. The people seeing this so suddenly done, contrary to their fearful expectation, as men delivered out of a great doubt, cried out for joy, saying — " God be praised, the Lord strengthen thee, Cardmaker, the Lord Jesus receive thy spirit." And this continued while the executioner put fire to them, and both passed through the flame to the blessed rest and peace among God's holy saints and martyrs, to enjoy the crown of triumph and victory prepared for the soldiers of Christ Jesus in his kingdom. John Simson and John Ardeley were brought before the same court, and condemned for the same cause and on the same day with Cardmaker and Warne, namely the 25th of May. It would appear strange that so strict a search and so severe a proceeding were taken in reference to four individuals of no distinction in society. The surprise, however, may be dismissed on finding that on the preceding day Bonner had received a letter from their majesties at Hampton-court relative to the further persecution of the protestants, which acted as a stimulus upon the cruelty and craft of this sanguinary man, and was, doubtless, a means of hastening the condemnation, as well as multiplying the number of the martyrs. The letter is remarkable as a proof of the cruel dis- position of Philip and Mary, and of the sophistry with which they could proceed to gratify them. " Right reverend father in God, right trusty and well beloved, we greet you well. And whereas of late we addressed our letters to the justice of peace within every of the counties of this our realm, whereby amongst other instructions given them for the good order and quiet government of the country round about them, they are willed to have a special regard unto such disordered persons as do lean to any erroneous and heretical opinions, refusing to shew themselves conformable to the catholic religion of Christ's church; wherein if they cannot by good admonitions and fair means reform them, they are willed to deliver them to the ordinary, to be by him charitably travelled withal, and removed from their naughty opinions, or else, if they continue obstinate, to be ordered according to the laws provided in that behalf: understanding now, to our no little marvel, that divers of the said disorderly persons, being by the justices of the peace, for their contempt and obstinacy, brought to the ordinaries to be used as aforesaid, are either refused to be received at their hands, or if they be received, are neither so travelled with as christian charity requireth, nor yet proceeded withal according to the order of justice, but are suffered to continue in their errors, to the dishonour of Almighty God, and dangerous example of others; like as we find this matter very strange, so we have thought convenient both to signify our knowledge, and therewith also to admonish you to have in this behalf such regard henceforth to the office of a good pastor and EXAMINATION OF SIMSON AND ARDELEY. 679 bishop, as when any such offenders shall be by the said officers or jus- tices of the peace brought unto you, you use your good wisdom and discretion in procuring to remove them from their errors, if it may be, or else in proceeding against them according to the order of the laws; so as through your good furtherance, both God's glory may be better advanced, and the common-wealth more quietly governed. Given under our signet at our manor of Hampton-court, the 24th of May, the first and second years of our reign." The first article against Simson and Ardeley was of the most sweeping kind; that they had not believed, and did not believe, that there is on earth one catholic and universal whole church, which doth hold all the faith and religion of Christ, and all the necessary articles and sacra- ments. Secondly, that they had not believed, nor did believe, that they were necessarily bounden, under the pain of damnation, to give full faith and credence unto the said catholic and universal church, and to the religion of the same, in all necessary points of the said faith and religion, without wavering or doubting in the said faith or religion, or m any part thereof. Thirdly, that they had not believed that that faith and religion which both the church of Rome and all other churches in Europe do believe and teach, is agreeing with the said catholic and universal church and the faith and religion of Christ ; but contrariwise, that that faith and religion which the church of Rome and all the other churches aforesaid have believed, and do now believe, is false, and ought in no wise to be believed and kept of any Christian man. The four other articles alleged that they would not acknowledge the corporeal presence in the eucharist, or the sacrifice of the mass ; and that they condemned as superfluous, vain, and unprofitable, auricular confession, and all the ceremonies and services of the church, saying that services in a foreign tongue were unlawful and naught. The answers of John Simson, and also of John Ardeley, to the foresaid articles, taken out of the bishops' own registers : — To the first they believe, that here on earth there is one catholic and universal holy church, which doth hold and believe as is contained in the first article ; and that this church is dispersed and scattered abroad throughout the whole world. To the second, they believe that they are bound to give faith and credence unto it, as is contained in the second article. To the third, as concerning the faith and religion of the church of Rome, of Italy, Spain, France, Ireland, Scotland, and other churches in Europe, they have nothing to do with that faith and religion : but as concerning the faith and religion of England, that if the said church of England be ruled and governed by the Word of Life, then the church of England hath the faith and religion of the catholic church, and not other- wise ; and do say also, that if the church of England were ruled by the Word of Life, it would not go about to condemn us and others of this heresy. To the fourth they answer, that in the sacrament of the altar there is very bread and very wine, not altered or changed in substance in any wise; and that he that receiveth the said bread and wine, doth spiritually and by faith only receive the body and blood of Christ ; but not the very natural body and blood of Christ in substance under the forms of bread and wine. To the fifth they say they have answered in answering 680 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. to the said fourth article. To the sixth they say they believe that the mass is of the pope, and not of Christ; and therefore it is not good, nor having in it any goodness, saving the " Gloria in excelsis," the epistle and gospel, the creed and the Lord's prayer ; and for this cause they have not, nor will they come and hear mass. To the seventh, John Ardeley answered that he believeth the same to be true ; but John Simson doth answer, that he is not fully resolved with himself what answer to make thereunto, and further saith that as touching the common and daily service said and used in the church, he saith that he never said that the service in the church ought to be said but in the English tongue ; nor yet he never said, that if it be otherwise said and used than in English, it is unlawful and naught. These articles being to them objected, and their answers made unto the same, the bishop, according to the mode of his consistory court, respited them to the afternoon. At which time the bishop repeating again the said articles unto them, and beginning with John Ardeley, urged and solicited him to recant. But he constantly standing to his religion an- swered — " My lord, neither you, nor any of your religion, are of the catholic church; for you are of a false faith: and I doubt not but ye shall be deceived at length, bear as good a face as ye can. Ye will shed the innocent blood, and ye have killed many, and yet go about to kill more. And if every hair of my head were a man, I would suffer death in the opinion and faith that I am now in." These, with many other words, he spake. Then the bishop yet demanded if he would relinquish his erroneous opinions, and be reduced again to the unity of the church. He answered, " No! God foreshield that I should so do, for then I should lose my soul." After this, the bishop asking John Ardeley if he knew any cause why he should not have sentence condemnatory against him, read the con- demnation, as he also did against John Simson, standing likewise in the same cause and constancy with John Ardeley. So were they both com- mitted to the secular power, that is, to the hands of the sheriffs, on the 25th day of May, 1555, to be conveyed to the place where they should be executed. Being thus delivered to the sheriffs, they were shortly after sent down from London to Essex, where they were both put to death about the 10th of June. John Simson suffered at Rochford ; and John Ardeley, on the same day, at Rayleigh, finished his martyrdom most quietly in the quarrel of Christ's gospel. Furthermore it is not unworthy to be noted of all men, and known to all posterity, concerning the examinations of Ardeley and his company, how that they, on being brought before the commissioners, were by them greatly charged with stubbornness and vain glory. Unto whom they answered in defence of their own simplicity, that they were content willingly to yield to the queen all their goods and lands, so that they might be suffered to live under her, in keeping their conscience free from all idolatry and popery. Yet this would not be granted, although they had offered all to their heart's blood ; so greedy and so thirsty be these persecutors of Christian blood. The Lord give them repentance, if it be his will, and keep from them the just reward of such cruel dealing ! Amen. 68] SECTION VII. CONTAINING THE EXAMINATION AND MARTYRDOM OF MR. THOMAS HAUKES AND MR. THOMAS WATTS J WITH SOME OTHER INCIDENTS OF THE PERIOD. While Gardiner and Bonner thirsted for the blood of living- reformers, cardinal Pole, possessed of somewhat less cruelty but even greater super- stition, directed his attention to every means of degrading the remains of those who were dead. By his order, the bones of Martin Bucer and Paulus Phagius, who had been nearly two years in their graves, were taken up and burned to ashes at Cambridge. And because he would shew some token of his diligence in this degrading work in both univer- sities, he caused the remains of the wife of Peter Martyr, who had been buried in St. Mary's church-yard, to be dug up and cast on a dunghill! Nor was the cardinal contented with thus treating the relics of dis- tinguished persons; where the least public profession of the reformed opinions had appeared, he was anxious to follow it up with this dis- graceful treatment of what remained of those who made it. Thus, because one Tooly, who had robbed a Spaniard and was executed for the crime at Charing-cross, read from a reformed book under the gallows, and spoke against the papal church before he suffered, he became an object of the cardinals vengeance, who instigated the authorities to disturb the slumber of this unhappy man in his igno- minious grave, and to burn the corpse of him whom they had omitted to consume before. To be sure he had been a sinner against the Romish church of no small degree; for not only had he robbed a countryman of king Philip, as he was called ; but at his execution for the crime had said that, as he and his fellows had stolen through covetousness, so the bishop of Rome sold his masses and trentals from the same motives. Mention has already been made of six men brought before bishop Bonner upon the 8th day of February, of which number was Thomas Haukes, who w r as condemned likewise with the other five on the 9th day of the foresaid month, though his execution was prolonged till the 10th of June following. As touching his education and order of life, first he was of the county of Essex, born of an honest stock, in calling and profession a courtier, brought up daintily from his childhood, and like a gentleman. He was a man of great comeliness and stature, well endued with excellent qualities; but his gentle behaviour towards others, and his fervent study and singular love unto true religion and godliness, did surmount all the rest. Haukes following the fashion of the court, as he grew in years, entered into service with the lord of Oxford, with whom he remained a good space, being esteemed and loved by all the household, so long as Edward VI. lived. But he dying, all things began to go backward, religion to decay, true piety not only to wax cold, but also to be in danger every where, and chiefly in the houses of the great. Haukes misliking the state of things, and forsaking the nobleman's house, departed thence to his own home, where he might more freely give himself to God, and use his own conscience. Meanwhile he had born unto him a son, whose baptism was deferred to the third week, because 682 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. he would not suffer him to be baptized after the papal manner. This his adversaries would not suffer, but laid hands upon him, brought him to the earl of Oxford, there to be reasoned with as not sound in religion, but seeming to contemn the sacraments of the church. The earl, either intending not to trouble himself in such matters, or else seeing himself not able to contend with him in such points of religion, sent him up to London with a messenger and the following letter to the bishop of London—" Most reverend father in God, be it known unto you that I have sent you Thomas Haukes of the county of Essex, who hath a child that hath remained unchristened more than three weeks; who being upon the same examined hath denied to have it baptized, as it is now used in the church, whereupon I have sent him to your good lordship, to use as you think best by your good discretion." Thus willing to clear his own hands, he put him in the hands of Bonner, bishop of London, who began to communicate with Mr. Haukes, first asking, what should move him to leave his child unchristened so long? To this he answered — " Because we are bound to do nothing contrary to the word of God. His institution I do not deny; but I deny all things invented and devised by man: your oil, your cream, your salt, your spittle, your candle, and your conjuring of water." Then the dialogue thus went on. Bonner. Will you deny that which the whole world and your fore- fathers have been contented withal ? Haukes. What my fathers and all the world have done, 1 have nothing to do with: but what God hath commanded me to do, to that stand I. Bonner. The catholic church hath taught it. Haukes. What is the catholic church? Bonner. It is the faithful congregation, wheresoever it be dispersed throughout the whole world. Haukes. Who is the head thereof? Bonner. Christ is the head thereof. Haukes. Are we taught in Christ, or in the church now? Bonner. Have you not read in the fourteenth of St. John where he said, He would send his comforter which should teach you all things? Haukes. I grant you it is so, that he would send his comforter, but to what end? Forsooth to this end, that he should lead you into all truth and verity, and that is not to teach a new doctrine. Bonner. Ah, sir, you are a right scripture man; for you will have nothing but the scripture. There are a great number of your country- men of your opinion. Mr. Haukes himself informs us that at this point of the dialogue the bishop sent for a preacher of Essex of the name of Baget. He knew and respected Mr. Haukes, and yet the bishop hoped to have influence enough over him to induce him to impeach his friend. At first he could not succeed; but after a little private conversation with Baget the con- versation was thus resumed — Bonner. How say you now unto baptism? Say whether it be to be frequented and used in the church, as it is now, or not? Baget. Forsooth, my lord, I say it is good. Bonner. Befool your heart, could you not have said so before? You DIALOGUE BETWEEN BONNER AND HAUKES. 683 have wounded this man's conscience. How say you now, sir, this man is turned and converted ? Haukes. I build not my faith upon this man, neither upon you, but upon Christ Jesus only, who, as St. Paul saith, is the founder and author of all men's faith. Bonne?'. I perceive you are a stubborn fellow; I must, therefore, go to work another way with you, to win you. Haukes. Whatsoever you do, 1 am ready to suffer it; for I am in your hands to abide it. Bonner. Well, you are so; come on your ways, you shall go in, and I will use you christian-like: you shall have meat and drink, such as I have in my house: but in any wise talk not. Haukes. I purpose to talk nothing but the word of God and truth. Bon?ier. I will have no heresy talked of in my house. Haukes. Why, is the truth become heresy? God hath commanded that we should have none other talk in our houses, in our beds, at our meat, and by the way, but all truth. Bonner. If you will have my favour be ruled by my counsel. Haukes. Then I trust you will grant me my request. Bonner. What is that? Haukes. That your doctors and servants give me no occasion : for if they do, I will surely utter my conscience. Upon this the bishop commanded his men to take in Baget, that Haukes and he might not have an opportunity to talk together. And so thus they departed and went to dinner, dining at the steward's table, After dinner, the bishop's chaplains and his men began to talk with Mr. Haukes; and in the company there was one Darbyshire, principal of Broadgates, in Oxford, and the bishop's kinsman, who said that Haukes was too curious: " for ye will have," said he, "nothing but your little pretty God's book." "And is not that sufficient for my salvation?" Haukes enquired. " Yes," said he, " it is sufficient for our salvation, but not for our instruction." At the time that they thus reasoned, Bonner came in; and after reproving Haukes for talking, they all went into his orchard again, when the bishop resumed the dialogue. Bonner. Would not ye be contented that your child should be christened after the book that was set out by king Edward ? Haukes. Yes, with a good will: it is what I desire. Bonner. I thought so : ye would have the same thing. The principal is in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and in the necessity it may serve. Will ye be content to tarry here, and your child shall be baptized, and you shall not know of it, so that you will agree to it? Haukes. If I would so have done, I needed not to have come to you : for I had the same counsel given before. Bonner. You seem to be a lusty young man ; you will not give your head for the washing; you will stand in the defence of it for the honour of your country. Do ye think that the queen and I cannot command it to be done in spite of your teeth? 684 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Haukes. What the queen and you can do I will not stand in it: but ye get my consent never the sooner. Bonner. Well, you are a stubborn young man; I perceive f must work another way with you. Haukes. Ye are in the hands of God, and so am I. Bonner. Whatsoever you think, I will not have you speak such words unto me. They departed until even-song time: and ere even-song was begun, my lord called Haukes into the chapel, and said — " Haukes, thou art a proper young man, and God hath done his part unto thee; I would be glad to do thee good. Thou knowest that I am thy pastor, and one that should answer for thee. If I would not teach thee well I should answer for thy soul." Haukes. That I have said, J will stand to it, God willing: there is no way to remove it. Bonner. Nay, nay, Haukes, thou shalt not be so wilful. Remember Christ bade two go into his vineyard; the one said he would, and went not; the other said he would not, and went. Do thou likewise, and I will talk friendly with thee; how sayest thou? It is in the sixth of St. John — " I am the bread of life, and the bread that I will give is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. And whosoever eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood, hath everlasting life. My flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed. And he that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him." Do ye believe this? Haukes. Yea, I must needs believe the scriptures. Bonner. Why, then I trust that you be sound in the blessed sa- crament. Haukes. I beseech your lordship to feel my Conscience no farther than in that which I was accused in unto you. Bonner. Well, well, let us go unto even-song. Why will you not tarry even-song? Haukes. Because I have no edifying thereby, for I understand no Latin. Bonner. Why, you may pray by yourself. What books have you ? Haukes. I have the New Testament, the book of Solomon, and Psalter. Bonner. Then I pray you tarry here, and pray you on your Psalter. Haukes. I will not pray in this place, nor in any such. Then said one, " Let him go, my lord." So Bonner went to even-song ; and within an hour after sent for Haukes into his chamber. Bonner. You know of the talk that was between you and me, as concerning the sacrament.* You would not have your conscience sought any farther, than in that you were accused of. Haukes. I thought you would not be both mine accuser and judge. Bonner. Well, you shall answer me to the sacrament of the altar, the sacrament of baptism, the sacrament of penance, and the sacrament of matrimony. Haukes. There are none of these, but I dare speak my conscience in them. Bonner. The sacrament of the altar you seem to be sound in. Haukes. In the sacrament of the altar? Why, sir, I do not know it. DIALOGUE BETWEEN HARPSFIELD AND HAUKES* 685 Bonner. Well, we will make you to know it, and believe in it too, before we have done with you. llaukes. No, that shall ye never do. What God thinketh meet to be done, that shall ye do, and more ye shall not do. Bonner. Do you not believe that there remaineth in the blessed sacra- ment of the altar, after the words of consecration be spoken, no more bread, but the very body and blood of Christ? Why, did not Christ say, "Take, eat, this is my body?" Haukes. Christ said so: but therefore it followeth not that the sacra- ment of the altar is so as you teach, neither did Christ ever teach it so to be. Bonner. Why, the catholic church taught it so, and they were of Christ's church. Haukes. How prove you it? The apostles never taught it so. Neither St. Peter nor St. Paul ever taught it, nor instituted it so. Bonner. Ah, sir, you will have no more than the scripture teacheth, but even as Christ hath left it bare. Haukes. He that teacheth me any otherwise, I will not believe him. Bonner. Why, then you must eat a lamb, if you will have but Christ's institution only. Haukes. Nay, that is not so, for before Christ instituted the sacra- ment, that ceremony ceased, and then began the sacrament. Except you teach me by the word of God, I never will credit you, nor believe you. And thus they concluded. The next day the bishop went to London, for Fecknam was made dean that day. Upon the Monday morning, very- early, the bishop called for Haukes, having with him Harpsfield, archdeacon of London, to whom he said, " This is the man which I told you of, who would not have his child christened, nor will have any ceremonies." Archdeacon. Christ used ceremonies. Did he not take clay from the ground, and took spittle, and made the blind man to see? Haukes. That I well know; but Christ never used it in baptism. If ye will needs have it, put it to the use that Christ put it unto. Archdeacon. Admit your child die unchristened, what a heavy case you stand in ! Marry, then are you damned, and your child both. Do you not know that your child is born in original sin ? and how is original sin washed away ? Haukes. By true faith and belief in Christ Jesus. Archdeacon. How can your child, being an infant, believe? Haukes. The deliverance of it from sin standeth in the faith of his parents. "The unbelieving man is sanctified by the believing woman, and the unbelieving woman is sanctified by the believing man, or else were your children unclean, but now are they holy." Bonner. Recant, recant : do you not know that Christ said, " Except ye be baptised, ye cannot be saved?" Haukes. I say as St. Peter saith, " Not the washing of water purgeth the filthiness of the flesh, but a good conscience consenting unto God." Bonner. Let us make an end here. How say you to the mass? Haukes. I say it is detestable, abominable, and unprofitable. Bonner. What, nothing profitable in it? What say you to the epistle and gospel ? 686 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. Haukes. It is good if it be used as Christ left it to be used. Bonner. How say you to the Confiteor? Haukes. I say it is abominable and detestable, yea, and a blasphemy against God, and his son Jesus Christ, to call upon any, to trust to any, or to pray to any, save only Christ Jesus. Archdeacon. What books have you ? Haukes. The New Testament, Solomon's books, and the psalter. Archdeacon. Will you read any other books? Haukes. Yes, Latimer's books, my lord of Canterbury's book, Bradford's sermons, and Ridley's books. Bonner. Away, away, he will have no books but such as maintain his heresies ! The next day came an old bishop, who had a pearl in his eye, and he brought with him unto my lord a dish of apples, and a bottle of wine. For he had lost his living because he had a wife. Then the bishop called Mr. Haukes again into the orchard, and said to the old bishop, " This young man hath a child, and will not have it christened." Haukes. I deny not baptism. Bonner. Thou art a fool; thou canst not tell what thou wouldst have. Haukes. A bishop must be blameless, sober, discreet, no brawler, nor given to anger. Bonner. Thou judgest me to be angry : no, by my faith I am not. With that he struck himself upon the breast. Then the old bishop said to Mr. Haukes, " Alas, good young man, you must be taught by the church, and by your elders, and do as your forefathers have done before you." Bonner. No, no, he will have nothing but the scriptures, and God knows, he doth not understand them. He will have no ceremonies in the church, no not one: what say you to holy water? The scriptures allow it? We prove it in the book of Kings, where Elisha threw salt into the water. Haukes. You say truth, that it is written in the Kings, the children of the prophets came to Elisha, saying — " The dwelling of the city is pleasant, but the waters be corrupted." This was the cause that Elisha threw salt into the water, and it became sweet and good : and so when our waters be corrupted, if you can, by putting in salt, make them sweet, clear, and wholesome, we will the better believe your ceremonies. Bonner. How say you to holy bread? Have you not read where Christ fed five thousand men with five loaves and two small fishes. Haukes. Will ye make that holy bread? There Christ dealt fish with his holy bread. He did not this miracle, or other, because we should do the like miracle, but because we should believe and credit his doc- trine thereby. Thus closed the dialogue with the bishop for the present. Mr. Haukes now went to dinner, and, if a humble and holy consciousness of attach- ment to the word of God amidst personal danger could impart appetite for the food of this life, his meal must have been a source of real en- joyment. After dinner he was called into the hall again, when his lordship desired the old bishop to take him into his chamber, to see if he could convert him. So he took him, and sat himself down in a chair, DIALOGUE BETWEEN CIIEDSEY AND HAUKES. 687 and said — "I would to God I could do you some good: you are a young- man, and I would not wish you to go too far, but learn of your elders to bear somewhat." To this Haukes answered — " I will bear nothing- that is contrary to the word of God." Next day, Fecknam came and said, "Are you he that will have no cere- monies? You will not have your child christened but in English, and you will have no ceremonies." To this Haukes replied — " Whatsoever the scripture commandeth to be done, I refuse not." A short conversation then followed between Haukes and Fecknam concerning the real presence and the true interpretation of the words of Christ — "This is my body." The usual arguments on both sides were repeated. At length Fecknam said — "I perceive you hang and build on them that be at Oxford ; I mean Latimer, Cranmer, and Ridley. Haukes. I build my faith upon no man, and that shall ye well know : for if those men, and as many more as they be, should recant and deny that they have said and done, yet will I stand to it ; and by this shall ye know that I build my faith upon no man. Bonner. If any of those recant, what will ye say to it ? Haukes. When they recant, I will make you an answer. Bonner. Then thou wilt say as thou dost now for all that ? Haukes. Yes indeed will I, and that, trust to it, by God's grace. Bonner. I dare say Cranmer would recant, so that he might have his living. And so the bishop and Fecknam departed from Haukes with great laugh- ing, and he went again to the porter's lodge. The next day came Dr. Chedsey to the bishop ; and then was Haukes called into the garden again. After some talk, Chedsey inquired, " What say ye to the church of Rome?" Haukes. I say it is a church composed of vicious cardinals, priests, monks, and friars, which I will never credit nor believe. Chedsey. What say you to the bishop of Rome? Haukes. From him and all his detestable enormities, good Lord de- liver us. Bonner. He will by no means come within my chapel, nor hear mass: for neither the mass nor the sacrament of the altar can he abide, nei- ther will he have any service but in English. Chedsey. Christ never spake in English. Haukes. Neither did he ever speak in Latin, but always in such a tongue as the people might be edified thereby. And St. Paul saith that tongues profit us nothing. He maketh a similitude between the pipe and the harp, and except it be understood what the trumpet meaneth, who can prepare himself to the battle? So if I hear a tongue that I do not understand, what profit have I thereby? no more than he hath by the trumpet, that knoweth not what it meaneth. Chedsey. If you understand St. Paul's saying, he speaketh it under a prophecy — " If one prophesy to you in tongues." Haukes. St. Paul maketh a distinction between prophecying and tongues, saying — " If any man speak with tongues, let it be two or three at the most, and let another interpret it. But if there be no interpreter, let them keep silence in the congregation, and let himself pray unto God : and then let the prophets speak two or three, and that by course, and let the others judge: and if any revelation be made to him that 688 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. sitteth by, let the first hold his peace:" so that it seemeth that St. Paul maketh a distinction between tongues and prophesying. Chedsey. Hath any man preached other than Christ's doctrine unto you? Haukes. Yea ; I have been taught, since I came here, praying to saints and to our Lady, trusting in the mass, holy bread, holy water, and idols. Chedsey. He that teaches you so, teacheth not amiss. Haukes. Cursed be he that teacheth me so! for I will not trust him, nor believe him. The next day Dr. Chedsey preached in the bishop's chapel, and did not begin his sermon until the service was done : and then came the porter for Haukes, and said — " My lord would have you come to the sermon;" and so he went to the chapel and stood without the door, and when Bonner commanded him in, Haukes refused and answered, "I will come no nearer," and so stood at the door. Then Dr. Chedsey put the stole about his neck, and carried the holy water unto the bishop, who blessed him, and sprinkled him with holy water, and so he went to his sermon. His text was the sixteenth of St. Matthew — " Whom do men say that I the Son of Man am? Peter said, Some say that thou art Elias, some that thou art John the Baptist, some say thou art one of the prophets. But whom say ye that I am ? Then said Peter, Thou art Christ the Son of the living God." Then he left the text there, and said," * Whose sins soever ye bind, are bound: ' which authority is left to the heads of the church, as my lord here is one, and so unto all the rest that be underneath him. But the church hath been much kicked at since the beginning: yet kick the heretics, spurn the heretics ever so much, the church doth stand and flourish." Then he went straightway to the sacrament, and said his mind on it, exalting it above heaven, as most of them do, and so returned to this place again, saying, " Whose sins ye do remit, are remitted and for- given :" and so he applied it to the bishops and priests to forgive sins, and said, " All that be of the church will come and receive the same." And this he attempted to prove by St. John saying, that Christ came to raise Lazarus, who, when he was risen, was bound in bands: then said Christ to them that were in authority, " Go ye and loose him, let him go." And this was the effect of his sermon, applying all to the bishops, that they have the same authority that Christ spake of to his apostles. The several parties separated after this sermon for dinner. After dinner Mr. Haukes was called into the chapel, where were several of the queen's servants, and other strangers whom he did not know. The conversation was thus resumed — Bonner. Haukes, how like you the sermon? What, are you not edified thereby? It was made only because of you. Haukes. Why, then I am sorry that you had no more heretics here, as you call them: I am sorry that you have bestowed so much labour on one, and that the labour was so little regarded by him. Bonner. Well, I will leave you here, for I have business; I pray my friends to talk with him, for if you could do him good, I would be glad. This the bishop spake to the queen's men, who said unto Haukes, EXAMINATION OF THOMAS HAUKES. 689 " Ahis! what mean you to trouble yourself about such matters against the queen's proceedings?" Haukes. This matter have I answered before them in authority : and unless I see you have a further commission, I will answer you nothing at. all. The bishop had borne with answers equally firm and decisive as this; but the servants were more haughty than their lord, and instantly re- sented what they affected to consider an insult. They loudly exclaimed as with one heart and voice, " Fagots! burn him! hang him! to prison with him ! it is pity he liveth ! lay irons upon him !" and with a great noise they spake these words. In the midst of all their rage he departed from them to the porter's lodge again. The next day the bishop called him into his chamber, and said, "You have been with me a great while, and you are never the better, but worse and worse : and therefore I will delay the time no longer, but send you to Newgate. Come on your ways, you shall see what I have written." Then did he shew certain articles, and this is the substance of them — whether the catholic church doth teach and believe, that Christ's real presence doth remain in the sacrament or no, after the words of consecration, according to these words of St. Paul; " Is not the bread which we break the partaking of the body of Christ, and the cup which we bless, the partaking of the blood of Christ?" which, if it were not so, St. Paul would never have said it. Haukes. What your church doth understand I cannot tell : but I am sure that the holy catholic church doth never so take it, nor believe it. Bonner. Whether doth the catholic church teach and believe the baptism that now is used in the church, or no? Haukes. I answered to it as I did to the other question before. Again the opponents separated for the night. The next morning, which was the first of July, the bishop called Haukes from the porter's lodge, commanding him to make himself ready to go to prison, and to take such things with him as he had of his own. Then he wrote his warrant to the keeper of the Gate-house at Westminster, and delivered it to Harpsfield, who, with his own man and one of the bishop's, brought him to prison, and delivered the warrant to the keeper, which ran as follows — " I will and command you, that you receive him who cometh named in this warrant, and that he be kept as a safe prisoner, and that no man speak with him, and that you deliver him to no man, except it be to the council, or to a justice; for he is a sacramentary, and one that speaketh against baptism, a seditious man, a perilous man to be abroad in these perilous days." There he remained thirteen days, when the bishop sent two of his men unto him, saying, " My lord would be glad to know how you do." He answered them, " I do like a poor prisoner." They said, " My lord would know whether you be the same man that you were when you departed." He said, " I am no changeling." They said, " My lord would be glad that you should do well." He said, " If my lord will do me any good, I pray you desire him to suffer my friends to come to me." They said they would speak for him, but he heard no more of them. In fact he remained in close confinement, neglected by his 2 Y 690 HTSTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. enemies, insulted by those who had the charge of him, and denied the society and advice of his friends, for nearly two months, during which it afterwards appeared that Bonner was devising every crafty method to prepare him, either for a public recantation or a dreadful death; or perhaps for both, and for the one as the immediate precursor of the other. His second examination took place on the 3rd of September, imme- diately after a sermon by Gardiner at St. Paul's Cross. In answer to a question from Bonner whether he would attend and hear the discourse, Mr. Haukes said — "Yes, my lord, I pray you let me go; and that which is good I will receive, and the rest I will leave behind me." Bonner soon perceived that the sermon, though prepared and preached by one who was bishop of Winchester and lord chancellor at the same time, produced no effect in the mind of his steadfast prisoner, except rendering him more steadfast in the true faith. He therefore retired to prepare a paper that Haukes would be required to sign ; meanwhile he left the latter to be reviled and taunted by some of his menials. Among these was one Smith, who was an apostate from the reformed church, and appears to have been retained by Bonner as a fit instrument of his evil designs against the reformers. Mr. Haukes observes of him in his journal — "As I stood there, Dr. Smith came unto me, who once re- canted, as it appeared in print, saying, he would be glad to talk brotherly with me. I asked him what he was? Then said they that stood by, he is Dr. Smith. Then said I, Are you he that did recant? And he said, It was no recantation, but a declaration. " To this Mr. Haukes answered with a smile, " You were best to term it well for your own honesty : but to be short with you, I will know whether you will recant any more or not before I talk with you, credit you, or believe you! and so I departed from him to the other side of the chamber." It would be trifling with the reader's patience to record the conversa- tions which Mr. Haukes was compelled to hold with other individuals even of a meaner stamp : it may be remarked, however, that he per- fectly confounded every one of them — being constrained to exercise his talent for satire, and to answer the fools according to their folly. At length the bishop, having finished his paper, came to Mr. Haukes and laid it before him to sign — first reading the following portion of it — " I Thomas Haukes do hereby confess and declare before my said ordinary, Edmund, bishop of London, that the mass is abominable and detestable, and full of all superstition, and also as concerning the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ, commonly called the sacrament of the altar, that Christ is in no part thereof, but only in heaven : this I have be- lieved, and this I do believe." At this point Mr. Haukes said, " Stop there, my lord: what I have believed, what have you to do withal? but what I do believe, to that stand I and will." Altering the paper ac- cordingly, the bishop went farther with his writing, and said, " I Thomas Haukes have talked with my said ordinary, and with certain good, godly, and learned men; notwithstanding I stand still in mine opinion." Here Mr. Haukes was constrained to protest — " Shall I grant you to be good, godly, and learned men, and yet allow myself to stand in a CONDEMNATION OF THOMAS IIAUKES. 691 contrary opinion? No, I will not grant you to be good, godly, and learned men." Bonner. Ye will grant that ye have talked with us : the other I will put out for your pleasure. Then said all his doctors, " If your lordship be ruled by him, he will cause you to put out all together." And then he read more : " Here unto this bill have I set my hand," and then he offered Haukes the bill and his pen, and bade him set his hand to it. Haukes. Ye get not my hand to anything of your making or devising. Bonner. Wilt not thou set to thy hand ? It shall be to thy shame for the denying of it. And then he called all his doctors, and said he would have every man's hand to it that was in the chamber. And so he had all their hands to it, and said, " He that will not set his hand to it, I would he were hanged ;" and so said all his chaplains and doctors with a great noise. Then the bishop thrust Haukes on the breast with great anger, saying he would be even with him, and with all such proud knaves in Essex. Haukes. Ye shall do no more than God shall give you leave. Bonner. This gear shall not go unpunished — trust to it. Haukes. As for your cursings, railings, and blasphemings, I care not for them : for I know the moths and worms shall eat you, as they eat cloth, etc. Bonner. I will be even with you when time shall come. Haukes. You may in your malice destroy a man ; but, when you have done, ye cannot do so much as make a finger ; and ye are meetly even with some of us already. Then Bonner took the bill, and read it again ; and when he saw that he could not have his hand to it, then he would have had him to take it into his hand, and to give it to him again. Haukes. What needeth that ceremony ? Neither shall it come into my hand, heart, or mind. — Then the bishop wrapt it up, put it in his bosom, and in great anger went his way, and called for his horse ; for the same day he rode in visitation into Essex. After all these private conferences, persuasions, and long debatings had with Thomas Haukes in the bishop's house, the bishop, seeing no hope to win him to his wicked ways, was fully set to proceed openly against him after the ordinary course of his popish law. Whereupon Thomas Haukes, shortly after, was cited with the rest of his other fellows above specified, to wit, Thomas Tomkins, Stephen Knight, William Pygot, John Lawrence, and William Hunter, to appear in the bishop's consistory, the 8th day of February, 1555. Upon which appearance was laid against him, in like order as to the others, first the bill of his confession, written with Bonner's hand, to the which bill ye heard before how this blessed servant of God denied to subscribe. After which bill of confession being read, and he constantly standing to the said confession, the bishop then assigned him, with the other five, the day following to appear before him again, to give a resolute answer what they would stick unto. Being exhorted the next day by the bishop to return again to the bosom of the mother church, he .answered, " No, my lord, that will I not; for if I had a hundred bodies, I would suffer them all to be torn in pieces, rather than I will abjure and recant." Whereupon Bonner, at the last, read the 692 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. sentence of death uptfn him ; and so was he condemned the same day with the residue of his fellows, which was the 9th of February. Nevertheless his execution was prolonged, and he remained in prison till the 10th day of June. Then was he committed to the hands and charge of the lord Rich, who, being assisted with power sufficient of the worshipful of the shire, had the foresaid Thomas Haukes down into Essex, with six other fellow-prisoners, whose stories hereafter follow, there to suffer martyrdom ; Haukes at Coggleshall, the others severally in other several places. By the way, Thomas Haukes used great exhortation to his friends ; and whensoever opportunity served to talk with them, he would familiarly admonish them. When the day and hour of his execution arrived, being led to the place appointed for trie slaughter, he there mildly and patiently prepared himself for the fire, having a strait chain cast about his middle, with a multitude of people on every side, unto whom he spake many things. At length, after his fervent prayers first made and poured out unto God, the fire was set unto him ; in the which when he had continued long, and when his speech was taken away by violence of the flame, his skin also drawn together, and his fingers consumed, so that now all men thought that he had certainly been gone, suddenly this blessed servant of God (being mindful of a promise secretly made unto his friends) reached up his hands burning on a light fire over his head to the living God, and with great rejoicing, as it seemed, struck or clapped them three times together : and so the blessed martyr of Christ, straightway sinking down into the fire, gave up his spirit, June 10, 1555. Thomas Watts, of Billericay in Essex, and of the diocese of London, was by his occupation a linen draper. Before he was apprehended he disposed of his stock in trade, giving much of his cloth to the poor ; and being in daily expectation of his enemies' virulence, he set his affairs in order, for the sake of his wife and children. On the 26th of April he was apprehended and brought before the lord Rich and other commis- sioners at Chelmsford, and there being accused for not coming to the church, was upon the same examined before the lord Rich, Sir Anthony Brown, Edmund Tyrel, and several other magistrates of the county. When Mr. Watts first came before the justices at the sessions at Chelmsford, lord Rich thus addressed him, " Watts, you be brought hither, as I understand, because of disobedience to the king and queen's laws. You will not come to the church, you will not hear mass; but have your conventicles a sort of you in corners, contrary to the king and queen's proceedings." To this Mr. Watts answered, " My lord, if I have offended a law, I am subject to the law." Then justice Brown said to him, " W T atts, I pray thee tell me who has been thy schoolmaster to teach thee this religion, or where didst thou first learn it?" " Forsooth," said Watts, " even of you, sir, you taught it me, and none more than you. For in king Edward's days in open sessions you spake against the religion now used, no preacher more. You then said the mass was abominable, and all their trumpery besides, wishing and earnestly exhorting that none should believe therein, and that our belief should be only in Christ: and you then said, that whosoever should bring in any strange nation to rule here, it were treason, and not to be suffered." EXAMINATION OF THOMAS WATTS. 693 • Then said Brown to my lord Rich, " He belies me, my lord. What a knave is this! he will soon belie me behind my back, when he doth it before my face." And my lord Rich said again, " I dare say he doth so." In conclusion, the commissioners being; weary of him, or else not willing to meddle further in such high matters, sent him up to the bishop of London, with their letter withal, importing the cause of his sending up. On Thursday, the 2nd of May, Thomas Watts was accordingly brought before the bishop of London ; and there being examined, upon his words had before the lord Rich and others, as is contained in their letters, he did earnestly affirm the same to be true. Whereupon the bishop objected, and examined him upon these articles following. (1) That he was of Billericay, and so of the jurisdiction of the bishop of London. (2) That he believed not in the sacraments of the church of Rome. (3) That he believeth, and also hath taught others, that the substance of material bread and wine doth remain in the sacrament after the consecration. (4) That he believeth that the very true presence of Christ's body and blood, in substance, is not in the sacrament, but only in heaven, and nowhere else. (5) That he believeth that the mass now used in the church of Rome is full of idolatry, abomination, and wickedness, and that Christ did never institute it. (6) That he believeth auricular confession to be not necessary, but superfluous. (7) That he believeth that Luther, WicklifFe, Dr. Barnes, and all others that have holden against the sacrament, and suffered death by fire for the maintenance of the said opinion, were good men, and faithful servants and martyrs of Christ in so believing and dying. (8) That he hath and doth believe that to fast, pray, or to do alms-deeds, is a thing utterly unprofitable. (9) That coming unto the open court at the sessions, he there said openly, that all that is now used and done in the church is abominable, heretical, schismatical, and altogether naught. (10) That he the said Thomas, by reason of the premises, was and is a manifest and open heretic ; and for the same is to be declared accursed ; and being obstinate and incorrigible, is to be delivered to the secular power, there to be punished as a heretic. (11) That he, besides all these offences, had believed and deliberately spoken, that the church of Rome, in her rites, ceremonies, sacraments, constitutions, and traditions, is the synagogue of Satan. (12) That the premises and every part thereof be true, notorious, manifest, and openly spoken and talked of. — To these articles the said Thomas Watts answered : The first he confessed to be true. To the second, that he believed in all the sacraments according to Christ's institution, but not according to the bishop of Rome's church. To the third, that he hath and doth believe that Christ's body is in heaven, and nowhere else ; and further, that he will never believe that Christ's body is in the sacrament. To the fourth, that he believed the same to be true. To the fifth, that he believed that the mass is abominable, and would not go from that belief. To the sixth, that the priest could not absolve him of his sins, though he allowed it to be good to ask counsel at the priest's mouth. To the seventh, that he knew not what the opinions of the said persons were. To the eighth, he denied having thus spoken ; but said that fasting, prayers, and almsdeeds, be works of a lively faith. To the ninth, that he did thus speak, and desired God that he might die in that faith and belief, wherein he now is. To the tenth, that he will submit himself to the order of the 694 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. law ; and further said, that he trusteth that with God he shall be blessed, although with men he be accursed. To the eleventh, that he believed the bishop of Rome to be a mortal enemy to Christ and his church. To the twelfth, that all which before he confessed to be true, is true ; and all that he hath denied to be true, he denieth again to be true, and believeth the same to be according to such things as he hath confessed. Thus having answered the articles, the bishop commanded Mr. Watts to appear again in the same place at three o'clock in the afternoon ; when, after many persuasions to cause him to recant, he ordered him to depart, and come again on Saturday at eight o'clock in the morning. The bishop being then absent, Harpsfield, the archdeacon, represented him, and earnestly exhorted Watts to deny his opinions. But he being still resolute, as one whose house was built upon a rock, Harpsfield ordered him to appear there again upon Friday, the 10th day of the same month. Upon which day the bishop sent for him privately into his chamber ; but finding all persuasion in vain, he was again dismissed until the 17th of May, and then commanded to appear in the consistory; when being condemned he was delivered to the sheriffs of London, by whom he was sent to Newgate, where he remained until the 9th of June when he was carried to Chelmsford, to an inn, where, as he and his fellow sufferers were eating, they prayed together both before and after their meal. When this was over, Mr. Watts retired, and prayed private- ly, and afterwards came to him his wife and six children, when having exhorted them to remain steadfast in the faith, he bade them farewell. Being brought to the stake, he kissed it, after which he thus addressed lord Rich: " My lord, beware, beware, for you do against your own conscience herein, and without you repent, the Lord will avenge it ; for you are the cause of my death." Mention was made before, in the story of Thomas Haukes, of six prisoners which were sent down with him to Essex ; of which six, three were sent to be burned, and three to recant and do penance. Their names were, Thomas Osmond, fuller ; William Bamford, weaver ; Nicholas Chamberlain, weaver ; Thomas Osborne, fuller ; Thomas Brodehill, weaver ; Richard Web, weaver ; being all of the town of Coggleshall. The articles objected against Osmond, Bamford, and Chamberlain were similar to those of Watts and others, and their answers equally firm and decided. After these had been propounded and answered, they were dis- missed till the afternoon ; at which time the bishop and his assistants, by fair and flattering speeches, tried to make them recant and revoke their opinions. They, notwithstanding, remained firm, and therefore were sent away again until the next day ; in the afternoon of which the bishop con- demned them as heretics, and so delivered them to the sheriffs, in whose custody they remained until they were delivered to the sheriff of Essex, and by him executed: Chamberlain at Colchester, on the 14th of June; Thomas Osmond at Manningtree, and William Bamford at Harwich on the day following. Long persuasion had been in England with great expectation, for the space of half a year or more, that the queen was conceived with child. This report was made by the queen's physicians, and others nigh about the court ; so that divers were punished for saying the contrary. Command- MARY'S SUPPOSED PREGNANCY. 695 meiit was given, that in all churches supplication and prayer should be made for the queen's sate delivery; as may appear by provision made hi* fore in act of parliament for the child. Such was the public excite- ment that about Whitsuntide, the time that this young prince should come into the world, a rumour was blown in London of the prosperous deliverance of the queen, and the birth of a son! Then the bells were rung-, bonfires and processions made, not only in London, and in most other parts of the realm, but also in Antwerp guns were shot off upon the river by the English ships, and the mariners thereof rewarded with a hundred pistolets, or Italian crowns, by the lady regent, who was the queen of Hungary. Yea, divers preachers, after procession and Te Deum, took upon them to describe the proportion of the child, how fair, how beautiful, and great a prince it was, as the like had not been seen! It is said that a simple man, dwelling within four miles of Berwick, who never had been before half way to London, cried out concerning the bonfires made for the supposed child — " Here is a joyful triumph, but at length all will not prove worth a mess of pottage;" as indeed it came to pass: for in the end it proved quite contrary, and the joy and expectations of men were much deceived. One thing of mine own hearing and seeing I cannot pass over unwitnessed : There came to me, whom I did both hear and see, one Isabel Malt, a woman dwelling in Aldersgate- street, in Horn-alley, who before witness made this declaration : that she being delivered of a man-child upon the 11th of June, 1555, there came to her the lord North, and another lord to her unknown, dwelling then about Old Fish-street, demanding of her if she would part with her child, and would swear that she never knew nor had any such child ; which, if she would, her son (they said) should be well provided for, she should take no care for it ; with many fair offers if she would part with her child : but she in no wise would let go her son, who at the writing hereof being alive, and called Timothy Malt, was of the age of thirteen years and upward. Among many other great preparations made for the queen's deliverance of child, there was a cradle very sumptuously and gorgeously trimmed, upon which these lines were written both in Latin and English : The child which thou to Mary, Lord of Might ! hast send, To England's joy, in health preserve ! — keep, and defend ! About this time there came over a certain English book, warning Englishmen of the Spaniards, and disclosing certain close practices for re- covery of abbey-lands, which book was called, " A Warning for England." By the occasion of this book, upon the 13th day of this month came out a certain proclamation, in the name of the king and queen, repealing and disannulling all manner of books written or printed, whatsoever should touch any thing to the impairing of the pope's dignity ; whereby not only much godly edification was hindered, but also great peril grew among the people. Now as these papists have in this present proclamation condemned these books above recited ; so I desire thee to give thy censure upon their books, by them allowed, and upon the matter in them contained, and mark well what good stuff it is. And to begin with the Primer in English for children, after the use of Salisbury, called "Our Lady's Matins;" let us repeat and 696 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM. survey some part thereof, beginning with the first lesson of our Lady in these words : — " Holy Mary, mother most pure of virgins all, Mother and daughter of the King Celestial, So comfort us iu our desolation, That by thy prayer and special mediation We enjoy the reward of thy heavenly reign," etc. Confer this with the Scriptures, good reader, and judge uprightly, whether this doctrine be tolerable in the church or not. It followeth more in the second lesson : — "Holy Mary, of all godly the godliest, Pray for us, of all holy the holiest; That He our prayers accept may in good wise Which of thee was born, and reigneth above the skies," etc. The Versicle. — " Pray for the people, entreat for the clergy, make intercession for the devout woman-kind ; let all feel thy help, that worthily solemnize thy memorial," etc. " Holy Mother of God, make thy petition, That we may deserve Christ's promission," etc. And in the anthem after Benedictus, thus it followeth : — " We beseech thee of thy pity to have us in remembrance, and to make means for us unto Christ, that we, being supported by thy help, may deserve to attain the kingdom of heaven !" Item. — " Holy Mother, succour the miserable, comfort the weak-spirited, give courage to the desperate, pray for the people, make intercession for the clergy, and be a means for the devout woman-kind," etc. Another blasphemy in the said Primer: — "Hail Queen! mother of mercy, our life, our sweetness, our hope ! Unto thee do we cry and sigh, weeping and wailing. Come off, therefore, our patroness ; cast upon us thy pitiful eyes ; and after this our banishment, shew to us the blessed fruit of thy womb. O Gate of glory, be for us a reconciliation unto the Father and the Son. From the wretched their faults expel : remove the spots of sins unclean," etc. And thus much of this catholic primer, called our Lady's Matins. Whereunto, if it were not tedious for the reader, we would also adjoin our Lady's Psalter, to the intent that all indifferent readers, as they have seen what books these catholic fathers have condemned and do condemn for heretical ; so they may also see and judge what books on the other side they approve as lawful and catholic. And forasmuch as it is not known peradventure to all men what our Lady's Psalter is, or what it meaneth, here therefore we will first produce the name of the author, who was Bonaventure, a seraphical doctor, bishop also and cardinal, canonized moreover by pope Sixtus IV., anno 1482, for a saint in the calendar, who, to show himself a devout servant to his Lady, hath taken every Psalm of David, (which peculiarly refer to Almighty God,) and hath in divers of the said psalms and verses put out the name of the Lord, and hath placed in the name of our Lady. This being done, it is now called our Lady's Psalter, used to be sung and said in the praise and service of our Lady. A brief taste whereof, for example's sake, (for, to show all, it were too long,) here followeth: "Blessed is the man which understandeth thy EXTRACTS FROM OUR LADY'S PSALTER. 6